Gass E_Ls THE FIRST DISCOVERY OF PUBI.I8HF.:) UV J. i*: J. HA.B-PIB^. F.'T.t,',' oi A lLEA.lD)E,lEL.&iP TPHiE. S J?Ji."VA.© IB TILUBIE Rei-rrdiim liLt Virtcries en a. Tree. NEW- YnKlS- J!'^J'a,yi»el .^ryr,„ y-/ (CCDILiTUMlB TUS Harper s Edition, with Copperplate Engravings: •vm: HISTORY op THE DISCOVERY AND SETTLEMENT OF AMERICA. BY WILLIAM ROBERTSON, D.D. PRINCIPAL OF THE UNIVERSITY OF EDINBURGH, ETC. ETC. WITH AN ACCOUNT OF HIS LIFE AND WRITINGS. COMPLETE IN ONE VOLUME. ^eijj=^ovU : IHIIXTED BY J. S,- ./. JMRPER, 82 CLlh'F-sTREKT. SOLD BY E. DUVCKINCK, COLLINS AND HANNAY, COLLINS AND CO., G. AND C. CARVILL, O. A. ROORBACII, W. B. GILLEV, AND E. BLISS ;— PHILADELPHIA, CAREY, LEA, AND CAREY, TOWAR AND IIOGAN, AND JOHN GRIGO ;— BOSTON, RICHARDSON AND LORD, 'and HILMAUn. CRAY, AND CO.;— BALT1M0H E, F.LUCAS, JR. 182S. t-14-3 THE LIFE OF DR. Win. ROB£RTJSON< William Robertson^ the eldest son of the Reverend William Robert- son, was born on the 8th of September, 1721, at Borthwick, in the shire of Mid Lothian, of which parish his father was the minister. By the paternal line he descended from a respectable family in the county of Fife, a branch of that which, for many generations, possessed the estate of Struan, in Perthshire. His mother was the daughter of David Pitcairn, esq. of Dreghorn. He had one brother and six sisters ; all of whom were well settled in life, and most of whom lived to an advanced age. It was at the parochial school of Borthwick that Robertson received the initiatory part of his education ; but as soon as he was sufficiently forward to enter on the study of the learned languages, he was removed to the school of Dalkeith. The latter seminary was then under the superintend- ence of Mr. Leslie, whose eminence as a teacher was such as to attract pupils from all parts of Scotland ; and the father of Robertson was con-^ sequently induced to send him to Dalkeith rather than to the Scottish metropolis. When the future historian was twelve years old, his father was trans- ferred from Borthwick to one of the churches of Edinburgh. In the autumn of 1733 he joined his parents ; and, in October, he was admitted into the college and university of the northern capital. Whatever were his first attempts at composition, and it is probable they were many, nothing has been preserved to show how early he began to exercise his talents, or with what degree of rapidity those talents were expanded. It is certain, however, that in the pursuit of knowledge he displayed that ardour and perseverance -svithout which nothing great will ever be accomplished. A strong proof of this is afforded by some of his early commonplace books, which bear the dates of 1735, 1736, and 1737. The motto, vita sine Uteris mors est, which he prefixed to these books, sufficiently indicates by what an honourable ambition and love of literature he was inspired at a very tender and generally thoughtless age. The boy of fourteen, who can cherish the feeling which is implied by this motto, gives promise that his manhood will reflect lustre on himself and on the country of his birth. Among the men of eminence, by whose instructions he profited at the iniiversi^, were sir John Pringle, afterwards president of the Royal Society, but then professor of moral philosophy; Maclaurin, justly cele- brated for the extent of his mathematical skill and the purity of his style ; and Dr. Stevenson, the learned and indefatigable professor of logic. To the masterly prelections of the latter, especially to his illustrations of the poetics of Aristotle, and of Longinus on the Sublime, Robertson often declared that he considered himself to be more deeply indebted than to any circumstance in the course of his academical career. It was indeed not towards the abstract sciences that the bent of his genius was directed. To mathematical and mechanical speculations he seems to have been at least cold, perhaps averse. Neither was he remarkable for metaphysical acuteness. His delight was to trace and elucidate moral and religious truths, to apply the process of reasoning to subjects more immediately co" jv THE LIFE OF nected with the every-day business of existence, to search into the causes and effects of historical events, to expatiate amidst the perennial beauties of classic lore, and, by meditating on the great models of oratorical art, to render himself master of all the poweriul resources of a ready and persua- sive eloquence. With respect to eloquence, ihe possession of it was in fact indispensable to one who, as m all probability was the case with Robertson, had deter- mined to assuire a prominent station among the pastors and leaders of the Scottish church. The mere knowledge ol rules, however, or even a tho- rough acquaintance with the rich stores of ancient and modern oratory, will not suffice to form an orator. It is by use alone that facility of speech and promptitude oi reply can be acquired. It is the collision of minds which strikes out the " thoughts that breathe, and words that burn." During the last years, therefore, of his residing at college, he joined with some of his contemporaries in establishing a society, the avowed purpose of which, as we are told by Mr. Stewart, was " to cultivate the study of elocution, and to prepare themselves, by the habits of extemporary dis- cussion and debate, for conducting the business of popular assemblies." Of the colleagues of Robertson in this society many ultimately rose, like himself, to high reputation. Among them were Cleghorn, subsequently professor of moral philosophy at Edinburgh, Dr. John Blair, who became a member of the Royal Society, and a prebendajy of VVestmmster, and who gave to the public " The Chronology and History of the World," Wilkie, the author of the Epigoniad, a faulty poem, but above contempt, Home, the author of Douglas, and Dr. Erskine, who, in after life, was at once the coadjutor, rival, opponent, and friend of Robertson. This society continued in existence, and, no doubt, was beneficial to its members, till it was broken up by a quarrel, which had its rise from a reli- gious source, and which, consequently, was of more than common bitter- ness. In 1741 that extraordinary man Whitefield, who was then in the zenith of his fame, paid a visit to Scotland, and his preaching excited in that country a feeling equally as strong as it had excited in England. On the subject of his merit violent parties immediately sprang up, especially among the clerg)^. By the one side he was considered as a clerical won- der, a kind of apostle, from whose evangelical labours the happiest result might be expected ; by the other side he was calumniated as an impostor, and a worthless private character, while some, in the excess of their holy zeal, did not scruple to stigmatize him, even from the pulpit, as " an agent of the devil." It was natural that this question should be debated by Robertson and his associates; and it was, perhaps, not less natural that it should be argued with so much heat and asperity as not only to cause the dissolution of the society, but even, it is said, to interrupt, tor some time, the intercourse of the members as private individuals. Of those who entertained doubts with regard to the personal conduct of Whitefield, and the utility of his efforts, Robertson was one. From his acknowledged moderation and evenness of temper we may, however, infer that his hos- tility to the preacher was carried on in a liberal spirit, and that he did not think it either necessary or decorous to brand him as an agent of the prince of darkness. To excel in his written style as much as in his oral Avas one object of his ambition. The practice of clothing in an English dress the standard works of the ancients has beep often recommended, as conducive to the improve- ment of style; and he seems to have believed it to be so, for it was adopted by him- He carried it so far as to entertain serious thoughts ot preparing for the press a version of Marcus Antoninus. His scheme was. however, frustrated by the appearance of an anonymous translation at Glasgow. " In making choice of this author." says Mr. Stewart, "he was probably not a little iniluenced by that parliality with which (among the DR. ROBERTSON. v writers of heathen moralists) he always regarded the remains of the stoical philosophy." Having completed his academic course, and richly stored his mind, he quitted the university, and, in 1741, beiore he had quite attained the age of twenty, a license to preach the gospel was given to him by the presby- tery of Dalkeith. This kind of license, which does not authorize to administer the sacraments or to umlertake the cure of souls, is granted to laymen ; and the person who receives it may be considered as being placed by it in a state of probation. After the lapse of two years, from the period of his leaving the univer- sity, when he was yet little more than twenty-two, he was, in 1743, pre- sented, by the Earl of Hopetoun, to the living of Gladsmuir. Of this pro- ferment the yearly \alue was not more than one hundred pounds. Scanty, however, as were its emoluments, it was most opportunely bestowed, lie had not long resided at Gladsmuir when an unexpected and melancholy event occurred, which put to the trial at once his firmness and his benevo- lence. His tather and mother expired within a few hours of each olhei-, leaving behind them a family of six daughters and one son, without the means of providing for their education and maintenance. On this occa- sion Robertson acted in a manner which bore irrefragable testimony to the goodness of his heart, and which was also, as Mr. Stewart justly observes, " strongly marked with that manly decision in his plans, and that perse- vering steadiness in their execution, which were the characteristic features of his mind." Regardless of the privations to which he must necessarily submit, and the interruption which his literary and other projects must experience, he received his father's family into his house at Gladsmuir, educated hi:5 sisters under his own roof, and retained them there till oppor- tunities arose of settling them respectably in the world. His merit is enhanced by the circumstance of his fraternal affection having imposed on him a sacrifice far more painful than that of riches or fame. He was ten- derly attached to his cousin Miss Mary Nesbit, daughter of the Reverend Mr. Nesbit, one of the ministers of Edinburgh, and his attachment was returned ; but it was not till 1751, when his family had ceased to stand in need of his protecting care, that he thought himself at liberty to complete a union which had, tor several years, been the object of his ardent wishes. It is pleasant to know that the wife whom he so tardily obtained was every way worthy of such a husband, and that he suffiered no interruption of his domestic happiness. While he was laudably occupied in promoting the welfare of his orphan relatives, the rebellion broke out in Scotland. " It afforded him," says Mr. Stewart, " an opportunity of evincing the sincerity of that zeal for the civil and religious liberties of his country, vvhichhe had imbibed with the first principles of his education ; and which afterwards, at the distance of more than forty years, when he was called on to employ his eloquence in the national commemoration of the revolution, seemed to rekindle the fires of his youth. His situation as a country clergyman confined indeed his patriotic exertions within a narrow sphere ; but even here his conduct was guided by a mind superior to the scene in which he acted. On one occa- sion (when the capital was in danger of falling into the hands of the rebels) the present state of public affairs appeared so critical that lie thought him- self justified in laying aside for a time the pacific haJjits of his proiession, and in quitting his parochial residence at Gladsnuiir to join the volunteers of Edinburgh. And when, at last, it was deteimined that the city should be surrendered, he was one of" the small band who repaired to Hadding- ton, and offered their services to the commander of His Majesty's forces." With the exception of this one troubled interval he continued, for many years, in the tranquil performance of his pastoral duties. The hours of his leisure were devoted to literary researches and to living the solid fonn- vi THE LIFE OF dation of future eminence. It was his practice to rise early, and to read and write much before breakfast. The remainder of the day he devoted to the claims of his profession. As a minister of the gospel he was consci- entious and active ; not confining himself to the mere routine of his sacred office, but endeavouring by every means to extend the comibrts and influ- ence of religion. In the summer months it was customary for him, previous to the commencement of the church service, to assemble the youthful part of his flock tor the purpose of explaining to them the doctrines of the catechism. By his zeal, his punctuality, and the suavity of his behaviour, he won the love of his parishioners ; so that, in all their difficulties, it was to him that they resorted for consolation and tor counsel. His pulpit elo- quence was such as atforded delight to all classes of people ; because, while it was adorned with those graces of style which are required to satisfy men of judgment and taste, it was rendered level to the compre- hension of his humblest hearers, by the clearness of its ai^ument and the perspicuity of its language. The time at length arrived when the talents of Robertson were to be displayed on a more extensive and public scene of action, and he was to assume a leading share in the government of the Scottish church. He did not, however, come forward among his colleagues till he had attained the mature age of thirty, and had thoroughly prepared himself to sustain his new and important part with untiring vigour and a decisive effect. It was on the question of patronage that he tirst exerted his powers of eloquence in a deliberative assembly. To enable the mere English reader to comprehend this subject, it may, perhaps, be proper to give some account of the constitution of the church of Scotland, and also of the right of patronage, out of which arose the contentions and heartburnings by which the church was disturbed for a considerable period. The church of Scotland is ruled by a series of judicatories, rising by regular gradation from the kirk session, or parochial consistory, which is the lowest in order, to the general assembly, which is the highest. The kirk session is composed of the ministers and lay elders of parishes ; a presbytery is formed of the ministers of contiguous parishes, with certain representatives from the kirk sessions ; and a provincial synod is consti- tuted by the union of a plurality of presbyteries. Crowning the whole is the general assembly. This body consists of three hundred and sixty-four members, of whom two hundred and two are ministers, and (he remainder are laymen. Of this number two hundred and one ministers and eighty- nine lay elders are sent by the presbyteries ; the royal boroughs elect sixty-seven laymen ; the universities depute five persons, who may be either ecclesiastics or laymen ; and the Scottish church of Campvere in Holland supplies two deputies, the one lay and the other clerical. The annual sittings of the assembly are limited to ten days ; but whatever busi- ness it has left utisettled is transacted by a committee of the whole house (called the commission), which, in the course of the year, has four stated meetings. Among the lay members of the assembly are men of the high- est consequence in the kingdom ; lawyers, judges, and sometimes nobles. Though all the ministers in Scotland are on a perfect equality with each other, yet each individual and each judicatory is bound to yield a prompt obedience to the superintending authority, and each court must punctually lay the record of its proceedings before the tribunal which is next in rank above it ; but the general assembly has the power of deciding without appeal, of enforcing, uncontrolled, its decrees, and, with the concurrence of a majority of the presbyteries, of enacting laws for the government of the Scottish church. The history of clerical patronage in Scotland since the overthrow of Catholicism, and of the struggles to which it has given rise, has been traced DR. ROBERTSON- vii with so much clearness by Dr. Gleig that, though the passage is of some length, I shall give it in his own words. " The Reformation in Scotland," says he, " was irregular and tumultuous ; and the great object of the pow- erful aristocracy of that kingdom seems to have been rather to gel posses- sion of the tithes, and the lands of the dignified clergy, than to purify the doctrine and reform the worship of the church. Of this Knox and the other reformed clergymen complained bitterly ; and their complaints were extorted from them by their own sufferings. Never, 1 believe, were the established clergy of any Christian country reduced to such indigence as were those zealous and well meaning men, during the disastrous reign of queen Mary, and the minority of her son and successor ; while the pit- tance that was promised to them, instead of being regularly paid, was often seized by the rapacity of the regents and the powerful barons who adhered to their cause, and the ministers left to depend for their subsist- ence on the generosity of the people. " As nearly the whole of the ecclesiastical patronage of the kingdom had come into the possession of those barons, partly by inheritance from their ancestors, and partly with the church lands which, on the destruction of the monasteries, they had appropriated to themselves, it is not wonder- ful that, in an age when men were very apt to confound the illegal and mischievous conduct of him who exercised an undoubted right with the natural consequences of that right itself, strong prejudices were excited in the mmds of the clergy and more serious part of the people against the law which vested in such sacrilegious robbers the right of presentation to parish churches. It is not indeed very accurately known by whom minis- ters were nominated to vacant churches for thirty years after the com- mencement of the Reformation, when there was hardly any settled government in the church or in the state. In some parishes they were probably called by the general voice of the people ; in others, obtruded on them by the violence of the prevailing faction, to serve some political purpose of the day ; and in others again appointed by the superintendent and his council : while in a few the legal patron may have exercised his right, without making any simoniacal contract with the presentee ; which, however, there is reason to suspect was no uncommon practice.* " Hitherto the government of the Protestant church of Scotland had fluc- tuated from one form to another, sometimes assuming the appearance of epis- copacy under superintendents, and at other times being presbyterian in the strictest sense of the word. In the month of June, 1592, an act was passed, giving a legal sanction to the presbyterian form of government, and resto- ring the ancient law of patronage. By that act the patron of a vacant parish was authorized to present, to the presbytery comprehending that parish, a person properlj' qualified to be intrusted with the cure of souls ; and the presbytery was enjoined, after subjecting the presentee to certain ♦rials and examinations, of which its members were constituted the judges, ' to ordain and settle him as minister of the parish, pro.vided no relevant objection should be stated to his life, doctrine, or qualifications,' " Though we are assured by the highest authority! that this right of patronage, thus conferred by the fundamental charter of presbyterian government in Scotland, was early complained of as a grievance, it ap- pears to have been regularly exercised until the era of the rebellion against Charles I. during the establishment as well of the presbyterian as of the episcopal church. It was indeed abolished by the usurping powers, which in 1649 established in its stead what was then called ' the gospel right of popular election ;' but at the restoration it was re-established together with episcopacy, and was regularly exercised until the revolution, when epis- • The reader will derive much valuable information on this subject from Dr. Cook's " History of the Refurmation in Scotlaml." ' Dr, Hill. Principal of PJ. Mary's CoIIpcp. in >1(/? T'niver «ity of St. j^ nflreu''>-. v.ii THE LIFE' OF copacy was finally overthrown, and, by an act passed on'the 26th of May, ' the preshyterian church, government, and discipline, by kirk sessions, presbyteries, provincial synods, and general assemblies,' established in its stead. The act of James VI. in 1592 was ' revived and confirmed in every head thereof, except in that part of it relating to patronages,' which were utterly abolished, though nothing was substituted in their stead until the 19th of July immediately succeeding. " It was then statuted and declared, to use the language of the act, ' that, in the vacancy of any particular church, and for sui)plying the same with a minister, the protestant heritors and elders are to name and propose the person to the whole congregation, to be either approven or disapprove!! by ihe!ii ; and if they disapprove, they are to give in their reasons, to the effect the affairs may be cognosced by the presbytery of the bounds ; at whose judgment, and by whose detern!ination, the calling and entiy of every particular minister is to be ordered and concluded. In recompense of which rights of presentation the heritors of every parish were to pay to the patron six hundred merks (£'33 6s. 8d. sterling), against a certain lime, and under certain proportions. " Whether this sum, which at that period was very considerable, was actually paid to the patrons of the several parishes, I know not ; but if it was, or i!]deed whether it was or not, had it been the intention of the legis- lature to produce dissension in the country, it could not have devised any thing better calculated to effect its puipose than this mode of ap|>« inting ministers to vacant churches. The heritors or landholders, if the price was paid, Avould naturally contend for the uncontrolled exercise of the right which they, and they only, had purchased ; but it is not by any means probable that at such a period they could often agree in their choice of a minister for a vacant parish. The elders, who were men of inferior rank and inferior education, would, by the envy of the low, when comparing themselves with the high, be prompted to thwart the wishes of their land- lords, which the act of parliament enabled them to do effectully ; and the consequence must have been that two or three candidates for eveiy vacant church were at once proposed to the people of the parish for their appro- bation or disapprobation. The people might t;ither give the preference to one of the candidates proposed, or reject them all, lor reasons of which the members of the presbytery were constituted the judges ; and as it appears that the presbytery generally took part with the people, a source of ever- lasting contention was thus established betwee!i the country gentlemen and the parochial clergy ; an evil than which a greater cannot easily be con- ceived. For these, and other reasons, this ill digested law was repealed in the tenth year of the reign of queen Anne, and the right of patronage restored as in all other established churches. "By many of the clergy, howevei', patronage seems to have been con- sidered as an appendage of prelacy ; though it has obviously no greater connexion with that form of ecclesiastical polity than with any other that is capable of being allied with the state ; and, till after the year 1730, ministers continued to be settled in vacant parishes in the manner pre- scribed by the act of king William and queen Mary. ' Even then,' says Dr. Hill, ^ the church courts, although they could not entirely disregard the law, continued, in many instances, to render it ineffectual, and by their authority sanctioned the prevailing prejudices of the jieople against it. They admitted, as an incontrovertible principle in preshyterian church government, that a prese!itee, although perfectly well qualified, and unex- ceptionable in his life and doctrine, was nevertheless inadmissible to his clerical office, till the concurrence of the ])eople who were to be under his ministry had been regularly ascertained.' The form of expressing this poncunence was by the subscription of a paper teiined ' a call j' to which DR. ROBERTSON. ix many of the old ministers paid greater respect than to the deed of pre- sentation bv the patron of the church. " To render the call good, however, the unanimous consent of the land- holders, elders, and people, was not considered as necessary, nor indeed ever looked for. Nay, it appears that even a majority was not in all cases deemed indispensable ; for the presbyteiy often admitted to his charge, and proceeded to ordain the presentee whose call, by whatever number of parishioners, appeared to them to afford a reasonable prospect of his be- coming, by prudent conduct, a useful parish minister. On thi' -.'iiier hand, presbyteries sometimes set aside the presentation altogether, when they were not satisfied with the call ; and when the patron insisted on his right, and the presbytery continued inflexible, the general assembly was, in such cases, under the necessity either of compelling the members of the presby- tery, by ecclesiastical censures, to do their duty, or of appointing a com- mittee of its own body to relieve them from that duty, by ordaining the presentee, and inducting him into the vacant church. To compulsion re- course had seldom been had ; and the consequence was that individuals openly claimed a right to disobey the injunctions of the assembly, when- ever they conceived their disobedience justified by a principle of con- science. " Such was the state of ecclesiastical discipline in Scotland when Mr. Robertson first took an active part in the debates of the general assembly; and he very justly thought that its tendency was to overturn the presbyte- rian establishment, and introduce in its stead a number of independent congregational churches. He therefore supported the law of patronage, not merely because it was part of the law of the land, but because he thought it the most expedient method of filling the vacant churches. It did not appear to him that the people at large are competent judges of those qualities which a minister should possess in order to be a useful teacher of the truth as it is in Jesus, or of the precepts of a sound morality. He more than suspected that if the candidates for churches were taught to consider their success in obtaining a settlement as depending on a popu- lar election, many of them would be tempted to adopt a manner of preach- ing calculated rather to please the people than to promote their edification. He thought that there is little danger to be apprehended from the abuse of the law of patronage ; because the presentee must be chosen from among those whom the church had approved, and licensed as qualified for the olince of a parish minister ; because a presentee cannot be admitted to the benefice if any relevant objection to his life or doctrine be proved against him ; and because, after ordination and admission, he is liable to be deposed for improper conduct, and the church declared vacant." Whatever may be thought of the merits of the cause which Robertson espoused, it is impossible to doubt that he was a conscientious supporter of it. To undertake its defence some strength of nerve was, indeed, required. Success seemed, at the outset, to be scarcely within the verge of proba- bility, and there was much danger of becoming unpopular. The result, nevertheless, gave ample proof of what may be accomplished by per- severance and talents. The first time that he came forward in the assem- bly vvasin May, 1751, when a debate arose on the conduct of a minister, who had disobeyed the sentence of a former assembly. Seizing this opportunity to enforce his principles of church discipline, Robertson, in a vigorous and eloquent speech, contended that if subordination were not rigidly maintained the presbyterian establishment would ultimately be overthrown, and, therefore, an exemplary punishment ought to be inflicted on the ofTending party. But, though he was heard with attention, his argu- ments produced so little present effect that, on the house being divided, he was left in a minority of no more than eleven against two hundred. , 7^houe'h this decision was not calculated to encourage him, he deter- X THE LIFE OF mined to persist, and an occurrence very soon took place which enabled him to renew the contest. The presbytery of Dumferline having been fuilty of disobedience, in refusing to admit a minister to the church of nverkeithing, the commission of the assembly, which met in November, ordered them to cease from their opposition, and threatened, that, if they continued to be refractory, they should be subjected to a high censure. Notwithstanding this, the presbytery again disobeyed the mandate of the superior court. Yet, instead of carrying its threat into effect, the commis- sion came to a resolution that no censure should be inflicted. Such a resolution as this, after the commission had gone so far as to resort to threats, was at least absurd. So fair an opening as this circum- stance afforded was not neglected by Robertson. He accordingly drew up a protest, intituled, " Reasons of Dissent from the Judgment and Resolution of the Commission." This protest, which was signed by himself. Dr. Blair, Home, and a few other friends, is an able and closely reasoned pro- duction. It boldly declares the sentence of the commission to be incon- sistent with the nature and first principles of society ; charges the commis- sion itself with having, by that sentence, gone beyond its powers, and betra3'ed the privileges and deserted the doctrines of the constitution ; con- siders the impunity thus granted as encouraging and inviting contumacy; insists on the lawfulness and wisdom of ecclesiastical censures, and on the absolute necessity of preserving subordination and obedience in the church ; and, finally, maintains that the exercise of no man's private judgment can justify him in disturbing all public order, that he who becomes a member of a church ought to conform to its decrees, or, " if he hath rashly joined himself, that he is bound, as an honest man and a good Christian, to with- draw, and to keep his conscience pure and undefiled." When the assembly met, in 1752, the question was brought before it; and Robertson supported the principles of his protest with such cogency of ai^ument, that he won over a majority to his side, and achieved a com- {)lete triumph. The judgment of the commission was reversed, Mr. Gil- espie, one of the ministers of the presbytery of Dumferline, was deposed from his pastoral office, and ejected from his living, and three other indi- viduals were suspended from their judicative capacity in the superior ecclesiastical courts. Gillespie, whose only crime was that of being absent on the day appointed for the induction of the presentee, was a pious and amiable man, and his deposition occasioned so much dissatisfaction, that it gave rise to a new sect of dissenters, afterwards known by the appellation of "the Presbytery of Relief;" a sect which still exists, and is of considerable magnitude. From this time, though it was not till the year 1763 that he became its avowed leader, Robertson was, in fact, at the head of the assembly ; which body, for the whole period of his ascendancy, he contrived to keep steady to his principles. In this task he was ably seconded by Dr. Drysdale, one of the ministers of Edinburgh. It was not, however, without many strug- gles that he retained his pre-eminence. Those which took place in 1765 and 1768 were peculiarly violent ; motions having then been made, and vehemently contended for, to inquire into the causes of the rapid progress of secession from the established church ; and, in order to counteract them, to introduce a more popular mode of inducting the parochial ministers. From what is mentioned by sir Henry Wellwood, in his " Memoirs of Dr. Erskine," it appears that the exertions of Robertson were kept con- tinually on the stretch ; and that for his victory he was partly indebted to cautious management, and to patience which nothing could tire. " During Dr. Robertson's time," says he, " the struggle with the people was perpe- tual ; and the opposition to presentees so extremely pertinacious, as in a great measure to engross the business of the assemblies. The parties in the church were then more equally balanced than they have ever been DR. ROBERTSON. xi since that period. The measures which were adopted, in the face of such perpetual opposition, it required no common talents to manage or defend ; especially considering that the leaders in opposition were such men as Dr. Dick, Dr. Macqueen, Dr. Erskine, Mr. Stevenson of St. Madois, Mr. Free- bairn of Dumbarton, Mr. Andrew Crosbie, kc. &c. ; men of the first ability in the country, and some of them possessed of an eloquence for a popular assembly to which there was nothing superior in the church or in the state. " Dr. Robertson's firmness was not easily shaken, but his caution and prudence never deserted him. He held it for a maxim, never wantonly to offend the prejudices of the people, and rather to endeavour to manage than directly to combat them. Some of the settlements in dispute were protracted tor eight or ten years together ; and though the general assem- blies steadily pursued their system, and uniformly appointed the presentees to be inducted, their strongest sentences were not vindictive, and seldom went beyond the leading points to which they were directed." In 1757 an event happened, which afforded to him an opportunity of manifesting the liberality of his spirit, and of exercising his influence over his colleagues, to moderate the vengeance which was threatened to be hurled on some of his brethren, for having been guilty of an act which was considered to be of the most. profane nature. The chief offender was his friend Home, who was then minister of Athelstaneford. The crime con- sisted in Home having not only produced the tragedy of Douglas, but having also had the temerity to be present at the acting of it in the Edin- burgh theatre. With him were involved several of his clerical intimates, who, as much from a desire to share with him any odium or peril which might be incurred, as from a natural curiosity, had been induced to accom- pany him to the theatre on the first night of the performance. The storm which this circumstance raised among the Scottish clergy can, in the pre- sent age, hardly be imagined. It seemed as if they had witnessed nothing less than the abomination of desolation standing in the holy place. The presbytery of Edinburgh hastened to summon before its tribunal such of its members as had committed this heinous offence, and it likewise despatched circulars to the presbyteries in the vicinity, recommending rigorous measures against all clergymen who had desecrated themselves by appearing in the polluted region of the theatre. The alarm thus sounded awakened all the bigotry of the circumjacent presbyteries. That of Haddington, to which Home belonged, cited him and nis friend Car- lyle, of Inveresk, to answer for their misconduct. That of Glasgow had no criminals to chastise, but it was resolved not to remain silent, and, there- fore, with a zeal which assuredly was not according to knowledge, it ful- minated forth a series of resolutions on this appalling subject. It lamented " the melancholy but notorious fact, that one, who is a minister of the church of Scotland, did himself write and compose a play entitled the Tragedy of Douglas, and got it to be acted in the theatre at Edinburgh ; and that he, with several other ministers of the church, were present, and some of them oftener than once, at (he acting of the said play before a numerous audience;" it affirmed, in direct hostility to historical evidence, that stage plays had "been looked upon by the Christian church, in all ages, and of all different communions, as extremely prejudicial to religion and morality ; and, as a natural consequence from this, it called on the general assembly to reprobate publicly " a practice unbecoming the cha- racter of clei^men, and of such pernicious tendency to the great interests of religion, industry, and virtue." The ciy of the church was echoed from the press, angry disputants were arrayed on both sides, and a multitude of ephemeral pamphlets and pasquinades was rapidly produced. Throughout the whole of the ecclesiastical proceedings, which on this occasion were instituted in the presbyteries and in the seneral assembly, xil THE LIFE OF Robertson exerted himself with more than common ardour and eloquence on behalf of his friends. Though, being restrained by a promise whic i he had given to his father, he had himself never been within the walls of a theatre, he did not hesitate to avow his belief that no culpabilitj^ attached to the persons who were under prosecution. " The promise, ' said he, " which was exacted by the most indulgent of parents, I have hitherto religiously kept, and it is my intention to keep it till the day of my death. 1 am at the same time tree to declare, that I perceive nothing sinful or inconsistent with the spirit of Christianity in writing a tragedy, which gives no encouragement to baseness or vice, and that I cannot concur in censuring iny brethren tor being present at the representation of such a tragedy, from which I was kept back by a promise, which, though sacred to me, is not obligatory on them." AVholly to overcome the prevalent spirit of bigotry was more than Robertson could accomplish, but it is believed to have been at least greatly mitigated by his laudable eflbrts. To his persuasive eloquence is attri- buted, and no doubt justly, the comparative mildness of the sentence which was ultimately pronounced. A declaratory act vvas passed by the assem- bly, forbidding the clergy to visit the theatres, but not extending the pro- hibition to the writing of \j\ays. The silence of the assemb!}' on the latter head vvas at least one point gained in favour, of liberal principles. As to the offending ministers, some of them were rebuked by the presbyteries to which they belonged, and one or two of them were suspended liom their oHice tor a lew weeks. Home, however, being disgusted with the treatment which he had experienced, and having, perhaps, already been offered patronage in the British metropolis, resigned his living of Athel- staneford in .Tune, 1757, and fixed his residence in London. By the departure of Home, the Select Society, as it was called, lost one of its ablest members. This society was instituted at Edinburgh, in 1754, by Allan Ramsaj', the painter, who was son to the poet of the same name. The object of it was philosophical and literary inquiry, and the improve- ment of the members in the art of speaking. It held its meetings in the Advocates' Library, and met regularly every Friday evening, during the sittings of the court of session. At the outset it consisted of only fifteen persons, of whom Robertson was one. Jt, however, soon acquired such high reputation, that its list of associates was swelled to more than a hun- dred and thirty names ; among which were included those of the most eminent literary and political characters in the northern division of the kingdom. Of this number were Hume, Adam Smith, Wedderbuin, after- wards Lord Chancellor, sir Gilbert Elliot, lord Elibank, lord Monboddo, lord Karnes, lord Woodhouselee, Adam Furguson, VVilkie, Dr. Cullen, and many others less gifted perhaps, but still rising far above mediocrity of talent. This society flourished in lull vigcnir ibr some years ; and is said by professor Stewart, to have produced such debates as nave not often been heard in modern assemblies ; debates, where the dignity of the speakers was not lowered by the intrigues of policy, or the intemperance of faction; and where the most splendid talents that have ever adorned this country were roused to their best exertions, by the liberal and enno- bling discussions of literature and philosophy." That such an assemblage of learning and genius must have done much towards diffusing through Scotland a taste for letters, there cannot be the shadow of a doubt. Robert- son took an active part, and was one of its presidents. As a speaker, it was remarked of him, that " Avhereas most of the others in their previous discourses exhausted the subject so much that there was no room for debate, he gave only such brief but artful sketches, as served to suggest ideas, without leading to a decision." By a few members of the society, a Review was atfernpted in 1755, the principal contributors to which wore Blair, Smith, and Robertson. This DR. ROBERTbUiV. xjii undertaking was designed to form a record of the progress ol' Scottish lite- rature, and, occasionally, to criticise such English and foreign works as might appear to be worthy of notice. After having published two num- bers, which appeared in July and December, the reviewers were under the necessity ol relinquishing their plan. The failure is said to have arisen from their having lashed, with just but caustic severity, "some miserable effusions of fanaticism, which it was theii wish to banish from the church." Their attack upon this mischievous trash excited such a vehement party outcry, tliat they thought it prudent to discontinue labours which, while they musi fail of being usetui, could nut fail to expose them to vulgar odium, and involve them in endless disputes. Time, the great worker of changes, has since produced a marvellous alteration. At a period less than half a century later, the most prejudice-scorning and pungent of all Reviews was established in the Scottish capital, and was received with enthusiasm ! • The lirst separate literary production of Robertson, or at least the first known production, was also laid before the public in 1755. It is a sermon which he preached in that year before the Scotch society for propagating Christian knowledge. He chose for his subject, "'The situation of the world at the time of Christ's appearance, and its connexion with the suc- cess of his religion." Though this discourse never rises into a strain of glowing eloquence, it is a dignified and argumentative composition, in a chaste and animated style. If it does not flash and dazzle, it at least shines with a steady lustre. Its merit, indeed, affords us ample cause to regret that, before his removal from Gladsmuir, he lost a volume of ser- mons, on which much care is said to have been bestowed. The sole spe- cimen which remains of his talents as a preacher has passed through five editions, and has been translated into the German language by Mr. Edeling. The time now came when the high character for learning and talent, which Robertson had acquired among his friends, was to be ratified by the public voice. He had long i)een sedulously engaged on the History of Scotland, the plan of which he is said to have formed soon after his settling at Gladsmuir. By his letters to Lord Hailes we are, in some measure, enabled to trace his progress. It appears that as early as 1753 he had commenced his labours, and that by the summer of 1757 he had advanced as far as the narrative of Cowrie's conspiracy. In the spring of 1758 he visited London, to concert measures for publishing ; and the His- tory, in two volumes, quarto, was given to the world on the first of Fel)- ruary, 1759, about three months subsequent to the completion of it. While the last sheets were in the press, the author i-eceived, by diploma, the de- gree of Doctor of Divinity from the University of Edinburgh. At the period when Dr. Robertson commenced his career, this country could boast of kw historians, possessed of philosophic views and an ele- gant style. Rapin, who, besides, wrote in his native language. Carte, and others, could not aspire to a loftier title than that of annalists ; and the re- cent production from the pen of Smollet, though displaying talent, was by far too imperfect to give him a place among eminent historical writers. Hume alone had come near to the standard of excellence ; and, after en- during a doul)tful struggle, in the course of which his spirits were well nigh overpovvered, had at length begun to enjoy the literary honours which he had so painfully acquired. For a considerable time past he had been occupied on Ihe reigns of the Tudor race ; and, as this subject is insepa- rably connected with Scottish history. Dr. Robertson was alarmed lest ho liimself should sustain injury from the volumes of his friend being pub- lished simultaneously with his own. The new candidate for fame endea- voured to induce Hume to proceed with some other portion of his narra- tive ; and, having failed in this, he appears to have been desirous that he should at least be allowed to be the first to claim the notice cf the public. xw THE LIFE UF " I am (says Hume m a letter to him) nearly printed out, and shall be sure to send you a copy by the stage coach, or some other conveyance. I beg of you to make remarks as you go alon;^. It would have been much bet- ter had we communicated before printing, which was always my desire, and was most suitable to the friendship which always did, and I hope always will subsist between us. I speak this chiefly on my own account. For though I had the perusal of your sheets before I printed, I was not able to derive sulficient benefits from them, or indeed to make any altera- tion by their assistance. There still remain, I fear, many errors, of which you could have convinced me if we had canvassed the matter in conversa- tion. Perhaps I might also have been sometimes no less fortunate with you." He adds, " Millar was proposing to publish me about March : but I shall communicate to him your desire, even though I think it entirely groundless, as you will likewise think after you have read my volume. He has very needlessly delayed your publication till the first week of February, at the desire of the Edinburgh booksellers, who could no way be afifected by a publication in London. I was exceedingly sorry not to be able to comply with your desire, when you expressed your wish that I should not write this period. I could not write downward. For when you find occasion, by new discoveries, to correct your opinion with regard to facts which passed in queen Elizabeth's days ; who, that has not the best opportunities of informing himself, could venture to relate any recent transactions ? I must therefore have abandoned altogether this scheme of the English History, in which I had proceeded so far, if I had not acted as I did. You will see what light and force this history of the Tudors be- stows on that of the Stewarts. Had I been prudent I should have begun with it." The alarm which Dr. Robertson conceived from the rivalship of his friend was, however, groundless. His success was not, like that of Hume, the slow growth of years. It was complete and immediate. So rapid was the sale of the book, that, before a month had elapsed, his publisher informed him that it was necessary to set about preparing for a second edi- tion. It was read and admired by a part of the royal family; and plau- sive and gratulatory letters were showered on him from all quarters. Warburton, Horace Walpole, Lord Mansfield, Lord Lyttelton, Dr. Doug- las, Hurd, and many other men of eminence, all concurred in swelling the chorus of praise. Among the foremost to blazon his merits was his ami- cable rival, Hume, whose letters bear repeated testimony to the warmth of his friendship, and his noble freedom from the base dominion of envy. " I am diverting myself," says he, " with the notion of how much you ■will profit by the applause of my enemies in Scotland. Had you and I been such tools as to have given way to jealousy, to have entertained ani- mosity and malignity against each other, and to have rent all our acquaint- ance into parties, what a noble amusement we should have exhibited to the blockheads, which now they are likely to be disappointed of! All the people whose friendship or judgment either of us value are friends to both, and will be pleased with the success of both, as we will be with that of each other. I declare to you 1 have not of a long time had a more sensi- ble pleasure than the good reception of your History has given me within this fortnight." In another place, with a sportiveness not unusual in his correspondence, he exclaims, " But though I have given this character of your work to Monsieur Helvelius, I warn you that this is the last time that, either to Frenchman or Englishman, I shall ever speak the least good of it. A plague take you ! Here I sat near the historical summit of Par- nassus, immediately under Dr. Smollet ; and you have the inripudence to squeeze yourself by me, and place yourself directly under his feet. Do you imagine that this can be agreeable to me ! And must not I be guilty of "great simplicity to contrilnite my endeavours to your thrusting me out of DR. KOBEKTSON. xv my place in Paris as well as at London ? But I give you warning that you will find the matter somewhat diflicult, at least in the former city. A friend of mine, who is there, writes home to his father the strangest ac- counts on that head ; which my modesty will not permit me to repeat, but which it allowed me very deliciously to swallow." The hold which the History of Scotland thus suddenly acquired on the public mind it yet retains. Fourteen editions were published during the life-time of the author, and the editions since his decease have been still more numerous. It has undoubtedly established itself as a classical Eng- lish production. For a while, indeed, the voice of criticism was mute ; and the historian had only to enjoy the luxury of his triumph. But, at length, some of his opinions, particularly his belief of the guilt of Mary, found opponents in the candid and well informed Tytler, the learned, acute, and eloquent Stuart, and the dogmatical Whitaker; the latter of whom, though master of talents, erudition, and forcible reasoning, almost rendered truth itself repulsive Ijy the petulance and overbearingness of liis manner, and the ruggedness of'^his style. Of his antagonists, however, the historian took not the slightest public notice, contenting himself with the silent correction of such passages in his work as his matured judgment had decided to be erroneous. In a letter to Gibbon he laconically notices Whitaker. " You will see," says he, "that I have got in Mr. Whitaker an adversary so bigoted and zealous, that though I have denied no article of faith, and am at least as orthodox as himselt, yet he rails against me with all the asperity of theological hatred. I shall adhere to my fixed maxim of making no reply." It was not merely a harvest of unproductive fame that was reaped by Dr. Robertson. He was no sooner known to the world than preferment was rapidly bestowed on him. In the autumn of 1758, while his work was in the hands of the printer, he was translated from Gladsmuir to one of the churches of the Scottish metropolis. I believe the church to which he was removed to have oeen that of the Old Gray Friars, in which, some years afterwards, his friend Dr. Erskine became his coadjutor. On the History issuing from the press, he was appointed chaplain of Stirling Cas- tle, and, in 1761, one of his Majesty's chaplains in ordinary for Scotland, The dignity of Principal of the College of Edinburgh was conferred on him in 1762 ; and, two years subsequently to this, the office of Historio- grapher for Scotland, which, since the death of Crawfurd, in 1726, had been disused, was revived in his favour, with an annual stipend of two hundred pounds. By the remuneration which he had received for his history, and the salaries which arose from his various appointments. Dr. Robertson was now in possession of an income far greater than had ever before been pos- sessed by any Scotch presbyterian minister, and certainly not falling short of that which had been enjoyed by some bishops at the period when the church of Scotland was under episcopal government. A few of his indis- creet friends seem, however, to have thought that his talents were not ade- quately rewarded, and even that the clerical profession in the northern part of our island did not afford for them a sphere of action sufficiently ex- tensive. The church of England held forth richer prospects to ambition and to mental endowments ; and they were of opinion that, by transferring his services to that church, he might obtain a share in its highest dignities and emoluments. To this scheme allusions may be found in the letters which, about this time, were addressed to him by Dr. John Blair, Sir Gil- bert Elliot, and Mr. Hume. But Dr. Robertson had a larger share of foresight and prudence than his advisers, and he rejected their dangerous though well intended counsel. It is, perhaps, more than doubtful whether, had it been executed, their plan would have produced the desired effect. This kind of transplanting has often been tried, but seldom, if ever, with xvi THE LIFE Ot any degree of success. The plant, vig^orous on its native bed, languishes and is dwarfed on an alien soil. Dr. Robertson had now reached the ma- ture aee of forty-one; his opinions, his habits, his connexions, had all been formed with a reference to the circle in which he moved, and it was not pro])able that they could be suddenly bent wilh advantage in an opposite direction. In Scotland he had no competitors who could rise to a level with him ; in England he would, perhaps, have had many ; and he may be supposed to have thought with Caesar, that it is better to be the first man in a village than the second at Rome. Nor was there any room in England for the exercise of that kind of eloquence in which he particularly excelled ; the eloquence which is manifested in debate. By the force of his oratory he left far behind all his rivals and opponents, and wielded at will the general assembly of the Scottish church ; but, since the convoca- tion was shorn of its controversial and declamatory glories, since it was smitten with an incapacity of embarrassing the government, fostering theo- logical rancour, and displaying the unseemly spectacle of Christian divines arrayed in worse than barbarian hostility to each other, there has not in this country existed any deliberative clerical body in which Dr. Robert- son could nave exerted those argumentative and rhetorical powers that, among his fellow ministers, obtained for him so entire an ascendancy. His preferment might also have stopped short of the point which his sanguine friends expected it to attain ; and, whatever its degree, it would in all pro- bability have been looked on with a jealous eye by many of his brethren on the south of the Tweed. There was, besides, another and still more powerful reason that must have influenced his decision. He had for nearly twenty years been a leading minister of the presbyterian establishment ; and his now quitting it to enter into a prelatical church, which, as being deemed a scion from the hated stock of Roijne, was still held in abomina- tion by many of his countiymen, could scarcely have failed to be considered as an interested and base sacrifice of his principles and his character at the shrine of lucre and ambition. To be branded as a deserter by the zealots of the one institution, and by the envious of the other, was not a favourable auspice under which to commence bis new career ; and he therefore acted ■wisely, as well as honourably, in remaining a member of the Scottish church. Having resolved to remain in Scotland, and to rely chiefly on his pen for the advancement of his fortune. Dr. Robertson had now to choose another theme on which his talents could be profitably employed. To the com- position of history, in which he had met with such stimulating success, he wisely determined to adhere. It was, indeed, in that department that he was peculiarly qualified to excel, by his power of vivid description, and his happy delineation of character. His friends were consulted on this occasion ; each had some favourite plan to suggest to him ; and he seems to have been absolutely embarrassed by the affluence of subjects, many of which were worthy of his best exertions to illustrate and adorn them. If a ludicrous simile may be allowed, we may say that he found it no less difficult to fix his choice, than it was for Mr. Shandy to decide to what pur- pose he should apply the legacy which was left to him by his sister Dinah. Dr. John Blair strenuously recommended to him to write a complete His- toiy of England, and assured him that Lord Chesterfield had declared his readiness to move, in the house of peers, for public encouragement to him, in case of his undertaking a work which might with justice be considered as being a national one. But from adopting this project, though it Avas one which he had early cherished, Dr. Robertson was deterred by his honourable un- willingness to interfere wilh his friend Hume, who was now putting the finishing hand to his great labogr. Hume himself advised him to under- take a series of modern lives, in the manner of Plutarch. "You see," said he. "that in Plul.Dfb the life of Caesar mny be read in half an hour. DR. ROBERT SON. xvii Were you to write the life of Henry the Fourth of France after that model, you might pilla2:e all the pretty stories in Sully, and speak more of his mistresses than of his battles. In short, you might o;ather the flower of all modem history in this manner. The remarkable popes, the kit)gs of Swe- den, the great discoverers and conquerors of the New World, even the eminent men of letters might furnish you with matter, and the quick des- f»atch of every different work would encourage you to begin a new one. f one volume were successful, you might compose another at your leisure, and the field is inexhaustible. There are persons whom you might meet with in the corners of histoiy, so to speak, who would be a subject of en- tertainment quite unexpected ; and as long as you live, you might give and receive amusement by such a work." That so excellent an idea should not have been acted upon must be regretted by eveiy one who is a lover of literature. By Horace VValpole two subjects, of no trivial interest, were pointed out. These were the History o( Learning, and the History of the reigns of Nerva, Trajan, Adrian, and the two Antonines ; the latter of which VValpole declared that he should be tempted to denominate the History of Humanity. Dr. Robertson himself seems, at one time, to have thought, though but transiently, of tracing the events which occurred in the age of Leo the Tenth. There is no reason to lament that he did not undertake this task, which was once meditated on by VVarton, and has since been performed by a writer whom nature has largely gifted, and who possesses a profound kno'.vledge of the records, arts, and language of Italy. But the two plans which haS the ascendancy in his mind, and between which he long hesitated, were the History of Greece, and the History of Charles the ?ifth. At length, notwithstandir)g the objections which were urged by Hume and Horace VValpole, he made choice of the reign of Charles as the subject of his second attempt. When he had for about a j'ear been engaged, partly in those preliminary' researches which are necessary to give value to a work like that on which he was occupied, and partly in composition, his progress was suddenly suspended, by the intervention of a personage of such elevated rank as to render it almost impossible for him to decline a compliance with that which was required from him. It has been seen, that he v/as early desirous to be the historian of his native island, and that friendship alone prevented him from being so. He was now informed that the Avishes of the British sovereign were in unison with his own. In the latter part of July, 1761, he was written to on this head by lord Cathcart. " Lord Bute told me the king's thoughts as well as his own," said lord Cathcart, " with respect to your History of Scotland, and a wish his majesty had expressed to see a History of England by your pen. His lordship assured me, every source of information which government can ct)mmand would be open to you : and that great, laborious, and extensive as the work must be, he would take care your encoura"jement should be proportioned to it. He seemed to be aware of some objections you once had, lourided on the apprehen- sion of clashing or intert'ering with Mr. David Hume, who is your friend : but as your performance and his will be upon plans so different from each other, and as his will, in point of time, have so much the start of yours, these objections did not seem to him such as, upon reflection, were likely to continue to have much weight with you. I must add, tliat though I did not think it right to inquire into lord iUite's intentions before I knew a little of your mind, it appeared to me plain, that they were higher than any views which can open to you in Scotland, and which, I believe, he would think inconsistent with the attention the other subject would neces- sarily require." A proposition thus powerfully enforced it would, under any circum- stances, have been difficult for Dr. Roliertson to reject. But, in fact, the reasons which formerly influenced his conduct Ivad ceased to exist. Hume Vol. I.— C xviii THE LIFE OF had now completed his history, it was before the pubhc, and its late must be irrevocably decided before a line of the rival narrative could be com- )nitted to paper. Dr. Robertson was convinced of this, and therefore he did not hesitate to embrace the opportunity which was offered to him. " After the first publication of the Flistory of Scotland, and the favourable reception it met with," said he in his answer to lord Cathcart, " I had both veiy tempting offers from booksellers, and very confident assurances of public encouragement, if I would undertake the History of England. Hut as Mr. Hume, with whom, notwithstanding the contrariety of our sen- timents both in religion and politics, I live in great friendship, was at that time in the middle of the subject, no consideration of interest or reputation would induce me to break in upon a field of which he had taken prior pos- session ; and I determined that my interference with him should never be any obstruction to the sale or success of his work. Nor do I yet repent of jny having resisted so many solicitations to alter this resolution. But the rase I now think is entirely changed. His Histoiy will have been pub- lished several years before any work of mine on the same subject can appear; its first run will not be manedby any justling with me, and it will have taken that station in the literary system which belongs to it. 'iiiis objection, therefore, which I thought, and still think, so vveighty at that time, makes no impression on me at present, and 1 can now justify my undertaking the English History, to myself, to the world, and to him. Besides, our manner of viewing the same subject is so different or peculiar, that (as was the case in our last books) both may maintain their own rank, Jiave their own partisans, and possess their own merit, without hurting each other-" To enable him to accomplish so arduous a labour, he considered it neces- sary, not only that he should be established in such a manner as would divest him of all anxiety as to pecuniary concerns, but that he should like- wise have the power of devoting to study a laiger portion of his time than it was noAv possible ibr him to allot to that purpose. " Were T to carve out my own fortune," said he, '-'' 1 should wish to continue one of his ma- jesty's chaplains for Scotland, but to resign my charge as a minister of Edinburgh, which engrosses more of my time than one who is a stranger to the many minute duties of that office can well imagine. I would wish to apply my whole time to literary ptirsuits, which is at present parcelled out among innumerable occupations. In order to enable me to make this resig- nation some appointment must be assigned me for life. What that should be, it neither becomes me, nor do 1 pretend to say. One thing, however. I wish with some earnestness, that the thing might be executed soon, both as it will give me great vigour in my studies to have my future fortune ascertained in so honoural)le a manner, and because, by allowing me to apply myself wholly to my present work, it will enable me to finish it in a less time, and to begin so much sooner to my new task." But though he was desirous to obtain some appointment, in order that he might not be "reduced entirely to the profession of an author," he at the same moment, with becoming spirit, declared that he did not wish to derive any emolu- ment from it before he could commence the particular task for which the appointment was to be given. The proposal that he should remove to liOndon, he was averse from complying with, though he did not put a ilirect negative on it ; and he could not consent to begin the History of Britain till he had completed that of Charles the Fifth. This scheme, which seems to have been almost brought to maturity, was, nevertheless, dropped ; but for what reason is unknown. Mr. Stewart is disposed to believe that the failure of it may in part be attributed to th« resignation of lord Bute. It was certainly so much a favourite with Dr. Uobertson that he long cherished it, and abandoned it with reluctance. We may, perhaps, be allowed to smih.', or to wonder, that a sovereigu DR. ROBERTSON. xis should have selected a writer conlessedly of Whig principles to compose a History of England, in opposition to one produced by a friend of arbi< trary power ; and we maj' also be allowed to doubt, whether, as far as regarded its sentiments, such a work, written by a Whig under the auspices of a court, would have proved quite satisfactory either to the monarch or to the people. There might, at least, have been some danger that it would havejustihed the sarcasm which Vv'as uttered by Horace Walpole, on ano- ther occasion- " You must know, sir," said Dr. Robertson to him, " that I look upon myself as a moderate Whig."-^" Yes, doctor," replied Wal- pole, " I look on you as a very moderate Whig." As soon as this negotiation was broken off", he bent all his exertions to the task which he had commenced. The public curiosity was highly excited, and it was long kept on the stretch before it was gratified. In the summer of 1761, he stated that one third of the work was finished, and that two years more would be required to bring the whole to perfection. But there never yet was an author who did not deceive himselt, and con- sequently deceive others, as to the period at which his labour would be completed. The stupid, the thoughtless, and the malignant (and there are many persons, not literaiy, though connected with literature, who belong to these classes) consider as intended for the purpose of deception the erroneous estimate which authors are thus apt to form. They either can- not or will not be taught that, in spite of Dr. Johnson's bold assertion to the contrary, no rnan is at all hours capable of tliinking deeply, or of clothing his thoughts in an attractive dress ; that he who is dependent on his reputation for existence ought not to be compelled to hazard it by crude and slovenly efforts, the product of haste ; that he who draws up a narra- tive from widely scattered, numerous, and conflicting documents must often, in painful research and in balancing evidence, spend more months than he had calculated on spending weeks ; that the discovery of a single paper, the existence of which was previously unknown, may not only throw a new light upon a subject, but give to it an entirely new colour^ and may compel a writer to modify, to arrange, and even to cancel, much that he had supposed to have received his last touches ; and, therefore, that the delay whicli, as being a proof of literary indolence, is so fre- quently and so unfeelingly an object of censure, ought rather in many cases to be rewarded with praise, because it is a duty which an author con- scientiously, and at his own cost, performs to s-ociety and to truth. Impe- diments of this kind no doubt retarded the progress of Dr. Robertson ; to which must be added his multifarious avocations, as principal of the uni- versity, a minister of one of the churches of the Scottish metropolis, and an active member of the general assembl}', in which body, as Mr. Stewart informs us, faction Avas running high at that epoch. The transactions relative to America he likewise found to be of too vast a magnitude, to allow of their being compressed into an episode. He was under the neces- sity of reserving them for a separate history ; and this circumstance obliged him in some degree to make a change in his original plan. It is, there- fore, not wonderful that the publication of his work was protracted six years beyond the time which he had himself assigned for it. At length, early in 1769, appeared, in three volumes quarto, the History of Charles the Fifth. It had been perused, while in the press, by Hume,' and probably by other friends, and had gained the warmest praise. " 1 got yesterday from Strahan," says Hume, in one of his letters, "about thirty sheets of your Histoiy, to be sent over to Suard, and last night ami this morning have run them over with great avidity. I could not deny myself the satisfaction (which I hope also will not displease you) of expressing presently my <;xtreme approbation of them. To say only (hey are very well written, is by far too taint an expression, and much inferior to the sentiment's T {(>v\ : I hey are composed with nobleness, with dignity, XX THE LIFE OF with elegance, and with judgment, to which there are few equals. They even excel, and I think in a sensible degree, your History of Scotland. I propose to myself great })leasure in being the only man in England, during some months, who will be in the situation of doing you justice, after which you may certainly expect that my voice will be drowned in that of the public." Hume's anticipation was prophetic. Soon after the work had come out, he wrote to his friend, in the following unequivocal terms. " The success has answered my expectations, and 1, who converse with the great, the fair, and the learned, have scarcely heard an opposite voice, or even whis- I>er, to the general sentiments. Only I have heard that the Sanhedrim at Mrs. Macaulay's condemns you as little less a friend to government and monarchy than myself." Horace VValpole was almost equally laudatory; lord Lyltelton testified his admiration ; and, as Hume had long before done, recommended to the historian to write, in the manner of rlutarcb, the lives of eminent persons. V^oltaire, also, paid a flattering tribute. " It is to you and to Mr. Hume," said he, " that it belongs to write history. You are eloquent, learned, and impartial. I unite with Europe in esteem- ing you." Nor was the tame of the author confined to his native island. Through the intervention of the baron D'Holbach, M. Suard was induced to translate the work into French, while it was being printed in England, and his masterly translation is said to have established his own literary character, and to have been the means of his obtaining a seat in the French academy. The remuneration which the author himself received was mag- nificent ; especially in an age when it was not customary to give a large sura of money for the purchase of copyright. It is affirmed to have been no less than four thousand five hundred pounds. It is not to be imagined, however, that the History of Charles the Fifth could entirely escape the severity of criticism, which appears to be the common lot of all literary productions. By the Abbe Mably it was attacked in rude and contemptuous language ; which, without having the power to injure the work, was disgraceful to the person who descended to use it. Gilbert Stuart likewise assailed it ; but with more skill than the French critic, and with a vigour which was animated by personal resentment. That his acuteness detected many inaccuracies, it would be absurd to dis- ]»ute ; but no one can doubt thai he pushed his censure farther than was consonant with justice, when he characterized Dr. Robertson as an author " whose total abstinence from all ideas and inventions of his own permitted him to carry an undivided attention to other men's thoughts and specula- tions." VValpole, too, in later life, asserted that the reading of Dr. Robert- son was not extensive, that the Introduction to the History of Charles abounds with gross errors, and that in many instances he has mistaken exceptions for rules. The work, however, still maintains its station ; and, even admitting all that truth or ingenious prejudice can urge against it, who is there who will now have the boldness to deny that it forms a splen- did addition to our historical treasures ? After having completed this arduous undertaking, Dr. Robertson allowed himself some respite from literary toil ; a respite which, in fact, was neces- i^ary for the preservation of his health. His mind was, however, too active to remain long unoccupied, and he hastened to resume the pen. As a se- quel to the history of Charles, he had promised to give to the public a nar- rative of tlie Spanish discoveries, conquests, and proceedings in America. This plan he soon resolved to enlarge, so as to include in it the transactions ef all the European colonizers of the American continent. To the origin and progress of^ the British empire in that quarter, it was originally his in- tention to devote an entire volume. Than the History of the New World it was impossible tor him to have chosen a subject more fertile, more attractive, or better calculated for the display of his peculiar talents. DR. ROBERTSON. xxi There was ''ample room and verge enough" for olt>quence to expatiate in. The rapidly succeeding events which he '.vas to describe were scarcely less marvellous than those ot an oriental fiction ; one of Jiis heroes, (he dauntless explorer ot" unknown oceans, will always excite tlie wonder, admiration, and pity of mankind ; others, though villains, were at least villains of no common powers ; and the characters, the customs, the man- ners, the scenery, every thing in short that was connected with the work, possessed throughout the charm of novelty, and, in many instances, that of the most picturesque and forcible contrast. To the first part of his subject, that which relates to the discovery of the Kew World, and the conquests and policy of the Spaniards, eiarht years of studious toil were devoted by Dr. Robertson. At length, in the spring of 1777, he put forth, in two quartos, the result of his labours. The pub- lic again received him with enthusiasm, and his literaiy friends again pressed forward to congratulate and to praise him. Hume was no longer in existence ; but his place was supplied by Gibbon, who testified his entire approbation of the volumes even before he had wholly perused them. " I have seen enough," said he, " to convince me that the present publica- tion will support, and, if possible, extend the fame of the author ; that the materials are collected with care, and arranged with skill ; that the pro- gress of discoveiy is displayed with learning and perspicuity; that the dangers, the achievements, and the views of the Spanish adventurers, are related with a temperate spirit ; and that the most original, perhaps tlie most curious portion of human manners, is at length rescued trom the hands of sophists and declaimers." But, perhaps, of all the applause which was bestowed on Dr. Robert- son, none was more gratifying than that which was given by Burke ; a man eminent at once as a writer, an orator, and a statesman. " I am per- fectly sensible," says he, " of the very flattering distinction I have received in your thinking me worthy of so noble a present as that of j-our History of America. I have, however, sulfered my gratitude to lie under some suspicion, by delaying my acknowledgment of so great a tavour. But my delay was only to render my obligation to you more complete, and my thanks, if possible, more merited. The close of the session brought a great deal of very troublesome though not important business on me at once. I could not go through your work at one breath at that time, though I have done it since. 1 am now enabled to thank you, not only for the honour you have done me, but for the great satisfaction, and the infinite variety and compass of instruction. I have received from your incomparable work. Every thing has been done which was so nadnally to be expected from the author of the History of Scotland, and of the Age of Charles the Fifth. I believe few books have done more than this, towards clearing up tlark points, correcting errors, and removing prejudices. You have too the rare secret of rekindling an interest on subjects that had so often been treated, and in which every thing which could feed a vital flame appeared to have been consumed. I am sure I read many parts of your History with that fresh concern and anxiety which attend those who are not pre- viously apprized of the eAcnt. You have, besides, thrown quite a new light on the i)resent state of the Spanish provinces, and furnished both ma- terials and hints for a rational theory of what may bo expected trom them in future " The part which I read with the greatest pleasure is the discussion on the manners and character of the inhabitants of the New World. 1 have always thought with you, that we possess at this time veiy great advan- tages towards the knowledge of human nature. We need no longer go to history to trace it in all its ages and periods. History, from ils compara- tive youth, is but a poor instructer. When the Egyptians called the Greeks children in antiquities, we may well mil them rnildren : and so we may xxH THE LIFE OF call all thosn nations wliir.h were able to trace the progrnss ol society only within their own limits. But now the great map of mankind is unrolled at once, and there is no state or gradation of barbarism, and no mode of refinement, which we have not at the same moment under our view ; the very different civility of Europe and of China ; the barbarism of Persia and of Abyssinia ; the erratic manners of Tartary and of Arabia ; the savage state of North America and New Zealand. Indeed you have made a noble use of the advantages you have had. You have employed philo- sophy to judge on manners, and from manners you have drawn new re- sources for philosophy. 1 only think that in one or two points you have hardly done justice to the savage character." The honours which were paid to him by foreigners were equally grati- fying. The Royal Academy of History at Madrid unanimously elected him a member on the eighth of August, in 1777, "in testimony of their approbation of the industry and care with which he had applied to the study of Spanish History, and as a recompense for his merit in having con- tributed so much to illustrate and spread the knowledge of it in foreign countries." It likewise appointed one of its members to translate the His- tory of America into the Spanish language, and considerable progress is believed to have been made in the translation. But the latter measure excited alarm in an absurd and decrepit government, which sought for safety in concealment rather than in a bold and liberal policy, and, like the silly bird, imagined that by hiding its own head it could escape from the view of its pursuers. The translation was, therefore, officially ordered to be suppressed, with the vain hope of keeping the world still in the dark, with respect to the nature of the Spanish American commerce, and of the system of colonial administration. It was not from Spain alone that he received testimonies of respect. In 1781, the Academy of Sciences at Padua elected him one of its foreign members ; and, in 1783, the same compliment was paid to him by the Im- perial Academy of Sciences at St. Petersburgh. The empress Catharine also, who, numerous as were her faults, was a woman of a strong and en- lightened intellect, also conferred on him a flattering distinction. She ordered his friend. Dr. Rogersoa, to transmit to him, as a mark of her esteem, a gold snuff box, richly set with diamonds ; observing at the same time, that a person whose labours had afforded her so much satisfaction merited some attention from her. So much, indeed, was she delighted \vith the works of the Scottish author, that she did not hesitate to assign to him the place of first model in historical composition, to express much admiration of the sagacity and discernment which he displayed in painting the human mind and character, and to declare that the History of Charles the Fifth was the constant companion of her journeys, and that she Avas never tired of perusing it, particularly tiie introductory volume. As soon as enthusiasm had subsided, criticism began its labours in search of defects. It was objected to the author, that he had shown a disposition to palliate or to veil the enormities of the Spaniards, in their American conquests, and that he had shed an illusive lustre round the daring and intelligent but sanguinary and unprincipled Cortes. Even Professor Stew- art, notwithstanding his honourable aflection for the memory of his friend, shrinks from vindicating him on this score, and contents himself with oppo- sing to the charge " those warm and enlightened sentiments of humanity which in general animate his writings." Unwilling to censure severely, and unable to exculpate, Bryan Edwards suggests, as an apology for Dr. Robertson, that this is one of the cases in which the mind, shrinlcing from the contemplation of alleged horrors, wishes to resist conviction, and to re- lieve itself by incredulity. Dr. Gleig, however, the latest biographer of the historian, indignantly rejects this apology as al)surd ; and, more enter- prising than his predecessors, partly labours to invalidate the accusation, DR. ROBERTSON. xxiii by lessening the sum of Spanish cruelties, and partly lo render it of no weight, by pleading that the writer probably considered the conquests of Mexico and Peru as means employed by Providence to accomplish the no- blest and most beneficent purposes. That Dr. Robertson did really regard those conquests in such a light we may easily believe ; since, in his ser- mon on the state of the world at the appearance of Christ, he manifests similar sentiments with respect to the measureless and unslumbering ambi- tion of those universal robbers the Romans, whom he is pleased to style "the noblest people that ever entered on the stage of the world." But this defence is merely sophistical. Though we are not ignorant that a wise and benignant Providence educes good trom evil, it is not the business of an historian to diminish the loathing which evil deeds ought to excite ; nor does it appear that morality is likely to be much benefited, by teaching tyrants and murdereis to imagine that, while they are giving the rein to their own furious and malignant passions, they are only performing their destined tasks as instruments of the Deity. This was by no means all that was urged against the History of Ame- rica. It is, in fact, not now attempted to be denied that, in many instances, Dr. Robertson was led astray by his partiality to the brilliant but fallacious theories of De Pauw and Buffon. Clavigero, in his History of Mexico, detected and somewhat harshly animadverted on several errors, a part of which were subsequently rectified. Bryan Edwards, too, pointed out some contradictions, and some erroneous statements. But the most severe cen- sor is Mr. Southey, a man eminently well informed on ancient Spanish and American events. In his History of Brazil, after having described the mode of reckoning in use among the transatlantic tribes, he adds, " when Pauw reasoned upon the ignorance of the Americans in numbers, did he suppress this remarkable fact, or was he ignorant of it ? The same ques- tion is applicable to Dr. Robertson, who, on this, and on many other sub- jects, in what he calls his History of America, is guilty of such omissions, and consequent misrepresentations, as to make it certain either that he had not read some of the most important documents to which he refers, or that he did not choose to notice the facts which he found there, because they were not in conformity to his own preconceived opinions. A remarkable example occurs respecting a circulating medium ; when he mentions cocoa- nuts, which were used as money in Mexico, and says, ' this seems to be the utmost length which the Americans had advanced towards the discovery of any expedient for supplying the use of money.' Now, it is said by Cortes himself, that when he was about to make cannon, he had copper enough, but wanted tin ; and having bought up all the plates and pots, which he could find among the soldiers, he began to inquire among the natives. He then found, that in the province of Tachco, little pieces of tin, like thin coin, were used for money, there and in other places. And this led him to a discovery of the mines from whence it was taken. The reputation of this author must rest upon his History of Scotland, if that can support.it. His other works are grievously deficient." Such are the defects which are attributed to Dr. Robertson's History. On the other hand, it ought to be remembered, that many sources of know- ledge, which were then hidden, have since become accessible, that no man is at all times exempted from the dominion of prejudice, that the most cautious vigilance may sink into a momentary slumber, and that to him who has achieved much, a tribute of gratitude is due, even though it may be discovered that he has left something undone. Were the History of the Spanish Conquests proved to be merely a fiction, it would nevertheless continue to be read, such attraction is there in the general elegance of the language, the skilfiil delineation of the characters, and the sustained inter- est and spirit of the narrative. In the preface to this portion of his labours, he made known his intention .\xi\r THE LIFE OF to resume the subject at a future period; and he assigned the ferment \vliich then agitated our North American colonies as a reason for suspend- ing, at present, the execution of that part of his plan which related to British America. At the very be";inning, in truth, of the contest with the colonies, he congratulated himsellP on his not having completed his narra- tive. " It is kic£y," said he, in a letter to Mr. Strahan, " that my American History was not finished before this event. How many plausible theories that I should have been entitled to form, are contradicted by what has now happened." A fragment of this History, which, however, was care- fully corrected by him, and which he preserved when he committed his manuscripts to the flames, was all that he subsequently wrote of the work ; and this was published by his son to prevent it from falling into the hands of an editor who might make alterations and additions, and obtrude the whole on the public as the genuine composition of the author. With respect to a separation between the mother country and the colo- nists. Dr. Robertson seems to have somewhat varied in his sentiments, and to have contemplated the probability of such an event with much more dislike in 1775 than he did in 1766. In the latter year, speaking of the repeal of the stamp act, he said, " I rejoice, from my love of the human species, that a million of men in America have some chance of running the same great career which other free people have held before them. I do not apprehend revolution or independence sooner than these must or should come. A very little skill and attention in the art of governing may pre- serve the supremacy of Britain as long as it ought to be preserved." But, in 1775, though he still acknowledged that the colonies must ultimately l)ecome independent, he was anxious that their liberation should be delayed till as distant a period as possible, and was clearly of opinion that they had as yet no right to throw off their allegiance. Nor was he sparing of his censure on the ministers for the want of policy and firmness, which he considered them to have displayed at the commencement of the quar- rel. " I agree with you about the affairs of America," said he, in a letter, which was written in the autumn of 1775, " incapacity, or want of informa- tion, has led the people employed there to deceive the ministry. Trust- ing to them, they have been trifling for two years, when they should have been serious, until they have rendered a very simple piece of business extremely perplexed. They have permitted colonies, disjoined by nature and situation, to consolidate into a regular systematical confederacy ; and when a few regiments stationed in each capital would have rendered it impossible for them to take arms, they have suffered them quietly to levy and train forces, as if they had not seen against whom they were preparedf. But now we are fairly committed, and I do think it fortunate that the vio- lence of the Americans has brought matters to a crisis too soon for them- selves. From. the beginning of the contest I have always asserted that independence was their object. The distinction between taxation and regmation is mere folly. There is not an argument against our right of taxation that does not conclude with tenfold force against our power of regulating their trade. They may profess or disclaim what they please, and hold the language that best suits their purpose ; but, if they have any meaning, it must be that they should be free states, connected with us by blood, by habit, and by religion, but at liberty to buy and sell and trade where and with whom they please. This they will one day attain, but not just now, if there be any degree of political wisdom or vigour remain- ing. At the same time one cannot but regret that prosperous growing states should be checked in their career. As a lover of mankind, I bewail it ; but as a subject of Great Britain, 1 must wish that their dependence on it should continue. If the wisdom of government can terminate the contest with honour instantly, that would be the most desirable issue. This, however, I take to be nora impossible : and I will venture to fore- DR. ROBERTSON. xxv (ell, that if our leaders do not at once exert the power of the British em- pire in its full force, the struggle will be long, dubious, and disgraceful. We are past the hour of lenitives and half exertions. If the contest be Srotracted, the smallest interruption of the tranquillity that reigns in iurope, or even the appearance of it, may be fatal." It must be owned, that language like this goes very far towards justify- ing the sarcasm of Horace Walpole, that the reverend historian was *' a very moderate Whig." Perhaps, also, his belief that, at the outset, a {ew regiments in each capital would have sufficed to trample down the resist- ance of the Americans, may now appear ditBcult to be reconciled with a knowledge of military affairs, or of human nature. Yet we must, at the same time, remember that this erroneous idea was held by him in com- mon with many other men of intellect, and that it was even brought for- ward in the British senate as an undeniable truth. Though the Ameiican war precluded Dr. Robertson from bringing to a close his history of the British settlements, it is not easy to discover why he could not continue it to a certain point ; or why, at least, he could not proceed with that part of his narrative which related to the colonization of Brazil, and the violent struggles between the Dutch and the Portuguese in that country — an extensive subject, and worthy of his pen, as it would have afforded bim abundant opportunities for the display of his delineative talents. Our curiosity on this head is not satisfied by the reason which, as we have recently seen, he himself gave, in his preface and in his letter to Mr. Strahan. That reason, however, he repeated in a correspondence with his friend Mr. Waddilove, and it is now in vain to seek for a better. It is certain that a wish to retire from literaiy toil was not his motive ; for, at the same moment that he postponed his History of America, he declared that it was " neither his inclination nor his interest to remain altogether idle." As a proof of his sincerity, he projected a History of Great Bri- tain, from the revolution to the accession of the House of Hanover, and even began to collect the necessary documents. Notwithstanding this seems to have been, for a while, a favourite scheme, it was speedily relin- quished; a circumstance which may justly be regretted. Hume then sug- gested the History of the Protestants in France. " The events," said he, " are importatit in themselves, and intimately connected with the great revolutions of Europe : some of the boldest or most amiable characters of modern times, the admiral Coligny, Henry IV., &c. would be your peculiar heroes ; the materials are copious, and authentic, and accessible ; and the objects appear to stand at that just distance which excites curiosity with- out inspiring passion." The hint given by Hume was, however, not adopted. About the year 1779 or 1780, Dr. Robertson seems, indeed, to have seriously resolved to' write no more for the public, but to pursue his studies at leisure, and for his own amusement. " His circumstances," says professor Stewart, " were independent: he was approaching to the age of sixty, with a constitution considerably impaired l)y a sedentary life ; and a long application to the compositions he had prepared for the press had interfered with much of the gratification he might have enjoyed, if he had been at liberty to follow the impulse of his own taste and curiosity. Such a sacrifice must be more or less made by all u ho devote themselves to letters, whether with a view to emolument or to fame ; nor would it perhaps be easy to make it, were It not for the prospect (seldom, alas! realized) of earning by their exer- tions, that learned and honourable leisure which he was so fortunate as to attain." We must now contemplate Dr. Robertson in another point of view — that of his ecclesiastical and academical character ; in which, no less than in his literary capacity, he occupied a prominent station. The eminence, however, which he had not attained without difficulty, he did not hold Vor,. I.— D xxvi THE LIFE OF entirely without danger. In one instance he was near falling' a victim to his spirit of liberality. In 1778, the British legislature relieved the English Roman catholics from some of the severest of the barbarous [ enalties to which they had been subjected nearly a century before. Encouraged by this event, the Scottish catholics determined to petition parliament to extend the benefit to themselves. To this measure Dr. Robertson was friendly, and he successfully exerted his influence, and that of his partisans, to pro- cure the rejection of a remonstrance against it, which was brought forward in the general assembly. But on this occasion, as, unhappily, on too many others, bigotry and ignorance triumphed over sound policy and Christian charity. The trumpet of fanaticism was immediately sounded, and men of the most opposite principles and interests hurried to obey the call. Presbyterians, seceders, and even episcopalians, the latter of whom were themselves under the lash of penal statutes, all combined in the crusade against papistiy. Pamphlets and speeches were lavished, to prove that the constitution in church and state must inevitably perish, if an iota of relief were granted to the faithless members of an idolatrous and sanguinary church. The Roman catholics were so terrified at the fury that was thus aroused, that the principal gentlemen among them informed the ministry that they would desist from appealino^ to parliament ; and they endeavoured to calm the popular tempest, by publishing in the daily papers an account of their proceedings. But the enlightened mob of Edinburgh had sagely resolved that the catholics should not even dare to wish for the slightest participation in the privileges of British subjects, without being punished for their temerity. Accordingly, on the 2d of February, 1779, multitudes of the lowest classes, headed by disguised leaders, assembled in the Scottish capital, burnt the house of the popish bishop and two chapels : and, in their even-handed justice, were on the point of committing to the flames an episcopal chapel, when they were propitiated, by being told that an episcopal clergyman was the author of one of the ablest tracts which had been published against poperj'. As, however, they could not consent to remit their vengeance, but only to change its object, they turned their wrath upon those who had expressed opinions favourable to the claims of the catholics. Dr. Robertson was marked out as one of the most guilty, and nothing less than the destruction of his property and life was considered as sufficient to atone for his crime. Fortunately his friends had provided for his safety, and, when the self-appointed champions of religion reached his house, it was found to be defended by a military force, which they had not enough of courage to look in the face. As they had come only to destroy and to murder, they, of course, retreated, when they discovered that, to accomplish their purpose, it would also be necessary to fight. Dr. Robertson is said to have manitested great firmness and tranquillity during this trying scene. In selecting Dr. Robertson as the person most worthy of suflPering by their summary process of punishment without trial, the mob of Edinburgh acted with a more than mobbish share of injustice. Though desirous that the catholics should be released from their thraldom, he was not disposed to put any thing to the hazard for the furtherance of that object, and Itad already withdrawn his patronage from such obnoxious clients. He was not one of those who, as Goldsmith says of Burke, are " too fond of the right to pursue the expedient.'''' With him prudence was a governing principle. When, therefore, he saw that his countrymen were adverse to the measure, he advised the ministry to forbear from lending their coun- tenance to it. In an eloquent speech, delivered in the general assembly, he afterwards explained and vindicated the view which he originally took of the subject, and the manner in which he finally acted. The perusal of that which he urged, on the latter point, will not merely show what were his motives in this instance, but also afford some insight into bis general D R. R O R K H T S O N. xxvii character. How far his system of policy is consonant with dignity or wisdom, which, indeed, are inseparable, I shall not stop to inquire. It might, perhaps, not improperly, be objected to him, that he mistakes the voice of a blind infuriated multitude for the voice of the people ; though it is impossible for any two things to be more diflerent in their nature. It might be asked, too, why the fanatical prejudices of a Scottish mob were to be treated with more respect than the complaints of the American colonists ; why the one were to be indulged or complied with, while the other were to be silenced by " a few regiments stationed in each capital ?" "As soon," says he, "as I perceived the extent and violence of the flame which the discussion of this subject had kindled in Scotland, my ideas concerning the expedience at this juncture of the measure in question, began to alter. "For although I did think, and I do still believe, that if the pro- testants in this country' had acquiesced in the repeal as quietly as our brethren in England and Ireland, a fatal blow would have been given to popery in the Rritish dominions ; I know, that in legislation, the sentiments and dispositions of the people, for ^vhom laws are made, should be attended to with care. I remembered that one of ths wisest men of antiquity de- clared, that he had framed tor his fellow-citizens not the best lavVs, but the best laws which they could bear. I recollected with reverence, that the divine Legislator himself, accommodating his dispensations to the frailty of his subjects, had given the Israelites for a season statutes which a-ere not good. Even the prejudices of the people are, in my opinion, respectable ; and an indulgent legislator ought not unnecessarily to run counter to them. It appeared manifestly to be sound policy, in the present temper of the people, to sooth rather than to irritate them ; and, however ill founded their apprehensions might be, some concession was now requisite in order to remove them." This was, I believe, the last speech which he made in the General As- sembly. While he was yet in the vigour of his faculties, and in the exer- cise of undiminished influence in that assembly, he came to a resolution to withdraw himself entirely from pdblic business. It was in the year 1780, about the time when he ceased to be an historian, and when he was only fifty-nine, that he adopted this resolution. Several causes seem to have concurred in producing his retirement. It has been supposed by some, that he did not wish to remain on the scene till he was eclipsed by younger rivals ; and it is known that he telt disgusted by the conduct of the violent men of his own party, who, though he had yielded many points to them against his better judgment, were nevertheless dissatistiea that he refused to resort to stronger measures than he deemed to be either right or pru- dent, and who, in consequence, tormented him with letters of remonstrance and reproach, which, as from their nature may easily be imagined, were written in a petulant and acrimonious style. In addition, there was one subject, which had long been a particular annoyance to him, and on which he had been more pertinaciously urged and fretted than on every other. This was a scheme for abolishing subscription to the Confession of Faith and Forniula. Into this scheme, which he had avowed his determination to resist, whatever shape it might assume, many of his friends had zealously entered, and his patience was severely tried by their *' beseeching or be- sieging" him with respect to so important an object. By his cautious and persuasive policy, he had for a considerable period prevented the contro- versy from bein^ agitated in the assemblies ; but he was of opinion that it would ultimately compel attention, and would give rise to vehement di.s- i)utes ; and it was this circumstance, as he himself confessed, that " at east confirmed his resolution to retire." Having rendered triumphant a cause which, to say the least, had nume- rous enemies, it was hardly to be supposed that his character would not be aspersed by many of those wlio wi-re mortiticd to witness his success. xxviii THE LIFE OF Accordingly, the charge of having deserted the genuine principles of the Scottish church was often urged against him by some of^his antagonists. Others, who had more of the zealot in their composition, did not stop here. These went so far as to accuse him of being indifferent to Christianity itself ; and, in proof of this, they alleged his habits of intimacy with Hume, and his correspondence with Gibbon. It is difficult to say whether this stupid calumny ought to excite anger or contempt. This, however, was the language of only malignant hearts, or little minds. By the great majority^ even of those who were in opposition to him, full justice was done to his virtues, his talents, and the purity of his motives. Among those who, believing patronage to be a nuisance, were the most strenuous in contending with him, was Dr. Erskine, his college mate, and colleague in the ministry. That venerable and learned person always preserved for him a warm esteem, and, after the historian was no more, paid to his memory an animated and affectionate tribute from the pulpit. " His speeches in church courts," says Dr. Erskine, " w ere ad- mired by those whom they did not convince, and acquired and preserved him an influence over a majority in them, which none before him enjoyed ; though his measures were sometimes new, and warmly, and with great strength of aigument, opposed, both from the press, and in the General Assembly. To this influence many causes contributed : his firm adhe- rence to the principles of church policy, which he early adopted ; his sagacity in forming plans ; his steadiness in executing them ; his qu)ck dis- cernment of whatever might hinder or promote his designs ; his boldness in encountering difficulties ; his presence of mind in improving every occa- sional advantage ; the address with which, when he saw it necessary, he could make an honourable retreat ; and his skill in stating a vote, and seizing the favoural))e moment for ending a debate and urging a decision. He guided and governed others, without seeming to assume any superiority over them ; and fixed and strengthened his power, by often, in matters of form and expediency, preferring the opinions of those with whom he acted, to his own. In former times, hardly afiy rose up to speak in the General Assembly, till called upon by the Moderator, unless men advanced in years, of high rank, or of established characters. His example and influence en- couraged young men of abilities to take their share of public business ; and thus deprived Moderators of an engine lor preventing causes being fairly and impartially discussed. The power of others, who formerly had in some measure guided ecclesiastical affairs, was derived from ministers of state, and expired with their fall. He remained unhurt amidst frequent changes of administration. Great men in office were always ready to countenance him, to co-operate with him, and to avail themselves of his aid. But he judged for himself, and scorned to be their slave, or to submit to receive their instructions. Hence, his influence, not confined to men of mercenary views, extended to many of a free and independent spirit, who supported, because they approved, his measures ; which others, from the same independent spirit, thought it their duty steadily to oppose. " Deliberate in forming his judgment, l)ut, \\ hen formed, not easily moved to renounce it, he sometimes viewed the altered plans of others with too suspicious an eye. Hence, there were able and worthy men, of whom he expressed himself less favourably, and whose later appearances in church judicatories he censured as inconsistent with principles they had formerly professed : while they maintained, that the system of managing church affairs was changed, not their opinions or conduct. Still, however, keen and determined opposition to his schemes of ecclesiastical policy neither extinguished his esteem nor forfeited his friendly offices, when he saw opposition carried on without rancour, and when he believed that it originated from conscience and principle, not from personal animosity, or envv. or ambition." ^ DR. ROBERTSON. sxix Of his private character, Dr. Erskine adds, that " he enjoyed the boun- ties of Providence, without running into riot ; was temperate without aus- terity ; condescending and affable vvitliout meanness ; and in exjpense nei- ther sordid nor prodigal. He could feel an injury, and yet bridle his pas- sion ; was grave, not sullen ; steady, not obstinate ; friendly, not officious ; prudent and cautious, not timid." Than the triumph which the principles of Dr. Robertson obtained in the General Assembly nothing could be more complete; and it was the more flattering, inasmuch as it was consummated after he had ceased to take a part in the debates. It had, from the year 1736, been the custom, annually, for the Assembly to instruct the Commission, " to make due ap- plication to the king and parliament tor redress of the grievance of patron- age, in case a favourable oppcjrtunity for doing so should occur." So cau- tious was the policy of Dr. Robertson, that, although he had entirely sub- verted the veiy groundwork on which this instruction was raised, he never chose to move that it should be expunged. He knew that it was popular with the great body of the people, and, therefore, he did not think it ex- pedient to risk the chance of^ dissension in the Assembly, by an unnecessary and idle attack upon this shadow of a shade. In the year 1784, however, it was omitted, without any struggle being made in its favour, and it has never since been renewed. Whether the system established by him has contributed to the harmony and welfare of the Scottish church is a question which yet remains unde- cided. It is urged, by the friends of the system, that it has given peace to the church ; that the General Assembly is no longer occupied with angry- appeals and tumultuous disputes; that instead of there being, as formerly, a necessity to call in a military force, to protect the presbytery in the act of induction, ministers are now peaceably settled ; and that the worst that ever happens is the secession of the discontented part of the parishioners, and the consequent erection of a separate place of worship, which they frequent only till their zeal cools, and then desert to rejoin the kirk. But, on the other hand, it is contended, that the peace is rather in appearance than in reality ; that, though the people have ceased to appeal to the As- sembly, their silence arises from disgust and weariness, and not from satis- faction ; that, grown too wise to enter into a protracted and fruitless con- test, they immediately set themselves to rear a seceding meeting house^ which often carries off a lai^e proportion of the parishioners ; and that, by this quiet but continual increase of seceding meetings, the influence of the established church has been gradually weakened and contracted, a spirit of disunion has been spread, and a heavy additional burden has been imposed on property of every kind. But, whatever doubt may exist on this point, there seems to be none with respect to another. It is generally acknowledged that Dr. Robertson conduced greatly to give a more dignified character to the proceedings of the General Assembly, to introduce an impartial exercise of the judicial authority of the church, and to diffuse the principles of tolerance among men who had hitherto prided themselves on their utter contempt of them. In such respect are his decisions held, that they still form a sort of com mon law in the church ; and the lime which elapsed between his being chosen Principal of the University and his withdrawing from public life, is distinguished by the name of Dr. Robertson's administration. It is in his capacity of Principal that he is next to be considered. In this important office he displayed his wonted activity and talent. He began the performance of his duties, as his predecessors had done, by delivering annually a Latin discourse before the University. Of these orations, the first, the object of which was to recommend the study of classical learn- ing, was delivered on the third of February, 1763. ft is 5aid, among nu- merous other splendid passages, to have contained a beautiful panesrvric XXX THE LIFE OF on the stoical philosophy. In the following year, his discourse "consisted chiefly of moral and literary observations, adapted to the particular cir- cumstances of youth," and the style is affirmed to be " uncommonly elegant and impressive, and possessed of all the distinguishing characteristics of his English compositions." In 1765 and 1766, he chose for his theme the comparative advantages of public and private education; a subject which he treated in a masterly manner. After 1766 these annual lectures ceased ; his time being too fully occupied to allow of the continuance of them. But, though his lectures were of necessity discontinued, he never remit- ted in his attention even to the minutest duties of his office. He appears, indeed, to have felt a filial anxiety to omit nothing which could assist in giving lustre to the University at which his own talents had been cultivated. With very slender funds, he made large additions to the public library; he planned or reformed most of the literary and medical societies, which have raised Edinbui^'h to such eminence as a seminary of learning, and a focus of literature ; and he contrived to preserve an uninterrupted harmony among the numerous members of the body which he superintendedf. " The good sense, temper, and address," says professor Stewart, " with which he presided for thirty years at our university meetings, were attended with effects no less essential to our prosperity ; and are attested by a fact which is perhaps without a parallel in the annals of any other literary community, that during the whole of that period there did not occur a single question which was not terminated by a unanimous decision." To his exertions Scotland is also chiefly indebted for its Royal Society, which received its charter of incorporation in March, 1763. The basis of this establishment was the Philosophical Society, the founder of which was the celebrated Maclaurin. In his zeal to give all possible lustre to the new institution, by drawing together men of every species of merit. Dr. Ro- bertson seems, for once, to have acted with less than his usual liberality. An antiquarian society, at the head of which was the earl of Buchan, had, two years before, been formed in the Scottish metropolis ; and this body also was desirous to obtain the royal charter. The application which it made to the crown was, however, eagerly opposed, in a " Memorial ironi the principal and professors of the University of Edinburgh." This me- morial is signed by Dr. Robertson ; but it is so feeble in composition as well as in reasoning, that it is difficult to believe it to have flowed from his pen. The argument on which it wholly relies is, that " narrow countries" cannot supply materials for more than one society ; that Scotland is such a country ; and, therefore, that it "ought not to form its literary plans upon the model of the more extensive kingdoms in Europe, but in imitation of those which are more circumscribed." To this hostile proceeding the antiquaries responded, in a long memorial, which was penned with much acuteness, and was naturally expressive of some degree of resentment. They were successful in the contest, and their charter was granted. The labours of Dr. Robertson, as a writer, were closed by a work which entered largely into antiquarian investigation, as connected with history. In 1791 he published a quarto volume, containing his "Historical Disqui- sition concerning the Knowledge which the Ancitnlshad of India; and the Progress of Trade with that Country prior to the Discovery of the Passage to it by the Cape of Good Hope." An Appendix was dedicated to ob- servations on the civil policy, the laws and judicial proceedings, the arts, the sciences, and the religious institutions of the Indians. This subject, which occupied him twelve months, was suggested to him by the perusal of major Kennell's Memoirs for illustrating his History of Hindostan, and was origi- nally taken up with noother object than his own amusement and instruction. That it would become as popular as his other productions was, from its nature, not to be expecte», the cullccting of these was such an 4 PREFACE. occupation as alone required much time and assiduity. To his friendly attention I am indebted for copies of several valual)le manuscripts, con- taining facts and details which I might have searched for in vain in works that have been made public. Encouraged by the inviting good will with which Mr. Waddilove conferred his favours, I transmitted to him a set of queries, with respect both to the customs and policy of the native Ameri- cans, and the nature of several institutions in the Spanish settlements, framed in such a manner that a Spaniard might answer them without dis- closing any thing that was improper to be communicated to a foreigner. He translated these into Spanish, and obtained from various persons who had resided in most of the Spanish colonies, such replies as have afforded me much instruction. Notwithstanding those peculiar advantages with which my inquiries were carried on in Spain, it is with regret I am obliged to add, that their success must be ascribed to the beneficence of individuals, not to any communication by public authority. By a singular arrangement of Philip II. the records of the Spanish monarchy are deposited in the Archivo of Simancas, near Valladolid, at the distance of a hundred and twenty miles from the seat of government and the supreme courts of justice. The papers relative to America, and chiefly to that early period of its history towards which my attention was directed, are so numerous, that they alone, according to one account, fill the largest apartment in the Archivo; and, according to another, they compose eight hundred and seventy-three large bundles. Conscious of possessing, in some degree, the industry which belongs to an historian, the prospect of such a treasure excited my most ardent curiosity. But the prospect of it is all that I have enjoyed. Spain, with an excess of caution, has uniformly thrown a veil over her transactions in America. From strangers they are concealed with peculiar solicitude. Even to her own subjects the Archivo of Simancas is not opened without a particular order from the crown ; and, after obtaining that, papers cannot be copied without paying fees of office so exorbitant that the expense exceeds what it would be proper to bestow, when the gratification of lite- ]ary curiosity is the only object. It is to be hoped, that the Spaniards will at last discover this system of concealment to be no less impolitic than illiberal. From what 1 have experienced in the course of my inquiries, I am satisfied, that upon a more minute scrutiny into their early operations in the New World, however reprehensible the actions of individuals may appear, the conduct of the nation will be placed in a more favourable light. In other parts of Europe very different sentiments prevail. Having searched, without success, in Spain, for a letter of Cortes to Charles V.. written soon after he landed in the Mexican Empire, which has not hitherto been published ; it occurred to me, that as the Emperor was setting out for Germany at the time when the messengers from Cortes arrived in Europe, the letter with which they were intrusted might possibly be pre- served in the Imperial library at Vienna. I communicated this idea to Sir Robert Murray Keith, with whom I have long had the honour to live \\\ friendship, and I had soon the pleasure to learn, that upon his application her Imperial Majesty had been graciously pleased to issue an order, that not only a copy of that letter (if it were found), but of any other papers in the library which could throw light upon the History of America, < PREFACE. ticulars with respect to the interior state of the Spanish colonies, and thr? various schemes formed lor their improvement. As this collection of Memorials formerly belonged to the Colbert Library, I have quoted them by that title. All those books and manuscripts I have consulted with that attention which the respect due from an Author to the Public required ; and by minute references to them, I have endeavoured to authenticate whatever I relate. The longer I reflect on the nature of historical composition, the more I am convinced that this scrupulous accuracy is necessary. The his- torian who records the events of his own time, is credited in proportion to the opinion which the Public entertains with respect to his means oi infor- mation and his veracity. He who delineates the transactions of a remote period, has no title to claim assent, unless he produces evidence in proof of his assertions. Without this he may write an amusing tale, but cannot be said to have composed an authentic history. In those sentiments I have been confirmed by the opinion of an Author,* whom his industry, erudition, and discernment, have deservedly placed in a high rank among the most eminent historians of the age. Imboldened by a hint from him, I have published a catalogue of the Spanish books which I have consulted. This practice was frequent in the last century, and was considered as an evi- dence of laudable industry in an author; in the present, it may, perhaps, be deemed the effect of ostentation ; but, as many of these books are i.nknown in Great Britain, I could not otherwise have referred to them as authorities, without encumbering the page with an insertion of their full titles. To any person who may choose to follow me in this path of inquiry, the catalogue must be veiy useful. My readers will observe, that in mentioning sums of money, I have uniformly followed the Spanish method of computing by pesos. In Ame- iica, the Y)eso fuerte, or duro, is the only one known ; and that is always meant when any sum imported from America is mentioned. The peso fuerte, as well as other coins, has varied in its numerary value ; but I have lieen advised, without attending to such minute variations, to consider it as equal to four shillings and six-pence of our money. It is to be remembered, however, that, in the sixteenth century, the eftective value of a peso, i. c. the quantity of labour which it represented, or of goods which it would purchase, was five or six times as much as at present. N. B. Since tliis edition was put into the press, a History of Mexico, in two volumes in quarto, translated from the Italian of the Abbe D. Francesco Sa- . verio Clavigero, has been published. From a person who is a native of New Spain, who has resided forty years in that country, and who is acquainted with the Mexican language, it was natural to expect much new information. Upon perusing his work, however, I find tliat it contains hardly any addition to the ancient History of the Mexican empire, as related by Acosta and Hcrrera, but what is derived from the improbable narratives and fanciful conjectures of Tor- quemada and Boturini. Having copied their splendid descriptions of the high state of civilization in the Mexican empire, M. Clavigero, in the abundance of his zeal for the honour of his native country, charges me with having mistaken some points, and with having misrepresented others, in the history of it. When an author is conscious of having exerted industry in research, and impartiality in decision, he may, without presumption, claim what praise is due to these qualities, and he cannot be insensible to any accusation that tends to weaken the force of his claim. A feeling of this kind has induced me to examine such strictures of M. Clavigero on my history of America as merited any attention, especially as these are made by one who seemed to possess the means of ob- tainmg accurate information ; and to show that the greater part of tlicm is des,- titute of any just foundation. This I have done in notes upon the passages hi jny Historv which gave rise to his criticisms, College of Edinbureh. Jt/aroA 1, 1788. * JTr. Oihhon ■■■ 0. CONTENTS. Page BOOK I. Progress of Navigation among the ancients — View of their dis- coveries as preparatory to those of the moderns — Imperfection of ancient navigation and geogra- phy — Doctrine of the zones — Further discoveries checked by the irruption of barbarous na- tions — Geographical knowledge still preserved in the East, and among the Arabians — Revival of commerce and navigation in Europe — favoured by the Croi- sades — extended by travellers into the East — promoted by the invention of the mariner's com- pass — First regular plan of dis- covery formed by Portugal — State of that kingdom-Schemes of Prince Henry-Early attempts feeble — Progress along the west- ern coast of Africa — Hopes of discovering a new route to the East Indies — Attempts to ac- complish this — prospects of suc- cess BOOK II. Birth and education of Columbus — acquires naval skill in the ser- vice of Portugal — conceives hopes of reaching the East In- dies by holding a westerly course — his system founded on the ideas of the ancients, and know- ledge of their navigation — and on the discoveries of the Portu- guese — his negotiations with dif- ferent courts — Obstacles which he had to surmount in Spain — Voyage of discovery — diflicul- ties — success — return to Spain — Astonishment of mankind on this discovery of a new world — Papal grant of it — Second voyage — Colony settled — Fur- ther discoveries — War with the Indians — First tax imposed on them — Third voyage — He dis- covers the Continent — State of 17 Paste the Spanish colony — Errors in the first system of colonizing — Voyage of the Portuguese to the East Indies by the Cape of Good Hope — Effects of this — discove- ries made bj' private adventurers in the New World — Name of America given to it — Machina- tions against Columbus — dis- graced and sent in chains to Europe — Fourth voyage of Co- lumbus — His discoveries — dis- asters — death 42 BOOK HI. State of the colony in Hispaniola — New war with the Indians — Cruelty of the Spaniards — Fatal regulations concerning the con- dition of the Indians — Diminu- tion of that people — Discoveries and settlements — First colony planted on the Continent — Con- quest of Cuba — Discovery of Florida — of the South Sea — Great expectations raised by this — Causes of disappointment with respect to these for some time — Controversy concerning the treatment of the Indians — Contrary decisions — Zeal of the ecclesiastics, particularly of Las Casas — Singular proceedings of Ximenes — Negroes imported in- to America — Las Casas' idea of a new colony — permitted to at- tempt it — unsuccessful — Disco- veries towards the West — Yu- catan — Campeachy-New Spain — preparations for invading it . 02 BOOK IV. View of America when first dis- covered, and of the manners and policy of its most uncivil- ized inhabitants — Vast extent of America — grandeur of the objects it presents to view — its mountains — rivers — lakes — its form favourable to commerce — temperature — predominance of colt) — catisps of this— nnculti- CONTENTS. Page vated — unwholesome — its ani- mals — soil — Inquiry how Ameri- ca was peopled — various theo- ries — what appears most proba- ble — Condition and character of the Americans — All, the Mexi- cans and Peruvians excepted, in the state of savages — Inquiry confined to the uncivilized tribes — Difficulty of obtaining infor- mation — various causes of this — Method observed in the in- quiry — I. The bodily constitu- tion of the Americans considered — II. The qualities of their minds — III. Their domestic state — IV. Their political state and institu- tions — V. Their system of war and public security — VI. The arts with which they were ac- quainted — VII. Their religious ideas and institutions — VIII. Such singular and detached cus- toms as are not reducible to any of the former heads — IX. Gene- ral review and estimate of their virtues and defects . . . .122 BOOK V. History of the conquest of New Spain by Cortes 197 BOOK VI. History of the conquest of Peru by Pizarro — and of the dissen- sions and civil wars of the Spa- niards in that country — Origin, progress, and effects of these . 261 BOOK VII. View of the institutions and man- ners of the Mexicans and Pe- ruvians — Civilized states in com- parison of other Americans — Recent origin of the Mexicans — Facts which prove their pro- gress in civilization-View of their policy in its various branches — of their arts — Facts which indi- cate a small progress in civiliza- tion — What opinion should be formed on comparing those con- tradictory facts — Genius of their religion — Peruvian monarchy more ancient — its policy founded on religion — Singular effects of this — Peculiar state of property among the Peruvians — Their public works and arts — roads — bridees — buildings — Their un« fag", warlike spirit — View of other dominions of Spain in America — Cinaloa and Sonora — Califor- nia — Yucatan and Honduras — Chili — Tucuman — Kingdom of Tierra I^irme — New Kingdom of Granada 313 BOOK VIII. View of the interior government, commerce, &;c. of the Spanish colonies—Depopulation of Ame- rica — first effects of their settle- ments — not the consequence of any system of policy — nor to be imputed to religion — Number of Indians still remaining — Funda- mental maxims on which the Spanish system of colonization is founded — Condition of differ- ent orders of men in their colo- nies— Chape tones— Creoles — Ne- groes — Indians — Ecclesiastical state and policy — Character of secular and regular clergy-Small progress of Christianity among the natives — Mines, chief object of their attention — Mode of working these — their produce — Effects of encouraging this spe- cies of industry — Other com- modities of Spanish America- First effects of this new com- merce with America on Spain — Why the Spanish colonies have not been as beneficial to the pa- rent state as those of other na- tions — Errors in the Spanish system of regulating this com- merce — confined to one port — carried on by annual fleets — Contraband trade — Decline of Spain both in population and wealth — Remedies proposed — View of the wise regulations of the Bourbon princes — A new and more liberal system introduced — beneficial effects of this — pro- bable consequences — Trade be- tween New Spain and the Phi- lippines—Revenue of Spain from America — whence it arises — to what it amounts ..... 347 BOOK IX, History of Virginia to theyear 1688, 389 BOOK X. History of New England to the vcar lfi.")2 426 CATALOGUE OF SPANISH BOOKS AND MANUSCRIPTS. A Carette de Biscay, Relation des Voyages dans la Riviere de la Plata, et de Ik par Terre au Perou. £xst. RecueU de Thevenot. Part IV. A Voyage up the River do la Plata, and thence by Land to Peru. 8vo. London, 1698. Acosta (P. Jos. de) Historia Natu- ral y Moral de las Indias. 4to. Ma- drid, 1590. (Joseph de) Histoire Natu- rclle et Morale des Indes tant Orien- tales qu' Occidentales. 8vo. Paris, 1600. Novi Orbis Historia Naturalis ct Moralis. Exst. in Collect. Theod. de Bry. Pars IX. De Natura Novi Orbis, Libri duo, et de procuranda Indorum Salute, Libri sex. Salmant. 8vo. 1589. (Christ.) Tratadodelas Dro- gasyMedecinas,de las Indias Occiden- tales, con sus Plantas Dibuxadas al vivo. 4to. Burgos, 1578. Acugna (P. Christoph.) Relation de la Reviere des Amazones. 12ino. Tom. ii. Paris, 1682. Acugna's Relation of the great River of the Amazons in South America. 8vo. London, 1698. Alarchon (Fern.) Navigations a Scoprere il Regno di sette Citta. Ra- musio iii. 363. Albuquerque Coello (Duart6 de) Memorial de Artes de la Guerra del Brasil. 4to. Mad. 1634. Alcafarado (Franc.) An Historical Relation of the Discovery of the Isle of Madeira. 4to. Lond. 1675. Al9. Cortes (Hern.) Quattro Cartas diri- gidas al Emperador Carlos V. en que ha Relacion de sus Conquistas en la Nueva Espagna. Exst. Barcia Hist. Prim. torn. i. Cortessii (Ferd.) De Insulis nuper in- rentjs Narrationes ad Car. V. fol. 1532. Cortese (Fern.) Relacioni, &c. Exst. Ramusio ii. 225. Cubero (D. Pedro) Peregrinacion del Mayor Parte del Mundo. Zaragoss. 4to. 1688. Cumana, Govierno y Noticia de. fol. MS. Davila Padilla (F. Aug.) Historia ds la Fundacion y Discurso de Provincia de St. Jago de Mexico, fol. Bruss. 1625. (Gil Gonzalez) Teatro Ecclesiastico de la Primitiva Iglesia de los Indias Occidentales. fol. 2 vols. 1649. Documentos tocantes a la Persecucion, que los Regulares de la Compagnia sus- citaron contra Don B. de Cardenas Obispo de Paraguay. 4to. Mad. 1768. Echaveri (D. Bernardo Ibagnez de) El Reyno Jesuitico del Par.yguay. Exst. torn. iv. Colleccion de Documen- tos. 4to. Mad. 1770. Echave y Assu (D.Francisco de) La Estrellade Limacovertida en Sol sobre sur tres Coronas, fol. Amberes, 1688. Eguiara El Egueren (D. J. Jos.) Bib- liotheca Mexicana, sive Eruditorum Historia Virorum in America Boreali natorum, &c. tom. prim. fol.Mex. 1775. N. B. No more than one volume of thia work has been published. Ercilla y Zuniga (D. Alonzo de) La Araucana: Poema Eroico. fol. Mad. 1733. 2 vols. 8vo. Mad. 1777. Escalona (D. Gaspar de) Gazophy- lacium Regium Peruvicum. fol. Mad. 1775. Faria y Sousa (Manuel de) Historia del Reyno de Portugal, fol. Amber. 1730. Faria y Sousa, History of Portugal from tlie first Ages to the Revolution under John IV. 8vo. Lond. 1698. Fernandez (Diego) Prima y secunda Parte de la Historia del Peru. fol. Se- vill. 1571. (P. Juan Patr.) Relacion Historial de las Missioncs de los Indias que claman Chiquitos. 4to. Mad. 1726. Feyjoo (Benit. Geron.) Espagnoles Americanos — Discurso VI. del. tom. iv. del Teatro Critico. Mad. 1769. Solucion del gran Pro- blema Historico sobre la Poblacion de la America — Discurso XV. del tom, V. do Teatro Critico. (D. Miguel) Relacion De- scriptiva de la Ciudad y Provincia Truxillo del Peru. fol. Mad. 1763. lil A CATALOGUE OF Freyre (Ant.) Piratas de la America. 4 to. Frasso (D. Petro) De Regio Patronatu Indiarum. fol.2 vols. Matriti, 1775. Galvao (Antonio) Tratado dos Des- cobrimcntos Antigos y Modernos. fol. Lisboa, 1731. Galvano (Ant.) the Discoveries of the World from the first Original unto the Year 1555. Osborne's Collect, ii. 364. Gamboa (D. Fran. Xavier de) Co- mentarios a los ordinanzas de Minas. fol. Mad. 1761. Garcia (Gregorio) Historia Ecclesi- astica y Seglar de la India Oriental y Occidental, y Predicacion de la Santa Evangelia en ella. 12mo. Baeca, 1620. (Fr. Gregorio) Origen de los ludios del Nuevo Mundo. fol. Mad. 1729. Gastelu (Ant. Velasquez) Arte de Lengua Mexicana. 4to. Puibla de los Angeles. 1716. Gazeta de Mexico por los Annos 1728, 1729, 1730. 4to. Girava (Hieronymo) Dos Libros de Cosmographia. Milan, 1556. Godoy (Diego de) Relacion al H. Cortes, qua trata del Descubrimiento di diversas Ciudades, y Provincias, y Guerras que tuio con los Indios. Exst. Barcia Hist. Prim. torn. i. Lettera a Cortose, &c. Exst. Ramusio iii. 300. Gomara (Fr. Lopez de) La Historia general de las Indias. 12aio. Anv.lo54. Historia general de las Indias. Exst. Barcia Hist. Prim. tom. ii. (Fr. Lopez de) Chronica de laNuevaEspagnao Couquistado Mex- ico. Exst. Barcia Hist. Prim. tom. ii. Guatemala — Razon puntual de los Successes mas meinorabiles, y de los Estragos y dannos quo ha padecido la Ciudad de Guatemala, fol. 1774. Gumilla (P.Jos.) El Orinoco illustra- doydefendido; Historia Natural, Civil, y Geographica de este Gran Rio, &:c. 4to.2tom. Mad. 1745. Histoire Naturelle, Civile, et G^ographiquede TOrenoque. Traduite par M. Eidous. 12mo. tom. iii. Avig. 1758. Gusman (Nugno de) Relacion scritta in Omitlan Provincia de Mechuacan della maggior Spagna nell 1530. Exst. Ramusio iii. 331. Henis (P. Thadeus) Ephemerides Belli Guiaranici, ab Anno 1754. Exsi. CoUeccion general de Docura, tom. iv. Hernandes (Fran.) Plantarum Ani- malium, et Mineralium Mexicanorum Historia. fol. Rom. 1651. Herrera (Anton, de) Historia gene- ral de los Hechos de los Castellanos en las Islas y Tierra Firma de Mar Ocea- no. fol. 4 vols. Mad. 16U1. Historia General, &c. 4 vols. Mad. 1730. General History, &c. Trans- lated by Stephens 8vo. 6 vol Lond. 1740. Descriptio Indiag Occidenta- lis. fol. Amst. 1622. Huemez y Horca itas (D. .^uan Francisco de) Extracto de los Autos de Diligencias y reconocimientos de loB rios, lagunas, vertientes, y dcsaguas de Mexico y su valle, &c. fol. Mex. 1748. Jesuitas — CoUeccion de las applica- ciones quese van haciendo de Jos Clo- nes, Casas y Coligios que fueron de la Compagnia de Jesus, expatriados de estos Reales dominios. 4to. 2 vols. Lima, 1772 y 1773. CoUeccion General de Pro- videncias hasta aqui tomadas por el Gobierno sobre el Estrannamiento y Occupacion de temporalidades, de los Regulares do la Compagnia de Espag- na, Indias, e Islas Filipmas. 4to. Mad. 1767. Retrato de los Jesuitas for- mado al natural. 4to. 2 vols. Mad. 1768. Relacion Abbreviada da Re- publica que os Religiosos Jesuitas esta- beleceraon. 12mo. Idea del Origen, Gobierno, &c. de la Compagnia de Jesus. 8vo. Mad. 1768. LsBvinius (Apollonius) Libri V. do PeruvisB Invention, et rebus in eadem gestis. 12mo. Ant. 1567. Leon (Fr. Ruiz de) Hernandia, Poe- ma Heroyco de Conquista de Mexico. 4to. Mad. 1755. (Ant. de) Epitome de la Biblio- theca Oriental y Occidental, Nautica y Geografica. fol. Mad. 1737. Lima : A true Account of the Earth- quake which happened there 28th of October, 1746. Translated from the Spanish. 8vo. London, 1748. Lima Gozosa, Description de las fes- tibas Demonstraciones, con que esta Ciudad celebr6 la real Proclamacion de el Nombre Augusto del Catolico Monarch© D. Carlos III. Lim.4to. 1760. SPANISH BOOKS AND MANUSCRIPTS. Llano Zapata (D. Jos. Euseb.) Pre- liminar al Tomo 1. de las Memorias Historico-Physicas, Critico-Apologeti- cas de la America Meridional, 8vo. Cadiz, 1759. Lopez (D. Juan Luis) Discureo His- torico Politico en defense de la Juris- dicion Real. fol. 1685. (Thom.) Atlas Geographico de la America Septentrional y Meridional. 12mo. Par. 1758. Lorenzana (D. Fr. Ant.) Arzobispo de Mexico, ahora de Toledo, Historia de Nueva Espagna, escrita por su Es- clarecido Conquistador Hernan. Cor- tes, Aumentada con otros Docuraentos y Notas. fol. Mex. 1770. Lozano (P. Pedro) Description Cho- rographica, del Terretorios, Arboles, Animales del Gran Chaco, y de los Ri- tos y Costumbres de las innumerabiles Naciones que la habitan. 4to. Cordov. 1733. Historia de la Compagnia de Jesus en la Provincia del Paraguay. fol. 2 vols. Mad. 1753, Madriga (Pedro de) Description du Gouverneinent du Perou. Exst. Voy- ages qui ont servi k TEtablissement de la Comp. des Indes, torn. ix. 105. Mariana (P. Juan de) Discurso de les Enfermedades de la Compagnia de Jesus. 4to. Mad. 1658. Martinez de la Puente (D. Jos.) Compendio de las Historiasde los Des- cubrimientos, Conquistas, y Guerras de la India Oriental, y sus Islas, desde loB Tiempos del Infante Don Enrique de Portugal su Inventor. 4to. Mad. 1681. Martyr ab Angleria (Petr.) De Re- bus Oceanicis et Novo Orbe Decades tree. 12mo. Colon. 1574. De Insulis nuper inventis, et de Moribus Incolarum. Ibid. p. 329. Opus Epistolarum, fol. Amst. 1670. II Sommario cavato della sua Historia del Nuevo Mundo. Ra- musio iii. i. Mata (D. Geron. Fern, de) Ideas po- liticas y morales. 12mo. Toledo, 1640. Mechuacan — Relacion de las Cere- monias, Ritos, y Poblacion de los In- dies de Mechuacan hecha al I. S. D. Ant. de Mendoza Vi-rey de Nueva Espagna. fol. MS. Melendez (Fr. Juan) Tesoros Vcr- daderos de las Indias Historia de la Provincia de S. Juan Baptista del Peru. del Orden de Predicadorcs. fol. 3 vols. Rom. 1681. Memorial Adjustado por D, A, Fern, de Heredia Gobemador de Ni- caragua y Honduras, fol. 1753. ■ Memorial Adjustado contra los Offi- ciales de Casa de Moneda a Mexico de el anno 1729. fol. Mendoza (D. Ant. de) Lettera al Imperatore del Descoprimento della Terra Firma della N. Spagna verso Tramontano. Exst. Ramusio iii. 355. (Juan Gonz. de) Historia del gran Reyno de China, con un Itinera- rio del Nuevo Mundo. 8vo. Rom. 1585. Miguel (Vic. Jos.) Tablas de los Su- cesos Ecclesiasticos en Africa, Indias Orientales y Occidentales. 4to, Val. 1689. Miscellanea Economico-Politico, &c. fol. Pampl. 1749. Molina (P. F. Anton.) Vocabulario Castellano y Mexicano. fol. 1571. Monardes (El Dottor) Primera y Se- gunda y Tercera Parte de la Historia Medicinal, de las Cosas que se traen de nuestras Indias Occidentales, que sir- ven en Medicina. 4to. Sevilla, 1754. Moncada (Sancho de) Restauracion Politica de Espagna, y de seos Publi- cos. 4to. Mad. 1746. Morales (Ambrosio de) Coronica General de Espagna. fol. 4 vols. Alca- la, 1574. Moreno y Escaudon (D. Fran. Ant.) Descripcion y Estado del Virreynato de Santa F^, Nuevo Reyno de Grana- da, &c. fol. MS. Munoz (D. Antonio) Discurso sobre Economia politica. 8vo. Mad. 1769. Nizza (F. Marco) Relatione del Viag- gio fatta per Terra al Cevole, Regno di cette Citt^. Exst. Ramus, iii. 356. Nodal — Relacion del Viage que hicie- ron los Capitanes Earth, y Gonz. de Nodal al descubrimiento del Estrecho que hoy es nombrado de Maire, y re- conocimiento del de Magellanes, 4to. Mad. Noticia Individual de los derechos segun lo reglado en ultimo proyccto de 1720. 4to. Barcelona, 1732. Neuva Espagna — Historia de los In- dies de Nueva Espagna dibidida en tres Partes. En la primera trata de los Ri- tos, Sacrificios y Idolatrias del Tiempo de su Gcntilidad. En la segunda do su maravillosa Conversion a la F6, y mo- do de celebrar las Fiestas de Neustra. Santa Iglesia, En la tercera del Ge- It A CATALOGUE UF nio y Carictcr dc aquella Gente ; y Figuras con que notaban sus Aconte- ciiiiiento8,con otras particularidades ; y Noticias de las principalee Ciudades an aquel Reyno. Escrita en el Agno 1341 por uno de los doce Religiosos Francis- cos que primero passaron a entender en su Conversion. MS. fol. pp. 618. Ogna (Pedro de) Arauco Domado. Poema. 12rno. Mad. 1605. Ordenanzas del Consejo real de las Indias. fol. Mad. 1681. Ortega (D. Casimiro de) Refumen Historico del primer Viage hecho al rededor del Mundo. 4to. Mad. 1769. Ossorio (Jerome) History of the Portuguese during the Reign of Em- manuel. 8vo. 2 vols. Lond. 1732. Ossorius (Hieron.) De Rebus Ema- iwielis Lusitaniae Regis. Bvo. Col. Agr. 1752. Ovalle (Alonso) Historica Relacion del Reyno de Chili, fol. Rom. 1646. An Historical Relation of the Kingdom of Chih. Exst. Churchiirs Collect, iii. 1. Oviedo y Bagnos (D. Jos.) Historia de la Conquista y Publicacion de Vene- zuela, fol. Mad. 1723. Sommaria, &c. Exst. Ra- musio iii. 44. (Gonz. Fern, de) Relacion Sommaria de la Historia Natural de los Indias. Exst. Barcia Hist. Prim. tom. i. Historia Generale et Natu- rale dell Indie Occidentale. Exst. Ramusio iii. 74. Relatione della Navigatione per la grandissima Fiume Maragnon, Exst. Ramus, iii. 415. Palacio (D. Raim. Mig.) Discurso Economico Politico. 4to. Mad. 1778. Palafox y Mcndoza (D. Juan) Vir- tudes del Indies, o Naturaliza y Cos- tumbres de los Indios de N.Espagna. 4to Vie de Venerable Dom. Jean Palafox Eveque del'Angelopolis. 12mo Cologne, 1772. Pegna (Juan Nugnez dc la) Conquista y Antiguedades de las Islas de Gran Canaria. 4to. Mad. 1676. Pegna Montenegro (D. Alonso de la) Itinerario para Parochos de Indios, en que tratan les materias mas particu- lares, tocantes a ellos para se buen ad- ministracion. 4to. Amberes, 1754. Penalosa y Mondragon (Fr. Benito de) Cinco Excellencias del Espagnol que des peublan a Espagna. 4to. Pampl. 1629 Peralta Barnuevo (D. Pedro de) Lima fundada, o Conquista del Peru,- Poema Eroyco. 4to. Lima, 1732. Calderon (D. Mathias de) El Apostol dc las Indias y nueves gentes San Francisco Xavier de la Compagnia de Jesus Epitome de sus Apostolicos Hechos. 4to. Pampl. 1665. Pereira de Berrido (Bernard.) An- nates Historicos do Estado do Maran- chao. fol. Lisboa, 1749. Peru ■^- Relatione d'un Capitano Spagnuolo del Descoprimento y Con- quista del Peru. Exst. Ramus, iii. 371. Relatione d'un Secretario de Franc. Pizarro della Conquista del Peru, Exst. Ramusio iii. 371. Relacion del Peru. MS. Pesquisa de los Oydores de Panama contra D. Jayme Mugnos, &;c. por ha- verlos Commerciado illicitamente en tiempo de Guerra. fol. 1755. Philipinas — Carta que escribe iin Religioso antiguo de Philipinas, a un Amigo suyo en Espagna, que le pre- gunta el Naturel y Genio de los Indios Naturales de estas Islas. MS. 4to. Piedrahita (Luc. Fern.) Historia general de las Conquistas del Nuevo Reyno de Granada, fol. Ambres. Pinelo (Ant. de Leon) Epitome de la Bibliotiieca Oriental y Occidental en que se continen los Escritores de las Indias Orientales y Occidentales. fol. 2 vols. Mad. 1737. Pinzonius socius AdmirantisColumbi — Navigatio et Res per eum repert8B. Exst. Nov. Orb. Grynaei, p. 119. Pizarro y Ore liana (D.Fern.) Varones illustres del N. Mundo. fol. Mad. 1639. Planctus Judorum Christianorum in America Peruntina. 12mo. Puente (D. Jos. Martinez de la) Compendio de las Historias de los Des- cubrimientos de la India Oriental y sus Islas. 4to. Mad. 1681. Quir (Ferd de) Terra Australis in- cognita ; or a new Southern Discovery, containing a fifth part of the World, lately found out. 4to. Lond. 1617. j Ramusio (Giov. Battista) Racolto delle Navigation! e Viaggi. fol. 3 vols. Venet. 1588. Real Compagnia Guipuzcoana de Caracas, Noticias historiales Practicas, de los Sucpsos y Adelantamientos de esta Compagnia desde su Fundacion en 1728 hasta 1764. 4to. 1765. Rcfopilacion de Lcyes de los Reynop de las Indias. fol. 4 vols. Mad. 1756- SPANISH BOOKS AND .M A N U S C R I i"i' S, Reglaraento y Aranccles Rcales para el Commercio de Espagna a Indias. Relatione d'un Gentilhuoino del Sig. Fern. Cortese della gran Citta Temis- tatan, Mexico, et della altre cose delle Nova Spagna. Exst. Ramus, iii. 304. Remcsal(Fr.Ant.)Historia general de las Indias Occidentales y particular de la Grovernacion de Cliiapa a Guatimala. Ribadeneyra (De Diego Portichuelo) de Relacion del Viage desde qui salio de Lima, hasta que lllego a Espagna. Ribadeneyra y Barrientos (D. Ant. Joach.) Manuel Compcndio de el Rcgio Patronato Indiano. fol. Mad. 1735. Ribas (Andr. Perez de) Historia de los Triumphos de Nuestra Sta Fe,entre Gentes la mas Barbaras, en las Mis- siones de Nueva Espagna. Mad. 1645. Riol (D. Santiago) Representacion a Philipe V. sobre el Estado actual de los Papeles univeraales de la Monar- chia. MS. Ripia (Juan de la) Practica de la Administracion y Cobranza de las ren- tas reales. fol. Mad. 1768. Rocha Pitta (Sebastiano de) Historia de America Portougueza desde o Anno de 1500 du su Descobrimento ate o de 1724. fol. Lisboa, 1730. Rodriguez (Manuel) Explicacion de la Bulla de la Santa Cruzada. 1589. (P. Man.) El Maragnou y Amozonas Historia de los Descubrimi- entos,Entradas yRedacion deNaciones. Roman (Hieron.) Republicas del Mundo. fol. 3 vols. Mad. 1595. Roma y Rosell (De Franc.) Las seg- nales de la felicidad de Espagna y me- dios de hacerlas efficaces. Mad. 1768. Rosende (P. Ant. Gonz. de) Vida del Juan de Palafox Arzobispo de Mexico. Rubaclava (Don Jos. Gutierrez de) Tratado Historico-Politico y Legal de cl Commercio de las IndiasOccidentalea. Ruiz (P. Ant.) Conquista Espiritual hecha por los Religiosos de la Com- pagnia de Jesus, en las Provincias de la Paraguay, Uraguay, Parana y Tape. Salazar de Me" doza (D. Pedro) Mo- narquia de Espagna, torn. i. ii. iii. y Olarte (D. Ignacio) His- toria de la Conquista de Mejtico — Segunda parte. Cordov. 1743. Salazar de Mendoza y Zevallos (D. Alonz. Ed. de) Constituciones y Orde- nanzas antiguas Agnadidas y Modernas de la Real Universidad y estudio gene- ral ste San Marcos de la Ciudad de los Reyes del Peru. fol. En la Ciudad de los Rcyea, 1735. Sanchez (Ant. Ribero) Dissertation sur rOrigine de la Maladie Venerienne, dans laquelle on prouve qu'eUe n'a point 6t6 port6e de TAmerique. 1765. Sarmiento de Gamboa (Pedro de) Viage el Estrecho de Magellanes. 1768. Santa Cruz (El Marq.) Commercio Suelto y en Companias General. 1732. Sta. Domingo, Puerto Rico, y Marga- rita, Real Compagnia de Commercio. Schemidel (Hulderico) Historia y Discubrimiento del Rio de la Plata y Paraguay. Exst. Barcia Hist. Prim, torn. iii. Sebara da Sjdva (Jos. de) Recueil Chronologique et Analytique de tout ce qu'a fait en Portugal la Soci6t6 dite de J6su8, depuis son Entree dans ce Royaume en 1540 jusqu'^ son Expul- sion 1759. 12mo. 3 vols. Lisb. 1769. Segni (D. Diego Raymundo) Anti- quario Noticiosa General de Espagna y sus Indios. 12mo. 1769. Sepulveda (Genesius) Dialogus de justis Belli Causis, prsesertim in Indoa Novi Orbis. MS. (Jo. Genesius) Epist. Lib. VII. Sepulveda de Regno, Libri III. 1570. Seyxas y Lovero, (D. Fr.) Thcatro Naval Hydrographico. 4to. 1648. Descripcion Geographica y Derrotera de la Religion Austral Ma- gellanica. 4to. Mad. 1690. Simon (Pedro) Noticias Historiales de las Conquistas de Tierra Firmc en las Indias Occidentales. Cuen^a, 1627. Solis (D. Ant. de) Historias de laa Conquistas de Mexico. Mad. 1684. History of the Conquest of Mex- ico. — Translated by Townshend. 1724, Solarzono y Pereyrra (Joan) Politica Indiana, fol. 2 vols. Mad. 1776. De Indiarum Jure, sive do justa IiidiarumOccidentaliumGubernationc. Obras Varias posthumas. 1776. Soto y Marne (P. Franc, de) Copia do la Relacion deViage qui desde la Ciudad de Cadiz a la Cartagena de Indias hizo. Spilbergen et Le Maire SpeculumOri- entalis Occidentalisque Navigationuni, Suarez de Figueroa (Chris.) Heches de D. Garcia Hurtado de Mendoza. Tanco (Luis Bezerra) Felicidad de Mexico en la admirable Aparicion deN. Signora di Guadalupe. Mad. 1745. Tarragones (Hieron. Gir.) Dos Librofi de Cosmographia. 4to. Milan, 1556. Techo (F. Nichol. de). The History of the Provinces Paraguay, Tucuman, Rio de la Plata, &c. Exst. Churchill's Coll. vi. ??. w A CATALOGUE OF SrANISH JiOOKS, ice. Torquemada (Juan de) Monarquia Indiana, fol. 3 vols. Mad. 172.J. Torres (Sim. Per. de) Viage del Mundo. Exst. Barcia Hist. Prim. iii. (Franc. Caro de) Historia de las Ordenes Militares de Santiago, Ca- latrava y Alcantara, desde su Funda- cion hasta el Rey D. Felipe II. Ad- ministrador perpetuo dellas. 1629. Torribio (P. F. Jos.) Aparato para la Historia Natural Espagnala. fol. Mad. 1754. Dissertacion Historico-Politica y en mucha parte Geographica de las Islas Philipinas. 12mo. Mad. 1753. Totanes (F. Sebastian de) Manual Tagalog para auxilio de Provincia de las Philipinas. 4to. Samplai en las Philipinas. 1745. Ulloa (D. Ant. do) Voyage Historique de rAmerique Meridionale. 4to. 2 tom. Paris, 1752. (D. Ant. de) Noticias Ameri- canas, Entretenimientos Physicos-His- toricos, sobre la America Meridional y la Septentrional Oriental. Mad. 1772. (D. Bern, de) Restablecimiento de las Fabricas, Trafico, y Commercio maritimo de Espagna. Mad. 1740. (Franc.) Navigatione per scop- rire I'Isole delle Specierie fino all Mare detto Vermejo nel 1539. Exst. Ramus, iii. 339. (D. Bernardo) Retablisseraent des Manufactures et du Commerce d'Espagne. 12mo. Amst. 1753. Uztariz (D. Geron.) Theoria y Prac- tlca de Commercio y de Marina, fol. Mad. 1757. The Theory and Practice of Commerce, and Maritime AflFairs. 8vo. 2 vols. Lond. 1751. Verages (D. Thorn. Tamaio de) Re- stauracion de la Ciudad del Salvador y Baia de Todos Sanctos en la Provincia del Brasil. 4to. Mad. 1628. Vargas Machuca (D. Bern. de)Milicia y Descripcion de las Indias. Mad. 1699. Vega (Garcilasso de la) Histoire de la Conqu^te de la Floride. Traduite parRichelet. 12mo. 2tom. Leyd. 1731. Royal Commentaries of Peru, by Rycaut. fol. Lond. 1688. Vega (L'Ynca Garcilasso de la) His- toires des Guerres Civiles des Espag- noles dans les Indee, par Baudoin . 1648. Veitia Linage (Jos.) The Spanish Rule of Trade to the West Indies. Declamacion Oratoria en Defensa de !>. Jos. Fern. Veitia Linage. Veitia Linage Norte de la Contra- tacion de las Indias Occidentales. fol. Sevill. 1672. Venegas (Miguel), a Natural and Civil History of California. 8vo. 2 vole. Lond. 1759. Verazzano (Giov.) Relatione delle Terra per lui scoperta nel 1524. Exst. Ramusio iii. p. 420. Vesputius (Americus) Du8e Naviga- tiones sub Auspiciis Ferdinandi, &c. Exst. de Bry America. Pars X. Navigatio prima, secunda, tertia, quarta. Exst. Nov. Orb. Gry- nffii, p. 155. Viage de Espagna. 12mo. 6 tom. Mad. 1776. Victoria (Franc.) Relationes Theolo- gicffi de Indis et de Jure Belli contra eos. VierayClavijo(D. Jc'i.)Nrn'.niasdela Historia general de las Islur de Canaria. Villalobos (D. Juan de) Manifesto sobre la in'-.'-aducciondeesclavosNegros en 1 u ludias Occidentales. 4to. 1682. Villagra (Gasp, de) Historia de Na- eva Mexico, Poema. Alcala, 1610. Villa Segnor y Sanchez (D. Jos. Ant.) Theatro Americano. Descripcion ge- neral de los Reynos y Provincias de la Nueva Espagna. 2 tom. Mex. 1746. Res puesta sobre el precio do Azogue. 4to. Vocabulario Brasiliano y Portugues. 4to. MS, Ward (D. Bernardo) Proyecto Eco- nomico sobre la poblacion de Espagna, la agricultura en todos sus ramos, y de mas establecimientos de industria, co- mercio con nuestra marina, arreglo de nuestra Intereses en America, libertad del comercio en Indias, &c. MS. Xeres (Franc, de) Verdadera Relacion de laConquista del Peru y Provincia de Cuzco, Embiada al Emperador CarlosV. Exst. Barcia Hist. Prim. tom. iii. Relatione, &c. &c. Exst. Ramusio iii. 372. Zarate (Aug. de) Historia del Des- cubrimiento y Conquista de la Provin- cia del Peru. Exst. Barcia Hist. Prim, tom. iii. Histoire do la D^couverte et de la Conqufite du Perou. Paris, 1742. Zavala y Augnon (D. Miguel de) Represcntacion al Rcy N. Segnor D. Philipo V. dirigida al mas seguro Au- mouto del Real Erario. 173S. Zevallos (D. Pedro Ordognez de) Historia v Viogc del Mui\do. IfiPl. Till: HISTORY OF AMERICA. BOOK I. The progress of menj in discovering and peopling the various parts of thn fearth, has been extremely slow. Several ages elapsed before they removed far from those mild and fertile regions in which they were originally placed by their Creator. The occasion of their first general dispersion is known ; but we are unacquainted with the course of their migrations, or the time when they took possession of the different countries which they now inhabit. Neither history nor tradition furnishes such information concerning these remote events, as enables us to trace, with any certainty, the operations ol the human race in the infancy of society. We may conclude, however, that all the early migrations of mankind Avere made by land. The ocean which surrounds the habitable earth, as well as the various arms of the sea which separate one region from another, though destined to facilitate the communication between distant countries, seem, at first view, to be Ibrmed to check the progress of man, and to mark the bounds of that portion of the globe to which nature had confined him. It was long, we may believe, before men attempted to pass these formidable barriers, and became so skilful and adventurous as to commit themselves to the mercy of the winds and waves, or to quit their native shores in quest of remote and unknown regions. Navigation and shipbuilding are arts so nice and complicated, that they require the ingenuity, as well as experience, of many successive ages to bring them to any degree of perfection. From the raft or canoe, which first served to carry a savage over the river that obstructed him in the chase, to the construction of a vessel capable of conveying a numerous crew with safety to a distant coast, the progress in improvement is immense. Many efforts would be made, many experiments would be tried, and much labour as well as invention would be employed, before men could accomplish this arduous and important undertaking. The rude and imperfect state in which navigation is still found among allnations which are not considerably civil- ized, corresponds with this account of its progress, and demonstrates that in early times the art was not so far improved as to enal)le men to undertake distant voyages, or to attempt remote discoveries. As soon, however, as the art of navigation became known, a new species of correspondence among men took place. It is from this era that we must date the commencement of such an intercourse between nations as deserves the appellation of commerce. Men are, indeed, far advanced in improvement before commerce becomes an object of great importance to them. They must even have made some considerable progress towards civilization, before thev acquire the idea of property, and asceilain it so Vol.. }.—?. 18 in.STORV OF [Book I. perfectly as lo be acquaintnl with the most simple of all contracts, that of exchanging by barter one rude commodity for another. But as soon as this important riji^ht is established, and every individual feels that he has an exclusive title to possess or to alienate whatever he has acquired by his own labour and dexterity, the wants and ingenuity of his nature suggest to him a new method of increasing his acquisitions and enjoyments, by disposing of what is superfluous in his own stores, in order to procure what is necessary or desirable in those of other men. Thus a commercial intercourse begins, and is carried on among the members of the same com- munity. By degrees, they discover that neighbouring tribes possess what they themselves want, and enjoy comforts of which they w ish to partake. In the same mode, and upon the same principles, that domestic traffic is carried on within the society, an external commerce is established witli other tribes or nations. Their mutual interest and mutual wants render this intercourse desirable, and imperceptibly introduce the maxims and laws which facilitate its progress and render it secure. But no very extensive commerce* can take place between contiguous provinces, whose soil and climate being nearly the same yield similar productions. Remote countries cannot coiwey their commodities, by land, to those places where on account of their rarity they are desired, and become valuable. It is to navi- gation that men are indebted for the power of transporting the superfluous stock of one part of the earth to supply the wants of another. The luxu- ries and blessings of a particular climate are no longer confined to itself alone, but the enjoyment of them is communicated to the most distant regions. In proportion as the knowledge of the advantages derived from naviga- tion and commerce continued to spread, the intercourse among nations ex- tended. The ambition of conquest, or the nece^ssity of procuring new set- tlements, were no longer the sole motives of visiting distant lands. The desire of gain became a new incentive to activity, roused adventurers, and sent them forth upon long voyages, in search of countries whose products or wants might increase that circulation which nourishes and gives vigour to commerce. Trade proved a great source of discoveiy : it opened un- known seas, it penetrated into new regions, and contributed more than any other cause to bring men acquainted Avith the situation, the nature, and com- modities of the ditterent parts of the globe. But even after a regular com- merce was established in the world, after nations were considerably civil- ized, and the sciences and arts were cultivated with ardour and success, navigation continued to be so imperfect, that it can hardly "be said to have advanced beyond the infancy of its improvement in the ancient world. Among all the nations of antiquit}^ the structure of their vessels was ex- tremely rude, and their method of working them verj' defective. They were unacquainted with several principles and operations in navigation, which are now considered as the first elements on which that science is founded. Though that property of the magnet by which it attracts iron was well known to the ancients, its more important and amazing virtue of pointing to the poles had entirely escaped their observation. Destitute of this faithful guide, which now conducts the pilot with so much certainty in the unbounded ocean, during the darkness of night, or when the heavens are covered with clouds, the ancients had no other method of regulating their course than by observing the sun and stars. Their navigation was of con- sequence uncertain and timid. They durst seldom quit sight of land, but crept along the coast, exposed to all the dangers, and retarded by all the ob- structions, unavoidable in holding such an awkward course. An incredible length of time was requisite for performing voyages which are now finished in a short space. Even in the mildest climates, and in seas the least tempestuous, it was only during the sununer months that the ancients ventured out cjf their harbours. The remainder of the year was lost in in- AMERICA. l» activitj'. It would have bean dermed most iiiconsiderale rashness to have bravea the fiiry- of the winds and Ava\(s diirina; Avinlor.* While both the science and practice of navii^atiori continued to be so de- fective, it was an undertaking^ ol no small difficulty and danger to visit any remote region of the earth. Under every disadvantage, however, the active spirit of commerce exerted itself. The Eg}'ptians, soon after the establishment of their monarchy, are said to have opened a trade between the Arabian Gulf, or Ked Sea, and the western coast of the great Indian cojiti- nent. The commodities which they imported from the East, were carried by land from the Arabian Gulf to the banks of the Nile, and conveyed down that river to the Mediterranean. But if the Egyptians in early times ap- plied themselves to commerce, their attention to it was of short duration. The fertile soil and mild climate of Egypt produced the necessaries and comforts of life with such jjrofusion, as rendered its inhabitants so inde- pendent of other countries, tbat it became an established maxim among that people, whose ideas and institutions differed in almost every point from those of other nations, fo renounce all intercourse with foreigiwrs. In con- sequence of this, they never went out of their own country ; they held all .seafaring persons in detestation, as impious and profane ; and fortifying their own harbours, they denied strangei-s admittance into tliem.t It was in the decline of their power, and when their veneration for ancient maxims had greatly abated, that they again opened their ports, and resumed any communication with foreigners. The character and situation of the Phenicians were as favourable to the spirit of commerce and discovery as those of the Egyptians were adverse to it. They had no distinguishing pecruliarity in their manners and iristitu- tioas ; they were not addicted to any singular and unsocial form of super- stition ; they could mingle with other nations without scruple or reluctance. The territory which they possessed was neither large nor fertiJe. Com- merce was the only source from which they could derive opulence or power. Accordingly, the trade carried on by the Phenicians of Sidon and Tyre, was more extensive and enterprising than tbat of any state in the an- cient world. The genius of the Phenicians, as well as the object of their policy and the spirit of their laws, were entirely commercial. They were a people of merchants, who aimed at the empire of the sea, and actually possessed it. Their ships not only frequented all the ports in the Medi- terranean, but they were the first who ventured beyond the ancient boun- daries of navigation, and, passing the Straits of Gades, visited the western coasts of Spain and Africa. In many of the places to which they resorted, tliey planted colonies, and communicated to the rude inhabitants some knowledge of their arts and improvements. While they extended their dis- coveries towards the north and the west, they did not neglect to penetrate into the more opulent and fertile regions of the south and east. Having rendered themselves masters of several commodious harbours towards the bottom of the Arabian Gulf, they, after the example of the Egyptians, esta- blished a regular intercourse with Arabia and the continent of India on the one hand, and with the eastern coast of Africa on the other. From these countries they imported many valuable commodities unknown to the rest of the world, and during a long period engrossed that lucrative branch of commerce without a rival, [l] •. • The vast wealth which the Phenicians acquired ])y monopolizing the trade carried on in the Ked Sea, incited their neighbours the Jews, under the prosperous reigns of David and Solomon, to aim at being admitted to some share of it. This they obtained, partly by their conquest of Idumea, which stretches aloi>g the lied Sea, and partly by their alliance with Hi- * VppiijiiB deRe milit. lib. iv. ♦ Dioci. Hicnl lib. i. p. 78. ed. VVesseliiigii. Anist. 1Tj6. Slra- bo, lib. xvii. p. U'iS. ed. Amst. VO:. ?0 II 1 ST OK k OF (Book I. ram, king of Tyre. Solomon fitted out fleets, which, under the direction oC i'hcnician pilots, sailed from tli<; llt.d Sea to Tarshish and Ophir. These, it is probable, were ports in India and Africa, which their conductors were accustomed to frequent, and from them the Jewish ships returned with such valuable cargoes as suddenly diffused wealth and splendour through the Kingdom of Israel.* But the singular institutions of the Jews, the ob- servance of which was enjoined by their divine Legislator, with an inten- tion of preserving them a separate people, uninfected by idolatry, formed a national character, incapable of that open and liberal intercourse with strangers which commerce requires. Accordingly, this unsocial genius of the people, together with the disasters which betell the kingdom of Israel, prevented the commercial spirit ivhich their monarchs laboured to introduce and to cherish, from spreading among them. The Jews cannot be num- bered among the nations whicn contributed to improve navigation, or to ex- tend discovery. But though the instructions and example of the Phenicians were unable to mould the manners and temper of the Jews, in opposition to the tendency of their laws, they transmitted the commercial spirit with facility, and in full vigour, to their own descendants the Carthaginians. The common- wealth of Carthage applied to trade and naval affairs, with no less ardour, ingenuity, and success, than its parent state. Carthage early rivalled and soon surpassed Tyre in opulence and power, but seems not to have aimed at obtainmg any share in the commerce with India. The Phenicians had engrossed this, and had such a command of the Red Sea as secured to them the exclusive possession of that lucrative branch of trade. The commercial activity of the Cartl)aginiaas was exerted in another direction. Without contending for the trade of the East with their mother country, they extend- ed their navigation chiefly towards the west and north. Following the course which the Phenicians had opened, they passed the Straits of Gades, and pushing their discoveries far beyond those of the parent state, visited not only all the coasts of Spain, but those of Gaul, and penetrated at last into Britain. At the same time that they acquired knowledge of new coun- tries in this part of the globe, they gradually caiTied their researches towards the south. They made considerable progress by land into tlie interior pro- vinces of Africa, traded with some of^ them, and subjected others to their empire. They sailed along the western coast of that great continent almost to the tropic of Cancer, and planted several colonies, in order to civilize the natives and accustom them to commerce. They discovered the Fortunate Islands, now known by the name of the Canaries, the utmost boundary of ancient navigation in the western ocean, j Nor was the progress of the Phenicians and Carthaginians in their knowledge of the globe, owing entirely to the desire of extending their trade from one country to another. Commerce was followed by its usual effects among both these people. It awakened curiosity, enlarged the ideas and desires of men, and incited them to bold enterprises. Voyages were undertaken, the sole object of which was to discover new countries, and to explore unknown seas. Such, during the prosperous age of the Cartha- ginian republic, were the famous navigations of Hanno and Himlico. Both their fleets were equipped by authority of the senate, and at public ex- pense. Hanno was directed to steer towards the south, along the coast of Africa, and he seems to have advanced much nearer the equinoctial line than any former navigator.j Himlico had it in chaise to proceed toward* the north, and to examine the western coasts of the European continent.§ 01 the same nature was the extraordinary navigation ol the Phenicians ♦ M*moir(> sur le Pavs rt'Opliir, par M. d'Anville, Mem. do I'Academ. des liiscript. &r. torn. XXX. 83. t Plinii Nat. Hist. lib. vi. c. 37. edit, in umim Delpli. 4to. 16S.5. * Plinii Nat. Hist, lih.v. e. 1. Hannonis PwipUif< up. fiiograpli. niiiiores, edit. Hudsoiii, vol. i. p. 1. § PliiiM Nat. Hist. lili. ii. c. 67. i'estus AvienuB apud Bochart. Geogr. Sacer. lib. i. c. CO. p. G3'2. OptT. vol. iii. L. Hat. 1707 AMERICA. 21 round Africa. A Phenician fleet, we are told, fitted out by Nocho king of Egypt, took its departure about six hundred and four j-ears before the Christian era, from a port in the Red Sea, doubled the soutliern promontory of Africa, and after a voyage of three years returned by the Straits of t the discoverers, and whose patronage had encouraged and protected them. But notwithstanding all the advantages which they derived from these, the Portuguese during his life did not advance in their utmost progress towards the south, within five degrees of the equinoctial line ; and after their continued exertions for halt' a century [from 1412 to 146;>]. hardly fifteen hundred miles of the coast of Africa were discovered. To an ago acquainted with the efforts of navigation in its state of maturity and iiu- AMERICA. 39 provement, those essays of its early years must necessarily appear feeble and unskiliul. But inconsiderable as they may be deemed, ihey were suffi- cient to turn the curiosity of the European nations into a new channel, to excite an enterprising spirit, and to point the way to future discoveries. Alphonso, who possessed the throne of Portugal at the lime ©f prince Henry's death, was so much engaged in supporting his own pretensions to the crown of Castile, or in carrying on his expeditions against the Moors in Barbary, that, the force of his kingdom being exerted in other operations, he could not prosecute the discoveries in Africa with ardour. He committetl the conduct of them to Fernando Gomez, a merchant in Lisbon, to whom he granted an exclusive right of commerce with all the countries of which prince Henry had taken possession. Under the restraint and oppression of a monopoly, the spirit of discovery languished. It ceased to be a national object, and became the concern of a private man more attentive to his own gain than to the glory of his country. Some progress, however, was made. The Portuguese ventured at lei^th [1471], to cross the line, and, to their astonishment, found that region ot the torrid zone, which was supposed to be scorched with intolerable heat, to be not only habitable, but populous and fertile. John II. who succeeded his father Alphonso [1481], possessed talents capable both of forming and executing great designs. As part of his reve- nues, while prince, had arisen from duties on the trade with the newly discovered countries, this naturally turned his attention towards them, and satisfied him with respect to their utility and importance. In proportion as his knowledge of these countries extended, the possession of them appeared to be of greater consequence. While the Portuguese proceeded along the coast of Africa, from Cape Non to the river of Senegal, they found all that extensive tract to be sandy, barren, and thinly inhabited by a wretched people professing the Mahometan religion, and subject to the vast empire of i\Iorocco. But to the south of that river, the power and religion of the, Mahometans were unknown. The country was divided into small inde- pendent principalities, the population was considerable, the soil fertile,* and the Portuguese soon discovered that it produced ivory, rich gums, gold, and other valuable commodities. By the acquisition of these, commerce was enlarged, and became more adventurous. Men, animated and rendered active by the certain prospect of gain, pursued discovery with greater eagerness than when they were excited only by curiosity and hope. This spirit derived no small reinforcement of vigour from the countenance of such a monarch as John. Declaring himself the patron of every attempt towards discovery, he promoted it with all the ardour of his grand-uncle prince Henry, and with superior power. The effects of this were imme- diately felt. A powerful fleet was fitted out [1484], which after discovering the kingdoms of Benin and Congo, advanced above fifteen hundred miiejj beyond the line, and the Portuguese, for the first time, beheld a new heaven, and observed the stars of another hemisphere. John was not only solicitous to discover, but attentive to secure the possession of those countries. He built torts on the coast of Guinea ; he sent out colonics to settle there ; he established a commercial intercourse with the more powerful kingdoms ; he endeavoured to render such as were feeble or divided tributaiy to IIh'; crown of Portugal. Some of the petty princes voluntarily acknowledged themselves his vassals. Othei"s were compelled to do so by force of arms. A regular and well digested system was* formed with respect to this new object of policy, and, by firmly adhering to it, the Portuguese power and commerce in Africa were established upon a solid foundation. By their constant intercourse with the people of Africa, the Portuguese gradually acquired some knowledge of tliose parts of that countiy which * Navigatio Aloysii Cailainumi apud Noviini Orhcrii dryriTi. p. ^. IS. Navipat. all Isola dl San ToniP per un Pilotto Portiis;. Kamiisio. i. ll'i. 41) HISTORY OF [Book I. rhey had not visited. The information which they received from the native?, added to what they had observed in theii" own voyages, began to open prospects more extensive, and to suggest the idea of schemes more impor- tant than those which had hitherto allured and occupied them. They had detected the error of the ancients concerning the nature of the torrid zone. They found as they proceeded southwards, that the continent of Africa, instead of extending in breadth, according to the doctrine of Ptolemy,* at that time the oracle and guide oi the learned in the science of geography, appeared sensibly to contract itself, and to bend towards the east. '1 his induced them to give credit to the accounts of the ancient Phenician voyages round Africa, which had long been deemed fabulous, and led them to conceive hopes that, by following the same route, they might arrive at the • East Indies, and engross that commerce which has been the source of wealth and power to every nation possessed of it. The comprehensive genius of prince Henry, as we may conjecture from the words of the Pope's bull; had early formed some idea of this navigation. But though his countrymen, at that period, were incapable of conceiving the extent of his views and schemes, all the Portuguese mathematicians and pilots now concurred in representing them as well founded and practicable. The king entered with warmth into tlieir sentiments, and began to concert measures for this arduous and important voyage. Before his preparations for this expedition were finished, accounts were traasraitted from Africa, that various nations along tiie coast had mentioned a mighty kingdom situated on their continent, at a great distance towards the east, the king of which, according to their description, professed the Christian religion. The Portuguese monarch immediately concluded, that this must be the emperor of Abyssinia, to whom the Europeans, seduced by a mistake of Rubruquis, Marco Polo, and other travellers to the East, absurdly gave the name of Prester or Presbyter John ; and, as he hoped to receive information and assistance from a Christian prince, in prosecuting a scheme that tended to propagate their common faith, he resolved to open, if possible, some intercourse with his coui't. With this view, he made choice of Pedro de Covillam and Alphonso de Payva, who were perfect masters of tlie Arabic language, and sent them into the East to search for the residence of this unknown potentate, and to make him proffers of friendship. They had in charge likewise to procure whatever intelligence the nations which they visited could supply, with respect to the trade of India, and the course of navigation to that continent.! While John made this new attempt by land, to obtain some knowledge of the country which he wished so ardently to discover, he did not neglect the prosecution of this great design by sea. The conduct of a voyage for this purpose, the most arduous and important which the Portuguese had ever projected, was committed to Baitholomew Diaz [i486], an officer whose sagacity, experience, and fortitude rendered him equal to the under- taking. He stretched boldly towards the south, and proceeding beyond the utmost limits to which his countrymen had hitherto advanced, discovered near a thousand miles of new countrj-. Neither the danger to which he was exposed, by a succession of violent tempests in unknown seas, and by the frequent mutinies of his crew, nor the calamities of famine which he suffered from losing his storeship, could deter him from prosecuting his enterprise. In recompense of his labours and perseverance, he at last descried that lofty promontoiy which bounds Africa to the south. But to desciy it was all that he had in his power to accomplish. The violence of the winds, the shattered condition of his ships, and the turbulent spirit of the sailors, compelled him to return after a voyage of sixteen months, in which he discovered a far greater extent of country than any former navigator. Diaz had called the promontoiy which terminated his voyage Cabo Tor- * Villi' Nov. Orbis Tiihiil. Cio'^'iaph. seciind. rtolem. Amst. 1730. t Faria v Snnsa Port Asia vol, i. •!. W. J.atiwu Dwouv. i\t: Port. i. 4fi AMERICA. 41 mentoso, or the Stormy Cape ; but the king, his master, as he now entertained no doubt of having tound the long-desired route to India, gave it a name more inviting, and of better omen, The Cape of Good Hope* Those sanguine expectations of success were confirmed by the intelli- gence which John received over land, in consequence of his embassy to Abyssinia. Covillam and Payva, in obedience to their master's instructions, had repaired to Grand Cairo. From that city they travelled along with a caravan of Egyptian merchants, and, embarking on the Red Sea, arrived at Aden, in Aral)ia. There they separated : Payva sailed directly towards Abyssinia ; Covillam embarked lor the East Indies, and, having visited Calecut, Goa, and other cities on the Malabar coast, returned to Soiala, on the east side of Atrica, and thence to Grand Cairo, which Payva and he had tixed upon as their place of rendezvous. Unfortunately the Ibrmer was cruelly murdered in Abyssinia ; but Covillam found at Cairo two Portuguese Jews, whom John, whose provident sagacity attended to every circumstance that could facilitate the execution of his schemes, had despatched after them, in order to receive a detail of their proceedings, and to communicate to them new instructions. By one ot these Jews, Covillam transmitted to Portugal a journal of his travels by sea and land, his remarks upon the trade of India, together with exact maps of the coasts on which he had touched ; and from what he himself had observed, as well as from the infor- mation of skilful seamen in different countries, he concluded, that, by sailing round AiVica, a passage might be found to the East Indies.! The happy coincidence of Covillam's opinion and report with the disco- veries which Diaz had lately made, left hardly any shadow of doubt with respect to the possibility of sailing from Europe to India. But the vast length of the voyage, and the turious storms which Diaz had encountered near the Cape of Good Hope, alarmed and intimidated the Portuguese to such a degree, although by long experience they were now become adven- turous and skilful mariners, that some time was requisite to prepare their minds tor this dangerous and extraordinary voyage. The courage, how- ever, and authority of the monarch gradually dispelled the vain fears of his subjects, or made it necessary to conceal them. As John thought himself now upon the eve of accomplishing that great design which had been the principal object of his reign, his earnestness in prosecuting it became so vehement, that it occupied his thoughts by day, and bereaved him of sleep thiough the night. While he was taking every precaution that his wisdom and experience could suggest, in order to ensure the success of the expedition, which was to decide concerning the tate of his favourite project, the fame of ttie vast discoveries which the Ponuguese had already made, the reports concerning the extraordinary intelligence which they had received from the East, and the prospect of the voyage which they now meditated, drew the attention of all the European nations, and held them in suspense and expectation. By some, the maritime skill and navigations of the Portuguese were compared with those ot the Phenicians and Carthaginians, and exalted above them. Others formed conjectures concerning the revolutions which the success of the Portuguese schemes might occasion in the course of trade, and the political state of Europe. The Venetians began to be disquieted with the apprehension of losing their Indian commerce, the monopoly of which was the chief source of their power as well as opulence, and the Portuguese already enjoyed in fancy the wealth of the East. But during this interval, which gave such scope to the various workings of curiosity, of hope, and of fear, an account was brought to Europe of an event no less extraordinary than unexpected, the discovery of a New World situated on the West ; and the eyes and admiration ol mankind turned immediately towards that great object. . * Fatia y Souea Port. Apia vol. i. p. S^. 1 Ibid. p. 27. Lafitau Deooiiv. i. p. 4P, Vor.. I.— S 4S HISTORY OF [Book II. BOOK II. Among the foreigners whom the fame of the discoveries made by the Portuguese had allured into their service, was Christopher Colon, or Columbus, a subject of the republic of Genoa. Neither the time nor place of his birth is known with certainty [ll] ; but he was descended of an honourable family, though reduced to indigence by various misfortunes. His ancestors having betaken themselves for subsistence to a seafaring life, Columbus discovered in his early youth . the peculiar character and talents which mark out a man for that protession. His parents, instead of thwarting this original propensity of his mind, seem to have encouraged and confirmed it by the education which they gave him. After acquiring some knowledge of the Latin tongue, the only language in which science was taught at that time, he was instructed in geometry, cosmography, astronomy, and the art of drawing. To these he applied with such ardour and predilection, on account of their connexion with navigation, his favourite object, that he advanced with rapid proficiency in the study of them. Thus qualified, he went to sea at the age of tburteen [l46lj, and be^an his career on that element which conducted him to so much gloiy. His early voyages were to those ports in the Mediterranean which his countrynien the Genoese frequented. This being a sphere too narrow for his active mind, he made an excursion to the northern seas [1467], and visited the coast of Iceland, to which the English and other nations had begun to resort on account of its fishery. As navigation, in every direction, was now become enterprising, he proceeded beyond that island, the Thule of the ancients, and advanced several degrees within the polar circle. Having satisfied his curiosity, by a voyage which tended more to enlaig;e his knowledge of naval affairs than to improve his fortune, he entered into the service of a famous sea-captain of his own name and family. This man commanded a small squadjon fitted out at his own expense, and by cruising sometimes against the Mahometans, sometimes against the Venetians, the rivals of his country in trade, had acquired both wealth and reputation. With him Columbus continued for several years, no less distinguished for his courage than for his experience as a sailor. At length, in an obstinate engagement off the coast of Portugal, with some Venetian caravals returning richly laden from the Low Countries, the vessel on board which he served took fire, together with one of the enemy's ships to which it was fast grappled. In this dreadful extremity his intrepidity and presence of mind did not forsake him. He threw himself into the sea, laid hold of a floating oar ; and by the support of it, and his dexterity in swimming, he reached the shore, though above two leagues distant, and saved a life reserved for great undertakings.* As soon as he recovered strengtli for the journey, he repaired to Lisbon, where many of his countiynien were settled. They soon conceived such a favourable opinion of his merit, as well as talents, that they wannly solicited him to remain in that kingdom, where his naval skill and experience could not fail of rendering him conspicuous. To every adventurer animated either with curiosity to visit new countries, or with ambition to distinguish himself, the Portuguese service was at that time extremely inviting. Columbus listened with a favourable ear to the advice of his friends, and, having gained (he esteem of a Portuguese lady, whom he married, fixed his residence in Lisbon. This alliance, instead of detaching him from a seafaring life, contributed (o enlarge the sphere of his naval knowledge, and to excite a * In in readiness lor the voyage. But as Columhus was deeply , impressed with sentiments of religion, he would not set out upon an expc- ' dition so arduous, and of which one great object was to extend the know- ledge of the Christian faith, -without imploring publicly the guidance an'* o2 HISTORY OF . [liooK U. protection of Heaven. With this view, he, together with all the persons under his command, marched in solemn procession to the monastery of Rabida. After confessing their sins, and obtaining absolution, they received the holy sacrament from the hands of the guardian, who joined his prayers to theirs for the success of an enterprise which he had so zealously patronized. Next morning, being Friday the third day of August, in the year one thousand ibur hundred and ninety-two, Columbus set sail, a little before sunrise, in presence of a vast crowd of spectators, who sent up their sup- plications to Heaven for the prosperous issue of the voyage, which they wished rather than expected. Columbus steered directly for the Canaiy Islands, and arrived there [Aug. 13] without any occurrence that would have deserved notice on any other occasion. But, in a voyage of such expectation and importance, every circumstance was the object of attention. The rudder of the Pinta broke loose the day after she left the harbour ; and that accident alarmed the crew, no less superstitious than unskilful, as a certain omen of the unfortunate destiny of the expedition. Even in the short run to the Canaries, the ships were found to be so crazy and ill appointed, as to be very improper tor a navigation which was expected to be both long and dangerous. Columbus refitted them, however, to the best of his power ; and having supplied himself with fresh provisions, he took his departure from Gomera, one of the most westerly of the Canaiy Islands, on the sixth day of September. Here the voyage of discovery may properly be said to begin ; for Columbus, holaing his course due west, left immediately the usual track of navigation, and stretched into unfrequented and unknown seas. The first day, as it was very calm, he made but little way ; but on the second he lost sight of the Canaries ; and many of the sailors, dejected already, and dismayed, when they contemplated the boldness of the undertaking, began to beat their breasts, and to shed tears, as if they were never more to behold land. Columbus comforted them with assurances of success, and the prospect of vast wealth in those opulent regions whither he was con- ducting them. This early discovery of the spirit of his followers taught Columbus that he must prepare to struggle not only with the unavoidable difficulties which might be expected from the nature of his undertaking, but with such as were likely to arise from the ignorance and timidity of the people under his coihmand ; and he perceived that the art of governing the minds of men would be no less requisite for accomplishing the discoveries which he had in view, than naval skill and undaunted courage. Happily for himself, and for the country by which he was employed, he joined to the ardent temper and inventive genius of a pro- lector, virtues of another species, which are rarely united with them. He possessed a thorough knowledge of mankind, an insinuating address, a patient perseverance in executing any plan, the perfect government of his , own passions, and the talent of acq^uiring an ascendant over those of other men. All these qualities, which formed him for command, were accom- panied with that superior knowledge of his profession, which begets confidence in times of difficulty and danger. To unskilful Spanish sailors, accustomed only to coasting voyages in the Mediterranean, the maritime science of Columbus, the fruit of thirty years' experience, im- proved by an acquaintance with all the inventions of the Portuguese, appeared immense. As soon as they put to sea, he regulated every thing by his sole authority ; he superintended the execution of every order ; and allowing himself only a few hours for sleep, he was at all other times upon deck. As his course lay through seas which had not formerly been visited, the sounding line, or instruments for observation, were continually in his hands. After the example of the Portuguese discoverers, he attended to the motion of tides and cunents, watched the flight of birds, the appear- AMERICA. 53 ance of fishes, of seaweeds, and of every thing that floated on the waves, and entered every occurrence, with a minute exactness, in the journal which he kept. As the length of the voyage could not fail of alarming sailors habitu- ated only to short excursions, Columbus endeavoured to conceal from them the real progress which they made. With this view, though they run eighteen leagues on the second day after they left Gomera, he gave out that they had advanced only fifteen, and he uniformly employed the same artifice of reckoning short during the whole voyage. By the fourteenth of Septem- ber the fleet was above two hundred leagues to the west of the Canary Isles, at a greater distance from land than any Spaniard had been before tliat time. Theie they were struck with an appearance no less astonishing than new They observed that the magnetic needle, in their compasses, did not point exactly to the polar star, but varied towards the west ; and as they proceeded, this variation increased. This appearance, which is now familiar, though it still remains one of the mysteries of nature, into the cause of which the sagacity of man hath not been able to penetrate, filled the companions of Columbus with terror. They were now in a boundless and unknown ocean, far from the usual course of navigation ; nature itself seemed to be altered, and the only guide which they had left was about to fail them. Columbus, with no less quickness than ingenuity, invented a reason for this appearance, which, (hough it did not satisfy himself, seemed so plausible to them, that it dispelled their fears, or silenced their murmurs. He still continued to steer due west, nearly in the same latitude with the Canary Islands. In this course he came within the sphere of the trade wind, which blows invariably from east to west, between the tropics and a few degrees beyond them. He advanced before this steady gale with such uniform rapidity that it was seldom necessary- to shift a sail. When about four hundred leagues to the west of the Canaries, he found the sea so covered with weeds, that it resembled a meadow of vast extent, and in some places they were so thick as to retard the motion of the vessels. This strange appearance occasioned new alarm and disquiet. The sailors ima- gined that they were now arrived at the utmost boundary of the navigable ocean ; that these floating weeds would obstruct their further progress, and concealed dangerous rocks, or some large track of land, which had sunk, they kn»!W not how, in that place. Columbus endeavoured to per- suade them, that what had alarmed ought rather to have encouraged them, and was to be considered as a sign of approaching land. At the same time, a brisk gale arose, and carried them forward. Several birds were seen hovering about the ship [13], and directing their flight towards the west. The desponding crew resumed some degree of spirit, and began to entertain fresh hopes. Upon the first of October they were, according to the admiral's reckon- ing, seven hundred and seventy leagues to the west of the Canaries ; but Jest his men should be intimidated by the prodigious length of the naviga- tion, he gave out that they had proceeded only five hundred and eighty- four leagues, and fortunately, for Columbus, neither his own pilot, nor those of the other ships, had skill sufficient to correct this error, and discover the deceit. They had now been above three weeks at sea ; they had pro- ceeded far beyond what former navigators had attempted or deemed possi- ble ; all their prognostics of discovery, drawn from the flight of birds and other circumstances, had proved fallacious ; the appearances of land, with which their own credulity or the artifice of their commander had from time to time flattered and amused them, had been altogether illusive, and their prospect of success seemed now to be as distant as ever. These reflectioas occurred often to men who had no other object or occupation than to reason and discourse concerning the intention and circumstances of their expedition. They made impression at first upon the ignorant and timid, and, extending bv degrees to such as were better informed or more resolute, the contagion 54 HISTORY OF [Book II. spread at length from ship to ship. From secret whispers or mmrourii^, they proceeded to open cabals and public complaints. They taxed their sovereiirn with inconsiderate credulity, in paying such regard to the vain {)romises and rash conjectures of an indigent ioreigner, as to hazard the ives of so many of her own subjects in prosecuting a chimerical scheme. They affirmed that they had tully performed their duty, by venturing so far in an unknown and hopeless course, and could incur no blame for refusing to follow any longer a desperate adventurer to certain destruction. They contended, that it was necessary to think of returning to Spain, while their crazy vessels were still in a conditicjn to keep the sea, but expressed their fears that the attempt would prove vain, as the wind, which had hitherto been so favourable to their course, must render it impossible to sail in an opposite direction. All agreed that Columbus should be compelled by force to adopt a measure on which their conimon salety depended. Some of the more audacious proposed, as the most expeditious and certain method of getting rid at once of his remonstrances, to throw him into the sea, being persuaded that, upon their return to Spain, the death of an unsuccessilQ projector would excite little concern, and be inquired into with no curiosity. Columbus was fully sensible of his perilous situation. He had observed, with great uneasiness, the fatal operation of ignorance and ol tear in producing disaffection among his crew, and saw that it was now ready to burst out into open mutiny. He retained, however, perl'ect presence of mind. He affected to seem ignorant of their machinations. Notwithstanding the agitation and solicitude of his own mind, he appeared with a cheenul countenance, like a man satisfied with the progress he had made, ar-d confident of success. Sometimes he employed all the arts ol insinuation to soothe his men. Sometimes he endeavoured to work upon their ambition or avarice, by magnificent descriptions of the fame and wealth which they were about to acquire. On other occasions he assumed a tone ol authority, and threatened them with vengeance from their sovereign, il^ by their dastardly behaviour, they should defeat this noble effort to promote the glory 01 God, and to exalt the Spanish name above that of every other nation. Even with seditious sailors, the words of a man whom they had been accustomed to reverence, were weighty and persuasive, and not only restrained therti from those violent excesses which they meditated, but prevailed with them to accompany their admiral for some time longer. As they proceeded, the indications of approaching land seemed to be more certain, and excited hope in proportion. The birds began to appear in ^ocks, making towards the southwest. Columbus, in iniitation ol the Portuguese navisrators, who had been guided, in several ol their discoveries, by the motion of birds, altered his coiu^ from due west towards that quarter w hither they pointed their flight. But, after holding on for several days in this new direction, without any better success than formerly, having seen no object, during thirty days, but the sea and the sky. the hopes of his companions subsided faster than they had risen : their fears revived with additional force : impatience, rasre, and despair, appeared in every counte- nance. All sense of subordination was lost : the oScers, who had hitherto concurred with Columbus in opinion, and supported his authority, now took part with the private men ; they assembled tumultuously on the deck, expostulated with their commander, mir^led threats with their expostulations, and required him instantiy to tack about and to return to Europe. Columbus perceived that it would be of no avail to have recourse to any ol his lormer arts, which, having been tried so often, had lost their effect ; and that it was impossible to rekindle any zeal for the success of the expedition among men in whose breasts fear had extinguished every generous sentiment. He saw that it was no less vain to think of employing either gentle or severe measures to quell a mutiny so general and so violent. It was necessary, on all these accounts, to soothe passions which he could no longer command. AMERICA. 55 and to eire waf to a tenent too n^etnoas to be checked. He promised solemnfytoliis mendiat he would co m ply with tiieir request, ptonded tfaej would xoamfanj Iwn, and obey his command tor duee days koger. and il^ (kaiBj^ that tine, land weie not discovered, he would thai ahariop die entojmse, and direct his course towards Spain.* Enaged as the sailois were, and impatient to tum their faces again towards their natire oonntij, this profiositioo did not a|^>ear to them inreasanable. Nor did (x^onbas hazard nncfa in owifu i iig tmnseh' to a tenn so sfaorL The presages of discorering land were now so numerous and prom^ner. that be deoned them ia&llible. F<»- some days the soimdke line reached the bottom, and the sofl which it brought up indicated land to be at no peat dipQeed to fly tar fitm Ashore. The crew ot* the Pintaobsored a came floatme:, which seemed to hare been newly cut, and likewise a piece layed, with warUte music, and odier mardal pomp. As they approacfaed the coast, they saw it oovoed with a m w l i i im io of foofte, whom me novelty of die specude had drawn togetfaet^ whose attjtndes aid g estur e s expressed wander and astaoBhiiest 56 IirSTORY OF [Book 11. at the strange objects which presented themselves to their vieAv. Columbus was the first European who set foot in the New World which he had dis- covered. He landed in a rich dress, and with a naked sword in his hand. His men followed, and kneeling down, they all kissed the ground which they had so long desired to see. They next erected a crucifix, and prostrating themselves before it, returned thanks to God for conducting their voyage to such a happy issue. They then took solemn possession of the country, for the crown of Castile and Leon, with all the formalities which the Portuguese were accustomed to observe in acts of this kind, in their new discoveries.* The Spaniards, while thus employed, were surrounded by many of the natives, who gazed in silent admiration upon actions which they could not comprehend, and of which they did not foresee the consequences. The dress of the Spaniards, the whiteness of their skins, their beards, their arms, appeared strange and surprising. The vast machines in which they had traversed the ocean, that seemed to move upon the waters with wings, and uttered a dreadful sound resembling thun ler, accompanied with lightning and smoke, struck them with such terror, that they began to respect their new guests as a superior order of beings, and concluded that they were children a( the Sun, who had descended to visit the earth. The Europeans were hardly less amazed at the scene now before them. Every herb, and shrub, and tree, was different from those which flourished in Europe. The soil seemed to be rich, but bore few marks of cultivation. The climate, even to the Spaniards, felt warm, though extremely delightful. The inhabitants appeared in the simple innocence of nature, entirely naked. Their black hair, long and uncurled, floated upon their shoulders, or was bound in tresses arouna their heads. They had no beards, and every part of their bodies was perfectly smooth. Their complexion was of a dusky- copper colour, their features singular, rather than disagreeable, their aspect gentle and timid. Though not tall, they were well shaped and active. Their faces, and several parts of their body, were fantastically painted with glaring colours.'^ They were shy at first through fear, but soon became Familiar with the Spaniards, and with transports of joy received from them hawksbelis, glass beads, or other baubles, in return for which they gave such provisions as they had, and some cotton yarn, the only commodity of value that they could produce. Towards evening", Columous returned to his ship, accompanied by many of the islanders in their boats, which they called canoes, and though rudely formed out of the trunk of a single tree, they rowed them with surprising dexterity. Thus, in the first interview between the inhabitants of the old and new worlds, every thing was con- ducted amicably, and to their mutual satisfaction. The fonner, enlightened and amljitious, formed already vast ideas with respect to the advantages which they might derive from the regions that began to open to their view. The latter, simple and undiscerning, had no foresight of the calamities and desolation which were approaching their country. Columbus, who now assumed the title and authority of admiral and viceroy, called the island which he had discovered Sa7i Salvador. It is better known by the name of Gunnahani, which the natives gave to it, and is one of that large cluster of islands called the Lucaya or Bahama isles It is situated above three thousand miles to the west of Gomera ; from which the squadron took its departure, and only four degrees to the south of it ; so little had Columbus deviated from the westerly course, which he had chosen as the most proper. Columbus employed the next day in visiting the coasts of the island ; and from the universal poverty of the inhabitants, he perceived that this was not the rich country for which he sought. But, conformably to his theor'' * Life of Coliunbus, c. 2!. 23. Herrera. i^t. I. lih. i- <•■ 2X AMERICA. 57 concerning the discovery of those regions of Asia which stretched towards the east, he concluded that San Salvador was one of the isles which fec^raphers described as situated in the great ocean adjacent to India.* faving observed that most of the people whom he had seen wore small plates of gold, by way of ornament, in their nostrils, he eagerly inquired where they got that precious metal. They pointed towards the south, and made him comprehend by signs, that gold abounded in countries situated in that quarter. Thither he immediately determined to (iirect his course, in full confidence of rinding there those opulent regions which had been the object of his voyage, and would be a recompense lor all his toils and dangers. He took along with him seven of the natives of San Salvador, that, by acquiring the Spanish language, they mi^ht serve as guides and interpreters ; and those innocent people considered it as a mark of distinction when they were selected to accompany him. He saw several islands, and touched at three of the largest, on which he bestowed the names of St. Mary of the Conception, Fernandina, and Isabella. But, as their soil, productions, and inhabitants nearly resembled those of San Salvador, he made no stay in any of them. He inquired eveiy where tor gold, and the signs that were uniformly made by way of answer, confirmed him in the opinion that it was brought from the south. He followed that course, and soon discovered a country which appeared veiy extensive, not perfectly level, like those which he nad already visited, but so diversified with rising grounds, hills, rivers, woods, and plains, that he was uncertain whether it might prove an island, or part oi the continent. The natives of San Salvador, whom he had on board, called it Cuba; Columbus gave it the name of Juana. He entered the mouth of a large river with his squadron, and all the inhabitants fled to the mountains as he approached the shore. But as he resolved to careen the ships in that place, he sent some Spaniards, together with one of the people of San Salvador, to view the interior part of the country. They, having advanced above sixty miles fro'ifi the shore, leported, upon their return, that the soil was richer tnd more cultivated than my they had hitherto discovered ; that, besides many scattered cottages, they had found one village, containing above a thousand inhabitants; thai the people, though naked, seemed to be more inte'ligent than those of San Salvador, but had treated them with the same respectful attention, kissing their feet, and honouring them as sacred beings allied to heaven ; that they had given them to eat a certain root, the taste of which resembled roasted chestnuts, and likewise a singular species of corn called maize, which, either when roasted whole or ground into meal, was abundantly palatable ; that there seemed to be no four-footed animals in the country, but a species of dogs, which could not bark, and a creature resembling a rabbit, but of a much smaller size ; that they had observed some ornaments of gold amon" the people, but of no great value. t These messengers had prevailed with some of the natives to accompany them, who informed Columbus, that the gold of which they made their ornaments was found in Cubanacan. By this word they meant the middle or inland part of Cuba ;'hut Columbus, being ignorant of their language, as well as unaccustomed to their pronunciation, and his thoughts running continually upon his own theoiy concerning the discover}' of the East Indies, he was '.ed« by the resemblance of sound, to suppose thnt they spoke of the great Khan, and imagined that the opulent kingdom of Ciii/ia^, described by Marco Polo, was not very remote. This induced him to employ some time in viewing the country. He visited almost t very harbour, from Porto del Principe, on the north coast of Cul)a, to the eastern extremity of the island : but, though delighted with the beauty of the scenes which every where presented themselves, and amazed at the luxuriant fertility of the • Pet. Met!, cpisl. 135. t Life of ColnrabiB, c. C4— 98. Herrcra, dec. 1. lib. i. c. 1".. Vol. 1,-8 58 HISTORY OF [Book II. soil, both which, from their novelty, made a more lively impression upon his imagination [14], he did not find gold in such quantity as was sufficient to satisfy either the avarice of his followers, or the expectations of the court to which he was to return. The people of the country, as much astonished at his eagerness in quest of gold as the Europeans were at their ignorance and simplicity, pointed towards the east, where an island which they called Hayti was situated, in which that metal was more abundant than among them. Columbus ordered his squadron to bend its course thither ; but Marton Alonso Pinzon, impatient to be the first who should take possession of the treasures which this country was supposed to contain, quitted his companions, regardless of all the admiral's signals to slacken sail until they should come up with him. Columbus, retarded by contrary winds, did not reach Hayti till the sixth of December. He called the port where he first touched St. Nicholas, and the island itself Espagnola, in honour of the kingdom by which he was employed ; and it is the only countiy, of those he had yet discovered, which has retained the name that he gave it. As he could neither meet with the Pinta, nor have any intercourse with the inhabitants, who fled in great consternation towards tlie woods, he soon quitted St. Nicholas, and, sailing along the northern coast of the island, he entered another harbour, v^ hich he called Conception. Here he was more ibrtunate ; his people overtook a woman who was flying iVom them, and after treating her w ith great gentle- ness, dismissed her with a present of such toys as they knew were most valued in those regions. The description which she gave to her countrymen of the humanity and wonderful qualities of the strangers ; their admiration of the trinkets, which she showed with exultation ; and their eagerness to participate of the same favours ; removed all their fears, and induced many of them to repair to the harbour. The strange objects which they beheld, and the baubles which Columbus bestowed upon them, amply gratified their curiosity and their wishes. They nearly resembled the people of Guanahani and Cuba. They were naked like themj ignorant and simple ; and seemed to be equally unacquainted with all the arts which appear most necessary in polished societies ; but they were gentle, credulous, and timid, to a degree which rendered it easy to acquire the ascendant over them, espe- cially as their excessive admiration led them into the same error with the people of the other islands, in believing the Spaniards to be more than mortals, and descended immediately from heaven. They possessed gold in' greater abundance than their neighbours, which they readily exchanged ibr bells, beads, or pins ; and in this unequal traffic both parties were highly pleased, each considering themselves as gainers by the transaction. Here Columbus was visited by a prince or cazique of the countiy. He appeared with all the pomp known among a simple people, being carried in a sort of palanquin upon the shoulder? of four men, and attended by many of his subjects, who served him with great respect. His deportment was grave and stately, very reserved towards his own people, but with Columbus and the Spaniards extremely courteous. He gave the admiral some thin plates of gold, and a girdle of curious workmanship, receiving in return presents of small value, but highly acceptable to him.* Columbus, still intent on discovering the mines which yielded gold, continued to interrogate all the natives with whom he had any intercourse, concerning their situation. They concurred in pointing out a mountainous country, which they called Cibao, at some distance tiom the sea, and further towards the east. Struck with this sound, which appeared to him the same with Cipango, the name by which Marco Polo, and other travellers to the east, distinguished the island of Japan, he no longer doubted with respect to the vicinity of the countries which he had discovered to the remote parts ♦ I-ife of Columbus, c. 32, Hcrrera. dec. 1. lib. i. c. 15, fcr. AMERICA. 59 of Asia ; and, in full expectation of reaching soon those regions which had been the object of his voyage, he directed his course towards the east. He put into a commodious harbour, which he called St. Thomas, and found that district to be under the government of a powerful cazique, named Guacanahari, who, as he afterwards learned, was one of the five sovereigns among whom the whole island was divided. He immediately sent messen- gers to Columbus, who in his name delivered to him the present of a mask curiously fashioned with the ears, nose, and mouth of beaten gold, and invited him to the place of his residence, near the harbour now called Cape Francois, some leagues towards the east. Columbus despatched some of his officers to visit this prince, who, as he behaved himself with greater dignity, seemed to claim more attention. They returned with such favour- able accounts both of the country and of the people, as made Columbus impatient for that interview with Guacanahari to which he had been invited. He sailed for this purpose from St. Thomas, on the twenty-fourth of December, with a fair wind, and the sea perfectly calm ; and as, amidst the multiplicity of his occupations, he had not shut his eyes for two days, he retired at midnight in order to take some repose, haying committed the helm to the pilot, with strict injunctions not to quit it for a moment. The pilot, dreading no danger, carelessly lei't the helm to an unexperienced cabin boy, and the ship, carried away by a current, was dashed against a rock. The violence of the shock awakened Columbus. He ran up to the deck. There all was confusion and despair. He alone retained presence of mind. He ordered some of the sailors to take a boat, and carry out an anchor astern ; but, instead of obeying, they made off towards the Nigna, which was about half a league distant. He then commanded the masts to be cut down, in order to lighten the ship ; but all his endeavours were too late ; the vessel opened near the keel, and tilled so fast with water that its loss was inevitable. The smoothness of the sea, and the timely assistance of boats from the Nigna, enabled the crew to save their lives. As soon as the islanders heard of this disaster, they crowded to the shore, with their prince Guacanahari at their head. Instead of taking advantage of the distress in which they beheld the Spaniards, to attempt any thing to their detriment, they lamented their misfortune with tears of sincere condolence. Not satisfied with this unavailing expression of their sympathy, they put to sea a number of canoes, and, under the direction of the Spaniards, assisted in saving whatever could be got out of the wreck ; and, by the united labour of so many hands, almost every thing of value was carried ashore. As fast as the goods were landed, Guacanahari in person took charge of them. By his orders they were all deposited in one place, and armed sentinels were posted, who kept the multitude at a distance, in order to prevent them not only from embezzling, but from inspecting too curiously what belonged to their guests. [15] Next morning this prince visited Columbus, who was now on board the Nigna, and endeavoured to console him for his loss, by offering all that he possessed to repair it.* The condition of Columbus was such that he stood in need of consolation. He had hitherto procured no intelligence of the Pinta, and no longer doubted but that his treacherous associate had set sail for Europe, in order to have the merit of carrying the first tidings of the extraordinary discoveries which had been made, and to preoccupy so far the ear of their sovereign, as to rob him of the glory and reward to which he was justly entitled. There remained but one vessel, and that the smallest and most crazy of the souadron, to traverse such a vast ocean, and carry so many men back to Europe. Each of those circumstances was alarming, and filled the mind of Columbus with the utmost solicitude. The desire of overtaking Pinzon, and of eflfacing the unfavourable impressions which his misrepresentatioas might make in * Ilerrora. dee. 1. lib. i. c. 1?. 60 HISTORY OF fBooKlI. Spain, made it necessary to return thither without delay. The diflBculty oi taking such a number of persons on board the Nigna confirmed him in an opinion which the fertihtv of the country, and the gentle temper of the people, had already induced him to form. He resolved to leave a part of his crew in the island, that by residing there, they might learn the language of the natives, study their disposition, examine the nature of the country, search for mines, prepare for the commodious settlement of the colony with which he purposed to return, and thus secure and facilitate the ac(juisition of those advantages which he expected from his discoveries. V\ hen he mentioned this to his men, all approved of the design ; and from impatience under the fatigue of a long voyage, tVom the levity natural to sailors, or from the hopesof amassing wealth ina country which atforded such promising specimens of its riches, many otfered voluntarily to be among the number of those who should remain. Nothing was now wanting towards the execution of this scheme, but to obtain the consent of Guacanahari ; and his unsuspicious simplicity soon presented to the admiral a favourable opportunity of proposing it. Columbus having, in the best manner he could, by broken words and signs, expressed some curiosity to know the cause which had moved the islanders to fly with such precipitation upon the approach of his ships, the cazique informed him that the country was much infested by the incursions of certain people, whom he called Carribeans, who inhabited several islands to the south-east. These he described as a tierce and warlike race of men, who delighted in blood, and devoured the flesh of the prisoners who were so unhappy as to fall uito their hands ; and as the Spaniards at their first appearance were supposed to be Carribeans, whom the natives, however numerous, durst not face in battle, they had recourse to their usual method of securing their safety, by fly ina: into the thickest and most impenetrable woods. Guacanahari, while speaking of those dreadful invaders, discovered such symptoms of terror, as well as such consciousness of the inability of his own people to resist them, as led Columbus to conclude that he would not be alarmed at the proposition of any scheme which afforded him the prospect of an addi- tional security against their attacks. He instantly oiTered him the assistance of the Spaniards to repel his enemies: he engaged to take him and his people under the protection of the powerful monarch whom he served, and offiered to leave in the island such a number of his men as should be sufli- cient, not only to defend the inhabitants from future incursions, but to avenge their past wrongs. The ci-edulous prince closed eagerly with the proposal, and thought himself already sate under the patronao;e of beings sprung from heaven, and superior in power to mortal men. The ground was marked out for a small fort, which Columbus called JVavidad, because he had landed there on Christmas day. A deep ditch was drawn around it. The ramparts were fortified with pallisades, and the great guns, saved out of the admiral's ship, were planted upon them. In ten days the work was finished; that simple race of men labouring with inconsiderate assiduity in erecting this first monument of their own servitude. During this time, Columbus, by his caresses and liberality, laboured to increase the high opinion which the natives entertained of the Spaniards. But while he endeavoured to inspire them with confidence in their disposition to do good, he wished likewise to give them some striking idea of their power to punish and destroy such as were the oiyects of their indignation. With this view, in presence of a vast assembly, he drew up his inen in order of battle, and made an ostenta- tious but innocent display of the sharpness of the Spanish swords, of the force of their spears, and the operation of their cross-bows. These rude people, strangers to the use of iron, and unacquainted with any hostile weapons but arrows of reed pointed with the bones of fishes, wooden swords, andjavelins hardened in the fire, wondered and trembled. Before this surprise or fear AMERICA. 01 had time to abate, he ordered the ^eat guns to be tired. The sudden explosion struck them with such terror that they fell flat to the ground, covering their faces with their hands ; and when they beheld the astonishing effect of the bullets among the trees, towards which the cannon had been pointed, they concluded that it was impossible to resist men, who had the command of such destructive instruaients, and who came armed with thunder and lightning against iheir eneuiies. After giving such impressions both of the beneficence and power of the Spaniards, as might have rendered it easy to preserve an ascendant over the minds of the natives, Columbus appointed thirty-eight of his people to remain in the island. He intrusted the command of these to Diego de Arado, a gentleman of Cordova, investing him with the same powers which he himself had received from Ferdinand and Isabella ; and furnished him with every thing requisite tor the subsistence or defence of this infant colony, lie strictly enjoined them to maintain concord among themselves, to yield an unreserved obedience to then- commander, to avoid giving offence to the natives by any violence or exaction, to cultivate the triendship of Guacanahari, but not to put themselves in his power by straggling in small parties, or marching too far from the fort. He promised to visit them soon with such a reinforcement of strength as might enable them to take full possession of the country, and to reap all the fruits of their discoveries. In the mean time he engaged to mention their names to the king and queen, and to place their merit and services in the most advantageous light.* Having thus taken every precaution for the secuiiiy of the colony, he left Navidad on the tburth of January, one thousand lour hundred and ninety-three, and steering towards the east, discovered and gave names to most of the harbours on the northern coast of the island. On the sixth he descried the Pinta, and soon came up with her, after a separation of more than six weeks. Finzon endeavoured to justify his conduct by pretending that he had been driven from his course by stress of weather, and prevented from returning by contraiy winds. The admirai, though he still suspected his perfidious intentions, and knew well what he uiged in his own delience to be frivolous as well as t'alse, was so sensible that this was not a proper time for venturing upon jiny high strain of authority, and felt such satisfaction in this junction with his consort, which delivered him from many disquieting apprehensions, that, lame as Pinzon's apology was, he admitted of it without diificulty, and restored him to favour. During his absence from the admiral, Pinzon had visited several harbours in the island, had acquired some gold by trafficking with the natives, but had made no discovery of any importance. From the condition of his ships, as well as the temper of his men, Columbus now found it necessary to hasten his return to Europe. The foraier having suffered much during a voyage of such an unusual length, were extremely leaky. The latter expressed the utmost impatience to revisit their native country, from which they had been so long absent, and where they had things so wonderful and unheard-of to relate. Accordingly, on the sixteenth of January, he directed his course towards the north-cast, and soon lost sight of land. He had on board some of the natives, whom he had taken from the different islands which he discovered ; and besides the gold, which was the chief object of research, he had collected specimens of all the productions which were likely to become subjects of commerce in the several countries, as well as many unknown birds, and other natural curiosities, which might attract the attention of the learned, or excite the wonder of the people. The voyage was prosperous to the fourteenth of February, and he had advanced near five hundred leagues across the Atlantic ocean, when the wind began to rise, and continued to blow with increasing ♦ Oviedo ap. Bamusio, iii. p. 82. E. IJerrera, dec. I. lib. i. c. 20. Life of Columbus, c. 3;. 62 HISTORY OF [Book II. TRg;e, which terminated in a furious hurricane. Every thing that the naval skill and experience of Columbus could devise was employed in order to save the ships. But it was impossible to withstand the violence of the storm, and, as they were still far from any land, destruction seemed inevitable. The sailors had recourse to prayers to Almighty God, to the invocation of saints, to vows, and charms, to every thing that religion dictates, or superstition suggests to the affrighted mind of man. rfo prospect of deliverance appearing, they abandoned themselves to despair, and expected every moment to be swallowed up in the waves. Besides the passions ^vhich naturally agitate and alarm the human mind in such awful situations, ■when certain d.eath, in one of his most terrible forms, is before it, Columbus had to endure feelings of distress peculiar to himself. He dreaded that all knowledge of the amazing discoveries which he had made was now to perish ; mankind were to be deprived of every benefit that might have been derived from the happy success of his schemes, and his own name would descend to posterity as that of a rash deluded adventurer, instead of being transmitted with the honour due to the author and conductor of the most noble enterprise that had ever been undertaken. These reflections extinguished all sense of his own personal danger. Less affected with the loss of life than solicitous to preserve the memoiy of what he had attempted and achieved, he retired to his cabin and wrote upon a parchment a short account of the voyage which he had made, of the course which he had taken, of the situation and riches of the countries which he had discovered, and of the colony that he had left there. Having wrapped up this in an oiled cloth, which he enclosed in a cake of wax, he put it into a cask carefully stopped up, and threw it into the sea, in hopes that some fortunate accident might preserve a deposit of so much importance to the world.*[l6] At length Providence interposed to save a life reserved for other services. The wind abated, the sea became calm, and on the evening of the fifteenth, Columbus and his companions discovered land ; and though uncertain what it was, they made towards it. They soon knew it to be St. Mary, one of the Azores or western isles, subject to the crown of Portugal. There, after a violent contest with the governor, in which Columbus displayed no less spirit than prudence, he obtained a supply of fresh provisions, and whatever else he needed. One circumstance, however, greatly disquieted him. The Pinta, of which he had lost sight on the first day of the hurri- cane, did not appear ; he dreaded for some time that she had foundered at sea, and that all her crew had perished ; afterwards, his former suspicions recurred, and he became apprehensive that Pinzon had borne away for Spain, that he might reach it before him, and by giving the first account of his discoveries, might obtain some share of his fame. In order to prevent this, he left the Azores as soon as the weather would permit [Feb. 24]. At no great distance from the coast of Spain, when near the end of his voyage, and seemingly beyond the reach of any disaster, another storm arose, little inferior to the former in violence; and after driving before it during two days and two nights, he was forced to take^ shelter in the river Tagus [March 4]. Upon application to the King of Portugal, he was allowed to come up to Lisbon ; and, notwithstanding the envy which it was natural tor the Portuguese to feel, when they beheld another nation entering upon that province of discovery which they had hitherto deemed peculiarly their own, and in its first essay not only rivalhng but eclipsing their fame, Columbus was received with all the marks of distinction due to a man who had performed things so extraordinary and unexpected. The King admitted him into his presence, treated him with the highest respect, and listened to the account which he gave of his voyage * Life of Columbus, c. 37. Heriera, <\vc. I. lib. ii. r. 1. 2. AMERICA. 63 with admiration mingled with regret. While Columbus, on his part, enjoyed the satisfaction of describing the importance of his discoveries, and of being now able to prove the solidity of his schemes to those veiy persons, who, with an ignorance disgraceful to themselves, and fatal to their country, had lately rejected them as the projects of a visionary or designing adventurer.* Columbus was so impatient to return to Spain, that he remamed only five days in Lisbon. On the fifteenth of March he arrived in the port of Palos, seven months and eleven days from the time when he set out thence upon his voyage. As soon as the ship was discovered approaching the port, all the inhabitants of Palos ran eagerly to the shore, in order to welcome their relations and fellow-citizens, and to hear tidings of their voyage. When the prosperous issue of it was known, when they beheld the strange people, the unknown animals, and singular productions, brought trom the countries which had been discovered, the effusion of joy was general and unbounded. The bells were rung, the cannon fired ; Columbus was received at landing with royal honours, and all the people in soienm pro- cession, accompanied him and his crew to the church, where they returned thanks to Heaven, which had so wonderfully conducted and crowned with success a voyage of greater length and of more importance than had been attempted in any former age. On the evening of the same day, he had the satisfaction of seeuig the Pinta, which the violence of the tempest had driven far to the north, enter the harbour. The first care of Columbus was to inform the King and Queen, who were then at Barcelona, of his arrival and success. Ferdinand and Isabella, no less astonished than delighted with this unexpected event, desired Columbus, in terms the most respectful and flattering, to repair immediately to court, that from his own mouth they might receive a full detail of his extraordinary services and discoveries. During his journey to Barcelona, the people crowded from the adjacent countiy, following himeveiy where with admi- ration and applause. His entrance into the city was conducted, by order of Ferdinand and Isabella, with pomp suitable to the great event, which added such distinguishing lustre to their reign. The people whom he brought along with him from the countries which he had discovered, marched first, and by their singular complexion, the wild peculiarity of their features, and uncouth finery, appeared like men of another species. Next to them were carried the ornaments of gold, fashioned by the rude art of the natives, the grains of gold found in the mountains, and dust of the same metal gathered in the rivers. After these appeared the various commodities of the new discovered countries, together with their curious productions. Columbus himself closed the procession, and attracted the eyes of all the spectators, who gazed with admiration on the extraordinary man, whose superior sagacity and tbrtitude had conducted their countrymen, by a route concealed from past ages, to the knowledge of a new world. Ferdinand and Isabella received him clad in their royal robes, and seated upon a throne, under a magnificent canopy. When he approached, they stood up, and raising him as he kneeled to kiss their hands, commanded him to take his seat upon a chair prepared for him, and to give a circumstantial account of his voyage. He delivered it with a gravity and composure no less suitable to the disposition of the Spanish nation than to the dignity of the audience in which he spoke, and with that modest simplicity which characterizes men of superior minds, who, satisfied with having performed great actions, court not vain applause by an ostentatious display of their exploits. When he had finished his narration, the king and queen, kneeling flown, offered up solemn thanks to Almighty God for the discovery of those new regions, from which they expected so many advantages to flow in upon * liife of Columbus, c. 40, 41. Heriera, dec. 1. lib. ii. c 3. (A HISTORY OF [Book U. the kingdoms subject to their government. [17] Every mark of honour that gratitude or admiration could suggest was conferred upon Columbus. Letters patent were issued, confinning to him and to his heirs all the privileges contained in the capitulation concluded at Santa Fe ; his family w^as enno- bled ; the king and queen, and alter their example the courtiess, treated him on every occasion with all the ceremonious respect paid to persons of the highest rank. But what pleased him most, as it gratified his active mind, bent continually upon great objects, was an order to equip, without delay, an armament ot such Ibrce as might enable him not only to tai^e possession of the countries which he had already discovered, but to go in search of those more opulent regions which he still confidently expected to find.* While preparations were making for this expedition, the tame of Columbus's successful voyage spread over Europe, and excited general attention. The multitude, struck with amazement when they heard that a new world had been found, could hardly believe an event so much above their conception. Men of science, capable of comprehending the nature, and of discerning the effects of this great discovery, received the account of it with admiration and joy. They spoke of his voyage with rapture, and congiatulated one another upon then- felicity in having lived hi the period when, by this ex- traordinary event, the boundaries of human knowledge were so much extended, and such a new field of inquiry and observation opened, as would lead mankind to a perfect acquaintance with the stiiicture and productions of the habitable globe. t [18] Various opinions and conjectures were formed concerning the new found countries, and what division of the earth they belonged to. Columbus adhered tenaciously to his original opinion, that they should be reckoned a part of those vas^ regions in Asia, compre- hended under the general name of India. This sentiment was confirmed by the observations which he made concerning the productions of the countries he had discovered. Gold was known to abound in India, anu he had met with such promising samples of it in the islands which he visited, as led him to believe that rich mines of it might be found. Cotton, another production of the East Indies, was common there. The pimento of the islands he imagined to be a species of the East Indian pepper. He mistook a root, somewhat resembling rhubarb, for that valuable drug, which was then supposed to be a plant peculiar to the East Indies. J The birds brought home by him were adorned with the same rich plumage which distin- guishes those of India. The alligator of the one country appeared to be the same with the crocodile of the other. After weighing all these circum- stances, not only the Spaniards, but the other nations of Europe, seem to have adopted the opinion of Columbus. The countries v\ hich he had discovered were considered as a part of India. In consequence of this notion, the name of Indies is giveii to them by Ferdinand and Isabella, in a ratification of their former agreement, which was granted to Columbus upon his retuni.§ Even after the error which gave rise to this opinion was defected, and the true position of the New World was ascertained, the name has remained, and the rippellation of West Indies is given by all the people of Europe to the country, and tliat of Indians to its inhabitants. The name by which Columbus distinguished the countries which he had discovered was so inviting, the specimens oi their riches and fertility which he produced were so considerable, and the reports of his companions, delivered frequently with the exaggeration natural to travellers, so favourable, as to excite a wonderful spirit of enterprise among the Spaniards. Though little accustomed to naval expeditions, they were impatient to set out upon their voyage. Volunteers of every rank solicited to be employed. Allured by the inviting prospects which opened to their ambition and avarice, * Life of Columbus, c. 42, 43. Herrera, dec. 1. lib. ii. c. 3. 12 P. Mart. epiBt. 133, 134, 135. t Herrera, dec. 1. lib. i. c. 20. Gomera Hist. c. 17. § Life B.eS. ao HISTORY OF [Book II. Teenth of September, one thousand four hundred and ninety-nine, two years two months and fiye days from the time he left that port.* Thus, during the course of the fifteenth century, mankind made greater progress in exploring the state of the habitable globe, than in all the ages which had elapsed previous to that period. The spirit of discovery, feeble at first and cautious, ?noved within a very narrow sphere, and made its eflforts with hesitation and timidity. Encouraged by success, it became adventurous, and boldly extended its operations. In the course of its pro- gression, it continued to acquire vigour, and advanced at length with a rapidity and force which burst through all the limits within which ignorance and fear had hitherto circumscribed the activity of the human race. Almost fifty years were employed by the Portuguese in creeping along the coast of Africa from Cape Non to Cape de Verd, the latter of which lies only tweive degrees to the south of the former. In less than thirty years they ventured heyonl the equinoctial line into another hemisphere, and penetrated to the southern extremity of Africa, at the distance of forty-nine degrees from Cape de Verd. During the last seven years of the century, a New World was discovered in the west, not inferior in extent to all the parts of the earth with which mankind were at that time acquainted. In the East, unknown seas and countries were found out, and a communication, long desired, but hitherto concealed, was opened between Europe and the opulent regions of India. In comparison with events so wonderful and unexpected, all that had hitherto been deemed great or splendid faded away and disappeared. Vast objects now presented themselves. The human mind, roused and interested by the prospect, engaged with ardour in pursuit of them, and exerted its active powers in a new direction. This spirit of enterprise, though but newly awakened in Spain, began soon to operate extensively. All the attempts towards discovery made in that kingdom had hitherto been carried on by Columbus alone, and at the expense of the Sovereign. But now private adventurers, allured by the magnificent descriptions he gave of the regions which he had visited, as well as by the specimens of their. wealth which he produced, offered to fit out squadrons at their own risk, and to go in quest of new countries. The Spanish court, whose scanty revenues were exhausted by the charge of its expeditions to the New World, which, though they opened alluring prospects of future benefit, yielded a very sparing return of present profit, was extrem.ely willing to devolve the burden of discovery upon its subjects. It seized with joy an opportunity of rendering the avarice, the ingenuity, and efforts of projectors instrumental in promoting designs of certain advan- tage to the public, though of doubtful success with respect to themselves. One of the first propositions of this kind was made by Alonzo de Ojeda, a gallant and active officer, who had accompanied Columbus in his second voyage. His rank and character procured him such credit with the mer- chants of Seville, that they undertook to equip four ships, provided he could obtain the royal license, authorizing the voyage. The powerftil patronage of the Bishop of Badajos easily secured success in a suit so agreeable to the court. Without consulting Columbus, or regarding the rights and jurisdiction which he had acquired by the capitulation in one thousand four hundred and ninety-two,. Ojeda was permitted to set out for the New World. In order to direct his course, the bishop communicated to him the admiral's journal of his last voyage, and his charts of the countries which he had discovered. Ojeda struck out into no new path of navigation, but adhering servilely to the route which Columbus had taken, arrived on the coast of Paria [May]. He traded with the natives, and, standing to the west, proceeded as tar as Cape de Vela, and ranged along a considerable extent of coast beyond that on which Columbus ♦ RamuBio, vol. i. U?. IV AMERICA. HI had touched. Having thus ascertained the opinion of Columbus, that this country was a part of the continent, Ojeda returned by way of Hispaniola to Spain [October], with some reputation as a discoverer, but with little benefit to those who had raised the funds for the expedition.* Ameriffo Vespucci, a Florentine gentleman, accompanied Ojeda in this Voyage, in what station he served is uncertain ; but as he was an experienced sailor, and eminently skilled in all the sciences subservient to navigation, he seems to have acquired such authority among his companions, that they willingly allowed him to have a chief share in directing their operations during the voyage. Soon after his return, he transmitted an account of his adventures and discoveries to one of his countrymen ; and labouring with the vanity of a traveller to magnify his own exploits, he had the address and confidence to frame his narrative so as to make it appear that he had the glory of having first discovered the continent in the New World. Amerigo s account was drawn up not only with art, but with some elegance. It contained an amusing history of his voyage, and judicious observations upon the natural productions, the inhabitants, and the customs of the countries which he had visited. As it was the first description of any part of the New World that was published, a performance so well calculated to gratify the passion of mankind for what is new and mar\ ellous, circulated rapidly, and was read with admiration. The country of which Amerigo was supposed to be the discoverer, came gradually to be called by his name. The caprice of mankind, often as unaccountable as unjust, has perpetuated this error. By the universal consent of nations, America is the name bestowed on this new quarter of the globe. The bold pretensions of a fortunate impostor, have robbed the discoverer of the New World of a distinction which belonged to him. The name of Amerigo has supplanted that of Columbus ; and mankind ma^ regret an act of injustice, which, having received the sanction of time, it is now too late to redress. [22] During the same year, another voyage of discovery was undertaken. Columbus not only introduced the spirit of naval enterprise into Spain, but all the first adventurers who distinguished themselves in this new career were formed by his instructions, and acquired in his voyages the skill and information which qualified them to imitate his example. Alonso Nigno, who had served under the admiral in his last expedition, fitted out a single ship, in conjunction with Christopher Guerra, a merchant of Seville, and sailed to the coast of Paria. This voyage seems to have been conducted with greater attention to private emolument than to any general or national object. Nigno and Guerra made no discoveries of any importance ; but they brought home such a return of gold and pearls as inflamed their coun- trymen with the desire of engaging in similar adventures.! Soon after [Jan. 13, 1500], Vincent Yanez Pinzon, one of the admiral's companions in his first voyage, sailed from Palos with four ships. He stood boldly towards the south, and was the first Spaniard who ventured across the equinoctial line ; but he seems to have landed on no part of the coast beyond the mouth of the Maragnon, or river of the Amazons. All these navigators adopted the erroneous theory of Columbus, and believed that the countries which they had discovered were part of the vast continent of India,| During the last year of the fifteenth century, that fertile district of America, on the confines of which Pinzon had stopped short, \ as more fully discovered. The successful voyage of Gama to the East Indies having encouraged the King of Portugal to fit out a fleet so powerful as not only to carry on trade but to attempt conquest, he gave the command of it to Pedro Alvarez Cabral. In order to avoid the coast of Africa, where he was * Herrera, dec. 1. lib. iv. c. 1, 9, 3. t T. Mariyr, dee. p. 87. Herren, dec. 1. lib. iv. c. ri. 1 Herrera, doc. 1. lib. iv. r C>. P. Marlvr, dec. p. «5. Vol. I.-H 82 HISTORY OF [Book II. certain of meeting with variable breezes or frequent calms, which mi^ht retard his voyage, Cabral stood out to sea, and kept so far to the west, that, to his surprise, he found himself upon the shore of an unknown country, in the tenth degree beyond the line. He imagined at first that it was some island in the Atlantic ocean, hitherto unobserved ; but, proceeding along its coast for several days, he was led gradually to believe, that a country so extensive fonned a part of some great continent. This latter opinion was well founded. The country with which he fell in belongs to that province in South America now known by the name of Brasil. He landed ; and having formed a very high idea of the fertility of the soil, and agreea- bleness ot the climate, he took possession of it for the crown of Portugal, and despatched a ship to Lisbon with an account of this event, which appeared to be no less important than it was unexpected.* Columbus's discovery of the New World was the effort of an active genius enlightened by science, guided by experience, and actins: upon a regular plan executed with no less courage than perseverance. But from this adventure of the Portuguese, it appears that chance might have accomplished that ereat design which it is now the pride of human reason to have formed and perfected. If the sagacity of Columbus had not conducted mankind to America, Cabral, by a fortunate accident, might have led them, a few years later, to the knowledge of that extensive continent. t While the Spaniards and Portuguese, by those successive voy^es, were daily acquiring more enlarged ideas of the extent and opulence of that quarter of the globe which Columbus had made known to them, he himself, far from enjoying the tranquillity and honours with which his Services should have been recompensed, was struggling with every distress in which the envy and malevolence of the people under his command, or the ingratitude of the court which he served, could involve him. Though the pacification with Roldan broke the union and weakened the force of the mutineers, it did not extirpate the seeds of discord out of the island. Several of the malecontents continued in arms, refusing to submit to the admiral. He and his brothers were obliged to take the field alter- nately, in order to check their mcursions, or to punish their crimes. The perpetual occupation and disquiet which this created, prevented him from giving due attention to the dangerous machinations of his enemies in the court of Spain. A good number of such as were most dissatisfied with his administration had embraced the opportunity of retumins: to Europe with the ships which he despatched from St. Domingo. The final disappointment of all their hopes inflamed the rage of these unfortunate adventurers against Columbus to the utmost pitch. Their poverty and distress, by exciting compassion, rendered their accusations credible, and their complaints inte- resting. They teased Ferdinand and Isabella incessantly with memorials, containing the detail of their own grievances, and the articles of their charge against Columbus. Whenever either the king or queen appeared in public, they surrounded them in a tumultuary manner, insisting with importunate clamours for the payment of the arrears due to them, and de- manding vengeance upon the author of their sufferings. They insulted the admiral's sons wherever they met them, reproaching them as the offspring of the projector, whose fatal curiosity had discovered those pernicious regions which drained Spain of its wealth, and would prove the grave of its people. These avowed endeavours of the malecontents from America to ruin Columbus, were seconded by the secret but more dangerous insinu- ations of that party among the courtiers, which had always thwarted his ■chemes, and envied his success and credit. J Ferdinand was disposed to listen, not only with a willing but with a partial ear, to these accusations. Notwithstanding the flattering accounts which ♦ Herrera, dec. ]. lib. iv. c. 7. t Ibiii. doc. 1. lib. vii. c. 5. J Life of Columbus, c. 85. AMERICA. 83 Columbus had given of (he riches of America, the remittances from it had hitherto been so scanty that they fell far short of defraying the expense of the armaments fitted out. The giory of the discovery, together with the prospect of remote commercial advantages, was all that Spain had yet received in return for the efforts which she had made. But time had already diminished the first sensations of joy which the discovery of a New World occasioned, and fame alone was not an object to satisfy the cold interested mind of Ferdinand. The nature of commerce was then so little understood that, where immediate gain was not acquired, the hope of distant benefit, or of slow and moderate returns, was totally disregarded. Ferdinand considered Spain, on this account, as having lost by the enterprise of Columbus, and imputed it to his misconduct and incapacity for govern- ment, that a country abounding in gold had yielded nothing of value to its conquerors. Even Isabella, who from the favourable opinion which she entertained of Columbus had uniformly protected him, was shaken at length by the number and boldness of his accusers, and beeran to suspect that a disaffection so general must have been occasioned by real grievances which called for redress. The Bishop of Badajos, with his usual animosity against Columbus, encouraged these suspicions, and confirmed them. As soon as the queen began to give way to the torrent of calumny, a resolution fatal to Columbus was taken. Francis dc Bovadilla, a knight of Calatrava, was appointed to repair to Hispaniola, with full powers to inquire into the conduct of Columbus, and if he should find the charge of malad- ministration proved, to supersede him, and assume the government of the island. It was impossible to escape condemnation, when this preposterous commission made it the interest of the judge to pronounce the person whom he was sent to try, guilty. Though Columbus had now composed all the dissensions in the island ; though he had brought both Spaniards and Indians to submit peaceably to his government ; though he had made such effectual provision for working the mines, and cultivating the country, as Avould have secured a considerable revenue to the king, as well as large profits to individuals ; Bovadilla, without deigning to attend to the nature or merit of those services, discovered from the moment that he landed in Hispaniola, a determined purpose of treating him as a criminal. He took possession of the admiral s house in St. Domingo, from which its master happened at that time to be absent, and seized his effects, as if his guilt had been already fully proved ; he rendered himself master of the fort and of the King's stores by violence ; he required all persons to acknowledge him as supreme governor ; he set at liberty the prisoners confined by the admiral, and summoned him to appear before his tribunal, in order to answer for his conduct ; transmitting to him, together with the summons, a copy of the royal mandate, by which Columbus was enjoined to yield implicit obedience to his commands. Columbus, though deeply affected with the ingratitude and injustice of Ferdinand and Isabella, did not hesitate a moment about his own conduct. He submitted to the will of his sovereigns with a respectful silence, and repaired directly [October] to the court of that violent and partial judge whom they had authorized to try him. Bovadilla, without admitting him into his presence, ordered him instantly to be arrested, to be loaded with chains, and hurried on board a ship. Even under this humiliating reverse of fortune, the firmnessof mind which distinguishes the character of Columbus did not forsake him. Conscious of his own integrity, and solacing himself with reflecting upon the great things which he had achieved, he endured this insult offered to his character, not only with composure but with dignity. Nor had he the consolation of sympathy to mitigate his sufferings. Bovadilla had already rendered himself so extremely por>ular, by granting various immunities to the colony, by liberal donations of Indians to all who applied for them, and by relaxing the reins of discipline and government. W HISTORY OF [Book II. that the Spaniards, who were mostly adventurers, whom their indigence or crimes had compelled to abandon their native country, expressed tlie most indecent satisfaction with the disgrace and imprisonment of Columbus. They flattered themselves that now they should enjoy an uncontrolled liberty more suitable to their disposition and former habits of life. Among persons thus prepared to censure the proceedings, and to asperse the character of Columbus, Bovadilla collected materials for a charge against him. All accusations, the most improbable as well as inconsistent, were received. No informer, however infamous, was rejected. The result of this inquest, no less indecent than partial, he transmitted to Spain. At the same time he ordered Columbus, with his two brothers, to be carried thither in fetters ; and, adding cruelty to insult, he confined them in different ships, and excluded them from the comfort of that friendly intercourse which might have soothed their common distress. But while the Spaniards in Hispaniola viewed the arbitrary and insolent proceedings of Bovadilla with a general approbation, which reflects dishonour upon their name and country, one man still retained a proper sense of the great actions which Columbus had performed, and was touched with the sentiments of veneration and pity due to his rank, his age, and his merit. Alonzo de Valejo, the captain of the vessel on board which the admiral was confined, as soon as he was clear of the island, approached his prisoner with great respect, and offered to release him from the fetters with which he was unjustly loaded. " No," replied Columbus with a generous indignation, " I wear these irons io consequence of an order from my sovereigns. They shall find me as obedient to this as to their other injunctions. By their command I have been confined, and their command alone shall set me at liberty."* Nov. 23.] Fortunatelv, the voyage to Spain was extremely short. As soon as Ferdinand and Isabella were informed that Columbus was brought home a prisoner and in chains, thej perceived at once what universal astonishment this event must occasion, and what an impression to their disadvantage it must make. All Europe, they foresaw, would be filled with indignation at this ungenerous requital of a man who had performed actions worthy of the highest recompense, and would exclaim against the injustice of the nation, to which he had been such an eminent benefactor, as well as against the ingratitude of the princes whose reign he had rendered illustrious. Ashamed of their own conduct, and eager not only to make some reparation for this injury, but to efface the stain which it might fix upon their character, they instantly issued orders to set Columbus at liberty [Dec. 17], invited him to court, and remitted money to enable him to appear there in a manner suitable to his rank. When he entered the royal presence, Columbus threw himself at the feet of his sovereigns. He remained for some time silent ; the various passions which agitated his mind suppressing his power of utterance. At length he recovered himself, and vindicated his conduct in a long discourse, producing the most satisfying proofs of his own integrity as well as good intention, and evidence, no less clear, of the malevolence of his enemies, who, not satisfied with haying ruined his fortune, laboured to deprive him of what alone was now lel't, his honour and his fame. Ferdi- nand received him with decent civility, and Isabella with tenderness and respect. They both expressed their sorrow for what had happened, disavowed their knowledge of it, and joined in promising him protection and fuhire favour. But though they instantly degraded Bovadilla, in order to remove from themselves any suspicion of having authorized his violent proceedings, they did not restore to Columbus his jurisdiction and privileges as viceroy of those countries which lie had discovered. Though willing to appear the avengers of Columbus's wrongs, that illiberal jealousy which • Life of Columlius, e. 86. Ilerrera, dee. 1. lib. iv. c. 8— 11. Gomara Hist. c. £3. O\teio, lib. iii. c. 6. AMERICA 85 prompted them to invest Bovadilla with such authority, as put it in his power to treat the admiral with indignity, still subsisted. They were afraid to trust a man to whom they had been so highly indebted ; and retaining him at court under various pretexts, they appointed Nicholas de Ovando, a knight of the military order of Alcantara, governor of Hispaniola.* Cfolumbus was deeply affected with this new injury, which came from hands that seemed to be employed in making reparation for his past sufferings. The sensibility with which great minds feel every thing that implies any suspicion of their intee^rity, or that wears the aspect of an affront, is exquisite. Columbus ha^ experienced both from the Spaniards, and their ungenerous conduct exasperated him to such a degree that he could no longer conceal the sentiments which it excited. Wherever he went he carried about with him, as a memorial of their ingratitude, those fetters with which he had been loaded. They were constantly hung up in his chamber, and he gave orders, that when he died they should be buried in his grave. t 1501.] Meanwhile the spirit of discovery, notwithstanding the severe check which it had received by the ungenerous treatment of the man who first excited it in Spain, continued active and vigorous. [January] Roderigo de Bastidas, a person of distinction, fitted out two ships in copartnery with John de la Cosa, who having served under the admiral in two of his voyages was deemed the most skilful pilot in Spain. They steered directly towards the continent, arrived on the coast of Paria, and, proceeding to the west, discovered all the coast of the province now known by the name of Tierra Firme, from Cape de Vela to the Gulf of Darien. Not long after Ojeda, with his former associate Amerigo Vespucci, set out upon a second voyage, and, being unacquainted with the destination of Bastidas, held the same course and touched at the same places. The voyage of Bastidas was prosperous and lucrative, that of Ojeda unfortunate. But both tended to increase the ardour of discovery ; for in proportion as the Spaniards acquired a more extensive knowledge of the American continent, their idea of its opulence and fertility increased.^ Before these adventurers returned from their voyages, a fleet was equipped, at the public expense, for cariying over Ovando, the new governor, to Hispani"la. His presence there was extremely requisite, in order to stop the inconsiderate career of Bovadilla, whose imprudent administration threatened the settlement with ruin. Conscious of the violence and iniquity of his proceedings against Columbus, he continued to make it his sole object to gain the favour and support of his countrymen, by accommodating himself to their passions and prejudices. With this view, he established regulations in every point the reverse of those which Columbus deemed essential to the prosperity of the colony. Instead of the severe discipline, necessary in order to habituate the dissolute and corrupted members of which the society was composed, to the restraints of law and subordination, he suffered them to enjoy such uncontrolled license as encouraged the wildest excesses. Instead of protecting the Indians, he eave a legal sanction to the oppression of that unhappy people. He took the exact number of such as survived their past calamities, divided them into distinct classes, distributed them in property among his adherents, and reduced all the people of the island to a state of complete servitude. As the avarice of the Spaniards was too rapacious and impatient to try any method of acquiring wealth but that of searching for gold, this servitude became as grievous as it was unjust. The Indians were driven in crowds to the mountains, and compelled to work in the mines, by masters who imposed their tasks without mercy or » Henera, dec. 1. lib. iv. c. 10—12. Lifeof Columbm, c. 87. f Life of Cohnnbiis, c. 86. p. 5T7. < Herrera. dec. 1. lib. iv. c. 11. 86 H I S T O R Y O F [Book II. discretion. Labour so disproportioned to their strength and former habits of life, wasted that feeble race of men with such rapid consumption, as must have soon terminated in the utter extinction of the ancient inhabitants of the country.* The necessity of applying a speedy remedj^ to those disorders hastened Ovando's departure. He had the command of the most respectable arma- ment hitherto fitted out for the New World. It consisted of thirty -two ships, on board of which two thousand five hundred persons embarked with an intention of settling in the country. [1502.] Upon the arrival of the new governor with this powerful reinforcement to the colony, Bovadilla resigned his charge, and was commanded to return instantly to Spain, in order to answer tor his conduct. Roldan and the other ringleaders of the mutineers, who had been most active in opposing Columbus, were required to ieave the island at the same time. A proclamation was issued, declaring the natives to be free subjects of Spain, of whom no ser^ ice was to be expected contrary to their own inclination, and without paying them an adequate price for their labour. With respect to the Spaniards themselves, various regu- lations were made, tending to suppress the licentious spirit which had been so fatal to the colony, and to establish that reverence for law and order on which society is founded, and to which it is indebted tor its increase and stability. In order to limit the exorbitant gain which private persons were supposed to make by working the mines, an ordinance was published, directing all the gold to be brought to a public smelting-house, and declaring one halt of it to be the property of the crow-n.t While these steps were taking for securing the tranquillity and welfare of the colony which Columbus had planted, he himself was engaged in the unpleasant employment of soliciting the favour of an ungrateful court, and notwithstanding all his merit and services, he solicited in vain. He demanded, in terms of the original capitulation in one thousand four hundred and ninety-two, to be reinstated in his otfice of viceroy over the countries which he had discovered. By a strange fatality, the circumstance which he uiged in support of his claim, determined a jealous monarch to reject it. The greatness of his discoveries, and the prospect of their increasing value, made Ferdinand consider the concessions in the capitulation as extravagant and impolitic. He was afraid of intrusting a subject with the exercise of a jurisdiction that now appeared to be so extremely extensive, and might grow to be no less formidable. He inspired Isabella with the same suspicions ; and under various pretexts, equally frivolous and unjust, they eluded all Columbus's requisitions to perform that which a solemn compact bound them to accomplish. After attending the Court of Spain for near two years, as an humble suitor, he found it impossible to remove Ferdinand's prejudices and apprehensions ; and perceived at length that he laboured in vain, when he urged a claim of justice or merit with an interested and unfeeling prince. But even this ungenerous return did not discourage him from pursuing the great object which first called forth his inventive genius, and excitecl him to attempt discovery. To open a new passage to the East Indies was his original and favourite scheme. This still engrossed his thoughts ; and either from his own obser\ations in his voyage to Paria, or from some obscure hint of the natives, or from the accounts given by Bastidas and de la Cosa of their expedition, he conceived an opinion that beyond the con- tinent of America there was a sea which extended to the East Indies, and hoped to find some strait or narrow neck of land, by which a communica- tion might be opened with it and the part of the ocean already known. By a very fortunate conjecture, he supposed this strait or isthmus to be * Ilenera, dw. 1. lib. iv. c. 11, &e. Oviedo Hist. lib. iii. c. 6. p. 97. Benzon Hist. lib. i f, 12. p. SI. t i^olorzano I'olitica Indiana, lib. i. c. IS. Uerrera, dec. 1. lib. iv. c. IS. AMERICA. 87 situated near the Gulf of Darien. Full of this idea, though he was now of an advanced age, worn out with fatigue, and broken with infirmities, he offered, with the alacrity of a youthful adventurer, to undertake a voyag:e which would ascertain this important point, and perfect the grand scheme which trom the beginning he proposed to accomplish. Several circumstances concuned in disposing Ferdinand and Isabella to lend a favourable ear to this proposal. They were glad to have the pretext of any honourable employment for removing from court a man with whose demands they deemed it impolitic to comply, and whose services it was indecent to neglect. Though unwilling to reward Columbus, they were not insensible of his merit, and trom their experience of his skill and conduct, had reason to give credit to his conjectures, and to confide in his success. To these considerations, a third must be added of still more powerful influence. About this time the Portuguese fleet, under Cabral, arrived from the Indies ; and, by the richness of its caigo, gave the people of Europe a more perfect idea than they had hitherto been able to form, of the opulence and fertility of the East. The Portuguese had been more fortunate in their discoveries than the Spaniards. They had opened a communication with countries where industry, arts, and elegance flourished ; and where commerce had been longer established, and carried to greater extent than in any region of the earth. Their first voyages thither yielded immediate as well as vast returns of profit, in commodities extremely precious and in great request. Lisbon became immediately the seat of commerce and wealth ; while Spain had only the expectation of remote benefit, and of future gain, from the western world. Nothing, then, could be more acceptable to the Spaniards than Columbus's offer to conduct them to the East, by a route which he expected to be shorter, as well as less dangerous than that which the Portuguese had taken. Even Ferdinand was roused by such a prospect, and warmly approved of the undertaking. But interesting as the object of this voyage was to the nation, Columbus could procure only four small barks, the largest of which did not exceed seventy tons in burden, for performing it. Accustomed to brave danger, and to engage in arduous undertakings with inadequate force, he did not hesitate to accept the command of this pitiful squadron. His brother Bar- tholomew, and his second son Ferdinand, the historian of his actions, accompanied him. He sailed from Cadiz on the ninth of May, and touched, as usual, at the Canary islands ; from thence he proposed to have stood directly for the continent ; but his largest vessel was so clumsy and unfit for service, as constrained him to bear away for Hispaniola, m hopes of exchanging her for some ship of the fleet that had carried out Ovando. When he arrived at St. Domingo [June 29], he found eighteen of these ships ready loaded, and on the point of departing for Spain. Columbus immediately acquainted the governor with the destination of his voyage, and the accident which had obliged him to alter his route. He requested permission to enter the harbour, not only that he might negotiate the exchange of his ship, but that he might take shelter during a violent hurri- cane, of which he discerned the approach from various prognostics which his experience and sagacity had taught him to observe. On that account, he advised him likewise to put off for some days the departure of the fleet bound for Spain. But Ovando refused his request, and despised his counsel. Under circumstances in which humanity would have afforded refuge to a stranger, Columbus was denied admittance into a countr}"^ of which he had discovered the existence and acquired the possession. His salutary warning, which merited the greatest attention, was regarded as the dream of a visionary prophet, who arroganUy pretended to predict an event beyond the reach of human foresight. The fleet set sail for Spain. Next night the hurricane came on with dreadful impetuosity. Columbus, aware of the danger, took precautions against it, and saved his little squadron. 88 HISTORY OF [Book II. The fleet destined for Spain met with the fate which the rashness and obstinacy of its commanders deserved. Of eighteen ships two or three only escaped. In this general wreck perished Bovadilla, Koldan, and the greater part of those who had been the most active in persecuting Columbus, and oppressing the Indians. Together with themselves, all the wealth which they had acquired by their injustice and cruelty was swallowed up. It exceeded in value two hundred tliousand ^csos ; an immense sum at that period, and sutBcient not only to have screened them from any severe scrutiny into their conduct, but to have secured them a gracious reception in the Spanish court. Among the ships that escaped, one had on board all the effects of Columbus which had been recovered from the ruins of his fortune. Historians, struck with the exact discrimination of characters, as well as the just distribution of rewards and punishments, conspicuous in those events, universally attribute them to an immediate interposition of Divine Providence, in order to avenge the wrongs of an injured man, and to punish the oppressors of an innocent people. Upon the ignorant and superstitious race of men, who were witnesses of this occurrence, it made a different im- pression. From an opinion which vulgar admiration is apt to entertain with respect to persons who have distinguished themselves by their sagacity and inventions, they believed Columbus to be possessed of supernatural powers, and imagined that he had conjured up this dreadful storm by magical art and incantations in order to be avenged of his enemies.* Columbus soon left Hispaniola [July 14], where he met with such an inhospitable reception, and stood towards the continent. After a tedious and dangerous voyage, he discovered Guanaia, an island not far distant from tlie coast ot Honduras. There he had an interview with some inhabitants of the continent, who arrived in a large canoe. They appeared to be a people more civilized, and who had made greater progress in the knowledge of useful arts than any whom he had hitherto discovered. In return to the inquiries which the Spaniards made, with their usual eager- ness, concerning the places where the Indians got the gold which they wore by way of ornament, they directed them to countries situated to the west, in which gold was tbund in such profusion that it was applied to the most common uses. Instead of steering in quest of a country so inviting, Avhich would have conducted him along the coast of Yucatan to the rich Empire of Mexico, Columbus was so bent upon his favourite scheme of finding out the strait which he supposed to communicate with the Indian ocean, that he bore away to the east towards the gulf of Darien. In this navigation he discovered all the coast of the continent, from Cape Gracias a Dios to a harbour which, on account of its beauty and security, he called Porto Bello. He searched in vain for the imaginary strait, through which he expected to make his way into an unknown sea ; and though he went on shore several times, and advanced into the country, he did not penetrate so far as to cross the narrow isthmus which separates the Gulf of Mexico from the great Southern ocean. He was so much delighted, however, with the fertility of the country, and conceived such an idea of its wealth from the specimens of gold produced by the natives, that he resolved to leave a small colony upon the river Belen, in the province of Veragua, under the command of his brother, and to return himself to Spain [1503], in order to procure what was requisite tor rendering the establishment permanent. But the ungovernable spirit of the people under his command, deprived Colum- bus of the glory of planting the first colony on the continent of America. Their insolence and rapaciousness provoked the natives to take arms ; and as these were a more hardy and warlike race of men than the inhabitants of the islands, they cut off part of the Spaniards, and obliged the rest to abandon a station which was found to be untenable.t * 0\ipdo, lib. iii. c.7. 9. Ilerrera, dec. 1. lili. v. c. 1, 9. Lifr of Coluinbuf, c. 8S. t Herrera, flee. 1. lib. T. c. 5, &c. Lifa of Columbus, c. fid, &c. Oviedo. lib. iii. c. 9. AMERICA. 89 This repulse, the first that the Spaniards met with from any of the Ame- rican nations, was not the only misfortune that belell Columbus : it was followed by a succession of all the disasters to which navigation is exposed. Furious hurricanes, with violent storms of thunder and lightning, threatened his leaky vessels with destruction ; while his discontented crew, exhausted with fatigue, and destitute of provisions, was unwilling or unable to execute his commands. One of his shi^.s perished ; he was obliged to abandon another, as unfit for service ; and with the two which remained, he quitted that part of the continent, which, in his anguish, he named the Coast of Vexation,* and bore away for Hispaniola. New distresses awaited him in this voyage. He was driven back by a violent tempest from the coast of Cuba, his ships fell foul of one another, and were so much shattered by the shock that with the utmost ditiiculty they reached Jamaica [.June 24], where he was obliged to run them aground, to prevent them from sinking. The measure of his calamities seemed now to be full. He was cast ashore upon an island at a considerable distance from the only settlement of the Spaniards in America. His ships were ruined beyond the possibility of being repaired. To convey an account of his situation to Hispaniola appeared impracticable ; and without this it was in vain to expect relief. His genius, fertile in resources, and most vigorous in those perilous extre- mities when feeble minds abandon themselves to despair, discovered the only expedient which afforded any prospect of deliverance. He had recourse to the hospitable kindness of the natives, who, considering the Spaniards as beings of a superior nature, were eager, on every occasion, to minister to their wants. From them he obtained two of their canoes, each formed out of the trunk of a single tree hollowed with fire, and so misshapen and awkward as hardly to merit the name of boats. In these, which were fit only for creeping along the coast, or crossing from one side of a bay to another, Mendez, a Spaniard, and Fieschi, a Genoese, two gentlemen parti cularly attached to Columbus, gallantly offered to set out for Hispaniola, upon a voyage of above thirty leagues.! This they accomplished in ten days, after surmounting incredible dangers, and enduring such fatigues that several of the Indians who accompanied them sunk under it, and died. The attention paid to them by the governor of Hispaniola was neither such as their courage merited, nor the distress of the persons from whom they came required. Ovando, from a mean jealousy of Columbus, was afraid of allowing him to set foot in the island under his government. This unge- nerous passion hardened his heart against every tender sentiment which reflection upon the services and niistbrtunes of that great man, or compas- sion for his own fellow-citizens, involved in the same calamities, must have excited. Mendez and Fieschi spent eight months in soliciting relief for their commander and associates, without any prospect of obtaining it. During this period, various passions agitated the mind of Columbus and his companions in adversity. At first, the expectation of speedy deliverance, from the success of Mendez and Fieschi's voyage, cheered the spirits of the most desponding. After some time the most timorous began to suspect that they had miscarried in their daring attempt [1504]. At length, even the most sanguine concluded that they had perished. The ray of hope which had broke in upon ihem, made their condition appear now more dismal. Despair, heightened by disappointment, settled in every breast. Their last resource had failed, and nothing remained but the prospect of ending their miserable days among naked savages, far from their country and their friends. The seamen, in a transport of rage, rose in open mutiny, threatened the life of Columbus, whom they reproached as the author of all their calamities, seized ten canoes, which they had purchased from the Indians, and, despising bis remonstrances and entreaties, made oflf with * La Costa de Io« ConatraatM. t Oviedo, lib. iii. c. 9> Vol. I.— 12 90 HISTORY OF IBookII. them to a distant part of the island. At the same time the natives mur- mured at the long residence of the Spaniards in their country. As their industry was not greater than that of their neighbours in Hispaniola, Hke them they found the burden of supporting so many strangers to be altoge- ther intolerable. They began to bring in provisions with reluctance, they furnished them with a sparing hand, and threatened to withdraw those supplies altogether. Such a resolution must have been quickly tatal to the Spaniards. Their safety depended upon the good will oi the Indians ; and unless they could revive the admiration and reverence with which that simple people had at tirst beheld them, destruction was unavoidable. Though the licentious proceedings of the mutineers had in a great measure effaced those impressions which had been so favourable to the Spanianis, the ingenuity of Columbus suggested a happy artilice, that not only restored but heightened the high opinion which the Indians had originally entertained of them. By his skill in astronomy, he knew that there was shortly to be a total eclipse of the moon. He assembled all the principal persons of the district around him on the day betbre it happened, and, after reproaching them for their fickleness in withdrawing their affection and assistance from men whom they had lately revered, he told them, that the Spaniards were servants of the Great Spirit who dwells in heaven, who made and governs the world ; that he, offended at their refusing to support men who were the objects of his peculiar favour, was preparing to punish this crime with exemplary severity, and that very night the moon should withhold her light, and appear of a bloody hue, as a sign of the divine wrath and an emblem of the vengeance ready to fall upon them. To this marvellous prediction some of them listened with the careless indifference peculiar to the people of America ; others, with the credulous astonishment natural to barbarians. But when the moon began gradually to be darkened, and at length appeared of a red colour, all were struck with terror. They ran with consternation to their houses, and returning instantly to Columbus loaded with provisions, threw them at his feet, conjuring him to intercede with the Great Spirit to avert the destruction with which they were threat- ened. Columbus, seeming to be moved by their entreaties, promised to comply with their desire. The eclipse went off, the moon recovered its splendour, and from that day the Spaniards were not only furnished profusely with provisions, but the natives, with superstitious attention, avoided every thing that could give them offence.* During those transactions, the mutineers had made repeated attempts to pass over to Hispaniola in the canoes which they had seized. But, from theij" own misconduct or the violence of the winds and currents, their efforts were all unsuccessful. Enraged at this disappointment, they marched towards that part of the island where Columbus remained, threatenii^ him with new insults and danger. While they were advancing, an event happened, more cruel and afflicting than any calamity which he dreaded from them. The governor of Hispaniola, whose mind was still filled with some dark suspicions of Columbus, sent a small bark to Jamaica, not to deliver his distressed countrymen, but to spy out their condition. Lest the sympathy of those whom he employed should afford them relief, contrary to his inten- tion, he gave the command of this vessel to Escobar, an inveterate enemy of Columbus, who, adhering to his instructions with malignant accuracy, cast anchor at some distance trom the island, approached the shore in a small boat, observed the wretched plight of the Spaniards, delivered a letter of empty compliments to the admiral, received his answer, and departed. When the Spaniards first descried the vessel standing towards the island, every heart exulted, as if the long expected hour of their deliverance had At length arrived ; but when it disappeared so suddenly, they sunk into the • Life of Colambud, e. 103. Herrera, dec. 1. lib. vi. c. 5, 6. Venzon, Hiat, lib. i. c 14. AMERICA. 91 deepest dejection, and all their hopes died away. Columbus alone, though he feit most sensibly this wanton insult which Ovando added to his past neglect, retained such composure of mind as to be able to cheer his followers. He assured them that Mendez and Fieschi had reached Hispaniola in safety ; that they would speedily procure ships to carry them off; but, as Escobar's vessel could not take them all on board, that he had refused to go with her, because he was determined never to abandon the faithful companions of his distress. Soothed with the expectation of speedy deliverance, and delighted with his apparent generosity in attending more to their preservation than to his own safety, their spirits revived, and ne regained their confidence.* Without this confidence he could not have resisteii the mutineers, who were now at hand. All his endeavours to reclaim those desperate men had no effect but to increase their frenzy. Their demands became every day more extravagant, and theii intentions more violent and bloody. The common safety rendered it necessary to oppose them with open force. Columbus, who had been long afflicted with the gout, could not take the field. His brother, the adelantado, marched against them [May 20]. They quickly met. The mutineers rejected with sconi terms of accom- modation, which were once more offered them, and rushed on boldly to the attack. They fell not upon an enemy unprepared to receive them. In the first shock, several of their most daring leadei's were slain. The adelan- tado, whose strength was equal to his courage, closed with their captain, wounded, disarmed, and took him prisoner.! At sight of this, the rest fled with a dastardly fear suitable to their former insolence. Soon after, they submitted in a body to Columbus, and bound themselves by the most solemn oaths to obey all his commands. Hardly was tranquillity re- established when the ships appeared, whose arrival Columbus had promised with great address, though he could foresee it with little certainty. With transports of joy the Spaniards quitted an island in which the unfeeling jealousy of Ovando had suffered them to languish above a year, exposed to misery in all its various forms. When they arrived at St. Domingo [Aug. 13], the governor, with the mean artifice of a vulgar mind, that labours to atone for insolence by servility, fawned on the man whom he envied, and had attempted to ruin. He received Columbus with the most studied respect, lodged him in his own house, and distinguished him with every mark of honour. But amidst those overacted demonstrations of regard, he could not conceal the hatred and malignity latent in his heart. He set at liberty the captain of the mutineers, whom Columbus had brought over in chains to be tried for his crimes ; and threatened such as had adhered to the admiral with proceeding to a judicial inquiry into their conduct. Columbus submitted in silence to what he could not redress ; but discovered an extreme impatience to quit a country which was under the jurisdiction of a man who had treated him, on eveiy occasion, with inhumanity and injustice. His preparations were soon finished, and he set sail for Spain with two ships [Sept. 12]. Disasters similar to those which had accompanied him through life continued to pursue him to the end of his career. One of his vessels being disabled, was soon forced back to St. Domingo ; the other, shattered by violent storms, sailed several hundred leagues withjury-masts, and reached with difficulty the port of St. Lucar [December].| There he received the account of an event the most fatal that could have befallen him, and which completed his misfortunes. This was the death of his patroness Queen Isabella [Nov. 9], in whose justice, humanity, and favour he confided as his last resource. None now remained to redress his wrongs, or to reward him for his services and sufferings, but Ferdinand, who * Life of Columbus, c. 104. Herrnra, dec. 1. lib. vi. c. 17. f Ibid. c. 107. Herrera. dec 1. lib. vi. c. 11. : Ibid. c. 108. Heneia, dec. 1. lib. vi. c. 12. 9a HISTORY OF [Book III. had so long opposed and so often injured him. To solicit a prince thus firejudiced against him was an occupation no less irksome than hopeless, n this, however, was Columbus doomed to employ the close of his days. As soon as his health was in some degree re-established, he repaired to court ; and though he was received there with civility barely decent, he plied Ferdinand with petition after petition, demanding the punishment of his oppressojs, and the restitution of all the privileges bestowed upon him by the capitulation of one thousand four hundred and ninety-two. Ferdi- nand amused him with fair words and unmeaning promises. Instead of granting his claims, he proposed expedients in order to elude them, and spun out the affair with such apparent art, as plainly discovered his intention that it should never be terminated. The declining health of Columbus flattered Ferdinand with the hopes of being soon delivered from an importunate suitor, and encouraged him to persevere in this illiberal plan. Nor was he deceived in his expectations. Disgusted with the ingratitude of a monarch whom he had served with such fidelity and success, exhausted with the fatigues and hardships which he had endured, and broken with the infirmities which these had brought upon him, Columbus ended his life at Valladolid on the twentieth of May, one thousand five hundred and six in the fifty-ninth year of his age. He died with a composure of mind suitable to the magnanimity which distinguished his character, and with sentiments of piety becoming that supreme respect for religion which he manifested in eveiy occurrence of his life."* BOOK III. While Columbus was employed in his last voyage, several events worthy of notice happened in Hispaniola. The colony there, the parent and nurse of all the subsequent establishments of Spain in the New World, gradually acquired the form of a regular and prosperous society. The humane solicitude of Isabella to protect the Indians from oppression, and particularly the proclamation by which the Spaniards were prohibited to compel them to work, retarded, it is true, for some time the progress of improvement. The natives, who considered exemption from toil as extreme felicity, scorned every allurement and reward by which they were invited to labour. The Spaniards had not a sufficient number of hands either to work the mines or to cultivate the soil. Several of the first colonists who had been accus- tomed to the service of the Indians, quitted the island, when deprived of those instruments, without which they knew not how to carry on any operation. Many of the new settlers who came over with Ovando, were seized with the distempers peculiar to the climate, and in a short space above a thousand of them died. At the same time, the exacting one half of the product of the mines, as the royal share, was found to be a demand so exor- bitant that no adventurers would engage to work them upon such terms. In order to save the colony Irom ruin, Ovando ventured to relax the rigour of the royal edicts [1505]. He made a new distribution of the Indians among the Spaniards, and compelled them to labour, for a stated time, in digging the mines, or in cultivating the ground ; but in order to screen himself irom the imputation of having subjected them again to servitude, he enjoined their masters to pay them a certain sum, as the price of their work. He • Life of CoUimb\is, c. lOP. Heirera- dec. 1. lib. vi. e. 13, 14, 15. AxMEKICA. 93 reduced the royal share of the gold found in the mines from the half to the third part, ancf soon after lowered it to a fifth, at which it long remained. Notwithstanding Isabella's tender concern for the good treatment of the Indians, and Ferdinand's eagerness to improve the Royal revenue, Ovando persuaded the court to approve of both these regulations.* But the Indians, after enjoying respite from oppression, though during a short interval, now felt the yoke of bondage to be so galling that they made several attempts to vindicate their own linerty. This the Spaniards consi- dered as rebellion, and took arms in order to reduce them to subjection. When war is carried on between nations whose state of improvement is in any degree similar, the means of defence bear some proportion to those employed in the attack ; and in this equal contest such efforts must be made, such talents are displayed, and such passions roused, as exhibit mankind to view in a situation no less striking than interesting. It is one of the noblest functions of history to observe and to delineate men at a juncture when their minds are most violently agitated, and all their powers and passions are called forth. Hence the operations of war, and the struggles between contending states, have been deemed by historians, ancient as well as modem, a capital and important article in the annals of human actions. But in a contest between naked savages, and one of the most warlike of the European nations, where science, courage, and discipline on one side, were opposed by ignorance, timidity, and disorder on the other, a particular detail of events would be as unpleasant as uninstructive. If the simplicity and innocence of the Indians had inspired the Spaniards with humanity, had softened the pride of superiority into compassion, and had induced them to improve the inhabitants of the New World, instead of oppressing them, some sudden acts of violence, like the too rigorous chastisements of impatient mstructors, might have been related without horror. But, unfor- tunately, this consciousness of superiority operated in a different manner. The Spaniards were advanced so far beyond the natives of America in improvement of every kind, that they viewed them with contempt. They conceived the Americans to be animals of an inferior nature, who were not entitled to the rights and privileges of men. In peace they subjected them to servitude. In war they paid no regard to those laws which, by a tacit convention between contending nations, regulate hostility, and set some bounds to its rage. They considered them not as men fighting in defence of their liberty, but as slaves who had revolted against their masters. Their caziques, when taken, were condemned, like the leaders of banditti, to the most cruel and ignominious punishments ; and all their subjects, without regarding the distinction of ranks established among them, were reduced to the same state of abject slavery. With such a spirit and sentiments were hostilities carried on against the cazique of Higuey, a province at the eastern extremity of the island. This war was occasioned by the perfidy of the Spaniards, in violating a treaty which they had made with the natives, and it was terminated by hanging up the cazique, who defended his people with bravery so far superior to that of his countrymen, as entitled him to a better fate.t The conduct of Ovando, in another part of the island, was still more treacherous and cruel. The province anciently named Xaragua, which extends from the fertile plain where Leogane is now situated to the western extremity of the island, was subject to a female cazique, named Anacoana, highly respected by the natives. She, from that partial fondness with which the women of America were attached to the Europeans (the cause of which shall be afterwards explained), had always courted the friendship of the Spaniards, and loaded them with benefits. But some of the adhe- rents of Roldan having settled in her country, were so much exasperated • Herrer.i. dec. 1. lib. v. c. 3 ♦ Ibid dec. 1. lib. vl. r. 0, 10. 94 HISTORY OF [Book 111. at her endeavouring to restrain their excesses, that they accused her of having formed a plan to throw off the yoke, and to exterminate the Spaniards. Ovando, though he knew well what little credit was due to such profligate men, marched, without further inquiry, towards Xara^ua, with three hundred foot and seventy horsemen. To prevent the Indians from taking alarm at this hostile appearance, he gave out that his sole intention was to visit Anacoana, to whom his countrymen had been so much indebted, in the most respectful manner, and to regulate with her the mode of levying the tribute payable to the king of Spain. Anacoana, in order to receive this illustrious guest with due honour, assembled the principal men in her dominions, to the number of three hundred ; and advancing at the head of these, accompanied by a great crowd of persons of inferior rank, she welcomed Ovando with songs and dances, according to the mode of the country, and conducted him to the place of her residence. There he was feasted for some days, with all the kimlness of simple hospitality, and amused with the games and spectacles usual among the Americans upon occasions of mirth and festivity. But amidst the security which this inspired, Ovando was meditating the destruction of his unsuspicious enter- tainer and her subjects ; and the mean perfidy with which he executed this scheme, equalled his barbarity in forming it. Under colour of exhibiting to the Indians the parade of a European tournament, he advanced with his troops, in battle array, towards the house in which Anacoana and the chiefs who attended her were assembled. The infantry took possession of all the. avenues which led to the village. The horsemen encompassed the house. These movements were the object of admiration, without any mixture of fear, until, upon a signal which had been concerted, the Spaniards suddenly drew their swords, and rushed upon the Indians, defenceless, and astonished at an act of treachery which exceeded the conception of undesigning men. In a moment Anacoana was secured. All her attendants were seized and bound. Fire was set to the house ; and without examination or conviction, all these unhappy persons, the most illustrious in their own country, were consumed in the flames. Anacoana was reserved for a more ignominious late. She was carried in chains to St. Domingo, and, after the formality of a trial before Spanish judges, she was condemned, upon the evidence of those very men who had betrayed her, to be publicly hanged.* Overawed and humbled by this atrocious treatment of their princes and nobles, who were objects of their highest reverence, the people in all the provinces of Hispaniola submitted, without further resistance, to the Spanish yoke. Upon the death of Isabella all the regulations tending to mitigate the rigour of their servitude were forgotten. The small gratuity paid to them as the price of their labour was withdrawn, and at the same time the tasks imposed upon them were increased [1506]. Ovando, without any restraint, distributed Indians among his friends in the island. Ferdinand, to whom the Queen had lelt by wmI one half of the revenue arising from the settle- ments in the New World, conferred grants of a similar nature upon his courtiers, as the least expensive mode of rewarding their services. They farmed out the Indians, of whom they were rendered proprietors, to theu* countrymen settled in Hispaniola ; and that wretched people, bein^ com- pelled to labour in order to satisfy the rapacity of both, the exactions of their oppressors no longer knew any bounds. But, barbarous as their policy was, and fatal to the inhabitants of Hispaniola, it produced, for some time, very considerable effects. By calling forth the force of a whole nation, and exerting itself in one direction, the working of the mines was carried on with amazing rapidity and success. During several years the gold brought into the royal smelting houses in Hispaniola amounted annually to four hundred • Ovledo, lib. iii. r. 12. Herrera, dec. 1. lib. vi. c. 4. Belaoion rie Destruyc de las tndias por Dart, (le lasCasa.^, p. 8. AMERICA. 95 and sixty thousand pesos, above a hundred thousand pounds sterling ; which, if we attend to the great change in the value of money since the beginning of the sixteenth century to the present times, must appear a considerable sum. Vast fortunes were created, of a sudden, by some. Others dissipated, in ostentatious profusion, what they acquired with facility. Dazzled by both, new adventurers crowded to America, with the most eager impatience, to share in those treasures which had enriched their countrymen ; and, notwithstanding the mortality occasioned by the unhealthiness ot the climate, the colony continued to increase.* Ovnndo governed the Spaniards with wisdom and justice not inferior to the rijour with which he treated the Indians. He established equal laws ; and, by executing them with impartiality, accustomed the people of the colony to reverence them. He founded several new towns in different parts of the island, and allured inhabitants to them by the concession of various immunities. He endeavoured to turn the attention of the Spaniards to some branch of industiy more useful than that of searching for gold in the mines. Some slips of the sugarcane having been brought from the Canary islands by way of experiment, they were found to thrive with such increase in the rich soil and warm climate to which they were transplanted, that the cultivation of them soon became an object of commerce. Extensive f)lantations were bearun ; sugarworks, which the Spaniards called ingenios, rom the various machinery employed in them, were erected, and in a few years the manufacture of this commodity was the great occupation of the inhabitants of Hispaniola, and the most considerable source of their wealth.t The prudent endeavours of Ovando, to promote the welfare of the colony, were powerfully seconded by Ferdinand. The large remittances which he received from the New World opened his eyes, at length, with respect to the importance of those discoveries, which he had hitherto affected to undervalue. Fortune, and his own address, having now ex- tricated him out of those difficulties in which he had been involved by the death of his Queen [1507], and by his disputes with his son-in-law about the government of her dominions,| he had full leisure to turn his attention to the affairs of America. To his provident sagacity Spain is indebted for many of those regulations which gradually formed that system of profound but jealous policy, by which she governs her dominions in the New World. He erected a court distinguished by the title of Casa de Contratacion, or Board of Trade, composed of persons eminent for rank and abilities, to whom he committed the administration of American affairs. This board assembled regularly in Seville, and was invested with a distinct and extensive jurisdiction. He gave a regular tbrm to ecclesias- tical government in America, by nominating archbishops, bishops, deans, together with clergymen of subordinate ranks, to take charge of the Spaniards established there, as well as of the natives who should embrace the Christian faith, but notwithstanding the obsequious devotion of the Spanish court to tlie papal see, such was Ferdinand's solicitude to prevent any foreign power from claiming jurisdiction, or acquiring influence, in his new dominions, that he reserved to the crown of Spain the sole right of patronage to the benefices in America, and stipulated that no papal bull or mandate should be promulgated there until it was previously examined and approved of by his council. With the same spirit of jealousy, he prohibited any goods to be exported to America, or any person to settle there without a special license from that council.§ But, notwithstanding this attention to the police and welfare of the colony, a calamity impended which threatened its dissolution. The original inha- • Herrera, dec. 1. lib. vi. c. 18, &c. t Oviedo, lib. iv. c. 8. % History of the Reign of Charles V. p. 6, &c. ^ Herrera, dec. 1. lib. vi. c. 19, 20. 96 HISTORY OF [Book III. bitants, on whose labour the Spaniards in Hispaniola depended for their prosperity, and even their existence, wasted so fast that the extinction of the whole race seemed to be inevitable. When Columbus discovered Hispa- niola, the number of its inhabitants was computed to be at least a million.* They were now reduced to sixty thousand in the space of fifteen years. This consumption of the human species, no less amazing than rapid, was the efifect of several concurring causes. The natives of the American islands were of a more feeble constitution than the inhabitants of the other hemisphere. Thej could neither perform the same work nor endure the same fatigue with men whose oi^ans were of a more vigorous con- formation. The listless indolence in which they delio:hted to pass their days, as it was the effect of their debility, contributed likewise to increase it, and rendered them from habit, as well as constitution, incapable of hard labour. The food on which they subsisted afforded little nourishment, and they were accustomed to take it in small quantities, not sufficient to invigorate a languid frame, and render it equal to the efforts of active industry. The Spaniards, without attending to those peculiarities in the constitution of the Americans, imposed tasks upon them which, though not greater than Europeans might have performed with ease, were so disproportioned to their strength, that many sunk under the fatieue, and ended their wretched days. Others, prompted by impatience and despair, cut short their own lives with a violent hand. Famine, brought on by compelling such numbers to abandon the culture of their lands, in order to labour in the mines, proved fatal to many. Diseases of various kinds, some occasioned by the hardships to which they were exposed, and others by their intercourse with the Europeans, who communicated to them some of their peculiar maladies, completed the desolation of the island. The Spaniards, being thus deprived of the instruments which they were accustomed to employ, found it impos- sible to extend their improvements, or even to carry on the works which they had already begun [1508]. In order to provide an immediate remedy for an evil so alarming, (Jvando proposed to transport the inhabitants of the Lucayo islands to Hispaniola, under pretence that they might be civilized with more facility, and instructed to greater advantage in the Christian religion, if they were united to the Spanish colony, and placed under the immediate inspection of the missionaries settled there. Ferdinand, deceived by this artifice, or willing to connive at an act of violence which policy represented as necessary, gave his assent to the proposal. Several vessels were fitted out for the Lucayos, the commanders of which informed the natives, with whose language they were now well acquainted, that they came from a delicious country, in which the departed ancestors of the Indians resided, by whom they were sent to invite their descendants to resort thither, to partake of the bliss enjoyed there by happy spirits. That simple people listened with wonder and credulity ; and, fond of visiting their relations and friends in that happy region, followed the Spaniards with eagerness. By this artifice above forty thousand were decoyed into His- paniola, to share in the sufferings which were the lot of the inhabitants of that island, and to mingle their groans and tears with those of that wretched race of men.f The Spaniards had, for some time, carried on their operations in the mines of Hispaniola with such ardour as well as success, that these seemed to have engrossed their whole attention. The spirit of discovery lan- guished ; and, since the last voyage of Columbus, no enterprise of any moment had been undertaken. But as the decrease of the Indians rendered it impossible to acquire wealth in that island with the same rapidity as formerly, this urged some of the more adventurous Spaniards to search for new countries, where their avarice might be gratified with more facility. • ncrrcra, dec. 1. lib. j. c. 12, t Ibid. lib. vii. c. 3. Oviedo, lib. iii. C 6. Gomara Hist. r. 41. AMERICA. 97 Juan Ponce de Leon, who commanded under Ovando in the eastern district of Hispaniola, passed over to the island of St. Juan de Puerto Rico, \\ hich Columbus had discovered in his second voyage, and penetrated into the interior part of the country. As he found the soil to be fertile, and ex- pected, from some symptoms, as well as from the information of the inhabitants, to discover mines of gold in the mountains, Ovando permitted him to attempt making a settlement in the island. This was easily effected by an officer eminent for conduct no less than for courage. In a few years Puerto Rico was subjected to the Spanish government, the natives were reduced to servitude ; and being treated with the same inconsiderate rigour as their neighbours in Hisparhiola, the race of original inhabitants, worn out with fatigue and sufferings, was soon exterminated.* About the same time Juan Diazde Solis, in conjunction with Vincent Yanez Pinzon, one of Columbus's original companions, made a voyage to the conti- nent. They held the same course which Columbus had taken as far as the island of Guanaios ; but, standing from thence to the west, they discovered a new and extensive province, afterwards known by the name of Yucatan, and proceeded a considerable way along the coast of that country.! Though nothing memorable occurred in this voyage, it deserves notice, because it led to discoveries of greater importance- For the same reason the voyage of Sebastian de Ocampo must be mentioned. By the command of Ovando he sailed round Cuba, and first discovered with certainty, that this country, which Columbus once supposed to be a part of the continent, was a lai^e island.| This voyage round Cuba was one of the last occurrences under the admi- nistration of Ovando. Ever since the death of Columbus, his son, Don Diego, had been employed in soliciting Ferdinand to grant him the offices of viceroy and admiral in the New World, together with all the other immunities and profits which descended to him by fnheritance, in consequence of the original capitulation with his father. But if these dignities and revenues appeared so considerable to Ferdinand, that, at the expense of being deemed unjust as well as ungrateful, he had wrested them from Columbus, it was not surprising that he should be unwilling to confer them on his son. Accordingly Don Diego wasted two years in incessant but fruitless importunity. Weary of this, he endeavoured at length to obtain by a legal sentence what he could not procure from the favour of an inte- rested monarch. He commenced a suit against Ferdinand before the council which managed Indian affairs ; and that court, with integrity which reflects honour upon its proceedings, decided against the king, and sustained Don Diego's claim of the viceroyalty, together with all the other privileges stipulated in the capitulation. Even after this decree Ferdinand's repugnance to put a subject in possession of such extensive rights might have thrown in new obstacles, if Don Diego had not taken a step which interested very powerful persons in the success of his claims. The sentence of the council of the Indies gave him a title to a rank so elevated, and a fortune so opulent, that he found no difficulty in concluding a marriage with Donna Maria, daughter of Don Ferdinand de Toledo, great commendator of Leon, and brother of the duke of Alva, a nobleman of the first rank, and nearly related to the king. The duke and his family espoused so warmly the cause of their new ally, that Ferdinand could not resist their solicitations [1509]. He recalled Ovando, and appointed Don Diego his successor, though even in conferring this favour he could not conceal his jealousy ; for he allowed him to assume only the title of governor, not that of viceroy, which had been adjudged to belong to him.§ Don Diego quickly repaired to Hispaniola, attended by his brother, his uncles, * Heirera, dec. 1. lib. vii. c. 1 — 1. Ooniara Hist. c. 44. Relacion de B. de Ia.«CasB«i, p. 10. t Ibid. dec. 1. lib. vi. c. 17. t Ibid. lib. vii, «. I. ^ Ibid. dec. I. lib. vii. c. 4, *.c Vol. I.— 13 98 HISTORY OF [Book III. his wife, whom the courtesy of the Spaniards honoured with the title of vice- queen, and a numerous retinue of persons of both sexes born of good famihes. He lived with a splendour and magnificence hitherto unknown in the New World ; and the family of Columbus seemed now to enjoy the honours and rewards due to his inventive genius, of which he himself had been cruelly de- frauded. The colony itself acquired new lustre by the accession of so many inhabitants, of a different rank and character from most of those who had hitherto migrated to America, and many of the most illustrious families in the Spanish settlements are descended from the persons who at that time accom- panied Don Diego Columbus.* No benefits accrued to the unhappy natives from this change of governors. Don Diego was not only authorized by a royal edict to contmue the repar- timientos, or distribution of Indians, but the particular number which he might grant to every person, according to his rank in the colony, was spe- cified. He availed himself of that permission ; and soon after he landed at St. Domingo, he divided such Indians as were still unappropriated, among his relations and attendants.! The next care of the new governor was to comply with an instruction which he received from the king, about settling a colony in Cubagua, a sniall island which Columbus had discovered in his third voyage. Though this barren spot hardly yielded subsistence to its wretched inhabitants, such quantities of those oysters which produce pearls were found 'on its coast, that it did not long escape the inquisitive avarice of the Spaniards, and became a place of considerable resort. Large fortunes were acquired by the fishery of pearls, which was carried on with extraordinary ardour. The Indians, especiall)'- those from the Lucayo islands, were compelled to dive for them ; and this dangerous and unhealthy employment was an addi- tional calamity which contributed not a little to the extinction of that devoted race.f About this period, Juan Diaz de Solis and Pinzon set out, in conjunction, upon a second voyage. They stood directly south, towards the equinoctial line, which Pinzon had formerly crossed, and advanced as far as the fortieth degree of southern latitude. They were astonished to find that the conti- nent of America stretched on their right hand through all this vast extent of ocean. They landed in different places, to take possession in name of their sovereign ; but though the country appeared to be extremely fertile and inviting, their force was so small, having been fitted out rather for discovery than making settlements, that they left no colony behind them. Their voyage served, however, to give the Spaniards more exalted and adequate ideas with respect to the dimensions of this new quarter of the globe. § Though it was about ten years since Columbus had discovered the main land of America, the Spaniards had hitherto made no settlement in any part of it. What had been so long neglected was now seriously attempted, and with considerable vigour ; though the plan for this purpose was neither formed by the crown, nor executed at the expense of the nation, but carried on by the enterprising spirit of private adventurers. The scheme took its rise from Alonso de Ojeda, who had already made two voyages as a disco- verer, by which he acquired considerable reputation, but no wealth. But his character for intrepidity and conduct easily procured him associates, who advanced the money requisite to defray the chaises of the expedition. About the same time, Diego de Nicuessa, who had acquired a large fortune m Hispaniola, formed a similar design. Ferdinand encouraged both ; and^ though he refused to advance the smallest sum, he was extremely liberal of titles and patents. He erected two governments on the continent, one ex- tending from Cape de Vela to the Gulf of Darien, and the other from that to t^ape Gracias a Dios. The formerwas given to Ojeda, the latter to Nicuessa. • Oyiedo, lib. iii. c. 1. t Recopilacion dc Lpyre, lib vi. til. «. I. I. i. Herrera, dee. 1. lib. vu. c. 10. * llerreru, d(X. 1. lib. vii. c. 9. G.xiiara Hist. c. >'. <^ Ibiil. dec. I. lib. vii. c. 9 AMERICA. »y Ojeda fitted out a ship and two brigantines, with three hundred men ; Nicuessa, six vessels, with seven hundred and eighty men. They sailed about the same time from St. Domingo for their respective governments. In order to give their title to those countries some appearance of validity, several of the most eminent divines and lawyers in Spain were employed to prescribe the mode in which they should take possession of them.* There is not in the history of mankind any thing more singular or extravagant than the form which they devised for this purpose. They instructed those invaders, as soon as they landed on the continent, to declare to the natives the principal articles ot the Christian faith ; to acquaint them in parti- cular, with the supreme jurisdiction of the Pope over all the kingdoms of the earth ; to inform them of the grant which this holy pontiff had made of their country to the king of Spain ; to require them to embrace the doctrines of that religion which the Spaniards made known to them ; and to submit to the sovereign whose authority they proclaimed. If the natives refused to compiy with this requisition, the terms of which must have been utterly incomprehensible to uninstructed Indians, then Ojeda and Nicuessa were authorized to attack them with fire and sword ; to reduce them, their wives and children, to a state of servitude ; and to compel them by force to recognise the jurisdiction of the church, and the authority of the monarch, to which they would not voluntarily subject themselves [23]. As the inhabitants of the continent could not at once yield assent to doctrines too refined for their uncultivated understandings, and explained to them by interpreters imperfectly acquainted with their language ; as they did not conceive how a foreign priest, of whom they had never heard, could have any right to dispose of their country, or how an unknown prince should claim jurisdiction over them as his subjects ; they fiercely opposed the new invaders of their territories. Ojeda and Nicuessa endeavoured to effect by force what they could not accomplish by persuasion. The contemporary writers enter into a very minute detail in relating their transactions ; but as they made no discovery of importance, nor established any permanent settlement, their adventures are not entitled to any consi- derable place in the general history of a period where romantic valour, struggling with incredible hardships, distinguishes every effort of the Spanish arms. They found the natives in those countries of which they went to assume the government, to be of a character very different from that of their countrymen in the islands. They were free and warlike. Their arrows were dipped in a poison so noxious, that every wound was followed with certain death. In one encounter they slew above seventy of Ojeda's followers, and the Spaniards, for the first time, were taught to dread the inhabitants of the New World. Nicuessa was opposed by people equally resolute in defence of their possessions. Nothing could soften their ferocity. Though the Spaniards employed every art to soothe them, and to gain their confidence, they refused to hold any intercourse, or to exchange any friendly office, with men whose residence among them they considered as fatal to their liberty and independence [1510]. This implacable enmity of the natives, though it rendered an attempt to establish a settlement in their country extremely difficult as well as dangerous, mi^ht have been surmounted at length by the perseverance of the Spaniarcfi, by the supe- riority of their arms, and their skill in the art of war. But every disaster which can be accumulated upon the unfortunate combined to complete their ruin. The loss of their ships by various accidents upon an unknown coast, the diseases peculiar to a climate the most noxious in all America, the want of provisions unavoidable in a country imperfectly cultivated, dissension among themselves, and the incessant hostilities of the natives, involved them in a succession of calamities, the bare recital of which strike" * Herrern. der 1 lib- vii c l."i 100 , HISTORY OF [Book in. one with hon'or. Though they received two considerable reinforcements from Hispaniola, the greater part of those who had engaged in this unhappy expedition perished, in less than a year, in the most extreme misery. A few who survived settled as a feeble colony at Santa Maria el Antigua, on the Gulf of Darien, under the command of Vasco Nugnez de Balboa, who, in the most desperate exigencies, displayed such courage and conduct as first gained the confidence of his countrymen, and marked him out as their leader in more splendid and successful undertakings. Nor was he the only adventurer in this expedition who will appear with lustre in more important scenes. Francisco Pizarro was one of Ojeda's companions, and in this school of adversity acquired or improved the talents which fitted him tor the extraordinary actions which he afterwards performed. Hernan Cortes, whose name became still more famous, had likewise engaged early in this enterprise, which roused all the active youth of Hispaniola to arms ; but the good fortune that accompanied him in his subsequent adventures interposed to save him from the disasters to which his companions were exposed. He was taken ill at St. Domingo before the departure of the fleet, and detained there by a tedious indisposition.* Notwithstanding the unfortunate issue of this expedition, the Spaniards were not deterred from engaging in new schemes of a similar nature. When wealth is acquired gradually by the persevering hand of industry, or accumulated by the slow operations of regular commerce, the means employed are so proportioned to the end attained, that there is nothing to strike the imagination, and little to urge on the active powers of the mind to uncommon efforts. But when large fortunes were created almost instantaneously ; when gold and pearls were procured in exchange for baubles ; when the countries which produced these rich commodities, defended only by naked savages, might be seized by the first bold invader ; objects so singular and alluring roused a wonderful spirit of enterprise among the Spaniards, who rushed with ardour into this new path that was opened to wealth and distinction. While this spirit continued warm and vigorous, every attempt either towards discovery or conquest was applauded, and adventurers engaged in it with emulation. The passion for new under- takings, which characterizes the age of discovery in the latter part of the fifteenth and beginning of the sixteenth centuiy, would alone have been sufficient to prevent the Spaniards from stopping short in their career. But circumstances peculiar to Hispaniola, at this juncture, concurred with it in extending their navigation and conquests. The rigorous treatment of the inhabitants of that island having almost extirpated the race, many of the Spanish planters, as I have already observed, finding it impossible to carry- on their works with the same vigour and profit, were obliged to look out for settlements in some country where people were not yet wasted by op- pression. Others, with the inconsiderate levity natural to men upon whom wealth pours in with a sudden flow, had squandered in thoughtless prodigality what they acquired with ease, and were driven by necessity to embark in the most desperate schemes, in order to retrieve their aff'airs. From all these causes, when Don Diego Columbus proposed [1511] to conquer the island ef Cuba, and to establish a colony there, many persons of chief distinction in Hispaniola engaged with alacrity in the measure. He gave the command of the troops destined for that service to Diego Velasquez, one of his father's companions in his second voyage, and who, having been long settled in Hispaniola, had acquired an ample fortune, with such repu- tation for probity and prudence, that he seemed to be well qualified for conducting an expedition of importance. Three hundred men were eemed suflScient for the conquest of an island of above seven hundred miles in * Herrera, dec. 1. lib. vii. c- 11, &.c; Gomara Hist; c. 57. 53. 59. Bonzon. Hi3t. lib. i. c. 19—33. r. Mhrtyr, dccacl. p. 122. AMERICA. 101 length, and filled with inhabitants. But thev were of the same unwarlike character with the people of Hispaniola. They were not only intimidated by the appearance of their new enemies, but unprepared to resist them. For though, from the time that the Spaniards took possession of the adjacent island, there was reason to expect a descent on their territories, none of the small communities into which Cuba was divided, had either made any provision for its own defence, or had formed any concert for their common safety. The only obstruction the Spaniards met with was from Hatuey, a cazique, who had fled from Hispaniola, and had taken possession of the eastern extremity of Cuba. He stood upon the defensive at their first landing, and endeavoured to drive them back to their ships. His feeble troops, however, were soon broken and dispersed ; and he himself being taken prisoner, Velasquez, according to the barbarous maxim of the Spaniards, considered him as a slave who had taken arms against his master, and condemned him to the flames. When Hatuey was fastened to the stake, a Franciscan friar, labouring to convert him, promised him imme- diate admittance into the joys of heaven, if he would embrace the Christian faith. " Are there any Spaniards," says he, after some pause, " in that region of bliss which you describe ?" — " Yes," replied the monk, " but only such as are worthy and good." — " The best of them," returned the indignant cazique, " have neither worth nor goodness : I will not go to a place where I may meet with one of that accursed race."* This dreadful example of vengeance struck the people of Cuba with such terror that they scarcely gave any opposition to the progress of their invaders ; and Velas- quez, without the loss of a man, annexed this extensive and fertile island to the Spanish monarchy.! The facility with which this important conquest was completed served as an incitement to other undertakings. Juan Ponce de Leon, having acquired both fame and wealth by the reduction of Puerto Rico, was impatient to engage in some new enterprise. He fitted out three ships at his own expense, for a voyage of discoveiy [1512], and his reputation soon drew together a respectable body of followers. He directed his course towards the Lucayo islands ; and after touching at several of them, as well as of the Bahama isles, he stood to the south-west, and discovered a country hitherto unknown to the Spaniards, which he called Florida, either because he fell in with it on Palm Sunday, or on account of its gay and beautiful appearance. He attempted to land in different places, but met with such vigorous opposition from the natives, who were fierce and warlike, as con- vinced him that an increase of force was requisite to effect a settlement. Satisfied with having opened a communication with a new country, of whose value and importance he conceived very sanguine hopes, he returned to Puerto Rico through the channel now loiown by the name of the Gulf of Florida. It was not merely the passion of searching for new countries that prompted Ponce de Leon to undertake this voyage ; he was influenced by one of those visionary ideas, which at that time often mingled with the spirit of discovery, and rendered it more active. A tradition prevailed among the natives of Puerto Rico, that in the isle of Bimini, one of the Lucayos, there was a fountain of such wonderful virtue as to renew the youth and recall the vigour of every person who bathed in its salutaiy waters. In hopes of finding this grand restorative. Ponce de Leon and his followers ranged through the islands, searching with fruitless solicitude and labour for the fountain which was the chief object of their expedition. That a tale so fabulous should gain credit among simple and uninstructed Indians is not surprising. That it should make any impression upon an enlightened people appears in the present age altogether incredible. The fact, however, is • B. de las Casae, p. 40. T Herrera, dec. 1. lib. ix. t. % 3, ^c. Oviedo, lib. xvii. e. 3. p. 179. 102 HISTORY OF [Book III. certain ; and the most authentic Spanish historians mention this extravagant sally of their credulous countrj'men. The Spaniards at that period were engaged in a career of activity which gave a romantic turn to their imagina- tion, and daily presented to them strange and marvellous objects. A New World was opened to their view. They visited islands and continents, of whose existence mankind in former ages had no conception. In those delightful countries nature seemed to assume another form : every tree and plant and animal was difierent from those of the ancient hemisphere. They seemed to be transported into enchanted ground ; and after the wonders which they had seen, nothing, in the warmth and novelty of their admira- tion, appeared to them so extraordinary as to be beyond beliet. If the rapid succession of new and striking scenes made such impression even upon the sound understanding of Columbus, that he boasted of having tbund the seat of Paradise, it will not appear strange that Ponce de Leon should dream of discovering the fountain of youth.* Soon after the expedition to Florida, a discovery of much greater import- ance was made in another part of America. Balboa having been raised to the government of the small colony at Santa Maria in Darien, by the voluntary suffrage of his associates, was so extremely desirous to obtain from the crown a confirmation of their election, that he despatched one of his officers to Spain, in order to solicit a royal commission, which might invest him with a legal title to the supreme command. Conscious, however, that he could not expect success from the patronage of Ferdinand's ministers, with whom he was unconnected, or troni negotiating in a court to the arts of which he was a stranger, he endeavoured to merit the dignity to which he aspired, and aimed at performing some sio;naI service that would secure him the preference to every' competitor. Full of this idea, he made frequent inroads into the adjacent country, subdued several of the caziques, and collected a considerable quantity of gold, which abounded more in that part of the continent than in the islands. In one of those excursions, the Spaniards contended with such eagerness about the division of some gold, that they were at the pomt of proceeding to acts of violence against one another. A young cazique who was present, astonished at the high value which they set upon a thing of which he did not discern the use, lumbled the gold out of the balance with indignation ; and turning to the Spaniards, " Why do you quarrel (says he) about such a trifle ? If you are so passion- ately fond of gold, as to abandon your own country, and to disturb the tranquillity of distant nations for its sake, I will conduct you to a region where the metal which seems to be the chief object of your admiration and desire is so common that the meanest utensils are formed of it," Transported with what they heard, Balboa and his companions inquired eagerly where this happy country lay, and how they might arrive at it. He informed them that at the distance of six suns, that is, of six days' journey, towards the south, they should discover another ocean, near to which this wealthy kingdom was situated ; but if they intended to attack that powerful state, they must assemble forces far superior in number and strength to those with which they now appeared.! This was the fiist information which tlie Spaniards received concerning the great southern ocean, or the opulent and extensive country known after- wards by the name of Peru. Balboa had now before him objects suited to his boundless ambition, and the enterprising ardour of his genius. He immediately concluded the ocean which the cazique mentioned, to be that for which Columbus had searched without success in this part of America, in hopes of opening a more direct communication with the East Indies ; and he * p. Martyr, decad. p. 202. Ensayo Chronol. para la Hist, de la Florida, par de Gab. Cnrdenaa, p. 1. Oviedo, lib. ivi. c. 11. Herrera, dec. 1. lib. ix. c. 5. Hiet. de la Conq. de la Florida, par Garc. de la Vega, lib. 1. e. 3. t Borrera, dec. 1. lib. ii. c, 3. Gomara. c. tiO. P. Marlyr. dec. ^140 AMERICA. lOS jcctured that the rich territory which had been described to him must be part of that vast and opulent region of the earth. Elated with the idea of perlbrming; what so great a man had attempted in vain, and eager to accomplish a discovery which he knew would be no less acceptable to tlie king than beneficial to his country, he was impatient until he could set out upon this enterprise, in comparison of which all his former exploits appeared inconsiderable. But previous arrangement and preparation were requisite to ensure success. He began with courting and securing the friendship of the neighbouring caziques. He sent some of his officers to Hispaniola with a large quantity of gold, as a proof of his past success, and an earnest of his future hopes. By a proper distribution of this, they secured the favour of the governor, and allured volunteers into the service. A considerable reinforcement from that island joined him, and he thought himself in a con- dition to attempt the discovery. The isthmus of Darien is not above sixty miles in breadth ; but this neck of land which binds together the continents of North and South America, is strengthened by a chain of lotty mountains stretching through its whole extent, which render it a barrier of solidity sufficient to resist the impulse of two opposite oceans. The mountains are covered with Ibrests almost inaccessible. The valleys in that moist climate where it rains during two- thirds of the year, are marshy, and so frequently overflowed that the inhabitants find it necessar)', in many places, to build their houses upon trees, in order to be elevated at some distance from the damp soil, and the odious reptiles engendered in the putrid waters.* Lai^e rivers rush down with an impetuous current from the high grounds. In a region thinly inhabited by wandering savages, the hand of industry had done nothing to mitigate or correct those natural disadvantages. To march across this unexplored country with no other guides but Indians, whose fidelity could be little trusted, was, on all those accounts, the boldest enterprise on which the Spaniards had hitherto ventured in the New World. But the intrepidity of Balboa was such as distinguished him among his countrymen, at a period when every adventurer was conspicuous for daring courage [1513]. Nor was bravery his only merit ; he was prudent in conduct, generous, affable, and possessed of tliose popular talents which, in the most desperate under- takings, inspire confidence and secure attachment. Even after the junction of the volunteers from Hispaniola, he was able to muster only a hundred and ninety men for his expedition. But they were hardy veterans, inured to the climate of America, and ready to follow him through every danger. A thousand Indians attended them to carry their provisions ; and, to com- plete their warlike array, they took with them several of those fierce dogs, which were no less formidable than destructive to their naked enemies. Balboa set out upon this important expedition on the first of September, about the time that the periodical rains began to abate. He proceeded by sea, and without any difficulty, to the territories of a cazique whose friendship he had gained ; but no sooner did he begin to advance into the interior part of the country, than he was retarded by every obstacle, which he had reason to apprehend, from the nature of the territory, or the dispo- sition of its inhabitants. Some of the caziques, at his approach, fled to the mountains with all their people, and carried off or destroyed whatever could afford subsistence to his troops. Others collected their subjects, in order to oppose his progress ; and he quickly perceived what an arduous undertaking it was to conduct such a body ot men through hostile nations, across swamps, and rhers, and woods, which had never been passed but by straggling Indians. But by sharing in every hardship with the meanest soldier, by appearing the foremost to meet every danger, by promising confidently to his troops the enjoyment of honour and riches superior to • p. Ma/UT. dec. p, ISfi. 104 HISTORY OF [Book Hi. ■what had been attained by the most successful of their countrymen, he inspired them with such enthusiastic resolution, that they followed him without murmuring. When they had penetrated a good way into the mountains, a powerful cazique appeared in a narrow pass, with a numerous body of his subjects, to obstruct their progress. But men who. had sur- mounted so many obstacles, despised the opposition of such feeble enemies. They attacked them with impetuosity, and, having dispersed them with much ease and great slaughter, continued their march. Though their guides had represented the breadth of the isthmus to be only a journey of six days, they had already spent twenty-five in forcing their way through the woods and mountains. Many of them were ready to sink under such uninterrupted fatigue in that sultry climate, several were taken ill of the dysentery and other diseases frequent in that country, and all became impatient to reach the period of their labours and sufferings. At length the Indians assured them, that from the top of the next mountain they should discover the ocean which was the object of their wishes. When, with infinite toil, they had climbed up the greater part of that steep ascent, Balboa commanded his men to halt, and advanced alone to the summit, that he might be the first who should enjoy a spectacle which he had so long desired. As soon as he beheld the bouth Sea stretching in endless prospect below him, he fell on his knees, and, lifting up his hands to heaven, returned thanks to God, who had conducted him to a discovery so beneficial to his country, and so honourable to himself. His followers, observing his transports of joy, rushed forward to join in his wonder^ exultation, and gratitude. They held on their course to the shore with great alacrity, when Balboa, advancing up to the middle in the waves with his buckler and sword, took possession of that ocean in the name of the king his master, and vowed to defend it with these arms, against all his enemies.* That part of the great Pacific or Southern Ocean which Balboa first discovered, still retains the name of the Gulf of St. Michael, which he gave to it, and is situated to the east of Panama. From several of the petty princes, who governed in the districts adjacent to that gulf, he extorted provisions and gold by force of arms. Others sent them to him volun- tarily. To these acceptable presents, some of the caziques added a considerable quantity of pearls ; and he learned from them, with much satisfaction, that pearl oysters abounded in the sea which he had newly discovered. Together with the acquisition of this wealth, which served to soothe and encourage his followers, he received accounts which confirmed his sanguine hopes of future and more extensive benefits from the expedition. All the people on the coast of the South Sea concurred in informing him that there was a mighty and opulent kingdom situated at a considerable distance towards the south-east, the inhabitants of which had tame animals to carry their burdens. In order to give the Spaniards an idea of these, they drew upon the sand the figure of the llamas or sheep, afterwards found in Peru, which the Peruvians had taught to perform such services as they described. As the llama in its form nearly resembles a camel, a beast of burden deemed peculiar to Asia, this circumstance, in conjunction with the discovery of the pearls, another noted production of that country, tended to confirm the Spaniards in their mistaken theory with respect to the vicinity of the New World to the East Indies.! But though the information which Balboa received from the people on the coast, as well as his own conjectures and hopes, rendered him extremely impatient to visit this unknown country, his prudence restrained him from * Herrera, dee. 1. lib. x. c. 1, tec. Gomara, c. 62, &c. P. Martyr, dec. p. 205. &c. t Ibid, dec. Mib. s. c S. AMERICA. 105 attemptinff to invade it with a handful of men exhausted by fatigue and weakened by diseases. [24] He determined to lead back his followers, at present, to their settlement of Santa Maria in Darien, and to return next season with a force more adequate to such an arduous enterprise. In order to acquire a more extensive knowledge of the isthmus, he marched back by a different route, which he found to be no less dangerous and difficult tlian that which he had formerly taken. But to men elated with success, and animated with hope, nothing is insurmountable. Balboa returned to Santa Maria [1514], from which he had been absent four months, with greater glory and more treasure than the Spaniards had acquired in any expedition in the New World. None of Balboa's officers distinguished themselves more in this service than Francisco Pizarro, or assisted with greater courage and ardour in opening a communication with those countries in which he • was destined to act soon a more illustrious part.* Balboa's first care was to send information to Spain of the important dis- covery which he had made : and to demand a reinforcement of a thousand men, in order to attempt the conquest of that opulent country concerning which he had received such inviting intelligence. The first account of the discovery of the New World hardly occasioned greater joy than the unex- pected tidings that a passage was at last found to the great southern ocean. The communication with the East Indies, by a course to the westward of the line of demarcation drawn by the Pope, seemed now to be certain. The vast wealth which flowed into Portugal, from its settlements and conquests in that country, excited the envy and called forth the emulation of other states. Ferdinand hoped now to come in ibr a share in this lucra- tive commerce, and, in his eagerness to obtain it, was willing to make an effiart beyond what Balboa required. But even in this exertion, his jealous policy, as well as the fatal antipathy of Fonseca, now Bishop of Burgos, to every man of merit who distinguished himself in the New World, was con- spicuous. Notwithstanding Balboa's recent services, which marked him out as the most proper person to finish that great undertaking which he had begun, Ferdinand was so ungenerous as to overlook these, and to appoint Pedrarias Davila governor of Darien. He gave him the command of fifteen stout vessels and twelve hundred soldiers. These were fitted out at the public expense, with a liberality which Ferdinand had never dis- played in any former armament destined for the New World ; and such was the ardour of the Spanish gentlemen to follow a leader who was about to conduct them to a country where, as fame reported, they had only to throw their nets into the sea and draw out gold,t that fifteen hundred embarked on board the fleet, and, if they had not been restrained, a much greater number would have engaged in the service.^ Pedrarias reached the Gulf of Darien without any remarkable accident, and immediately sent some of his principal officers ashore to inform Balboa of his arrival, with the king's commission to be governor of the colony. To their astonishment, they found Balboa, of whose great exploits they had heard so much, and of whose opulence they had formed such high ideas, clad in a canvass jacket, and wearing coarse hempen sandals used only by the meanest peasants, employed, together with some Indians, in thatcning- his own hut with reeds. Kven in this simple garb, which corresponded so ill with the expectations and wishes of his new guests, Balboa received them with dignity. The fame of his discoveries had drawn so many adven- turers from the islands, that he could now muster tour hundred and fifty men. At the head of those daring veterans, he was more than a match for the forces which Pedrarias brought with him. But, though his troops mur- mured loudly at the injustice of the king in superseding their commander, • Herrera, dec. 1. lib. x. c. 3—6. Gomara, c.C4. P. Mnrtvr, dec. p. 220, &.C. t Ibid. e. 14. X Ihid. c. 6, 7. P. Martyr, dec. p. 177. 296. Vol. k— 14 106 HISTORY OF [Book m. and complained that strangers would now reap the fruits of their toil and success, Balboa submitted with implicit obedience to the will of his sove- reign, and received Pedrarias with all the deference due to his character.* Notwithstanding this moderation, to which Pedrarias owed the peaceable possession of his government, he appointed a judicial inquiry to be made into Balboa's conduct, while under the command of Nicuessa, and imposed a considerable tine upon him, on account of the irregularities of which he had then been guilty. Balboa felt sensibly the inortilication of being subjected to trial and to punishment in a place where he had so lately occupied the firs? station. Pedrarias could not conceal his jealousy of his superior merit ; so that the resentment of the one and the envy of the other gave rise to dissen- sions extremely detrimental to the colony. It was threatened with a cala- mity still more fatal. Pedrarias had landed in Darien at a most unlucky time of the year [July], about the middle of the rainy season, in that part of the torrid zone where the clouds pour down such torrents as are unknown in more temperate climates-t The village of Santa Maria was seated in a rich plain, environed with marshes and woods. The constitution of Euro- peans was unable to withstand the pestilential influence of such a situation, in a climate naturally so noxious, and at a season so peculiarly unhealthy. A violent and destructive malady carried off many of the soldiers who accompanied Pedrarias. An extreme scarcity of provision augmented this distress, as it rendered it impossible to find proper refreshment for the sick, or the necessary sustenance tor the healthy. J In the space ofa month, above six hundred persons perished in the utmost misery. Dejection and despair spread through the colony. Many principal persons solicited their dismis- sion, and were glad to relinquish all their hopes of wealth, in order to escape from that pernicious region. Pedrarias endeavoured to divert those who remained from brooding over their misfortunes, by finding them employment. With this view, he sent several detachments into the interior parts of the country, to levy gold among the natives, and to search for the mines in which it was produced. Those rapacious adventurers, more attentive to present gain than to the means of facilitating their future progress, plun- dered without distinction wherever they marched. Regardless of the alliances which Balboa had made with several of the caziques, they stripped them of every thing valuable, and treated them, as well as their subjects, with the utmost insolence and cruelty. By their tyranny and exactions, which Pedrarias, either from want of authority or inclination, did not restrain, all the country from the Gulf of Darien to the lake of Nicaragua was deso- lated, and the Spaniards were inconsiderately deprived of the advantages which they might have derived from the friendship of the natives, in extend- ing their conquests to the South Sea. Balboa, who saw with concern that such ill-judged proceedings retarded the execution of his favourite scheme, sent violent remonstrances to Spain against the imprudent government of Pedrarias, who had ruined a happy and flourishing colony. Pedrarias, on the other hand, accused him of having deceived the King, by magnifying his own exploits, as well as by a false representation of the opulence and value of the country.§ Ferdinand became sensible at length of his imprudence in superseding the most active and experienced officer he had in the New World, and, by way of compensation to Balboa, appointed him Adelantado, or Lieutenant- Governor of the countries upon the South Sea, with very extensive privi- leges and authority. At the same time he enjoined Pedrarias to support Balboa in all his operations, and to consult with him concerning every measure which he himself pursued. [1515] But to effect such a sudden • Herrera, dec. 1. Ub. x. c. 13, 14. f Richard, Hist. Nalurelle de r Air, torn. 1, p. 204. } Herrera, dec. 1. lib. x. c. 14. P. Martyr, decad. p. 272. $ Ibid. dec. 1. lib. x. c. 15. dec. 2. c. 1, &e. Gomara, e. 66. P. Martvr, dec. 3. c. 10. Relacion dc B. de las Casas. p. 12. AMERICA. 107 transition from inveterate enmity to perfect confidence, exceeded Ferdinand's ?)ower. Pedrarias continued to treat his rival witji neglect ; and Balboa's brtune being exhausted by the payment of his fine, and other exactions of Pedrarias, he could not make suitable preparations for taking possession of his new government. At length, by the interposition and exhortations of the Bishop of Darien, they were brought to a reconciliation ; and, in order to cement this union more firmly, Pedrarias agreed to give his daughter in marriage to Balboa. [1516.] The first effect of their concord was, that Balboa was permitted to make several small incursions into the country. These he conducted with such prudence, as added to the reputation which he had already acquired. Many adventurers resorted to him, and, with the countenance and aid of Pedrarias, he began to prepare for his expedi- tion to the South Sea. In order to accomplish this, it was necessary to build vessels capable of conveying his troops to those provinces which he purposed to invade. [1317. J After surmounting many obstacles, and enduring a variety of those hardships which were the portion of the con- querors of America, he at length finished four small brigantines. In these, with three hundred chosen men, a force superior to that with which Pizarro afterwards undertook the same expedition, he was ready to sail towards Peru, when he received an unexpected message from Pedrarias.* As his reconciliation with Balboa had never been cordial, the progress which his son-in-law was making revived his ancient enmity, and added to its rancour. He dreaded the prosperity and elevation of a man whom he had injured so deeply. He suspected that success would encourage him to aim at inde- pendence upon his jurisdiction ; and so violently did the passions of hatred, fear, and jealousy operate upon his mind, that, in order to gratify his vengeance, he scrupled not to defeat an enterprise of the greatest moment to his country. Under pretexts which were false, but plausible, he desired Balboa to postpone his voyage for a short time, and to repair to Ada, in order that he might have an interview with him. Balboa, with the unsus- picious confidence of a man conscious of no crime, instantly obeyed the summons; but as soon as he entered the place, he was arrested by order of Pedrarias, whose impatience to satiate his revenge did not suflfer him to languish long in confinement. Judges were inunediately appointed to pro- ceed to his trial. An accusation of disloyalty to the king, and of an intention to revolt against the governor was preferred against him. Sentence of death was pronounced ; and though the judges who passed it, seconded by the whole colony, interceded warmly for his pardon, Pedrarias continued inex- orable ; and the Spaniards beheld, with astonishment and sorrow, the public execution of a man whom they universally deemed more capable than any one who had borne command in America, of forming and accomplishing great designs.! Upon his death, the expedition which he had planned was relinquished. Pedrarias, notwithstanding the violence and injustice of his proceedings, was not only screened from punishment by the powerful patron- age of the Bishop of Buigos and other courtiers, but continued in power. Soon after he obtained permission to remove the colony from its unwhole- some station of Santa Maria to PaJiama,on the opposite side of the isthmus ; and though jt did not gain much in point of healthfulness by the change, the commodious situation of this new settlement contributed greatly to facilitate the subsequent conquests of the Spaniards in the extensive countries situated upon the Southern Ocean.t During these traasactions in Darien [1515], the history of which it was proper to carry on in an uninterrupted tenour, several important events occurred with respect to the discovery, the conquest, and government of other provinces in the New World. Ferdinand was so intent upon opening » Horrera, dec. 2. lib. i. c. 3, lib. U. c. 11. 13, 21. f Ibid. dec. 2. lib. ii. o. 91, 23. J Ibid. lib. tv. I. 108 HISTORY OF [BookIII. a communication with the Molucca or Spice Islands by the west, that in the year one thousand five hundred and fifteen he fitted out two ships at his own expense, in order to attempt such a voyage, and gave the command of them to Juan Diaz de Solis, who was deemed one of the most skilful navigators in Spain. He stood along the coast of South America, and on the first of January, one thousand five hundred and sixteen, entered a river which he called Janeiro, where an extensive commerce is now carried on. From thence he proceeded to a spacious bay, which he supposed to be the entrance into a strait that communicated with the Indian Ocean ; but, upon advancing further, he found it to be the mouth of llio de Plata, one of the vast rivers by which the southern continent of America is watered. In endeavouring to make a descent in this country, De Solis and several of his crew were slain by the natives, who, in sight of the ships, cut their bodies in pieces, roasted and devoured them. Discouraged with the loss of their commander, and terrified at this shocking spectacle, the surviving Spaniards set sail for Europe, without aiming at any further discovery.* Though this attempt proved abortive, it was not without benefit. It turned the attention of ingenious men to this course of navigation, and prepared the way for a more fortunate voyage, by w4iich, a few years posterior to this period, the great design that Ferdinand had in view was accomplished. 1 hough the Spaniards were thus actively employed in extending their discoveries and settlements in America, they still considered Hispaniola as their principal colony, and the seat of government. Don Diego Columbus wanted neither inclination nor abilities to have rendered the members of this colony, who were most immediately under his jurisdiction, prosperous and happy. But he was circumscribed in all his operations by the suspicious policy of Ferdinand, who on every occasion, and under pretexts the most frivolous, retrenched his privileges, and encouraged the treasurer, the judges, and other subordinate otncers to counteract his measures, and to dispute his authority. The most valuable prerogative which the governor possessed was that of distributing Indians among the Spaniards settled in the island. The rigorous servitude of those unhappy men having been but little mitigated by all the regulations in their favour, the power of parcelling out such necessary instruments of labour at pleasure, secured to the governor great influence in the colony. In order to strip him of this, Ferdinand created a new office, with the power of distributing the Indians, and bestowed it upon Rodrigo Albuquerque, a relation of Zapata, his confidential minister. Mortified with the injustice as well as indignity of this invasion upon his rights, in a point so essential, Don Diego could no longer remain in a place where his power and consequence were almost annihilated. He repaired to Spain with the vain hopes of obtaining redress.j Albuquerque entered upon his office with all the rapacity of an indigent adventurer impatient to amass wealth. He began with taking the exact number of Indians in the island, and found that from sixty thousand, who in the year one tliousand five hundred and eight survived after all their sufferings, they were now reduced to fourteen thousand. These he threw into separate divisions or lots, and bestowed them upon such as were willing to purchase them at the highest price. By this arbitrary distribution several of the natives were removed from their original habitations, many were taken from their ancient masters, and all of them subjected to heavier burdens, and to more intolerable labour, in order to reimburse their new proprietors. — Those additional calamities completed the misery, and hastened on the extinction of this wretched and innocent race of men.! The violence of these proceedings, together with the fatal consequences ■which attended them, not only excited complaints among such as thought • Herrera, dec. 9. lib. i. c. 7. P. Martvr, deo. p. 317. t Ibid. dec. 1. lib. ix. c. 5. lib. x. c. 12. t Ibid. dec. 1. lib. x. c, 1«. AMERICA. 109 themselves aegrieved, but touched the hearts of all who retained any sentiments of humanity. From the time that ecclesiastics were sent as instructors into America, they perceived that the rigour with which their countrymen treated the natives, rendered their minist^ altogether fruitless. The missionaries, in conformity to the mild spirit of that religion which they were employed to publish, eaily remonstrated against the maxims of the planters with respect to the Americans, and condemned the repartimi- entos, or distributions, by which they were given up as slaves to their conquerors, as no less contrary to natural justice and the precepts of Christianity than to sound policy. The Dominicans, to whom the instruction of the Americans was originally committed, were most vehement in testi- fying against the repartimientos. In the year one thousand five hundred and eleven, Montesino,one of their most eminent preachers, inveighed against this practice, in the great church of St. Domingo, with all the impetuosity of popular eloquence. Don Diego Columbus, the principal officers of the colony, and all the laymen who had been his hearers, complained ot the monk to his superiors ; but they, instead of condemning, applauded his doctrine as equally pious and seasonable. The Franciscans, influenced by the spirit of opposition and rivalship which subsists between the two orders, discovered some inclination to take part with the laity, and to espouse the defence of the repartimientos. But as they could not with decency give their avowed approbation to a system of oppression so repugnant to the spirit of religion, they endeavoured to palliate what they could not justify, and alleged, in excuse for the conduct of their countrymen, that it was impossible to carry on any improvement in the colony, unless the Spaniards 1)ossessed such dominion over the natives that they could compel them to abour.* The Dominicans, regardless of such political and interested considerations, would not relax in any degree the rigour of their sentiments, and even refused to absolve, or admit to the sacrament, such of their countrymen as continued to hold the natives in servitude.! Both parties applied to the king for his decision in a matter of such importance. Ferdinand empowered a committee of his privy council, assisted by some of the most eminent civilians and divines in Spain, to hear the deputies sent from Hispaniola in support of their respective opinions. After a long discussion, the speculative fioint in controversy was determined in favour of the Dominicans, the ndians were declared to be a free people entitled to all the natural rights of men ; but notwithstanding this decision, the repartimientos were continued upon their ancient footing.J As this determination admitted the principle upon which the Dominicans founded their opinion, they renewed their eftbrts to obtain relief for the Indians with additional boldness and zeal. At length, in order to quiet the colony, which was alarmed by their remon- strances and censures, Ferdinand issued a decree of his privy council [1513], declaring, that after mature consideration of the Apostolic Bull, and other titles by which the crown of Castile claimed a right to its possessions in the New World, the servitude of the Indians was warranted both by the laws of God and of man; that unless they were subjected to the dominion of the Spaniards, and compelled to reside under their inspection, it would be impossible to reclaim them from idolatry, or to instruct them in the principles of the Christian faith ; that no further scruple ou2:ht to be entertained con- cerning the lawfulness of the repartimientos, as the king and council were willing to take the charge of that upon their own consciences ; and that therefore the Dominicans and monks of other religious orders should abstain for the future from those invectives which, from an excess of charitable but ill-informed zeal, they had uttered against that practice. § That his intention of adhering to this decree might be fully understood, • Herrera, dec. J lib. viii. e. 11. Oviedo, lib. iii. c. 6. p. 97. f Oviedo, lib. iii c 6. p. 97. X Herrera, dec. 1. lib. viii. c. 13. lib ix. c. 5. ^ Ibid. dec. 1. lib. iz. c. 14. no HISTORY OF [Book 111. Ferdinand conferred new grants of Indians upon several of his courtiers [25], But, in order that he might not seem altogether inattentive to the rights of humjinity, he published an edict, in which he endeavoured to provide for the mild treatment of the Indians under the yoke to which he subjected them ; he regulated the nature of the work which they should be required to perform ; he prescribed the mode in which they should be clothed and fed, and gave directions with respect to their instructions in the principles of Christianity.* But the Dominicans, who from their experience of what was past judged concerning the future, soon perceived the inefficacy of those provisions, and foretold, that as long as it was the interest of individuals to treat the Indians with rigour, no public regulations could render their servitude mild or tolerable. They considered it as vain, to waste their own time and strength in attempting to communicate the sublime truths of religion to men whose^ spirits were broken and their faculties impaired by oppression. Some of them in despair, requested the permission of their superiors to remove to the continent, and to pursue the object of their mission among such of the natives as were not hitherto corrupted by the example of the Spaniards, or alienated by their cruelty from the Christian faith. Such as remained in Hispaniola continued to remonstrate, with decent firmness, against the ser- vitude of the Indians.! . The violent operations of Albuquerque, the new distributor of Indians, revived the zeal of the Dominicans against the repartimientos, and called forth an advocate for that oppressed people, who possessed all the courage, the talents, and activity requisite in supporting such a desperate cause. This was Bartholomew de las Casas, a native of Seville, and one of the clergymen sent out with Columbus in his second voyage to Hispaniola, in order to settle in that island. He early adopted the opinion prevalent among ecclesiastics, with respect to the unlawfulness of reducing the natives to servitude ; and that he might demonstrate the sincerity of his conviction, he relinquished all the Indians who had fallen to his own share in the division of the inhabitants among their conquerors, declaring that he should ever bewail his own misfortune and guilt, in having exercised for a moment this impious dominion over his t'ellow-creatures.| From that time he became the avowed patron of the Indians ; and by his bold interpositions in their behalf, as well as by the respect due to his abilities and character, he had often the merit of setting some bounds to the excesses of his coun- trymen. He did not fail to remonstrate warmly against the proceedings of Albuquerque ; and though he soon found that attention to his own interest rendered this rapacious officer deaf to admonition, he did not aban- don the wretched people whose cause he had espoused. He instantly set out for Spain, with the most sanguine hopes of opening the eyes and softening the heart o( Ferdinand, by that striking picture of the oppression of his new suljjects which he would exhibit to his view.§ He easily obtained admittance to the King, whom he found in a declining state of health. With much freedom, and no less eloquence, he repre- sented to him all the fatal effects of the njjartimientos in the New World, boldly chaining him with the guilt of having authorized this impious measure, which had brought miserj' and destruction upon a numerous and innocent race of men, whom Providence had placed under his protection. Ferdinand, whose mind as well as body was much enfeebled by his dis- temper, was greatly alarmed at this charge of impiety, which at another juncture he would have despised. He listened with deep compunction to the discourse of Las Casas, and promised to take into serious consideration * Herrera, dec. 1. lib. ix. c. 14. t M. ibid. Touron. Histoire Gen^rale de TAm^rique, torn. i. p. 252. * Fr. Aug. Davila Padilla Hist, dela Fund.-uionde laProvincia de St. Jago de Mexico, p 303, 304. Herrnra, dec. 1. Ub. x. c. )?. ^ Hmcra. dec. 1. lib .x. c. 12. Dec. 2. lib. i. C. 11. Davila Padilla Hist. p. 304. AMERICA. Ill the means of redi'essine: the evil of which he complained. But death pre- vented him from executing his resolution. Charles of Austria, to whom all his crowns devolved, resided at that time in his paternal dominions in the Low Countries. Las Casas, with his usual ardour, prepared immediately to set out for Flanders, in-order to occupy the ear of the young monarch, when Cardinal Ximenes, who, as regent, assumed the reins of government in Castile, commanded him to desist from the journey, and engaged to hear his complaints in person. He accordingly weighed the matter with attention equal to its importance ; and as his impetuous mind delighted in schemes bold and uncommon, he soon fixed upon a plan which astonished the ministers trained up under the formal and cautious administration of Ferdinand. Without regarding either the rights of Don Diego Columbus, or the regulations established by the late King, he resolved to send three persons toAmericaassuperintendentsof all the colonies there, with authority, after examining all circumstances on the spot, to decide finally with respect to the point in question. It was a matter of delibera- tion and delicacy to choose men qualified for such an important station. As all the laymen settled in America, or who had been consulted in the administration of that department, had given their opinion that the Spaniards could not keep possession of their new settlements, unless they were allowed to retain their dominion over the Indians, he saw that he could not rely on their impartiality, and determined to commit the trust to ecclesiastics. As the Dominicans and Franciscans had already espoused opposite sides in the controversy, he, from the same principle of impartiality, excluded both these fraternities from the commission. He confined his choice to the monks of St. Jerome, a small but respectable order in Spain. With the assistance of their general, and in concert with Las Casas, he soon pitched upon three persons whom he deemed equal to the charge. To them he joined Zuazo, a private lawyer of distinguished probity, with unbounded power to regu- late all judicial proceedings in the colonies. Las Casas was appointed to accompany them, with the title of protector of the Indians.* To vest such extraordinaiy powers, as might at once overturn the system of government established m the New World, in four persons, who, from their humble condition in life, were little entitled to possess this high autho- rity, appeared to Zapata, and other ministers of the late king, a measure so wild and dangerous, that they refused to issue the despatches necessary for carrying it into execution. But Ximenes was not of a temper patiently to brook opposition to any of his schemes. He sent for the refractorjr minis- ters, and addressed them in such a tone that in the utmost consternation they obeyed his orders.! The superintendents, with their associate Zuazo and Las Casas, sailed for St. Domingo. Upon their arrival, the first act of their authority was to set at liberty all the Indians who had been granted to the Spanish courtiers, or to any person not residing in America. This, together with the information which had been received from Spain concerning the object of the commission, spread a general alarm. The colonists concluded that they were to be deprived at once of the hands with which they carried on their labour, and that, of consequence, ruin was unavoidable. But the fathers of St. Jerome proceeded with such caution and prudence as soon dissipated all their fears. They discovered, in every step of their conduct, a knowledge of the world, and of affairs, which is seldom acquired in a cloister ; and displayed a moderation as well as gentleness still more rare among persons trained up in the solitude and austerity of a monastic life. Their ears were open to information from every quarter ; they com- pared the different accounts which they received ; and, after a mature consideration of the whole, they were fully satisfied that the state of the colony rendered it impossible to adopt the plan proposed by Las Casas. • HeiTeTS, dec. 2. lib. ii. c. 8 ♦ Ihid. dec. 0. lib. it. e «. 112 HISTORY OF [Book III. and recommended by the Cardinal. They plainly perceived that the Spaniards settled in America were so few in number, that they could neither work the mines which had been opened, nor cultivate the country; that they depended for eflfecting both upon the labour of the natives, and, if deprived of it, they must instantly relinquish their conquests, or give up all the advantages which they derived from them ; that no allurement was so powerful as to surmount the natural aversion of the Indians to any laborious effort, and that nothing but the auttiority of a master could compel them to work ; and if they were not kept constantly under the eye and discipline of a superior, so great was their natural listlessness and .ndifference, that they would neither attend to religious instruction, nor observe those rites of Christianity which they had been already taught. Upon all those accounts, the superintendents found it necessary to tolerate the repartimientos, and to suffer the Indians to remain under subjection to their Spanish masters. They used their utmost endea- vours, however, to prevent the fatal effects of this establishment, and to secure to the Indians the consolation of the best treatment compatible with a state of servitude. For this purpose, they revived former regulations, they prescribed new ones, they neglected no circumstance that tended to mitigate the rigour of the yoke ; and by their authority, their example, and their exhortations, they laboured to inspire their countiymen with sentiments of equity and gentleness towards the unhappy people upon whose industiy they depended. Zuazo, in his department, seconded the endeavours of the superintendents. He reformed the courts of justice in such a manner as to render their decisions equitable as well as expeditious, and introduced various regulations which greatly improved the interior policy of the colony. The satistaction which his conduct and that of the superintendents gave was now universal among the Spaniards settled in the New World ; and all admired the boldness ot Ximenes in having departed from the ordinary path of business in forming his plan, as well as his sagacity in pitching upon persons whose wisdom, moderation, and disinterestedness rendered them worthy of this high trust.* Las Casas alone was dissatisfied. The prudential consideration which influenced the superintendents made no impression upon him. He regarded their idea of accommodating their conduct to the state of the colony, as the maxim of an unhallowed timid policy, which tolerated what was unjust because it was beneficial. He contended that the Indians were by nature free, and, as their protector, he required the superintendents not to bereave them of the common privilege of humanity. They received his most virulent remonstrances without emotion, but adhered firmly to their own system. The Spanish planters did not bear with him so patiently, and were ready to tear him in pieces for insisting in a requisition so od.ious to them. Las Casas, in order to screen himself irom their rage, found it necessary to take shelter in a convent ; and perceiving that all his efforts in America were fruitless, he soon set out for Europe, with a fixed resolution not to abandon the protection of a people whom he deemed to be cruelly oppressed.! Had Ximenes retained that vigour of mind with which he usually applied to business. Las Casas must have met with no very gracious reception upon his return to Spain. But he found the Cardinal languishing under a mortal distemper, and preparing to resig;n his authority to the young king, who was daily expected from the Low Countries. Charles arrived, took possession of the government, and, by the death of Ximenes, lost a minister whose abilities and integrity entitled him to direct his affairs. Many of the Flemish nobility had accompanied their sovereign to Spain. From that warm pre- dilection to his countrymen, which was natural at his age, he consulted them with respect to all the transactions in his new kingdom ; and they, with * Herrera, dec. 3. lib. ii. c. 15. Remesal, Hint. Gcncr. lib. ii. c. H, 15, 16. t Ibid. dec. 2. lib; U. c. 16. AMERICA. 113 an indiscreet eagerness, inlruded themselves into every business, and seized almost every department of administration.* The direction of American affairs was an object too alhiring to escape their attention. Las Casas observed their growing influence ; and though projectors are usually too sanguine to conduct their schemes with much dexterity, he possessed a busUing, indefatigable activity, which sometimes accomplishes its purposes with greater success than the most exquisite discernment and address. He courted the Flemish ministers with assiduity. He represented to them the absurdity of all the maxims hitherto adopted with respect to the govern- ment of America, particularly during the administration of Ferdinand, and pointed out the defects of those arrangements which Ximenes had in- troduced. The memory of Ferdinand was odious to the Flemings. The superior virtues and abilities of Ximenes had long been the object of their envy. They fondly wished to have a plausible pretext for condemning the measures both of the monarch and of the minister, and of reflecting some discredit on their political wisdom. The friends of Don Diego Columbus, as well as the Spanish courtiers who had been dissatisfied with the Cardi- nal's administration, joined Las Casas in censuring the scheme of sending superintendents to America. This union of so many interests and passions was irresistible ; and inconsequence of it the fathers of St. Jerome, together with their associate Zuazo, were recalled. Roderigo de Figueroa, a lawj'er of some eminence, was appointed chief judge of the island, and received instructions, in compliance with the request of Las Casas, to examine once more, with the utmost attention, the point in controversy between him and the people of the colony, with respect to the treatment of the natives ; and in the mean time to do every thing in his power to alleviate their sufferings, and prevent the extinction of the race.j This was all that the zeal of Las Casas could procure at that juncture in favour of the Indians. The impossibility of carrying on any improvements in America, unless the Spanish planters could command the labour of the natives, was an insuperable objection to his plan of treating them as free subjects. In order to provide some remedy for this, without which he found it was in vain to mention his scheme. Las Casas proposed to purchase a sufficient number of negroes from the Portuguese settlements on the coast of Africa, and to transport them to America, in ordei' that they might be employed as slaves in working the mines and cultivating the ground. One of the first advantages which the Portuguese had derived from their disco- veries in Africa arose from the trade in slaves. Various circumstances concurred in reviving this odious commerce, which had been long abolished in Europe, and which is no less repugnant to the feelings of humanity than to the principles of religion. As early as the year one thousand five hundred and three, a few negro slaves had been sent into the New World. | In the year one thousand five hundred and eleven, Ferdinand permitted the impor- tation of them in greater numbers.^ They were found to be a more robust and hardy race than the natives of America. They were more capable of enduring fatigue, more patient under servitude, and the labour of one negro was computed to be equal to that of four Indians. || Cardinal Ximenes, however, when solicited to encourage this commerce, peremptorily rejected the proposition, because he perceived the iniquity of^ reducing one race of men to slavery, while he was consulting about the means of restoring liberty to another. IF But Las Casas, from the inconsistency natural to men who hurry with headlong impetuosity towards a favourite point, was incapable of making this distinction. While he contended earnestly for the liberty oi the people bom in one quarter of the globe, he laboured to enslave the • History of Charles V. t Herrera, dec. 3. lib. ii. c. 16. 19. 21. lib. iii. c. 7, 8. t Ibid. dec. 1. lib. v. c. JO. ^ Ibid. lib. vill. c. 9. || Ibid. lib. ii c. .'>. " Ibid, dec.2. lib. li. c. 8. "\'or.. I.— 15 114 i i 1 S r O K Y O F [Book III. inhabitants ol' anotlier region ; and in the warmth ol his zeal to save the Americans Irom the yoke, pronounced it to be lawful and expedient to impose one still heavier upon the Africans. Unfortunately for the latter, Las Casas's plan was adopted. Charles granted a patent to one of his Flemish favour- ites, containing an exclusive right of importing four thousand negroes into America. The favourite sold his patent to some Genoese merchants for twenty-five thousand ducats, and they were the first who brought into a regular form that commerce for slaves between Africa and America, which has since been carried on to such an amazing extent.* But the Genoese merchants [1518], conducting their operations, at first, with the rapacity of monopolists, demanded such a high price for negroes, that the number imported into Hispaniola made no great change upon the state of the colony. Las Casas, whose zeal was no less inventive than inde- fatigable, had recourse to another expedient for the relief of the Indians. He observed, that most of the persons wlio had settled hitherto in America, were sailors and soldiers employed in the discovery or conquest of the country ; the younger sons of noble families, allured by the prospect of acquiring sudden wealth ; or desperate adventurers, whom their indigence or crimes forced to abandon their native land. Instead of such men, who were dissolute, rapacious, and incapable of that sober persevering industry which is requisite in forming new colonies, he proposed to supply the set- tlements in Hispaniola and other parts of the New World with a sulficient number of labourers and husbandmen, who should be allured by suitable premiums to remove thither. These, as they were accustomed to fatigue, would be able to perform the work to which the Indians, from the feebleness of their constitution, were unequal, and might soon become useful and opulent citizens. But though Hispaniola stood much in need of a recruit of inhabitants, having been visited at this time with the small-pox, which .swept off almost all the natives who had survived their long continued op- pression ; and though Las Casas had the countenance of the Flemish ministers, this scheme was del'eatedby the bishop of Burgos, who thwarted all his projects.! Las Casas now despaired of procuring any relief for the Indians in those places where the Spaniards were already settled. The evil was become so inveterate there as not to admit of a cure. But such discoveries were daily making in the continent as gave a high idea both of its extent and populousness. In all those vast regions there was but one feeble colony planted; and except a small spot on the isthmus of Darien, the natives stiil occupied the whole countiy. This opened a new and more ample field for the humanity and zeal of Las Casas, who flattered himself that he might prevent a pernicious system from being introduced there, though he had failed of success in his attempts to overturn it where it was already esta- blished. Full ol this idea, he applied tor a grant of the unoccupied country stretching along the seacoast from the Gulf of Paria to the western frontier of that province now known by the name of Santa Martha. He proposed to settle there with a colony composed of husbandmen, labourers, and ecclesiastics. He engaged in the space of two years to civilize ten thousand of the natives, and to instruct them so thoroughly in the arts of social life, that from the fruits of their industry an annual revenue of fifteen thousand ducats should arise to the king. In ten years he expected that his improve- ments w(juld be so tar advanced as to yield annually sixty thousand ducats. He stipulated, that no soldier or sailor should ever be permitted to settle in this district ; and that no Spaniard whatever should enter it without his permission. He even projected to clothe the people whom he took alone^ with him in some distinguishing garb, which did not resemble the Spanish dress, that they might appear to the natives to be a ditferent race of men * Jlerrera, dec. 1. lil). ii. c. 2l> t Ibid. dec. 2. lib ii. c. 9), A31KK1CA, 115 from ihose who had brought so many calamities upon their country.* From this scheme, of which I have traced only the great lines,< it is manifest that Las Casas had formed ideas concerning the method of treating the Indians, similar to those by which the Jesuits afterwards carried on their great operations in another part of the same continent. He supposed that the Europeans, by avaihng themselves of that ascendant which they possessed in consequence of their superior progress in science and improvement, might gradually form the minds of the Americans to relish those comforts of which they were destitute, might train them to the arts of civil life, and render them capable of its functions. But to the bishop of Bui^os, and the council of the Indies, this project; appeared not only chimerical, but dangerous in a high degree. They deemed the faculties of the Americans to be naturally so limited, and their indolence so excessive, that every attempt to instruct or to improve them would be fruitless. They contended, that it would be extremely imprudent to give the command of a country extending above a thousand miles along the coast, to a tanciful presumptuous enthusiast, a stranger to the affairs of the world, and unacquainted with the arts of government. Las Casas, far from being discouraged with a repulse, which he had reason to expect, had recourse once more to the Flemish favourites, who zealously patronized his scheme merely because it had been rejected by the Spanish ministers. They pre- vailed with their master, who had lately been raised to the Imperial dimity, to refer the consideration of this measure to a select number of his privy counsellors ; and Las Casas having excepted against the members ot the council of the Indies, as partial and interested, they were all excluded. The decision of men chosen by recommendation of the Flemings was perfectly conformable to their sentiments. They wannly approved of Las Casas's plan, and gave orders for carrying it into execution, fciut restricted the territory allotted him to three hundred miles along the coast of Cumana ; allowing him, however, to extend it as far as he pleased towards the interior part of the country.! This determination did not pass uncensured. Almost every person who had been in the West Indies exclaimed against it, and supported their opinion so confidently, and with such plausible reasons, as made it advisable to pause and to review the subject more deliberately. Charles himself, though accustomed, at this early period of his life, to adopt the sentiments of his ministers with such submissive deference as did not promise that decisive vigour of mind which distinguished his riper years, could not help suspecting that the eagerness with which the Flemings took part in every affair relating to America flowed from some improper motive, and began to discover an inclination to examine in person into the state of the question concerning the character of the Americans, and the proper manner of treating them. An opportunity of making this inquiiy with great advantage soon occurred [June 20]. Quevedo, the bishop of Darien, who had accom- panied Pedrarias to the continent in the year one thousand five hundreci and thirteen, happened to land at Barcelona, where the court then resided. It was quickly known that his sentiments concerning the talents and dis- position of tne Indians differed from those of Las Casas : and Charles naturally concluded that by confronting two respectable persons, ■who, during their residence in America, had full leisure to observe the manners of the people whom they pretended to describe, he might be able to discover which of them had formed his opinion with the greatest discern- ment and accuracy. A day for this solemn audience was appointed. The emperor appeared with extraordinary pomp, and took his seat on a throne in the great hall of * Herrera, dec. 2. lib. iv. c. 3. ' Goniara Hist. G'Mifrf-c. 77. }U:nern, dec. % lib, iv e 3. Oviedo, lib. lii. c. 5. 116 HISTORY OF IBookUI. the palace. His principal courtiers attended. Don Diego Columbus, admiral of the Indies, was summoned to be present. The bishop of Darien was called upon first to deliver his opinion. He, in a short discourse, lamented the fatal desolation of America hy the extinction of so many of its inhabitants; he acknowledged that this must be imputed, in some degree, to the extensive rigour and inconsiderate proceedings of the Spaniards ; but declared that all the people of the New World whom he had seen, either in the continent or in the islands, appeared to him to be a race of men marked out, by the inferiority of their talents, for servitude, and whom it would be impossible to instruct or improve, unless they were kept under the continual inspection of a master. Las Casas, at greater length and with more fervour, defended his own system. He rejected with indignation the idea that any race of men was born to servitude as irreligious and inhuman. He asserted that the faculties of the Americans were not naturally despicable, but unimproved ; that they were capable of receiving instruction in the principles of religion, as well as of acquiring the industry and arts which would qualify them for the various offices of social life ; that the mildness and timidity of their nature rendered them so submissive and docile, that they might be led and formed with a gentle hand. He professed that his intentions in proposing the scheme now under considera- tion were pure and disinterested ; and though from the accomplishment of his designs inestimable benefits would result to the crown ol Castile, he never had claimed, nor ever would receive, any recompense on that account. Charles, after hearing both, and consulting with his ministers, did not think himself sufficiently informed to establish any general arrangement with respect to the state of the Indians ; but as he had perfect confidence in the integrity of Las Casas, and as even the bishop of Darien admitted his scheme to be of such importance that a trial should be made of its effects, he issued a patent [1522], granting him the district of Cumana formerly mentioned, with full power to establish a colony there according to his own plan.* Las Casas pushed on the preparations for his voyage with his usual ardour. But, either from his own inexperience in the conduct of affairs, or from the secret opposition of the Spanish nobility, who universally dreaded the success of^ an institution that might rob them of the industrious and useful hands which cultivated their estates, his progress in engagmg husbandmen and labourers was extremely slow, and he could not prevail on more than two hundred to accompany him to Cumana. Nothing, however, could damp his zeal. With this slender train, hardly sufficient to take possession of such a lai^e territory, and altogether unequal to any effectual attempt towards civilizing its inhabitants, he set sail. The first place at which he touched was the island of Puerto Rico. There he received an account of a new obstacle to the execution of his scheme, more insuperable than any he had hitherto encountered. When he left America, m the year one thousand five hundred and sixteen, the Spaniards had little intercourse with any part of the continent except the countries adjacent to the Gulf of Darien. But as every species of internal industry began to stagnate in Hispaniola, when, by the rapid decrease of the natives, the Spaniards were deprived of those hands with which they had hitherto carried on their operations, this prompted them to try various expedients lor supplying that loss. Considerable numbers of negroes were imported ; but, on account of their exorbitant price, many of the planters could not afford to purchase them. In order to procure slaves at an easier rate, some of the Spaniards in Hispaniola fitted cut vessels to cruise along the coast * Herrera, dec. 2. lib. iv. c. 3, 4, 5. Ar»cnsnla Annalts d'Araguii. 74. 97. RetnUal Hist. Gcner. lib. ii t. 19, 20 AMERICA. 117 of Uie continent. In places where they found themselves inferior in strength, they traded vv ith the natives, and gave European toys in exchange for the plates of gold worn by them as ornaments ; but, wherever they could surprise or overpower tne Indians, they carried them off by force, and sold them as slaves.* In those predatory excursions such atrocious acts ot violence and cruelty had been committed, that the Spanish name was held in detestation all over the continent. Whenever any ships appeared, the inhabitants either fled to the woods, or rushed down to the shore in arms to repel those hated disturbers of their tranquillity. They forced some parties of the Spaniards to retreat with precipitation ; they cut ofif others ; and in the violence of their resentment against the whole nation, they murdered two Dominican missionaries, whose zeal had prom.pted them to settle in the province of Cumana.t This outrage against persons revered for their sanctity excited such indignation among the people of Hispaniola, who, notwithstanding all their licentious and cruel proceedings, were possessed with a wonderful zeal for religion, and a superstitious respect for its ministers, that they determined to inflict exemplary punishment, not only upon the perpetrators of that crime, but upon the whole race. With this view, they gave the command of five ships and three hundred men to Diego Ocampo, with orders to lay waste the country of Cumana with fire and sword, and to transport all the inhabitants as slaves to His- paniola. This armament Las Casas found at Puerto Rico, in its way to the continent ; and as Ocampo refused to defer his voyage, he immediately ■perceived that it would be impossible to attempt the execution of his pacific plan in a country destined to be the seat ot war and desolation.^ In order to provide against the effects of this unfortunate incident, he set sail directly for St. Domingo [April 12], leaving his followers cantoned out among the planters in Puerto Rico. From many concurring causes, the reception which Las Casas met with in Hispaniola was very unfavour- able. In his negotiations for the relief of the Indians, he had censured the conduct of his countrymen settled there with such honest severity as rendered him universally odious to them. They considered their own ruin as the inevitable consequence of his success. They were now elated with hope of receiving a large recruit of slaves from Cumana, which must be relinquished if Las Casas were assisted in settling bis projected colony there. Figueroa, in consequence of the instructions which he had recei ved in Spain, had made an experiment concerning the capacity of the Indians, that was represented as decisive against the system of Las Casas. He collected in Hispaniola a good number of the natives, and settled them in two villages, leaving them at perfect liberty, and with the uncontrolled direction of their own actions. But that people, accustomed to a mode of lite extremely different from that which takes place wherever civiliza- tion has made any considerable progress, were incapable of assuming new habits at once. Dejected with their own misfortunes as well as those of their country, they exerted so little industry in cultivating the ground, appeared so devoid of solicitude or foresight in providing Tor their own wants, and were such strangers to arrangement in conducting their affairs, that the Spaniards pronounced them incapable of being formed to live like men in social life, and considered them as children, who should be kept under the perpetual tutelage of persons superior to themselves iu wisdom and sagacity. § Notwithstanding all those circumstances, which alienated the persons in Hispaniola to whom Las Casas applied from himself and from his measures, he, by his activity and perseverance, b^ some concessions and many threats, obtained at length a small body of troops to protect him • Herrera, dec. 3. lib. ii. e. 3. f Oviedo, Hist. lib. xii. p. 3. t Herr«ra, dec. 2. lib. it. t. 8, 9. $ Ibid. dec. 2. lib. x. c. 5. 118 HISTORY OF [Book III. and his colony at their first landing. But upon his return to Puerto Rico, he found that the diseases of the climate had been fatal to several of his people ; and that others having got employment in that island, refused to follow him. With the handful that remained, he set sail and landed in Cumana. Ocampo had executed his commission in that province with such barbarous rage, having massacred many of the inhabitants, sent others in chains to Hispaniola, and forced the rest to fly for shelter to the woods, that the people of a small colony, which he had planted at a place which he named Toledo, were ready to perish for want in a desolated country. There, however. Las Casas was obliged to tix his residence, though deserted both by the troops appointed tb protect him, and by those under the command of Ocampo, who foresaw and dreaded the calamities to which he must be exposed in that wretched station. He made the best provision in his power for the safety and subsistence of his followers ; but as his utmost efforts availed little towards securing either the one or the other, he returned to Hispaniola, in order to solicit more effectual aid for the preservation of men who, from confidence in him, had ventured into a post of so much danger. Soon after his departure, the natives, having discovered the feeble and defenceless state ot the Spaniards, assembled secretly, attacked them with the fury natural to men exasperated by many injuries, cut off a good number, and compelled the rest to fly in the utmost consternation to the island of Cubagua. The small colony settled there on account of the pearl fishery, catching the panic with which their coun- trymen had been seized, abandoned the island, and not a Spaniard remained in any part of the continent, or adjacent islands, from the Gulf of Paria to the borders of Darien. Astonished at such a succession of disasters. Las Casas was ashamed to show his face after this fatal termination of all his splendid schemes. He shut himself up in the convent of the Domini- cans at St. Domingo, and soon after assumed the habit of that order.* Though the expulsion of the colony from Cumana happened in the year one thousand five hundred and twenty -one, 1 have chosen to trace the progress of Las Casas's negotiations from their first rise to their final issue without interruption. His system was the object of long and attentive discussion; and though his efforts in behalf of the oppressed Americans, partly from his own rashness and imprudence, and partly from the malevolent opposition of his adversaries, were not attended with that success which he promised with too sanguine confidence, great praise is due to his humane activity, which gave rise to various regulations that were of some benefit to that unhappy people. I return now to the history of the Spanish discoveries as they occur in the order of time.j Diego Velasquez, who conquered Cuba in the year one thousand five hundred and eleven, still retained the government of that island, as the deputy of Don Diego Columbus, though he seldom acknowledged his supe- rior, and aimed at rendering his own authority altogether independent.;^ Under his prudent administration, Cuba became one of the most flourishing of the Spanish settlements. The fame of this allured thither many persons from the other colonies, in hopes of finding either some permanent establish- ment or some employment for their activity. As Cuba lay to the west of all the islands occupied by the Spaniards, and as the ocean which stretches beyond it towards that quarter had not hitherto been explored, these circum- stances naturally invited the inhabitants to attempt new discoveries. An expedition for this purpose, in which activity and resolution might conduct to sudden wealth, was more suited to the genius of the age than the patient industry requisite in clearing ground and manufacturing sugar. Instigated • Henera, dec. 2. lib. x. c. 5. dec. 3. lib. ii. e. 3, 4, 5. Oviedo, Hist. lib. lii. e. 5. Gomnra, c. 77. Pavjla Fadilla, lib. i. c. 97. Reroisal Hist, Gen, lib. xi. c. 25, 2;i. + Herrer3. ;». Voyase de Coiidainiiic, 175. nufToii Hint. Nat. xvi. 184. Voyasp dii l)»-s Mafchais, iii. 320. J Bufloii, HJHt. Natur. i. 243. Kalin, i. 151. ^ Charlevoii, in?t rtos ap. RaiiniR. iii. p. 241. E. + Margrav. Hist. Rer. Nat. Bras. lib. viii. c. 4. ^ Wafer, p. 348. llcmaiiet (list. 102 lib HISTORY OF [Book IV'. days be terminated in extreme old age by the gradual decays of nature. We find, accordingly, among the Americans, as well as among other rude people, persons whose decrepit and shrivelled form seems to indicate aft extraordinary length of life. But as most of them are unacquainted with the art of numbering, and all of them as forgetful of what is past, as they are improvident of what is to come, it is impossible to ascertain their age with any degree of precision.* It is evident that the period of their longevity must vary considerably, according to the diversity of climates, and their different modes of subsistence. They seem, however, to be every where exempt from many of the distempers which afflict polished nations. None of the maladies, which are the immediate offspring of luxury, ever visited them ; and they have no names in their languages by which to distinguish this numerous train of adventitious evils. But whatever be the situation in which man is placed, he is born to suffer ; and his diseases in the savage state, though fewer in number, are, like those of the animals whom he nearly resembles in his mode of life, more violent and more fatal. If luxury engenders and nourishes distempers^ of one species, the rigour and distresses of savage life bring on those of another. As men in this state are wonderfully improvident, and their means of subsistence precarious, they often pass from extreme want to exuberant plenty, according to the vicissitudes of fortune in the chase, or in consequence of the various degrees of abundance with which the earth affords to them its productions in different seasons. Their inconsiderate gluttony in the one situation, and their severe abstinence in the other, are equally pernicious. For though the human constitution may be accustomed by habit, like that of animals of prey, to tolerate long famine, and then to gorge voraciously, it is not a little affected by such sudden and violent transitions. The strength and vigour of savages are at some seasons impaired by what they suffer from a scarcity of food ; at others they are afnicted with disorders arising from indigestion and a superfluity of gross aliment. These are so common, that they may be considered as the unavoidable consequence of their mode of subsisting, and cut off considerable numbers in the prime of life. They are likewise extremely subject to consumptions, tp pleuritic, asthmatic, and paralytic disorders,! brought on by the immoderate hardships and fatigue which they endure in hunting and in war ; or owing to the inclemency of the seasons to which they arc continually exposed. In the savage state, hardships and fatigue violently assault the constitution. In polished societies, intemperance undermines it. It is not easy to determine which of them operates with most fatal effect, or tends most to abridge human life. The influence of the former is certainly most extensive. The pernicious consequences of luxury reach only a tew members in any community ; the distresses of savage life are felt by all. As far as I can ju(%e, after very minute inquiry, the general period of human life is shorter among savages than in well regulated and industri- ous societies. One dreadful malady, the severest scourge with which, in this life, offended Heaven chastens the indulgence of criminal desire, seems to have been peculiar to the Americans. By communicating it to their conquerors, they have not only amply avenged their own wrongs, but, by adding this calamity to those which formerly imbittered human life, they have, perhaps, more than counterbalanced all the benefits which Europe has derived from the discovery of the New World. This distemper, from the country in which it first raged, or from the people by whom it was supposed to have been spread over Europe, has been sometimes called the Neapolitan, and sometimes the French disease. At its first appearance, the infection was * Ullofi Notic. Amoric. 303. Bftnrroft Jvat. IlisJ. of G liana, 33-». t f'harlev. N. Fr. iii. 264. Lafitau, ii. 360. De la Poilicjip, ii. ST. AMERICA. 149 so malignant, its symptoms so violent, its operation so rapid and fatal, as to baffle all the efforts oi medical skill. Astonishment and terror accompanied this unknown affliction in its progress, and men began to dread the extinction of the human race by such a cruel visitation. Experience, and the ingenuity of physicians, gradually discovered remedies of such virtue as to cure or to mitigate the evil. During the course of two centuries and a half, its virulence seems to have abated considerably. At length, in the same manner with the leprosy, which raged in Eorope for some centuries, it may waste its force and disappear ; and in some happier age, this western infection, like that from the east, may be known only by descrip- tion [50]. n. Alter considering what appears to be peculiar in the bodily constitution of the Americans, our attention is naturally turned towards the powers and qualities of their minds. As the individual advances from the igno- rance and imbecility of the infant state to vigour and maturity of under- standing, something similar to this may be observed in the progress of the species. With respect to it, too, there is a period of infancy, during which several powers of the mind are not unfolded, and all are feeble and defective in their operation. In the early ages of society, while the condition of man is simple and rude, this reason is but little exercised, and his desires move within a very narrow sphere. Hence arise two remarkable charac- teristics of the human mind in this state. Its intellectual powers are extremely limited ; its emotions and efforts are few and languid. Both these distinctions are conspicuous among the rudest and most unimproved of the American tribes, and constitute a striking part of their description. What, among polished nations, is called speculative reasoning or research, is altogether unknown in the rude state of society, and never becomes the occupation or amusement of the hurnan faculties, until man be so far improved as to have secured, with certainty, the means of subsistence, as well as the possession of leisure and tranquillity. The thoughts and attention of a savage are confined within the small circle of objects imme- diately conducive to his preservation or enjoyment. Every thing beyond that escapes his observation, or is perfectly indifferent to him. Like a mere animal, what is before his eyes interests and affects him ; what is out of sight, or at a distance, makes little impression.* There are several people in America whose limited understandings seem not to be capable of forming an arrangement for futurity ; neither their solicitude nor their foresight extends so far. They follow blindly the impulse of the appetite which they feel, but are entirely regardless of distant consequences, and even of those removed in the least degree from immediate apprehension. While they highly prize such things as serve for present use, or minister to present enjoyment, they set no value upon those which are not the object of some immediate want.j When, on the approach of the evening, a Caribbee feels himself disposed to goto rest, no consideration will tempt him to sell his hammock. But, in the morning, when he is sallying out to the business or pastime of the day, he will part with it tor the slightest toy that catches his fancy .J At the close of winter, while the impression of what he has suffered from the rigour of the climate is fresh in the mind of the North American, he sets himself with vigour to prepare materials for erecting a comfortable hut to protect him against the inclemency of the succeeding season ; but, as soon as the weather becomes mild, he forgets what is past, abandons his work, and never thinks of it more until the return of cold compels him, when too late, to resume it.§ If in concerns the most interesting, and seemingly the most simple, the • Ullo Noticiaa Americ. 9W. t Venegos Hist, of Calif, i. 66. Supp. Church. Coll. v. eon. Borde Descr. de.s Caraibcs, p. 16. Ellis Voy. 194, t I-abat Voyages, li. 1 M, 115. Tertrp, il. 3S3. ^ Adair'sHist. of Amor. Indians, 417. 5oO J[l STORY OF [Book IV. reason ot' man, while rude and destitute of culture, differs so little from the thoughtless levity of children, or the improvident instinct of animals, its exertions in other directions cannot be very considerable. The objects towards which reason turns, and the disquisitions in which it engages, must depend upon the state in which man is placed, and are suggested by his necessities and desires. Disquisitions, which appear the most ne- cessary and important to men in one state of society, never occur to those in another. Among civilized nations, arithmetic, or the art of numbering, is deemed an essential and elementary science : and in our continent, the invention and use of it reaches back to a period so remote as is beyond the knowledge of history. But among savages, who have no property to estimate, no hoarded treasures to count, no variety of objects or multiplicity of ideas to enumerate, arithmetic is a superiluous and useless art. Ac- cordingly, among some tribes in America it seems to be quite unknown. There are many who cannot reckon further than three ; and have no denomination to distinguish any number above it.* Several can proceed as far as ten, others to twenty. When they would convey an idea of any number beyond these, they point to the hair of their head, intimating that it is equal to them, or with wonder declare it to be so great that it cannot be reckoned.! Not only the Americans, but all nations while extremely rude, seem to be unacquainted with the art of computation.^ As soon, however, as they acquire such acquaintance or connexion vvith a variety of objects, that there is frequent occasion to combine or divide them, their knowledge of numbers increases, so that the state of this art among any people may be considered as one standard by which to estimate the degree of their improvement. The Iroquoise,in North America, as they are much more civilized than the rude inhabitants of Brazil, Paraguay, or Guiana, have likewise made greater advances in this respect ; though even their arithmetic does not extend beyond a thousand, as in their petty transactions they have no occasion for any higher number.§ The Cherokee, a less considerable nation on the same .continent, can reckon only as far as a hundred, and to that extent have names for the several numbers ; the smaller tribes in their neighbourhood can rise no higher than ten|| [51]. In other respects, the exercise of the understanding among rude nations is still more limited. The first ideas of every human being must be such as he receives by the senses. But in the mind of man, while in the savage state, there seem to be hardly any ideas but what enter by this avenue. The objects around him are presented to his eye. Such as may be sub- servient to his use, or can gratify any of his appetites, attract his notice ; he views the rest without curiosity or attention. Satisfied with considering them under that simple mode in which they appear to him, as separate and detached, he neither combines them so as to form general classes, nor con- templates their qualities apart from the subject in which they inhere, nor bestows a thought upon the operations of his own mind concerning them. Thus he is unacquainted with all the ideas which have been denominated universal, or abstract, or of reflection. The range of his understanding must, of course, be very confined, and his reasoning powers be employed merely on what is sensible. This is so remarkably the case with the ruder nations of America, that their languages (as we shall afterwards find) have not a word to express any thing but what is material or corporeal. TYwie, space, substance, and a thousand terms, which represent abstract and universal ideas, are altogether unknown to them. IT A naked savage, cowering over the fire in his miserable cabin, or stretched under a few * Condam. p. 67. StaJius ap. de Bry, ix. 128, Lory, ibid. 251. Biet. 362. Lettr. Edit". 23. 314. t nuinont Louis, i. 187. Herrera, dec, 1. lib. iii. c. 3. Biet. 306. Borde, 6. t This is th« case with the Greenlanders, Crantz, i. 2^, and with Kanichatkadales, M. I'Abb6 Chapp^, Iii. 17. ^ Cliarlcv. Nouv. Franc, iii. 402 l| Adair's Hiet. of iXmer. Indians. 77. "^ Tondam p. 54- AMERICA. 151 branches which aflford him a temporary shelter, has as little inclination as capacity for useless speculation. His thoughts extend not beyond what relates to animal life ; and when they are not directed towards some of its concerns, his mind is totally inactive. In situations where no extraor- dinary effort either of ingenuity or labour is requisite, in order to satisfy the simple demands of nature, the powers of the mind are so seldom roused to any exertion, that the rational faculties continue almost dormant and unexercised. The numerous tribes scattered over the rich plains of South America, the inhabitants of some of the islands, and of several fertile regions on the continent, come under this description. Their vacant countenance, their staring unexpressive eye, their listless inattention, and total ignorance of subjects which seemed to be the first which should occupy the thoughts of rational beings, made such impression upon the Spaniards, when they first beheld those rude people, that they considered them as animals of an inferior order, and could not believe that they belonged to the human species.* It required the authority of a papal bull to counteract this opinion, and to convince them that the Americans were capable of the functions and entitled to the privileges of humanity.! Since that time, persons more enlightened and impartial than the discoverers or conquerors ot America, have had an opportunity of contemplating the most savage of its inhabitants, and they have been astonished and humbled with observing how nearly man in this condition approaches to the brute creation. But in severer climates, where subsistence cannot be procured with the same ease, where men must unite more closely, and act with greater concert, necessity calls forth their talents and sharpens their inven- tion, so that the intellectual powers are more exercised and improved. The North American tribes, and the natives of Chili, who inhabit tne tem- perate regions in the two great districts of America, are people of cultivated and enlarged understandings, when viewed in comparison with some of those seated in the islands, or on the banks of the Maragnon and Orinoco. Their occupations are more various, their system of policy, as well as of war, more complex, their arts more numerous. But even among them, the intellectual powers are extremely limited in their operations, and, unless when turned directly to those objects which interest a savage, are held in no estimation. Both the North Americans and Chilese, when not engaged in some of the functions belonging to a warrior or hunter, loiter away their time in thoughtless indolence, unacquainted with any other subject worthy of their attention, or capable of occupying their minds. t If even among them reason is so much circumscribed in its exertions, ana never arrives, in its highest attainments, at the knowledge of those general principles and maxims which serve as the foundation of science, we may conclude that the intellectual powers of man in the savage state are destitute of their proper object, and cannot acquire any considerable degree of vigour and enlargement. From the same causes, the active efforts of the mind are few, and on most occasions languid. If we examine into the motives which rouse men to activity in civilized life, and prompt them to persevere in fa- tiguing exertions of their ingenuity or strength, we shall find that they arise chiefly from acquired wants and appetites. These are numerous and im- portunate ; they keep the mind in perpetual agitation, and, in order to gratify them, invention must be always on the stretch, and industry must be incessantly employed. But the desires of simple nature are few, and where a favourable climate yields almost spontaneously what suffices to gratify them, they scarcely stir the soul, or excite any violent emotion. Hence the people of several tribes in America waste their life in a listless indolence. To be free from occupation, seems to be all the enjoyment * Heirera. dec. 1. lib. ii. c. 15. t Torquem. Mon. Ind iii. 198. J Lafitau, ii. 2. 152 HISTORY OF [Book IV. towards which they aspire. They will continue whole days stretched out in their hammocks, or seated on the earth in perfect idleness, without changing their posture, or raising their eyes from the ground, or uttering a single word.* Such is their aversion to labour that neither the hope of future good nor the apprehension of future evil can surmount it. They appear equally indifferent to both, discovering little solicitude, and taking no precautions to avoid the one or to secure the other. The cravings of hunger may rouse them ; but as they devour, with little distinction, whatever will ap- pease its instinctive demands, the exertions which these occasion are of short duration. Destitute of ardour, as well as variety of desire, they feel not the force of those powerful springs which give vigour to the movements of the mind, and ui^e the patient hand ot industry to perse- vere in its efforts. Man, in some parts of America, appears in a form so rude that we can discover no effects of his activity, and the principle of understanding, which should direct it, seems hardly to be unfolded. Like the other animals, he has no fixed residence ; he has erected no ha- bitation to shelter him from the inclemency of the weather ; he has taken no measures for securing certain subsistence ; he neither sows nor reaps ; but roams about as led in search of the plants and fruits which the earth brings forth in succession ; and in quest of the game which he kills in the forest, or of the fish which he catches in the rivers. This description, however, applies only to some tribes. Man cannot continue long in this state of feeble and uninformed infancy. He was made for industry and action, and the powers of his nature, as well as the nc'cessity of his condition, urge him to fulfil his destiny. Accordingly, among most of the American nations, especially those seated in rigorous climates, some efforts are employed, and some previous precautions are taken, for securing subsistence. The career of regular industry is begun, and the laborious arm has made the first essays of its power. Still, how- ever, the improvident and slothful genius of the savage state predomi- nates. Even among those more improved tribes, labour is deemed igno- minious and degrad^ing. It is only to work of a certain kind that a man will deign to put his hand. The greater part is devolved entirely upon the women. One-half of the community remains inactive, while the other is oppressed with the multitude and variety of its occupations. Thus their industry is partial, and the foresight which regulates it is no less limited. A remarkable instance of this occurs in the chief arrange- ment with respect to their manner of living. They depend for their sub- sistence, during one part of the year, on fishing ; during another, on hunt- ing; during a third, on the prod.uce of their agriculture. Though expe- rience has taught them to foresee the return of those various seasons, and to make some provision tor the respective exigencies of each, they either want sagacity to proportion this provision to their consumption, or are so incapable of any command over their appetites, that, from their inconsi- derate waste, they often feel the calamities of famine as severely as the rudest of the savage tribes. What they suffer one year does not augment their industry, or render them more provident to prevent similar distresses.! This inconsiderate thoughtlessness about futurity, the effect of ignorance and the cause of sloth, accompanies and characterizes man in every stage of savage life ;| and, by a capricious singularity in his operations, he is then least solicitous about supplying his wants, when the means of satis- fying them are most precarious, and procured with the greatest diffi- culty [52]. III. After viewing the bodily constitution of the Americans, and con- * Boiigmer Voy. au P^rou, 102. Borde, 15 t Cliarlev. N. Fr. iii. 338. Lettr. Edif. 23. V93. Dcecripl. of N. France, Osborn's Collect, ii. gW. Pe la Potherie. ii. 63. t Bancroft's Nat. Hist, cf Giuann, a-JC. 333. AMERICA. 153 templatiii* tiie powers of their minds, we are led, in the natural order of inquiry, to consider them as united together in society. Hitherto our re- searches have been confined to the operations of understanding respecting themselves as individuals ; now they will extend to the degree of their sensibility and aflection towards their species. The domestic state is the first and most simple form of human associa- tion. The union of the sexes among different animals is of longer or shorter duration in proportion to the ease or difficulty of rearing their off- spring. Among those tribes where the season ot infancy is short, and the young soon acquire vigour or agility, no permanent union is formed. Na- ture commits the care of training up the offspring to the mother alone, and her tenderness, without any other assistance, is equal to the task. But where the state of infancy is long and helpless, and the joint assiduity of both parents is requisite in tending their feeble progeny, there a more mti- mate connexion takes place, and continues until the purpose of nature be accomplished, and the new race grow up to full maturity. As the infancy of man is more feeble and helpless than that of any other animal, and he is dependent during a much longer period on the care and foresight of his parents, the union between husband and w ife came early to be considered not only as a solemn but as a permanent contract. A general state of pro- miscuous intercourse between the sexes never existed but in the imagi- nation of poets. In the infancy of society, when men, destitute of arts and industry, lead a hard precarious life, the rearing of their progeny de- mands the attention and efforts of both parents ; and if their union had not been formed and continued with this view, the race could not have been preserved. Accordingly in America, even among the rudest tribes, a regular union between husband and wife was universal, and the rights of marriage were understood and recognised. In those districts where subsistence was scanty, and the difficulty of maintaining a family was great, the man confined himself to one wife. In warmer and more fertile provinces, the facility of procuring food concurred with the influence of climate in inducing the inhabitants to increase the number of their wives.* In some countries the marriage-union subsisted during life ; in others, the impatience of the Americans under restraint of any species, together with their natural levity and caprice, prompted them to dissolve it on very slight pretexts, and often without assigning any cause. t But in whatever light the Americans considlered the obligation of this contract, either as perpetual or only as temporarv, the condition of women was equa"y humiliating and miserable. Whether man has been improved by the progress of arts and civilization in society, is a question which,- in lhe wantonness of disputation, has been agitated among philosophers. That women are indebted to the refinements of polished manners, for a happy change in their state, is a point which can admit of no doubt. To despise and to degrade the female sex is a characteristic of the savage state in every part of the globe. Man, proud of excelling in strength and in courage, the chief marks of pre-eminence among rude people, treats woman, as an mferior, with disdain. The Americans, perhaps from that coldness and insensibility which has been considered as peculiar to their constitution, add neglect and harshness to contempt. The most intelligent travellers have been struck with this inattention of the Americans to their women. It is not, as I have already observed, by a studied display of tenderness and attachment that the American endeavours to gain the heart of the woman whom he wishes to marry. Marriage itself, instead of being a union of affection and interests between equals, becomes among them the unnatural conjunction of a master with his slave. It is the observation of • I>ettr. Edif. 23. 318. Lafitan Moeurs, i. .'>54. I.ory ap. dc Bry, iii. 234. Journal de Grillet et Recliamel, p. 88. t I^afitaii, i. 5d0. JoiilelJourn. Histor. 345. Lozano Dcsc. del Gran Cliac->, *0. Hennepin Mccurs defl Sauvajjt'B, p. 30. .33. Vor. I,— ?0 154 HISTORY OF [BooKiV an author whose opinions are deservedly of great weight, that wherever wives are purchased their condition is extremely depressed.* They become the property and the slaves of those who buy them. In whatever part of the globe this custom prevails, the observation holds. In countries where refinement has made some progress, women when purchased are excluded from society, shut up in sequestered apartments, and kept under the vigilant guard of their masters. In ruder nations they are degraded to the meanest functions. Among many people of America the marriage contract is properly a purchase. The man buys his wife of her parents. Though unacquainted with the use of money, or with such commercial transactions as take place in more improved society, he knows how to give an equivalent for any object which he desires to possess. In some places, the suitor devotes his service for a certain time to the parents of the maid whom he courts ; in others he hunts for them occasionally, or assists in cultivating their fields and forming their canoes ; in others, he offers presents of such things as are deemed most valuable on account of their usefulness or rarity. t In return for these he receives his wife ; and this circumstance, added to the low estimation of women among savages, leads him to con- sider her as a female servant whom he has purchased, and whom he has a title to treat as an inferior. In all unpolished nations, it is true, the functions in domestic economy which fall naturally to the share of women are so many, that they are subjected to hard labour, and must bear more than their full portion of the common burden. But in America their con- dition is so peculiarly grievous, and their depression so complete, that servitude is a name too mild to describe their wretched state. A wife among most tribes is no better than a beast of burden, destined to every office of labour and fatigue. While the men loiter out the day in sloth, or spend it in amusement, the women are condemned to incessant toil. Tasks are imposed upon them without pity, and services are received without complacence or gratitude. J Every circumstance reminds women of this mortifying inferiority. They must approach their lords with rever- ence ; they must regard them as more exalted beings, and are not permitted to eat in their presence. § There are districts in America where this domi- nion is so grievous, and so sensibly felt, that some women, in a wild emo- tion of maternal tenderness, have destroyed their female children in their infancy, in order to deliver them from that intolerable bondage to which they knew they were doomed.ll Thus the first institution of social life is perverted. That state of domestic union towards which nature leads the human species, in order to sotten the heart to gentleness and humanity, is rendered so unequal as to establish a cruel distinction between the sexes, which forms the one to be harsh and unfeeling, and humbles the other to servility and subjection. It is owing, perhaps, in some measure, to this state of depression, that women in rude nations are far from being prolific. IT The vigour of their constitution is exhausted by excessive fatigue, and the wants and distresses of savage life are so numerous as to Ibrce them to take various precautions inorder to preventtoo rapidan increase of their progeny. Among wandering tribes, or such as depend chiefly upon hunting for subsistence, the mother cannot attempt to rear a second child until the first has attained such a degree of vigour as to be in some measure independent of her care. From this motive, it is the universal practice of the American women to suckle their children during several years ;** and, as they seldom many early, the period of theu- fertility is over before they can finish the long * Sketches of Hist, of Man, i. 184. t Lafltau Moeurs, Sec. i. 560, &c. Cliarlev. iii. 285, &r. Herrera, dec. 4. lib. iv. c. 7. Dumont, ii. 156. t Tertrn, ii. 383. Borde Rolat, des Moeurs dos Caraibog, p. 21. Biel. 357. Condamine, p. 110. Ferniin. i. 79. $ Gumilla, i. 153. Barrere, 164. Labat, Voy. ii. 76. Clianvalon, 51. Teitio, ii. .300. || Cuinilla, ii. 233. 238. Herrera, dec 7. lib. ix. c. ir. T I.afitan. i. 590. Cliarlevoix. iii. 304. ** Herrera. dec. fi. lib. i. c. 4, AMERICA. 155 but necessaiy attendance upon two or three children.* Among some of the least polished tribes, whose industry and foresight do not extend so far as to make any regular provision for th|i: own subsistence, it is a maxim not to burden themselves with rearing mare than two children -,1 and no such numerous families as are frequent in civilized societies are to be found among men in the savage state.| When twins are born, one of them commonly is abandoned, because the mother is not equal to the task of rearing both§ [53]. When a mother dies while she is nursing a child, all hope of preserving its life fails, and it is buried together with her in the same grave.H As the parents are frequently exposed to want by their own improvident indolence, the ditficulty of sustaining their children becomes so great that it is not uncommon to abandon or destroy them. IT Thus their experience of the ditficulty of training up an infant to maturity, amidst the hardships of savage life, often stifles the voice of nature among the Americans, and suppresses the strong emotions of parental tenderness. cut though necessity compels the inhabitants of America thus to set bounds to the increase of their families, they are not deficient in affection and attachment to their offspring. They feel the power of this instinct in its full force, and as long as their progeny continue feeble and helpless, no people exceed them in tenderness and care.** But in rude nations the dependence of children upon their parents is of shorter continuance than in polished societies. When men must be trained to the various functions of civil life by previous discipline and education, when the knowledge of abstruse sciences must be taught, and dexterity in intricate arts must be acquired, before a young man is prepared to begin his career of action, the attentive feel- ings of a parent are not confined to the years of infancy, but extend to what is more remote, the establishment of his child in the world. Even then his solicitude does not terminate. His protection may still be requisite, and his wisdom and experience still prove useful guides. Thus a permanent connection is formed ; parental tenderness is exercised, and filial respect returned, throughout the whole course of life. But in the simplicity of the savage state the affection of parents, like the instinctive fondness of animals, ceases almost entirely as soon as their offspjiyg attain maturity. Little in- struction fits them for that mode of life to A^ch they are destined. The parents, as if their duty were accomplished, when they have conducted their children through the helpless years of infancy, leave them afterwards at entire liberty. Even in their tender age, they seldom advise or admonish, they never chide or chastise them. They suffer them to be absolute masters of their own actions.!! In an American hut, a father, a mother, and their posterity, live together like persons assembled by accident, without seeming to feel the obligation of the duties mutually arising from this connection.|J As filial love is not cherished by the continuance of attention or good offices, the recollection of benefits received in early infancy is too faint to excite it. Conscious of their own liberty, and impatient of restraint, the youth of America are accustomed to act as if they were totally independent. Their parents are not objects of greater regard than other persons. They treat them always with neglect, and often with such harshness and insolence as to fill those who have been witne&scs of theirconduct with horror.§§ Thus the ideas which seem to be natural to man in his savage state, as they result necessarily from his circumstances and condition in that period of his progress, * Charlev. iii. 303. Dumont, M6m. sur Louiaiane, ii. 270. Dnny's Hist. Natur. de 1' Amirique, &c. ii. 365. Charlev. Hist, de Parag. ii. 422. t Techo's Acrount of Paraeiiay, &c. Cliurch. Collect, vi. 108. Lett. Edif. xxxiv. 200. Lozano Dcscr. 92. J Maccleur's .Journal, 03. ^ Lett. Edif. X.200. II Charlev, iii. 3tW. Lett. Ediff. x 200. P. Melch. Hernandez Memor. de Che- riqiii. Colbert. Collect. Orig. Pap. i. IT Venega's Hist, of Califom. i. 82. ** Giiniilla, 1.211. Biet. .390. tt Charlev. iii. 272. Biet. 390. Gumilla, i. 212. Lafitaii, i. fi02. Creuxii Hi.st. Canad. p. 71. Fernandez, Relac. Hist, de los Chequit. 33. it Charlev. Hist. N. Fr. iii. 273. «|J Gumilla, i. 212. Tertre, ii. 376. Charlev. Hist, de N. France, iii. 309. Charlev. HiBt. de Parag. i. U5. Lozano Descript. del Gran. Chaco. p. 68. 100. 101. Fornand. Relsic. Histor. de los Clipqult. 42fi. 166 HISTORY OF IBookIV. affect the two capital relations in domestic life. They render the union between husband and wile unequal. They shorten the duration and weaken the force of the connection betwe^ parents and children. IV. From the doniestic state oWne Americans, the transition to the con- sideration of their civil government and political institutions is natural. In every inquiry concerning the operations of men when united together in society, the first object of attention should be their mode of subsistence. Accordingly as that varies, their laws and policy must be diflerent. The institution suited to the ideas and exigencies of tribes which subsist chiefly by tisbing or hunting, and which have as yet acquired but an imperfect con- ception of any species of property, will be much more simple than those which must take place when the earth is cultivated with regular industry ; and a right of property, not only in its productions, but in the soil itseli, is completely ascertained. All the people of America, now under review, belong to the former class. But though they may all be comprehended under the general de- nomination of savage, the advances which they had made in the art of pro- curing to themselves a certain and plentiful subsistence were very unequal. On the extensive plains of South America man appears in one of the rudest states in which he has been ever observed, or perhaps can exist. Several tribes depend entirely upon the bounty of nature for su];sistence. They discover no solicitude, they employ little foresight, they scarcely exert any industry to secure what is necessary for their support. The Topayers, of Brazil, the Guaxeros, of Tierra Firme, the Caiguas, the Moxos, and several other people of Paraguay, are unacquainted with every species of cultivation. They neither sow nor plant. Even the culture of the manioc, of which cassada bread is made, is an art too intricate for their ingenuity, or too fatiguing to their indolence. The roots which the earth produces spontaneously ; the truits, the berries, and the seeds which they gather in the woods ; together with lizards and other reptiles, which multiply ama- zingly with the heat of the climate in a fat soil moistened by frequent rains, supply them with food during some part of the year.* At other times they subsist by fishing ^nd nature seems to have indulged the lazi- ness of the South American moes by the liberality with which she minis- ters in this way to their wants. The vast rivers of that region in America abound with an infinite variety of the most delicate fish. The lakes and marshes formed by the annual overflowing of the waters are filled with all the different species, where they remain shut up, as in natural reservoirs, for the use of the inhabitants. They swarm in such shoals, that in some places they are catched without art or industiy [54]. In others, the na- tives have discovered a method of infecting the water with the juice of certain plants, by which the fish are so intoxicated that they float on the surface and are taken with the hand [55]. Some tribes have ingenuity enough to preserve them without salt, by diying or smoking them upon hurdles over a slow fire.t The prolific quality of the rivers in South America induces many of the natives to resort to their banks, and to de- pend almost entirely for nourishment on what their waters supply with such profusion.! In this part of the globe hunting seems not to have been the first employment of men, or the first efl'ort ot their invention and la- bour to obtain food. They were fishers before they became hunters ; and as the occupations of the former do not call for equal exertions of ac- tivity or talents with those of the latter, people in that state appear to possess neither the same degree of enterprise nor of ingenuity. The * Nieuhoff. Hist, of Brazil. Church. Coll. ii. 134. Simon Conquista de Tierra Firm*, p. 166. Techo, Account of Paraguay, &;c. Church, vi. 78. Lettr. Edif 25. 384. 10. 190. Lozano, De- scrip, del. Gran Chaco, p. 81. Ribas Histor. de losTriiimfos, &c p. 7. f Condam. 159. Gu- nulla, ii. 37. Lettr. Edif 14. 199. 33. 3^. Acupia, BclaU dc la Eiv. des Amaf. 138. J Bar rere. Relat. de Pr. Efjuin. p. l.^.l. A iM E R I C A. io7 petty nations adjacent to the Maragnon and Orinoco are manifestly the most inactive and least intelligent of all the Americans. None but tribes contiguous to great rivers can sustain themselves in thia manner. The greater part of the American nations, dispersed over the forests with which their country is covered, do not procure subsistence with tht> same facility. For although these forests, especially in the southern continent of America, are stored plentifully with game,* consi- derable efforts of activity and ingenuity are requisite in pursuit of it. Necessity incited the natives to the one, and taught them the other. Hunting became their principal occupation ; and as it called forth strenu- ous exertions of courage, of force, and of invention, it was deemed no less honourable than necessary. This occupation was peculiar to the men. They were trained to it from their earliest youth. A bold and dexterous hunter ranked next in fame to the distinguished warrior, and an alliance with the former is often courted in preference to one with the latter.j Hardly any device, which the ingenuity of man has discovered for en- snaring or destroying wild animals, was unknown to the Americans. While engaged in this favourite exercise, they shake off the indolence peculiar to their nature, the latent powers and vigour of their minds are roused, and they become active, persevering, and indefatigable. Their sagacity in finding their prey and their address in killing it are equal. Their reason and their senses being constantly directed towards this one object, the former displays such fertility of invention and the latter acquire such a degree of acuteness as appear almost incredible. They discern the footsteps of a wild beast, which escape every other eye, and can follow them with certainty through the pathless forest. If they attack their game openly, their arrow seldom errs from the mark :| if they endeavour to circumvent it by art, it is almost impossible to avoid their jLoils. Among several tribes, their young men were not permitted to marry until they had given such proofs of their skill in hunting as put it beyond doubt that they were capable of providing for a family. Their ingenuity, always on the stretch, and sharpened by emulation as well as necessity, has struck out many inventions which greatly facilitate success in the chase. The most singular of these is the discovery of a poison, in which they dip the arrows employed in hunting. The slightest wound with those envenomed shafts is mortal. If they only pierce the skin, the blood fixes and congeals in a moment, and the strongest animal falls motionless to the ground. Nor does this poison, notwithstanding its violence and subtlety, infect the flesh of the animal which it kills. That may be eaten with perfect safety, and retain its native relish and qualities. All the nations situated upon the banksof the Maragnon andOrinocoare acquainted with this composition, the chief ingredient in which is the juice extracted from the root of the curare, a species of withe. § In other parts of America they employ the juice of the inanchenille for the same purpose, and it operates with no less fatal activity. To people possessed of those secrets the bow is a more destruc- tive weapon than the musket, and, in their skilful hands, does great exe- cution among the birds and beasts which abound in the forests of America. But the life of a hunter gradually leads man to a state more advanced. The chase, even where prey is abundant, and the dexterity of the hunter much improved, affords but an uncertain maintenance, and at some seasons it niyst be suspended altogether. If a savage trusts to his bow alone for food, he and his family will be often reduced to extreme distress [56]. Hardly any region of the earth fiirnishes man spontaneously with what his wants require. In the mildest climates, and most fertile soils, his own • p. Martyr, Dccod. p. 3iJ4. Giimilla, ii. 4, &r. Acugna, i. 156. f Charlev. Histoire dc la N. France, iii. 115. i Biet, Voy. de France Equin. '357. Davies's DiPcov. of the River of Amaz. Purchas, iv. p. 1287. ^ Giiniilla, ii. 1, tec. Condani. 208. Rerhfrch. Philos. ii. 93P Bancroft's Nat. Hist, of Guiana. 2.S1, (cr. 158 H 1 S T O R Y O F LI^ook W. industry and foresight must be exerted in some degree to secure a regular supply of food. Their experience of this surmounts the abhorrence of labour natural to savage nations, and compels them to have recourse to culture, as subsidiary to hunting. In particular situations, some small tribes may subsist by fishing, independent of any production of the earth raised by their own industry. But throughout all America, we scarcely meet with any nation of hunters which does not practise some species of cultivation. The agriculture of the Americans, however, is neither extensive nor laborious. As game and fish are their principal food, all they aim at by cultivation is to supply any occasional defect of these. In the southern continent of America, the natives confined their industiy to rearing a few plants, which, in a rich soil and warm climate, were easily trained to ma- turity. The chief of these is maize, well known in Europe by the name of Turkey or Indian wheat, a grain extremely prolific, of simple culture, agreeable to the taste, and affording a strong hearty nourishment. The second is the manioc, which grows to the size of a large shrub or small tree, and produces roots somewhat resembling parsnips. After carefully squeezing out the juice, these roots are grated down to a fine powder, and formed into thin cakes called cassada bread, which, though insipid to the taste, proves no contemptible food.* As the juice of the manioc is a deadly poison, some authors have celebrated the ingenuity of the Ameri- cans in converting a noxious plant into wholesome nourishment. But it should rather be considered as one of the desperate expedients for pro- curing subsistence, to which necessity reduces rude nations ; or, perhaps, men were led to the use of it by a progress in which there is nothing marvellous. One species of manioc is altogether free of any poisonous quality, and may be eaten without any preparation but that of roasting it in the embers. This, it is probable, was first used by the Americans as food ; and, necessity having gradually taught them the art of separating its pernicious juice from the other species, they have by experience found it to be more prolific as well as more nourishing! [57]. The third is the plantain, which, though it rises to the height of a tree, is of such quick growth, that in less than a year it rewards the industry of the cultivator with its fruit. This, when roasted, supplies the place of bread, and is both palatable and nourishing [58]. The iburth is the potatoe, whose cul- ture and qualities are too well known to need any description. The fifth h pimento, a small tree yielding a strong aromatic spice. The Americans, who, like other inhabitants of warm climates, delight in whatever is hot and of poignant flavour, deem this seasoning a necessary of life, and mingle it copiously with every kind of food they take.| Such are the various productions, which were the chief object of cul- ture among the hunting tribes on the continent of America ; and Avith a moderate exertion of active and provident industiy these might have yielded a full supply to the wants of a numerous people, feut men, accustomed to the free and vagrant life of hunters, are incapable of regu- lar application to labour, and consider agriculture as a secondary and inferior occupation. Accordingly, the provision for subsistence, arising from cultivation, was so limited and scanty among the Americans, that, upon any accidental failure of their usual success in hunting, they were often reduced to extreme distress. In the islands, the mode of subsisting was considerably different. None of the large animals which abound on the continent were known there. Only four species of quadrupeds, besides a kind of small dumb dog, * Sloane Hist, of Jam. Introd. p. 18. Labat, i. 304. Acosta, Hist. Ind. Occid. Natur. lib. iv. c. 17. Ulloa, i. 62. Aublet, Mem. sur le Magnioc. Hist, des Plautes, torn. ii. p. 65, &.C. t Martyr, Decad. 301. J.abat, i. 411. Ciunilla, iii. 102. MacJiiicha Milic. Indiana. 1P4. :t Oiirailla, iii. 371. Arosta. lih. iv. c. CO. AMERICA. 159 existed in the islands, the biggest of which did not exceed the size of a rabbit.* To hunt such a diminutive prey was an occupation whicli required no effort either of activitj^ or courage. The chief employmenr of a hunter in the isles was to kill birds, which on the continent are deemed ignoble game, and left chiefly to the pursuit of boys.j This want of animals, as well as their peculiar situation, led the islanders to depend principally upon tishing for their subsistence. | Their rivers, and the sea with which they are surrounded, supplied them with this species of food. At some particular seasons, turtle, crabs, and other shellfish abounded in such numbers that the natives could support themselves with a facility in which their indolence delighted.§ At other times, they ate lizards and various reptiles of odious forms.!] To fishing the inhabitants of the islands added some degree of agriculture. Maize [59], manioc, and other plants were cultivated in the same manner as on the continent. But all the fruits of their industry, together with what their soil and climate produced spon- taneously, afforded them but a scanty niaintenaiice. Though their demands for food were very sparing, they hardly raised what was sufficient for their own consumption. If a tew Spaniards settled in any district, such a small addition of supernumerary mouths soon exhausted their scanty stores, and brought on a famine. Two circumstances, common to all the savage nations of America, con- curred with those which I have already mentioned, not only in rendering their agriculture imperfect, but in circumscribing their power in all their operations. They had no tame animals ; and they were unacquainted with the useful metals. In other parts of the globe, man, in his rudest state, appears as lord of the creation, giving law to various tribes of animals, which he has tamed and reduced to subjection. The Tartar follows his prey on the horse which he has reared ; or tends his numerous herds, which turnish him both with food and clothing : the Arab has rendered the camel docile, and avails himself of its persevering strength : the Laplander has formed the reindeer to be subservient to his will ; and even the people of Kamchatka have trained their dogs to labour. This command over the inferior creatures is one of the noblest prerogatives of man, and among the greatest efforts of his wisdom and power. Without this his dominion is incomplete. He is a monarch who has no subjects, a master without servants, and must per- form every operation by the strength of his own arm. Such was the con- dition of all the rude nations in America. Their reason was so little improved, or their union so incomplete, that they seem not to have been conscious of the superiority of their nature, and suffered all the animal creation to retain its liberty, without establishing their own authority over any one species. Most oi the animals, indeed, which have been rendered domestic in our continent, do not exist in the New \A orld ; but those peculiar to it are neither so fierce nor so formidable as to have exempted them from servitude. There are some animals of the same species on both continents. But the rein-deer, which has been tamed and broken to the yoke in the one hemisphere, runs wild in the other. The bison of America is manifestly of the same species with the horned cattle of the other hemisphere. 1i The latter, even among the rudest nations in our con- tinent, have been rendered domestic ; and, in consequence of his dominion over them, man can accomplish ^vorks of labour with greater facilitj-, and has made a great addition to his means of subsistence. The inhabit- ants of many regions of the New W orld, where the bison abounds, might have derived the same advantages from it. It is not of a nature so indocile, but that it might have been trained to be as subservient to man * Oviedo, lib. xii. in proem. t Ril>as Hist, de los Triumph, p. 13. De la Potlicrie, ii. IR. iii. 20. i Oviedo, lib. liii. c. 1. Gomara, Hist. (Jener. c. 28. ^ Goniara, ifist. Gcuit 9. Labat, ii. SJ21. &.C. || Oviedo, lib. xifi c 3 V Ruffon. nrtic. Hisvn. 160 HIS T OliY OP [Book IV- as our cattle.* But a savage, in that uncultivated state wherein the Americans w^ere discovered, is the enemy of the other animals, not their superior. He wastes and destroys, but knows not how to multiply or to govern them.t This, perhaps, is the most notable distinction between the inhabitants of the Ancient and New Worlds, and a high pre-eminence of civilized men above such as continue rude. The greatest operations- of man in changing and improving the face of nature, as well as his most considerable efforts in cultivating the earth, are accomplished by means of the aid which he receives from the animals that he has tamed, and employs in labour. It is by their strength that he subdues the stubborn soil, and converts the desert or marsh into a fruitful field. But man, in his civilized state, is so accustomed to the service of the domestic animals, that he seldom reflects upon the vast benefits which he derives from it. If we were to suppose him, even when most improved, to be deprived of their useful ministry, his empire over nature must in some measure cease, and he would remain a teeble animal, at a loss how to subsist, and incapable of attempt- ing such arduous undertakings as their assistance enables him to execute with ease. It is a doubtful point, whether the dominion of man over the animal creation, or his acquiring the useful metals, has contributed most to extend his power. The era ot this important discovery is unknown, and in our hemisphere very remote. It is only by tradition, or by digging up some rude instruments of our forefathers, that we learn that mankind were originally unacquainted with the use of metals, and endeavoured to supply the' want of them by employing flints, shells, bones, and other hard sub- stances, for the same purposes which metals serve among polished nations. Nature completes the formation of some metals. Gold, silver, and copper, are found in their perfect state in the clefts of rocks, in the sides of mountains, or the channels of rivers. These were accordingly the metals first known, and first applied to use. But iron, the most serviceable of all, and to which man is most indebted, is never discovered in its perfect form ; its gross and stubborn ore must feel twice the force of fire, and go through two laborious processes, before it becomes fit for use. Man was long acquainted with the other metals before he acquired the art of fabricating iron, or attained such ingenuity as to perfect an invention, to which he is indebted for those instruments wherewith he subdues the earth, and com- mands all its inhabitants. But in this, as well as in many other respects, the inferiority of the Americans was conspicuous. All the savage tribes, scattered over the continent and islands, were totally unacquainted with the metals which their soil produces in great abundance, if we except some trifling quantity of gold, which they picked up in the torrents that descended from their mountains, and formed into ornaments. Their devices to supply this want of the serviceable metals were extremely rude and awkward. The most simple operation was to them an undertaking of immense difficulty and labour. To fell a tree with no other instruments than hatchets of stone, was employment for a month. | To form a canoe into shape, and to hollow it, consumed years ; and it frequently began to rot before they were able to finish it.§ Their operations in agriculture were equally slow and defective. In a country covered with woods of the hardest timber, the clearing of a small field destined for culture required the united efforts of a tribe, and was a work of much time and great toil. This was the business of the men, and their indolence Avas satisfied with performing it in a very slovenly manner. The labour of cultivation was left to the women, who, after digging, or rather stirring the * Nonv. Otcouveite par Hennepin, p. 192. K.-ilm, i. 207. t Buffon Hist. Nat. ix. 85. Hist. Pliilos. et Polit. ties Elahlissem. dus Europ. dans \Qi 2. Fernandez Relac. Hist, de los Cheyuit. Wi. t Voyngts de Marcliais, iv. S.'iX $ Guinllla, ii. 101. II M. Fabry, quoted by Buflbn. iii. 4-<8. Lafitaii, ii. 179. Hofsii. Travels tlirmiRh Louisiana,!. HI. Vol. I,— 21 162 JJISTOK^ 164 11 l.STOKY OF [BookIW instinct, habit, or coiiveniency, rather than from any formal concert and association. To this class belong the Californians, several of the small nations in the extensive country of Paragua, some of the people on the banks of the Orinoco, and on the river St. Magdalene, in the new kingdom of Granada.* But though among these last mentioned tribes there was hardly any shadow of regular government, and even among those which I first described its authority is slender and confined within narrow bounds, there were, however, some places in America where government was carried far beyond the degree of perfection which seems natural to rude nations. In surveying the political operations of man, either in his savage or civilized .state, we discover singular and eccentric institutions, which start as it were from their station, and fly off so wide, that we labour in vain to bring them within the general laws of any system, or to account for them by tnose principles which influence other communities in a similar situa- tion. Some instances of this occur among those people of America whom I have included under the common denomination ot savage. These are so curious and important that I shall describe them, and attempt to explain their origin. In the New World, as well as in other parts of the globe, cold or temperate countries appear to be the favourite seat of freedom and independence. There the mind, like the body, is firm and vigorous. There men, conscious of their own dignity, and capable of the greatest efforts in asserting it, aspire to independence, and their stubborn spirits stoop with reluctance to the yoke of servitude. In warmer climates, by Avhose influence the whole frame is so much enervated that present pleasure is the supreme felicity, and mere repose is enjoyment, men acquiesce, almost without a struggle, in the dominion of a superior. Accordingly, if we proceed from north to south along the continent of America, we shall find the power of those vested Avith authority gradually increasing, and the spirit of the people becoming more tame and passive. In Florida, the prerogativ* reverence which people accustomed tosubjectfon pay to a master.! Among the Natchez, a powerful tribe now extinct, formerly situated on the banks of the Mississippi, a difference of rank took place, with which the northern tribes were altogether unacquainted. Some families were reputed noble, and enjoyed hereditary dignity. The body of the people Avas considered as vile, and formed only for subjection. This distinction was marked by appellations Avhich intimated the high elevation of the one state, and the ignominious depression of the other. The former were called Respectable ; the latter, the Stinkards. The great Chief, in whom the supreme authority was vested, is reputed to be a being of superior nature, the brother ot the sun, the sole object of their worship. They approach this great Chief with religious veneration, and honour him as the representative of their deity. His will is a laAv, to which all submit with implicit obedience. The lives of his subjects are so absolutely at his dis- posal, that if any one has incurred his displeasure, the offender comes with profound humility and offers him his head. Nor does the dominion of the Chiefs end with their lives ; their principal officers, their favourite wives, together with many domestics of inferior rank, are sacrificed at their tombs, that they may be attended in the next world by the same persons who served them in this ; and such is the reverence in which they are held, * Venegaa, i. 63. Lettr. Edif. ii. 176. Teclio Hist, of Parag. Churchill, vi. 73. Hist. Gen. dos Vovafies, xiv. 74. t Cardenas y Cano Eiisayo Chronol. i la Hist, de Florida, p. 46. Le Moyne fie Morsucs Icoiiw Florida?, ap.rie Brv, p. 1. 4, &c. Charlsv. Hist. N. Frauce, iii. 467, 46(^. A M E R I C A. 165 that those victims welcome death with exultation, deemino- it a recompense of their fidelity and a mark of distinction to be selected to accompany their deceased master.* Thus a perfect despotism, with its full train of superstition, arrogance, and cruelty, is established among the Natchez, and, by a singular fatality, that people has tasted of the worst calamities incident to polished nations, though they themselves are not far advanced beyond the tribes around them in civility and improvement. In Hispaniola, Cuba, and the lai^er islands, their caziques or chiefs possessed extensive power. The dignity was transmitted by hereditary right from father to son. Its honours and prerogatives were considerable. Their subjects paid great respect to the caziques, and executed their orders without hesitation or reserve.! They were distinguished by peculiar ornaments, and in order to preserve or augment the veneration of the people, they had the address to call in the aid of superstition to uphold their authority. They delivered their mandates as the oracles of heaven, and pretended to possess the power of regulating the seasons, and of dispensing rain or sunshine, ac- cording as their subjects stood in need of them. In some parts of the southern continent, the power of the caziques seems to have been as extensive as in the isles. In Bogota, which is now a pro- vince of the new kingdom of Granada, there was settled a nation more considerable in number, and more improved in the various arts of life, than any in America, except the Mexicans and Peruvians. The people of Bogota subsisted chiefly by agriculture. The idea of property was introduced among them, and its rights, secured by laws, handed down by tradition, and observed with great care.J They lived in towns which may be termed lai^e when compared with those in other parts of America. They were clothed in a decent manner, and their houses may be termed commodious when compared with those of the small tribes around them. The effects of this uncommon civilization were conspicuous. Government had assumed a regular form. A jurisdiction was established, which took cognizance of different crimes, and punished them with rigour. A distinction of ranks was known ; their chief, to whom the Spaniards gave the title of monarch, and who merited that name on account of his splendour as well as power, reigned with absolute authority. He was attended by officers of various conditions ; he never appeared in public without a numerous retinue ; he was carried in a sort of palanquin with much pomp, and har- bingers went before him to sweep the road and strew it with flowers. This uncommon pomp was supported by presents or taxes received from his subjects, to whom their prince was such an object of veneration that none of them presumed to look him directly in the face, or ever approached him but with an averted countenance.§ There were other tribes on the same continent, among which, though far less advanced than the people of Bogota in their progress towards refinement, the freedom and inde- pendence natural to man in his savage state was much abridged, and their caziques had assumed extensive authoritj'. It is not easy to point out the circumstances, or to discover the causes which contributed to introduce and establish among each of those people a form of government so different from that of the tribes around them, and so repugnant to the genius of rude nations. If the pei*sons who had an opportunity of observing them in their original stale had been more atten- tive and more discerning, we might have received information from their conquerors sufficient to guide us in this inquiry. If the transactions of people unacquainted with the use of letters were not involved in impene- trable obscurity, we might have derived some information from this ♦ Dumont Memoir. Hist sur Lnuisianc, i, 175. Cliarlcv. Jlist. N. France, iii. 419, Sec. Lettr. Edif. 30. 106. 111. t Jlerrera, dec. 1. lib. i. c. 16. lib. iii. c. 44. p. 88. Life of Columbus, cli. :«. \ Picdrahita Hist, de las Conquist. del Ucyno de Granada, p. 40. <■, Horrcra, dec. 6. Iii). i. c. 2. iib. T. c- 5C). ri'^drahita, c. 5, p. 2."). &c. Gomrtrn, Hint. c. ";'.'. lo6 HISTORY OF [Book IV. domestic source. But as nothing satisfactory can be gathered either from the accounts of the Spaniards, or from their own traditions, we must have recourse to conjectures in order to explain the irregular appearances in the political state of the people whom I have mentioned. As all those tribes which had lost their native liberty and independence were seated in the torrid zone, or in countries approaching to it, the climate may be supposed to have had some influence in forming their minds to that servitude which seems to be the destiny of man in those regions of the globe. But though the influence of climate, more powerful than that of any other natural cause, is not to be overlooked, that alone cannot be admitted as a solution of the point in question. The operations of men are so complex that we irmst not attribute the form which they assume to the force of a single principle or cause. Although despotism be confined in America to the torrid zone, and to the warm regions bordering upon it, 1 have already observed that these countries contain various tribes, some of which possess a high degree of freedom, and others are altogether unacquainted with the restraints of government. The indolence and timidity peculiar to the inhabitants of the islands, render them so incapable of the sentiments or efforts necessary for maintaining independence, that there is no occasion to search for any other cause of their tame submission to the will of a supe- rior. The subjection of the Natchez, and of the people of Bogota, seems to have been the consequence of a difference in their state from that of the other Americans. They were settled nations, residing constantly in one place. Hunting was not the chief occupation of the former, and the latter seem hardly to have trusted to it for any part of their subsistence. Both had made such progress in agriculture and arts that the idea of property >vas introduced in some degree in the one community, and fully estabhshed in the other. Among people in this state, avarice and ambition have acquired objects, and have begun to exert their power ; views of interest allure the selfish ; the desire of pre-eminence excites the enterprising ; dominion is courted by both ; and passions unknown to man in his savage state prompt the interested and ambitious to encroach on the rights of their fellow-citizens. Motives, with which rude nations are equally unac- quainted, induce the people to submit tamely to the usurped authority of their superiors. But even among nations in this state, the spirit of subjects could not have been rendered so obsequious, or the power of rulers so unbounded, without the intervention of superstition. By its fatal influence the human mind, in every stage of its progress, is depressed, and its native vigour and independence subdued. Whoever can acquire the direction of this formidable engine, is secure of dominion over his species. Unfor- tunately for the people whose institutions are the subject of inquirj-, this power was in the hands of their chiefs. The caziques of the isles could l)ut what responses they pleased into the mouths of their Cemis or gods ; and it was by their interposition, and in their name, that they imposed any tribute or burden on their people.* The same power and prerogative was exercised by the great chief of the Natchez, as the principal minister as well as the reiiresentative of the Sun, their deity. The respect Avhich the people of Bogota paid to their monarchs was likewise inspired by religion, and the heir apparent of the kingdom Avas educated in the inner- most recess of their principal temple, under such austere discipline, and with such peculiar rites, as tended to till his subjects with high sentiments concerning the sanctify of his character and the dignity of his station,! Tnus superstition, which in the rudest period of society, is either altogether unknown, or wastes its force in childish unmeaning practices, had acquired such an ascendant over those people of America, who had made some little progress towards refinement, that it became the chief instrument of bending * Ifrrrera. S<^c. 1 lib. jii. c. ^. " riedrnbita, p r~ AMERICA. 167 their minds to an untimely servitude, and subjected them, in the beginning; of their poHtical career, to a despotism hardly less rigorous than that which awaits nations in the last stage of their corruption and decline. V. After examining the political institutions of the rude nations in America, the next object of attention is their art of war, or their provision for public security and defence. The small tribes dispersed over America are not only independent and unconnected, but engaged in perpetual hostilities with one another.* Though mostly strangers to the idea of separate property, vested in any individual, the rudest of the American nations are well acquainted with the rights of each community to its own domains. This right they hold to be perfect and exclusive, entitling the possessor to oppose the encroachment of neighbouring tribes. As it is of the utmost consequence to prevent them from destroying or disturbing the game in their hunting grounds, they guard this national property with a jealous attention. But as their territories are extensive, and the boundaries of them not exactly ascertained, innumerable subjects of dispute arise, which seldom terminate without bloodshed. Even in this simple and primitive state of society, interest is a source of discord, and often prompts savage tribes to take arms in order to repel or punish such as encroach on the forests or plains to which they trust for subsistence. But interest is not either the most frequent or the most powerful motive of the incessant hostilities among rude nations. These must be imputed to the passion of revenge, which rages with such violence in the breast of savages, that eagerness to gratify it may be considered as the distinguishing characteristic of men in their uncivilized state. Circumstances of powerful influence, both in the interior government of rude tribes, and in their external operations against foreign enemies, concur in cherishing and adding strength to a passion fatal to the general tranquillity. When the right of redressing his own wrongs is left in the hands of every individual, injuries are felt with exquisite sensibility, and vengeance exercised with unrelenting rancour. No time can obliterate the memory of an offence, and it is seldom that it can be expiated but by the blood of the offender. In carrying on their public wars, savage nations are influenced by the same ideas, and animated with the same spirit, as in prosecuting private vengeance. In small communities, every man is touched with the injury or affront offered to the body of which he is a member, as if it were a personal attack upon his own honour or safety. The desire of revenge is communicated from breast to breast, and soon kindles into rage. As feeble societies can take the field only in small parties, each warrior is conscious of the importance of his own arm, and feels that to it is committed a considerable portion of the public vengeance. War, which between extensive kingdoms is carried on with little animosity, is prosecuted by small tribes with all the rancour of a private quarrel. The resentment of nations is as implacable as that of individuals. It may be dissembled or suppressed, but is never extin- guished ; and often, when least expected or dreaded, it bursts out with redoubled fuij.t When polished nations have obtained the glory of victory, or have acquired an addition of territory, they may terminate a war with honour. But savages are not satisfied until they extirpate the community which is the object of their hatred. They fight, not to conquer, but to destroy. If they engage in hostilities, it is with a resolution never to see the face of the enemy in peace, but to prosecute the quarrel with immortal enmity .| The desire of vengeance is the first and almost the only principle which a savage instils into the minds of his children. § This grows up * Ribas Hist, dft los Triumph, p. 9. t Boiiclipr Hist. Nat. do N. Franro, p. 93. Cliarlov. Hisl. de N. Franre, iii. 21.5. 2.">1. Lprvap.de Krv, iii.'i()4. Creux. Hist. Caiiad. p. 72. Lozjino Descr. del Gran (^haro, 'iV Ilrnnpp. Mmirs des .Sanv, 10. t Cliarkv. flist. N. Fr. iii. a'll. f^.ldeii. i. 108. ii. 12fi. I'.arrprp, p. 170. ITJ. <\ Chailov. lllsr. N. Vr. iii. •.««. I.c-ry ap. Such is the difficulty of accustoming savages to subordination, or to act in concert ; such is their impatience under restraint, and such their caprice and presumption, that it is rarely they can be brought to conform themselves to the counsels and directions of their leaders. They never station sen- tinels around the place where they rest at night, and after marching some hundred miles to surprise an enemy, are often surprised themselves, and cut off, while sunk in as profound sleep as if they were not within reach of danger.! It, notwithstanding this negligence and security, which often frustrate their most artful schemes, they catch the enemy unprepared, they rush upon theni with the utmost ferocity, and tearing off the scalps of all those who fall victims to their rage [70], they carry home those strange trophies in triumph. These they preserve as monuments, not only of their own prowess, but of the vengeance which their arm has inflicted upon the people who were objects of public resentment.J They are still more solicitous to seize prisoners. During their retreat, if they hope to effect it unmolested, the prisoners are commonly exempt from any insult, and treated with some degree of humanity, though guarded with the most strict attention. But after this temporary suspension, the rage of the conquerors rekindles with new fury. As soon as they approach their own frontier, some of their number are despatched to inform their countiymen with respect to the success of the expedition. Then the prisoners begin to feel the "wretchedness of their condition. The women of the village, together with the youth who have not attained to the age of bearing arms, assemble, and fornimg themselves into two lines, through which the prisoners must pass, beat and bruise them with sticks or stones in a cruel manner.§ After this first gratification of their rage against their enemies, follow lamenta- tions for the loss of such of their own countrymen as have fallen in the service, accompanied with words and actions which seem to express the utmost anguish and grief. But in a moment, upon a signal given, their tears cease ; they pass, with a sudden and unaccountable transition, from the depths of sorrow to the transports of joy ; and begin to celebrate their victory with all the wild exultation of a barbarous triumph. II The fate of the prisoners remains still undecided. The old men deliberate con- cerning it. Some are destined to be tortured to death, in order to satiate * Fabri VprissDeRrrip. India:" ap. do Brv, vii. p. 42. t Cliailev. N. Fr. i:i. 2,10, 2117. Lrttr. Kdif. xvii. 308. .xx V.iO. Lafit. Mii-urs, 247. Ual)ontan, ii. 176. t Lalilau Mociirs, ii. a.W. ^ Lahonlaii, ii. 1P4. |i Charlov. Hist. N. Fr. iii. 2)1. I.afitau Moeiirs, ii. 564. AMERICA. 171 the revenge of the conquerors ; some to replace the members which the community has lost in that or former wars. They who are reserved tor this milder fate, are led to the huts of those whose friends have been killed. The women meet them at the door, and if they receive them, their sufferings are at an end. They are adopted into the family, and, according to their phrase, are seated upon the mat of the deceased. They assume his name, they hold the same rank, and are treated thenceforward with all the tenderness due to a father, a brother, a husband, or a Iriend. But, if either from caprice or an unrelenting desire of revenge, the women of any family refuse to accept of the prisoner who is offered to them, his doom is fixed. No power can then save him from torture and death. While their lot is in suspense, the prisoners themselves appear altogether unconcerned about what may befall them. They talk, they eat, they sleep, as if they were perfectly at ease, and no danger impending. When the fatal sentence is intimated to them, they receive it vvith an unaltered countenance, raise their death song, and prepare to suffer like men. Their conquerors assemble as to a solemn festival, resolved to put the fortitude of the captive to the utmost proof. A scene ensues, the bare description of which is enough to chill the heart with horror, wherever men have been accustomed, by milder institutions, to respect their species, and to melt into tenderness at the sight of human sufferings. The prisoners are tied naked to a stake, but so as to be at liberty to move round it. All who are present, men, women, and children, rush upon them like furies. Every species of torture is applied that the rancour of revenge can invent. Some burn their limbs with redhot irons, some mangle their bodies with knives, others tear their flesh from their bones, pluck out their nails by the roots, and rend and twist their sinews. They vie with one another in refinements of torture. Nothing sets bounds to their rage but the dread of abridging the duration of their vengeance by hastening the death of the sufferers ; and such is their cruel mgenuity in tormenting, that, by avoiding indus- triously to hurt any vital part, they often prolong this scene of anguish for several days. In spite of all that they suffer, the victims continue to chant their death song with a firm voice, they boast of their own exploits, they insult their tormentors for their want of'^skill in avenging their friends and relations, they warn them of the vengeance which awaits them on account of what they are now doing, and excite their ferocity l)y the most pro- voking reproaches and threats. To display undaunted fortitude, in such dreadful situations, is the noblest triumph of a warrior. To avoid the trial by a voluntary death, or to shrink under it, is deemed infamous and cowardly. If any one betray symptoms of timidity, his tormentors often despatch him at once with contempt, as unworthy of being treated like a man.* Animated with those ideas, they endure without a groan what it seems almost impossible that human nature should sustain. They appear to be not only insensible of pain, but to court it. " Forbear, ' said an aged chief of the Iroquois, when his insults had provoked one of his tor- mentors to wound him with a knife, " forbear these stabs of your knife, and rather let me die by fire, that those dogs, your allies, from beyond the sea, may learn by my example to suffer like men."t This magnanimity, of which there are frequent instances among the American warriors, instead of exciting admiration, or calling forth sympathy, exasperates the fierce spirits of their torturers to fresh acts of cruelty. J Weaiy, at length of contending with men whose constancy of mind they cannot vanquish, some chief, in a rage, puts a period to their sufferings, by despatching them with hi^ dagger or club.§ * De la Pothcrie, ii. 237. iii. 48. t Colden, Hist, of Five Nations, i 200. t Voyages Ae Lahoiit, i. 2,jfi. ^ Charley. Hist. N. Fr. iii. 2i:i, &c. 38.5. Latitaii Mreiiis, ii. 2r.5. Creuxij Ili9t. Caiiad. p. 711. Hcimep. Mccurs dos Siiuv. p. 64, &c. 1-aliont, i. 2:):{, &c. Tertre, ii. 405. l>e la Pothcrie, ii. 22, Ice. 172 HISTORY OF [Book IV. This barbarous scene is often succeeded by one no less shocking. As it is impossible to appease the fell spirit of revenge which rages in the heart of a savage, this frequently prompts the Americans to devour those unhappy persons who have been the victims of their cruelty. In the an- cient world, tradition has preserved the memory of barbarous nations of cannibals, who fed on human flesh. But in every part of the New World there were people to whom this custom was familiar. It prevailed in the southern continent,* in several of the islands,! and in various districts of North America.J Even in those parts where circumstances with which we are unacquainted had in a great measure abolished this practice, it seems formerly to have been so well known that it is incorporated into the idiom of their language. Among the Iroquois, the phrase by which they express their resolution of making war against an enemy is, "Let us go and eat that nation." If they solicit the aid of a neighbouring tribe, they invite it " to eat broth made of the flesh of their enemies"§ [71]. Nor was the practice peculiar to rude unpolished tribes ; the principle from ^vhich they took rise is so deeply rooted in the minds of the Americans, that it subsisted in Mexico, one ot the civilized empires in the New World, and relics of it may be discovered among the more mild inhabitants of Peru. It was not scarcity of food, as some authors imagine, and the importunate cravings of hunger, which forced the Americans to those horrid repasts on their fellow-creatures. Human flesh was never used as common food in any country, and the various relations concerning people who reckoned it among the stated means of subsistence, flow irom the credulity and mistakes of travellers. The rancour of revenge first prompted men to this barbarous action.il The fiercest tribes devoured none but prisoners taken in war, or such as they regarded as enemies [72]. Women and children who were not the objects of enmity, if not cut oflf in the fury of their first inroad into a hostile country, seldom sufifered by the deliberate effects of their revenge. II The people of South America gratify their revenge in a manner some- what different, but with no less unrelenting rancour. Their prisoners, after meeting at their first entrance with the same rough reception as among the North Americans,** are not only exempt from injury, but treated with the greatest kindness. They are feasted and caressed, and some beautiful young women are appointed to attend and solace them. It is not easy to account for this part of their conduct, unless we impute it to a refinement in cruelty. For, while they seem studious to attach the captives to life, by supplying them with every enjoyment that can render it agreeable, their doom is irrevocably fixed. On a day appointed the victorious tribe assembles, the prisoner is brought forth with great solem- nity, he views the preparations for the sacrifice with as much indifference as if he himself were not the victim, and meeting; his fate with undaunt- ed firmness, is despatched with a single blow. 1 he moment he falls, the women seize the body and dress it for the feast. They besmear their children with the blood, in order to kindle in their bosoms a hatred of their enemies, which is never extinguished, and all join in feeding upon the flesh with amazing greediness and exultation.tt To devour the body of a slaughtered enemy they deem the most complete and exquisite grati- fication of revenge. Wherever this practice prevails, captives never escape death, but they are not tortured with the same cruelty as among 'tribes which are less accustomed to such horrid feasts [73]. * Stadius ap. de Bry, iii. 123. Lery, ibid. 210. Biet, 384. Lettr. Edif. xxiii. 341. Piso, 8. Condain, 84. 97. Ribas, Hist, de los Triumpli. 473. f Life of Columb. 529. Mart. Dec. p. 18. Tertre, ii. 405. t Diiniont. Rtem. i. 2.54. Cliarlev. Hist. N. France, i. 259. ii. 14. iii 21. De la rollierie, iii. 50. ij Ctmiiev. Hist. N. Fr. iii. 208, 209. Lettr. Edif. .\xiii. p. 277. De la Pothe- »ie, ii. 298. i| Biet, 383. Blanco, Conversion de Piritu, p. 38. Bancroft, Nat. Hist, of Guiana, p. 259, &c. V Biet, 382. P.andini, Vita di Anierico, 84. Tertre, 405. Fermin. Descrip. de Surin. i. 54. *♦ Stadius ap. df? Bry. iii. 40. J23. t+ ftodiiis :tp. de Bry, iii. 128. &c. lifry 8p. dcBrj', iii. 210. AMERICA. 173 As the constancy of every American warrior may be put (o such severe proof, the great object of military education and discipline in the New World is to form the mind to sustain it. When nations carry on war with open force, defy their enemies to the combat, and vanquish them by the superiority of their skill or courage, soldiers are trained to be active, vigorous, and enterprising. But in America, where the genius and maxims of war are extremely different, passive fortitude is the quality in highest estimation. Accordmgly, it is early the study of the Americans to acquire sentiments and habits which will enable them to behave like men when their resolution shall be put to the proof. As the youth of other nations exercise themselves in feats of activity and force, those of America vie with one another in exhibitions of their patience under sufferings. They harden their nerves by those voluntary trials, and gradually accustom them- selves to endure the sharpest pain without complaining. A boy and girl will bind their naked arms together, and place a burning coal between them, in order to try who first discovers such impatience as to shake it off.* All the trials customary in America, when a youth is admitted into the class of warriors, or when a warrior is promoted to the dignity of captain or chief, are accommodated to this idea of manliness. They are not dis- plays of valour, but of patience ; they are not exhibitions of their ability to offend, but of their capacity to suffer. Among the tribes on the banks of the Orinoco, if a warrior aspires to the rank of captain, his probation begins with a long fast, more rigid than any ever observed by the most abstemious hermit. At the close of this the chiefs assemble, each gives him three lashes with a large whip, applied so vigorously that his body is almost flayed, and if he betrays the least symptoms of impatience or even sensibility, he is disgraced lor ever, and rejected as unworthy of the honour to which he aspires. After some interval, the constancy of the can- didate is proved by a more excruciating trial. He is laid in a hammoc with his hands bound fast, and an innumerable multitude of venomous ants, whose bite occasions exquisite pain, and produces a violent inflammation, are thrown upon him. The judges of his merit stand around the ham- moc, and, while these cruel insects fasten upon the most sensible parts of his body, a sigh, a groan, an involuntary motion, expressive of what he suffers, would exclude him for ever from the rank of captain. Even after this evidence of his fortitude, it is not deemed to be completely ascer- tained, but must stand another test more dreadful than any he has hitherto undergone. He is again suspended in his hammoc, and covered with leaves of the palmetto. A fire of stinking herbs is kindled underneath, so as he may feel its heat and be involved in its smoke. Though scorched and almost suffocated, he must continue to endure with the same patient insensibility. Many perish in this rude essay of their firmness and courage, but such as go through it with applause, receive the ensigns of their new- dignity with much solemnity, and are ever after regarded as leaders of approved resolution, whose behaviour in the most trying situations will do honour to their country.f In North America the previous trial of a war- rior is neither so tbrmal nor so severe. Though even there, before a youth is permitted to bear arms, his patience and fortitude are proved by blows, by fire, and by insults more intolerable to a haughty spirit than both.J The amazing steadiness with which the Americans endure the most exquisite torments, has induced some authors to suppose that, from the peculiar feebleness of their frame, their sensibility is not so acute as that of other people ; as women, and })ersons of a relaxed habit, are observed to be less affected with pain than robust men, whose nerves are more firmly braced. But the constitution of the Americans is not so different • Charlev. Hiat. N. Fr. iii. 307. f Gutnilla, ii. 28R, &c. Diet, 376, ttc. * Charlcv. Hisr. N. Fr. iii. 2T9. 174 HISTORY OF [13ook IV. in its texture Irom that of the rest of the human species, as to account for this diversity in their behaviour. It flows from a principle of honour, instilled early and cultivated with such care, as to inspire man in his rudest state with an heroic magnanimity, to which philosophy hath endeavoured in vain to form him, when more highly improved and polished. This invincible constancy he has been taught to consider as the chief distinction of a man, and the highest attainment of a warrior. The ideas which influence his conduct, and the passions which take possession of his heart, are (ew. They operate of course with more decisive effect than when the mind is crowded with a multiplicity of objects, or distracted by the variety of its pursuits ; and when every motive that acts with any force in forming the sentiments of a savage, prompts him to suffer with dignity, he will bear what might seem to be impossible for human patience to sustain. But wherever the fortitude of the Americans is not roused to exertion by their ideas of honour, their feelings of pain are the same with those of the rest of mankind [74]. Nor is that patience under sufferings for which the Americans have been so justly celebrated, a universal attainment. The constancy of many of the victims is overcome by the agonies of torture. Their weakness and lamentations complete the triumph of their enemies, and reflect disgrace upon their own countr}'.* The perpetual hostilities carried on among the American tribes are pro- ductive of veiy fatal effects. Even in seasons of public tranquillity, their imperfect industry does not supply them with any superfluous store of j)rovisions ; but when the irruption of an enemy desolates their cultivated lands, or disturbs them in their hunting excursions, such a calamity reduces a community, naturally unprovident and destitute of resources, to extreme ■want. All the people of the district that is invaded are frequently forced to take refuge in woods and mountains, which can afford them little sub- sistence, and where many of them perish. Notwithstanding their exces- sive caution in conducting their military operations, and the solicitude of every leader to preserve the lives of his followers, as the rude tribes in America seldom enjoy any interval of peace, the loss of men among them is considerable in proportion to the degree of population. Thus famine and the sword combine in thinning their numbers. All their communities are feeble, and nothing now remains of several nations which were once considerable, but the name.f Sensible of this continual decay, there are tribes which endeavour to recruit their national force when exhausted, by adopting prisoners taken in M-ar, and by this expedient prevent their total extinction. The practice, however, is not universally received. Resentment operates more power- fully among savages than considerations of policy. Far the greater part of their captives was anciently sacrificed to their vengeance, and it is only since their numbers began to decline fast, that they have generally adopted milder maxims. But such as they do naturalize renounce for ever their native tribe, and assume the manners as well as passions of the people hj whom they are adoptedj so entirely, that they often join them in expedi- tions against their own countrymen. Such a sudden transition, and so repugnant to one of the most powerful instincts implanted by nature, would be deemed strange among many people ; but among the members of small communities, where national enmity is violent and deep rooted, it has the appearance of being still more unaccountable. It seems, however, to result naturally from the principles upon which war is carried on in Arnerica. When nations aim at exterminating their enemies, no exchange of prisoners can ever take place. From the moment one is made a prisoner, his country and his friends consider him as dead [75]. He has incurred indelible * riiarlev. Hist. N. Fr. iii. 248. 38j. Dc la Potlieiic, iii. -JR. t Cliarlev Hist. N. Ft. iii. 202, Cejected with calamities which oppress him, and exposed to dangers which he cannot repel, the savage no longer relies upon himself ; he feels his own impotence, and sees no prospect of being extricated, but by the interposition of some unseen arm. Hence, in all unenlightened nations, the first rites or practices which bear any resemblance to acts of religion, have it for their object to avert evils which men suffer or dread. The Manitous or Okkis ot the North Americans were amulets or charms, which they imagined to be of such virtue as to preserve the persons who reposed confidence in them from any disastrous event, or they were considered as tutelary spirits, whose aid they might implore in circumstances of distress.! The Cemis of the islandei-s were reputed by them to be the authors of every calamity that afflicts the human race ; they were represented under the most frightful forms, and religious homage was paid to them with no other view than to appease these furious deities.f Even among those tribes whose religious system was more enlarged, and who had formed some conception of benevolent beings, which delighted in conferring benefits, as well as of malicious powers prone to inflict evil ; superstition still appears • Biet, 539. Lery ap. de Bry, iii. 221. Nieuhoff. Church. Coll. ii. 132. Lcttr. Edif. 2. 177. Id. 12, iJ. Vcnegas, i, 87. Lozano Descr. drl Gran Chaco, .19. Fernaiid. Mission, de Cliequil. 39. Gutnilla, ii. 156. Rochefort Hist, dts AntilU^s, p. 468. Margrave Hist, in Append, de Chilicni>itiui», 286. Uiloa, Notic. Amer. 3:«, &c. Barrere, 218, 219. Harcourt Voy. to Guiana, Purch. Pilgr. iv. B, 1273. Account of Brazil, by a Porlugueac. Ibid. p. 1289. Jones's Journal, p. 50. tCharlcv. N. Fr. iii. 343, &c. Creuxii Hit^t. Caiiab. p. 82, &c. t Ovicdo. lib. iii- c. J. t>. 111. P. Martyr, decad. p. 102, Ar. 1S2 HI S T O li Y O F [Book U . as the offspring of fear, and all its efforts were employed to avert calami- ties. They were persuaded that their good deities, prompted by the beneficence of their nature, would bestow every blessing in their power, without solicitation or acknowledgment ; and their only anxiety was to soothe and deprecate the wrath of the powers whom they regarded as the enemies of mankind.* Such were the imperfect conceptions of the greater part of the Americans with respect to the interposition of invisible agents, and such, almost uni- versally, was the mean and illiberal object of their superstitions. Were we to trace back the ideas of other nations to that rude state in which history first presents them to our view, we should discover a surprising resemblance in their tenets and practices ; and should be convinced, that in similar circumstances, the faculties of the human mind hold nearly the same course in their progress, and arrive at almost the same conclusions. The impressions of fear are conspicuous in all the systems of superstition formed in this situation. The most exalted notions of men rise no higher than to a perplexed apprehension of certain beings, whose power, though supernatural, is limited as well as partial. But, among other tribes, which have been longer united, or have made greater progress in improvement, we discern some feeble pointing towards more just and adequate conceptions of the power that presides in nature. They seem to perceive that there must be some universal cause to wtiom all things are indebted for their being. If we may judge by some of their expressions, they appear to acknowledge a divine power to be the maker of the world, and the disposer of all events. They denominate him the Great Spirit.] But these ideas are faint and confused, and when they attempt to explain them, it is manifest that among them the word spirit has a meaning very different from that in which we employ it, and that they have no concep- tion of any deity but what is corporeal. They believe their gods to be of the human form, though of a nature more excellent than man, and retail such wild incoherent fables concerning their functions and operations, as are altogether unworthy of a place in history. Even among these tribes, there is no established form of public worship ; there are no temples erected in honour of their deities ; and no ministers peculiarly consecrated to their service. They have the knowledge, however, of several superstitious ceremonies and practices handed down to them by tradition, and to these they have recourse with a childish credulity, when roused by any emer- gence from their usual insensibility, and excited to acknowledge the power, and to implore the protection of superior beings, j The tribe of the Natchez, and the people of Bogota, had advanced beyond the other uncultivated nations of America in their ideas of religion, as well as in their political institutions ; and it is no less difficult to explain the cause of this distinction than of that which we have already consi- dered. The Sun was the chief object of religious worship among the Natchez. In their temples, which were constructed with some magnifi- cence, and decorated with various ornaments, according to their mode of architecture, they preserved a perpetual fire, as the purest emblem of their divinity. Ministers were appointed to watch and feed this sacred flame. The first function of the great chief of the nation, every morning, was an act of obeisance to the Sun ; and festivals returned at stated seasons, which were celebrated by the whole community with solemn but unbloody rites.§ This is the most refined species of superstition known in America, and perhaps one of the most natural as well as most seducing. The Sun is the apparent source of the joy, fertility, and life, diffused through nature ; and * Tcrtre, ii. 365. Borde, p. 14. State of Virginia, by a Native, book iii. p. 30, 33. Diimont, i. 165. Bancroft Nat. Hist, of Guiana, 309. f <'liarlev. N. Fr. iii. 343. Sagard, Voy. du Pays 4eB Hurous, 22G. i Charlcv. N. Fr. i;i. 34.'i. Cohk'ji, i. IT. $ Omnonf, i. 158, &c. Charley. N. Fr. iii. 417. &c. 409. I.atitaii. i. 167, AMERICA. 183 while the human mind, in its earlier essays towards inquiry, contemplates and admires his universal and animating energy, its admiration is apt to stop short at what is visible, without reaching to the unseen cause ; and pays that adoration to the most glorious and beneficial work of God, which is due only to him who formed it. As fire is the purest and most active of the elements, and in some of its qualities and effects resembles the Sun, it was, not improperly, chosen to be the emblem of his powerful operation. The ancient Persians, a people far superior, in every respect, to that rude tribe whose rites I am describing, founded their religious system on similar principles, and established a form of public worship, less gross and excep- tionable than that of any people destitute of guidance from revelation. This surprising coincidence in sentiment between two nations, in such different states of improvement, is one of the many singular and unaccount- able circumstances which occur in the history of human affairs. Among the people of Bogota, the Sun and Moon were, likewise, the chief objects of veneration. Their system of religion was more regular and complete, though less pure, than that of the Natchez. They had temples, altars, priests, sacrifices, and that long train of ceremonies, which superstition introduces wherever she has fully established her dominion over the minds of men. But the rites of their worship were cruel and bloody. They offered human victims to their deities, and many of their practices nearly resembled the barbarous institutions of the Mexicans, the genius of which we shall have an opportunity of considering more atten- tively in its proper place.* With respect to the other great doctrine of religion, concerning the immortality of the soul,' the sentiments of the Americans were more united :' the human mind, even when least improved and invigorated by culture, shrinks from the thoughts of annihilation, and looks forward with hope and expectation to a state of future existence. This sentiment, resulting from a secret consciousness of its own dignity, from an instinctive longing after immortality, is universal, and may be deemed natural. Upon this are founded the most exalted hopes of man in his highest state of improvement ; nor has nature withheld trom him this soothing consola- tion, in the most early and rude period of his progress. ~- We can trace this opinion from one extremity of America to the other, in some regions more faint and obscure, in others more perfectly developed, but nowhere unknown. The most uncivilized of its savage tribes do not apprehend death as the extinction of being. All entertain hopes of a future and more happy state, where they shall be forever exempt from the calamities which imbitter human life in its present condition.'''' This future state they con- ceive to be a dielightful country, blessed with perpetual spring, whose forests abound with game, whose rivers swarm with fish, where famine is never felt, and uninterrupted plenty shall be enjoyed without labour or toil. But as men, in forming their first imperfect ideas concerning the invisible world, suppose that there they shall continue to feel the same desires, and to be engaged in the same occupations, as in the present world ; they natu- rally ascribe eminence and distinction, in that state, to the same qualities and talents which are here the object of their esteem. The Americans, accordingly, allotted the highest place, in their country of spirits, to the skilful himter, to the adventurous and successful warrior, and to such as had tortured the greatest number of captives, and devoured their flesh. t These notions were so prevalent that they gave rise to a universal custom, which is at once the strongest evidence that the Americans believe in a future state, and the best illustration of what they expect there. As they imagine, that departed spirits begin their career anew in the world whither they are gone, that their friends may not enter upon it defenceless and unprovided, * Piedrahila, Conq. del N. Rcyno, p. 17. Horrera. dec. 6. lib. v. c. 6. t I-eiy ap. de Bry, iii, 232. Cliarlev, .V. Fr. iii. 351, &c. De la Polherip, ii. JS, &c. iii. .*;. 1S4 lilSTOUi OF [Book iV. they buiy together with the bodies of the dead their bow, their arrows, and other weapons used in hunting or war ; they deposit in their tombs the skins or stuffs of which they make garments, Indian com, manioc, venison, domestic utensils, and whatever is reckoned among the necessaries in their simple mode of life.* In some provinces, upon the decease of a cazique or chief, a certain number of his wives, of his favourites, and of his slaves, were put to death, and interred together with him, that he might appear with the same dignity in his future station, and be waited upon by the same attendants.! This persuasion is so deep rooted that many of the deceased person's retainers offer themselves as voluntary victims, and court the frivilege of accompanying their departed master, as a high distinction, t has been found difficult, on some occasions, to set bounds to this enthu- siasm of affectionate duty, and to reduce the train of a favourite leader to such a number as the tribe could afford to spare [89]. Among the Americans, as well as other uncivilized nations, many of the rites and observances which bear some resemblance to acts of religion, have no connection with devotion, but proceed from a fond desire of prying into futurity. The human mind is most apt to feel and to discover this vain curiosity, when its own powers are most feeble and uninformed. Aston- ished with occurrences of which it is unable to comprehend the cause, it naturally fancies that there is something mysterious and wonderful in their origin. Alarmed at events of which it cannot discern the issue or the con- sequences, it has recourse to other means of discovering them than the exercise of its own sagacity. Wherever superstition is so established as to form a regular system, this desire of penetrating into the secrets of futurity is connected with it. Divination becomes a religious act. Priests, as the ministers of heaven, pretend to deliver its oracles to men. They are the only soothsayers, augurs, and magicians, who profess the sacred and important art of disclosing what is hid from other eyes. But, among rude nations, who pay no veneration to any superintending power, and who have no established rites or ministers of religion, their curiosity, to discover what is future and unknown, is cherished by a different principle, and derives strength from another alliance. As the diseases of men, in the savage state, are (as has been already observed) like those of the animal creation, few, but extremely violent, their im- patience under what they suffer, and solicitude for the recovery of health, soon inspired them with extraordinary reverence for such as pretended to understand the nature of their maladies, and to be possessed ot knowledge sufficient to preserve or deliver them from their sudden and fatal etlects. These ignorant pretenders, however, were such utter strangers to the structure of the human frame, as to be equally unacquainted with the causes of its disorders, and the manner in which they will terminate. Superstition, mingled frequently with some portion of craft, supplied w hat they wanted in science. They imputed the origin of diseases to superna- tural influence, and prescribed, or performed a variety of mysterious rites, which they gave out to be of such efficacy as to reinove the most dangerous and inveterate maladies. The credulity and love of the marvellous, natural to uninformed men, favoured the deception, and prepared them to be the dupes of those impostors. Among savages, their first physicians are a kind of conjurers or wizards, who boast that they know what is past, and can foretell what is to come. Incantations, sorcery, and mummeries of diverse kinds, no less strange than frivolous, are the means which they employ to expel the imaginaiy causes of malignity ;| and, relying upon * Chronica deCiecade Leon, c. 28. Sagard, 288. Creux. Hist. Canad. p. 91. Rocliefort. Hiet. des Antilcs, .'i68. Biet, 391. De la Potherie, ii. 44. iii. 8, Blanco Coiivers. de Piritu, p. 35. t Dumont Louisianc, i. 208, &.c. Oviedo, lib. v. c. 3. Goniaia Hist. Gen. c. 28. P. Mart, dficad. 304. Charlev. N. Fr. iii. 421. Herrera, dec. 1. lib. iii. c, 3. P. Melchior Hernandez Memor. dd fcheriqui. Coll. Orig. Paperw, i. ChroD. de Cieca do J.eon, c. 3.1. ♦ P, Melch. H' mandez Memo- rial deChfiriqtij. Cnjlecl. Orig. Pap. i. AMERICA. 186 the efficacy of these, they predict with confidence what will be the fate of their deluded patients. Thus superstition, in its earliest form, flowed from the solicitude of man to be delivered from present distress, not from his dread of evils awaiting him in a future life, and was originally ingrafted on medicine, not on religion. One of the first and most intelligent historians of America, was struck with this alliance between the art of divination and that of physic, among the people of Hispaniola.* But this was not peculiar to them. The Alexis, the Piavas, the Antmoins, or whatever was the distinguishing name of their aiviners and charmers in other parts ot America, were all the physicians of their respective tribes, in the same manner as the Bubitos of Hispaniola. As their function led them to apply to the human mind when enfeebled by sickness, and as they found it, in that season of dejection, prone to be alarmed with imaginary fears, or amused with vain hopes, they easily induced it to rely with implicit con- fidence on the virtue of their spells, and the certainty of their predictions.! Whenever men acknowledge the reality of supernatural power and dis- cernment in one instance, they have a propensity to admit it in others. The Americans did not long suppose the efficacy of conjuration to be con- fined to one subject. They had recourse to it in every situation ol danger or distress. VV hen the events of war were peculiarly disastrous, when they met with unforeseen disappointment in hunting, when inundations or drought threatened their crops with destruction, they called upon their conjurors to begin their incantations, in order to discover the causes of those calamities, or to foretell what would be their issue.t Their con- fidence in this delusive art gradually increased, and maniiested itself in all the occurrences of life. When involved in any difficulty, or about to enter upon any transaction of moment, every individual regularly consulted the sorcerer, and depended upon his instructions to extricate him from the former, as well as to direct his conduct in the latter. Even among the rudest tribes in America, superstition appears in this form, and divination is an art in high esteem. Long before man had acquired such knowledge of a deity as inspires reverence, and leads to adoration, we observe him stretching out a presumptuous hand to draw aside that veil with which Providence kindly conceals its purposes from human knowledge ; and we find him labouring with fruitless anxiety to penetrate into the mysteries of the divine administration. To discern and to worship a superintending power is an evidence of the enlargement and maturity of the human understanding ; a vain desire of prying into futurity is the error of its infancy, and a proof of its weakness. From this weakness proceeded likewise the faith of the Americans in dreams, their observation of omens, their attention to the chirping of birds, and the cries of animals, all which they suppose to be indications of future events ; and if any one of these prognostics is deemed unfavourable, they instantly abandon the pursuit of those measures on which they are most eagerly bent.§ VIII. But if we would form a complete idea of the uncultivated nations of America, we must not pass unobserved some singular customs, which, though universal and characteristic, could not be reduced, with pioprit;ty, to any of the articles into which i have divided my inquiry concerning their manners. Among savages, in every part of the globe, the love of dancing is a favourite peission. As, dunng a great part of their time, they languish in * Oviedo, lib. v. c. 1. t Herrera, dec, 1. lib. iii. c. 4. Osbomc Coll. ii. 860. Diimont, i. 169, ice. Oharlev. N. Fr, iii. 361. 364, &c. Lavvson, N. Canol. 2t4. Ribas, Triumf. p. 17. Biet, 386. De la PoUierie, ii. 35, &c. J Cliarlev. N. Fr. iii. 3. Duniont, i. 173. Fernand. Relac. de lo8 Clitiiuit. p. 40. Lozano, 84. Margrave, 279. $ Charlev. N. Fr. iii.202. 353. Stadius ap duBry.iii. 120. Creu.xj. Hiit. Canad. 84. Tccho Hi«. of Parag. Church. Coll. vi. 37. Pela PoUu'rio, iii. 6. Vor.. I.— 24 186 HISTORY OF [Book IV. a state of inactivity and indolence, without any occupation to rouse or interest them, they delight universally in a pastime \\ hich calls forth the active powers of tneir nature into exercise. The Spaniards, when they first visited America, were astonished at the fondness of the natives for dancing, and beheld with wonder a people, cold and unanimated in most of their other pursuits, kindle into lite, and exert themselves with ardour, as often as this favourite amusement recurred. Among them, indeed, dancing ought not to be denominated an amusement. It is a serious and important occupation which mingles in every occurrence of public or private life. If any intercourse.be necessary between two American tribes, the ambas- sadors of the one approach in a solemn dance, and present the calumet or emblem of peace ; the sachems of the other receive it with the same ceremony.* If war is denounced against an enemy, it is by a dance ex- pressive of the resentment Avhich they feel, and ol the vengeance which they meditate.! It the wrath of their gods is to be appeased, or their bene- ficence to be celebrated ; if they rejoice at the birth of a child, or mourn the death of a friend,! they have dances appropriated to each of these situations, and suited to the ditferent sentiments with which they are then animated. If a person is indisposed, a dance is prescribed as the most effectual means ot restoring him to health ; and if he himself cannot endure the fatigue of such an exercise, the physician or conjuror performs it in his name, as if the virtue of his activity could be transferred to his patient.§ All their dances are imitations of some action ; and though the music by which they are regulated is extremely simple, and tiresome to the ear by its dull monotony, some of their dances appear wonderfully expressive and animated. The war dance is, perhaps, the most striking. It is the representation of a complete American campaign. The departure of the warriors from their village, their march into the enemy's countiy, the caution with which they encamp, the address with which they station some of their party in ambush, the manner of surprising the enemy, the noise and ferocity of the combat, the scalping of those who are slain, the seizing of prisoners, the triumphant return oi the conquerors, and the tor- ture of tlje victims, are successively exhibited. The performers enter with such enthusiastic ardour into their several parts ; their gestures, their countenance, their voice, are so wild and so well adapted to their various situations, that Europeans can hardly believe it to be a mimic scene, or view it without emotions of fear and horror.H But however expressive some of the American dances may be, there is one circumstance in them remarkable, and connected with the character of the race. The songs, the dances, the amusements of other nations, ex- pressive of the sentiments which animate their hearts, are often adapted to display or excite that sensbility which mutually attaches the sexes. Among some people, such is the ardour of this passion, that love is almost the sole object of festivity and joy ; and as rude nations are strangers to delicacy, and unaccustomed to disguise any emotion of their minds, their dances are often extremely wanton and indecent. Such is the Calenda, of which the natives of Africa are so passionately fond ;1[ and such the feats of the dancing girls which the Asiatics contemplate with so much avidity of desire. But among the Americans, more cold and indifferent to their females, from causes which I have already explained, the passion of love mingles but little with their festivals and pastimes. Their songs and * De la Potherie Hist. ii. 17, &c. Charlev. N. Fr. iii. 211. 297. La Hontan, i. 100 137. Hen- nepin Deeou. 146, &c. t Charlev. N. Fr. iii. 998. Latifau, i. 523. X Joutel, 343. Gomara Hlsi. Gen. c. 1%. <> Denys Hist. Nat. 189. Brickell, 372. De la Potlierie, n. 36. II Dc la Potherie, ii. 116. Charlev. N. F. iii. 297. Lafltau, i. 523. IT Adanson Voyage to Senegal, iii. 887. Labat, Voyage?, iv. 403. Sloonc Hist. Nat. of Jam. Introd. p. 48. Fermin Descript. de Stiiin. i.l39. AMERICA. 1C7 dances are mostly solemn and martial ; they are connected with some o( the serious and important affairs of life ;* and, having no relation to love or gallantry, are seldom common to the two sexes, but executed by the men and women apartt [90]. If, on some occasions, the women are permitted to join in the festival, the character of the entertainment is still the same, and no movement or gesture is expressive of attachment, or encourages familiarity.| An immoderate love of play, especially at games of hazard, which seems to be natural to all people unaccustomed to the occupations of regular industry, is likewise universal among the Americans. The same causes, which so often prompt persons in civilized life, who are at their ease, to have recourse to this pastime, render it the delight of the savage. The former are independent of labour, the latter do not feel the necessity of it ; and as both are unemployed, they run with transport to whatever is interesting enough to stir and to agitate their minds. Hence the Ameri- cans, who at other times are so indifferent, so phlegmatic, so silent, and animated with so few desires, as soon as they engage in play become rapacious, impatient, noisy, and almost frantic with eagerness. Their furs, their domestic untensils, their clothes, their arms, are staked at the gaming table, and when all is lost, high as their sense of independence is, in a wild emotion of despair or of hope, they will often risk their personal liberty upon a single cast.§ Among several tribes, such gaming parties frequently recur, and become their most acceptable entertainment at every great festival. Superstition, which is apt to take hold of those passions which are most vigorous, frequently lends its aid to confirm and strengthen this favourite inclination. Their conjurors are accustomed to prescribe a solemn match at play as one of the most efficacious methods of appeasing their gods, or of restoring the sick to health.il From causes similar to those which render them fond of play, the Americans are extremely addicted to drunkenness. It seems to have been one of the first exertions of human ingenuity to discover some composition of an intoxicating quality ; and there is hardly any nation so rude, or so destitute of invention, as not to have succeeded in this fatal research. The most barbarous of the American tribes have been so unfortunate as to attain this art ; and even those which are so deficient in knowledge, as to be unacquainted with the method of giving an inebriating strength to liquors by fermentation, can accomplish the same end by other means. The people of the islands of North America, and of Calitornia, used, for this purpose, the smoke of tobacco, drawn up with a certain instrwment into the nostrils, the fumes of which ascending to the brain, they felt all the transports and phrensy of intoxication ''I [91]. In almost eveiy other part of the New \\ orld, the natives possessed the art of extracting an intoxicating liquor from maize or the manioc root, the same substances which they convert into bread. The operation by which they effect this nearly resembles the common one of brewing, but with this difference, that, in place of yeast, they use a nauseous infusion of a certain quantity of maize or manioc chewed by their women. The saliva excites a vigorous fermentation, and in a few days the liquor becomes fit for drinking. It is not disagreeable to the taste, and, when swallowed in large q^uantities, is of an intoxicating auality.** This is the general beverage ot the Ameri- cans, which they distinguish by various names, and for which they feel such a violent and insatiable desire as it is not easy either to conceive or * Descript. of N. Franco. Osborne Coll. ii. 883. Cliarlev. N. Fr. iii. 84. t Wafer's Account of iBthmus, &.<:. It)!). I.ery ap. dc Bry, iii. 177. Lozano Hist, de Parag. i. 149. Herrera, dec. 2, lib. vii. c. H. dfc. 4. lib. x. c. 4. I Barrere, Fr. Fqiiin. p. 191. <5 f'harlev. N. Fr. iii. 2G1. 318. Lafitau, ii. 3.T8. &r. Ribas Trjunif. 13. Brickcll, 3:«. (| Cliarlev. N. Fr. iii. 262. V Oviedo llitit. ap. Ramus, iii. 113. Vniiegas, i. 08. Naufrag. dc Cabeca de Vara. cap. 5fi. ** Stadius ap. de Bry, iii. 111. Lery. ibid. 175. 188 HISTORi" OF [Book IV. describe. Among polished nations, where a succession of various functions and amusements keeps the mind in continual occupation, the desire for strong drink is regulated in a great measure by the climate, and increases or diminishes according to the variations of its temperature. In warm regions, the delicate and sensible frame of the inhabitants does not require the stimulation of fermented liquors. In colder countries, the constitution of the natives, more robust and more sluggish, stands in need of generous liquors to quicken and animate it. But among savages, the desire of something that is of power to intoxicate is in every situation the same. All the people of America, if we except some small tribes near the Straits of Magellan, whether natives of the torrid zone, or inhabitants of its more temperate regions, or placed by a harder fate in the severe climates towards its northern or southern extremity, appear to be equally under the dominion of this appetite.* Such a similarity of taste, among people in such differ- ent situations, must be ascribed to the influence of some moral cause, and cannot be considered as the effect of any physical or constitutional want. While engaged in Avar or in the chase, the savage is often in the most interesting situations, and all the powers of his nature are roused to the most vigorous exertions. But those animating scenes are succeeded by long intervals of repose, during which the warrior meets with nothing that he deems of sufficient dignity or importance to merit his attention. He languishes and mopes in this season of indolence. The posture of his body is an emblem of the state of his mind. In one climate, cowering over the fire in his cabin ; in another, stretched under the shade of some tree, he dozes away his time in sleep, or in an unthinking joyless inactivity not far removed from it. As strong liquors awake him from this torpid state, give a brisker motion to his spirits, and enliven him more thoroughly than either dancing or gaming, his love of them is excessive. A savage, when not engaged in action, is a pensive melancholy animal ; but as soon as he tastes, or has a prospect of tasting, the intoxicating draught, he becomes gay and frolicsome.! Whatever be the occasion or pretexts on which the Americans assemble, the meeting always terminates in a debauch. Many of tlieir festivals have no other object, and they welcome the return of them with transports of joy. As they are not accustomed to restrain any appetite, they set no bounds to this. The riot often continues without intermission several days ; and whatever may be the fatal effects of their excess, they never cease from drinking as long as one drop of liquor remains. The persons of greatest eminence, the most distinguished war- riors, 'and the chiefs most renowned for their wisdom, have no greater command of themselves than the most obscure members of the community. Their eagerness for present enjoyment renders them blind to its fatal con- sequences ; and those very men, who in other situations seem to possess a Ibrce of mind more than human, are in this instance inferior to children, in foresight as well as consideration, and mere slaves of brutal appetite.]; When their passions, naturally strong, are heightened and inflamed by drink, they are guilty of the most enormous outrages, and the festivity seldom concludes without deeds of violence or bloodshed. § But, amidst this wild debauch, there is one circumstance remarkable; the women, in most of the American tribes, are not permitted to partake of it [92]. Their province is to prepare the liquor, to serve it about to the guests, and to take care of their husbands and friends when their reason is overpowered. This exclusion of the women from an enjoyment so highly valued by savages, may be justly considered as a mark of their inferiority, and as an additional evidence of that contempt with which they were * Gumilla, i. 257. Lozano Descrip. del Gran. Chaco, 56. 103. Ribas, 8. Ulloa, i. 249. 337. Marchais, iv. 436. Fernandez Mission, de las Chequit. 35. Barrere, p. 203. Blanco Convere. do Piritu, 31. T Melendez Tesores Vcrdad. iii. 369. * Hibas, 9. Ulloa, i 338. ^ Lettr. Edif. ii. 1T8. Torqucmada Mond. Ind. i. 339. AMERICA. 189 treated in the New World. The people of North America, when first discovered, were not acquainted with any intoxicating drink ; but as the Europeans early found it their interest to supply them with spirituous liquors, drunkenness soon became as universal among them as among their countrymen to the south ; and their women, having acquired this new taste, mdulge it with as little decency and moderation as the men.* It were endless to enumerate all the detached customs which have excited the wonder of travellers in America ; but I cannot omit one seemingly as singular as any that has been mentioned. When their parents and other relations become old, or labour under any distemper which their slender knowledge of the healing art cannot remove, the Americans cut short their days with a violent hand, in order to be relieved from the burden of supporting and tending them. This practice pre- vailed amon^ the ruder tribes in every part ofthe continent, from Hudson's Bay to the river De la Plata ; and however shocking it may be to those sentiments of tenderness and attachment, which, in civilized life, we arc apt to consider as congenial with our frame, the condition of man in the savage state leads and reconciles him to it. The same hardships and difficulty of procuring subsistence, which deter savages, in some cases, from rearing their children, prompt them to destroy the aged and infirm. The declining state of the one is as helpless as the infancy of the other. The former are no less unable than the latter to perform the functions that belong to a warrior or hunter, or to endure those various distresses in which savages are so often involved by their own want of foresight and industry. Their relations feel this ; and, incapable of attending to the wants or weaknesses of others, their impatience under an additional burden prompts them to extinguish that life which they find it difficult to sustain. This is not regarded as a deed of cruelty, but as an act of mercy. An American, broken with years and infirmities, conscious that he can no longer depend on the aid of those around him, places himself contentedly in his grave ; and it is by the hands of his children or nearest relations that the thong is pulled, or the blow inflicted, which releases him for ever from the sorrows of life.t IX. After contemplating the rude American tribes in such various lights ; after taking a view of their customs and manners from so many ditiierent stations, nothing remains but to form a general estimate of their character compared with that of more polished nations. A human being, as he comes originally from tlie hand of nature, is every where the same. At his first appearance in the state of infancy, whether it be among the rudest savages or in the most civilized nation, we can discern no quality which marks any distinction or superiority. The capacity of improve- ment seems to be the same ; and the talents he may afterwards acquire, as well as the virtues he may be rendered capable of exercising, depend, in a great measure, upon the state of society in which he is placed. To this state his mind naturally accommodates itself, and from it receives discipline and culture, in proportion to the wants which it accustoms a human being to feel, and the functions in which these engage him, his intellectual powers are called forth. According to the connexions which it establishes between him and the rest of his species, the affections of his heart are exerted. It is only by attending to this great principle that we can discover what is the character of man in eveiy diflferent period of his progress. It we apply it to savage life, and measure the attainments of the human mind in that state by this standard, we shall find, according to an observation which I have already made, that the intellectual powers ot man must be extremely limited in their operations. They are confined * Hutchinaon Hist, of Massachus. 469. Lafitau, ii. 123. Sa^ard, I4(>. t Cassani Histor. «le N. Reyiio rte Gran. p. 300. Piso, p. 6. Ellis Voy. 191. Gumilla, i. 333. 19U HISTORY OF [Book IV. within the narrow sphere of what he deems necessary for supplying his own wants. Whatever has not some relation to these neither attracts his attention, nor is the object of his inquiries. But however narrow the bounds may be within which the knowledge of a savage is circumscribed, he possesses thoroughly that small portion which he has attained. It was not communicated lo him by formal instruction; he does not attend to it as a matter of mere speculation and curiosity ; it is the result of his own observation, the fruit of his own experience, and accommodated to his condition and exigencies. While employed in the active occupations of war or of hunting, he often finds himself in difficult and perilous situations, from which the efforts of his own sagacity must extricate him. He is frequently engaged in measures, where every step depends upon his own ability to decide, where he must rely solely upon his own penetration to discern the dangers to which he is exposed, and upon his own wisdom in providing against them. In consequence of this, he feels the knowledge which he possesses, and the efforts which he makes, and either in delibe- ration or action rests on himself alone. As the talents of individuals are exercised and improved by such exertions, much political wisdom is said to be displayed in conducting the affairs of their small communities. The council of old men in an Ameri- can tribe, deliberating upon its interests, and determining with respect to peace or war, has been compared to the senate in more polished republics. The proceedings of the former, we are told, are often no less formal and sagacious than those of the latter. Great political wisdom is exhibited in pondering the various measures proposed, and in balancing their pro- bable advantages against the evils of^ which they may be productive. Much address and eloquence are employed by the leaders, who aspire at acquiring such confidence with their countrymen as to have an ascendant in those assemblies.* But, among savage tribes, the field for displaying political talents cannot be extensive. Where the idea of private property is incomplete, and no criminal jurisdiction is established, there is hardly any function of internal government to exercise. Where there is no com- merce, and scarcely any intercourse among separate tribes ; where enmity is implacable, and hostilities are carried on almost without intermis- sion; there will be few points of public concern to adjust with their neighbours ; and that department of^ their affairs which may be denomi- nated foreign, cannot be so intricate as to require much refined policy in conducting it. Where individuals are so thoughtless and improvident as seldom to take effectual precautions for self-preservation, it is vain to expect that public measures and deliberations will be regulated by the contemplation of remote events. It is the genius of savages to act from the impulse of present passion. They have neither foresight nor temper to form complicated arrangements with respect to their future conduct. The consultations of the Americans, indeed, are so frequent, and thei» negotiations are so many [93], and so long protracted, as to give their proceedings an extraordinary aspect of wisdom. But this is not owing so much to the depth of their schemes, as to the coldness and phlegm of their temper, which render them slow in determining.! If we except the celebrated league, that united the Five Nations in Canada, into a federal republic, which shall be considered in its proper place, we can discern few such traces of political wisdom, among the rude American tribes, as discover any great degree of foresight or extent of intellectual abilities. Even among them, we shall find public measures more fre- t^uently directed by the impetuous ferocity of their youth, than regulated by the experience and wisdom of their old men. As the condition of man in the savage state is unfavourable to the ' CharlcT. Hist. N. Fi. iii. C60, &r, <■ IhiJ. iii. 271. AMERICA. 191 progress of the understanding, it has a tendency likewise, in some respects, to check the exercise of affection, and to render the heart contracted. The strongest feeling in the mind of a savage is a sense of his own independence. He has sacrificed so small a portion of his natural liberty by becoming a member of society, that he remains, in a great degree, the sole master of his own actions.* He often takes his resolutions atone, without consulting or feeling any connection with the persons around him. In many of his operations he stands as much detached from the rest of his species as if he had formed no union with them. Conscious how little he depends upon other men, he is apt to view them with a careless indifference. Even the force of his mind contributes to increase this unconcern ; and as he looks not beyond himself in deliberating with respect to the part which he should act, his solicitude about the consequences of it seldom extends further. He pursues his own career, and indulges his own fancy, without inquirii^ or regarding whether what he does be agreeable or offensive to others, whether they may derive benefit or receive hurt from it. Hence the ungovernable caprice of savages, their impatience under any species of restraint, their inability to suppress or moderate any inclination, the scorn or neglect with which they receive advice, their high estimation of them- selves, and their contempt of other men. Among them, the pride of inde- pendence produces almost the same effects with interestedness in a more advanced state of society ; it refers everything to a man himself, it leads him to be indifferent about the manner in which his actions may affect other men, and renders the gratification of bis own wishes the measure and end of conduct. To the same cause may be imputed the hardness of heart and insensibi- lity remarkable in all savage nations. Their minds, roused only by strong emotions, are little susceptible of gentle, delicate, or tender affections.] Their union is so incomplete that each individual acts as if he retained all his natural rights entire and undiminished. If a favour is conferred upon him, or any beneficial service is performed on his account, he receives it with much satisfaction, because it contributes to his enjoyment ; but this sentiment extends not beyond himself, it excites no sense of obligation, he neither feels gratitude, nor thinks of making any returnj [94}. Even among persons the most closely connected, the exchange of those good offices which strengthen attachment, mollify the heart, and sweeten the intercourse of life, is not frequent. The high ideas of independence among the Ame- ricans nourish a sullen reserve, which keeps them at a distance from each other. The nearest relations are mutually afraid to make any demand, or to solicit any service,§ lest it should be considered by the other as imposing a burden, or laying a restraint upon his will. I have already remarked the influence of this hard unfeeling temper upon domestic life, with respect to the connection between husband and wife, as well as that between parents and children. Its effects are no less conspicuous, in the performance of those mutual offices of ten- derness whicn the infirmities of our nature frequently exact. Among some tribes, when any of their number are seized with any violent disease, they are generally abandoned by all around them, who, careless of their recovery, fly in the utmost consternation from the supposed danger of inflec- tion. II But even where they are not thus deserted, the cold indift'erence with which they are attended can afford them little consolation. No look of sympathy, no soothing expressions, no officious services, contribute to alleviate the distress of the sufferers, or to make them foi^et what they endure. IF Their nearest relations will often refuse to submit to (he smallest jnconveniency, or to part with the least trifle, however much it may tend * Fernandez Mission, de Iob Cliequit. 33. Cliarlev. Hist. N. Pr. iii. 300. '^ Oviedo, Hist, lib. xvi. c. 2. $ De la Potlierir, iii. 28. || Lo.Ute dc P, Cataneo ap. Muratori ChriBtian. i, .TO. Tortrc, ii, 410. I.ozano, lOil. Hcrrera, dec. 4. lib. viii.c. 5, dec. 5. lib, iv. f , 2. FalknciV. Hfscript. of Paiagonia, 98 "a Gumilla, i. 329. Lozano, 100. 192 HISTORY OF iBooKlV. to their accommodation or relief.* So little is the breast of a savage sus- ceptible of those sentiments which prompt men to that feeling attention which mitigates the calamities of human life, that, in some provinces of America, the Spaniards have found it necessary to enforce the common duties of humanity by positive laws, and to oblige husbands and wives, parents and children, under severe penalties, to take care of each other during their sickness.f The same harshness of temper is still more con- spicuous in their treatment of the animal creation. Prior to their inter- course with the people of Europe, the North Americans had some tame dogs, which accompanied them in their hunting excursions, and served them with all the ardour and fidelity peculiar to the species. But, instead of that fond attachment which the hunter naturally feels towards those useful companions of his toils, they requite their services with neglect, seldom feed, and never caress them. J In other provinces the Americans have become acquainted with the domestic animals of Europe, and availed themselves of their service ; but it is universally observed that they always treat them harshly ,§ and never employ any method either for breaking or managing them, but force and cruelty. In every part of the deportment of man in his savage state, whether towards his equals of the human species, or towards the animals below him, we recognise the same character, and trace the operations of a mind intent on its own gratifications, and regulated by its own caprice, with little attention or sensibility to the sentiments and feelings of the beings around him. After explaining how unfavourable the savage state is to the cultivation of the understanding, and to the improvement of the heart, I should not have thought it necessary to mention what may be deemed its lesser defects, if the character of nations, as well as of individuals, were not often more distinctly marked by circumstances apparently trivial than by those of greater moment. A savage frequently placed in situations of danger and distress, depending on himself alone, and wrapped up in his own thoughts and schemes, is a serious melancholy animal. His attention to others is small. The range of his own ideas is narrow. Hence that taci- turnity which is so disgusting to men accustomed to the open intercourse of social conversation. When they are not engaged in action, the Americans often sit whole days in one posture, without opening their lips.H When they go forth to war, or to the chase, they usually march in a line at some distance from one another, and without exchanging a word. The same profound silence is observed when they row together in a canoe. IT It is only when they are animated by intoxicating liquors, or roused by the jollity of the festival and dance, that they become gay and conversible._ To the same causes may be imputed the refined cunning with which they form and execute their schemes. Men who are not habituated to a liberal communication of their own sentiments and wishes, are apt to be so distrustful as to place little confidence in others, and to have recourse to an insidious craft in accomplishing their own puposes. In civilized life, those persons who by their situations have but a few objects of pursuit on which their minds incessantly dwell, are most remarkable for low artifice in carry- ing on their little projects. Among savages, whose views are equally confined, and their attention no less persevering, those circumstances must operate still more powerfully, and gradually accustom them to a disin- genuous subtlety in all their transactions. The force of this is increased by habits which they acquire in carrying on the two most interesting operations wherein they are engaged. With them war is a system of craft, in which they trust for success to stratagem more than to open force, and have their * Gargia Origen, &c. 90. Herrera, dec. 4. lib. viii. c. 5. t Cogulludo Hist, de Vucathan, p. 300. t Charlev. N. Fr. iii. 119. 3V. (s Ulloa Notic. .\mprican. :!1C. II Voyage de Bougiwr, I(R. *! Charlev. iv. 340 AMERICA. 19S invention continually on the stretch to circumvent and surprise their enemies. As hunters, it is their constant object to ensnare in order that they may destroy. Accordingly, art and cunning have been universally observedf as distinguishing characteristics of all savages. The people 6l' the rude tribes of America are remarkable for their artifice and duplicity. Impenetrably secrect in forming their measures, they pursue theni with a patient undeviating attention, and there is no refinement of dissimulation which they cannot employ, in order to ensure success. The natives of Peru were engaged above thirty years, in concerting the plan of that insurrection which took place under the vice-royalty of the Marquis de Villa Garcia ; and though it was communicated to a great number of persons, in all different ranks, no indication of it ever transpired during that long period ; no man betrayed his trust, or, by an unguarded look, or rash word, gave rise to any suspicion of what was intended.* The dissimulation and craft of individuals is no less remarkable than that of nations. When set upon deceiving, they wrap themselves up so artificially, that it is impossible to penetrate into their intentions, or to detect their designs.! But if there be defects or vices peculiar to the savage state, there are likewise virtues which it inspires, and good qualities, to the exercise of which it is friendly. The bonds of society sit so loose upon the members of the more rude American tribes, that they hardly feel any restraint. Hence the spirit of independence, which is the pride of a savage, and which he considers as the unalienable prerogative of man. Incapable of control, and disdaining to acknowledge any superior, his mind, though limited in its powers, and erring in many of its pursuits, acquires such elevation by the consciousness of its own freedom, that he acts on some occasions with astonishing force, and perseverance, and dignity. As independence nourishes this high spirit among savages, the perpetual wars in which they are engaged call it forth into action. Such long inter- vals of tranquillity as are frequent in polished societies are unknown in the savage state. Their enmities, as I have observed, are implacable and immortal. The valour of the youn^ men is never allowed to rust in inaction. The hatchet is always in the hand, either for attack or defence. Even in their hunting excursions, they must be on their guard against- surprise from the hostile tribes by which they are surrounded. Accustomed to continual alarms, they grow familiar with danger ; courage becomes an habitual virtue, resulting naturally from their situation, and strengthened by constant exertions. The mode of displaying fortitude may not be the same in small and rude communities, as in more powerful and civilized .states. Their system of war, and standard of valour may be fornied upon different principles ; but in no situation does the human mind rise more superior to the sense of danger, or the dread of death, than in its most simple and uncultivated state. Another virtue remarkable among savages, is attachment to the commu- nity of which they are members. From the nature of their political union, one might expect this tie to be extremely feeble. But there are circum- stances which render the influence, even of their loose mode of association, very powerful. The American tribes are small ; conilmied against their neighbours, in prosecution of ancient enmities, or in avenging recent injuries, their interests and operations are neither numerous n(jr complex. These are objects which the uncultivated understanding of a savage can compre- hend. His heart is capable of forming connections which are so little dif- fused. He assents with warmth to public measures, dictated by passions similar to those which direct his own conduct. Hence the ardour with which individuals undertake the most perilous service, when the commu- * Voyage de Ulkja, i), 309. t OHoiiKa, i. 163. Chariiv Vol,. 1.-25 194 HISTORY OF [Book IV. nity deems it necessary. Hence their fierce and deep rooted antipathy to the public enemies. Hence their zeal for the honour of their tribe, and that Jove of their country, which prompts them to brave danger that it may triumph, and to endure the most exquisite torments, without a groan, that it may not be disgraced. Thus, in every situation where a human being can be placed, even in the most unfavourable, there are virtues which peculiarly belong to it ; there are affections which it calls forth ; there is a species of happiness which it yields. Nature, with the most beneficent intention, conciliates and forms the mind to its condition ; the ideas and wishes of man extend not beyond that state of society to which he is habituated. What it presents as objects of contemplation or enjoyment, tills and satisfies his mind, and he can hardly conceive any other, mode of life to be pleasant, or even tolerable. The Tartar, accustomed to roam over extensive plains, and to subsist on the product of his herds, imprecates upon his enemy, as the greatest of all curses, that he may be condemned to reside in one place, and to be nourished with the top of a weed. The rude Americans, fond of their own pursuits, and satisfied with their own lot, are equally unable to comprehend the intention or utility of the various accommodations, which, in more polished society are deemed essential to the comfort of Jife. Far from complaining of their own situation, or viewing that of men in a more improved state Avith admiration or envy, they regard themselves as the standard of excel- lence, as beings the best entitled, as well as the most perfectly qualified, to enjoy real happiness. Unaccustomed to any restraint upon their will or their actions, they behold with amazement the inequality of rank, and the subordination which takes place in civihzed life, and consider the volun- tary submission of one man to another as a renunciation no less base than unaccountable, of the first distinction of humanity. Void of foresight, as Avell as free from care themselves, and delighted with that state of indolent security, they wonder at the anxious precautions, the unceasing industry, and complicated arrangements of Europeans, in guarding against distant evils, or providing for future wants ; and they often exclaim against their preposterous folly, in thus multiplying the troubles and increasing the labour of life.* This preference of their own manners is conspicuous on every occasion. Even the names, by which the various nations wish to be distinguished, are assumed from this idea of their own pre-eminence. The appellation which the Iroquois give to themselves is the chief of rnenJ^ Caraibe, the original name of the fierce inhabitants of the Windward Islands, signifies the warlike people. \ The Cherokees, from an idea of their own superiority, call the Europeans Nothings, or the accursed race, and assume to themselves the name of the beloved people.^ The same principle regu- lated the notions of the other Americans concerning the Europeans ; for although at first they were filled with astonishment at their arts, and with dread of their power, thpy soon came to abate their estimation of men whose maxims of life were so different from their own. Hence they called them the froth of the sea, men without father or mother. They supposed, that either they had no country of their own, and therefore invaded that which belonged to others ;il or that, being destitute of the necessaries of life at home, they were obliged to roam over the ocean, in order to rob such as were more amply provided. Men thus satisfied with their condition are far from any inclination to relinquish their own habits, or to adopt those of civilized life. The transi- tion is too violent to be suddenly made. Even where endeavours have been used to wean a savage from his own customs, and to render the accom- niodations of polished society familiar to him ; even where he has been * Charlev. N. Fr. iii. 338. Lahontan, ii. 97. t CoMcn, i. 3. i Rochefort Hist. dc3 Antilles. 455. fi Adair Higt. Aiiier. Indians, p. 32. || Benzou. Hist. Novi Orbis, lib. iii. c. 21, AMERICA. 195 allowed to taste ot" those pleasures, and has been honoured with those distinctions, which are the chief objects of our desire, he droops and lan- guishes under the restraint of laws and forms, he seizes the first opportunity of breaking loose from them, and returns with transport to the forest or the wild, where he can enjoy a careless and uncontrolled freedom.* Thus I have finished a laborious delineation of the character and man- ners of the uncivilized tribes scattered over the vast continent of America. In this, I aspire not at rivalling the great masters who have painted and adorned savage life, either in boldness of design, or in the glow and beauty of their colouring. I am satisfied with the more humble merit of having f)ersisted with patient industry, in viewing my subject in many various i^hts, and collecting from the most accurate observers such detached, and otten minute features, as might enable me to exhibit a portrait that resembles the original. Before I close this part of my work, one observation more is necessary* in order to justify the conclusions which I have formed, or to prevent the mistakes into which such as examine them may fall. In contemplating the inhabitants of a country so widely extended as America^ great attention should be paid to the diversity ot climates under which they are placed. The influence of this I have pointed out with respect to several important particulars which have been the object of research ; but even where it has not been mentioned, it ought not to be overlooked. The provinces of America are of such different temperament, that this alone is sufficient to constitute a distinction between their inhabitants. In every part of the earth where man exists, the power of climate operates, with decisive influence, upon his condition and character. In those countries which approach near to the extremes of heat or cold, this influence is so conspi- cuous as to strike every eye. Whether we consider man merely as an animal, or as being endowed with rational powers which fit him for activity and speculation, we shall find that he has uniformly attained the greatest perfection of which his nature is capable, in the temperate regions of the globe. There his constitution is most vigorous, his Oi-gans most acute, and his form most beautiful. There, too, he possesses a superior extent of capacity, greater fertility of imagination, more enterprising courage, and a sensibility of heart which gives birth to desires, not only ardent, but perse- vering. In this favourite situation he has displayed the utmost efforts of his genius, in literature, in policy, in commerce, in war, and ui all the arts which improve or embellish life.f This powerful operation of climate is felt most sensibly by rude nations^ and produces greater effects than in societies more improved. The talents of civilized men are continually exerted in rendering their own condition more comfortable ; and by their ingenuity and inventions, they can in a great measure supply the defects, and guard against the inconveniences of any climate. But the improvident savage is affected by every circum- stance peculiar to his situation. He takes no precaution either to mitigate or to improve it. Like a plant or an animal, he is formed by the climate under which he is placed, and feels the full force of its influence. In sur\ eying the rude nations of America, this natural distinction between the inhabitants of the temperate and torrid zones is very remarkable. They may, accordingly, be divided into two great classes. The one com- prehends all the North Americans from the river St. Laurence to the Gulf of Mexico, together with the people of Chili, and a few small tribes towards the extremity of the southern continent. To the other belong all the inhabitants of the islands, and those settled in the various provinces which extend from the isthmus of Daricn almost to the southern confines * Charlav. N. FT. iii. 35J2. * Dr, Furgnmiib Y.way on the Hist, of Civil Society, art. iii. ch I. 1% JilST01(\ OF [BookIV. of Brasil, along tlie east side of the Andes. In the former, which compre- hends all the regions of the temperate zone that in America are inhabited, the human species appears manifestly to be more perfect. The natives are more robust, more active, more intelligent, and more courageous. They possess, in the most eminent degree, that force of mind, and love of independence, which I have pointed out as the chief virtues of man in his savage state. Tliey have defended their liberty with persevering fortitude against the Europeans, who subdued the other rude nations ot America with the greatest ease. The natives of the temperate zone are the only people in the New World who are indebted for their freedom to their own valour. The North Americans, though long encompassed by three formi- dable European powers, still retain part of their original possessions, and continue to exist as independent nations. The people of Chili, though early invaded, still maintain a gallant contest with the Spaniards, and have set bounds to their encroachments ; whereas, in the warmer regions, men are more feeble in their frame, less vigorous in the efforts of their minds, of a gentle but dastardly spirit, more enslaved by pleasure, and more sunk in indolence. Accordingly, it is in the torrid zone that the Europeans have most completely established their dominion over Ame- rica ; the most fertile and desirable provinces in it are subjected to their yoke ; and if several tribes there still enjoy independence, it is either because they have never been attacked by an enemy already satiated with conquest, and possessed of larger territories than he was able to occupy, or because they have been saved from oppression by their remote and inac- cessible situation. Conspicuous as this distinction may appear between the inhabitants of those different regions, it is not, however, universal. Moral and political causes, as I have formerly observed, affect the disposition and character of individuals, as well as nations, still more powerfully than the influence of climate. There are, accordingly, some tribes, in various parts of the torrid zone, possessed of courage, high spirit, and the love of independence, in a degree hardly inferior to the natives of more temperate climates. We are too little acquainted with the history of those people, to be able to trace the several circumstances in their progress and condition, to which they are indebted for this remarkable pre-eminence. The fact, nevertheless, is certain. As early as the first voyage of Columbus, he received information that several of the islands were inhabited by the Caribbees, a fierce race of men, nowise resembling their feeble and timid neighbours. In his second expedition to the New World, he found this information to be just, and was himself a witness of their intrepid valour* [95]. The same character they have maintained invariably in all subsequent contests with the people t)f Europe ;t and even in our own times we have seen them make a gal- lant stand in defence of the last territory which the rapacity of the invaders had left in their possession [96]. Some nations in Brasil were no less eminent for vigour of mind and bravery in war.| The people of (he isthmus of Darien boldly met the Spaniards in the field, and tVequenlly repelled those formidable invaders.§ Other instances might be produced. It is not by attending to any single cause or principle, how powerful and extensive soever its influence may appear, that we can explain (he actions, or account for the character of men. Even the law ot climate, more universal, perhaps, in its operation than any (hat affects the human species, cannot be applied, in judging of their conduct, without many exceptions. ♦ Life of Columbus, c. 47, 48. t Kocliefort Hist, dws Antilles, 531. t I-ery ap. de Bry, iii. 207, tic. $ Herrera, dec. I. lib. x. c. 15, &c. dec. 2. passim. AMERICA. 197 BOOK V. When Grijalva [1518.] returned to Cuba, he found the armament destined to attempt the conquest of that rich country which he had discovered almost complete. Not only ambition, but avarice, had urged Velasquez to hasten his preparations; and having such a prospect of gratifying both, he had advanced considerable sums out of his private tortune towards defraying the expenses of the expedition. At the same time, he exerted his influence as governor, in engaging the most distinguished persons in the colony to undertake the service [97]. At a time when the spirit of the Spanish nation was adventurous to excess, a number of soldiers, eager to embark in any daring enterprise, soon appeared. But it was not so easy to find a person qualified to take the command in an expedition of so much importance ; and the character of Velasquez, who had the right of nomination, greatly increased the difficulty of the choice. Though of most aspiring ambition, and not destitute of talents for government, he possessed neither such courage, nor such vigour and activity of mind, as to undertake in person the conduct of the armament which he was preparing. In this embarrassing situation, he formed the chimerical scheme, not only of achieving great exploits by a deputy, but of securing to himself the glory of conquests which were to be made by another. In the execution of this plan, he fondly aimed at reconciling contradictions. He was solicitous to choose a commander of intrepid resolution, and of superior abilities, because he knew these to be requisite in order to ensure success ; but, at the same time, from the jealousy natural to little minds, he wished this person to be of a spirit so tame and obsequious as to be entirely dependent on his will. But when he came to apply those ideas in forming an opinion concerning the several officers who occurred to his thoughts as worthy of being intrusted with the command, he soon perceived that it was impos- sible to find such incompatible qualities united in one character. Such as were distinguished for courage and talents were too high spirited to be passive instruments in his hands. Those who appeared more gentle and tractable were destitute of capacity, and unequal to the chaise. This augmented his perplexity and his fears. He deliberated long and with much solicitude, and was still wavering in his choice when Amador de Lares, the royal treasurer in Cuba, and Andres Duero, his own secretary, the two persons in whom he chiefly confided, were encouraged by this irresolution to propose a new candidate ; and they supported their recom- mendation with such assiduity and address, that, no less fatally for Velas- quez than happily for their country, it proved successful.* The man whom they pointed out to him was Fernando Cortes. He was born at Medellin, a small town in Estremadura, in the year one thousand four hundred and eighty-five, and descended from a family of noble blood, but of very moderate fortune. Being originally destined by his parents to the study of law, as the most likely method of bettering bis condition, he was sent early to the university of Salamanca, where he imbibed some tincture of learning. But he was soon disgusted with an academic life, Avhich did not suit his ardent and restless genius, and retired to Medellin, where he gave himself up entirely to active sports and martial exercises. At this period of life he was so impetuous, so overhearing, and so dissipated, that his father was glad to comply with his inclination, and sent him abroad as an adventurer in arms. There were in that age two conspicuous theatres, on which such of the Spanish youth as courted military glory • B. Diaz. c. 19. Gomara Cron. r. 7. Ilerrera, drc. 2. lib. iii. e. 11. 198 H I S T O R Y O F [Book V. might display their valour ; one in Italy, under the command of the Great Captain ; the other in the New World. Cortes pretierred the former, but was prevented by indisposition from embarking with a reinforcement of troops sent to Naples. Upon this disappointment he turned his views towards America, whither he was allured by the prospect of the advan- tages which he might derive from the patronage of Ovando [98], the fovemor of Hispaniola, who was his kinsman. When he landed at St. )omingo, in one thousand five hundred and four, his reception was such as equalled his most sanguine hopes, and he was employed by the Governor in several honourable and lucrative stations. These, however, did not satisfy his ambition; and, in the year one thousand five hundred and eleven, he obtained permission to accompany Diego Velasquez in his expedition to Cuba. In this service he distinguished himself so much, that, notwithstanding some violent contests with Velasquez, occasioned by trivial events unworthy of remembrance, he was at length taken into favour, and received an ample concession of lands and of Indians, the recompense usually bestowed upon adventurers in the New World.* Though Cortes had not hitherto acted in high command, he had dis- played such qualities in several scenes of difficulty and danger, as raised universal expectation, and turned the eyes of his counti-yraen towards him as one capable of performing great things. The turbulence of youth, as soon as he found objects and occupations suited to the ardour of his mind, gradually subsided and settled into a habit of regular indefatigable activity. The impetuosity of his temper, when he came to act with his equals, insensibly abated, by being kept under restraint, and mellowed into a cordial soldierly frankness. These qualities were accompanied with calm prudence in concerting his schemes, with persevering vigour in executing them, and with, what is peculiar to superior genius, the art of gaining the confidence and governing the minds of men. To all which were added the inferior accomplishments that strike the vulgar, and com- mand their respect ; a graceful person, a winning aspect, extraordinarj'- address in martial exercises, and a constitution of such vigour as to be capable of enduring any fatigue. As soon as Cortes was mentioned to Velasquez by his two confidants, he flattered himself that he had at length found what he had hitherto sought in vain, a man with talents for command, but not an object for jealousy. Neither the rank nor the fortune of Cortes, as he imagined, was such that he could aspire at independence. He had reason to believe that by his own readiness to bury ancient animosities in oblivion, as well as his liberality in conferring several recent favours, he had already gained the good will of Cortes, and hoped, by this new and unexpected mark of con- fidence, that he might attach him for ever to his interest. Cortes, receiving his commission [Oct. 23], with the warmest expressions of respect and gratitude to the governor, immediately erected his standard before his own house, appeared in a military dress, and assumed all the ensigns of his new dignity. His utmost influence and activity were exerted in persuading many of his friends to engage in the service, and in urging forward the preparations for the voyage. All his own funds, together with what money he could raise by mortgaging his lands and Indians, were expended in purchasing militarj' stores and provisions, or in supplying the Avants of such of his officers as were unable to equip themselves in a manner suited to their rank [99]. Inoffensive and even laudable as this conduct was, his disappointed competitors were malicious enough to give it a turn to his disadvantage. They represented him as aiming already, with little disguise, at establishing an independent authority over his troops, and (endeavouring to secure their respecter love by his ostentatious and intef^- * floBjaij Cron, c. 1,9, 3, AMERICA. 199 psted liberality. They reminded Velasquez of his former dissensions with the man in whom he now reposed so much confidence, and foretold that Cortes would be more apt to avail himself of the power which the governor was inconsiderately putting in his hands, to avenge past injuries than to requite recent obligations. These insinuations made such impres- sion upon the suspicious mind of Velasquez, that Cortes soon observed some symptoms of a growing alienation and distrust in his behaviour, and was advised by Lares and Duero to hasten his departure before these should become so confirmed as to break out with open violence. Fully sensible of this danger, he urged forward his preparations with such rapidity that he set sail from St. Jago de Cuba on the eighteenth of November. Velasquez accompanying him to the shore, and taking leave of him with an appearance of pertect friendship and confidence, though he had secretly given it in chaige to some of Cortes' officers, to keep a watchful eye upon every part of their commander's conduct.* Cortes proceeded to Trinidad, a small settlement on the same side of the island, where he was joined by several adventurers, and received a supply of provisions and military stores, of which his stock was still very incom- plete. He had hardly left St. Jago, when the jealousy which had been working in the breast of Velasquez grew so violent that it was impossible to suppress it. The armament was no longer under his own eye and direc- tion ; and he felt that as his power over it ceased, that of Cortes would become more absolute. Imagination now aggravated every circumstance which had formerly excited suspicion : the rivals of Cortes industriously threw in reflections which increased his fear ; and with no less art than malice they called superstition to their aid, employing the predictions of an astrologer in order to complete the alarm. All these, by their united operation, produced the desired efi'ect. Velasquez repented bitterly of his own imprudence, in having committed a trust of so much importance to a person whose fidelity appeared so doubtful, and hastily despatched in- structions to Trinidad, empowering Verdugo, the chief magistrate there, to deprive Cortes of his commission. But Cortes had already made such progress in gaining the esteem and confidence of his troops, that, finding oflicers as well as soldiers equally zealous to support his authority, he soothed or intimidated Verdugo, and was permitted to depart from Trinidad without molestation. From Trinidad Cortes sailed for the Havana, in order to raise more soldiers, and to complete the victualling of his fleet. There several persons of distinction entered into the service, and engaged to supply what provisions were still wanting ; but as it was necessary to allow them some time for perforrhing what they had promised, Velasquez, sensible that he ought no longer to rely on a man of whom he had so openly discovered his distrust, availed himself of the interval which this unavoidable delay afforded, in order to make one attempt more to wrest the command out of the han(k of Cortes. He loudly complained of Verdugo's conduct, accusing him either of childish facility, or of manifest treachery, in suffering Cortes to escape from Trinidad. Anxious to guard against a second disappoint- ment, he sent a person of confidence to the Havana, with peremptory injunctions to Pedro Barba, his lieutenant-governor in that colony, instantly to arrest Cortes, to send him prisoner to St. Jago under a strong guard, and to countermand the sailing of the armament until he should receive further orders. He wrote likewise to the principal officers, requiring them to assist Barba in executing what he had given him in charge. But before the arrival of this messenger, a Franciscan friar of St. Jago had secretly conveyed an account of this interesting transaction to Bartholomew de Olmedo, a monk of the same order, who acted as chaplain to the expedition. * Gomara, Cron. r. 7 H Piaz, r. W. 200 HISTORY OF [Book v. Cortes, forewarned of the danger, had time to take precautions for his own safety. His first step was to find some pretext for removing from the Havana Diego de Ordaz, an officer of great merit, but in whom, on account of his known attachment to Velasquez, he could not confide in this trying and delicate juncture. He gave him the command of a vessel destined to take on board some provisions in a small harbour beyond Cape Antonio, and thus made sure of his absence without seeming to suspect his fidelity. When he was gone, Cortes no longer concealed the intentions of Velasquez from his troops ; and as officers and soldiers were equally impatient to set out on an expedition, in preparing for which most of them had expended all their fortunes, they expressed their astonishment and indignation at that illiberal jealousy to which the governor was about to sacrifice, not only the honour of their general, but all their sanguine hopes of glory and wealth. With one voice they entreated that he would not abandon the important station to which he had such a good title. They conjured him not to deprive them of a leader whom they followed with such well founded confidence, and offered to shed the last drop of their blood in piaintainmg his authority. Cortes was easily induced to comply with what h'j himself so ardently desired. He swore that he would never desert soldiers who had given him such a signal proof of their attachment, and promised instantly to conduct them to that rich country which had been so long the object of their thoughts and wishes. This declaration was received with transports of military applause, accompanied with threats and imprecations against all who should presume to call in question the jurisdiction of their general, or to obstruct the execution of his designs. Every thing was now ready for their departure ; but though this expe- dition was fitted out by the united eiTort of the Spanish power in Cuba ; though every settlement had contributed its quota of men and provisions ; though the governor had laid out consideral)le sums, and each adventurer had exhausted his stock, or strained his credit, the poverty of the prepara- tions was such as must astonish the present age, and bore, indeed, no resemblance to an armament destined for the conquest of a great empire. The fleet consisted of eleven vessels ; the largest of a hundred tons, which was dignified by the name of jfVdmiral ; three of seventy or eighty tons, and the rest small open barks. On board of these were six hundred and seventeen men ; of which five hundred and eight belonged to the land service, and a hundred and nine were seamen or artificers. The soldiers were divided into eleven companies, according to the number of the ships; to each of which Cortes appointed a captain, and committed to him the command of the vessel while at sea, and of the men when on shore [lOO]. As the use of fire arms among the nations of Europe was hitherto confined to a few battalions of regularly disciplined infantry, only thirteen soldiers were armed with muskets, thirty-two were cross-bow men, and the rest had swords and spears. Instead of the usual defensive armour, which must have been cumbersome in a hot climate, the soldiers wore jackets quilted with cotton, which experience had taught the Spaniards to be a sufficient protection against the weapons of the Americans. They had only sixteen horses, ten small field pieces, arid four falconets.* With this slender and ill provided train did Cortes set sail [Feb. 10, 1519], to make war upon a monarch whose dominions were more extensive than all the kingdoms subject to the Spanish crown. As religious enthu- siasm always mingled with the spirit of adventure in the New World, and, by a combination still more strange, united with avarice, in prompting the Spaniards to all their enterprises, a lai-ge cross was displayed in their standards, with this inscription, Le< us follow the cross, for under this sign WP siixtll conquer. * n. IJiaz, c. 19. AMERICA. 201 So powerlully were Cortes and his followers animated with both these passions, that no Jess eager to plunder the opulent country whither they were bound, than zealous to propagate the Christian faith among its inha- bitants, they set out, not with the solicitude natural to men going upon dangerous services, but with that confidence which arises from security of success, and certainty of the divine protection. As Cortes had determined to touch at every place where Grijalva had visited, he steered directly towards the island of Cozumel ; there he had the good fortune to redeem Jerome de Aguilar, a Spaniard, who had been eight years a prisoner among the Indians. This man was perfectly ac- quainted with a dialect of their language understood through a large extent of country, and possessing besides a considerable share of prudence and sagacity, proved extremely useful as an interpreter. From Cozumel, Cortes proceeded to the river of Tabasco [March 4], in hopes of a recep- tion as friendly as Grijalva had met with there, and of finding gold in the same abundance ; but the disposition of the natives, from some unknown cause, was totally changed. After repeated endeavours to conciliate their good will, he was constrained to have recourse to violence. Though the lorces of the enemy were numerous, and advanced with extraordinary courage, they were routed with great slaughter in several successive actions The loss which they had sustained, and still more the astonishment and terror excited by the destructive effect of the fire arms, and the dreadful appear- ance of the horses, humbled their fierce spirits, and induced them to sue for peace. They acknowledged the King of Castile as their sovereign, and granted Cortes a supply of provisions with a present of cotton garments, some gold, and twenty female slaves [lOl]. Cortes continued his course to the westward, keeping as near the shore as possible, in order to observe the country ; but could discover no proper place for landing until he arrived at St. Juan de Ulua.* As he entered this harbour [April 2], a large canoe full of people, among whom were two who seemed to oe persons of distinction, approached his ship with signs of peace and amity. They came on board without fear or distrust, and addressed him in a most respectful manner, but in a language altogether unknown to Aguilar. Cortes was in the utmost perplexity and distress at an event of which he instantly foresaw the consequences, and already felt the hesitation and uncertainty with which he should carry on the great schemes which he meditated, if, in his transactions with the natives, he must depend entirely upon such an imperfect, ambiguous, and conjectural mode of communication as the use of signs. But he did not remain long in his embarrassing situation ; a fortunate accident extricated him when his own sagacity could have contributed little towards his relief. One of the female slaves, whom he had received trom the cazique of Tabasco, happened to be present at the first interview between Cortes and his new guests. She perceived his distress, as well as the contusion of Aguilar ; and, as she perfectly understood the Mexican language, she explained what they had said in the Yucatan tongue, with which Aguilar was ac- quainted. This woman, known afterwards by the name of Donna Marina, and who makes a conspicuous figure in the history of the New World, where great revolutions were brought about by small causes and incon- siderable instruments, was born in one of the provinces of the Mexican Empire. Having been sold as a slave in the early part of her life, after a variety of adventures she fell into the hands of the Tabascans, and had resided long enough among them to acquire their language without losing the use of her own. Though it was both tedious and troublesome to converse by the intervention of two different interpreters, Cortes was so highly pleased with having discovered this method of carrying on some * B. Diaz, c. 31—36. Gomam Cron. c, 18—33. Herrera, dec. 2. lib. jv. c. 11. Sec. Vol. I.— 2fi 202 HISTORY OF [BookV. intercourse with the people of a countiy into which he was determined to penetrate, that in the transports of his joy he considered it as a visible interposition of Providence in his favour.* He now learned that the twopersons whom he had received on board of his ship were deputies from Teutile and Pilpatoe, two officers intrusted with the government of that province by a great monarch whom they called Montezuma ; and that they were sent to inquire what his intentions were in visiting their coast, and to offer him what assistance he might need, in order to continue his voyage. Cortes, struck with the appearance of those people, as well as the tenor of the ruessage, assured them, in respectful terms, that he approached their country with most friendly sentiments, and came to propose matters ol great importance to the welfare of their prince and his kingdom, which he would untold more iully, in J)erson, to the governor and the general. Next morning, without waiting or any answer, he landed his troops, his horses, and artiliery ; and, having chosen proper ground, began to erect huts Ibi his men, and to fortily his camp. The natives, instead of opposing the entrance ol those fatal guests into their country, assisted them in all their operations with an alacrity of which they had ere long good reason to repent. Next day Teutile and Pilpatoe entered the Spanish camp with a numerous retinue ; and Cortes, considering them as the ministers of a great monarch entitled to a degree of attention veiy different from that which the Spaniards were accustomed to pay the petty caziques with whom they had intercourse in the isles, received them with much ibrmal ceremony. He informed them, that he came as ambassador from Don Carlos of Austria, King of Castile, the greatest monarch of the East, and was intrusted with propositions of such moment, that he could impart them to none but the Emperor Montezuma himself, and therefore required them to conduct him, without loss of time, into the presence of their master. The Mexican officers could not conceal their uneasiness at a request which they knew would be disagreeable, and which they foresaw might prove extremely embarrassing to their sovereign, whose mind had been hlled with many disquieting apprehensions ever since the former appearance of the Spaniards on his coasts. But before they attempted to dissuade Cortes from insisting on his demand, they endeavoured to conciliate his good will by entreating him to accept of certain presents, which, as humble slaves of Montezuma, they laid at his feet. They were introduced with great parade, and con- sisted of fine cotton cloth, of plumes of various colours, and of ornaments of gold and silver to a considerable value ; the workmanship of which appeared to be as curious as the materials were rich. The display of these produced an effect very different from what the Mexicans intended. Instead of satisfying, it increased the avidity of the Spaniards, and rendered them so eager and impatient to become masters of a country which abounded with such precious productions, that Cortes could hardly listen with patience to the arguments which Pilpatoe and Teutile employed to dissuade him from visiting the capital, and in a haughty determined tone he insisted on his demand of being admitted to a personal audience of their sovereign. During this interview, some painters, in the train of the Mexican chiefs, had been diligently employed in delineating, upon white cotton cloths, figures of the ships, the horses, the artillery, the soldiers, and whatever else attracted their eyes as singular. When Cortes observed this, and was informed that these pictures were to be sent to Montezuma, in order to convey to him a more lively idea of the strange and wonderlul objects now presented to their view than any words could communicate, he resolved to render the representation still more animating and interest- ingi by exhibiting such a spectacle as might give both them and their * B. Diiw, c. 37. 38, 39. Gomara Cron. c. 35. 96. Herrera. drc. 2, lib. v c. 4. AMERICA. 203 ssionarch an awful impression of the extraordinary prowess of his followers, and the irresistible force of their arms. The trumpets, by his order, sounded an alarm ; the troops, in a moment, formed in order of battle, the infantry performed such martial exercises as were best suited to display the effect ot their different weapons ; the horse, in various evolutions, gave a specimen of their agility and strength ; the artillery, pointed towards the thick woods which surrounded the camp, were fired, and made dread- ful havoc among the trees. The Mexicans looked on with that silent amazement which is natural when the mind is struck with objects which are both awful and above its comprehension. But, at the explosion ot the cannon, many of them fled, some tell to the ground, and all were so much coni'ounded at the sight of men whose power so nearly resembled that of the gods, that Cortes found it difficult to compose and reassure them. The painters had now many new objects on which to exercise their art, and they put their fancy on the stretch in order to invent figures and symbols to represent the extraordinary things which they had seen. Messengers were immediately despatched to Montezuma with those pictures, and a full account ot every thing that had passed since the arrival of the Spaniards, and by them Cortes sent a present of some European curiosities to Montezuma, which, though of no great value, he believed would be acceptable on account of then* novelty. The Mexican monarchs, in order to obtain early information of every occurrence in all the corners of their extensive empire, had introduced a refinement in police unknown at that time in Europe. They had couriers posted at proper stations along the principal roads ; and as these were trained to agility by a regular education, and relieved one another at moderate distances, they conveyed intelligence with surprising rapidity. Though the capital in which Mon- tezuma resided was above a hundred and eighty miles from St. Juan de Ulua, Cortes's presents were carried thither, and an answer to his demands was received in a few days. The same officers who had hitherto treated with the Spaniards were employed to deliver this answer ; but as they knew how repugnant the determination of their master was to all the schemes and wishes of the Spanish commander, they would not venture to make it known until they had previously endeavoured to soothe and mollify him. For this purpose they renewed their negotiation, by intro- ducing a train of a hundred Indians loaded with presents sent to him by Montezuma. The magnificence of these was such as became a great monarch, and far exceeded any idea which the Spaniards had hitherto formed of his wealth. They were placed on mats spread on the ground in such order as showed them to the greatest advantage. Cortes and his officers viewed with admiration the various manufactures of the country ; cotton stuffs so fine, and of such delicate texture as to resemble silk ; pictures of animals, trees, and other natural objects, formed with feathers of different colours, disposed and mingled with such skill and elegance as to rival the works of the pencil in truth and beauty of imitation. But what chiefly attracted their eyes were two large plates of a circular form, one of massive gold representing the sun, the other of silver, an emblem of the moon [l02]. These were accompanied with bracelets, collars, rings, and other trinkets of gold ; and that nothing might be wanted which could give the Spaniards a complete idea of what the country afforded, with some boxes filled with pearls, precious stones, and grams of gold unwrought, as they had been found in the mines or rivers. Cortes received all these with an appearance of profound veneration for the monarch by whom they were bestowed. But when the Mexicans, presuming upon this, informed him that their master, though he had desired him to accept of what he had sent as a token of regard for that monarch whom Cortes represented, would not give his consent that ibreign troops should approach nearer to his capital, or even allow them to continue longer in his dominions, 204 HISTORY OF [BookV. the Spanish general declared, in a manner more resolute and peremptory than formerly, that he must insist on his first demand, as he could not without dishonour, return to his own country, until he was admitted into the pre- sence of the prince whom he was appointed to risit in the name oi his sovereign. The Mexicans, astonished at seeing any man dare to oppose that will which they were accustomed to consider as supreme and irre- sistible, yet afraid ot precipitating their country into an open rupture with such formidable enemies, prevailed with Cortes to promise that he would not remove from his present camp until the return of a messenger whom they sent to Montezuma for further instructions.* The firmness with which Cortes adhered to his original proposal should naturally have brought the negotiation between him and Montezuma to a speedy issue, as it seemed to leave the Mexican monarch no choice, but either to receive him with confidence as a friend, or to oppose him openly as an enemy. The latter was what might have been expected from a haughty prince in possession of extensive power. The Mexican empire at this period was at a pitch of grandeur to whicn no society ever attained in so short a period. Though it had subsisted, according to their own traditions, only a hundred and thirty years, its dominion extended from the iNorth to the South Sea, over territories stretching, with some small inter- ruption, above five hundred leagues from east to west, and more than two hundred from north to south, comprehending provinces not inferior in fer- tility, population, and opulence, to any in the torrid zone. The people were warlike and enterprising ; the authority of the monarch unbounded, and his revenues considerable. If, with the lorces which might have been suddenly assembled in such an empire, Montezuma had fallen upon the Spaniards while encamped on a barren unhealthy coast, unsupported by any ally, without a place of retreat, and destitute of provisions, it seems to be impossible, even with all the advantages of their superior discipline and arms, that they could have stood the shock, and they must either have perished in such an unequal contest, or have abandoned the enterprise. As the power of Montezuma enabled him to take this spirited part, his own dispositions were such as seemed naturally to prompt him to it. Of all the princes who had swayed the Mexican sceptre, he was the most haughty, the most violent, and the most impatient of control. His subjects looked up to him with awe, and his enemies with terror. The former he governed with unexampled rigour ; but they were impressed with such an opinion of his capacity as commanded their respect ; and, by many victo- ries over the latter, he had spread far the dread of his arms, and had added several considerable provinces to his dominions. But though his talents might be suited to the transactions of a state so imperfectly polish- ed as the Mexican empire, and sufficient to conduct them while in their accustomed course, they were altogether inadequate to a conjuncture so extraordinary, and did not qualify him either to judge with the discern- ment or to act with the decision requisite in such tiying emergence. From the moment that the Spaniards appeared on his coast, he disco vered symptoms of timidity and embarrassment. Instead of taking such resolutions as the consciousness of his own power, or the memory of his former exploits, might have inspired, he deliberated with an anxiety and hesitation which did not escape the notice of his meanest courtiers. The perplexity and discomposure of Montezuma's mind upon this occasion, as well as the general dismay of his subjects, were not owing wholly to the impression which the Spaniards had made by the novelty of their appear- ance and the terror of their arms. Its origin may be traced up to a more remote source. There was an opinion, if we may believe the earliest and most authentic Spanish historians, almost universal among the Americans, • B. Diar, r. 39 Gomara Cron. c. 07 Herrera, de ;. 2 lib. v. c. 5, fi. AjVIEKICA. 205 that so:ne dreadful calamity was impending over their heads, from a race of formidable invaders, who should come Irom regions towards the rising sun, to overrun and desolate their country. Whether this disquieting ap- prehension flowed from the memory of some natural calamity which had afflicted that part of the globe, and impressed the minds of the inhabitants with superstitious fears and forebodings, or whether it was an imagination accidentally suggested by the astonishnient which the hrst sight ol a new race of men occasioned, it is impossible to determine. But as the Mexi- cans were more prone to superstition than any people in the New World, they were more deeply affected by the appearance of the Spaniards, whom their credulity instantly represented as the instrument destined to bring about this t'atal revolution which they dreaded. Under those cir- cumstances it ceases to be incredible that a handful of adventurers should alarm the monarch of a great empire, and all his subjects.* Notwithstanding the influence of this impression, when the messenger arrived from the Spanish camp with an account that the leader of the strangers, adhering to his original demand, refused to obey the order en- joining him to leave the country, Montezuma assumed some degree of resolution ; and in a transport of rage natural to a fierce prince unaccus- tomed to meet with any opposition to his will, he threatened to sacrifice those presumptuous men to his gods. But his doubts and fears quickly returned ; and instead of issuing orders to carry his threats into execution, he again called his ministers to confer and offer their advice. Feeble and temporising measures will always be the result when men assemble to deliberate in a situation where they ought to act. The Mexican counsel- lors took no efiectual measure for expelling such troublesome intruders, and were satisfied with issuing a more positive injunction, requiring them to leave the country ; but this they preposterously accompanied with a present of such value as proved a fresh inducement to remain there. Meanwhile, the Spaniards were not without solicitude, or a variety of sentiments, in deliberating concerning their own future conduct. From what they had already seen, many of them formed such extravagant ideas concerning the opulence of the country, that, despising danger or hard- ships when they had in view treasures which appeared to be inexhausti- ble, they were eager to attempt the conquest. Others, estimating the power of the Mexican empire by its wealth, and enumerating the various proofs which had occurred of its being under a well regulated administra- tion, contended, that it would be an act of the wildest frenzy to attack such a state with a small body of men, in want of provisions, unconnected with any ally, and already enfeebled by the diseases peculiar to the cli- mate, and the loss of several of their number.f Cortes secretly applaud- ed the advocates for boid measures, and cherished their romantic hopes» as such ideas corresponded with his own, and favoured the execution of the schemes which he had tbrmed. From the time that the suspicions of Velasquez broke out with open violence in the attempts to deprive him of the command, Cortes saw the necessity of dissolving a connection which would obstruct and embarrass all hisoperations, and watched for a proper opportunity of coming to a final rupture with him. Having this in view, he had laboured by every art to secure the esteem and affection of his soldiers. With his abilities for command, it was easy to gain their esteem ; and his followers were quickly satisfied that they might rely, with perfect confidence, on the conduct and courage of their leader. Nor was it more diihcult to acquire their affection. Among adventurers nearly of the same rank, and serving at their own expense, the dignity of command did not elevate a general above mingling with those who acted under him. Cortes * Cortes Relatione Seconda, ap. Ramus, iii. 234, 935 Herrera, dec. 2. lib. iil. c. 1. lib. v e. 11. lib. vil. c, 6. Gomwa Cron. e. 66. 93. 144. t B. Diaz. c. 40. 206 il I S T O li Y O ¥ [Book V. availed himself of this freedom of intercourse to insinuate himself mto their lavour, and by his affable manners, by well timed acts of liberality to some, by inspiring all with vast hopes, and by allowing them to trade privately with the natives [103], he attached the greater part of his sol- diers so firmly to himself, that they almost forgot that the armament had been fitted out by the authority and at the expense of another. During these intrigues, Teutile arrived with the present from Monte- zuma, and, together with it, delivered the ultimate order of that monarch to depart instantly out of his dominions ; and when Cortes, instead of complying, renewed his request of an audience, the Mexican turned from him abruptly, and quitted the camp with looks and gestures which strongly expressed his surprise and resentment. Next morning, none of the natives, who used to frequent the camp in great numbers in order to barter with the soldiers, and to bring in provisions, appeared. All friendly corres- pondence seemed now to be at an end, and it was expected every moment that hostilities would commence. This, though an event that might have been foreseen, occasioned a sudden consternation among the Spaniards, which emboldened the adherents of Velasquez not only to murmur and cabal against their general, but to appoint one of their number to remon- strate openly against his imprudence in attempting the conquest of a mighty empire with such inadequate force, and to urge the necessity of returning to Cuba, in order to refit the fleet and augment the army. Diego de Ordaz, one of his principal officers, whom the malecontents charged with this commission, delivered it with a soldierly freedom and bluntness, assuring Cortes that he spoke the sentiments of the whole army. He listened to this remonstrance without any appearance of emotion ; and as he well knew the temper and wishes of his soldiers, and foresaw how they would receive a proposition fatal at once to all the splendid hopes and schemes which they had been forming with such complacency, he carried his dissimulation so far as to seem to relinquish his own measures in compliance with the request of Ordaz, and issued orders that the army should be in readiness next day to re-embark for Cuba. As soon as this was known, the disappointed adventurers exclaimed and threatened ; the emissaries of Cortes, mingling with them, inflamed their rage ; the fer- ment became general ; the whole camp was almost in open mutiny ; all demanding with eagerness to see their commander. Cortes was not slow in appearing ; when, with one voice, officers and soldiers expressed their astonishment and indignation at the orders which they had received. It was unworthy, they cried, of the Castilian courage to be daunted at the first aspect of danger, and infamous to fly before any enemy appeared. For their parts, they were determined not to relinquish an enterprise that had hitherto been successful, and which tended so visiblj^ to spread the know- ledge of true religion, and to advance the glory and interest of their coun- tiy. Happy under his command, they would follow him with alacrity through every danger in quest of those settlements and treasures which he had so long held out to their view ; but if he chose rather to return to Cuba, and tamely give up all his hopes of distinction and opulence to an envious rival, they would instantly choose another general to conduct them in that path of glory which he had not spirit to enter. Cortes, delighted with their ardour, took no offence at the boldness with which it was uttered. The sentiments were what he himself had inspired, and the warmth of expression satisfied him that his followers had imbibed them thoioughly. He affected, however, to be surprised at what he heard, declaring that his orders to prepare for embarking vyere issued trom a per- suasion tnat this was agreeable to his troops ; that, from deference to what he had been informed was their inclination, he had sacrificed his own pri- vate opinion, which was firmly bent on establishing immediately a settle- ment on the sea coast, and then on endeavouring to penetrate into the inte- AMERICA. 207 rior part of the country ; that now he was convinced of his error ; and as he perceived that they were animated with the generous spirit which breathed in every true Spaniard, he would resume, with fresh ardour, his original plan of operation, and doubted not to conduct them, in the career of victory, to such independent fortunes as their valour merited. Upon this declaration, shouts of applause testified the excess of their joy. The measure seemed to be taken with unanimous consent ; such as secretly condemned it being obliged to join in the acclamations, partly to conceal their disaflFection from their general, and partly to avoid the imputation of cowardice from their fellow-soldiers.* Without allowing his men time to cool or to reflect, Cortes set about car- rying his design into execution. In order to give a beginning to a colony, he assembled the principal persons in his army, and by their suffrage elect- ed a council and magistrates, in whom the government was to be vested. As men naturally transplant the institutions and forms of the mother country into their new settlements, this was framed upon the model of a Spanish corporation. The magistrates were distinguished by the same names and ensigns of office, and were to exercise a similar jurisdiction. All the per- sons chosen were most firmly devoted to Cortes, and the instrument of their election was framed in the king's name, without any mention of their dependence on Velasquez. The two principles of avarice and enthusiasm, which prompted the Spaniards to all their enterprises in the New World, seem to have concurred in suggesting the name which Cortes bestowed on his infant settlement. He called it. The Rich Town of the True Cross.^ The first meeting of the new council was distinguished by a transaction of great moment. As soon as it assembled, Cortes applied for leave to enter ; and approaching with many marks of profound respect, which added dignity to the tribunal, and set an example of reverence for its au- thority, he began a long harangue, in which, with much art, and in terms extremely flattering to persons just entering upon their new function, he observed, that as the supreme jurisdiction over the colony which they had planted was now vested in this court, he considered them as clothed with the authority and representing the person of their sovereign ; that accord- ingly he would communicate to them what he deemed essential to the public safety, with the same dutiful fidelity as if he were addressing his royal master ; that the security of a colony settled in a great empire, whose sovereign had already discovered his hostile intentions, depended upon arms, and the efficacy of these upon the subordination and discipline pre- served among the troops ; that his right to command was derived from a commission granted by the governor of Cuba ; and as that had been long since revoked, the lawfulness of his jurisdiction might well be questioned ; that he might be thought to act upon a defective or even a dubious title ; nor could they trust an army which might dispute the powers of its gene- ral, at a juncture when it ought implicitly to obey his orders ; that, moved by these considerations, he now resigned all his authority to them, that they, having both right to choose, and power to conler full jurisdiction, might appoint one in the king's name to command the army in its future operations ; and as tor his own part, such was his zeal for the service in which they were engaged, that he would most cheerfully take up a pike with the same hand that laid down the general's truncheon, and convince his fellow-soldiers, that though accustomed to command, he had not forgot- ten how to obey. Having finished his discourse, he laid the commission from Velasquez upon the table, and, after kissing his truncheon, delivered it to the chief magistrate, and withdrew. The deliberations of the council were not long, as Cortes had concert- ed this important measure with his confidants, and had prepared the other * Bi Dlar, C. 40, 41, 42. Ilcrrcra, dec. 2. lib. t, c 6, 7. + Villa Rica de la Vora Cni7. 508 HISTORY OF tBooKV. members with great address for the part which he wished them to take. His resignation was accepted ; and as the uninterrupted tenor of their prosperity under his conduct afforded the most satisfying evidence of his abilities tor command, they, by their unanimous sufifrage, elected him chief justice of the colony, and captain-general of its army, and appointed his commission to be made out in the king's name, with most ample powers, which were to continue in force until the royal pleasure should be further known. That this deed might not be deemed the machination of a junto, the council called together the troops, and acquainted them with what had been resolved. The soldiers, with eager applause, ratified the choice which the council had made ; the air resounded with the name of Cortes, and all vowed to shed their blood in support of his authority. Cortes, having now brought his intrigues to the desired issue, and shaken off his mortifying dependence on the governor of Cuba, accepted of the conamission, which vested in him supreme jurisdiction, civil as well as military, over the colony, with many professions of respect to the council and gratitude to the army. Together with this new command, he assumed greater dignity, and began to exercise more extensive powers. Formerlj' he had felt himself to be only the deputy of a subject ; now he acted as the representative of his sovereign. The adherents of Velasquez, fully aware of what would be the effect of this change in the situation of Cortes, could no longer continue silent and passive spectators of bis actions. They exclaimed openly against the proceedings of the council as illegal, and against those of the army as mutinous. Cortes, instantly perceiving the necessity of giving a timely check to such seditious discourse by some vigorous measure, arrested Ordaz, Escudero, and Velasquez de Leon, the ringleaders of this faction, and sent them prisoners aboard the fleet, loaded with chains. Their dependants, astonished and overawed, remained quiet ; and Cortes, more desirous to reclaim than to punish his prisoners, who were officers of great merit, courted their friendship with such assi- duity and address, that the reconciliation was perfectly cordial ; and on the most trying occasions, neither their connection with the governor of Cuba, nor the memory of the indignity with which they had been treated, tempted them to swerve from an inviolable attachment to his interest.* In this, as well as his other negotiations at this critical conjuncture, which decided with respect to his future fame and fortune, Cortes owed much of his success to the Mexican gold, which he distributed with a liberal hand both among his friends and his opponents.! Cortes, having thus rendered the union between himself and his army indissoluble, by engaging it to join him in disclaiming any dependence on the governor of Cuba, and in repeated acts of disobedience to his authority, thought he now might venture to quit the camp in which he had hitherto remained, and advance into the countiy. To this he was encouraged by an event no less fortunate than seasonable. Some Indians having ap- proached his camp in a mysterious manner, were introduced into his pre- sence. He found that they were sent with a proffer of friendship from the cazique of Zempoalla, a considerable town at no great distance; and from their answers to a variety of questions which he put to them, according to his usual practice in eveiy interview with the people of the country, he gathered, that their master, though subject to the Mexican empire, was impatient of the yoke, and filled with such dread and hatred of Monte- zuma, that nothing could be more acceptable to him than any prospect ot deliverance from the oppression under which he groaned. On hearing this, a ray of light and hope broke in upon the mind of Cortes. He saw that the great empire which he intended to attack was neither perfectly united, nor its sovereign universally beloved. He concluded, that the * B. Diaz, c. 42, 43. Gomata Cron. c. 30. 31. Herrera, dec. 2 lib, v. c. 7 ♦ B. Diaz. c. «, AMERICA. 2,09 causes of disaftection could not be confined to one province, but that in other corners there must be nialecontents, so weary of subjection, or so desirous of change, as to be ready to follow the standard of any protector. Full of those ideas, on which he began to form a scheme that time and more perfect information concerning the state of the country enabled him to mature, he gave a most gracious reception to the Zempoallans, and promised soon to visit their cazique.* In order to perform this promise, it was not necessary to vary the route which he had already fixed for his march. Some officers, whom he had employed to survey the coast, having discovered a village named Quiabis- Ian, about forty miles to the northward, which, both on account of the fer- tility of the soil and commodiousness of the harbour, seemed to be a more proper station for a settlement than that where he was encamped, Cortes determined to remove thither. Zempoalla lay in his way, where the cazique received him in the manner which he had reason to expect ; with gifts and caresses, like a man solicitous to gain his good will ; with respect approaching almost to adoration, like one who looked up to him as a deli- verer. From him he learned many particulars v/ith respect to the charac- ter of Montezuma, and the circumstances which rendered his dominion odious. He was a tyrant, as the cazique told him with tears, haughty, cruel, and suspicious ; who treated his own subjects with arrogance, ruined the conquered provinces by excessive exactions, and often tore their sons and daughters trom them by violence ; the former to be offered as victims to his gods ; the latter to be reserved as concubines for himself or favourites. Cortes, in reply to him, artfully insinuated, that one great object of the Spaniards in visiting a country so remote from their own, was to redress grievances, and to relieve the oppressed ; and having encouraged him to hope for this interposition in due time, he continued his march to Qjuia- bislan. The spot which his officers had recommended as a proper situation, appeared to him to be so well chosen, that he immediately marked out ground for a town. The houses to be erected were only huts ; but these, were to be surrounded with fortifications of sufficient strength to resist the assaults of an Indian army. As the finishing of those fortifications was essential to the existence of a colony, and of no less importance in prose- cuting the designs which the leader and his followers meditated, both in order to secure a place of retreat, and to preserve their communication with the sea, every man in the army, officers as well as soldiers, put his hand to the work, Cortes himself setting them an example of activity and perseverance in labour. The Indians of Zempoalla and Quiabislan lent their aid ; and this petty station, the parent of so many mighty settlements, was soon in a state of defence.! While engaged in this necessary work, Cortes had several interviews with the caziques of Zempoalla and Qjuiabislan ; and availing himself of their wonderand astonishment at the new objects which they daily beheld, he gradually inspired them with such a high opinion of the Spaniards, as- beings of a superior order, and irresistible in arms, that, relying on their protection, they ventured to insult the Mexican power, at the very name of which they were accustomed to tremble. Some of Montezuma s officers having appeared to levy the usual tribute, and to demand a certain number of human victims, as an expiation for their guilt in presuming to hold intercourse with those strangers whom the emperor had commanded to leave his dominions ; instead of obeying the order, the caziques made them prisoners, treated them with great indignity, and as their superstition was no less barbarous than that ot the Mexicans, they prepared to sacri- • B. niaz. c. II. r.oniararron. e-. 0^ ' Tl, Ui^z. c. 4.i. 4n. ra, \az c. 57, 5d. Herrpra, dec.2. Uh. V. c. 1-1. 212 HISTORY OF LBookV, Nothing now retarded Cortes ; the alacrity of his troops and the dis position of his allies were equally favourable. All the advantages, how- ever, derived from the latter, though procured by much assiduity and address, were well nigh lost in a moment, by an indiscreet sally of religious zeal, which on many occasions precipitated Cortes into actions inconsistent ■with the prudence that distinguishes his character. Though hitherto he bad neither time nor opportunity to explain to the natives the errors of their own superstition, or to instruct them in the principles of the Christian faith, he commanded his soldiers to overturn the altars and to destroy the idols in the chief temple of Zempoalla, and m their place to erect a crucifix and an image of the Virgin Mary. The people beheld this with astonishment and horror ; the priests excited them to arms : but such was the authority of Cortes, and so great the ascendant which the Spaniards had acquired, that the commotion was appeased without bloodshed, and concord perfectly re-established.* Cortes began his march from Zempoalla, on the sixteenth of August, with five hundred men, fifteen horse, and six field pieces. The rest of his troops, consisting chiefly of such as from age or infirmity were less fit for active service, he left as a garrison in Villa Rica, under the command of Escalante, an officer of merit, and warmly attached to his interest. The cazique of Zempoalla supplied him with provisions, and with two hundred of those Indians called Tamemes, whose office, in a country where tarne animals were unknown, was to carry burdens, and to perform all servile labour. They were a great relief to the Spanish soldiers, who hitherto had been obliged not omy to carry their own baggage, but to drag along the artillery by main force. He ofTered likewise a considerable body of his troops, but Cortes was satisfied with four hundred ; taking care, how- ever, to choose persons of such note as might prove hostages for the fidelity of their master. Nothing memorable happened in his progress, until he arrived on the confines oT Tlascala. The inhabitants of^ that province, a warlike people, were implacable enemies of the Mexicans, and had been united in an ancient alliance with the caziques of Zempoalla. Though less civilized than the subjects of Montezuma, they were advanced in improvement far beyond the rude nations of America whose manners we have described. They had made considerable progress in agriculture ; they dwelt in large towns ; they were not strangers to some species of commerce ; and in the imperfect accounts of their institutions and laws, transmitted to us by the early Spanish writers, we discern traces both of distributive justice and of criminal jurisdiction in their interior police. But still, as the degree of their civilization was incomplete, and as they depended for subsistence not on agriculture alone, but trusted for it in a great measure to hunting, they retained many of the qualities natural to men in this state. Like them they were fierce and revengeful ; like them, too, they were high spirited and independent. In consequence of the former, they were involved in perpetual hostilities, and had but a slender and occasional intercourse with neighbouring states. The latter inspired (hem with such detestation of servitude, that they not only refused to stoop to a foreign yoke, and maintain an obstinate and successful contest in defence of tneir liberty against the superior power of the Mexican empiie, but they guarded with equal solicitude against domestic tyranny ; and disdaining to acknowledge any master, they lived under the niild and limited jurisdiction of a council elected by their several tribes. Cortes, though he had received information concerning the martial cha- racter of this people, flattered himself that his professions of deliv;ering the oppressed from the tyranny of Montezuma, thtnr inveterate enmity to the Mexicans, and the example of their ancient allies the Zempoallans> » R. Diaz, c. 41. Ai. ncrrcra, ilec. 2. lib. v. c. 3, 4 AMERICA. 213 might induce the Tlascalans to grant him a friendly reception. In order to dispose them to this, four Zempoallans of great eminence were sent ambassadors, to request in his name, and in that of their cazique, that they would permit tiie Spaniards to pass through the territories of the republic in their way to Mexico. But instead of the favourable answer which was expected, the Tlascalans seized the ambassadors, and, without any regard to their public character, made preparations for sacrificing them to their gods. At the same time they assembled their troops, in order to oppose those unknown invaders if they should attempt to make their passage good by force of arms. Various motives concurred in precipi- tating the Tlascalans into this resolution. A fierce people, shut up within its own narrow precincts, and little accustomed to any intercourse with foreigners, is apt to consider every stranger as an enemy, and is easily excited ^to arras. They concluded, from Cortes's proposal of visiting Montezuma in his capital, that, notwithstanding all his professions, he courted the friendship of a monarch whom they both hated and feared. The imprudent zeal of Cortes in violating the temples in Zempoalla, filled the Tlascalans with honor ; and as they were no less attached to their superstition than the other nations of New Spain, they were impatient to avenge their injured gods, and to acquire the merit of offering up to them as victims, those impious men who had dared to profane their altars ; they contemned the small number of the Spaniards, as they had not yet mea- sured their own strength with that of these new enemies, and had no idea of the superiority which they derived from their arms and discipline. Cortes, after waiting some days, in vain, for the return of his ambassa- dors, advanced [Aug. 30,] into the Tlascalan territories. As the resolutions of people who delight in war are executed with no less promptitude than they are formed, he found troops in the field ready to oppose him. They attacked him with great intrepidity, and, in the first encounter, wounded some of the Spaniards, and killed two horses ; a loss, in their situation, of great moment, because it was irreparable. From this specimen of their courage, Cortes saw the necessity of proceeding with caution. His army marched in close order ; he chose the stations where he halted, with attention, and fortified every camp with extraordinary care. During four- teen days he was exposed to almost uninterrupted assaults, the Tlascalans advancing with numerous armies, and renewing the attack in various forms, with a degree of valour and perseverance to which the Spaniards had seen nothing parallel in the New World. The Spanish historians describe^ those successive battles with great pomp, and enter into a minute detail of particulars, mingling many exaggerated and incredible circumstances [l05] with such as are real and marvellous. But no power of words can render the recital of a combat interesting, where there is no equality of danger ; and when the narrative closes with an account of thousands slain on the one side, while not a single person falls on the other, the most laboured descriptions of the previous disposition of the troops, or of the various vicissitudes in the engagement, command no attention. There are some circumstances, however, in this war, which are memo- rable, and merit notice, as they throw light upon the character both of the people of New Spain, and of their conquerors. Though the Tlasca- lans brought into the field such numerous armies as appear sufficient to liave overwhelmed the Spaniards, they were never able lo make any im- pression upon their small battalion. Singular as this may seem, it is not inexplicable. The Tlascalans, though addicted to war, were like all unpolished nations, strangers to military order and discipline, and lost in a great measure the advantage which they might have derived fronri their numbers, and the impetuosity of their attack, by their constant solicitude to carry oflf tlie dead and wounded. This jwint of honour, founded on a sentiment of tenderness natural to the human mind, and strengthened by 214 H IS TO R Y O F L'^ooK V, anxiety to preserve the bodies of their countrymen from being devoured by their enemies, was universal among the people of New Sjpain. At- tention to this pious office occupied them even during the heat of combat,* broke their union, and diminished the force of the impression which they might have made by a joint effort. Not only was their superiority in number of little avail, but the imper- fection of their militaiy weapons rendered their valour in a great measure inoffensive. After three battles, and many skirmishes and assaults, not one Spaniard was killed in the field. Arrows and spears, headed with flint or the bones of fishes, stakes hardened in the fire, and wooden swords, though destructive weapons among naked Indians, were easily turned aside by the Spanish bucklers, and could hardly penetrate the escaupiles, or quilted jackets, which the soldiers wore. The Tlascalans advanced boldly to the charge, and often fought hand to hand. Many of the Spa- niards were wounded, though all slightly, which cannot be irnputed to any want of courage or strength in their enemies, but to the defect of the arms with which they assailed them. Notwithstanding the fury with which the Tlascalans attacked the Spa- niards, they seemed to have conducted their hostilities with some degree of barbarous generosity. They gave the Spaniards warning of their hostile intentions ; and as they knew that their invaders wanted provisions, and imagined, perhaps, like the other Americans, that they had left their own country because it did not afford them subsistence, they sent to their camp a large supply of poultry and maize, desiring them to eat plentifully, because they scorned to attack an enemy enfeebled by hunger, and it would be an affront to their gods to offer them famished victims, as well ;is disagreeable to themselves to feed on such emaciated prey.j When they were taught by the first encounter with their new enemies, that it was not easy to execute this threat ; when they perceived, in the subsequent engagements, that notwithstanding all the efforts of their own valour, of which they had a very high opinion, not one of the Spaniards was slain or taken, they began to conceive them to be a superior order of beings, against whom human power could not avail. In this extremity, they had recourse to their priests, requiring them to reveal the mysterious causes of such extraordinary events, and to declare what new means they should employ in order to repulse those formidable invaders. The priests, after many sacrifices and incantations, delivered this response : That these strangers were the offspring of the sun, procreated by his animating energy in the regions of the east ; that, by day, while cherished with the influence of his parental beams, they were invincible ; but by night, when his re- viving heat was withdrawn, their vigour declined and faded like the herbs in the field, and they dwindled down into mortal men.J Theories less plausible have gained credit with more enlightened nations, and have influenced their conduct. In consequence of this, the Tlascalans, with the implicit confidence of men who fancy themselves to be under the guidance of Heaven, acted in contradiction to one of their most established maxims in war, and ventured to attack the enemy, with a strong body, in the night time, in hopes of destroying them when enfeebled and surprised. But Cortes had greater vigilance and discernment than to be deceived by the rude stratagems of an Indian army. The sentinels at his outposts, observing some extraordinary movement among the Tlascalans, gave the alarm. In a moment the troops were under arms, and sallying out, dis- persed the party with great slaughter, without allowing it to approach the camp. Tiie Tlascalans convinced by sad experience that their priests had deluded them, and satisfied that they attempted in vain either to deceive or to vanquish their enemies, their fierceness abated, and they began to incline seriously to peace, ■^ B, lHa/. c. 65. t Jtrrrrrn. (|pi-. 0. lilr. vi. p. 0. noiiiaiR Croi). c. 47, J B. nia/.. o, 00 AMERICA. 216 They were at a loss, however, in what manner to address the strangers, what idea to Ibrm of their character, and whether to consider them as beings of a gentle or of a malevolent nature. There were circumstances in their conduct which seemed to favour each opinion. On the one hand, as the Spaniards constantly dismissed the prisoners whom they took, not only without injury, but often with presents of European toys, and renewed their offers of peace after every victory ; this lenity amazed people, who, according to the exterminating system of war known in America, were accustomed to sacrifice and devour without mercy all the captives taken in battle, and disposed them to entertain favourable sentiments of the huma- nity of their new enemies. But, on the other hand, as Cortes had seized fifty of their countrymen who brought provisions to his camp, and supposing them to be spies, had cut off their hands ;* this bloody spectacle, added to the terror occasioned by the fire-arms and horses, filled them with dreadful impressions of the ferocity of their invaders [l06]. This uncertainty was apparent in the mode of addressing the Spaniards. " If," said they," you are divinities of a cruel and savage nature, we present to you five slaves, that you may drink their blood and eat their flesh. If you are mild deities, accept an offering of incense and variegated plumes. If you are men, here is meat, and bread, and fruit to nourish you.f The peace, which both parties now desired with equal ardour, was soon concluded. The Tlascalans yielded themselves as vassals to the crown of Castile, and en- gaged to assist Cortes in all his future operations. He took the republic under his protection, and promised to defend their persons and possessions from injury or violence. This treaty was concluded at a seasonable juncture for the Spaniards. The fatigue of service among a small body of men, surrounded by such a multitude of enemies, was incredible. Half the army was on duty every night, and even they whose turn it was to rest, slept always upon their arms, that they might be ready to run to their posts on a moment's warn- ing. Many of them were wounded ; a good number, and among these Cortes himself, laboured under the distempers prevalent in hot climates, and several had died since they set out from Vera Cruz. Notwithstanding the supplies which they received from the Tlascalans, they were often in want of provisions, and so destitute of the necessaries most requisite in danger- ous service, that they had no salve to dress their wounds, but what was composed with the fat of the Indians whom they had slain. J Worn out with such intolerable toil and hardships, many of the soldiers began to murmur, and when they reflected on the multitude and boldness of their enemies, more were ready to despair. It required the utmost exertion of Cortes's authority and address to check this spirit of despondency in its progress, and to reanimate his followers with their wonted sense of their own superiority over the enemies with whom they had to contend. § The submission of the Tlascalans, and their own triumphant entry into the capital city, where they were received with the reverence paid, to beings of a superior order, banished at once from the minds of the Spaniards all memory of past sufferings, dispelled every anxious thought with respect to their future operations, and fully satisfied them that there was not now any power in America able to withstand their arms.|| Cortes remained twenty days in Tlascala, in order to allow his troops a short interval of repose after such hard service. During that time he was employed in transactions and inquiries of great moment with respect to his future schemes. In his daily conferences with the Tlas- calan chiefs, he received information concerning every particular rela- tive to the state of the Mexican empire, or to the qualities of its sovereign, * Cortes Rdat. Ramus, iii. 228. C. Gomara Cron. c. 4S. f B. Diaz, c. 70. Gomara Crnii. c. '17. Herrcra, dec. 2. lib. vi, c. 7. | B. Diaz, c. 62. C.5. ^ Corles Re!at. Ramus, iii. 1K9. B. Diaz, c. 09. Gomara Cron. c. 51. || Cortea Rclat. Ramus, iii. 33U. B. Diaz, c. TV, 216 J li S T O 11 \ O h' [Book V. which could be ol use in regulating his conduct, whether he should be obliged to act as a friend or as an ememy . As he found that the antipathy of his new allies to the Mexican nation was no less implacable than had been represented, and perceived what benefit he might derive from the aid of such powerful confederates, he employed all his powers of insinuation in order to gain their confidence. Nor was any extraordinaiy exertion of these necessary. The Tlascalans, with the levity of mind natural to un- polished men, were, of their own accord, disposed to run from the extreme of hatred to that of fondness. Every thing in the appearance and conduct of their guests was to them matter of wonder [107J. They gazed with admiration at whatever the Spaniards did, and, fancying them to be of heavenly origin, were eager not only to comply with their demands, but to anticipate their wishes. They offered, accordingly, to accompany Cortes in his march to Mexico, with all the forces of the republic, under the command of their most experienced captains. But, after bestowing so much pains on cementing this union, all the bene- ficial fruits of it were on the point of being lost by a new effusion of that intemperate religious zeal with which Cortes was animated no less than Ihe other adventurers of the age. They all considered themselves as in- struments employed by Heaven to propagate the Christian faith, and the less they were qualified, either by their knowledge or morals, for such a function, they were more eager to discharge it. The profound veneration of the Tlascalans for the Spaniards having encouraged Cortes to explain to some of their chiefs the doctrines of the Christian religion, and to insist that they should abandon their own superstitions, and embrace the faith of their new friends, they, according to an idea universal among barbarous nations, readily acknowledged the truth and excellence of what he taught ; but contended, that the Tevles of Tlascala were divinities no less than the God in whom the Spaniards believed ; and as that Being was entitled to the homage of Europeans, so they were bound to revere the same powers Avhich their ancestors had worshipped. Cortes continued, nevertheless, to urge his demand in a tone of authority, mingling threats with his arguments, until the Tlascalans could bear it no longer, and conjured him never to mention this again, lest the gods should avenge on their heads the guilt of having listened to such a proposition. Cortes, astonished and enraged at their obstinacy, prepared to execute by force what he could not accomplish by persuasion, and was going to overturn their altars and cast down their idols with the same violent hand as at Zempoalla, if Father Bartholomew de Olmedo, chaplain to the expedition, had not checked his inconsiderate impetuosity. He represented the imprudence of such an attempt in a lai^e city newly reconciled, and filled with people no less superstitious than warlike ; he declared, that the proceeding at Zempoalla had always appeared to him precipitate and unjust ; that religion was not to be propa- gated by the sword, or infidels to be converted by violence ; that other weapons were to be employed in this ministry ; patient instruction must enlighten the understanding, and pious example captivate the heart, before men could be induced to abandon error, and embrace the truth.* Amidst scenes where a narrow minded bigotry appears in such close union with oppression and cruelty, sentiments so liberal and humane soothe the mind with unexpected pleasure ; and at a time when the rights of conscience ^vere little understood in the Christian world, and the idea of toleration unknown, one i.s astonished to find a Spanish monk of the sixteenth century among the first advocates against persecution, and in behalf of religious liberty. The remonstrances of an ecclesiastic, no less respectable for wisdom than virtue, had their proper weight with Cortes. He left the Tlascalans in the imdisturbed exercise of their own rites, requiring only that n. Diaz, c. 77. p. 54, r, ai, p. 61, AMERICA. £1T ihey should desist Iroin their horrid practice of ofiering human victims in sacrifice. • i • Cortes, as soon as his troops were fit for service, resolved to contmue his march towards Mexico, notwithstanding the earnest dissuasives of the Tlas- calans, who represented his destruction as unavoidable if he put himself in the power of a prince so faithless and cruel as Montezuma. As he was accompanied by six thousand Tlascalans, he had now the command of forces which resembled a regular army. They directed theii' course towards Cholula [Oct. 13] ; iVTontezuma, who had at length consented to admit the Spaniards into his presence, having informed Cortes that he had given orders for his friendly reception there. Cholula was a considerable town, and though only five leagues distant from Tlascala, was formerly an independent state, but had been lately subjected to the Mexican empire. This was considered by all the people of New Spain as a holy place, the sanctuary and chief seat of their gods, to which pilgrims resorted from every province, and a greater number of human victims were oflfered in its prin- cipal temple than even in that of Mexico.* Montezuma seems to have invited the Spaniards thither, either from some superstiiious hope that the gods would not suffer this sacred mansion to be defiled, without pouring down their wrath upon those impious strangers, who ventured to insult their power in the place of its peculiar residence ; or from a belief that he him- self might there attempt to cut them off with more certain success, under the immediate protection of his divinities. Cortes had been warned by the Tlascalans, before he set out on his march, to keep a watchful eye over the Cholulans. He himself, though received into the town with much seeming respect and cordiality, observed several circumstances in their conduct which excited suspicion. Two of the Tlas- calans, who were encamped at some distance from the town, as the Cholu- lans refused to admit their ancient enemies within its precincts, having Ibund means to enter in disguise, acquainted Cortes that they observed the women and children of the principal citizens retiring in great hurry every night ; and that six children had been sacrificed in the chief temple, a rite Avhich indicated the execution of some warlike enterprise to be approach- ing. At the same time, Marina the interpreter received information from an Indian woman of distinction, whose confidence she had gained, that the destruction of her friends was concerted ; that a body of Mexican troops lay concealed near the town ; that some of the streets were barricaded, and in others, pits or deep trenches were dug, and slightly covered over, as traps into which the horses might fall ; that stones or missive weapons were collected on the tops of the temples, with which to overwhelm the infantry ; that the fatal hour was now at hand, and their ruin unavoidable. Cortes, alarmed at this concurring evidence, secretly arrested three of the chief priests, and extorted from them a confession, that confirmed the intel- ligence which he had received. As not a moment was to be lost, he in- stantly resolved to prevent his enemies, and to inflict on them such dreadful vengeance as might strike Montezuma and his subjects with terror. For this purpose, the Spaniards and Zempoalians were drawn up in a large court, which had been allotted for their quarters near the centre of the (own ; the Tlascalans had orders to advance ; the magistrates and several of the chief citizens were sent for, under various pretexts, and seized. On a signal given, the troops rushed out and fell upon the multitude, destitute of lead- ers, and so much astonished, that the weapons dropping from their hands, they stood motionless, and incapable of defence. While the Spaniards pressed them in front, the Tlascalans attacked them in the rear. The streets were filled with bloodshed and death. The temples, which afford- ed a retreat to the priests and some of the leading men, were set on fire, * Torqucmada Monar, InU. i. 281.532. ii. 291. Oomara Cron. e. 61. Herrera, dec. 2. lib. vii. c. 2. Vol. I.— 2« 218 HISTORY OF [Book IV. and they perished in the flames. This scene of horror continued two days ; during which, the wretched inhabitants suffered all that the destructive rage of the Spaniards, or the implacable revenge of their Indian allies, could inflict. At length the carnage ceased, after the slaughter of six thou- sand Cholulans, without the loss of a single Spaniard. Cortes then released the magistrates, and, reproaching them bitterly for their intended treachery, declared, that as justice was now appeased, he forgave the oftence, but required them to recall the citizens who had fled, and re-establish order in the town. Such was the ascendant which the Spaniards had acquired over this superstitious race of men, and so dijeply were they impressed with an opinion of their superior discernment, as well as power, that, in obedience to this command, the city was in a few days filled again with people, who, amidst the ruins of their sacred buildings, yielded respectful service to men whose hands were stained with the blood of their relations and fellow- citizens*ho8]. From Cholula, Cortes advanced directly towards Mexico [Oct. 29], which was only twenty leagues distant. In every place through which he passed, he was received as a person possessed of sufficient power to deliver the empire from the oppression under which it groaned ; and the caziques or governors communicated to him all the grievances which they felt under the tyrannical government of Montezuma, with that unreserved confidence which men naturally repose in superior beings. When Cortes first observed the seeds of discontent in the remote provinces of the empire, hope dawned upon his mind ; but when he now discovered such symptoms of alienation from their monarch near the seat of government, he concluded that the vital parts of the constitution were aSected, and conceived the most sanguine expectations of overturning a state whose natural strength was thus divided and impaired. While those reflections encouraged the general to persist in his arduous undertaking, the soldiers were no less animated by obser- vations more obvious to their capacity. In. descending from the mountains of Chalco, across which the road lay, the vast plain of Mexico opened gradually to their view. When they first beheld this prospect, one of the most striking and beautiful on the face of the earth ; when they observed fertile and cultivated fields stretching further than the eye could reach ; when they saw a lake resembling the sea in extent, encompassed with large towns, and discovered the capital city rising upon an island in the middle, adorned with its temples and turrets ; the scene so far exceeded their imagination, that some believed the fanciful descriptions of romance were realized, and that its enchanted palaces and gilded domes were presented to their sight ; others could hardly persuade themselves that this wonderful spectacle was any thing more than a dream [109]. As they advanced, their doubts were removed, but their amazement increased. They were now fully satisfied that the country was rich beyond any conception which they hadf formed of it, and flattered themselves that at length ihey should obtain an ample recompense for all their services and sufterings. Hitherto they had met with no enemy to oppose their progress, though several circumstances occurred which led them to suspect that some design was formed to surprise and cut them off". Many messengers arrived suc- cessively from Montezuma, permitting them one day to advance, requiring them on the next to retire, as his hopes or fears alternately prevailed ; and so wonderful was this infatuation, which seems to be unaccountable on any supposition but that of a superstitious dread of the Spaniards, as beings of a superior nature, that Cortes was almost at the gates of the capital, before the monarch had determined whether to receive him as a friend, or to oppose him as an enemy. But as no sign of open hostility appeared, the Spaniards, without regarding the fluctuations of Montezuma's sentiments, * Cortes Relat. Rsmug. iii. 331. B. Dia?., c. 8,1. Gomara Cron. c. 64. Ilrrrcra, dec. 2. lib. vii. AMERICA, 219 continued their march along the causeAvay which led to Mexico through the lake, with great circumspection and the strictest discipline, though without seeming to suspect the prince whom they were about to visit. When they drew near the city, about a thousand persons, who appeared to be of distinction, came forth to meet them, adorned with plumes and clad in mantles of fine cotton. Each of these in his order passed by Cortes, Jmd saluted him according to the mode deemed most respectful and submissive in their country They announced the approach of Mon- tezuma himself, and soon after his harbingers came in sight. There appear- ed first two hundred persons in a uniform dress, with iai^e plumes of fea- thers, alike in fashion, marching two and two, in deep silence, bare!ooted, with their eyes fixed on the ground. These were followed by a company of higher rank, in their most showy apparel, in the midst of whom was Montezuma, in a chair or litter richly ornamented with gold, and feathers of various colours. Four of his principal favourites carried him on their shoulders, others supported a canopy of curious workmanship over his head. Before him marched three officers with rods of gold in their hands, which they lifted up on high at certain intervals, and at that signal all the people bowed their heads, and hid their faces, as unworthy to look on so great a monarch. When he drew near, Cortes dismounted, advancing to- wards him with officious haste, and in a respectful posture. At the same time Montezuma alighted from his chair, and, leaning on the arms of two of his near relations, approached with a slow and stately pace, his attend- ants covering the streets with cotton cloths, that he might not touch the OTound. Cortes accosted him Avith profound reverence, after the European fashion. He returned the salutation, according to the mode of his country, by touching the earth with his hand, and then kissing it. This ceremony, the customary expression of veneration from inferiors towards those who were above them in rank, appeared such amazing condescension in a proud monarch, who scarcely deigned to consider the rest of mankind as of the same species with himself, that all his subjects firmly believed those per- sons, before whom he humbled himself in this manner, to be something more than human. Accordingly, as they marched through the crowd, the Spaniards frequently, and with much satisfaction, heard themselves deno- minated Teules, or divinities. Nothing material passed in this first inter- view. Montezuma conducted Cortes to the quarters which he had pre- pared for his reception, and immediately took leave of him, with a polite- ness not unworthy of a court more refined. " You are now," says he, " with your brothers, in your own house ; refresh yourselves after your fatigue, and be happy until I retuin.''* The place allotted to the Spaniards for their lodging, was a house built by the father of Montezuma. It was surrounded by a stone wall, with towers at proper distances, which served for defence as well as for ornament, and its apartments and courts were so large as to accommodate both the Spaniards and their Indian allies. The first care of Cortes was to take precautions for his security, by planting the artillery so as to command the different avenues which led to it, by appoint- ing a lar^e division of his troops to be always on guard, and by posting sentinels at proper stations, with injunctions to observe the same vigilant discipline as if they were within sight of an enemy's camp. In the evening, Montezuma returned to visit hi* guests with the same pomp as in their first interview, and brought presents of such value, not only to Cortes and to his officers, but even to the private men, as proved the liberality of the monarch to be suitable to the opulence of his kingdom. A long conference ensued, in which Cortes learned what was the opinion of Montezuma with respect to the Spaniards. It was an established tra- * Cortes Rplat. Ram. iii. 232—235. P. Diaz, c. 83—83. Gomaia Cron. c,64. 0.5. Hcrrcra, dw. 8. lib. vii. c, 3, 4, H. 220 HISTORY OF [BookV. dition, be told him, among the Mexicans, that their ancestors came origin- ally from a remote region, and conquered the provinces now subject to his dominion ; that after they were settled there, the great captain who con- ducted this colony returned to his own country, promising that at some future period his descendants should visit them, assume the government, and reform their constitution and laws ; that from what he had heard and seen of Cortes and his followers, he was convinced that they were the very persons whose appearance the Mexican traditions and prophecies taught them to expect ; that accordingly he had received them, not as strangers, but as relations of the same blood and parentage, and desired that they might con- sider themselves as masters in his dominions, for both himself and his sub- jects should be ready to comply with their will, and even to prevent their wishes. Cortes made a reply m his usual style, with respect to the dig- nity and power of his sovereign, and his intention of sending him into that country ; artfully endeavourmg so to frame his discourse, that it might coincide as much as possible with the idea which Montezuma had formed concerning the origin of the Spaniards. Next morning, Cortes and some of his principal attendants were admitted to a public audience of the em- peror. The three subsequent days were employed in viewing the city ; the appearance of which, so far superior in the order of its buildings and the number of its inhabitants to any place the Spaniards had beheld in America, and yet so little resembling the structure of a European city, filled them with surprise and admiration. Mexico, or Tenuchtitlan, as it was anciently called by the natives, is situated in a large plain, evironed by mountains of such height that, though within the torrid zone, the temperature of its climate is mild and healthful. All the moisture which descends from the high grounds, is collected in several lakes, the two largest of which, of about ninety miles in circuit, communicate with each other. The waters of the one are fresh, those of the other brackish. On the banks of the latter, and on some small islands adjoining to them, the capital of Montezuma's empire was built. The access to the city was by artificial causeways or streets formed of stones and earth, about thirty feet in breadth. As the waters of the lake during the rainy season overflowed the flat countiy, these causeways were of considerable length. That of Tacuba, on the west, extended a mile and a half; that of '1 epeaca, on the north-west, three miles ; that of Cuoyacan, tov/ards the south, six miles. On the east* there was no causeway, and the city could be approached only by canoes.t In each of these cause- ways were openings at proper intervals, through which the waters /lowed, and over these beams of timber were laid, which being covered with earth, the causeway or street had ever}' where a uniform appearance. As the approaches to the city were singular, its construction was remarkable. Not only the temples of their gods, but the houses belonging to the monarch, and to persons of distinction, were of such dimensions, that, in comparison with any other buildings which hitherto had been discovered in America, they might be termed magnificent. The habitations of the common peo- ple were mean, resembling the huts of olher Indians, But they were all placed in a regular manner, on the banks of the canals which passed through the city, in some of its districts, or on the sides of the streets which inter- sected it in other quarters. In several places were laiffe openings or squares, one of which, allotted for the great market, is said to have been so spacious, that forty or fifty thousand persons carried on traffic there. In this city, * I am indebted to M. Clavigero for correcting an error of importance in my description of Mexico. From the enwt, where Te/.euco was situated, there was no causeway, as 1 have observed, and yet by some inattention on my part, or on that of tlie printer, in all the tonuer editions one of the causeways was said to lead to Tezeuco. M. Clavigero's measurement of tlie length of these causeways differs somewhat from that which I have adopted from F. Torrihio. Clavig. il. p. 7-?. * F. Torrihio MS. AMERICA. 221 the pride of the New World, and the noblest monument of the industry and art of man, while unacquainted with the use of iron, and destitute of aid from any domestic animal, the Spaniards, who are most moderate in their computations, reckon that there were at least sixty thousand in- habitants.* But how much soever the novelty of those objects might amuse or astonish the Spaniards, they felt the utmost solicitude with respect to their own situation. From a concurrence of circumstances, no less un- expected than favourable to their progress, they had been allowed to penetrate into the heart of a powerful kingdom, and were now lodged in its capital without having once met with open opposition from its monarch. The Tlascalans, however, had earnestly dissuaded them from placing such confidence in Montezuma, as to enter a city of such peculiar situation as- Mexico, where that prince would have them at mercy, shut up as it were in a snare, from which it was impossible to escape. They assured them that the Mexican priests had, in the name of the gods, counselled their sovereign to admit the Spaniards into the capital, that he might cut them off there at one blow with perfect security.! 1 hey now perceived too plainly, that the apprehensions of their allies were not destitute of foundation ; that, by breaking the bridges placed at certain intervals on the causeways, or by destroying part of the causeways themselves, their retreat would be rendered impracticable, and they must remain cooped up in the centre of a hostile city, surrounded by multitudes sufficient to overwhelm them, and without a possibility of receiving aid from their allies. Montezuma had, indeed, received them with distinguished respect. But ought they to reckon upon this as real, or to consider it as feigned ? Even if it were sincere, could they promise on its continuance ? Their safety depended upon the will of a monarch in whose attachment they had no reason t(i confide ; and an order flowing from his caprice, or a word uttered by him in passion, might decide irrevocably concerning their fate.| These reflections, so obvious as to occur to the meanest soldier, did not escape the vigilant sagacity of their general. Before he set out from Cholula, Cortes had received advice from Villa Rica,§ that Qualpopoca^ one of the Mexican generals on the frontiers, having assembled an army in order to attack some of the people whom the Spaniards had encouraged to throw off the Mexican yoke, Escalante had marched out with part of the garrison to support his allies ; that an engagement had ensued, in which, though the Spaniards were victorious, Escalante, with seven of his meiv had been mortally wounded, his horse killed, and one Spaniard had been surrounded by the enemy and taken alive ; that the head of this unfortu- nate captive, after being carried in triumph to different cities, in order to convince the people that their invaders were not immortal, had been sent to Mexico.ll Cortes, though alarmed with this intelligence, as an indica- tion of Montezuma's hostile intentions, had continued his march. But as soon as he entered Mexico he became sensible, that, from an excess of confidence in the superior valour and discipline of his troops, as well as from the disadvantage of having nothing to guide him in an unknown country, but the detective intelligence which he had received from people with whom his mode of communication was very imperfect, he had pushed forward into a situation where it was difficult to continue, and from which it was dangerous to retire. Disgrace, and perhaps ruin, was the certain consequence of attempting the latter. The success of his enterprise depended upon supporting the high opinion which the people of New Spain had formed with respect to the irresistible power of his arms. Upon * Cortes Rclat. Ram. iii. 230. I). Rclat. delta gran Citta de Mexico, par nn Genlelhuomo di-1 CoTtese. Ram. ibid. 304. E. Herrcra, dec. '2. lil». vii. c. 14, &c. T B. Diaz, c. 85, 86. t Ibid. f . 94. ft Cortos Relal. Ram. iii, 235. C. !1 B. Diaz, c. 93, "ll. ITcnera, d'-c. 2. lib. viii. c. 1. 22^; HISTORY OF [Book V. the first ay rnptom of timidity on his part, their veneration would cease, and Montezuma, whom fear alone restrained at present, would let loose upon him the whole force of his empire. At the same time, he knew that the countenance of his own sovereign was to be obtained only by a series of victories, and that nothing but the merit of extraordinary success could screen his conduct from the censure of irregularity. From all these con- siderations, it was necessary to maintain his station, and to extricate himself out of the difficulties in which one bold step had involved him, by ven- turing upon another still bolder. The situation was trying, but his mind was equal to it ; and after revolving the matter with deep attention, he fixed upon a plan no less extraordinary than daring. He determined to seize Montezuma in his palace, and to carry him as a prisoner to the Spanish quarters. From the superstitious veneration of the Mexicans for the person of their monarch, as well as their implicit submission to his will, he hoped, by having Montezuma in his power, to acquire the supreme direction of their affairs ; or, at least, with such a sacred pledge in his hands, he made no doubt of being secure from any effort of their violence. This he immediately proposed to his officers. The timid startled at a measure so audacious, and raised objections. The more intelligent and resolute, conscious that it was the only resource in which there appeared any prospect of safety, warmly approved of it, and brought over their companions so cordially to the same opinion, that it was agreed instantly to make the attempt. At his usual hour of visiting Montezuma, Cortes went to the palace, accompanied by Alvarado, Sandoval, Lugo, Velasquez de Leon, and Davila, five of his principal officers, and as many trusty soldiers. Thirty chosen men follovved, not in regular order, but sauntering at some distance, as if they had no object but curiosity ; small parties were posted at proper intervals, in all the streets leading from the Spanish quarters to the court ; and the remainder of his troops, with the Tlascalan allies, were under arms ready to sally out on the first alarni. Cortes and his attendants were admitted without suspicion ; the Mexicans retiring, as usual, out of respect. He addressed the monarch in a tone very different from that which he had employed in former conferences, reproaching him bitterly as the author of the violent assault made upon the Spaniards by one of'^his officers, and demanded public reparation for the loss which they had sustained by the death of some of their campanions, as well as for the insult offered to the great prince whose servants they were. Mon- tezuma, confounded at this unexpected accusation, and changing colour, either from consciousness of guilt, or from feeling ihe indignity with which he was treated, asserted his own innocence with great earnestness, and, as a proof of it, gave orders instantly to bring Qiialpopoca and his accomplices prisoners to Mexico. Cortes replied with seeming complaisance, that a declaration so respectable left no doubt remaining in his own mind, but that something more was requisite to satisfy his followers, who would never be convinced that Montezuma did not harbour hostile intentions against them, unless, as an evidence of his confidence and attachment, he removed from his own palace, and took up his residence in the Spanish quarters, where he should be served and honoured as became a great monarch. The first mention of so strange a proposal bereaved Montezuma of speech, and almost of motion. At length indignation gave him utter- ance, and he haughtily answered, " That persons of his rank were not accustomed voluntarily to give up themselves as prisoners ; and were he mean enough to do so, his subjects would not permit such an affront to be offered to their sovereign." Cortes, unwilling to employ force, endeavoured alternately to soothe and to intimidate him. The altercation became warm; and having continued above three hours, Velasquez de Leon, ao imj>etuous and gallant young man, exclaimed with impatience, " Why AMERICA. 22S waste more time in vain ? Let us either seize him instantly, or stab him to the heart." The threatening voice and tierce gestures with which these words were uttered, struck Montezuma. The Spaniards, he was sensible, had now proceeded so far, as let't him no hope that they would recede. His own danger was imminent, the necessity unavoidable. He saw both, and, abandoning himself to his fate, complied with their request. His officers were called. He communicated to them his resolution. Though astonished and afflicted, they presumed not to question the will of their master, but carried him in silent pomp, all bathed in tears, to the Spanish quarters. When it was known that the strangers were conveying away the Emperor, the people broke out into the Avildest transports ot' grief and rage, threatening the Spaniards with immediate destruction, as the punishment justly due to their impious audacity. But as soon as Mon- tezuma appeared, with a seeming gayety of countenance, and waved his hand, the tumult was hushed ; and upon his declaring it to be of his own choice that he went to reside for some time among his new friends, the mul- titude, taught to revere every intimation of their sovereign's pleasure, quietly dispersed.* Thus was a powerful prince seized by a few strangers in the midst of his capital, at noonday, and carried off as a prisoner, without opposition or bloodshed. History contains nothing parallel to this event, either with respect to the temerity of the attempt, or the success of the execution ; and were not all the circumstances of this extraordinary transaction authen- ticated by the most unquestionable evidence, they would appear so wild and extravagant as to go far beyond the bounds of that probability which must be preserved even in fictitious narrations. Montezuma was received in the Spanish quarters with all the ceremo- nious respect which Cortes had promised. He was attended by his own domestics, and served with his usual state. His principal officers had free access to him, and he carried on eveiy function of^ government as if he had been at perfect liberty. The Spaniards, however, watched him with the scrupulous vigilance which was natural in guarding such an important prize [110], endeavouring at the same time to sooth and reconcile him to his situation by every external demonstration of regard and attachment. But from captive princes, the hour of humiliation and suffering is never far distant. Qualpopoca, his son, and five of the principal officers who served under him, were brought prisoners to the capital [Dec. 4], in consequence of the orders which Montezuma had issued. The Emperor gave them up to Cortes, that he might inquire into the nature of their crime, and deter- mine their punishment. They were formally tried by a Spanish court martial ; and though ihey had acted no other part than what became loyal subjects and brave men, in obeying the orders of their lawful sovereign, and in opposing the invaders of their country, they were condemned to be burnt alive. The execution of such atrocious deeds is seldom long sus- pended. The unhappy victims were instantly led forth. The pile on which they were laid was composed of the weapons collected in (he royal magazine for the public dcfience. An innumerable multitude of Mexicans beheld, in silent astonishment, the double insult offered to the majesty of their empire, an officer of distinction committed to the flames by the author- ity of strangers for having done what he owed in duty to his natural sove- reign; and the arms provided by the foresight ol their ancestors for avenging public wrongs, consumed before their eyes. But these were not the most shocking indignities which the Mexicans had to bear. The Spaniards, convinced that C^ualpopoca would not have ventured to attack Escalante without orders from his master, were not *Diaz, e. 95. Gomara Cron. r. 83. Cortes Relat. Ram. iii. p 2.15, ^M. Ilorrcra, dec. 2. liri. Tiii. c. 2, 3. 224 11 i S I O il i U F [Book V. satisfied with inilicling vengeance on tlie instrument employed in commit- ting that crime while the author of it escaped with impunity. Just before QjLialpopoca was led out to sutler, Cortes entered the apartment of Monte- zuma, followed by some of his officers, and a soldier, carrying a pair of fetters ; and approaching the monarch with a stem countenance told bim, that as the persons who were now to undergo the punishment which they merited, had charged him as the cause of the outrage committed, it was necessary that he likewise should make atonement for that guilt ; then turning away abruptly, without waiting for a reply, commanded the sol- dier to clap the fetters on his legs. The orders were instantly executed. The disconsolate monarch, trained up with an idea that his person was sacred and inviolable, and considering this profanation of it as the prelude of immediate death, broke out into loud lamentations and complaints. His attendants, speechless with horror, fell at his feet, bathing them with their tears ; and, bearing up the fetters in their hands, endeavoured with officious tenderness to lighten their pressure. Nor did their grief and despondency abate, until Cortes returned from the execution, and with a cheerful coun- tenance ordered the fetters to be taken oft". As Montezuma's spirits had sunk with unmanly dejection, they now rose into indecent joy ; and with an unbecoming transition, he passed at once from the anguish of despair to transports of gratitude and expressions of fondness towards bis deliverer. In those transactions, as represented by the Spanish historians, we search in vain for the qualities which distinguish other parts of Cortes's conduct. To usurp a jurisdiction which could not belong to a stranger, who assumed no higher character than that of an ambassador from a foreign prince, and, under colour of it, to inflict a capital punishment on men whose conduct entitled them to esteem, appears an act of barbarous cruelty. To put the monarch of a great kingdom in irons, and, after such ignominious treat- ment, suddenly to release him, seems to be a display of power no less in- considerate than wanton. According to the common relation, no account can be given either of the one action or the other, but that Cortes, intoxi- cated with success, and presuming on the ascendant which he had acquired over the minds of the Mexicans, thought nothing too bold for him to urider- take, or too dangerous to execute. But, in one view, these proceedings, however repugnant to justice and humanity, may have flowed from that artful policy which regulated every part of Cortes's behaviour towards tlie Mexicans. They had conceived the Spaniards to be an order of beings superior to men. It was of the utmost consequence to cherish this illusion, and to keep up the veneration which it inspired. Cortes wished that shedding the blood of a Spaniard should be deemed the most heinous of all crimes ; and nothing appeared better calculated to establish this opinion than to condemn the first Mexicans who had ventured to commit it to a cruel death, and to oblige their monarch himself to submit to a mor- tifying indignity as an expiation for being accessary to a deed so atro- cious [ill] 1520.] The rigour with which Cortes punished the unhappy persons who first presumed to lay violent hands upon his followers, seems accord- ingly to have made all the impression that he desired. The spirit of Mon- tezuma was not only overawed but subdued. During six inonths that Cortes remained in Mexico, the monarch continued in the Spanish quarters ■with an appearance of as entire satisfaction and tranquillity as if he had resided there not from constraint, but through choice. His ministers and officers attended him as usual. He took cognisance of all affairs ; every order was issued in his name. The external aspect of government appear- ing the same, and all its ancient forms being scrupulously observed, the people were so little sensible of any change, that they obeyed the man- dates of their monarch with the same submissive reverence as ever. Such was the dread which both Montezuma and his subjects had of the Span- AMERICA. 225 lards, or such the veneration in which they litld them, that j.o uttempt was made to dehver their sovereign from confinement ; and tiiough Cortes, rely- ing on this ascendant which he had acquired over their minds, permitted him not only to visit his temples, but to make hunting excursions beyond the lake, a guard of a few Spaniards carried with it such a terror as to intimidate the multitude, and secure the captive monarch.* Thus, by the fortunate temerity of Cortes in seizing Montezuma, the Spaniards at once secured to themselves more extensive authority in the Mexican Empire than it was possible to have acquired in a long course of time by open force ; and they exercised more absolute sway in the name of another, than they could have done in their own. The arts of polished nations, in subjecting such as are less improved, have been nearly the same in every period. The system of screening a foreign usurpation, under the sanction of authority derived from the natural rulers of a country, the device of employing the magistrates and forms already established as instruments to introduce a new dominion, of which we are apt to boast as sublime refine- ments in policy peculiar to the present age, were inventions of a more early period, and had been tried with success in the West long before they were practised in the East. Cortes availed himself to the utmost of the powers which he possessed by being able to act in the name of Montezuma. He sent some Spaniards, whom he judged best qualified for such commissions, into different parts of the empire, accompanied by persons of distinction, whom Montezuma ap- pointed to attend them, both as guides and protectors. They visited most of the provinces, viewed their soil and productions, surveyed with particular care the districts which yielded gold or silver, pitched upon several places as proper stations for future colonies, and endeavoured to prepare the minds of the people for submitting to the Spanish yoke. While they were thus employed, Cortes, in the name and by the authority of Montezuma, de- graded some of the principal officers in the empire, whose abilities or inde- {)endent spirit excited his jealousy, and substituted in their place persons ess capable or more obsequious. One thing still was wanting to complete his security. He wished to have such command of the lake as might ensure a retreat if, either from levity or disgust, the Mexicans should take arms against him, and break down the bridges or causeways. This, too, his own address, and the facility of Montezuma, enabled him to accomplish. Having frequently entertained his prisoner with pompous accounts of the European marine and art of navigation, he awakened his curiosity to see those moving palaces which made their way through the water without oars. Under pretext of gratifying this desire, Cortes persuaded Montezuma to appoint some of his subjects to fetch part of the naval stores which the Spaniards liad deposited at Vera Cruz to Mexico, and to employ others in cutting down and preparing timber. With their assistance, the Spanish carpenters soon completed two brigantines, which afforded a frivolous amusement to the monarch, and were considered by Cortes as a certain resource if he should be obliged to retire. Encouraged by so many instances of the monarch's tame submission to his will, Cortes ventured to put it to a proof still more trying. He urged Montezuma to acknowledge himself a vassal of the king of Castile, to hold his crown of him as superior, and to subject his dominions to the f payment of an annual tribute. VViih this requisition, the last and most tumbling that can be made to one possessed of sovereign authority, Mon- tezuma was so obsequious as to comply. He called together the chief men of his empire, and in a solemn harangue, reminding them of the tra- ditions and prophecies which led them to expect the arrival of a people * Concg Rclat. p. nn. E. n. Vmv.. r. 97. 9». 09. Vol. I.— 59 220 ] i 1 S T O K Y 1' LBooK v. ?l)rung^ from the sanit; slock with themselves, in order to take possession of the supreme power, he declared his belief that the Spaniards were this promised race ; that therefore he recognised the right of their monarch to govern the Mexican empire • that he would lay his crown at his feet, and obey him as a tributary. While uttering these words, Montezuma dis- covered how deeply he was affected in making such a sacrifice. Tears and groans frequently interrupted his discourse. Overawed and broken as his spirit was, it still retained such a sense of dignity as to feel that pang which pierces the heart of princes when constrained to resign inde- pendent power. The tirst mention of such a resolution struck the assembly dumb with astonishment. This was followed by a sudden murmur of sorrow, mingled with indignation, which indicated some violent irruption of rage to be near at hand. This Cortes foresaw, and seasonably inter- posed to prevent it by declaring that his master had no intention to deprive Montezuma of the royal dignity, or to make any innovation upon the con- stitution and laws of the Mexican empire. This assurance, added to their dread of the Spanish power and to the authority of their monarch's exaniple, extorted a reluctant consent from the assembly [112]. The act ol sub- mission and homage was executed with all the formalities which the Spa- niards were pleased to prescribe.* Montezuma, at the desire of Cortes, accompanied this profession of fealty and homage with a magnificent present to his new sovereign ; and after his example his subjects brought in very liberal contributions. The Spaniards now collected all the treasures which had been either voluntarily bestowed upon them at different times by Montezuma, or had been ex- torted from his people under various pretexts ; and having melted the gold and silver, the value of these, without including jewels and ornaments of various kinds, which were preserved on account of their curious work- manship, amounted to six hundred thousand pesos. The soldiers were impatient to have it divided, and Cortes complied with their desire. A fifth of the whole was first set apart as the tax due to the king. Another fifth was allotted to Cortes as commander in chief. The sums advanced by Velasquez, by Cortes, and by some of the officers, towards defraying the expense of fitting out the armament, were then deducted. The re- mainder was divided among the army, including the garrison of Vera Cruz, in proportion to their different ranks. After so many defalcations, the share of a private man did not exceed a hundred pesos. This sum fell so far below their sanguine expectations, that some soldiers rejected it with scorn, and others murmured so loudly at this cruel disappointment of their hopes, that it required all the address of Cortes, and no small ex- ertion of his liberality, to appease them. The complaints of the army Avere not altogether destitute of foundation. As the crown had contributed nothing towards the equipment or success of the armament, it was not without regret that the soldiers beheld it sweep away so great a proportion of the treasure purchased by their blood and toil. What fell to the share of the general appeared, according to the ideas of wealth in the sixteenth century, an enormous sum. Some of Cortes's favourites had secretly appropriated to their own use several ornaments of gold, which neither paid the royal fifth, nor were brought into account as part of the common stock. It was, however, so manifestly the interest of Cortes at this period to make a large remittance to the King, that it is. highly probable those concealments were not of great consequence. The total sum amassed by the Spaniards bears no proportion to the ideas which might be formed, either by reflecting on the descriptions given by historians of the ancient splendour of Mexico, or by considering the productions of its mines in modern times. But among the ancient Mexi- • Cortes Relat. 238. D B. Diaz, c. 101. Gomara Cron. c. 53. Hcrrera, Ucc. 2, lib. x. r. 4 AMERICA. 227 cans, gold and silver were not the standards by which the worth of other commodities was estimated ; and destitute of the artificial value derived from this circumstance, were no further in request than as they furnished materials for ornaments and trinkets. These were either consecrated to the gods in their temples, or were worn as marlis of distinction by their princes and some of their most eminent chiefs. As the consumption of the precious metals was inconsiderable, the demand for them was not such as (o put either the ingenuity or industiy of the Mexicans on the stretch in order to augment their store. They were altogether unacquainted with the art of working the rich mines with which their country abounded. What gold they had was gathered in the beds of rivers, native, and ripened into a pure metallic state.* The utmost effort of their labour in search of it was to wash the earth carried down liy torrents from the mountains, and to pick out the grains of gold which subsided ; and even this simple ope- ration, according to the report of the persons whom Cortes appointed to survey the provinces where there was a prospect of finding mines, they performed very unskilfully.! From all those causes, the whole mass of gold in possession of the Mexicans was not gre;'.t. As silver is rarely found pure, and the Mexican art was too rude to conduct the process for refining it in a proper manner, the quantity of this metal was still less considerable.^ Thus, though the Spaniards had exerted all the power which they pos- sessed in Mexico, and often with indecent rapacity, in order to gratify their predominant passion, and though Montezuma had fondly exhausted his treasures, in hopes of satiating their thirst for gold, the product of both, which probably included a great part of the Dullion in the empire, did not rise in value above what has been mentioned [113]. But however pliant Montezuma might be in other matters, with respect to one point he was inflexible. Though Cortes often urged him, with the importunate zeal of a missionary, to renounce his false gods, and to em- brace the Christian faith, he always rejected the proposition with horror. Superstition, among the Mexicans, was formed into such a regular and complete system, that its institutions naturally took fast hold of the mind ; and while the rude tribes in other parts of America were easily induced to relinquish a few notions and rites, so loose and arbitrary as hardly to merit the name of a public religion, the Mexicans adhered tenaciously to their mode of worship, which, liowever barbarous, was accompanied with such order and solemnity as to render it an object of the highest venera- tion, Cortes, finding all bis attempts ineffectual to shake the constancy of Montezuma, was so much enraged at his obstinacy, that in a transport of zeal he led out his soldiers to throw down the idols in the grand temple by force. But the priests taking arms in defence of their altars, and the people crowding with great ardour to support them, Cortes's prudence overruled his zeal, and induced him to desist from his rash attempt, after dislodgir^ the idols from one of the shrines, and placing in their stead an image of the Virgin Mary flH]. From that moment the Mexicans, who had permitted the imprisonment of their sovereign, and suffered the exactions of strangers without a struggle, began to meditate how they might expel or destroy the Spaniards, and tnought themselves called upon to avenge their insulted deities. The priests and leading men held frequent consultations with Montezuma for this purpose. But as it might prove fatal to the captive monarch to attempt either the one or the other by violence, he was willing to try more gentle means. Having called Cortes into his presence, he oDserved, that now, as all the purposes of his embassy were fully accomplished, the gods had declared their will, and the i)eople signified their desire, that he and his followers should instantly depart out of the empire. With this he re- • Cortes Relat. p. BOG. F. B Pia/., c 102. 10?. f.'oinara Crf>n r. W + b. Diaz. r. 1<(3. } Ilerrera, dec. 2, lib, ix. c 1. 228 HISTORY OF [BookV. quired them to comply, or unavoidable destruction would fall suddenly on their heads. The tenour of this unexpected requisition, as well as the determined tone in which it was uttered, left Cortes no room to doubt, that it was the result of some deep scheme concerted between Montezuma and his subjects. He quickly perceived that he might derive more advantage from a seeming compliance with the monarch's inclinations, than from an ill-timed attempt to change or to oppose it ; and replied, with great com- posure, that he had already begun to prepare for returning to his own countiy ; but as he had destroyed the vessels in which he arrived, some time was requisite for building other ships. This appeared reasonable. A number of Mexicans were sent to Vera Cruz to cut down timber, and some Spanish carpenters were appointed to superintend the work. Cortes flattered himself that during this interval he might either find means to avert the threatened danger, or receive such reinforcements as would enable him to despise it. Almost nine months Avere elapsed since Portocarrero and Montejo had sailed with his despatches to Spain ; and he daily expected their return with a confirmation of his authority from the King. Without this, his con- dition was insecure and precarious ; and after all the great things which he had done, it might be his doom to bear the name and suffer the punish- ment of a traitor. Rapid and extensive as his progress had been, he could not hope to complete tne reduction of a great empire with so small a body of men, which by this time diseases of various kinds considerably thinned*; nor could he apply for recruits to the Spanish settlements in the islands, until he received the royal approbation of his proceedings. While he remained in this cruel situation, anxious about what was past, uncertain with respect to the future, and, by the late declaration of Monte- zuma, oppressed with a new addition of cares, a Mexican courier arrived with an account of some ships having appeared on the coast. Cortes, with fond credulity, imagining that his messengers were returned from Spain, and that the completion of all his wishes and hopes was at hand, imparted the glad tidings to his companions, who received them with transports of mutual gratulation. Their joy was not of long continuance. A courier from Sandoval, whom Cortes had appointed to succeed Escalante in command at Vera Cruz, brought certain information that the armament was fitted out by Velasquez, governor of Cuba, and, instead of bringing the aid which they expected, threatened them with immediate destruction. The motives which prompted Velasquez to this violent measure are obvious. From the circumstances of Cortes' departure, it was impossible not to suspect his intention of throwing off all dependence upon him. His neglecting to transmit any account of his operations to Cuba, strengthened this suspicion, which was at last confirmed beyond doubt by the indiscretion of the officers whom Cortes sent to Spain. They, from some motive which is not clearly explained by the contemporary historians, touched at the island of Cuba, contrary to the peremptory' orders of their general.* By this means Velasquez not only learned that Cortes and his followers, after formally renouncing all connection with him, had esta- blished an independent colony in New Spain, and were soliciting the King to confirm their proceedings by his authority ; but he obtained particular information concerning the opulence of the countrj', the valuable presents which Cortes had received, and the inviting prospects of success that opened to his view. Every passion which can agitate an ambitious mind ; shame, at having been so grossly overreached ; indignation, at being betrayed by the man whom he had selected as the object of his favour and confidence ; grief, for having wasted his fortune to aggrandize an enemy ; and despair of recovering so fair an opportunity of establishing * B. Piaz, c. 54, 55. Hcrrora, dec. 2. lib. v. c. 14- Gomara Cron. c. 9*5. AMERICA. 229 his fame and extending his power, now raged in the bosom of Velasquez. All these, with united force, excited him to make an extraordinary effort in order to be avenged on the author of his wrongs, and to wrest Irom him his usurped authority and conquests. Nor did he want the appearance of a good title to justify such an attempt. The agent whom he sent to Spain with an account of Grijalva's voyage, had met with a most favourable reception ; and from the specimens which he produced, such high expec- tations were formed concerning the opulence oi New Spain, that Velasquez was authorized to prosecute the discovery of the country, and appointed governor of it during life, with more extensive power and privileges than had been granted to any adventurer from the time of Columbus.* Elated by this distinguishing mark of favour, and warranted to consider Cortes not only as intruding upon his jurisdiction, but as disobedient to the royal mandate, he determined to vindicate his own rights, and the honour of his sovereign by force of arms [ll5]. His ardour in carrying on his pre- parations was such as might have been expected from the violence of the passions with which he was animated ; and in a short time an armament was completed, consisting of eighteen ships which had on board fourscore horsemen, eight hundred foot soldiers, of which eighty were musketeers, and a hundred and twenty cross-bow men, together with a train of twelve pieces of cannon. As Velasquez's experience of the fatal consequence of committing to another what he ought to have executed himsen, had not rendered him more enterprising, he vested the command of this formi- dable body, which, in the infancy of the Spanish power in America, merits the appellation of an army, in Pamphilo de Narvaez, with instructions to seize Cortes and his principal officers, to send them prisoners to him, and then to complete the discovery and conquest of the countiy in his name. After a prosperous voyage, Narvaez landed his men without opposition near St. Juan de Ulua [April]. Three soldiers, whom Cortes had sent to search for mines in that district, immediately joined him. By this accident he not only received information concerning the progress and situation of Cortes, but, as these soldiers had made some progress in the knowledge of the Mexican language, he acquired interpreters, by whose means he was enabled to hold some intercourse with the people of the country. But, according to the low cunning of deserters, they framed their intelligence with more attention to what they thought would be agreeable than to what they knew to be true ; and represented the situation of Cortes to be so desperate, and the disaffection of his followers to be so general, as increased the natural confidence and presumption of Narvaez. His first operation, however, might have taught him not to rely on their partial accounts. Having sent to summon the governor of Vera Cruz to sur- render, Guevara, a priest whom he employed in that service, made the requisition with such insolence, that Sandoval, an officer of high spirit, and zealously attached to Cortes, instead of complying with his demands, seized him and his attendants, and sent them in chains to Mexico. Cortes received them not like enemies, but as friends, and, condemnina: the severity of Sandoval, set them immediately at liberty. By this well timed clemency, seconded by caresses and presents, he gained their con- fidence, and drew from them such particulars concerning the force and intentions of Narvaez, as gave him a view of the impending danger in its full extent. He had not to contend now with half naked Indians, no match for him in war, and still more inferior in the arts of policy, but to take the field against an army in courage and martial discipline equal to his own, in number far superior, acting under the sanction of royal authority, and commanded by an officer oi known bravciy. He was informed that Narvaez, more solicitous to gratify the resentment of Velasquez than * llerrera, dec ?, Uv, iii. c. II. 23U H I S T O R Y O F [Book V. attentive to the honour or interest of his country, had begun his intercourse with the natives, by representing him and his followers as fugitives and outlaws, guilty of rebellion against their own sovereign, and of injustice in invading the Mexican empire ; and had declared that his chief object in visiting the country was to punish the Spaniards who had committed these crimes, and to rescue the Mexicans from oppression. He soon perceived that the same unfavourable representations of his character and actions had been conveyed to Montezuma, and that Naivaez had found means to assure him, that as the conduct of those who kept him under restraint was hi<'hly displeasing to the King his master, he had it in charge not only to rescue an injured monarch Irom confinement, but to reinstate him in the possession of his ancient power and independence. Animated with this prospect of being set free from subjection to strangers, the Mexicans in several provinces began openly to revolt from Cortes, and to regard Narvaez as a deliverer no less able than willing to save them. Montezuma himself kept up a secret intercourse with the new commander, and seemed to court him as a person superior in power and dignity to those Spaniards whom he had hitherto revered as the first of men [116]. Such were the various aspects of danger and difficulty which presented themselves to the view of Cortes. No situation can be conceived more trying to the capacity and firmness of a general, or where the choice of the plan which ought to be adopted was more difficult. If he should wait the approach of Narvaez in Mexico, destruction seemed to be unavoidable ; for, while the Spaniards pressed him from without, the inhabitants, whose turbulent spirit he could hardly restrain with all his authority and attention, would eagerly lay hold on such a favourable opportunity of avenging all their wrongs. If he should abandon the capital, set the captive monarch at liberty, and march out to meet the enemy, he must at once forego the fruits of all his toils and victories, and relinquish advantages which could not be recovered without extraordinary efforts and infinite danger. If, instead of employing force, he should have recourse to conciliating measures, and attempt an accommodation with Narvaez ; the natural haughtiness of that officer, augmented by consciousness of his present superiority, forbade him to cherish any sanguine hope of success. After revolving every scheme with deep attention, Cortes fixed upon that which in execution was most hazardous, but, if successful, would prove most beneficial to himself and to his country ; and with the decisive intrepidity suited to desperate situations, determined to make one bold eflfort for victory under every disadvantage, rather than sacrifice his own conquests and the Spanish interests in Mexico. But though he foresaw that the contest must be terminated finally by arms, it would have been not only indecent but criminal to have niarched against his countiymen, without attempting to adjust matters by an amicable negotiation. In this service he employea Olmedo, his chaplain, to whose character the function was well suited, and who possessed, besides, such prudence and address as qualified him to carry on the secret intrigues in which Cortes placed his chief confidence. Narvaez rejected with scorn every scheme of accommodation that Olmedo proposed, and was with difficulty restrained from laying violent hands on him and his attendants. He met, however, with a more favourable reception among the followers of Narvaez^to many of whom he delivered letters, either from Cortes or his officers, their ancient friends and companions. Cortes artfully accompanied these with presents of rings, chains of gold, and other trinkets of value, which inspired those needy adventurers with high ideas of the wealth tliat he had acquiied, and with envy of their good fortune who were engaged in his service. Some, from hopes of becoming sharers in those rich S{)oils, declared for an immediate accommodation with Cortes. Others, jioin public sjiirit, laboured to prevent a civil war, which, whatever party AMERICA. 23X should prevail, must shake, and perhaps subvert the Spanish power in a country where it was so imperiectly estabhshed. Narvaez disregarded both, and by a pubhc proclamation denounced Cortes and his adherents rebels and enemies to their country. Cortes, it is probable, was not much surprised at the untractable arrogance of Narvaez ; and after having given such a proof of his own pacific disposition as might justify his recourse to other means, he determined to advance towards an enemy whom he had laboured in vain to appease. He left a hundred and fifty men in the capital [May], under the com- mand of Pedro de Alvarado, an officer of distinguished courage, for whom the Mexicans had conceived a singular degree of respect. To the custody of this slender garrison he committed a great city, with all the wealth he had amassed, and, what was of still greater importance, the person of the imprisoned monarch. His utmost art was employed in concealing from Montezuma the real cause of his march. He laboured to persuade him, that the strangers who had lately arrived were his friends and fellow-subjects ; and that, after a short interview with them, they would depart together, and return to their own countiy. The captive prince, unable to comprehend the designs of the Spaniard, or to reconcile what he now heard with the declarations of Nar\'aez, and afraid to discover any symptom of suspicion or distrust of Cortes, promised to remain quietly in the Spanish quarters, and to cultivate the same friendship with Alvarado which he had uniformly main- tained with him. Cortes, with seeming confidence in this promise, but relying principally upon the injunctions which he had given Alvarado to guard his prisoner with the most scrupulous vigilance, set out from Mexico. His strength, even after it was reinforce t by the junction of Sandoval and the garrison of Vera Cruz, did not exceed two hundred and fifty men. As he hoped for success chiefly from the rapidity of his motions, his troops were not encumbered either with baggage or artillery. But as he dreaded extremely the impression which the enemy might make with their cavalry, he had provided against this danger with the foresight and sagacity which distinguish a great commander. Having observed that the Indians in the province of Chinantla used spears of extraordinary length and force, he armed his soldiers with these, and accustomed them to that deep and com- pact arrangement which the use of this formidable weapon, the best per- haps that was ever invented for defence, enabled them to assume. With this small but firm battalion, Cortes advanced towards Zempoalla, of which Narvaez had taken possession. During his march, he made repeated attempts towards some accommodation with his opponent. But Narvaez requiring that Cortes and his followers should instantly recognise his title to be governor of New Spain, in virtue of the powers which he derived from Velasquez ; and Cortes refusing to submit to any authority which was not founded on a commission from the Emperor himself, under whose immediate protection he and his adherents had placed their infant colony ; all these attempts proved fruitless. The intercourse, however, which this occasioned between the two parties, proved of no small advan- tage to Cortes, as it aflforded him an opportunity of gaining some of Nar- vaez's officers by liberal presents, of softening others by a semblance of moderation, and of dazzling all by the appearance of wealth among his troops, most of his soldiers having converted their share of the Mexican gold into chains, bracelets, and other ornaments, which they displayed with military ostentation. Narvaez and a little junto of his creatures excepted, all the army leaned towards an accommodation with their countrymen. This discoveiy of their inclination irritated his violent temper almost to madness. In a transport of rage, he set a price upon the head of Cortes, and of his principal officers ; and having learned that he was now advanced within a league of Zempoalla with his small body of men, he considered 232 HISTORY OF [BookV. this as an insult which merited immediate chastisement, and marched out with all his troops to ofli'er him battle. But Cortes was a leader of greater abilities and experience than, on equal ground, to tight an enemy so far superior in number, and so much better appointed. Having taken his station on the opposite bank of the river de Canoas, where he knew that he could not be attacked, he beheld the ap- firoach of the enemy without concern, and disregarded this vain bravade. t was then the beginning of the wet season,* and the rain had poured down, during a great part of the day, with a violence peculiar to the torrid zone. The followers of Narvaez, unaccustomed to the hardships of military service, murmured so much at being thus fruitlessly exposed, that, from their unsol- dierlike impatience, as well as his own contempt of his adversary', their general permitted them to retire to Zempoalla. The very circumstance which induced them to quit the field, encouraged Cortes to form a scheme by which he hoped at once to terminate the war. He observed that his hardy veterans, though standing under the torrents which continued to fall, without a single tent or any shelter whatsoever to cover them, were so far trom repining at hardships which were become familiar to them, that they were still fresh and alert for service. He foresaw that the enemy would naturally give themselves up to repose after their fatigue, and that, judging ot the conduct of others by their own effeminacy, they would deem them- selves perfectly secure at a season so unfit for action. He resolved, there- fore, to fall upon them in the dead of night, when the surprise and terror of this unexpected attack might more than compensate the inferiority of his numbers. His soldiers, sensible that no resource remained but in some des- perate effort of courage, approved of the measuie with such warmth, that Cortes, in a military oration which he addressed to them before they began their march, was more solicitous to temper than to inflame their ardour. He divided them into three parties. At the head of the first he placed Sandoval ; intrusting this gallant officer with the most dangerous and impor- tant service, that of seizing the enemy's artillery, which was planted before the principal tower of the temple where Narvaez had fixed his head-quar- ters. Christoval de Olid commanded the second, with orders to assault the tower, and lay hold on the general. Cortes himself conducted the third and smallest division, which was to act as a body of reserve, and to support the other two as there should be occasion. Having passed the river de Canoas, which was much swelled with the rains, not without difficulty, the water reaching almost to their chins, they advanced in profound silence, without beat of drum, or sound of any warlike instrument ; each man armed with his sword, his dagger, and his Chinantlan spear. Narvaez, remiss in proportion to his security, had posted only two sentinels to watch the motions of an enemy whom he had such good cause to dread. One of these was seized by the advanced guard of Cortes's troops ; the other made his escape, and, hunying to the town with all the precipitation of fear and zeal, gave such timely notice of the enemy's approach, that there was full leisure to have prepared for their reception. But, through the arro- gance and infatuation of Narvaez, this important interval was lost. He imputed this alarm to the cowardice of the sentinel, and treated with derision the idea of being attacked by forces so unequal to his own. The shouts of Cortes's soldiers, rushmg on to the assault, convinced him at last that the danger which he despised was real. The rapidity with which they advanced was such that only one cannon could be hred before Sando- val s party closed with the enemy, drove them from their guns, and began to force their way up the steps of the tower. Narvaez, no less brave in action than presumptuous in conduct, armed himself in haste, and by his * (lakluyt, vol. iii. 4CT. De I.ae! Vetcr. In(J. Occid. 921 AMERICA. 233 voice and example animated his men to the combat. Olid advanced to sustain his companions ; and Cortes himself rushing to the front, conducted and added new vigour to the attack. The compact order in which this small body pressed on, and the impenetrable front which they presented with their long spears, bore down all opposition before it. They had now reached the gate, and were struggling to burst it open, when a soldier having set tire to the reeds with which the tower was covered, compelled Narvaez to sally out. In the first encounter he was wounded in the eye with the spear, and, falling to the ground, was dragged down the steps, and in a moment clapped in tetters. The cry of victory resounded among the troops of Cortes. Those who had sallied out with their leader now main- tained the conflict feebly, and began to surrender. Among the remainder of his soldiers, stationed in two smaller towers of the temple, terror and confusion prevailed. The darkness was so great, that they could not dis- tinguish between their friends and foes. Their own artillery was pointed against them. Wherever they turned their eyes, they beheld lights gleam- ing through the obscurity of the night, which, though proceeding only from a variety of shining insects that abound in moist and sultry chmates, their affrighted imaginations represented as numerous bands oi musketeers ad- vancing with kindled matches to the attack. After a short resistance, the soldiers compelled their officers to capitulate, and betbre morning all laid down their arms, and submitted quietly to their conquerors. This complete victory proved more acceptable, as it was gained almost .without bloodshed, only two soldiers being killed on the side of Cortes, and two officers, with fifteen private men of the adverse faction. Cortes treated the vanquished not like enemies, but as countrymen and friends, and offered either to send them back directly to Cuba, or to take them into his service, as partners in his fortune, on equal terms with his own soldiers. This latter proposition, seconded by a seasonable distribution of some presents from Cortes, and liberal promises of more, opened prospects so agreeable to the romantic expectations which had invited them to engage in this service, that all, a few partisans of Narvaez excepted, closed with it, and vied with each other in professions of fidelity and attachment to a general, whose recent success had given them such a striking proof of his abilities for com- mand. Thus, by a series of events no less fortunate than uncommon, Cortes not only escaped from perdition which seemed inevitable, but, when he had least reason to expect it, was placed at the head of a thousand Spaniards, ready to follow wherever he should lead them. Whoever reflects upon the facility with which this victory was obtained, or considers with what sudden and unanimous transition the followers of Narvaez ranged themselves under the standard of his rival, will be apt to ascribe both events as much to the intrigues as to the arms of Cortes, and cannot but suspect that the ruin of Narvaez was occasioned no less by the treachery oi his own followers, than by the valour of the enemy.* But in one point the prudent conduct and good fortune of Cortes were equally conspicuous. If, by the rapidity of his operations after he began his march, he had not brought matters to such a speedy issue, even this decisive victory would have come too late to have saved his cornpanions whom he left in Mexico. A few days after the discomfiture of Narvaez, a courier arrived with an account that the Mexicans had taken arms, and, having seized and destroyed the two brigantines which Cortes had built in order to secure the command of the lake, and attacked the Spaniards in their quarters, had killed several of them, and wounded more, had reduced to ashes their magazine of provisions, and carried on hastilities with such fury, that though Alvarado and his men defended themselves * Cortes Relat. 242, D. B, Diaz, c. 110— 125 Herrcra, dec. 0. lib. ii.c. 18, &c. Goamra Cmn. c. 97, &.C. Vol.. I.— 30 234 HIST R Y O F [Book V. with undaunted resolution, they must either be soon cut off by famine, or sink under the multitude of their enemies. This revolt was excited by motives which rendered it still more alarming. On the departure of Cortes for Zempoalla, the Mexicans flattered themselves that the long- expected opportunity of restoring their sovereign to liberty, and of vindi- cating their country from the odious dominion of strangers, was at length arrived ; that while the forces of their oppressors were divided, and the arms of one party turned against the other, they might triumph with greater facility over both. Consultations were held, and schemes formed with this intention. The Spaniards in Mexico, conscious of their own feebleness, suspected and dreaded those machinations. Alvarado, though a gallant officer, possessed neither that extent of capacity nor dignity- of manners, by which Cortes had acquired such an ascendant over the mmds of the Mexicans, as never allowed them to form a just estimate of his weakness or of their own strength. Alvarado knew no mode of supporting his authority but force. Instead of employing address to disconcert the plans or to soothe the spirits of the Mexicans, he waited the return of one of their solemn festivals. When the principal persons in the empire were dancing, according to custom, in the court of the great temple, he seized all the avenues which led to it ; and allured partly by the rich ornaments which they wore in honour of their gods, and partly by the facility of cutting oft" at once the authors of that conspiracy which he dreaded, he fell upon them, unarmed and unsuspicious of any danger, and massacred a great number, none escaping but such as made their way over the battlements of the temple. An action so cruel and treacherous filled not only the city, but the whole empire with indignation and rage. All called aloud for vengeance ; and regardless of the safety of their monarch, whose life was at the mercy of the Spaniards, or of their own danger in assaulting an enemy who had been so long the object of their terror, they committed all those acts of violence of which Cortes received an account. To him the danger appeared so imminent as to admit neither of de- liberation nor delay. He set out instantly with all his forces, and returned from Zempoalla with no less rapidity than he had advanced thither. At Tlascala he was joined by two thousand chosen warriors. On entering the Mexican territories, he found that disaffection to the Spaniards was not confined to the capital. The principal inhabitants had deserted the towns through which he passed ; no person of note appearing to meet him with the usual respect ; no provision was made for the subsistence of his troops ; and though he was permitted to advance without opposition, the solitude and silence which reigned in every place, and the horror with which the people avoided all intercourse with him, discovered a deep- rooted antipathy that excited the most just alarm. But implacable as the enmity of the Mexicans was, they were so unacquainted with the science of war, that they knew not how to take the proper measures either for their own safety or the destruction of the Spaniards. Uninstructed by their former error in admitting a formidable enemy into their capital, instead of breaking down the causeways and bridges, by which they might have enclosed Alvarado and his party, and have effectually stopped the career of Cortes, they again suffered him to march into the city [June 24] without molestation, and to take quiet possession of his ancient station. The transports of joy with which Alvarado and his soldiers received their companions cannot be expressed. Both parties were so much elated, the one with their seasonable deliverance, and the other with the great exploits which they had achieved, that this intoxication of success seems lo have reached Cortes himself; and he behaved on this occasion neither with his usual sagacity nor attention. He not only neglected to visit Montezuma, but embittered the insult by expressions full of contempt for that unfortunate prince and his people. The forces of which he had now AMERICA. 235 the command appeared to him so irresistible that he might assume a higher tone, and lay aside the mask of moderation under which he had hitherto concealed his designs. Some Mexicans, who understood the Spanish language, heard the contemptuous words which Cortes uttered, and, reporting them to their countrymen, kindled their rage anew. They were now convinced that the intentions of the general were equally bloody with those of Alvarado, and that his original purpose in visitmg their country had not been, as he pretended, to court the alliance of their sovereign, but to attempt the conquest of his dominions. They resumed their arms with the additional fury which this discovery inspired, attacked a considerable body of Spaniards who were marching towards the great square in which the public market was held, and compelled them to retire with some loss. Emboldened by this success, and delighted to find that their oppressors were not invincible, they advanced the next day with extra- ordinary martial pomp to assault the Spaniards in their quarters. Their number was formidable, and their undaunted courage still more so. Though the artillery pointed against their numerous battalions, crowded together in narrow streets, swept off multitudes at every discharge ; though every blow of the Spanish weapons fell with mortal effect upon their naked bodies, the impetuosity of the assault did not abate. Fresh men rushed forward to occupy the places of the slain, and, meeting with the same fate, were succeeded by others no less intrepid and eager for vengeance- The utmost efforts of Cortes's abilities and experience, seconded by the disciplined valour of his troops, were hardly sufficient to defend the forti- fications that surrounded the post where the Spaniards were stationed, into which the enemy were more than once on the point of forcing their way. Cortes behela with wonder the implacable ferocity of a people who seemed at first to submit tamely to the yoke, and had continued so long passive under it. The soldiers of Narvaez, who fondly imagined that they followed Cortes to share in the spoils of a conquered empire, were astonished to find that they were involved in a dangerous war with an enemy whose vigour was still unbroken, and loudly execrated their own weakness in giving such easy credit to the delusive promises of their new loader.* But surprise and complaints were of no avail. Some immediate and extraordinary efibrt was requisite to extricate themselves out of their present situation. As soon as the approach of evening induced the Mexicans to retire in compliance with their national custom of ceasing from hostilities with the setting sun, Cortes began to prepare for a sally, next day, with such a considerable force as might either drive the enemy out of the city, or compel them to listen to terms of accommodation. He conducted in person the troops destined for this important service. Every invention known in the European art of war, as well as every pre- caution suggested by his long acquaintance with the Indian mode of fight- ing were employed to ensure success. But he found an enemy prepared and determined to oppose him. The force of the Mexicans was greatly augmented by fresh troops, which poured in continually from the countiy* and their animosity was in no degree abated. They were led by their nobles, inflamed by the exhortations of their priests, and fought in defence of their temples and families, under the eye of their gods, and in presence of their wives and children. Notwithstanding their numbers, and enthusiastic contempt of danger and death, wherever the Spaniards could close with them, the superiority of their discipline and arms obliged the Mexicans to give vvay. But in narrow streets, and where many of the bridges of com- munication were broken down, the Spaniards could seldom come to a fair rencounter with the enemy, and, as they advanced, were exposed to showers of arrows and stones from the tops of houses. After a day of * B. nia7, c. !26. 236 HISTORY OF [Book V. incessant exertion, thougjh vast numbers of the Mexicans fell, and part of the city was burnt, the Spaniards weary with the slaughter, and harassed by multitudes which successively relieved each other, were obliged at length to retire, with tiie mortification of having accomplished nothing so decisive as to compensate the unusual calamity of having twelve soldiers killed, and above sixty wounded. Another sally, made with greater force, was not more effectual, and in it the general himself was wounded in the hand. Cortes now perceived, too late, the fatal error into which he had been betrayed by his own contempt of the Mexicans, and was satisfied that he could neither maintain his present station in the centre of a hostile city, nor retire trom it without the most imminent danger. One resource still remained, to try what effect the interposition of Montezuma might have to soothe or overawe his subjects. U hen the Mexicans approached next morning to renew the assault, that unfortunate prince, at the mercy of the Spaniards, and reduced to the sad necessity of becoming the instrument of his own disgrace, and of the slavery of his people [IHJ, advanced to the battlements in his royal robes, and with all the pomp in which he used to appear on solemn occasions. At sight of their sovereign, whom they had long been accustomed to honour, and almost to revere as a god, the weapons dropped from their hands, eveiy tongue was silent, all bowed their heads, and many prostrated themselves on the ground. Montezuma addressed them with every ai^ument that could mitigate their rage, or persuade them to cease from hostilities. When he ended his discourse, a sullen murmur of disapprobation ran through the ranks ; to this succeeded reproaches and threats ; and the fury of the multitude rising in a moment above eveiy restraint of decency or respect, flights of arrows and volleys of stones poured in so violently upon the ramparts, that before the Spanish soldiers, appointed to cover Montezuma with their bucklers, had time to lift them in his defence, two arrows wounded the unhappy monarch, and the blow of a stone on his temple struck him to the ground. On seeing him fall, the Mexicans were so much astonished, that with a transition not uncommon in popular tumults, they passed in a moment from one extreme to the other, remorse succeeded to insult, and they fled with horror, as if the vengeance of heaven were pursuing the crime which they committed. The Spaniards without molestation carried Montezuma to his apartments, and Cortes hast- ened thither to console him under his misfortune. But the unhappy monarch now perceived how low he was sunk ; and the haughty spirit which seemed to have been so long extinct, returning, he scorned to survive this last humiliation, and to protract an ignominious life, not only as the prisoner and tool of his enemies, but as the object of contempt or detesta- tion among his subjects. In a transport of rage he fore the bandages from his wounds, and refused, with such obstinacy, to take any nourishment, that he soon ended his wretched days, rejecting with disdain all the solicitations of the Spaniards to embrace the Christian faith. Upon the death of Montezuma, Cortes, having lost all hope of bringing the Mexicans to an accommodrtion, saw no prospect of safety but in at- tempting a retreat, and began to prepare for it. But a sudden niotion of the Mexicans engaged him in new conflicts. They took possession of a high tower in the great temple which overlooked the Spanish quarters, and placing there a garrison of their principal warriors, not a Spaniard could stir without being exposed to their missile weapons. From this post it was necessary to dislodge them at any risk ; and Juan de Escobar, with a numerous detachment of chosen soldiers, was ordered to make the attack. But Escobar, though a gallant officer, and at the head of troops accustomed to conquer, and who now fought under the eyes of their countrymen, was thrice repulsed. Cortes, sensible that not only the reputation but the safety AMERICA. 237 of his army depended on the success of this assault, ordered a buckler to be tied to his arm, as he could not manag-e it with his wounded hand, and rushed with his drawn sword into the thickest of the combatants. Encou- raged by the presence of their general, the Spaniards returned to the charge with such vigour, that they gradually forced their way up the steps, and drove the Mexicans to the platform at the top of the tower. There a dreadful carnage began ; when two young Mexicans of high rank, observing Cortes as he animated his soldiers by his voice and example, resolved to sacrifice their own lives in order to cut off the author of all the calamities which desolated their country. They approached him in a suppliant pos- ture, as if they had intended to lay down their arms, and seizing him in a moment, hurried hiui towards the battlements, over which they threw themselves headlong, in hopes of dragging hiin along to be dashed in pieces by the same tall. But Cortes, by his stiength and agility, broke loose from their grasp, and the gallant youtlis perished in this generous though unsuc- cessful attempt to save their country.* As soon as the Spaniards became masters of the tower, they set fire to it, and, without farther molestation, continued the preparations for their retreat. This became the more necessary, as the Mexicans were so much asto- nished at the last effort of the Spanish valour, that they began to change their whole system of hostility, and, instead of incessant attacks, endea- voured, by barricading the streets and breaking down the causeways, to cut off the communication of the Spaniards with the continent, and thus to starve an enemy whom they could not subdue. The first point to be de- termined by Cortes and his followers, was, whether they should march out openly in the face of day, when they could discern every danger, and see how to regulate their own motions, as well as how to resist the assaults of the enemy; or, whether they should endeavour to retire secretly in the night ? The latter was preferred, partly from hopes that their national superstition would restrain the Mexicans from venturing to attack them in the night, and partly from their own fond belief in the predictions of a private soldier, who having acquired universal credit by a smattering of learning, and his pretensions to astrology, boldly assured his countrymen of success, if they made their retreat in this manner. They began to move, towards midnight, in three divisions. Sandoval led the van ; Pedro Alva- rado and Velasquez de Leon had the conduct of the rear ; and Cortes com- manded in the centre, where he placed the prisoners, among whom were a son and two daughters of Montezuma, together with several Mexicans of distinction, the artillery, the baggage, and a portable bridge of timber in- tended to be laid over the breaches in the causeway. They marched in profound silence along the causeway which led to 1 acuba, because it was shorter than any of the rest, and, lying most remote from the road towards Tlascala and the sea-coast, had been left more entire by the Mexicans. They reached the first breach in it without molestation, hoping that their retreat was undiscovered. But the Mexicans, unperceived, had not only watched all their motions with attention, but had made proper dispositions for a most formidable attack. While the Spaniards were intent upon placing their bridge in the breach, and occupied in conducting their horses and artillery along it, they were suddenly alarmed with a tremendous sound of warlike instruments, and a general shout from an innumerable multitude of enemies ; the lake was covered with canoes ; flights of arrows and showers of stones poured in upon them from every quarter; the Mexicans rushing forward to the * M. ClaviC'To lias cpnsuriul mo with asperity for r<'lalin(» this gallant action of the two Mexicarts, ami for supposing lliat there were batllemetils rounfl the temple of M<:xico. I relaled the attempt to destroy Cortes on the authority of Her. dec. 2. hb. x. c. i). and of Tori|ueniado, \\b. iv. c. 69. I followed them likewise in supiKising llic uppermost platform of the temple to he eiKoni- pa3ied l)y a battlement or rail. S38 H I S T O K Y OF LBook V. charge with fearless impetuosity, as if they hoped in that moment to be avenged for all their wrongs. Unfortunately the wooden bridge, by the weight of the artiller}', was wedged so fast into the stones and mud, that it was impossible to remove it. Dismayed at this accident, the Spaniards advanced with precipitation towards the second breach. The Mexicans hemmed them in on every side ; and though they defended themselves with their usual courage, yet crowded together as they were on a narrow causeway, their discipline and military skill were of little avail, nor did the obscurity of the night permit them to derive great advantage from their fire-arms, or the superiority of their other weapons. All Mexico was now in arms ; and so eager were the people on the destruction of their oppres- sors, that they who were not near enough to annoy them in person, impa- tient of the delay, pressed forward with such ardour as drove on their countrymen in the front with irresistible violence. Fresh warriors instantly tilled the place of such as fell. The Spaniards, weary with slaughter, and unable to sustain the weight of the torrent that poured in upon them, began to give way. In a moment the confusion was universal ; horse and foot, officers and soldiers, friends and enemies, were mingled together ; and while all fought, and many fell, they could hardly distinguish from what hand the blow came. Cortes, with about a hundred foot soldiers and a kw horse, forced his way over the two remaining breaches in the causeway, the bodies of the dead serving to fill up the chasms, and reached the main land. Having formed them as soon as they arrived, he returned with such as were yet capable of service to assist his friends in their retreat, and to encouras^e them, by his presence and example, to persevere in the efforts requisite to effect it. He met with part of his soldiers who had broke through the enemy, but found many more overwhelmed by the multitude of their aggres- sors, or perishing in the lake ; and heard the piteous lamentations of others, whom the Mexicans, having taken alive, were carrying off in triumph to be sacrificed to the god of war. Before day, all who had escaped assem- bled at Tacuba. But when the morning dawned, and discovered to the view of Cortes his shattered battalion reduced to less than half its num- ber, the survivors dejected, and most of them covered with wounds, the thoughts of what they had suffered, and the remembrance of so many faith- ful friends and gallant followers who had fallen in that night of sorrow,* pierced his soul with such anguish, that while he was forming their ranks, and issuing some necessary orders, his soldiers observed the tears trickling from his eyes, and remarked with much satisfaction, that Avhile attentive to the duties of a general, he was not insensible to the feelings of a man. In this fatal retreat many officers of distinction perished [HB], and among lliese Velasquez de Leon, who having forsaken the party of his kinsman, the governor of Cuba, to follow the fortune of his companions, was, on that account, as well as for his superior merit, respected by them as the second person in the army. All the artilleiy, ammunition, and baggage, were lost ; the greater part of the horses, and above two thousand Tlascalans, were killed, and only a very small portion of the treasure which they had amassed was saved. This, which had been always their chief object, proved a great cause of their calamity ; for many ot the soldiers having so overloaded themselves with bars of gold as rendered them unfit for action, and retarded their flight, fell ignominiously, the victims of their own incon- siderate avarice. Amidst so many disasters, it was some consolation to find that Aguilar and Marina, whose function as interpreters was of such essen- tial importance, had made their escape.! The first care of Cortes was to find some shelter for his wearied troops ; • JVoche triate is the name by which it is still distinpuished i 248 B. Diaz, c. 123. (ionmra Cron. c. 109. Herrera, dec. 2. in New Spain. t Cortes Relat. p, lib. X. c. 11. 13 AMERICA 239 for, as the Mexicans infested them on eveiy side, and the people of Tacuba began to take arms, he could not continue in his present station. He di- rected his march towards the rising ground, and, having fortunately disco- vered a temple situated on an eminence, took possession of it. There he found not only the shelter for which he wished, but, what was no less wanted, some provisions to refresh his men ; and though the enemy did not intermit their attacks throughout the day, they were with less difficulty prevented from making any impression. During this time Cortes was en- gaged in deep consultation with his officers, concerning the route which tiiey ought to take in their retreat. They were now on the west side of the lake. Tlascala, the only place where they could hope for a friendly reception, lay about sixty-four miles to the east of Mexico ;* so that they were obliged to go round the north end ol' the lake before they could fall into the road which led thither. A Tlascalan soldier undertook to be their guide, and conducted them through a country in some places marshy, in others mountaincis, in all ill cultivated and thinly peopled. They marched for six days with little respite, and under continual alarms, numerous bodies of the Mexicans hovering around them, sometimes harassing them at a dis- tance with their missile weapons, and sometimes attacking them closely in front, in rear, in flank, with great boldness, as they now knew that they were not invincible. Nor were the fatigue and danger of those incessant conflicts the worst evils to which they were exposed. As the barren coun- try through which they passed afforded hardly any provisions, they were reduced to feed on berries, roots, and the stalks of green maize ; and at the very time that famine was depressing their spirits and wasting their strength, theii situation required the most vigorous and unremitting exer- tions of courage and activity. Amidst those complicated distresses, one circumstance supported and animated the Spaniards. Their commander sustained this sad reverse of fortune with unshaken magnanimity. His presence of mind never forsook him ; his sagacity foresaw every event, and his vigilance provided for it. He was foremost in every danger, and endured every hardship with cheerfulness. The difficulties with which he was surrounded seemed to call forth new talents ; and his soldiers, though despairing themselves, continued to follow him with increasing con- fidence in his abilities. On the sixth day they arrived near to Otumba, not far from the road between Mexico and Tlascala. Early next morning they began to advance towards it, flying parties of the enemy still hanging on their rear ; and, amidst the insults with which they accompanied their hostilities, Marina remarked that they often exclaimed with exultation, " Go on, robbers ; go to the place where you shall quickly meet the vengeance due to your crimes." The meaning of this threat the Spaniards did not comprehend, until they reached the summit of an eminence before them. There a spacious valley opened to their view, covered with a vast army, extending as far as the eye could reach. The Mexicans, while with one body of their troops they harassed the Spaniards in their retreat, had assembled their principal force on the other side of the lake ; and marching along the road which led directly to Tlascala, posted it in the plain of Otumba, through which they knew Cortes must pass. At the sight of this incredible multitude, which they could survey at once from the rising ground, the S|>aniards were astonished, and even the boldest began to despair. But Cortes, without allowing leisure for their fears to acquire strength by reflec- tion, after wamine them briefly that no alternative now remained but to conquer or to die, led them instantly to the charge. The Mexicans waited their approach with unusual fortitude. Such, however, was the superiority of the Spanish discipline and arms, that the impression of this small body * Villa Segnor Teatro Americanos, lib. ii. c. IJ. 240 HISTORY OF [BookV. was irresistible ; and whichever way its force was directed, it penetrated and dispersed the most numerous battalions. But while these jefave way in one quarter, new combatants advanced from another, and the Spaniards, though successful in every attack, were ready to sink under those repeated efforts, without seeing any end of their toil, or any hope of victory. At that time Cortes observed the great standard of the empire, which was carried before the Mexican general, advancing; and fortunately recollecting to have heard, that on the fate of it depended the event of every battle, he assembled a few of his bravest officers, whose horses were still capable of service, and, placing himself at their head, pushed forward towards the standard with an impetuosity which bore down every thing before it. A chosen body of nobles, who guarded the standard, made some resistance, but were soon broken. Cortes, with a stroke of his lance, wounded the Mexican general, and threw him on the ground. One of the Spanish officers, alighting, put an end to his life, and laid hold of the imperial standard. The moment that their leader fell, and the standard, towards which all directed their eyes, disappeared, a universal panic struck the Mexicans ; and, as if the bond which held them together had been dis- solved, every ensign was lowered, each soldier threw away his weapons, and all fled with precipitation to the mountains. The Spaniards unable to pursue them far, returned to collect the spoils of the field, which were so valuable as to be some compensation for the wealth which they had lost in Mexico ; for in the enemy's army were most of their principal warriors dressed out in their richest ornaments as if they had been marching to assured victory. Next day [July 8], to their great joy, they entered the Tlascalan territories.* But amidst their satisfaction in having got beyond the precincts of a hostile country, they could not look forward without solicitude, as they were Still uncertain what reception they might meet with from allies to whom tliey returned in a condition very different from that in which they had lately set out from their dominions. Happily for them, the enmity of the Tlascalans to the Mexican name was so inveterate, their desire to avenge the death of their countrymen so vehement, and the ascendant which Cortes had acquired over the chiefs of the republic so complete, that, far from entertaining a thought of taking any advantage of the distressed situation in which they beheld the Spaniards, they received them with a tenderness and cordiality which quickly dissipated all their suspicions. Seme interval of tranquillity and indulgence was now absolutely neces- * sary ; not only that the Spaniards might give attention to the cure of their wounds, which had been too long neglected, but in order to recruit their strength, exhausted by such a long succession of fatigue and hardships. During this, Cortes learned that he and his companions were not the only Spaniards who had felt the effects of the Mexican enmity. A considerable detachment which was marching from Zempoalla towards the capital, had been cut off by the people of Tepeaca. A smaller party, returning from Tlascala to Vera Cruz, with the share of the Mexican gold allotted to the garrison, had been surprised and destroyed in the mountains. At a juncture when the life of every Spaniard was of importance, such losses were deeply felt. The schemes which Cortes was meditating rendered them peculiarly afflictive to him. While his enemies, and even many of his own followers, considered the disasters which had befallen him as fatal to the progress of his arms, and imagined that nothing now remained but speedily to abandon a country which he had invaded with unequal force, his mind, as eminent for perseverance as for enterprise, was still bent on accomplishing his original purpose, of subjecting the Mexican empire to the crown of Castile. Severe and unexpected as the check was which he had received, it did not » Cortea Rclat. p. 210. B. Diaz, c. 1.28. Oomara Cron. c. 110. Hetrera, dec. 2. lib, x. c. 13, 13 AMEIiiCA. S41 appear to him a sufficient reason for relinquishing the conquests which he^ had already made, or against resuming his operations with better hopes of success. The colony at Vera Cruz was not only safe, but had remained unmolested. The people of Zempoalla and the adjacent districts had discovered no symptoms of defection. The TlascaJans continued faithful to their alliance. On their martial spirit, easily roused to arms, and in- flamed with implacable hatred of the Mexicans, Cortes depended for powerful aid. ine had still the command of a body of Spaniards, equal m number to that with which he had opened his way into the centre of the empire, and had taken possession of the capital ; so that with the benefit of greater experience, as well as more perfect knowledge of the country, he did not despair of quickly recovering all that he had been deprived of by untoward events. Full of this idea, he courted the Tlascalan chiefs with such attention, and distributed among them so liberally the rich spoils of Otumba, that he was secure of obtaining whatever he should require of the republic. He drew a small supply of ammunition and two or three fieldpieces from his stores at Vera Cruz. He despatched an officer of confidence with four ships of Narvaez's fleet to Hispaniola and Jamaica, to engage adventurers, and to purchase horses, gunpowder, and other military stores. As he knew that it would be vain to attempt the reduction of Mexico, unless he could secure the command of the lake, he gave orders to prepare in the mountains of Tlascala, materials for building twelve brigantines, so as they might be carried thither in pieces ready to be put together, and launched when he stood in need of their service.* But while, with provident attention, he was taking those necessary stepg towards the execution of his measures, an obstacle arose in a quarter where it was least expected, but most formidable. The spirit of discontent and mutiny broke out in his own army. Many of Narvaez's followers were planters rather than soldiers, and had accompanied him to New Spain with sanguine hopes of obtaining settlements, but with little inclination to engage in the hardships and dangers of war. As the same motives had induced them to enter into their new engagements with Cortes, they no sooner became acquainted with the nature of the service, than they bitterly repented of their choice. Such of them as had the good fortune to survive the perilous adventures in which their own imprudence had involved them, happy in having made their escape, trembled at the thoughts of being exposed a second time to similar calamities. As soon as they discovered the intention of Cortes, they began secretly to murmur and cabal, and, waxing gradually more audacious, they, in a body, offered a remonstrance to their general against the imprudence of attacking a powerful empire with his shattered forces, and formally required him to lead them back directly to Cuba. Though Cortes, long practised in the arts of command, employed arguments, entreaties, and presents to convince or to soothe them ; though his own soldiers, animated with the spirit of their leader, warmly seconded his endeavours ; he found their fears too violent and deep rooted to be removed, and the utmost he could effect was to prevail with them to defer their departure for some time, on a promise that he would, at a more proper juncture, dismiss such as should desire it. That the malecontents might have no leisure to brood over the causes of their disaffection, he resolved instantly to call forth his troops into action. He proposed to chastise the people of Tepeaca for the outrage which they had committed ; and as the detachment which they had cut off" happened to be composed mostly of soldiers who had served under Narvaez, their companions, from the desire of vengeance, engaged the more willingly in this war. He took the command in person, [August] accompanied by a * Corlcg Rclat. p. 253. E. Goinara Croi)»c 117. Vor. 1.-31 242 (IISTORV OF {BookV. numerous body of TIascalans, and in the space of a few weeks, after various encounters, with great slaughtei^f the T epeacans, reduced that province to subjection. During several months, while he waited for the supplies of men and ammunition which he expected, and was carrying on his prepara- tions for constructing the brigantines, he kept his troops constantly em- ployed in various expeditions against the adjacent provinces, all of which were conducted with a uniform tenour of success. By these, his men became again accustomed to victory, and resumed their wonted sense of superiority ; the Mexican power was weakened ; the Tlascalan warriors acquired the habit of acting in conjunction with the Spaniards ; and the chiefs of the republic delighted to see their country enriched with the spoils of all the people around them ; and astonished every day with fresh discoveries of the irresistible prowess of their allies, they declined no effort requisite to support them. All those preparatory arrangements, however, though the most prudent and efficacious which the situation of Cortes allowed him to make, would have been of little avail without a reinforcement of Spanish soldiers. Of this he was so deeply sensible, that it was the chief object of his thoughts and wishes ; and yet his only prospect of obtaining it from the return of the officer whom he had sent to the isles to solicit aid, was both distant and uncertain. But what neither his own sagacity nor power could have pro- cured, he owed to a series of fortunate and unforeseen incidents. The governor of Cuba, to whom the success of Narvaez appeared an event of infallible certainty, having sent two small ships after him with new instruc- tions, and a supply of men and militaiy stores, the officer whom Cortes had appointed to command on the coast, artfully decoyed them into the harbour ot Vera Cruz, seized the vessels, and easily persuaded the soldiers to fol- low the standard of a more able leader than him whom they were destined to join.* Soon after, three ships of more considerable force came into the harbour separately. These belonged to an armament fitted out by Fran- cisco de Garay, governor of Jamaica, who, being possessed with tne rage of discovery and conquest which animated every Spaniard settled in America, had long aimed at intruding into some district of New Spain, and dividing with Cortes the glory and gain of annexing that empire to the crown of Castile. They unadvisedly made their attempt on the northern provinces, where the country was poor, and the people fierce and warlike ; and after a cruel succession of disasters, famine compelled them to venture into Vera Cruz, and cast themselves upon the mercy of their countrymen [Oct. 28]. Their fidelity was not proof against the splendid hopes and promises which had seduced other adventurers ; and, as if the spirit of revolt had been contagious in New Spain, they likewise abandoned the master whom they were bound to serve, and enlisted under Cortes. t Nor was it America alone that furnished such unexpected aid ; a ship arrived from Spain, freighted by some private merchants with military stores, in hopes of a profitable market in a country, the fame of whose opulence began to spread over Europe. Cortes eagerly purchased a cargo which to him was invaluable, and the crew, following the general example, joined him at Tlascala.| From those various quarters, the army of Cortes was augmented with a hundred and eighty men, and twenty horses, a reinforcement too incon- siderable to produce any consequence which would have entitled it to have been mentioned in the histoiy of other parts of the globe. But in that of America, where great revolutions weie brought about by causes which seemed to bear no proportion to their effects, such small events rise into im- iwrtance, because they were sufficient to decide with respect to the fate of •B.Dlaz. c. 131. t Cortes Relat. 253. F. B. Diaz, c 183. J Cortes Relet. 253. F. B. Diaz, c. l,!i> Ax^IERlCA. 24a kingdoms. Nor is it the least remarkable instance ot" the singiilar felicity conspicuous in many passages of Cortes's story, that the two persons chiefly instrumental in furnishing him with those seasonable supplies, should be an avowed enemy who aimed at his destruction, and an envious rival who wished to supplant him. The iirst effect of the junction with his new followers was to enable him to dismiss such of Narvaez's soldiers as remained with reluctance in his service. Atler their departure, he still mustered ^ve hundred and iifty infantiy, of which fourscore were armed with muskets or crossbows, forty horsemen, and a train of nine Held-pieces<* At the head of these, accom- panied by ten thousand Tlascalans and other friendly Indians, Cortes began his march towards Mexico, on the twenty-eighth of December, six months after his disastrous retreat from that city.t Nor did he advance to attack an enemy unprepared to receive him. Upon the death of Montezuma, the Mexican chiets, in whom the right of electing the emperor was vested, had instantly raised his brother Quetla- vaca to the throne. His avowed and inveterate enmity to the Spaniards would have been sutficient to gain their suffrages, although he had been less distinguished for courage and capacity. He had an immediate opportunity of showing that he was worthy oi iheir choice, by conducting in person those tierce attacks which compelled the Spaniards to abandon his capital ; and as soon as their retreat afforded him any respite from action, he took measures for preventing their return to Mexico, with prudence equal to the spirit which he had displayed in driving them out of it. As from the vicinity of Tlascala, he could not be unacquainted with the motions and intentions of Cortes, he observed the storm that was gathering, and began early to provide against it. He repaired what the Spaniards had ruined in the city, and strengthened it with such new fortifications as the skill of his subjects was capable of erecting. Besides filling his magazines with the usual weapons of war, he gave directions to make long spears headed with the swords and daggers taken from the Spaniards, in order to annoy the cavalry. He summoned the people in every province of the empire to take arms against their oppressors, and as an encouragement to exert them- selves with vigour, he promised them exemption from all the taxes which his predecessors had imposed.^ But what he laboured with the greatest earnestness was, to deprive the Spaniards of the advantages which they derived from the friendship of the Tlascalans, by endeavouring to persuade that people to renounce all connexion with men who were not only avowed enemies of the gods whom they worshipped, but who would not fail to subject them at last tO the same yoke which they were now inconsiderately lending their aid to impose upon others. These representations, no less striking than well founded, were urged so forcibly by his ambassadors, that it required all the address of Cortes to prevent their making a dangerous impression. § But while Qjuetlavaca was arranging his plan of defence, with a degree of foresight uncommon in an American, his days were cut short by the small-pox. This distemper, which raged at that time in New Spain with fatal malignity, was unknown in that quarter of the globe until it was introduced by the Europeans, and may be reckoned among the greatest calamities brought upon them by their invaders. In his stead the Afexicans raised to the throne Guatimozin, nephew and son-in-law of Montezuma, a young man of such high reputation for abilities and valour, that in this dangerous crisis, his countrymen, with one voice, called him to the supreme command.ll * Cortes Relat. 255. E. t Rolat. 256. A. B. Diaz, c. 1.17. t Cortes Relaf. p. 253. K. Q.i4. .\. B. Diaz, c. 14Vt. <^ B. Diaz, c. ISU. Herreia; dec. 2. lib. x. c. 14. 19, (|U,DiH/, e. 130. 244 HISTORY OF [Book V. 1521.] As soon as Cortes entered the enemies territories, he discovered various preparations to obstruct his progress. But his troops forced their way with little difficulty, and took possession of Tezeuco, the second city of the empire, situated on the banks of the lake about twenty miles from Mexico.* Here he determined to establish his head-quarters, as the most proper station for launching his brigantines, as well as for making his ap- proaches to the capital. In order to render his residence there more secure, lie deposed the cazique, or chief, who was at the head of that community, under pretext of some defect in his title, and substituted in his place a per- son whom a faction of the nobles pointed out as the right heir of that dig- nity. Attached to him by this benefit, the cazique and his adherents served the Spaniards with inviolable fidelity.! As the preparations for constructing the brigantines advanced slowly under the unskilful hands of soldiers and Indians, whom Cortes was obliged to employ in assisting three or four carpenters who happened fortunately to be in his service ; and as he had not yet received the reinforcement which he expected from Hispaniola, he was not in a condition to turn his arms directly against the capital. To have attacked at this period, a city so populous, so well prepared for defence, and in a situation of such peculiar strength, must have exposed his troops to inevitable destruction. Three months elapsed before the materials for the brigantines were finished, and before he heard any thing with respect to the success of the officer whom he had sent to Hispaniola. This, however, was not a season of inaction to Cortes. He attacked successively several of the towns situated around the lake; and though all the Mexican power was exerted to obstruct his operations, he either compelled them to submit to the Spanish crown, or reduced them to ruins. The inhabitants of other towns he endeavoured to conciliate by more gentle means ; and though he could not hold any intercourse with them but by the intervention of interpreters, yet, under all the disadvantages of that tedious and imperfect mode of communication he had acquired such thorough knowledge of the state of the country, as well as of the dispositions of the people, that he conducted his negotiations and intrigues with astonishing dexterity and success. Most of the cities adjacent to Mexico were originally the capitals of small independent states ; and some of them having been but lately annexed to the Mexican empire, still retained the remembrance of their ancient liberty, and bore with im- patience the rigorous yoke of their new masters. Cortes, having early observed symptoms of their disaffection, availed himself of this knowledge to gain their confidence and friendship. By offering with confidence to deliver them from the odious dominion of the Mexicans, and by liberal promises of more indulgent treatment if they would unite with him against their oppressors, he prevailed on the people of several considerable dis- tricts, not only to acknowledge the King of Castile as their sovereign, but to supply the Spanish camp with provisions, and to strengthen his army with auxiliary troops. Guatimozin, on the first appearance of defection among his subjects, exerted himself with vigour to prevent or to punish their revolt; but, in spite of his efforts, the spirit continued to spread. The Spaniards gradually acquired new allies, and with deep concern ht beheld Cortes arming against his empire those very hands which ought to have been active in its defence, and ready to advance against the capital at the head of a numerous body of his own subjects.| While, by those various methods, Cortes was gradually circumscribing: the Mexican power in such a manner that his prospect of overtufning it seemed neither to be uncertain nor remote, all his schemes were well nigh ♦ Villa Senor Theatro Americano, i. 156. t Cortes Rclat. 256, &c. B. Diaz, c. 137. Go- niara Cron. c. 121. Herrera, dec. 3. c. 1. { Cort«;s Relat. 256—200. B. Uiaz, c. 137—140 Ciuiuara Crou. c. 122, 123. fhrrrera, dec. 3. lib. i. c. 1, 2. AMERICA. 246 defeated by a conspiracy no less unexpected than dangerous. The soldiers of Narvaez had never united perfectly with the original companions of Cortes, nor did they enter into his measures with the same cordial zeal. Upon every occasion that required any extraordinary effort of courage or of patience, their spirits were apt to sink ; and now, on a near vievv of what they had to encounter, in attempting to reduce a city so inaccessible as Mexico, and defiended by a numerous army, the resolution even of those among them who had adhered to Cortes when he was deserted by their associates, began to fail. Tlieir fears led them to presumptuous and un- soldierlike discussions concerning the propriety of their general's measures, and the improbability of their success. From these they proceeded to censure and invectives, and at last began to deliberate how they might provide for their own safety, of which they deemed their commander to be totally negligent. Antonio Villefagna, a private soldier, but bold, in- triguing, and strongly attached to Velasquez, artfully fomented this growing spirit of disafi'ection. His quarters became the rendezvous of the male- contents, where, after many consultations, they could discover no method of checking Cortes in his career, but by assassinating him and his most considerable officers, and conferring the command upon some person who would relinquish his wild plans, and adopt measures more consistent with the general security. Despair inspired them with courage. The hour for perpetrating the crime, the persons whom they destined as victims, the officers to succeed them in command, were all named : and the con- spirators signed an association, by which they bound themselves ivith most solemn oaths to mutual fidelity. But on the evening before the ap- pointed day, one of Cortes's ancient followers, who had been seduced into the conspiracy, touched with compunction at the imminent danger of a man whom he had fong been accustomed to revere, or struck with horror at his own treachery, went privately to his general, and revealed to him all that he knew. Cortes, though deeply alarmed, discerried at once what conduct was proper in a situation so critical. He repaired instantly to Villefagna 's quarters, accompanied by some of his most trusty officers. The astonishment and confusion of the man at this unexpected visit anti- cipated the confession of his guilt. Cortes, while his attendants seized the traitor, snatched from his bosom a paper, containing the association, signed by the conspirators. Impatient to know how far the infection ex- tended, he retired to read it, and found there names which filled him vvith surprise and sorrow. But aware how dangerous a strict scrutiny might prove at such a juncture, he confined his judicial inquiries to Villefagna alone. As the proofs of his guilt were manifest, he was condemned after a short trial, and next morning he was seen hanging before the door of the house in which he had lodged. Cortes called his troops together, and having explained to them the atrocious purpose of the conspirators, as well as the justice of the punishment inflicted on Villefagna, he added, with an appearance of satisfaction, that he was entirely ignorant with respect to all the circumstances of this dark transaction, as the traitor, when arrested, had suddenly torn and swallowed a paper which probably contained an account of it, and under the severest tortures possessed such constancy as to con- ceal the names of his accomplices. This artful declaration restored tran- quillity to many a breast that was throbbing, while he spoke, with con- sciousness of guilt and dread of detection ; and by this prudent nioderation, Cortes had the advantage of having discovered, and of being able to observe such of his followers as were disaffected ; while they, flattering themselves that their past crime was unknown, endeavoured to avert any suspicion of it by redoubling their activity and zeal in his service.* Cortes did not allow them leisure to ruminate on what had happened ; • Cortes Rclat, !W3. C. B, Diax, c. 146. Ilcircra, dec. 3, lib. i, e. 1. 246 HISTORY OF [Book V. and as the most effectual means of preventing the return of a mutinous spirit, he determined to call forth his troops immediately to action. For- tunately, a proper occasion for this occurred without his seeming to court it. He received intelligence that the materials for building the brigantines were at length completely finished, and waited only for a body of Spaniards to conduct them to Tezeuco. The command of this convoy, consisting of two hundred foot soldiers, fifteen horsemen, and two tield-pieces, he gave to Sandoval, who, by the vigilance, activity, and courage which he mani- fested on everjf occasion, was growing daily in his confidence, and in the estimation of his fellow-soldiers. The service was no less singular than important ; the beams, the planks, the masts, the cordage, the sails, the ironwork, and all the infinite variety of articles requisite for the construction of thirteen brigantines, were to be carried sixty miles over land, through a mountainous country, by people who were unacquainted with the ministry of domestic animals, or the aid of machines to facilitate any work of labour. The Tlascalans furnished eight thousand Tamenes, an inferior order of men destined for servile tasks, to carry the materials on their shoulders, and appointed fifteen thousand warriors to accompany and defend them. Sandoval made the disposition for their progress with great pro- priety, placing the Tamenes in the centre, one body of warriors in the front, another in the rear, with considerable parties to cover the flanks. To each of these he joined some Spaniards, not only to assist them in danger, but to accustom them to regularity and subordination. A body so numerous, and so much encumbered, advanced leisurely but in excellent order ; and in some places, where it was confined by the woods or mountains, the line of march extended above six miles. Parties of Mexicans frequently ap- peared hovering around them on the high grounds ; but perceiving no prospect of success in attacking an enemy continually on his guard, and prepared to receive them, they did not venture to molest him ; and Sandoval had the glory of conducting safely to Tezeuco, a convoy on which all the future operations of his countrymen depended.* This was followed by another event of no less moment. Four ships arrived at Vera Cruz from Hispaniola, with two hundred soldiers, eighty horses, two battering cannon, and a considerable supply of ammunition and arms.t Elevated with observing that all his preparatory schemes, either for recruiting his own army, or impairing the force of the enemy, had now produced their full effect, Cortes, impatient to begin the siege in form, hastened the launching of the brigantines. To facilitate this, he had em- ployed a vast number of Indians for two months, in deepening the small rivulet which runs by Tezeuco into the lake, and in forming it into a canal near two miles in length [tl9] ; and though the Mexicans, aware of his intentions, as well as of the danger which threatened them, endeavoured frequently to interrupt the labourers, or to burn the brigantines, the work was at last compIeted.| On the twenty-eighth of April, all the Spanish troops, together with the auxiliaiy Indians, were drawn up on the banks of the canal ; and with extraordinary military pomp, rendered more solemn by the celebration of the most sacred rites of religion, the brigantines were launched. As they fell down the canal in order. Father Olmedo blessed them, and gave each its name. Every eye followed them with wonder and hope, until they entered the lake, when they hoisted their sails and bore away before the wind. A general shout of joy was raised ; all admiring that bold inventive genius, which, by means so extraordinajy that their success almost exceeded belie!', had acquired the command of a fleet, without the aid of which Mexico would have continued to set the Spanish power and arms at defiance. § * Cortes R<,-Iat. 2fi0. C. E. B. Diaz, c. HO. t Cortr>s Belat. 259. F. S!62. D. Gomara Croii. C. 129. 1 B, Diaz, c. 140. ft CorteH Rrlat. 2rt«. Herrera. dor. 3. lib. i, c. T). Gomara ('ron. c. 12?i. AMERICA. 247 Cortes determined to attack the city from three different quarters ; from Tepeaca on the north side of the lake, from Tacuba on the west, and from Cuyocan towards the south. Those towns were situated on the principal causeways which led to the capital, and intended for their defence. He appointed Sandoval to command in the first, Pedro de Alvarado in the second, and Christoval de Olid in the third ; allotting to each a numerous body of Indian auxiliaries, together with an equal division of Spaniards, who, by the junction of the troops from Hispaniola, amounting now to eighty-six horsemen, and eight hundred and eighteen foot soldiers ; of whom one hundred and eighteen were armed with muskets or crossbows. The train of artillery consisted of three battering cannon, and fifteen field- pieces.* He reserved for himself, as the station of greatest importance and danger, the conduct of the brigantines, each armed with one of his small cannon, and manned with twenty-five Spaniards. As Alvarado and Olid proceeded towards the posts assigned them [May 10], they broke down the aqueducts which the ingenuity of the Mexicans had erected for conveying water into the capital, and, by the distress to which this reduced the inhabitants, gave a beginning to the calamities which they were destined to suffer.! Alvarado and Olid found the towns of which they were ordered to take possession deserted by their inhabitants, who had fled for safety to the capital, where Guatimozin had collected the chief force of his empire, as there alone he could hope to make a successful stand against the formidable enemies who were approaching to assault him. The first effort of the Mexicans was to destroy the fleet of brigantines, the fatal effects of whose operations they foresaw and dreaded. Though the brigantines, after all the labour and merit of Cortes in forming them, were of inconsiderable bulk, rudely constructed, and manned chiefly with landsmen hardlj possessed of skill enough to conduct them, they must have been objects of terror to a people unacquainted with any navigation but that of their lake, and possessed of no vessel larger than a canoe. Neces- sit}', however, urged Guatimozin to hazard the attack ; and hoping to sup- ply by numbers what he wanted in force, he assembled such a multitude of canoes as covered the face of the lake. They rowed on boldly to the charge, while the brigantines, retarded by a dead calm, could scarcely ad- vance to meet them. But as the enemy drew near, a breeze suddenly sprung up ; in a moment the sails were spread, the brigantines, with the utmost ease, broke through their feeble opponents, overset many canoes, and dissipated the whole armament with such slaughter, as convinced the Mexicans, that the progress of the Europeans in knowledge and arts ren- dered their superiority greater on this new element than they had hitherto found it by land.| From that time Cortes remained master of the lake, and the brigantines not only preserved a communication between the Spaniards in their differ- ent stations, though at considerable distance from each other, but were employed to cover the causeways on each side, and keep off the canoes when they attempted to annoy the troops as they advanced towards the city, Cortes formed the brigantines in three divisions, appointing one to cover each of the stations from which an attack was to be carried on against the city, with orders to second the operations of the oflicer who conimand- ed there. From all the three stations he pushed on the attack against the city with equal vigour ; but in a manner so very different from the conduct of sieges in regular war, that he himself seems afraid it would appear no less improper than singular to persons unacquainted with his situation. 6 Each morning his troops assaulted the barricades which the enemy had erected on the causeways, forced their way over the trenches which they • Cortes Relat 266. C. t Cortes Relat. 267. B. B. Diaz, c. 150, Herrera, dec. 3. lib. i. c. 13. J Cortei Relal. 267. C. B. Diaz, c. 150. JJoinara Cron. c. 131. Herrera. dnc. 3. lib. I. C. 17 \ Cortes Relat. 270. F 2 ;8 11 i S T O R Y OF [Book V. had dug, and tlirough the canals where the bridges were broken down, and endeavoured to penetrate into the heart of the city, in hopes of obtaining some decisive advantage which might force the enemy to surrender, and terminate the war at once ; but wJien the obstinate valour of the Mexicans rendered the efforts of the day ineffectual, the Spaniards retired in the evening to their former quarters Thus their toil and danger were in some measure continually renewed ; the Mexicans repairing in the night what the Spaniards had destroyed through the day, and recovering the posts from which they had driven them. But necessity prescribed this slow and untoward mode ol operation. The number of his troops were so small that Cortes durst not, with a handful of men, attempt to make a lodgment in a city where he might be surrounded and annoyed by such a multitude of enemies. The remembrance of what he had already suffered by the ill judged confidence with which he had ventured into such a dangerous situation, was still fresh in his mind. The Spaniards, exhausted with fatigue, were unable to guard the various posts which they daily gained ; and though their camp was filled with Indian auxiliaries, they durst not devolve this charge upon them, because they were so little accustomed to discipline, that no confidence could be placed in their vigilance. Besides this, Cortes was extremely solicitous to preserve the city as much as pos- sible from being destroyed, both because he destined it to be the capital of his conquests, and wished that it might remain as a monument ol his glory. From all these considerations, he adhered obstinately, for a month after the siege was opened, to the system which he had adopted. The Mexicans, in their own det'ence, displayed valour which was hardly inferior to that with which the Spaniards attacked them. On land, on water, by night and by day, one furious conflict succeeded to another. Several Span- iards were killed, more wounded, and all were ready to sink under the toils of unintermitting service, which were rendered more intolerable by the injuries of the season, the periodical rains being now set in with their usual violence.* Astonished and disconcerted with the length and difficulties of the siege, Cortes determined to make one great effort to get possession of the city, before he relinquished the plan which he had hitherto followed, and had recourse to any other mode of attack. With this view he sent instructions to Alvarado and Sandoval to advance with their divisions to a general as- sault, and took the command in person [July 3] of that posted on the cause- way of Cuyocan. Animated by his presence, and the expectation of some decisive event, the Spaniards pushed forward with irresistible impetuosity. Tliey broke through one barricade after another, forced their way over the ditches and canals, and, having entered the city, gained ground inces- santly in spite of the multitude and ferocity of their opponents. Cortes, though delighted with the rapidity of his progress, did not forget that he might still find it necessary to retreat ; and, in order to secure it, appointed Julien de Alderete, a captain of chief note in the troops which he had re- ceived from Hispaniola, to fill up the canals and gaps in the causeway as the main body advanced. That officer, deeming it inglorious to be thus employed, while his companions were in the heat of action and the career of victory, neglected the important charge committed to him, and hurried on, inconsiderately, to mingle with the combatants. The Mexicans, whose military attention and skill were daily improving, no sooner observed this than they carried an account of it to their monarch. Guatimozin instantly discerned the consequence of the error which the Spaniards had committed, and, with admirable presence of mind, prepared to take advantage of it. He commanded the troops posted in the front to slacken their efforts, in order to allure the Spaniards to push forward, while ♦ B. Diaz, c. 151. AMERICA. 249 he despatched a large body of chosen warriors through different streets, some by land, and others by water, towards the great breach in the cause- way which had been left open. On a signal which he gave, the priests in the principal temple strucK the great drum consecrated to the god of war. No sooner did the Mexicans hear its doleful solemn sound, calculated to inspire them with contempt of death, and enthusiastic ardour, than they rushed upon the enemy with frantic rage. The Spaniards, unable to resist men ui^ed on no less by religious fury than hope of success, began to re- tire, at first leisurely, and with a good countenance ; but as the enemy pressed on, and their own impatience to escape increased, the terror and confusion became so general, that when they arrived at the gap in the causeway, Spaniards and Tlascalans, horsemen and infantry, plunged in promiscuously, while the Mexicans rushed upon them fiercely from eveiy side, their light canoes carrying them through shoals which the brigantines could not approach. In vain did Cortes attempt to stop and rally his flying troops ; fear rendered them regardless of his entreaties or commands. Finding all his endeavours to renew the combat fruitless, his next care was to save some of those who had thrown themselves into the water ; but while thus employed, with more attention to their situation than to his own, six Mexican captains suddenly laid hold of him, and were hurrying him off in triumph ; and though two of his officers rescued him at the expense of their own lives, he received several dangerous wounds before he could break loose. Above sixty Spaniards perished in the rout ; and what ren- dered the disaster more afflicting, forty of these fell alive into the hands of an enemy never known to show mercy to a captive.* The approach of night, though it delivered the dejected Spaniards from the attacks of the enemy, ushered in what was hardly less grievous, the noise of their barbarous triumph, and of the horrid festival with which they celebrated their victory. Every quarter of the city was illuminated ; the great temple shone with such peculiar splendour, that the Spaniards could plainly see the people in motion, and the priests busy in hastening the preparations for the death of the prisoners. Through the gloom, they fancied that they discerned their companions by the whiteness of their skins, as they were stript naked, and compelled to dance before the image of the god to whom they were to be offered. They heard the shrieks of those who were sacrificed, and thought that they could distinguish each unhappy victim by the well known sound of his voice. Imagination added to what they really saw or heard, and augmented its horror. The most unfeeling melted into tears of compassion, and the stoutest heart trembled at the dreadful spectacle which they beheld [120]. Cortes, who, besides all that he felt in common with his soldiers, was oppressed with the additional load of anxious reflections natural to a general on such an unexpected calamity, could not, like them, relieve his mind by giving vent to its anguish. He was obliged to assume an air of tranquil- lity, in order to revive the spirit and hopes of his followers. The junc- ture, indeed, required an extraordinary exertion of fortitude. The Mexi- cans, elated with their victory, sallied out next morning to attack him in his quarters. But they did not rely on the efforts of their own arms alone. They sent the heads of Spaniards whom they had sacrificed to the leading men in the adjacent provinces, and assured them that the god of war, ap- peased by the blood of their invaders, which had been shed so plentifully on his altars, had declared with an audible voice, that in eight days time those hated enemies should be finally destroyed, and peace and prosperity re-established in the empire. A prediction uttered with such confidence, and in terms so void of ambiguity, gained universal credit among a people prone to superstition. • Cortes Relat. p. 273. B. Diaz, c. 152. Gomva Cron. c. 138. Herrera, dec. 3. lib. i. c. 23. Vor,. I.— 32 850 HISTORY OF [BookV. The zeal of the provinces, which had already declared against the Spa- niards, augmented ; and several which had hitherto remained inactive, took arms, with enthusiastic ardour, to execute the decree of the gods. The Indian auxiliaries who had joined Cortes, accustomed to venerate the same deities with the Mexicans, and to receive the responses of their priests with the same implicit faith, abandoned the Spaniards as a race of men devoted to certain destruction. Even the fidelity of the Tlascalans was shaken, and the Spanish troops were left almost alone in their stations. Cortes, finding that he attempted in vain to dispel the superstitious fears of his confederates by argument, took advantage, from the imprudence of those who had framed the prophecy in fixing its accomplishment so near at hand, to give a striking demonstration of its falsity. He suspended all military operations, during the period marked out by the oracle. Under cover of the brigantines, which kept the enemy at a distance, his troops lay in safety, and the fatal term expired without any disaster.* Many of his allies, ashamed of their own credulity, returned to their station. Other tribes, judging that the gods, who had now deceived the Mexicans, had decreed finally to withdraw their protection from them, joined his standard ; and such was the levity of a simple people, moved by every slight impression, that in a short time after such a general defec- tion of his confederates, Cortes saw himself, if we may believe his own account, at the head of a hundred and fifty thousand Indians. Even with such a numerous army, he found it necessary to adopt a new and more wary system of operation. Instead of renewing his attempts to become master of the city at once, by such bold but dangerous efforts of valour as be had already tried, he made his advances gradually, and with every possible precaution against exposing his men to any calamity similar to that which they still bewailed. As the Spaniards pushed forward, the Indians regularly repaired the causeways behind them. As soon as they got possession of any part of the town, the houses were instantly levelled with the ground. Day by day, the Mexicans, forced to retire as their enemies gained ground, were hemmed in within more narrow limits. Guatimozin, though unable to stop the career of the enemy, continued to defend his capital with obstinate resolution, and disputed every inch of ground. The Spaniards not only varied their mode of attack, but, by orders of Cortes, changed the weapons with which they fought. They were again armed with the long Chinantlan spears which they had em- ployed with such success against Narvaez ; and, by the firm array in which this enabled them to range themselves, they repelled, with little danger, the loose assault of the Mexicans : incredible numbers of them fell in the conflicts which they renewed every day.j While war wasted without, famine began to consume them within the city. The Spanish brigantines having the entire command of the lake, rendered it almost impossible to convey to the besieged anj' supply of provisions by water. The immense number of his Indian auxiliaries enabled Cortes to shut up the avenues to the city by land. The stores which Guatimozin had laid up were ex- haustea by the multitudes which had crowded into the capital to defend their sovereign and the temples of their gods. Not only the people, but persons of the highest rank, felt the utmost distresses of famine. What they suffered brought on infectious and mortal distempers, the last calamity that visits besieged cities, and which filled up the measure of their woes.J But, under the pressure of so many and such various evils, the spirit of Guatimozin remained firm and unsubdued. He rejected with scorn every overture of peace from Cortes ; and, disdaining the idea of submitting to the oppressors of his country, determined not to survive its ruin. The Spaniards continued their prepress. At length all the three divisions • B. Diaz, c. 153. Gomara Croii. r. 138. t Cortes Relat. p. 075. C. 276. F. B Diaz, c. 15.T t Cortes Relat. 276. K. 277. F. B. Diaz, 1.55. Goinara Cron. r. 141. AMERICA. 251 penetrated into the great square in the centre of the city, and made a secure lodgment there [July 27]. Three-fourths of the city were now reduced and laid in ruins. The remaining quarter was so closely pressed, that it could not long withstand assailants, who attacked it from their new station with superior advantage, and more assured expectation of success. The Mexican nobles, solicitous to save the life of a monarch whom they revered, prevailed on Guatimozin to retire from a place where resistance was now vain, that he might rouse the more distant provinces of the empire to arms, and maintain there a more successful struggle with the public enemy. In order to facilitate theexecution of this measure, they endeavoured to amuse Cortes with overtures of submission, that, while his attention was employed in adjusting the articles of pacification, Guatimozin might escape unperceived. But they made this attempt upon a leader of greater sagacity and discernment than to be deceived by their arts. Cortes, sus- pecting their intention, and aware of what moment it was to defeat it, appointed Sandoval, the officer on whose vigilance he could most per- fectly rely, to take the command of the brigantines, with strict injunctions to watch every motion of the enemy. Sandoval, attentive to the charge, observing some large canoes crowded with people rowing across the lake with extraordinary rapidity, instantly gave the signal to chase. Garcia Holguin, who commaiided the swiftest sailing brigantine, soon overtook them, and was preparing to fire on the foremost canoe, which seemed to carry some person whom all the rest followed and obeyed. At once the rowers dropped their oars, and all on board, throwing down their arms, conjured him with cries and tears to forbear, as the emperor was there. Holguin eagerly seized his prize ; and Guatimozin, with a dignified com- posure, gave himself up into his hands, requesting only that no insult might be offered to the empress or his children. When conducted to Cortes, he appeared neither with the sullen fierceness of a barbarian, nor with the dejection of a supplicant. " I have done," said he, addressing himself to the Spanish general, " what became a monarch. I have defended my people to the last extremity. Nothing now remains but to die. Take this dagger," laying his hand on one which Cortes wore, " plant it in my breast, and put an end to a life which can no longer be of use."* As soon as the fate of their sovereign was known, the resistance of the Mexicans ceased ; and Cortes took possession of that small part of the capital which yet remained undestroyed [Aug. 13]. Thus terminated the siege of Mexico, the most memorable event in the conquest of America. It continued seventy-five days, hardly one of which passed without some extraordinary effort of one party in the attack, or of the other in the defence of a city, on tli?^ate of which both knew that the fortune of the empire depended. As the^ruggle here was more obstinate, it was like- wise more equal than any b^tg^een the inhabitants of the Old and New Worlds. The great abilities of ^Guatimozin, the number of his troops, the peculiar situation of his capitafj-sp far counterbalanced the superiority of the Spaniards in arms and discipline, that they must have relinquished the enterprise if they had trusted for success to themselves alone. But Mexico was overturned by the jealousy of neighbours who dreaded its power, and by the revolt of subjects impatient to shake off its yoke. By their effectual aid, Cortes was enabled to accomplish what, without such support, he would hardly have ventured to attempt. How much soever this account of the reduction of Mexico may detract, on the one hand, from the marvellous relations of some Spanish writers, by ascribing that to simple and obvious causes which they attribute to the romantic valour of their countrymen, it adds, on the other, to the merit and abilities of Cortes, who, under every disadvantage, acquired such an ascendant over * f'.irtfs Rclat. 070. T?. niaz, c. Ififi. Oomam Tron. r. ^4'i. Urrrorn. dor. 3. lib. ii. r. 7. 252 HISTORY OF [BookV. unknown nations, as to render them instruments towards carrying his schemes into execution [121]. The exultation of the Spaniards, on accomplishing this arduous enter- prise, was at first excessive. But this was quickly damped by the cruel disappointment of those sanguine hopes which had animated them amidst so many hardships and dangers. Instead of the inexhaustible wealth which they expected from becoming masters of Montezuma's treasures, and the ornaments of so many temples, their rapaciousness could only collect an inconsiderable booty amidst ruins and desolation.* Guatimozin, aware of his impending fate, had ordered what remained of the riches amassed by his ancestors, to be thrown into the lake. The Indian auxilia- ries, while the Spaniards were engaged in conflict with the enemy, had carried off the most valuable part of the spoil. The sum to be divided among the conquerors was so small that many of them disdained to accept of the pittance which fell to their share, and all murmured and exclaimed ; some against Cortes and his confidants, whom they suspected of having secretly appropriated to their own use a large portion of the riches which should have been brought into the common stock ; others, against Guati- mozin, whom they accused of obstinacy in refusing to discover the place where he had hiaden his treasure. Arguments, entreaties, and promises were employed in order to soothe them, but with so little effect, that Cortes, from solicitude to check this growing spirit of discontent, gave way to a deed which stains the glory of all his great actions. Without regarding the former dignity of Guati- mozin, or feeling any reverence for those virtues which he nad displayed, he subjected the unhappy monarch, together with his chief favourite, to torture, in order to force from them a discovery of the royal treasures, which it was supposed they had concealed. Guatimozin bore whatever the refined cruelty of his tormentors could inflict, with the invincible for- titude of an American warrior. His fellow-sufferer, overcome by the vio- lence of the anguish, hirned a dejected eye towards his master, which seemed to implore his permission to reveal all that he knew. But the high spirited prince, darting on him a look of authority mingled with scorn, checked his weakness by asking, " Am I now reposing on a bed of flowers ?" Overawed by the reproach, the favourite persevered in his dutiful silence, and expired. Cortes, ashamed of a scene so horrid, rescued the royal victim from the hands of his torturers, and prolonged a life reserved for new indignities and sufferings.! The fate of the capital, as both parties had foreseen, decided that of the empire. The provinces submitted one after another to the conquerors. Small detachments of Spaniards marching through them without interrup- tion, penetrated in different quarters to the great Southern Ocean, which, according to the ideas of Columbus, they imagined would open a short as well as easy passage to the East Indies, and secure to the crown of Castile all the envied wealth of those fertile regions ;| and the active mind of Cortes began already to form schemes for attemptmg this important discovery. § He did not know, that during the progress of his victorious arms in Mexico, the very scheme, of which he began to form some idea, had been undertaken and accomplished. As this is one of the most splendid events in the history of the Spanish discoveries, and has been productive of effects peculiarly interesting to those extensive provinces which Cortes had now subjected to the crown of Castile, the account of its rise and progress merits a particular detail. * The gold and silver according to Cortes, amounted only to 120,000 pesos. Relat. 280. A. a sum much inferior to that which the Spaniards had formerly divided in Mexico. t B. Diaz, c. LIT. Gomara Cron. c. 146. Herrera, dec. 3. lib. ii. c. 8. Torquem, Mon. Fnd. i. 574. t Cortes Rclot. 990. D. 4;c. B. Diaz, c. 157. 7, lf)H. AMERICA. 257 endeavoured to render his conquest a secure and beneficial acquisition to his country. He determined to establish the seat of government in its ancient station, and to raise Mexico again from its ruins ; and having con- ceived high ideas concerning the future grandeur of the state of which he was laying the foundation, he began to rebuild its capital on a plan which hath gradually foriried the most magnificent city in the New World. At the same time, he employed skilful persons to search for mines, in diflferent parts of the country, and opened some which were found to be richer than any which the Spaniards had hitherto discovered in America. He detached his principal officers into the remote provinces, and encouraged them to settle there, not only by bestowing upon them lai^e tracts of land, but by granting them the same dominion over the Indians, and the same right to their service, which the Spaniards had assumed in the islands. It was not, however, without difficulty that the Mexican empire could be entirely reduced into the form of a Spanish colony. Enraged and ren- dered desperate by oppression, the natives often forgot the superiority of their enemies, and ran to arms in defence of their liberties. In every contest, however, the European valour and discipline prevailed. But fatally for the honour of their country, the Spaniards sullied the glory redounding from these repeated victories by their mode of treating the vanquished people. After taking Guatimozin, and becoming masters of his capital, they supposed that the king of Castile entered on possession of all the rights of the captive monarch, and affected to consider eveiy effort of the Mexicans to assert their own independence, as the rebellion of vassals against their sovereign, or the mutiny of slaves against their master. Under the sanction of those ill founded maxims, they violated every right that should be held sacred between hostile nations. After each insurrec- tion, they reduced the common people, in the provinces which they sub- dued, to the most humiliating of all conditions, that of personal servitude. Their chiefs, supposed to be more criminal, were punished with greater severity, and put to death in the most ignominious or the most excruciating mode that the insolence or the cruelty of their conquerors could devise. In almost every district of the 3Iexican empire, the progress of the Spa- nish arms is marked with blood, and with deeds so atrocious as disgrace the enterprising valour that conducted them to success. In the country of Panuco, sixty caziques or leaders, and four hundred nobles, were burned at one time. Nor was this shocking barbarity perpetrated in any sudden sally of rage, or by a commander of inferior note. It was the act of San- doval, an officer whose name is entitled to the second rank in the annals of New Spain, and executed after a solemn consultation with Cortes ; and to complete the horror of the scene, the children and relations of the wretched victims were assembled, and compelled to be spectators of their dying agonies.* It seems hardly possible to exceed in horror this dreadful ex- ample of severity ; but it was followed by another, which affected the Mexicans still more sensibly, as it gave them a most feeling proof of their own degradation, and of the small regard which their haughty masters retained for the ancient dignity and splendour of their state. On a slight suspicion, confirmed by very imperfect evidence, that Guatimozin had formed a scheme to shake off the yoke, and to excite his fonner subjects to take arms, Cortes, without the formality of a trial, ordered the unhappy monarch, together with the caziques of Tezeuco and Tacuba, the two persons of greatest eminence in the empire, to be hanged ; and the Mexicans, with astonishment and horror, beheld this disgraceful punish- ment inflicted upon persons to whom they were accustomed to look up "With reverence hardly inferior to that which they paid to the gods them- selvest [122]. The example of Cortes and his principal officers encou- * CortosRelat. 291. C. Comnra Cron. c. l.W. t ComaraCron. c. iro. B, nia?.. t 177; Herrera, dec. :<. lili. viii. c. it. Vol. 1.-33 25\s HISTORY OF [Book V. raged and justified persons of subordinate rank to venture upon committing greater excesses. Nuno de Guzman, in particular, stained an illustrious name by deeds of peculiar enormity and rigour, in various expeditions which he conducted.* One circumstance, however, saved the Mexicans from further consump- tion, perhaps from as complete as that which had depopulated the islands. The first conquerors did not attempt to search for the precious metals in the bowels of the earth. They were neither sufficiently wealthy to carry on the expensive works which are requisite for opening tnose deep recesses where nature has concealed the veins of gold and silver, nor sufficiently skilful to perform the higenious operations by which those precious metals are separated from their respective ores. They were satisfied with the more simple method, practised by the Indians, of washing the earth car- ried down rivers and torrents from the mountains, and collecting the grains of native metal deposited there. The rich mines of New Spain, which have poured forth their treasures with such profusion on every quarter of the globe, were not discovered for several years after the conquest. t By that time [1552, &c.], a more orderly government and police were intro- duced into the colony ; experience, derived from former errors, had sug- gested many useful and humane regulations for the protection and preser- vation of the Indians ; and though it then became necessary to increase the number of those employed in the mines, and they were engaged in a species of labour more pernicious to the human constitution, they suffered less hardship or diminution than from the ill judged, but less extensive, schemes of the first conquerors. While it was the lot of the Indians to suffer, their new masters seemed not to have derived any considerable wealth from their ill conducted re- searches. According to the usual fate of first settlers in new colonies, it was their lot to encounter danger and to struggle Avith difficulties ; the fruits of their victories and toils were reserved for times of tranquillity, and reaped by successors of great industry, but of inferior merit. The early historians of America abound with accounts of the sufferings and of the poverty of its conquerors.]; In New Spain, their condition was ren- dered more grievous by a peculiar arrangement. When Charles V. ad- vanced Cortes to the government of that country, he at the same time appointed certain commissioners to receive and administer the royal reve- nue there, with independent jurisdiction.^ These men, chosen from infe- rior stations in various departments of puolic business at Madrid, were so much elevated with their promotion, that they thought they were called to act a part of the first consequence. But being accustomed to the minute formalities of office, and having contracted the narrow ideas suited to the sphere in which they had hitherto moved, they were astonished on arriving in Mexico [1524], at the high authority which Cortes exercised, and could not conceive that the mode of administration, in a country re- cently subdued and settled, must be different from what took place in one where tranquillity and regular government had been long established. In their letters, they represented Cortes as an ambitious tyrant, who, having usurped a jurisdiction superior to law, aspired at independence, and, by his exorbitant wealth and extensive influence, niight accomplish those dis- loyal schemes which he apparently meditated.il These insinuations made such deep impression upon the Spanish ministers, most of whom had been formed to business under the jealous and rigid administration of Ferdi- nand, that, unmindful of all Cortes's past services, and regardless of what he was then suffering in conducting that extraordinary expedition, in which he advanced from the lake of Mexico to the western extremities of Hon- * Herrera, dec. 4 and 5. passim. t Ibid. dec. 8. lil>. x. c. 21. t Cortca Relaf. 333. F. R Diaz, c. 309. ^ Herrera, dec. 3. lib. iv. c 3. |1 Ibid. dec. 3. lib. v. v. 14. AMERICA. 259 duras [123], they infused the same suspicions into the minds of their mas- ter, and pievailed on him to order a solemn inquest to be made into his conduct [1525], with powers to the licentiate Ponce de Leon, intrusted with that commission, to seize his person, if he should find that expedient, and send him prisoner to Spain.* The sudden death of Ponce de Leon, a few days after his arrival in New_ Spain, prevented the execution of this commission. But as the object of his appointment was known, the mind of Cortes was deeply wounded \vith this unexpected return for services which far exceeded whatever any subject of Spain had rendered to his sovereign. He endeavoured, how- ever, to maintain his station, and to recover the confidence ot the court. But every person in office, who had arrived from Spain since the conquest, was a spy upon his conduct, and with malicious ingenuity gave an unfa- vourable representation of all his actions. The apprehensions of Charles and his ministers increased. A new commission of inquiry was issued [1528], with more extensive powers, and various precautions were taken in order to prevent or to punish him, if he should be so presumptuous as to attempt what was inconsistent with the fidelity of a subject.! Cortes beheld the approaching crisis of his fortune with all the violent emotions natural to a haughty mind conscious of high desert, and receiving unworthy treatment. But though some of his desperate followers urged him to assert his own rights against his ungrateful country, and with a bold hand to seize that power which the courtiers meanly accused him of coveting,| he re- tained such self command, or was actuated with such sentiments of loyalty, as to reject their dangerous counsels, and to choose the only course in which he could secure his own dignity, without departing from his duty. He resolved not to expose himself to the ignominy of a trial in that coun- try which had been the scene of his triumphs ; but, without waiting for the arrival of his judges, to repair directly to Castile, and commit himself and his cause to the justice and generosity of his sovereign. § Cortes appeared in his nativ^e country with the splendour that suited the conqueror of a mighty kingdom. He brought with him a great part of his wealth, many jewels and ornaments of great value, several curious produc- tions of the country [124], and was attended by some Mexicans of the first rank, as well as by the most considerable of his own officers. His arrival in Spain removed at once every suspicion and fear that had been enter- tained with respect to his intentions. The emperor, having now nothing to apprehend from the designs of Cortes, received him like a person whom consciousness of his own innocence had brought into the presence of his master, and who was entitled, by the eminence of his services, to the highest marks of distinction and respect. The order of St. Jago, the title of Marquis del Valle de Guaxaca, the grant of an ample territory in New Spain, were successively bestowed upon him ; and as his manners were correct and elegant, aUhough he had passed the greater part of his life among rough adventurers, the emperor admitted him to the same familiar intercourse with himself, that was enjoyed by noblemen of the first rank.|| But, amidst those external proofs of regard, symptoms of remaining dis- trust appeared. Though Cortes earnestly solicited to be reinstated in the government of New Spain, Charles, too sagacious to commit such an im- portant charge to a man whom he had once suspected, peremptorily re- fused to invest him again with powers which he might find it impossible to control. Cortes, though dignified with new titles, returned to Mexico [1530], with diminished authority. The military department, with powers to attempt new discoveries, was left in his hands ; but the supremo direction of civil affairs was placed in a board called The Audience of * Herrera, dec. 3. lib. viii. c. 14, l.'>. f Iliid. dec. 3. liii. viii. c. 15. Aoc. 4. lih. ii. c. 1. lil>. iv C. 9, 10. B. Diaz, c. 172. 19(i. Gomarn Cron. o. Ifiti. i B. Diaz, c. 194. ^ lloiTcra, doc. :t. lib. iv. c. S. II IMd. d.'c. 3. lih. iv. c. I.Iib. vj. c. 4. B. Diaz. c. JSlfi. Gomara Croii. c. l'.>3. -26U HISTORY OF [Book V. New Spain. At a subsequent period, when, upon the increase of the col(Miy, the exertion of authority more united and extensive became neces- sary, Antonio de Mendoza, a nobleman of high rank, was sent thither as Viceroy, to take the government into his hands. This division of power in New Spain proved, as was unavoidable, the source of perpetual dissension, which imbittered the life of Cortes, and thwarted all his schemes. As he had now no opportunity to display his active talents but in attempting new discoveries, he formed various schemes for that purpose, all of which bear impressions of a genius that delighted in what was bold and splendid. He early entertained an idea, that, either by steering through the Gulf of Florida along the east coast of North America, some strait would be found that communicated with the western ocean ; or that, by examining the isthmus of Darien, some passage would be discovered between the North and South Seas.* But having been dis- appointed in his expectations with respect to both, he now confined his views to such voyages of discovery as he could make from the ports of New Spain in the South Sea. There he fitted out successively several small squadrons, which either perished in the attempt, or returned without making any discovery of moment. Cortes, weary of intrusting the con- duct of his operations to others, took the command of a new armament in person [1536] ; and, after enduring incredible hardships, and encountering dangers of every species, he discovered the large peninsula of California, and surveyed the greater part of the gulf which separates it from New Spain. The discovery of a country of such extent would have reflected credit on a common adventurer ; but it could add little new honour to the name of Cortes, and was far from satisfying the sanguine expectations which he had Ibrmed.t Disgusted with ill success, to which he had not been accustomed, and weary of contesting with adversaries to whom he considered it as a disgrace to be opposed, he once more sought for redress in his native country [1540]. But his reception there was very different from that which gratitude, and even decency, ought to have secured for him. The merit of his ancient exploits was already, in a great measure, forgotten or eclipsed by the fame of recent and more valuable conquests in another quarter of America. No service of moment was now expected from a man of declining years, and who began to be unfortunate. The emperor behaved to him with cold civility ; his ministers treated hina sometimes with neglect, sometimes with insolence. His grievances received no redress ; his claims were ui^ed without effect ; and after several years spent in fruitless application to ministers and judges, an occupation the most irksome and mortifying to a man of high spirit, who had moved in a sphere where he was more ac- customed to command than to solicit, Cortes ended his days on the second of December, one thousand five hundred and forty-seven, in the sixty- second year of his age. His fate was the same with that of all the per- sons who distinguished themselves in the discovery or conquest of the New World. Envied by his contemporaries, and ill requited by the court which he served, he has been admired and celebrated by succeeding ages. Which has formed the most just estimate of his character, an impartial consideration of his actions must determine. * Cortes Relat. Ram. iii. 294. B. t Hcirera, dec. 5. lib. viii. c. 9, 10. dec 8. lib. Vl. C \i Vo- negaa Hist, of Calilbrn. i. 125. Lorenvdana Ilist. p. 322, &c. AMERICA. ^si BOOK Yl. 1323.] From the time that Nugnez de Balboa discovered the great Southern Ocean, and received the first obscure hints concerning the opulent countries with which it might open a communication, the wishes and schemes of every enterprising person hi the colonies of Darien and Pa- nama were turned towards the wealth of those unknown regions. In an age when the spirit of adventure was so ardent and vigorous, that large fortunes were wasted, and the most alarming dangers braved, in pursuit of discoveries merely possible, the faintest ray of hope was followed with an eager expectation, and the slightest information was sutficient to inspire such perfect confidence as conducted men to the most arduous under- takings [125]. Accordingly, several armaments were fitted out in order to explore and take possession of the countries to the east of Panama, but under the con- duct of leaders whose talents and resources were unequal to the attempt.* As the excursions of those adventurers did not extend beyond the limits of the province to which the Spaniards have given the name of Tierra Firme, a mountainous region covered with woods, thinly inhabited, and extremely unhealthy, they returned with dismal accounts concerning the distresses to vvhich they had been exposed, and the unpromising aspect of the places which they had visited. Damped by these tidings, the rage for discovery in that direction abated ; and it became the general opinion that Balboa had founded visionary hopes, on the tale of an ignorant Indian, ill understood, or calculated to deceive. 1524.] But there were three persons settled in Panama, on whom the circumstances which deterred others made so little impression, that, at the very moment when all considered Balboa's expectations of discovering a rich country, by steering towards the east, as chimerical, they resolved to attempt the execution of his scheme. The names of those extraordinary men were Francisco Pizarro, Diego de Almagro, and Hernando Luque. Pizarro was the natural son of a gentleman of an honourable family by a very low woman, and, according to the cruel fate which often attends the offspring of unlawful lo\fe, had been so totally neglected in his youth by the author of his birth, that he seems to have destined him never to rise beyond the condition of his mother. In consequence of this ungenerous idea, he set him, when bordering on manhood, to keep hogs. But the aspiring mind of young Pizarro disdaining that ignoble occupation, he abruptly abandoned his charge, enlisted as a soldier, and after serving some years in Italy, embarked for America, which, by opening such a boundless range to active talents, allured every adventurer whose fortune was not equal to his amlaitious thoughts. There Pizarro early distinguished himself. With a temper of mind no less daring than the constitution of his body was robust, he was foremost in every danger, patient under the greatest hardships, and unsubdued by any fatigue. Though so illiterate that he could not even read, he was soon considered as a man formed to command. Every operation committed to his conduct proved successful, as, by a happy but rare conjunction, he united perseverance with ardour, and was as cautious in executing as he was bold in forming his plans. By engaging early in active life, without any resource but his own talents and industry, and by depending on himself alone in his struggles to emerge from obscurity, ne acquired such a thorough knowledge o? affairs, and of * Calancha Coronica, p. 100. 262 HISTORY OF [Book VI. men, that he was fitted to assume a superior part in conducting the former, and in governing the latter.* Almagro had as little to boast of his descent as Pizarro. The one was a bastard, the other a foundling. Bred, like his companion, in the camp, he yielded not to him in any of the soldierly qualities of intrepid valour, indefatigable activity, or insurmountable constancy in enduring the hard- ships inseparable from military service in the New World. But in Almagro these virtues were accompanied with the openness, generosity, and candour, natural to men whose profession is ;yms ; in Pizarro, they were united with the address, the craft, and the dissimulation of a politician, with the art of concealing his own purposes, and with sagacity to penetrate into those of other men. Hernando de Luque was an ecclesiastic, who acted both as priest and schoolmaster at Panama, and, by means which the contemporary writers have not described, had amassed riches that inspired him with thoughts of rising to greater eminence. Such were the men destined to overturn one of the most extensive em- pires on the face of the earth. Their confederacy for this purpose was authorized by Pedrarias, the governor of Panama. Each engaged to employ his whole fortune in the adventure. Pizarro, the least wealthy of the three, as he could not throw so large a sum as his associates into the common stock, engaged to take the department of greatest fatigue and danger, and to command in person the armament wnich was to go first upon discovery. Almagro offered to conduct the supplies of provisions and reinforcements of troops, of which Pizarro might stand in need. Luque was to remain at Panama to negotiate with the governor, and superintend whatever was carrying on for the general interest. As the spirit of enthusiasm imiformly accompanied that of adventure in the New World, and by that strange union both acquired an increase of force, this confederacy, iormed by ambition and avarice, was confirmed by the most solemn act of religion. Luque celebrated mass, divided a consecrated host into three, and, reserving one part to himself, gave the other two to his associates, of which they partook ; and thus, in the name of the Prince of Peace, ratified a contract of which plunder and bloodshed were the objects.! The attempt was begun with a force more suited to the humble con- dition of the three associates than to the greatness of the enterprise in Avhich they were engaged. Pizarro set sail fronf Panama [Nov. 14], with a single vessel of small burden and a hundred and twelve men. "But in that age, so little were the Spanish acquainted with the peculiarities of the climate in America, that the time which Pizarro chose for his departure was the most improper in the whole year ; the periodical winds, which were then set in, being directly adverse to the course which he proposed to steer.J _ After beating about for seventy days, with much danger and incessant fatigue, Pizarro's progress towards the south-east was not greater than what a skilful navigator will now make in as many hours. He touched at several places on the coast of Tierra Firme, but found every where the same uninviting country which former adventurers had described ; the low grounds converted into swamps by an overflowing of rivers ; the higher, covered with impervious woods ; lew inhabitants, and those fierce and hostile. Famine, fatigue, frequent rencounters with the natives, and, above all, the distetnpers of a moist, sultry climate, combined in wasting his slender band of followers. [1525.J The undaunted resolution of their leader continued, however, for some time, to sustain their spirits, although no sign had yet appeared of discovering those golden regions to which he • Ilerrpra, iloc. 1 & ?. passim, dec. 4. lib. vi. c. 107. Gomar.i Hi-Jt. c. 144. Zar.itp, lih. iv. c. 9. r Ilerrera. dec. J. lib. vi. c. Ki. /Hnite, lib. i.r.\. t Ibid. ,\-c. 4. lib. ii. c. 8, Xrrnz, p. 170. AMERICA. 263 had promised to conduct them. At length he was obliged to abandon that inhospitable coast, and retire to Chuchania, opposite to the pearl islands, where he hoped to receive a supply of provisions and troops from Panama. But Almagro, having sailed from that port with seventy men, stood directly towards that part of the continent where he hoped to meet with his associates. Not finding him there, he landed his soldiers, who, in searching for their companions, underwent the same distresses, and were exposed to the same dangers, which had driven them out of the country'. Repulsed at length by the Indians in a sharp conflict, in which their leader lost one of his eyes by the wound of an arrow, they likewise were com- pelled to re-embark. Chance led them to the place of Pizarro's retreat, where they found some consolation in recounting to each other their ad- ventures, and comparing their sufferings. As Almagro had advanced as far as the river St. Juan [June 24], in the province of Popayan, where both the country and inhabitants appeared with a more promising aspect, that dawn of better fortune was sufficient to determine such sanguine pro- jectors not to abandon their scheme, notwithstanding all that they had suffered in prosecuting it* [126]. 1326.] Almagro repaired to Panama in hopes of recruiting their shat- tered troops. But what he and Pizarro had suffered gave his countrymen such an unfavourable idea of the service, that it was with difficulty he could levy fourscore men.f Feeble as this reinforcement was, Almagro took the command of it, and, having joined Pizarro, they did not hesitate about resuming their operations. After a long series of disasters and disappoint- ments, not inferior to those which they had already experienced, part of the armament reached the Bay of St. Matthew, on the coast of Quito, and landing at Tacamez, to the south of the river of Emeraulds, they beheld a country more champaign and fertile than any they had yet discovered in the Southern Ocean, the natives clad in garments of woollen or cotton stuflF, and adorned with several trinkets of gold and silver. But notwithstanding those favourable appearances, magnified beyond the truth, both by the vanity of the persons who brought the report from Taca- mez, and by the fond imagination of those who listened to them, Pizan'o and Almagro durst not venture to invade a country so populous with a handful of men enfeebled by fatigue and diseases. They retired to the small island of Gallo, where Pizarro remained with part of the troops, and his associate returned to Panama, in hopes of bringing such a reinforcement as might enable them to take possession of the opulent territories whose existence seemed to be no longer doubtful.J But some of the adventurers, less enterprising, or less hardy, than their leaders, having secretly conveyed lamentable accounts of their sufferings and losses to their friends at Panama, Almagro met with an unfavourable reception from Pedro de los Rios, who had succeeded Pedrarias in the government of that settlement. After weighing the matter with that cold economical prudence which appears the first of all virtues to persons whose limited faculties are incapable of conceiving or executing great designs, he concluded an expedition, attended with such certain waste of men, to be so detrimental to an infant and feeble colony, that he not only prohibited the raising of new levies, but despatched a vessel to bring home Pizarro and liis companions from the island of Gallo. Almagro and Luque, though deeply affected with those measures, which they could not prevent, and durst not oppose, found means of communicating their sentiments privately to Pizarro, and exhorted him not to relinquish an enterprise that was the foundation of all their hopes, and the only means of re-establishing their reputation and fortune, which were both on the decline. Pizarro's mind, * Hcrrera, dec. 3. lib. viii. c. 11, K. ♦ Zaiaf, lib. i. c. 1. J Xerrz, 181. Herrera, dec- •Xlilt viii. c. r.l 264 HISTORY OF [Book VI. bent with inflexible obstinacy on all its purposes, needed no incentive to persist in the scheme. He peremptorily retused to obey the governor of Panama's orders, and employed all his address and eloquence in persuading his men not to abandon him. But the incredible calamities to which they had been exposed were still so recent in their memories, and the thoughts of revisiting their families and friends, after a long absence, rushed with such joy into their minds, that when Pizarro drew a line upon the sand with nis sword, permitting such as wished to return home to pass over it, only thirteen of all the daring veterans in his service had resolution to remain with their commander.* This small but determined band, whose names the Spanish historians record with deserved praise, as the persons to whose persevering fortitude their country is indebted for the most valuable of all its American posses- sions, fixed their residence in the island of Gorgona. This, as it was further removed from the coast than Gallo, and uninhabited, they considered as a more secure retreat, where, unmolested, they might wait for supplies from Panama, which they trusted that the activity of their associates would be able to procure. Almagro and Luque were not inattentive or cold solicitors, and their incessant importunity was seconded by the general voice of the colony, which exclaimed loudly against the infamy of exposing brave men, engaged in the public service, and chargeable with no error but what flowed from an excess of zeal and courage, to perish like the most odious criminals in a desert island. Overcome by those entreaties and expostulations, the governor at last consented to send a small vessel to their relief But that he might not seem to encourage Pizarro to any new enterprise, he would n»t permit one landman to embark on board oi it. By this time, Pizarro and his companions had remained five months in an island infamous for the most unhealthy climate in that region of Ameri- ca [l27l. During all this period, their eyes were turned towards Panama, in hopes 01 succour from their countrymen ; but worn out at length with truit- less expectations, and dispirited with suffering hardships of wnich they saw no end, they, in despair, came to a resolution of committing themselves to the ocean on a float, rather than continue in that detestable abode. But, on the arrival of the vessel from Panama, they were transported with such joy that all their sufferings were forgotten. Their hopes revived ; and, with a rapid transition not unnatural among men accustomed by their mode of life to sudden vicissitudes of fortune, high confidence succeeding to extreme dejection, Pizarro easily induced not only his own followers, but the crew of the vessel from Panama, to resume his former scheme with fresh ardour. Instead of returning to Panama, they stood towards the south-east, and, more fortunate in this than in any of their past efforts, they, on the twentieth day after their departure from Gorgona, discovered the coast of Peru. After touching at several villages near the shore, which they found to be nowise inviting, they landed at Tumbez, a place of some note about three degrees south of the line, distinguished for its stately tenvple, and a palace of the Incas or sovereigns of the country.! There the Spaniards feasted their eyes with the first view of the opulence and civilization of the Peru- vian empire. They beheld a country fully peopled, and cultivated with an appearance of regular industry ; the natives decently clothed, and pos- sessed of ingenuity so far surpassing the other inhabitants of the New World as to have the use of tame domestic animals. But what chiefly attracted their notice was such a show of gold and silver, not only in the ornaments of their persons and temples, but in several vessels and utensils for common use, formed of those precious metals, as left no room to doubt that they abounded with profusion in the country. Pizarro and his companions Hoiiora doc. X lib. x. c '2, :!. 7,;iiati\ lib. i. r. 2. Xcrez. ]81. Goiiiara Hist. c. 109. < t'a- iaticlia, |i IlKi AMERICA. 265 seemed now to have attained to the completion of their most sanguine hopes, and fancied that all their wishes and dreams of rich domains, and inex- haustible treasures, would soon be realized. But with the slender force then under his command, Pizarro could only view the rich country of which he hoped hereafter to obtain possession. He ranged, however, for some time along the coast, maintaining eveiy where a peaceable intercourse with the natives, no less astonished at their new visitants than the Spaniards were with the uniform appearance of opu- lence and cultivation which they beheld. [1527,] Having explored the country as far as requisite to ascertain the importance of the discovery, Pizarro procured from the inhabitants some of their Llamas or tame cattle, to which the Spaniards gave the name of sheep, some vessels of gold and silver, as well as some specimens of their other works of ingenuity, and two young men, whom he proposed to instruct in the Castilian language, that they might serve as interpreters in the expedition which he meditated. With these he arrived at Panama, towards the close of the third year from the time of his departure thence.* No adventurer of the age suflfered hard- ships or encountered dangers which equal those to which he was exposed during this long period. The patience with which he endured the one, and the fortitude with which he surmounted the other, exceed whatever is recorded in the history of the New World, where so many romantic dis- plays of those virtues occur. 1528.] Neither the splendid relation that Pizarro gave of the incredible opulence of the country which he had discovered, nor his bitter complaints on account of that unreasonable recall of his forces, which had put it out of his power to attempt making any settlement there, could move the governor of Panama to swerve from his former plan of conduct. He still contended, that the colony was not in a condition to invade such a mighty empire, and refused to authorize an expedition which he foresaw would be so alluring that it might ruin the province in which he presided, by an effort beyond its strength. His coldness, however, did not in any degree abate the ardour of the three associates ; but they perceived that they could not carry their scheme into execution without the countenance of superior authority, and must solicit their sovereign to grant that permission which they could not extort from his delegate. With this view, after adjusting among themselves that Pizarro should claim the station of governor, Alniagro that of lieutenant- governor, and Luque the dignity of bishop in the country which they pro- posed to conquer, they sent Pizarro as their agent to Spain, though their fortunes were now so much exhausted by the repeated efforts which they had made, that they found some difficulty in borrowing the small sum requisite towards equipping him for the voyage.j Pizarro lost no time in repairing to court ; and new as the scene might be to him, he appeared before the emperor with the unembarrassed dignity of a man conscious of what his services merited ; and he conducted his negotiations with an insinuating dexterity of address, which could not have been expected either from his education or former habits of life. His feeling description of his own sufferings, and his pompous account of the country which he had discovered, confirmed by the specimens of its pro- ductions which he exhibited, made such an impression both on Charles and his ministers, that they not only approved of the intended expedition, but seemed to be interested in the success of its leader. Presuming on those dispositions in his favour, Pizarro paid little attention to the interest of his associates. As the pretensions of Lu(]ue did not interfere with his own, he obtained for him the ecclesiastical dignity to which he aspired. For Al- magro he claimed only the command of the fortress which should be erected * Hrrrrra, dnc X lib. x. c. 3— ft. doc. 4. lib. ii. c. 7, 8. Vega, 2. lib. i. c. 10—14. Zarate, lib. i. c 2. Bfiizi) Hist. N'ovi Orbin, lib. iii. r.. 1. t Herrcra, di-c. 4. lib. iil, c. 1. Wga. 2. lib, i. c. 14. Vo7,. ].—?A 266 HISTORY OF [Book VI. at Tumbez. To himself he secured whatever his boundless ambition could desire. He was appointed [July 26], governor, captain-general, and adelantado of all the country which he had discovered, and hoped to con- quer, with supreme authority, civil as well as military ; and with full right to all the privileges and einoluments usually granted to adventurers in the New World. His jurisdiction was declared to extend two hundred leagues along the coast to the south of the river St. Jago ; to be independent of the governor of Panama ; and he had power to nominate all the officers who were to serve under him. In return for those concessions, which cost the court of Spain nothirtg, as the enjoyment of them depended upon the success of Pizarro's own efforts, he engaged to raise two hundred and fifty men, and to provide the ships, arms, and warlike stores requisite towards sub- jecting to the crown of Castile the country of which the government was allotted him. 1529.] Inconsiderable as the' body of men was which Pizarro had un- dertaken to raise, his funds and credit were so low that he could hardly complete half the number ; and after obtaining his patents from the crown, he was obliged to steal privately out of the port of Seville, in order to elude the scrutiny of the officers, who had it in charge to examine whether he had fulfilled the stipulations in his contract.* Before his departure, however, he received some supply of money from Cortes, who having returned to Spain about this time, was willing to contribute his aid towards enabling an ancient companion, with whose talents and courage he was well acquainted, to begin a career of glory similar to that which he himself had finished.! He landed at Nombre de Dios, and marched across the isthmus to Panama, accompanied by his three brothers Ferdinand. Juan, and Gon- zalo, of whom the first was born in lawful wedlock, the two latter, like himself, were of illegitimate birth, and by Francisco de Alcantara, his mother's brother. They were all in the prime of life, and of such abilities and courage as fitted them to take a distinguished part in his subsequent transactions. 1530.] On his arrival at Panama, Pizarro found Almagro so much exas- perated at the manner in which he had conducted his negotiation, that he not only refused to act any longer in concert with a man by whose perfidy he had been excluded from the power and honours to which he had a just claim, but laboured to form a new association, in order to thwart or to rival his former confederate in his discoveries. Pizarro, however, had more wisdom and address than to suffer a rupture so fatal to all his schemes, to become irreparable. By offering voluntarily to relinquish the office of adelantado, and promising to concur in soliciting that title, with an inde- pendent government for Almagro, he gradually mitigated the rage of an open-hearted soldier, which had been violent, but was not implacable. Luque, highly satisfied with having been successful in all his own preten- sions, cordially seconded Pizarro s endeavours. A reconciliation was effected, and the confederacy renewed on its original terms, that the enter- prise should be carried on at the common expense of the associates, and the profits accruing from it should be equally divided among them.| Even after their reunion, and the utmost efforts of their interest, three small vessels, with a hundred and eighty soldiers, thirty-six of whom were horsemen, composed the armament which they were able to fit out. But the astonishing progress of the Spaniards in America had inspired them with such ideas of their own superiority, that Pizarro did not hesitate to sail with this contemptible force, [Feb. 1531] to invade a great empire. Almagro was left at Panama, as formerly, to follow hira with what rein- • Herrera, dec. 4. lib. vii. c. 9. t Ibid. lib. vii. c. 10. t lb"', d^c- 4. lib. vii. c. 9. Zaral lib. L c. 3. Vega, 9. lih. i. r. 11. AMERICA. 267 lorceinent ot' men lie should be able to muster. As the season tor embarking was properly chosen, and the course of navigation between Panama and Peru was now better known, Pizarro completed the voyage in thirteen days ; though by the force of the winds and currents he was carried above a hundred leagues to the north of Tumbez, the place of his destination, and obliged to land his troops in the bay of Saint lAIatthew. Without losing a moment, he began to advance towards the south, taking care, how- ever, not to depart larTrom the seashore, both that he might easily effect a junction with the supplies which he expected trom Panama, and secure a retreat in case of any disaster, by keeping as near as possible to his ships. But as the country in several parts on the coast of Peru is barren, unhealth- ful, and thinly pecipled ; as the Spaniards had to pass all the rivers near their mouth, where the body of water is greatest ; and as the imprudence of Pizarro, in attacking the natives whence should have studied to gain their confidence, had forced them to abandon their habitations ; famine, fatigue, and diseases of various kinds brought upon him and his followers, calamities hardly inferior to those which they had endured in their former expedition. What they now experienced corresponded so ill with the alluring description of the country given by Pizarro, that many began to reproach him, and every soldier must have become cold to the service, if even in this unfertile region of Peru, they had not met with some appear- ances of wealth and cultivation, which seemed to justify the report of their leader. At length they reached the province of Coaq.ue [April 14] ; and having surprised the principal settlement of the natives, they seized their vessels and ornaments of gold and silver, to the amount of thirty thousand pesos, with other booty of such value as dispelled all their doubts, atid inspired the most desponding with sanguine hopes.* Pizarro himself was so much delighted with this rich spoil, which he considered as the first fruits of a land abounding with treasure, that he instantly despatched one of his ships to Panama with a lai^e remittance to Almagro ; and another to Nicaragua with a considerable sum to several persons of influence in that province, in hopes of alluring adventurers by this early display of the wealth which he had acquired. Meanwhile, he continued his march along the coast, and disdaining to employ any means of reducing the natives but force, he attacked them with such violence in their scattered habitations, as compelled them either to retire into the inte- rior country, or to submit to his yoke. This sudden appearance ot invaders, whose aspect and manners were so strange, and whose power seemed to be so irresistible, made the same dreadful impression as in other parts of America. Pizarro hardly met with resistance until he attacked the island of Puna in the bay of Guayaquil. As that was better peopled than the country through which he had passed, and its inhabitants fiercer and less civilized than those of the continent, they defended themselves with such obstinate valour, that Pizarro spent six months in reducing them to sub- jection. From Puna he proceeded to Tumbez, where the distempers which raged among his men compelled him to remain for three months.! While he was thus employed, he began to reap ad\antage from his attention to spread the lame of his first success to Coaque. Two dif- ferent detachments arrived from Nicaragua [1532], which, though neither exceeded thirty men, he considered as a reinforcement of great conseniience to his feeble band, especially as the one was under the command o( Sebas- tian Benalcazar, and the other of Hernando Soto, oificers not inferior in inerit and reputation to any who had served in America. From Tumbez lie proceeded to the river riura [May 16], and in an advantageous station j)ear the mouth of it he established the first Spanish colony in Peru ; to \vhich he gave the name of St. Michael. * Herrcra, di'c. 4. lib. vii. c. 9. lib. ii. c. 1. Xerez, 182. t P- Sanclio ap Ramus, iii. p. 371. F. Ilfrrcra, d-.c. 4. lib vii. c. IS. lib. i\. c. 1. Zarate, lib. ii. c. 0. 3. Xurez. p. 182, &c. 26b HISTORY OF [Book VI. As Pizarro continued to advance towards the centre of the Peruvian empire, he gradually received more full information concerning its extent and policy, as well as the situation of its aflfairs at that juncture. Without some knowledge of these, he could not have conducted his operations with propriety ; and without a suitable attention to them, it is impossible to account for the progress which the Spaniards had already made, or to unfold the causes of their subsequent success. At the time when the Spaniards invaded Peru, the dominions of its sovereigns extended in length, from north to south, above fifteen hundred miles along the Pacific Ocean. Its breadth, from east to west, was much less considerable ; being uniformly bounded by the vast ridge of the Andes, stretching trom its one extremity to the other. Peru, like the rest of the New World, was originally possessed by small independent tribes, differing from each other in manners, and in their forms of rude policy. All, how- ever, were so little civilized, that, if the traditions concerning their mode of life, preserved among their descendants, deserve credit, they must be classed among the most unimproved savages of America. Strangers to every species of cultivation or regular industry, without any fixed residence, and unacquainted with those sentiments and obligations which form the first bonds of social union, they are said to have roamed about naked in the forests, with which the country was then covered, more like wild beasts than like men. After they had struggled for several ages with the hardships and calamities which are inevitable in such a state, and when no circumstance seemed to indicate the approach of any uncommon effort towards improvement, we are told that there appeared, on the banks of the lake Titiaca, a man and woman of majestic form, clothed in decent garments. They declared themselves to be children of the Sun, sent by their beneficent parent, who beheld with pity the miseries of the human race, to instruct and to reclaim them. At their persuasion, enforced by reverence for the divinity in whose name they were supposed to speak, several of the dispersed savages united together, and, receiving their com- mands as heavenly injunctions, followed them to Cuzco, where they settled, and began to lay the tbundations of a city. Manco Capac and Mama Ocollo, for such were the names of those extraordinary personages, having thus collected some wandering tribes, formed that social union which, by multiplying the desires and uniting the efforts of the human species, excites industry and leads to improvement. Manco Capac instructed the men in agriculture, and other useful arts. Mama Ocollo taught the women to spin and to weave. By the labour of the one sex, subsistence became less precarious ; by that of the other, life was rendered more comfortable. After securing the objects of first necessity in an infant state, by providing food, raiment, and habitations for the rude people of whom he tooK chaise, Manco Capac turned his attention towards introducing such laws and policy as might perpetuate their happi- ness. By his institutions, which shall be more particularly explained hereafter, the various relations in private life were established, and the duties resulting from them prescribed with such propriety, as gradually formed a barbarous people to decency of manners. In public adminis- tration, the functions of persons in authority were so precisely defined, and the subordination of those under their jurisdiction maintained with such a steady hand, that the society in which he presided soon assumed the aspect of a regular and well governed state. Thus, according to the Indian tradition, was founded the empire of the Incas or Lords of Peru. At first its extent was small. The territory ol Manco Capac did not reach above eight leagues from Cuzco. But within its narrow precincts he exercised absolute and uncontrolled authority. His successors, as their dominions extended, arrc^ated a similar jurisdiclion AMERICA. 269 over the new subjects which they acquired ; the despotism of Asia was not more complete. The Incas were not only obeyed as monarchs, but revered as divinities. Their blood was held to be sacred, and, by prohi- biting: intermarriages with the people, was never contaminated by mixing with that of any other race. The family, thus separated from the rest of the nation, was distinguished by peculiarities in dress and ornaments, which it was unlawful for others to assume. The monarch himself appeared with ensigns of royalty reserved for him alone ; and received from his subjects marks of obsequious homage and respect which approached almost to adoration. But, among the Peruvians, this unbounded power of their monarch seems to have been uniformly accompanied with attention to the good of their subjects. It was not the rage of conquest, if we may believe the accounts of their countrymen, that prompted the Incas to extend their dominions, but the desire of diffusing the blessings of civilization, and the knowledge of the arts which they possessed, among the barbarous people whom they reduced. During a succession of twelve monarchs, it is said that not one deviated from this beneficent character.* When the Spaniards first visited the coast of Peru, in the year one thousand five hundred and twenty-six, Huana Capac, the twelfth monarch from the founder of the state, was seated on the throne. He is represented as a prince distinguished not only for the pacific virtues peculiar to the race, but eminent for his martial talents. By his victorious arms the kingdom of Qjuito was subjected, a conquest of such extent and importance as almost doubled the power of the Peruvian empire. He was fond of residing in the capital of that valuable province which he had added to his dominions ; and notwithstanding the ancient and fundamental law of the monarchy against polluting the royal blood by any foreign alliance, he married the daughter of the vanquished monarch of Quito. She bore him a son named Atahualpa, whom, on his death at Qjuito, which seems to have happened about the year one thousand five hundred and twenty-nine, he appointed his successor in that kingdom, leaving the rest of his dominions to Huascar, his eldest son by another of the royal race. Greatly as the Peruvians revered the memory of a monarch who had reigned with greater reputation and splendour than any of his predecessors, the destination of Huana Capac concerning the succession appeared so repugnant to a maxim coeval with the empire, and founded on authority deemed sacred, that it was no sooner known at Cuzco than it excited general disgust. Encouraged by those sen- timents of his subjects, Huascar required his brother to renounce the govern- ment of Quito, and to acknowledge him as his lawful superior. But it had been the first care of Atahualpa to gain a large body of troops which had accompanied his father to Quito. These were the flower of the Peruvian warriors, to whose valour Huana Capac had been indebted tor all his vic- tories. Relying on their support, Atahualpa first eluded his brothers demand, and then marched against him in hostile array. Thus the ambition of two young men, the title of the one founded on ancient usage, and that of the other asserted by the veteran troops, involved Peru in a civil war, a calamity to which, under a succession of virtuous princes, it had hitherto been a stranger. In such a contest the issue was obvious. The force of arms triumphed over the authority of laws. Atahualpa remained victorious, and made a cruel use of his victory. Con- scious of the defect in his own title to the crown, he attempted to exter- minate the royal race, by putting to death all the children of the Sun descended from Manco Capac, whom he could seize either by force or .stratagem. From a political motive, the life of his unfortunate rival Huascar, who had been taken prisoner in a battle which decided the fate • Cieca de Leon, Chron, c 44. Henera, dec. 3. lib. x. c. 4. dec. 5, lib, iii. c. 17. 2T0 U 1 S T O R V O F [Book VI. of the empire, was prolonged for some time, that by issuing orders in his name, the usurper might more easily establish hfs own authority.* When Pizarro landed in the bay of St. Matthew, this civil war raged between the two brothers in its greatest fury. Had he made any hostile attempt in his former visit to Peru, in the year one thousand five hundred and twenty-seven, he must then have encountered the force of a powerful state, united under a monarch possessed of capacity as well as courage, and unembarrassed with any care that could divert him from opposing his progress. But at this time, the two competitors, though they received early accounts of the arrival and violent proceedings of the Spaniards, were so intent upon the operations of a war which they deemed more interesting, that they paid no attention to the motions of an enemy, too inconsiderable in number to excite any great alarm, and to whom it would be easy, as they imagined, to give a check when more at leisure. By this fortunate coincidence of events, whereof Pizarro could have no foresight, and of which, from his defective mode of intercourse with the people of the country, he remained long ignorant, he was permitted to carry on his operations unmolested, and advanced to the centre of a great empire before one effort of its power was exerted to stop his career. During their progress, the Spaniards had acquired some imperfect know- ledge of this struggle between the two contending factions. The first complete information with respect to it they received from messengers whom Huascar sent to Pizarro, in order to solicit his aid against Atahualpa, whom he represented as a rebel and a usurper.f Pizarro perceived at once the importance of this intelligence, and foresaw so clearly all the advantages which might be derived from this divided state of the Kingdom which he had invaded, that without waiting for the reinforcement which he expected from Panama, he determined to push forward, while intestine discord put it out of the power of the Peruvians to attack him with their whole force, and while, by taking part, as circumstances should incline him, with one of the competitors, he might be enabled with greater ease to crush both. Enterprising as the Spaniards of that age were in all their operations against Americans, and distinguished as Pizarro was among his countrymen for daring courage, we can hardly suppose that, after having proceeded hitherto slowly, and with much caution, he would have changed at once his system of operation, and have ventured upon a measure so hazardous, without some new motive or prospect to justify it. As he was obliged to divide his troops, in order to leave a garrison in St. Michael, sufficient to defend a station of equal importance as a place of retreat in case of any disaster, and as a port for receiving any supplies which should come from Panama, he began his march with a very slender and ill-accoutred train of followers. They consisted of sixty-two horse- men [l28], and a hundred and two foot soldiers, of whom twenty were armed with cross bows, and three with muskets. He directed his course towards Caxamalca, a small town at the distance of twelve days' march from St. Michael, where Atahualpa was encamped with a considerable body of troops. Before he had proceeded far, an officer despatched by the Inca met him with a valuable present from that prince, accompanied with a proffer of his alliance, and assurances of a friendly reception at Caxamalca. Pizarro, according to the usual artifice of his countrymen in America, pretended to come as the ambassador of a very powerful monarch, and declaring that he was now advancing with an intention to offer Atahualpa his aid against those enemies who disputed his title to the throne.J As the object of the Spaniards in entering their countiy was altc^ether * Zarate, lib. i. c. 15. Vesa, 1. lib.ix. c. 12. and 32—40. Flerrcra, dec. 5. HI), i. c. 0. lib. iii. c. IT. t 7,irate, lib. ii. c. 3. 1 Herrer.i. dec. 5. Fib. i. c. 3. Xerez, p. li^. AMERICA. 211 incomprehensible to tbe Peruvians, they had formed various conjectures concerning it without being able to decide whether they should consider their new guests as beings of a superior nature, who had visited them from some beneficent motive, or as formidable avengers of their crimes, and enemies to their repose and liberty. The continual professions of the Spaniards, that they came to enlighten them with the knowledge of truth, and lead them in the way of happiness, I'avoured the former opinion ; the outrages which they committed, their rapaciousness and cruelty, vyere awful confirmations of the latter. While in this state of uncertainty, Pizarro's declaration of his pacific intentions so far removed all the Inca's fears that he determined to give him a iriendly reception. In consequence of this resolution, the Spaniards were allowed to march in tranquillity across the sandy desert between St. Michael and Molupe, where the most feeble effort of an enemy, added to the unavoidable distresses which they suffered in passing through that comfortless region, must have proved fatal to them [129]. From Motupe they advanced towards the mountains which encompassed the low country of Peru, and passed through a defile so narrow and inaccessible, that a few men might have defended it against a numerous army. But here likewise, from the same inconsiderate credulity of the Inca, the Spaniards met with no opposition, and took quiet possession of a fort erected for the security of that important station. As they now approached near to Caxamalca, Atahualpa renewed his professions of friendship ; and, as an evidence of their sincerity, sent them presents of greater value than the former. On entering Caxamalca, Pizarro took possession of a large court, on one side of which was a house which the Spanish historians call a palace of the Inca, and on the other a temple of the Sun, the whole surrounded with a strong rampart or wall of earth. When he had posted his troops in this advantageous station, he despatched his brother Ferdinand and Hernando Soto to the camp of Atahualpa, which was about a league distant from the town. He instructed them to confirm the declaration which he had formerly made of his pacific disposition, and to desire an interview with the Inca, that he might explain more fully the intention of the Spaniards in visiting his country. They were treated with all the respectful hospi- tality usual among the Peruvians in the reception of their most cordial friends, and Atahualpa promised to visit the Spanish commander next day in his quarters. The decent deportment of the Peruvian monarch, the order of his court, and the reverence with which his subjects approached his person and obeyed his commands, astonished those Spaniards who had never met in America with any thing more dignified than the petty cazique of a barbarous tribe. Put their eyes were still powerfully attracted by the vast profusion of wealth which they observed in the Inca's camp. The rich ornaments worn by him and his attendants, the vessels of gold and silver in which the repast offered to them was served up, the multitude of utensils of every kind formed of those precious metals, opened prospects far exceeding any idea of opulence that a European of the sixteenth cen- tury could tbrm. On their return to Caxamalca, while their minds were yet warm with admiration and desire of the wealth which they had beheld, they gave such a description of it to their countrymen as confirmed Pizarro in a re- solution which he had already taken. From his own observation of Ame- rican manners during his long service in the New World, as well as from the advantages which Cortes had derived from seizing Montezuma, he knew of what consequence it was to have the Inca in his power. For this purpose, he formed a plan as daring as it was perfidious. Notwith- standing the character that he had assumed of an ambassador from a power- ful monarch, who courted an alliance with the Inca, and in violation of the repeated offers which he had made to him of his own friendship and assist- 272 HISTORY OF [Book VI. ance, he determined to avail himself of the unsuspicious simplicity with which Atahualpa relied on his professions, and to seize the person of the Inca during the interview to which he had invited him. He prepared for the execution of his scheme with the same deliberate arrangement, and with as little compunction as if it had reflected no disgrace on himself or his country. He divided his cavalry into three small squadrons, under the command of his brother Ferdinand, Soto, and Benalcazar ; his infantry were formed in one body, except twenty of most tried courage, whom he kept near his own person to support him in the dangerous service, which he reserved for himself; the artillery, consisting of two fieldpieces,* and the cross bowmen, were placed opposite to the avenue by which Atahu- alpa was to approach. All were commanded to keep within the square, and not to move until the signal for action was given. Early in the morning [Nov. 16] the Peruvian camp was all in motion. But as Atahualpa was solicitous to appear with the greatest splendour and magnificence in his first interview with the strangers, the preparations for this were so tedious that the day was far advanced before he began his march. Even then, lest the order of the procession should be deranged, he moved so slowly, that the Spaniards became impatient, and apprehen- sive that some suspicion of their intention might be the cause of this delay. In order to remove this, Pizarro despatched one of his officers with tresh assurances of^ his friendly disposition. At length the Inca approached. First of all appeared four hundred men, in a uniform dress, as harbingers to clear the way before him. He himself, sitting on a throne or couch adorned with plumes of various colours, and almost covered with plates of gold and silver enriched with precious stones, was carried on the shoul- ders of his principal attendants. Behind him came some chief officers cf his court, carried in the same manner. Several bands of singers and dancers accompanied this cavalcade ; and the whole plain was covered with troops, amounting to more than thirty thousand men. As the Inca drew near the Spanish quarters, Father Vincent Valverde, chaplain to the expedition, advanced with a crucifix in one hand, and a breviary in the other, and in a long discourse explained to him the doctrine of the creation, the fall of Adam, the incarnation, the sufferings and resur- rection of Jesus Christ, the appointment of St. Peter as God s vicegerent on earth, the transmission of^ his apostolic power by succession to the Popes, the donation made to the King of Castile by Pope Alexander of all the regions of the New World. In consequence of all this, he required Atahualpa to embrace the Christian faith, to acknowledge the supreme ju- risdiction of the Pope, and to submit to the King of Castile as his lawful sovereign ; promising, if he complied instantly with this requisition, that the Castilian monarch would protect his dominions, and permit him to continue in the exercise of his royal authority ; but if he should impiously refuse to obey this summons, he denounced war against him in his master's name, and threatened him with the most dreadful effects of his vengeance. This strange harangue, unfolding deep mysteries, and alluding to unknown facts, of which no power of eloquence could have conveyed at once a dis- tinct idea to an American, was so lamely translated by an unskilful inter- preter, little acquainted with the idiom of the Spanish tongue, and incapa- ble of expressing himself with propriety in the language of the Inca, that its general tenour was altogether incomprehensible to Atahualpa. Soine parts in it, of more obvious meaning, filled him with astonishment and in- dignation. His reply, however, was temperate. He began with observing, that he was lord of the dominions over which he reigned by hereditary succession ; and added, that he could not conceive how a foreign priest should pretend to dispose of territories which did not belong to him ; that * Xercz. p, 104. AMERICA. 473 W such a preposterous ^ant had been made, he, who was the rightful pos- sessor, refused to confirm it ; that he had no inclination to renounce the religious institutions established by his ancestors ; nor would he forsake the service of the Sun, the immortal divinity whom he and his people re- vered, in order to worship the God of the Spaniards, who was subject to death ; that with respect to other matters contained in his discourse, as he had never heard of them before, and did not now understand their mean- ing, he desired to know where the priest had learned things so extraordi- nary. " In this book," answered Valverde, reaching out to him his bre- viary. The Inca opened it eagerly, and, turning over the leaves, lifted it to his ear : " This," says he, " is silent ; it tells me nothing;" and threw it with disdain to the ground. The enraged monk, running towards his countrymen, cried out, " To arms. Christians, to arms ; the word of God is insulted ; avenge this profanation on those impious dogs" [130]. Pizarro, who, during this long cont'erence, had with difficulty restrained his soldiers, eager to seize the rich spoils of which they had now so near a view, immediately gave the signal of assault. At once the martial music struck up, the cannon and muskets began to fire, the horse sallied out fiercely to the charge, the infantry rushed on sword in hand. The Peru- vians, astonished at the suddenness of an attack which they did not expect, and dismayed with the destructive effect of the firearms, and the irresisti- ble impression of the cavalry, fled with universal consternation on every side, without attempting either to annoy the enemy, or to defiend them- selves. Pizarro, at the head of his chosen band, advanced directly to- wards the Inca ; and though his nobles crowded around him with officious zeal, and fell in numbers at his feet, while they vied one with another in sacrificing their own lives, that they might cover the sacred person of their sovereign, the Spaniards soon penetrated to the royal seat ; and Pi- zarro, seizing the Inca by the arm, dragged him to the ground, and carried him as a prisoner to his quarters. The fate of the monarch increased ihe precipitate flight of his followers. The Spaniards pursued them towards every quarter, and with deliberate and unrelenting barbarity continued to slaughter wretched fugitives, who never once offered to resist. The car- nage did not cease until the close of day. Above four thousand Peru- vians were killed. Not a single Spaniard fell, nor was one wounded but Pizarro himself, whose hand was Slightly hurt by one of his own soldiers, while struggling eagerly to lay hold on the Inca [131]. The plunder of the field was rich beyond any idea which the Spaniards had yet formed concerning the wealth of Peru ; and they were so tran.s- ported with the value of the acquisition, as well as the greatness of their success, that they passed the night in the extravagant exultation natural to indigent adventurers on such an extraordinary change of fortune. At first the captive monarch could hardly believe a calamity which he so little expected to be real. But he soon felt all the misery of his fate, and the dejection into which he sunk was in proportion to the height of grandeur from which he had fallen. Pizarro, afraid of losing all the ad- vantages which he hoped to derive from the possession of such a prisoner, laboured to console him with professions of kindness and respect, that cor- responded ill with his actions. By residing among the Spaniards, the Inca quickly discovered their ruling passion, which indeed they were nowise solicitous to conceal, and, by applying to that, made an attempt to recover his liberty. He offered as a ransom what astonished the Spaniards, even after all they now knew concerning the opulence of his kingdom. The apartment in which he was confined was twenty-two feet in length and sixteen in breadth ; he undertook to fill it with vessels of gold as high as he could reach. Pizarro closed eagerly with this tempting proposal, and a line was drawn upon the walls of the chamber, to mark the stipulated height to which the treasure was to rise. Vol.. !.— 3:-, 274 HISTORY OF [Book VI. Atahualpa, transported with havinj? obtained some prospect of liberty, took measures instantly for fulfilling his part of the agreement, by sending messengers to Cuzco, Qiiito, and other places, where gold had been amass- ed in largest quantities, either for adorning the temples of the gods, or the houses of the Inca, to bring what was necessary for completing his ransom directly to Caxamalca. Though Atahualpa was now in the custody of his enemies, yet so much were the Peruvians accustomed to respect every mandate issued by their sovereign, that his orders were executed with the greatest alacrity. Soothed with hopes of recovering his liberty by this means, the subjects of the Inca were afraid of endangering his life by forming any other scheme for his relief; and though the force of the em- pire was still entire, no preparations were made, and no army assembled to avenge their own wrongs or those of their monarch.* The Spaniards remained in Caxamalca tranquil and unmolested. Small detachments of their number marched into remote provinces of the empire, and, instead of meeting with any opposition, were every where received with marks of the most submissive respect [132]. Inconsiderable as those parties were, and desirous as Pizarro might be to obtain some knowledge of the interior state of the country, he could not have ventured upon any diminution of his main body, if he had not about this time [December], received an account of Almagro's having landed at St. Michael with such a reinforcement as would almost double the number of his followers.! The arrival of this long expected succour was not more agreeable to the Spaniards than alarming to the Inca. He saw the power of his enemies increase ; and as he knew neither the source whence they derived their supplies, nor the means by which they were conveyed to Peru, he could not foresee ^o what a height the inundation that poured in upon his dominions might rise [1533]. While disquieted with such apprehensions, he learned that some Spaniards, in their way to Cuzco, had visited his brother Huascar in the place where he kept him confined, and that the captive prince had represented to them the justice of his own cause, and, as an inducement to espouse it, had promised them a quantity of treasure greatly beyond that which Atahualpa had engaged to pay for his ransom. If the Spaniards should listen to this proposal, Atahualpa per- ceived his own destruction to be inevitable; and suspecting that their insatiable thirst for gold would tempt ihem to lend a favourable ear to it, he determined to sacrifice his brother's life that he might save his own ; and his orders for this purpose were executed, like all his other commands, with scrupulous punctuality.j Meanwhile, Indians daily arrived at Caxamalca from different parts of the kingdom, loaded with treasure. A great part of the stipulated quantity was now amassed, and Atahualpa assured the Spaniards that the only thing which prevented the whole from being brought in, was the remoteness of the provinces where it was deposited. But such vast piles of gold presented continually to the view of needy soldiers, had so inflamed tlieir avarice, that it was impossible any longer to restrain their impatience to obtain possession of this rich booty. Orders were given for melting down the whole, except some pieces of curious fabric reserved as a present for the emperor. After setting apart the fifth due to the crown, and a hundred thousand pesos as a donative to the soldiers which arrived with Almagro, there remained one million five hundred and twenty-eight thousand five hundred pesos to Pizarro and his followers. The festival of St. Jaraes [.July 25], the patron saint of Spain, was the day chosen for the partition of this enormous sum, and the manner of conducting it strongly marks the strange alliance of fanaticism with avarice, which I have more than once * Xerez, 205. t Thid. 204. Hcrrera, dec. 5. lib. iii. c. i, 2. J Zarate, lib. il. c. Cx Romara, Hist. c. 115. H«rr.nn, dec. .5. lib. iii. c. 9. AMERICA. 27S had occasion to point out as a striking feature in the characlerof tlie con- querors of the !Vew World. Though assembled to divide the spoils of an innocent people, procured by deceit, extortion, and cruelty, ihe transaction began with a solemn invocation of the name of God,* as if they could have ex- pected theguidanceof heaven in distributing those wagesof iniquity. In this division above eight thousand pesos, at that time not inferior in effective value to as many pounds sterling in the present centurj, fell to the share of each horseman, and half that sum to each foot soldier. PizaiTO himself, and his officers, received dividends in proportion to the dignity of their rank. There is no example in history of such a sudden acquisition of wealth by military service, nor was ever a sum so great divided among so small a number of soldiers. Many of them having received a recompense for their services far beyond their most sanguine hopes, were so impatient to retire from fatigue and danger, in order to spend the remainder of their dajrs in their native country in ease and opulence, that they demanded their discharge with clamo70us importunity. Pizarro, sensible that from such men he could expect neither enterprise in action nor fortitude ixi suffering, and persuaded that wherever they went the display of their riches would allure adventurers, less opulent but more hardy, to his standard, granted their suit without reluctance, and permitted above sixty of them to accompany his brother Ferdinand, whom he sent to Spain witli an account of his success, and the present destined for the emperor.f The Spaniards having divided among them the treasure amassed for the Inca's ransom, he insisted with them to fulfil their promise of setting him at liberty. But nothing was further trorn Pizarro's thoughts. During his long ser\-ice in the New World, he had imbibed those ideas and maxims of his fellow-soldiers, which led them to consider its inhabitants as an inferior race, neither worthy of the name, nor entitled to the rights of men. In his compact with Atahualpa, he had no other object than to amuse his captive with such a prospect of recovering his liberty, as might induce him to lend all the aid of his authority towards collecting the wealth of his kingdom. Having now accomplished this, he no longer regarded his plighted faith ; and at the very time when the credulous prince hoped to be replaced on his throne, he had secretly resolved to bereave him of life. Many circumstances seem to have concurred in prompting him to this action, the most criminal and atrocious that stains the Spanish name, amidst all the deeds of violence committed in carrying on the conquests of the New World. Though Pizarro had seized the Inca in imitation of Cortes's conduct towards the Mexican monarch, he did not possess talents for carrying on fhe same artful plan of policy. Destitute of the temper and address requisite for gaining the confidence of his prisoner, he never reaped all ;he advantages which might have been derived from being master of his person and authority. Atahualpa was, indeed, a prince of greater abilities and discernment than Montezuma, and seems to have penetrated more thoroughly into the character and intentions of the Spaniards. Mutual suspicion and distrust accordingly took place between them. The strict attention with which it was necessary to guard a captive of such import- ance, greatly increased the fatigue ot military duty. The utility of keep- ing him appeared inconsiderable ; and Pizarro felt him as an encumbrance, from which he wished to be delivered.! Almagro and his followers had made a demand of an equal share in the Inca's ransom ; and though Pizarro had bestowed upon the private men the large gratuity which I have mentioned, and endeavoured to soothe their leader by presents of great value, they still continued dissatisfied. They were apprehensive, that as long as Atahualpa remained a prisoner, * Herrera, dec. 5. lib. iii. c. 3. ♦ Iljid. dec. 5. lib. iii. c. i. Vega, p. 2. lib, i c 36 t Herre:a, dec. 5. iib. iii. c. 4 276 HISTORY OF [Book VI. Pizarro's soldiers would apply whatever treasure should be acquired, to make up what was wanting of the quantity stipulated for his ransom, and under that pretext exclude them from any part oi it. They insisted eagerly on putting the Inca to death, that all the adventurers in Peru might there- after be on an equal tooting.* Pizarro himself began to be alarmed with accounts of forces assembling in the remote provinces of the empire, and suspected Atahualpa of haying issued orders tor that purpose. These tears and suspicions were artfully increased by Phiiippillo, one of the Indians, whoni rizarro had carried oflffrom Tumbez in the year one thousand rive hundred and twenty -seven, and whom he employed as an interpreter. 1 he function which he performed admitting this man to familiar intercourse with the captive monarch, he presumed, notwithstanding the meanness of his birth, to raise his affections to a Coya, or descendant of the Sun, one of Atahualpa's wives ; and seeing no prospect of gratifying that passion during the life of the monarch, he endeavoured to fill the ears of the Spaniards with such accounts of the Inca's secret designs and preparations, as might awaken their jealousy, and excite them to cut him off. While Almagro and his followers openly demanded the life of the Inca, and Phiiippillo laboured to ruin him by private machinations, that unhappy prince inadvertently contributed to hasten his own fate. During his con- hnement he had attached himself with peculiar affection to h erdinand Pizarro and Hernando Soto ; who, as they were persons ol birth and education superior to the rough adventurers with whom they served, were accustomed to behave with more decency and attention to the captive monarch. Soolhed with this respect from persons of such high rank, he delighted in their society. But in the presence of the governor he was always uneasy and overawed. This dread soon came to be mingled with contempt. Among all the European arts, what he admired most was that of reading and writing ; and he long deliberated with himself, whether he should regard it as a natural or acquired talent. In order to determine this, he desired one of the soldiers, who guarded him, to write the name of God on the nail of his thumb. This he showed successively to several Spaniards, asking its meaning ; and to his amazement, they all, without hesitation, returned the same answer. At length Pizarro entered ; and, on presenting it to him, he blushed, and with some confusion was obliged to acknowledge his ignorance. From that moment Atahualpa considered him as a mean person less instructed than his own soldiers ; and he had not address enough to conceal the sentiments with which this discovery inspired him. To be the object of a barbarian's scorn, not only mortified the pride of Pizarro, but excited such resentment in his breast, as added force to all the other considerations which prompted him to put the Inca to death.t But in order to give some colour of justice to this violent action, and that he himself might be exempted from standing singly responsible for the commission of it, Pizarro resolved to try the Inca with all the formalities observed in the criminal courts of Spain. Pizarro himself, and Almagro, with two assistants, were appointed judges, with full power to acquit or to condemn ; an attorney-general was named to carry on the prosecution in the king's name ; counsellors were chosen to assist the prisoner in his defence ; and clerks were ordained to record the proceedings of court. Before this strange tribunal, a charge was exhibited still more amazing. It consisted of various articles ; that Atahualpa, though a bastard, had dis- possessed the rightful owner of the throne, and usurped the regal power ; that he had put his brother and lawful sovereign to death ; that he was an idolater, antl had not only permitted but commanded the offering of human * Zarate, lib. ii. c. 7. Vega, p. 2. lib. i. c. 7. Ilprrri.T. dec. 'i. lib. iii. c. 4. t Herrcra, rice. 5, lib. iii. c. 4. Vcsa, p. 11. lib. i. c. H?. A r,i E R 1 C A. 277 sacrifices ; that he had a great number of concubines; that since his im- prisonment he had wasted and embezzled the royal treasures, which now belonged of right to the conquerors ; that he had incited his subjects to take arms against the Spaniards. On these heads of accusation, some of which are so ludicrous, others so absurd, that the effrontery of Pizarro, in making them tlie foundation of a serious procedure, is not less surprising than his injustice, did this strange court go on to try the sovereign of a great empire, over whom it had no jurisdiction. With resp.^ct to each of the articles, witnesses were examined ; but as they delivered their evidence in their native tongue, Philippillo had it in his power to give their words whatever turn best suited his malevolent intentions. To judges pre-de- termined in their opinion, this evidence appeared sufficient. They pro- nounced Atahualpa guilty, and condemned him to be burnt alive. Friar Valverde prostituted the authority of his sacred function to confirm this sentence, and by his signature warranted it to be just. Astonished at his fate, Atahualpa erideavoured to avert it by tears, by promises, and by en- treaties that he might be sent to Spain, where a monarch would be the arbiter of his lot. But pity never touched the unfeeling heart of Pizarro. He ordered him to be led instantly to execution ; and what added to the bitterness of his last moments, the same monk who had just ratified his doom, offered to console and attempted to convert him. The most powerful argument Valverde employed to prevail with him to embrace the Christian faith, was a promise of mitigation in his punishment. The dread of a cruel death extorted from the trembling victim a desire of receiving baptism. The ceremony was performed ; and Atahualpa, instead of being burnt, was strangled at the stake.* Happily for the credit of the Spanish nation, even among the profligate adventurers which it sent forth to conquer and desolate the New World, there were persons who retained some tincture of the Castilian generosity and honour. Though, before the trial of Atahualpa, Ferdinand Pizarro had set out for Spain, and Soto was sent on a separate command at a dis- tance from Caxamaica, this odious transaction was not carried on without censure and opposition. Several officers, and among those some of the greatest reputation and most respectable families in the service, not only remonstrated but protested against this measure of their general, as dis- graceful to their country, as repugnant to every maxim of equity, as a violation of public faith, and a usurpation of jurisdiction over an inde- pendent monarch, to which they had no title. But their laudable endeavours were vain. Numbers, and the opinion of such as held every thing to be lawful which they deemed advantageous, prevailed. History, however, records even the unsuccessful exertions of virtue with applause ; and the Spanish writers, in relating events where the valour of their nation is more conspicuous than its humanity, have not failed to preserve the names of those who made this laudable effort to save their country from the infamy of having perpetrated such a crime. t On the death of Atahualpa, Pizarro invested one of his sons with the ensigns of royalty, hoping that a joung man without experience might prove a more passive instrument in his hands than an ambitious monarch, who had been accustomed to independent command. The people of Cuzco, and the adjacent country, acknowledged Manco Capac, a brother of Huascar, as Inca.J But neither possessed the authority which belonged to a sovereign of Peru. The violent convulsions into which the empire had been thrown, first by the civil war between the two brothers, and then by the invasion of the Spaniards, had not only deranged the order of the Peruvian government, but almost dissolved its frame. When they beheld ♦ Zarate, lib. ii. c. 7, Xerez, p. 233. Vega, p. 11. lib. i. c. 36, 37. Gotnara Hist. c. 117. Herrera, dec. 3. lib. iii. r. 4. f Vega, p. Jl. lib. i. c. 37. Xcrez, i. 235. Hcrrcra.doc.S. lib. ill. c. 5. : Vega. p. II. lib. ii. c 7. 278 HISTORY OF [BookVL their monarch a captive in the power of strangers, and at last suffering an ignominious death, the people in several provinces, as if they had been set I'ree from eveiy restraint of law and decency, broke out into the most licentious excesses.* So many descendants of the Sun, after being treated with the utmost indignity, had been cut off by Atahualpa, that not only their influence in the state diminished with their number, but the accus- tomed reverence for that sacred race sensibly decreased. In consequence of this state of things, ambitious men in different parts of the empire aspired to independent authority, and usurped jurisdiction to which they had no title. The general who commanded for Atahualpa in Quito, seized the brother and children of his master, put them to a cruel death, and, dis- claiming any connection with either Inca, endeavoured to establish a separate kingdom for himself.! The Spaniards with pleasure beheld the spirit of discord diffusing itself, and the vigour of government relaxing among the Peruvians. They con- sidered those disorders as symptoms of a state hastening towards its dis- solution. Pizarro no longer hesitated to advance towards Cuzco, and he had received such considerable reinforcements, that he could venture, with little danger, to penetrate so far into the interior part of the countr>-. The account of the wealth acquired at Caxamaica operated as he had foreseen. No sooner did his brother Ferdinand, with the otficers and soldiers to whom he had given their discharge after the partition of the Inca's ransom, arrive at Panama, and display their riches in the view of their astonished coun- tiymen, than fame spread the account with such exaggeration through all the Spanish settlements on the South Sea, that the governors of Guatimala, Panama, and Nicaragua, could hardly restrain the people under their juris- diction, from abandoning their possessions, and crowding to that inexhaustible source of wealth which seemed to be opened in Peru. J In spite of every check and regulation, such numbers resorted thither, that Pizarro began his march at the head of five hundred men, after leaving a considerable garrison in St. Michael, under the command of Benalcazar. The Peruvians had assembled some large bodies of troops to oppose his progress. Several fierce encounters happened. But they terminated like all the actions in America ; a few Spaniards were killed or wounded ; the natives were put to flight with incredible slaughter. At length Pizarro forced his way to Cuzco, and took quiet possession of that capital. The riches found there, even after all that the natives had carried off and concealed, either from a superstitious veneration for the ornaments of their temples, or out of hatred to their rapacious conquerors, exceed in value what had been received as Atahualpa's ransom. But as the Spaniards were now accustomed to the wealth of the country, and it came to be parcelled out among a great number of adventurers, this dividend did not excite the same surprise, either from novelty, or the largeness of the sum that fell to the share of each individual [133]. During the march to Cuzco, that son of Atahualpa whom Pizarro treated as Inca, died ; and as the Spaniards substituted no person in his place, the title of Manco Capac seems to have been universally recognised.§ While his fellow-soldiers were thus employed, Benalcazar, governor of St. Michael, an able and enterprising ofiicer, was ashamed ot remaining inactive, and impatient to have his name distinguished among the dis- coverers and conquerors of the New World. The seasonable arrival of a fresh body of recruits from Panama and Nicaragua put it in his power to gratify this passion. Leaving a sufficient force to protect the infant settle- ment intrusted to his care, he placed himself at the head of the lest, and set out to attempt the reduction of Quito, where, according to the report of * Herrera, dec. 5. lib. ii. c. 12. Itb. hi. c. 5. t Zarate, lib. ii. c. 8. Vega, p. 11. lib. ii. c. 3, 4 , $ fiouiara Hi.st. r. 135. Vfga, p. 11. lib. ji, c. 1. Herrera, dec, 5. lib, iii. c. 5. ^ Herrer?, 4ec. 5. lib. V. r. '>. AMERICA. 279 the natives, Atahualpa had left the greatest part of his treasure. Notwith- standing tlie distance of that city trom St. Michael, the difficuUy of marching through a mountainous country covered with woods, and the ■frequent and tierce attacks of the best troops in Peru commanded by a skihul leader, the valour, good conduct, and perseverance of Benalcazar surmounted every obstacle, and he entered Quito with his victorious troops. But they met with a cruel mortification there. The natives now acquainted to their sorrow with the predominant passion of their invaders, and knowing how to disappoint it, had carried off all those treasures, the prospect of which had prompted them to undertake this arduous expedition, and had supported them under all the dangers and hardships wherewith they had to struggle in cariying it on.* • Benalcazar was not the only Spanish leader who attacked the kingdom of QjLiito. The fame of its riches attracted a more powerful enemy. Pedro de Alvarado, who had distinguished himself so eminently in the conquest of Mexico, having obtained the government of Guatimala as a recompense for his valour, soon became disgusted with a life of uniform tranquillity, and longed to be again engaged in the bustle of military service. The glory and wealth acquired by the conquerors of Peru heightened this passion, and gave it a determined direction. Believing, or pretending to believe, that the kingdom of Quito did not lie within the limits of the province allotted to Pizarro, he resolved to invade it. The high reputation of the commander allured volunteers from every quarter. He embarked with five hundred men, of whom above two hundred were of such distinction as to serve on horseback. He landed at Puerto Viejo, and without sufficient knowledge of the country, or proper guides to con- duct him, attempted to march directly to Quito, by following the course of the river Guayoquil, and crossing the ridge of the Andes towards its head. But in this route, one of the most impracticable in all America, his troops endured such fatigue in forcing their way through forests and marshes on the low grounds, and suffered so much from excessive cold when they began to ascend the mountains, that before they reached the plain of Q,i''to> a fifth part of the men and half their horses died, and the rest were so much dispirited and worn out, as to be almost unfit for ser- vice [1-34]. There they met with a body, not of Indians, but of Spaniards, drawn in hostile array against them. Pizarro having received an account of Alvarado's armament, had detached Almagro with some troops to oppose this formidable invader of his jurisdiction ; and these were joined by Be- nalcazar and his victorious party. Alvarado, though surprised at the sight of enemies whom he did not expect, advanced boldly to the charge. But, by the interposition of some moderate men in each party, an amicable accommodation took place ; and the fatal period when Spaniards sus- pended their conquests to imbrue their hands in the blooil of their coun- trymen, was postponed a few years. Alvarado engaged to return to his goverment, upon Almagro's paying him a hundred thousand pesos to defray the expense of his armament. Most of his followers remained in the country ; and an expedition, which threatened Pizarro and his colony with ruin, contributed to augment its strength t 1534.] By this timeTerdinand Pizarro had landed in Spain. The im- mense quantities of gold and silver which he imported [135] filled the king- dom with no less astonishment than they had excited in Panama and the adjacent provinces. Pizarro was received by the emperor with the atten- tion due to the bearer of a present so rich as to exceea any idea which the Spaniards had formed concerning the value of their acquisitions in America, • Zarate, lib. ii. e. 9. Vega, p. 11. lib. ii. c. 9. Hcrrera, dec. 5. lib. iv. e. 11, 12. lib. v. c. 2, 3. lib. vi. c. 3. 1 Zarate, lib. ii. c. 10— 13. Vega, p. 11. lib. ii. c. 1, 2. 9, &e. Gomara Hist. c. 1-^6. &r. Rrmesal Hist. Guatimal. Mb. iil. c. 6. Herrera, dec 3. lib. vi. c, 1, 2. 7, 9. 289 HISTORY OF [Book VI. even after they had been ten years masters of Mexico. In recompense of his brother's services, his authority was continned with new powers and privileges, and the addition of seventy leagues, extending along the coast, to the southward of the territory granted in his former patent. Almagro received the honours which he had so long desired. The title of Adelan- tado, or governor, was conferred upon him, with jurisdiction over two hun- dred leagues of country, stretching beyond the southern iimils of the province allotted to Pizarro. Ferdinand himself did not go unrewarded. He was admitted into the military order ol St. Jago, a distinction always accepta- ble to a Spanish gentleman, and soon set out on bis leturn to Peru, accom- panied by many persons ot higher rank than had yet served in that country.* Some account of his negotiations reached Peru before he arrived there himself. Almagro no sooner learned that he had obtained the royal grant of an independent government, than pretending that Cuzco, the imperial residence of the Incas, lay within its boundaries, he attempted to render himself master of that irnportant station. Juan and Gonzalez Pizarro pre- pared to oppose him. Each of the contending parties was supported by powerful adherents, and the dispute was on the point of being terminated by the sword, when Francis Pizarro arrived in the capital. The recon- ciliation between him and Almagro had never been cordial. The treachery ot Pizarro in engrossing to himself all the honours and emoluments, which ought to have been divided with his associate, was always present in both their thoughts. The former, conscious of his own perfidy, did not expect forgiveness ; the latter feeling, that he had been deceived, was impatient to be avenged ; and though avarice and ambition had induced them not only to dissemble their sentiments, but even to act in concert while in pur- suit of wealth and power, no sooner did they obtain possession of these, than the same passions which had formed this temporary union, gave rise to jealousy and discord. To each of them was attached a small band of interested dependants, who, with the malicious art peculiar to such men, heightened their suspicions, and magnified every appearance of ofience. But with all those seeds of enmity in their minds, and thus assiduously cherished, each was so thoroughly acquainted with the abilities and courage of his rival, that they equally dreaded the consequences of an open rupture. The fortunate arrival of Pizarro at Cuzco, and the address min- gled with firmness which he manifested in his expostulations with Almagro and his partisans, averted that evil tor the present. A new reconciliation took place ; the chief article of which was, that Almagro should attempt the conquest of Chili ; and if he did not fin(i in that province an establish- nient adequate to his merit and expectations, Pizarro, by way of indemni- fication, should yield up to him a part of Peru. This new agreement, though confirmed [June 12] with the same sacred solemnities as their first contract, was observed with as little fidelity.! Soon after he concluded this important transaction, Pizarro marched back to the countries on the seacoast ; and as he now enjoyed an interval of tranquillity undisturbed by any enemy, either Spaniaid or Indian, he applied himself with that persevering ardour, which distinguishes his cha- racter, to introduce a form of regular government into the extensive pro- vinces subject to his authority. Though ill qualified by his education to enter into any disquisition concerning the principles of civil policy, and little accustomed by his former habits of life to attend to its arrangements, his natural sagacity supplied the want both of science and experience. He distributed the countiy into various districts ; he appointed proper magis- trates to preside in each ; and established regulations concerning the ad- • Zarate, lih. Hi. c. 3. Vega, p. 11. lib. ii. c. 19, Herrera, dec. 5. lib. vi. c. 13. t Za- rate, lib. ii, r. 13. Vega, p. 11, lih. ii. c. 19. Benzo, lih. iii, r. 6. Herrerii. dec. 5. lib. vii. c. P. AMERICA. 281 miiiistration ol justice, the collection of the royal revenue, the working of the mines, and the treatment of the Indians, extremely simple, but well calculated to promote the public prosperity. But though, for the present, he adapted his plan to the infant state of his colony, his aspiring mind looked forward to its future grandeur. He considered himself as laying the foundation of a great empire, and deliberated long, and with much soli- citude, in what place he should fix the seat of government. Cuzco, the imperial city of the Incas, was situated in a corner of the empire, above four hundred miles from the sea, and much further from Quito, a province of whose value he had formed a high idea. No other settlement of the Peruvians was so considerable as to merit the name of a town, or to allure the Spaniards to fix their residence in it. But in marching through the country, Pizano had been struck with the beauty and fertility of the val- ley of Rirnac, one of the most extensive and best cultivated in Peru. There, on the banks of a small river of the same name with the vale which it waters and enriches, at the distance of six miles from Callao, the most commodious harbour in the Pacific Ocean, he founded a city which he destined to be the capital of his government [Jan. 18, 15:55]. He gave it the name of Ciudad de los l^eyes, eithei from the circumstance of having laid the first stone at that season when the church celebrates the festival of the Three Kings, or, as is more probable, in honour of Juana and Charles, the joint sovereigns of Castile. This name it still retains among the Spaniards, in all legal and formal deeds ; but it is better known to foreigners by that oi Lima, a corruption of the ancient appellation of the valley in which it is situated. Under his inspection, the buildings advanced with such rapidity, that it soon assumed the form of a city, which, by a mag- nificent palace that he erected lor himself, and by the stately houses built by several of his officers, gave, even in its infancy, some indication of its subsequent grandeur.* In consequence of what had been agreed with Pizarro, Almagro began his march towards Chili ; and as he possessed in an eminent degree the virtues most admired by soldiers, boundless liberality and fearless courage, his standard was followed by five hundred and seventy men, the greatest body of Europeans that had hitherto been assembled in Peru. From im- patience to finish the expedition, or from that contempt of hardship and dani;er acquired by all the Spaniards who had served long in America^ Almagro, instead of advancing along the level country on the coast, chose to march across the mountains by a route that was shorter indeed, but almost impracticable. In this attempt his troops were exposed to every calamity which men can suffer, from fatigue, from famine, and from the rigour of the climate in those elevated regions of the torrid zone, where the degree of cold is hardly inferior to what is felt within the polar circle. Many of them perished; and the survivors, when they descended into the lertile plains of Chili, had new difficulties to encounter. They found there a race of men very different from the people of Pefu» intrepid, hardy, in- dependent, and in their bodily constitution, as well as vigour of sjpirit, nearly resembling the warlike tribes in North America. Though filled with wonder at the first appearance of the Spaniards, and still more astonished at the operations of their cavalry and the effects of their fire- arms, the Chilese soon recovered so far from their surprise, as not only to defend themselves with obstinacy, but to attack their new enemies with more determined fierceness than any American nation had hitherto dis- covered. The Spaniards, however, continued to penetrate into the coun- try, and collected some considerable quantities of gold ; but were so far from thinking of making any settlement amidst such formidable neighbours, that, in spite of all the experience and valour of their leader, the final issue • Herrera, dec. 5. lib. vi. c. 12. lib. vii. c. 13. Calanrho, Coronica, lib. i. c. 37. Bameiivo, Lima fundala, ii. 3!)4. Vol.. [.— ?.6 282 HISTORY OF [Book VI. of the expedition still remained extremely dubious, when they were recalled from it by an unexpected revolution at Peru.* The causes of this impor- tant event I shall endeavour to trace to their source. So many adventurers had flocked to Peru trom every Spanish colony irj America, and all with such high expectations of accumulatmg independent fortunes at once, that, to men possessed with notions so extravagant, any mention of acquiring wealth gradually, and by schemes of patient industry, would have been not only a disappointment, but an insult. In order to find occupation tor men who could not with safety be allowed to remain in- active, Pizarro encouraged some of the most distinguished officers who had lately joined him, to invade different provinces of the empire, which the Spaniards had not hitherto visited. Several large bodies were formed for this purpose ; and about the time that Almagro set out for Chili, they marched into remote districts of the country. No sooner did Manco Capac, the Inca, observe the inconsiderate security of the Spaniards in thus dis- persing their troops, and that only a handful of soldiers remained in Cuzco, under Juan and Gonzalez Pizarro, than he thought that the happy period was at length come for vindicating his own rights, for avenging the wrongs of his country, and extirpating its oppressors. Though strictly watched by the Spaniards who allowed him to reside in the palace of his ancestors at Cuzco, he found means of communicating his scheme to the persons who were to be intrusted with the execution of it- Among people accus- tomed to revere their sovereign as a divinity, every hint of his wjll carries the authority of a command ; and they themselves were now convinced, by the daily increase in the number of their invaders, that the fond hopes which they had long entertained of their voluntary departure were alto- gether vain. All perceived that a vigorous effort of the whole nation was requisite to expel them, and the preparations for it were carried on with the secrecy and silence peculiar to Americans. After some unsuccessful attempts of the Inca to make his escape, Ferdi- nand Pizarro happening to arrive at that time in Cuzco [l53fi], he obtained permission from him to attend a great festival which was to be celebrated a iew leagues from the capital. Under pretext of that solemnity, the great men of the empire were assembled. As soon as the Inca joined them, the standard of war was erected ; and in a short time all the lighting men, from the confines of Q,uito to the frontier of Chili, were in arms. Many- Spaniards, living securely on the settlements allotted them, were massacred. Several detachments, as they marched carelessly through a country which seemed to be tamely submissive to their dominion, were cut off to a man. An army amounting (if we may believe the Spanish writers) to two hun- dred thousand men, attacked Cuzco, which the three brothers endeavoured to defend with only one hundred and seventy Spaniards. Another formi- dable body invested Lima, and kept the governor closely shut up. There was no longer any communication between the two cities ; the numerous forces of the Peruvians spreading over the country, intercepted every messenger ; and as the parties in Cuzco and Lima were equally unacquaint- ed with the fate of their countrymen, each boded the worst concerning the other, and imagined that they themselves were the only persons who had survived the general extinction of the Spanish name in Peru.t It was at Cuzco, where the Inca commanded in person, that the Peru- vians made their chiei^ efforts. During nine months they carried on the siege with incessant ardour, and in various forms ; and though they dis- played not the same undaunted ferocity as the Mexican wamors, they con- ducted some of their operations in a manner which discovered greater sagacity, and a genius more susceptible of improvement in the military * Zarate, lib. iii. c. 1 . Gomara Hiat. c. 131. Vega, p. 2. lib. ii. c, 20. Ovale Hist, de Cliile, lib, iv. c. 15, &c. Herrera, dec. 5. lib. vi. c. 9. lib. x. c. 1, Ac. t Vega, p. 11, lib. ii. t 28. Ziratr, lib iii. r. 3 Cieca de Leon, c. 82. Gomara Hist. c. 135. Herrera, dec. 5. lib. vin. r. 5. AMERICA. 283 art. They not only observed the advantages which the Spaniards derived from their discipline and their weapons, but they endeavoured to imitate the former, and turned the latter against them. They armed a considera- ble body of their bravest warriors with the swords, the spears, and buck- lers, which they had taken from the Spanish soldiers whom they had cut off in different parts of the country. These they endeavoured to marshal in that regular compact order, to which experience had taught them that the Spaniards were indebted for their irresistible force in action. Some appeared in the field with Spanish muskets, and had acquired skill and resolution enough to use them. A few of the boldest, among whom was the Inca himself, were mounted on the horses which they had taken, and advanced briskly to the charge like Spanish cavaliers, with their lances in the rest. It was more by their numbers, however, than by those imper- fect essays to imitate European arts and to employ European arms, that the Peruvians annoyed the Spaniards [136], In spite of the valour, heightened by despair, with which the three brothers defended Cuzco, Maiico Capac recovered possession of one-half of his capital ; and in their various efforts to drive him out of it, the Spaniards lost Juan Pizarro, the best beloved of all the brothers, together with some other persons of note. Worn out with the fatigue of incessant duty, distressed with want of pro- visions, and despairing of being able any longer to resist an enemy whose numbers daily increased, the soldiers became impatient to abandon Cuzco, in hopes either of joining their countrymen, if any of them yet survived, or of forcing their way to the sea, and finding some means of escaping from a country which had been so fatal to the Spanish name.* While they were brooding over those desponding thoughts, which their officers labour- ed in vain to dispel, Almagro appeared suddenly in the neighbourhood of Cuzco. The accounts transmitted to Almagro concerning the general insurrection of the Peruvians, were such as would have induced him, without hesitation, to relinquish the conquest of Chili, and hasten to the aid of his country- men. But in this resolution he was confirmed by a motive less generous, but more interesting. By the same messenger who brought him intelli- gence of the Inca's revolt, he received the royal patent creating him go- vernor of Chili, and defining the limits of his jurisdiction. Upon consi- dering the tenor of it, he deemed it manifest beyond contradiction, that Cuzco lay within the boundaries of his government, and he was equally solicitous to prevent the Peruvians from recovering possession of their capital, and to wrest it out of the hands of the Pizarros. From impatience to accomplish both, he ventured to return by a new route ; and in march- ing through the sandy plains on the coast, he suffered from heat and drought, calamities of a new species hardly inferior to those in which he had been involved by cold and famine on the summits of the Andes. 1537.] His arrival at Cuzco was in a critical moment. The Spaniards and Peruvians fixed their eyes upon him with equal solicitude. The former, as he did not study to conceal his pretensions, were at a loss whe- ther to welcome him as a deliverer, or to take precautions against him as an enemy. The latter, knowing the points in contest between him and his countiymen, flattered themselves that they had more to hope than to dread from his operations. Almagro himself, unacquainted with the detail of the events which had happened in his absence, and solicitous to learn the precise posture of affairs, advanced towards the capital slowly, and with great circumspection. Various negotiations with both parties were set on foot. The Inca conducted them on his part with much address. At first he endeavoured to gain the friendship of Almagro ; and after many fruitless overtures, despairing of any cordial union with a Spaniard, lie ♦ Herrera, dec. 5. lib. viii c. 4. 284 HISTORY OF [Book VI. attacked him by surprise with a numerous body of chosen troops. But the Spanish discipline and valour maintained their wonted superiority. The Peruvians were repulsed with such slaughter that a great part of their army diispersed, and Almagro proceeded to the gates of Cuzco without interruption. The Pizarros, as they had no longer to make head against the Peru- vians, directed all their attention towards their new enemy, and took mea- sures to obstruct his entry into the capital. Prudence, however, restrained both parties for some time from turning their arms against one another, while surrounded by common enemies, who would rejoice in the mutual slaughter. Different schemes of accommodation were proposed. Each endeavoured to deceive the other, or to corrupt his followers. The gene- rous, open, aifable temper of Almagro gained many adherents ol the Pizarros, who were disgusted with their harsh, domineering manners. Encouraged by this defection, he advanced towards the city by night, sur- prised he sentinels, or was admitted by them, and, investing the house where the two brothers resided, compelled them, after an obstinate defence, to surrender at discretion. Almagro's claim of jurisdiction over Cuzco was universally acknowledged, and a form of administration established in his name.* Two or three persons only were killed in this first act of civil hostility ; but it was soon followed by scenes more bloody. Francisco Pizarro having dispersed the Peruvians who had invested Lima, and received some considerable reinforcements from fiispaniola and Nicaragua, ordered five hundred men, under the command of Alonzo de Alvarado, to march to Cuzco, in hopes of relieving his brothers, if they and their garrison were not already cut off by the Peruvians. This body, which ai that period of the Spanish power in America must be deemed a considerable force, advanced near to the capital before they knew that they had any enemy more formidable than Indians to encounter. It was with astonish- ment that they beheld their countrymen posted on the banks of the rivei Abanca}' to oppose their progress. Almagro, however, wished rather to gain than to conquer them, and by bribes and promises, endeavoured to seduce their leader. The fidelity of Alvarado remained unshaken ; but his talents for war were not equal to his virtue. Almagro amused him with various movements, of which he did not com]irehend the meaning, while a large detachment of chosen soldiers passed the river by night [July 12], fell upon his camp by surprise, broke his troops before they had time to form, and took him prisoner, together with his principal officers.! By the sudden rout of this body, the contest between the two rivals must have been decided, if Almagro had known as well how to improve as how to gain a victory. Rodrigo Orgognez, an officer of great abilities, who having served under the Constable Bourbon, when he led the imperial army to Rome, had been accustomed to bold and rlecisive measures, ad- vised him instantly to issue orders for putting to death Ferdinand and Gon- zalo Pizarros, Alvarado, and a few other persons whom he could not hope to gain, and to march directly with his victorious troops to Lima, before the governor had time to prepare for his defence. But Almagro, though he discerned at once the utility of the counsel, and though he had courage to have carried it into execution, suffered himself to be influenced by sen- timents unlike those of a soldier of fortune grown old in service, and by scruples which suited not the chief of a party who had drawn his sword in civil war. Feelings of humanity restrained him from shedding the blood of his opponents ; and the dread of being deemed a rebel deterred him from entering a province which the King had allotted to another. Though ♦ Zarate, lib. iii. c. 4. Vega, p. 11. lib. ii. c. 2'J. :<1. Gomara Hist. c. )34. Herrera, dec. 6. lib. ii. c. 1— 5. t Zarate, Ub. iu. c. 6. Goni. Hist. c. 138. Vega, p. 1 J. lib. ii. c 32. 34. Ilrrrera, dec 6. lib. ii. r.9. AMERICA. 28ii he knew that arms must terminate the dispute between him and Pizarro, and resolved not to shun that mode of decision ; yet, with a timid delicacy, preposterous at such a juncture, he was so solicitous that his rival should be considered as the aggressor, that he marched quietly back to Cuzco, to wait his approach.* Pizarro was still unacquainted with all the interesting events which had happened near Cuzco. Accounts of Aliiiagro's return, of the loss of the capital, of the death of one brother, of the impiisonment of the other two, and of the defeat of Alvarado, were brought to him at once. Such a tide of misfortunes almost overwhelmed a spirit which had continued firm and erect under the rudest shocks of adversity. But the necessity of attending to his own safety, as well as the desire of revenge, preserved him Irom sinking under it. He took measures for both with his wonted sagacity. As he had the command of the seacoast, and expected considerable sup- j)lies both of men and military stores, it was no less his interest to gain time, and to avoid action, than it was that of Almagro to precipitate ope- rations, and bring the contest to a speedy issue. He had recourse to arts which he had formerly practised with success ; and Almagro was again weak enough to suffer himself to be amused with a prospect of terminating their differences by some amicable accommodation. By varying his over- tures, and shifting his ground as often as it suited his purpose, sometimes seeming to yield to every thing which his rival could desire, and then retrscting ail that he had granted, Pizarro dexterously protracted the ne- gotiation to such a length, that, though every day was precious to Almagro, several months elapsed without coming to any final agreement. While the attention of Almagro, and of the officers with whom he consulted, was occupied in detecting and eluding the fraudulent intentions of the governor, Gonzalo Pizarro and Alvarado found means to corrupt the soldiers to whose custody they were committed, and not only made their escape themselves, but persuaded sixty of the men who formerly guarded them to accompany their flight.f Fortune having thus delivered one of his brothers, the governor scrupled not at one act of perfidy more to procure the release of the other. He proposed that every point in controversy between Almagro and himself should be submitted to the derision of their sovereign ; that until his award was known, each should retain undisturbed possession of whatever part of the country he now occupied ; that Ferdinand Pizarro shodd be set at liberty, and return instantly to Spain, together with the officers whom Almagro purposed to send thither to represent the justice of his claims. Obvious as the design of Pizarro was in those propositions, and familiar as his artifices might now have been to his opponent, Almagro, with a credulity approaching to infatuation, relied on his sincerity, and concluded an agreement on these terms. J The moment that Ferdinand Pizarro recovered his liberty, the governor, no longer fettered in his operations by anxiety about his brother's life, threw off every disguise which his concern for it had obliged him to assume. The treaty was forgotten ; pacific and conciliating measures were no more mentionea; it was in the field he openly declared, and not in the cabinet, — by arms and not by negotiation, — that it must now be determined who should be master of Peni. The rapidity of his preparations suited such a decisive resolution. Seven hundred men were soon ready to march towards Cuzco. The command of these was given to his two brothers, in whom he could perfectly confide for the execution of his most violent schemes, as they were urged on, not only by the enmity flowing from the rivalship between their family and Almagro, but animated with the desire of ven- geance, excited by recollection of their own recent di^race and sufferings. • Herrera, dec. 6. lib. ii. c. 10, 11. t Zarate, lib. iii. c. 8. netrera, dec. C. lib. ij. c. 14. i Herrora, dec. 6. lib. iii. c. 9. Zarate, lib. ill, c. 9. Gomara Hist. c. 140. Vega, p. 11. lib. ii. c,;i5. 286 HISTORY OF [Book VI. After an unsuccessful attempt to cross the mountains in the direct road be- tween Lima and Cuzco, they marched towards the south along the coast as far as Nasca, and then turning to the left, penetrated through the defiles in that branch of the Andes which lay between them and the capital, Almagro, instead of hearkening to some of his officers, who advised him to attempt the defence of those difficult passes, waited the approach of the enemy i"n the plain of Cuzco. Two reasons seem to have induced him to take this resolution. His followers amounted hardly to five hundred, and he was afraid of weakening such a feeble body by sending any de- tachment towards the mountains. His cavalry far exceeded that of the adverse party, both in number and discipline, and it was only in an open country that he could avail himself of that advantage. The Pizarros advanced without any obstruction, but what arose from the nature of the desert and horrid regions through which they marched. As soon as they reached the plain, both factions were equally impatient to bring this long protracted contest to an issue. Though countrymen and friends, the subjects of the same sovereign, and each with the royal standard displayed ; and though they beheld the mountains that surrounded the plain in which they were drawn up, covered with a vast multitude of Indians assembled to enjoy the spectacle of their mutual carnage, and prepared to attack whatever party remained master of the field ; so fell and implacable was the rancour which had taken possession of every breast, that not one pacific counsel, not a single overture towards accom- modation proceeded from either side. Unfortunately for Almagro, he was so worn out with the fatigues of service, to which his advanced age was unequal, that, at this crisis of his fate, he could not exert his wonted activity , and he was obliged to commit the leading his troops to Orgognez, who, though an officer of great merit, did not possess the same ascendant either over the spirit or affections of the soldiers, as the chief whom they had long been accustomed to follow and revere. The conflict was fierce, and maintained by each party with equal courage [April 26]. On the side of Almagro were more veteran soldiers, and a larger proportion of cavalry ; but these were counterbalanced by Pizarro's superiority in numbers, and by two companies of well disciplined musketeers, which, on receiving an account of the insurrection of the Indians, the emperor had sent from Spain.* As the use of fire-arms was not frequent among the adventurers in America,! hastily equipped for ser- vice, at their own expense, this small band of soldiers regularly trained and armed, was a novelty in Peru, and decided the fate of the day. Wherever it advanced, the weight of a heavy and well sustained fire bore down horse and foot before it ; and Orgognez, while he endeavoured to rally and animate his troops, having received a dangerous wound, the route became general.-. The barbarity of the conquerors stained the glory which they acquired by this complete victory. The violence of civil rage hurried on some to slaughter their countrymen with indiscriminate cruelty; the meanness of private revenge instigated others to single out individuals as the objects of their vengeance. Orgognez and several officers of dis- tinction were massacred in cold blood ; above a hundred and forty soldiers fell in the field ; a large proportion, where the number of combatants was few, and the heat of the contest soon over. Almagro, though so feeble that be could not bear the motion of a horse, had insisted on being carried in a litter to an eminence which overlooked the field of battle. From thence, in the utmost agitation of mind, he viewed the various movements of both parties, and at fast beheld the total defeat of bis own troops, with all the passionate indignation of a veteran leader long accustomed to ■^ Hcrrera. dec. fi. Uh. iii, c. K ' f Zarate. lib. iii. c. 8: AMERICA. 287 victory. He endeavoured to save himself by flight, but was taken prisoner, and guarded with the strictest vigilance.* The Indians, instead of executing the resolution which they had formed, retired quietly after the battle was over ; and in the history of the New World, there is not a more striking instance of the wonderful ascendant which the Spaniards had acquired over its inhabitants, than that, after seeing one of the contending parties ruined and dispersed, and the other weakened and fatigued, they had not courage to fall upon their enemies, when fortune presented an opportunity of attacking them with such ad- vantage. t Cuzco was pillaged by the victorious troops, who found there a con- siderable booty, consisting partly of the gleanings of the Indian treasures, and partly of the wealth amassed by their antagonists from the spoils of Peru and Chili. But so far did this, and whatever the bounty of their leader could add to it, fall below the high ideas of the recompense which they conceived to be due to their merit, that Ferdinand Pizarro, unable to gratify such extravagant expectations, had recouse to the same expedient which his brother had employed on a similar occasion, and endeavoured to find occupation for this turbulent assuming spirit, in order to prevent it from breaking out into open mutiny. With this view, he encouraged his most active officers to attempt the discovery and reduction of various pro- vinces which had not hitherto submitted to the Spaniards. To every standard erected by the leaders wlio undertook any of those new expe- ditions, volunteers resorted with the ardour and hope peculiar to the age. Several of Almagro's soldiers joined them, and thus Pizarro had the satis- faction of being delivered both from the importunity of his discontented friends, and the dread of his ancient enemies.^ Almagro himself remained for several months in custody, under all the anguish of suspense. For although his doom was determined by the Pizarros from the moment that he fell into their hands, prudence con- strained them to deter gratifying their vengeance, until the soldiers who had served under him, as well as several of their own Ibllovvers in whom they could not perfectly confide, had left Cuzco. As soon as they set out upon their different expeditions, Almagro was impeached of treason, formally tried, and condemned to die. The sentence astonished him ; and though he had often braved death with undaunted spirit in the field, its approach under this ignominious form appalled him so much, that he had recourse to abject supplications unworthy of his former fame. He be- sought the Pizarros to remember the ancient friendship between their bro- ther and him, and how much he had contributed to the prosperity oi' their family; he reminded them of the humanity with which, in opposition to the repeated remonstrances of his own most attached friends, he had spared their lives when he had them in his power ; he conjured them to pity his age and infirmities, and to suffer him to pass the wretched re- mainder of his days in bewailing his crimes, and in making his peace with Heaven. The entreaties, says a Spanish historian, of a man so much be- loved touched many an unfeeling heart, and drew tears from many a stern eye. But the brothers remained inflexible. As soon as Almagro knew his fate to be inevitable, he met it with the dignity and fortitude of a veteran. He was strangled in prison, and afterwards publicly beheaded. He suffered in the seventy-fifth year of his age, and left one son by an Indian woman of Panama, whom, though at that time a prisoner in Lima, he' named as successor to his government, pursuant to a power which the emperor had granted him.§ * Zarate, lib. iii. c. 11, 12. Vnga, p. 11. lib. ii. c. 36—38. Herrftia, doc. 6. lib. iii. c. 10—13. lib. iv. c. 1—6. t Zarate, lib. iii. c. II. Vfga, p. 11. lib. ii. c. 38. t Zaralc, lib. iii. r. 12. Comara Mist. c. 141. Herrera, dec. 6. lib. iv. c. 7. ^ Zarate, lib. iii. c. Vi. Guinara Hisi. r. 141. Vega, p. 11. lib. ii. c. 39. Herrera, dec. 6. lib. iv. c. 9. lib, v. f. 1. 288 H I y T O R Y O F [Book VI. 1539.] As, during the civil dissensions in Peru, all intercourse with Spain was suspended, the detail of the extraordinary transactions there did not soon reach the court. Unfortunately for the victorious faction, the first intelligence was brought thither by some of Ahiiagro's officers, who left the country upon the ruin of their cause ; ami they related what had happened, with every circumstance, unfavourable lo Pizarro and his brothers. Their ambition, their breach of the most solenm engagements, their violence and cruelty, were painted with all the malignity and exaggeration of party hatred. Ferdinand Pizarro, who arrived soon after, and appeared in court with extraordinary splendour, endeavoured to efface the impression which their accusations had made, and to justify his brother and himselt by repre- senting Almagro as the aggressor. The emperor and his mmisters, though they could not pronounce which of the contending factions was most criminal, clearly discerned the fatal tendency of their dissensions. It was obvious, that while the leaders, intrusted with the conduct of two infant colonies, employed the arms which should have been turned against the common enemy, in destroying one another, all attention to the puolic good must cease, and there was reason to dread that the Indians might improve the advantage which the disunion of the Spaniards presented to them, and extirpate both the victors and vanquished. But the evil was more apparent than the remedy. Where the intbrmation which had been received was so defective and suspicious, and the scene of action so remote, it was almost impossible to chalk out the line of conduct that ought to be followed ; and before any plan that should be approved of in Spain could be carried into execution, the situation of the parties, and the circumstances of affairs, might alter so entirely as to render its effects extremely pernicious. Nothing therefore remained, but to send a person to Peru, vested with extensive and discretionary power, who, after viewing deliberately the pos- ture of affairs with his own eyes, and inquiring upon the spot into the con- duct of the different leaders, should be authorized to establish the govern- ment in that form which he deemed most conducive to the interest of the parent state, and the welfare of the colony. The man selected for this important charge was Christoval Vaca de Castro, a judge in the court of royal audience at Valladolid ; and his abilities, integrity, and firmness justi- fied the choice. His instructions, though aniple, were not such as to fetter him in his operations. According to the dillerent aspect of affairs, he had power to take upon him different characters. If he found the governor still alive, he was to assume only the title of judge, to maintain the appear- ance of acting in concert with him, and to guard against giving any just cause of offence to a man who had merited so highly of his country. But if Pizarro were dead, he was intrusted with a commission that he might then Produce, by which he was appointed his successor in the government of eru. This attention to Pizarro, however, seems to have flowed rather from dread of his power than from any approbation of his measures ; for, at the very time that the court seemed so solicitous not to irritate him, his brother Ferdinand was arrested at Madrid, and confined to a prison, where he remained above twenty years.* 1540.] While Vaca de Castro was preparing for his voyage, events of great moment happened in Peru. The governor, considering himself, upon the death of Almagro, as the unrivalled possessor of that vast empire, pro- ceeded to parcel out its territories among the conquerors ; and had this division been made with any degree of impartiality, the extent of countiy which he had to bestow was sutficient to have gratified his friends, and to have gained his enemies. But Pizarro conducted this transaction, not with the equity and candour of a judge attentive to discover and to reward * nomara Hist. c. 14i Vcgn. p. II. lib. ii. c. 40. Ileirera. dec. 6. lih. viii. <•. 10. 11. lib. x. r I. AMERICA. 2v,9 luent, but wilh the illiberal spirit of a party leader. Large districts, in parts of the countiy most cultivated and populous, were set apart as his own property, or granted to his brothers, his adherents, and favourites. To others, lots less valuable and inviting were assigned. The followers of Ahnagro, amongst whom were many of the original adventurers to whose valour and perseverance Pizarro was indebted lor his success, were totally excluded from any portion in those lands, towards the acquisition of which they had contributed so largely. As the vanity of every individual set an immoderate value upon his own services, and the idea of each concern- ing the recompense due to them rose gradually to a more exorbitant height in proportion as Uieir conquests extended, all who were disappointed in their expectations exclaimed loudly against the rapaciousness and partiality of the governor. The partisans ot Almagro murmured in secret, and medi- tated revenge.* Rapid as the progress of the Spaniards in South America had been since Pizarro landed in Peru, their avidity of dominion was not yet satisfied. The officers to whom Ferdinand Pizarro gave the command of different detachments, penetrated into several new provinces ; and though some of them were exposed to great hardships in the cold and barren regions of the Andes, and others suffered distress not inferior amidst the wi ods and marshes of the plains, they made discoveries and conquests ^vhich not only extended their knowledge of the country, but added considerably to the territories of Spain and the Ne\v World. Pedro de Valdivia reassunied Almagro's scheme of invading Chili, and notwithstanding the fortitude of the natives in defending their possessions, made such progress in the conquest of the countiy, that he founded the city of St. Jago, and gave a be":inning to the establishment of the Spanish dominion in that province.! But of all the enterprises undertaken about this period, that of Gonzalo Pizarro was the most remarkable. The governor, who seems to have resolved that no person in Peru should possess any station of distinguished eminence or au- thority but those of his own family, had deprived Benalcazar, the conqueror of Quito, of his command in that kingdom, and appointed his brother Gon- zalo to take the government of it. He instructed him to attempt the discovery and conquest of the country to the east of the Andes, which, according to the information of the Indians, abounded with cinnamon and other valuable spices. Gonzalo, not inferior to any of his brothers in courage, and no less ambitious of acquiring distinction, eagerly engaged in this difficult service. He set out from Quito at the head of three hundred and forty soldiers, near one half of whom were horsemen ; with four thou- sand Indians to carry their provisions. In forcing their way through the defiles, or over the ridges of the Andes, excess of cold and fatigue, to neither of which they were accustomed, proved fatal to the greater part of their wretched attendants. The Spaniards, though more robust, and inured to a variety of climates, suffered considerably, and lost some men : but ■when they descended into the low country, their distress increased. During two months it rained incessantly, without any interval of fair weather long enough to dry their clothes. | The immense plains upon which they were now entering, either altogether without inhabitants, or occupied by the rudest and least industrious tribes in the New World, yielded little subsist- ence. They could not advance a step but as they cut a road through woods, or made it through marshes. Such incessant toil, and continual scarcity of food, seem more than sufficient to have exhausted and dispirited any troops. But the fortitude and pei-severance of the Spaniards in the sixteenth ceti- tuiy were insuperable. Allured by frequent but false accounts of rich countries before them, they persisted in struggling on, until they reached • Vega, p. 11. lib.iii. c. 2. Herrera, dw. C. lib. viii. c. 5. i T^arate, lib. iii. c. 13. OvaJle. lib. ii. c. 1, &c. i Zaralft, lib. iv, c. 2. 2y0 il ISTOKV OF (.IJookVI. the banks of tlie Coca or Napo, one of the large rivers whose waterspout into the JMaragnon, and contribute to its grandeur. There, with inhnile labour, they built a bark, which they expected would prove of great utility in conveying them over rivers, in procuring provisions, and in exploring the country. This was manned with fifty soldiers, under the command of Francis Orellana, the officer next in rank to Pizarro. The stream carried them down with such rapidity, that they were soon far ahead of their countiymen, who followed sloAvly and with difficulty by land. At this distance from his commander, Orellana, a young man of an aspi- ring mind, began to fancy himself independent ; and transported with the predominant passion of the age, he formed the scheme of distinguishing himself as a discoverer, by following the course of the Maragncn until it joined the ocean, and by surveying the vast regions through which it flows. This scheme of Orellana's was as bold as it was treacherous. For, if he be chargeable with the guilt of having violated his duty to his commander, and with having abandoned his fellow soldiers in a pathless desert, where they had hardly any hopes of success, or even of safety, but what were lounded on the service which they expected from the bark ; his crime is in some measure balanced by the glory of having ventured upon a navigation of near two thousand leagues, tnrough unknown nations, in a vessel hastily con- structed, with green timber, and by very unskilful hands, without pro- visions, without a compass, or a pilot. But his courage and alacrity supplied every delect. Committing himself fearlessly to the guidance of the stream, the Napo bore liim along to the south, until he reached the great channel of the Maragnon. Turning with it towards the coast, he held on his course in that direction. He made frequent descents on both sides of the river, sometimes seizing by force of arms the provisions of the fierce savages seated on its banks ; and sometimes procuring a supply of food by a friendly intercourse with more gentle tribes. After a long series ot dangers, whicu he encountered with amazing fortitude, and of distresses which he sup- ported with no less magnanimity, he reached the ocean [137], where new perils awaited him. ihese he likewise surmounted, and got safely to the- Spanish settlement in the island of Cubagua ; from thence he sailed to Spain. The vanity natural to travellei-s who visit regions unknown to the rest of mankind, and the art of an adventurer solicitous to magnify his own merit, concurred in prompting him to mingle an extraordinary proportion of the marvellous in the narrative of his voyage. He pretended to have dis- covered nations so rich that the roofs of their temples were covered with plates of gold ; and described a republic of wonien so warlike and power- ful, as to have extended their dominion over a considerable tract ot the fertile plains which he had visited. Extravagant as those tales were, they gave rise to an opinion, that a region abounding with gold, distinguished by the name of El Dorado, and a community of Amazons, were to be found in this part of the world ; and such is the propensity of mankind to believe what is wonderful, that it has been slowly and with difficult)' that reason and ob- servation have exploded those fables. The voyage, however, even when stripped of every romantic embellishment, deser\es to be recorded not only as one of the most memorable occurrences in that adventurous age, but as the first event which led to any certain knowledge of the extensive countries that stretch eastward from the Andes to the ocean.* No words can describe the consternation of Pizarro, when he did not find the bark at the corifluence of the Napo and Maragnon, where he had ordered Orellana to wait for him. He would not allow himself to suspect that a man, whom he had intrusted with sucli an important command, could be so base and so unfeeling as to desert him at such a juncture. But imputing his absence from the place of rendezvous to some unknown * Zaratp, lib. iv. c. 4, Gomara Ilist. c. 86. Vega, p. H. lib. iii. c. 4. Herrera, dec. 6. lib. xi. c, 3 — 5. Rodriguez el Maragnon y Amazoiias, lib. i. c. 3. AMERICA. 291 feccident, he advanced above fifty leagues along the banks ol the Maragnon, expecting eveiy moment to see the bark appear with a supply of provi- sions [l54l]. At length he came up with an officer whom Orellana had left to perish in the desert, because he had the courage to remonstrate against his perfidy. From him he learned the extent of Orellana's crime* and his followers perceived at once their own desperate situation, when deprived of their only resource. The spirit of the stoutest hearted vete- ran sunk w ithin him, and all demanded to be led back instantly. Pizarro> though he assumed an appearance of tranquillity, did not oppose their in- clination. But he was now twelve hundred miles irom Quito ; and in that long march the Spaniards encountered hardships greater than those which they had endured in their progress outward, without the alluring hopes "vvhich then soothed and animated them under their sufferings. Hunger compelled them to feed on roots and berries, to eat all their dc^s and horses, to devour the most loathsome reptiles, and even to gnaw the leather of their saddles and swordbelts. Four thousand Indians, and two hundred and ten Spaniards, perished in this wild disastrous expedition, which con- tinued near two years ; and as fifty men were aboard the bark with Orel- lana, only fourscore got back to l^uito. These were naked like savages» and so emaciated with famine, or worn out with fatigue, that they had more the appearance of spectres than of men.* But, instead of returning to enjoy the repose which his condition re* quired, Pizarro, on entering Quito, received accounts of a fatal event that threatened calamities more dreadful to him than those through which he had passed. From the time that his brother made that partial division of his conquests which has been mentioned, the adherents of Almagro, con* sidering themselves as proscribed by the party in power, no longer enter- tained any hope of bettering their condition. Great numbers in despair resorted to Lima, where the house of young Almagro was always open to them, and the slender portion of his father's fortune, which the governor alloAved him to enjoy, was spent in afibrding them subsistence. The warm attachment with which every person who had ser^•ed under the elder Al- magro devoted himself to his interests, was quickly transt'erred to his son, Avho Was now grown up to the age of manhood, and possessed all the qualities which captivate the affections of soldiers. Of a graceful appear- ance, dexterous at all martial exercises, bold, open, generous, he seemed to 1)6 formed for command : and as his father, conscious of his own inl'eriority from the total want of education, had been extremely attentive to have him instructed in every science becoming a gentleman ; the accomplisli- ments which he had acquired heightened the respect of his followers, as they gave him distinction and eminence among illiterate adventurers. In this young man the Almagrians ibund a point oT union w hich they wanted, and, looking up to him as their head, were ready to undertake any thing for his advancement. Nor was affection for Almagro their only incite- ment ; they were urged on by their own distresses. Many of them, des- titute oi common necessaries [l38], and weary of loitering away life, a burden to their chief, or to such of their associates as had saved some remnant of their fortune from pillage and confiscation, longed impatiently for an occasion to exert their activity and courage, and began to deliberate bow they might be avenged on the author of all their miseiy. Their fre- quent cabals did not pass unobserved ; and the governor was warned to be on his guard against men who meditated some desperate deed, and bad resolution to execute it. But either from the native intrepidit}- of bis mind, or from contempt of persons whose povertj' seemed to render their machinations of little consequence, he disregarded the admonitions of his friends. " Be in no pain," said be carelessly, " about my life ; it is per- * Zarate, lib. iv. c. 2 — 5. Ve«a, p. 11. lib. iii. r. 3. 4, 5. 14. Herrera. det. 6. Uh. vfti, c. 7, f\ lib. ix, c. J— 5. dec. 7. lib. iii. c. 14 Tirnr, Varon<-s lllu(=t 349, &r. 292 H 1 S T O K Y O F [Book VI. fectly safe, as long as every man in Peru knows that 1 can in a moment cut off" any head which dares to harbour a thought against it." This secu- rity gave the Almagrians full leisure to digest and ripen every part of their scheme ; and Juan de Herrada, an officer of great abilities, who had the charge of Almagro's education, took the direction of their consulta- tions with all the zeal which this connection inspired, and with all the au- thority which the ascendant that he was known to have over the mind of his pupil gave him. On Sunday the twenty-sixth of June, at mid-day, the season of tran- quillity and repose in all sultry climates, Herrada, at the head of eighteen of the most determined conspirators, sallied out of Almagro's house, in complete armour ; and, drawing their swords, as they advanced hastily towards the governor's palace, cried out, " Long live the King, hut let the tyrant die !" Their associates, warned of their motions by a signal, were in arms at different stations ready to support them. Though Pizarro was usually surrounded by such a numerous train of attendants as suited the magnificence of the most opulent subject of the age in which he lived ; yet as he was just risen from table, and most of his domestics had retired to their own apartments, the conspirators passed through the two outer courts of the palace unobserved. They were at the bottom of the stair- case before a page in waiting could give the alarm to his master, who was conversing with a few friends in a lai^e hall. The governor, whose steady mind no form of danger could appal, starting up, called for arms, and commanded Francisco de Chaves to make fast the door. But that officer, who did not retain so much presence of mind as to obey this prudent order, running to the top of the staircase, wildly asked the conspirators what they meant, and whither they were going ? Instead of answering, they stabbed him to the heart, and burst into the hall. Some of the per- sons who were there threw themselves from the windows ; others attempt- ed to fly ; and a few drawing their swords followed their leader into an inner apartment. The conspirators, animated with having the object of their vengeance now in view, rushed forward after them. Pizarro, with no other arms than his sword and buckler, defended the entry ; and, sup- ported by his half brother Alcantara, and his little knot of friends, he maintained the unequal contest with intrepidity worthy of his past exploits, and with the vigour of a youthful combatant. " Courage," cried he, " companions ! we are yet enow to make those traitors repent of their au- dacity." But the armour of the conspirators protected them, while every thrust they made took effect. Alcantara fell dead at his brother's feet ; his other defenders were mortally wounded. The governor, so weary that he could hardly wield his sword, and no longer able to parry the many weapons furiously aimed at him, received a deadly thrust full in his throat, sunk to the ground, and expired. As soon as be was slain, the assassins ran out into the streets, and, waving their bloody swords, proclaimed the death of the tyrant. Above two hundred of their associates having joined them, they conducted young Al- magro in solemn procession through the city, and, assembling the magis- trates and principal citizens, compelled them to acknowledge him as lawful successor to his father in his government. The palace of Pizarro, together with the houses of several of his adherents, was pillaged by the soldiers, who had the satisfaction at once of being avenged on their enemies, and of enriching themselves by the spoils of those through whose hands all the wealth of Peru had passed.* The boldness and success of the conspiracy, as well as the name and popular qualities of Almagro, drew many soldiers to his standard. Every adventurer of desperate fortune, all who were dissatisfied with Pizarro * Zarate, lib. iv. c. 6— s'. Gomara Hist. c. 144. 145. Vegs, p. 11. Hb. iii. r, 5— 7. Herrera, dec. 6. lib. X. c. 4—7. PizRrru Viir. Illust, ji. l«3. A Al E R I C A. 293 (and tVom the rapaciousness of his government in the latter years of his life the number of malecontents was considerable), declared without hesi- tation in favour of Almagro, and he was soon at the head of eight hundred of the most gallant veterans in Peru. As his youth and inexperience dis- qualified him from taking the command 6f them himself, he appointed Herrada to act as general. But though Almagro speedily collected such a respectable force, the acquiescence in his government was far from being general. Pizarro had left many friends to whom his memory was dear ; the barbarous assassination of a man to whom his country was so highly indebted, filled every impartial person with horror. 'I he ignominious birth of Almagro, as well as the doubtful title on which he founded his pretensions, led others to consider him as a usurper. The officers who commanded in some provinces refused to recognise his authority until it %vas confirmed by the emperor. In others, particularly at Cuzco, the royal standard was erected, and preparations were begun in order to revenge the murder of their ancient leader. Those seeds of discord, which could not have lain long dormant, acquired great vigour and activity when the arrival of Vaca de Castro was known. After a long and disastrous voyage, he was driven by stress of weather into a small harbour in the province of Popayan ; and proceeding from thence by land, after a journey no less tedious than difficult, he reached Quito. In his way he received accounts of Pizarro's death, and of the events which followed upon it. He immediately produced the royal commission appointing him governor of Peru, with the same privileges and authority ; and his jurisdiction was acknowledged without hesitation by Benalcazar, adelantado or lieutenant-general for the emperor in Popayan, and by Pedro de Puelles, who, in the absence of Gonzalo Pizarro, had the command of the troops left in Quito. Vaca de Castro not only assumed the supreme authority, but showed that he possessed the talents which the exercise of it at that juncture required. By his influence and address he soon assembled such a body of troops, as not only to set him above all fear of being exposed to any insult from the adverse party, but enabled him to advance Irom Quito with the dignity which became his character. By despatching persons of confidence to the different settlements in Peru with a formal notification of his arrival and of his commission, he commu- nicated to his countrymen the royal pleasure with respect to the govern- ment of the country. By private emissaries, he excited such officers as had discovered their disapprobation of Almagro's proceedings, to manifest their duty to their sovereign by supporting the person honoured with his commission. Those measures were productive of great effects. En- couraged by the approach of the new governor, or prepared by his machinations, the loyal were confirmed in their principles, and avowed them with greater boldness ; the timid ventured to declare their sentiments; the neutral and wavering, finding it necessary to choose a side, began to lean to that which now appeared to be the safest as well as the most just.* Almagro observed the rapid progress of this spirit of disaflection to his cause ; and in order to give an effectual check to it before the arrival of Vaca de Castro, he set out at the head of his troops for Cuzco [1542], where the most considerable body of opponents had erected the royal standard, under the command of Pedro Alvarez Holguin. During his march thither, Herrada, the skilful guide of his youth and of his counsels, died ; and from that time his measures were conspicuous for their violence, but concerted with little sagacity, rmd executed with no address. Holguin, who, with forces far interior to those of the opposite party, was descend- ♦ Benzon, lib. iii. c 9. Zaratc. lib. iv. c. 11. Gomar.i, c. HG, 147. Herrcra, dec. 6. lib. x. c. I, 2, 3. 7, &.C. 29-i HISTORY OF [BookVI. Jng towards flic coast at the veiy time that Almagro was on his way to Cuzco, deceived his inexperienced adversary by a very simple stratagem, avoided an engagement, and effected a junction with Alvarado, an officer of note, who had been the first to declare against Alniagro as a usurper. Soon after, Vaca de Castro entered their camp with the troops vs hich he brought from Quito ; and erecting the royal standard before his own tent, he declared that, as governor, he would discharge in person all the functions of general of their combined forces. Though termed by the tenor of his past life to the habits of a sedentary and pacitic profession, he at once assumed the activity and discovered the decision of an officer long accustomed to command. Knowing his strength to be now far supe- rior to that of the enemy, he was impatient to terminate the contest by a battle. Nor did the followers of Almagro, who had no hopes of obtaining a pardon for a crime so atrocious as the murder of the governor, decline that mode of decision. They met at Chupaz [Sept. 16], about two hun- dred miles from Cuzco, and fought with all the fierce animosity inspired by the violence of civil rage, the rancour of private enmity, the eagerness of revenge, and the last eflbrts of despair. Victory, after remaining long doubtful, declared at last for Vaco de Castro. The superior number of his troops, his own intrepidity, and the martial talents of Francisco de Carvajal, a veteran officer formed under the great captain in the wars of Italy, and who on that day laid the foundation of his future fame in Peru, triumphed over the braveiy of his opponents, though led on by young Almagro with a gallant spirit worthy of a better cause, and deserving another fate. The carnage was great in proportion to the number of the combatants. Many of the vanquished, especially such as were conscious that they might be charged with being accessary to the assassination of Pizarro, rushing on the swords of the enemy, chose to fall like soldiers rather than wait an ignominious doom. Ot fourteen hundred men, the total amount of combatants on both sides, five hundred lay dead on the field, and the number of the wounded was still greater.* If the military talents displayed by Vaca de Castro, both in the council and in the field, surprised the adventurers in Peru, they were still more astonished at his conduct after the victory. As he was by nature a rigid dispenser of justice, and persuaded that it required examples of extraor- dinary severity to restrain the licentious spirit of soldiers so far removed from the seat of government, he proceeded directly to try his prisoners as rebels. Forty were condemned to suffer the death of traitors, others were banished from Peru. Their leader, who made his escape from the battle, being betrayed by some of his officers, was publicly beheaded in Cuzco ; 3nd in him the name of Almagro, and the spirit of the party, was extinct.f During those violent convulsions in Peru, the emperor and his ministers were intently employed in preparing regulations, by which they hoped not only to re-establish tranquillity there, but to introduce a more perfect system of internal policy into all their settlements in the New World. It is manifest from all the events recorded in the history of America, that, rapid and extensive as the Spanish conquests there had been, they were not carried on by any regular exertion of the national force, but by the occasional efforts of private adventurers. After fitting out a few of tlie first armaments for discovering new regions, the court of Spain, during the busy reigns of Ferdinand and Charles V., the former the most intriguing prince ot the age, and the latter the most ambitious, was encumbered with such a multiplicity of schemes, and involved in war with so many nations of Europe, that he had not leisure to attend to distant and Jess interesting * V.arate, lib. iv. c. 12—10. Gomarn, r. 148. Vcsa, p. 11. lib. iii. c. U— 18. Herrera, dec. 7, ;ib. i. <•. 1, 2, ;i, lib. iii. c. 1—11. { ZarHU;, lib. iv. c, h. Gumarn, ( . l.W. Herrera, (1. ii. r. 10—18. * Ibid. lib. li. r. "JJ, &c. Zatate. lib. vj. n. P 7. Gomara, c. 175. Ws.i, p. 11. li;'. V. r. :< Vof,. J.— 3^ 3U6 HIS T O R Y OF [Book VI. They carried likewise secret instructions to Hinojosa, directing him to offer Gasca a present of fifty thousand pesos, if he would comply voluntarily with what was demanded of him ; and if he should continue obstinate, to cut him off, either by assassination or poison.* Many circumstances concurred in pushing on Pizarro to those wild mea- sures. Having been once accustomed to supreme command, he could not bear the thoughts of descending to a private station. Conscious of his own demerit, he suspected that the emperor studied only to deceive him, and would never pardon the outrages which he had committed. His chief confidants, no less guilty, entertained the same apprehensions. The ap- proach of Gasca without any military force excited no terror. There were now above six thousand Spaniards settled in Peru ;t and at the head of these he doubted not to maintain his own independence, if the court of Spain should refuse to grant what he required. But he knew not that a spirit of defection had already begun to spread among those whom he trusted most. Hinojosa, amazed at Pizarro's precipitate resolution of setting himself in opposition to the emperor's commission, and disdaining to be his instrument in perpetrating the odious crimes pointed out in his secret instructions, publicly recognised the title of the president to the supreme authority in Peru. The officers under his command did the same. Such was the contagious mfluence of the example, that it reached even the de- puties who had been sent from Peru ; and at the time when Pizarro ex- pected to hear either of Gasca's return to Spain, or of his death, he received an account of his being master of the tleet, of Panama, and of the troops stationed there. 1547.] Irritated almost to madness by events so unexpected, he openly prepared for war ; and in order to give some colour of justice to his arms, he appointed the court of audience in Lima to proceed to the trial of Gasca, for the crimes of having seized his ships, seduced his officers, and prevented his deputies from proceeding in their voyage to Spain. Cepeda, though acting as a judge in virtue of the royal commission, did not scruple to prostitute the dignity of his function by finding Gasca guilty of treason, and condemning him to death on that account.]; Wild and even ridiculous as this proceeding was, it imposed on the low illiterate adventurers, with whom Peru was filled, by the semblance of a legal sanction warranting Pizarro to carry on hostilities against a convicted traitor. Soldiers accoro- ingly resorted from every quarter to his standard, and he was soon at the head of a thousand men, the best equipped that had ever taken tlie field in Peru. Gasca, on his part, perceiving that force must be employed in order to accomplish the purpose of his mission, was no less assiduous in collecting troops from Nicaragua, Carthagena, and other settlements on the conti- nent ; and with such success, that he was soon in a condition to detach a squadron of his fleet, with a considerable body of soldiers, to the coast of Peru [April] Their appearance excited a dreadful alarm : and though they aid not attempt for some thne to make any descent, they did more effectual service by setting ashore in different places persons who dispersed copies of the act of general indemnity, and the revocation of the late edicts ; and who made known every where the pacific intentions, as well as mild temper, of the president. The effect of spreading this informa- tion was wonderful. All who were dissatisfied with Pizarro's violent administration, all who retained any sentiments of fidelity to their sovereign, began to meditate revolt. Some openly deserted a cause which they now deemed to be unjust. Centeno, leaving the cave in which lie lay concealed, » Zaratp, lib. vi. C.8. Fomandcz, lib. ii. c. 33. 34. Herrera, dec. 8. lib, il. c. 9, 1^. t Herrera, dec. 3. lib. iii. c. 1. * Fcrnaiidu/., lib. ii. c. J5. Vega, p. IJ. lib. v. c. 7. Herrera, doc. 3. lib. iii. r. 6. \ AMERICA. 307 ssembled about fifty of his former adhereDts, and with this feeble half-armed band advanced boldly to Cuzco. By a sudden attack in the night-time, in which he displayed no less military skill than valour, he rendered him- self master of that capital, though delended l)y a garrison ot five hundred men. Most of these having ranged themselves under bis banners, he had soon the command of a respectable body of troops.* Pizarro, though astonished at beholding one enemy approaching by sea, and another by land, at a time when he trusted to the union of all Peru in his tavour, was of a spirit more undaunted, and more accustomed to the vicissitudes of fortune, than to be disconcerted or appalled. As the danger from C'enteno's operations was the most urgent, he instantly set out to oppose him. Having provided horses for all his soldiers, he marched with amazing rapidity. But every morning he found his force diminished, by numbers who had left him during the night ; and though he became suspicious to excess, and punished without mercy all whom he suspected, the rage of desertion was too violent to be checked. Before he got within sight of the enemy at Huarina, near the lake of Titiaca, he could not muster more than four hundred soldiers. But these he justly con- sidered as men of tried attachment, on whom he might depend. They were indeed the boldest and most desperate of his followers, conscious, like himself, of crimes for which they could hardly expect forgiveness, and without any hope but in the success of their arms. With these he did not hesitate to attack Centeno's troops [Oct. 20], though double to his own in number. The royalists did not decline the comi»at. It was the most obstinate and bloody that had hitherto been fought in Peru. At length the intrepid valour of Pizarro, and the superiority of Carvajal's militaiy talents, triumphed over numbers, and obtained a complete victory. The booty was immense [141], and the treatment of the vanquished cruel. By this signal success the reputation of Pizarro was re-established ; and being now deemed invincible in the field, his army increased daily in number.! But events happened in other parts of Peru, which more than counter- balanced the splendid victory at Huarina. Pizarro had scarcely left Lima, when the citizens, weary of his oppressive dominion, erected the royal standard, and Aldana, with a detachment of soldiers from the fleet, took possession of the town. About the same time,J asca landed at Tunbez with five hundred men. Encouraged by his presence, every settlement in the low country declared for the King. The situation of the two parties was now perfectly reversed ; Cuzco and the adjacent provinces were possessed by Pizarro ; all the rest of the empire, from Quito south- ward, acknowledged the jurisdiction of the president. As his numbers augmented fast, Gasca advanced into the interior part of the countnr'. Jlis behaviour still continued to be gentle and unassuming ; he expressed, oil eveiy occasion, his ardent wish of terminating the contest without bloodshed. More solicitous to reclaim than to punish, he upbraided no man for past offences, but received them as a father receives penitent children returning to a sense of their duty. Though desirous of peace, he did .lot slacken his preparations for war. He appointed the general rendezvous of his troops in the fertile valley of Xauxa, on the road to Cuzco.§ There he remained for some months, not only that he might have ti ne to make another attempt towards an accommodation with Pizan'o. but that he might train his new soldiers to the use of arms, and accustom them to the aiscipline of a camp, before he led them against a body of victorious veterans. Pizarro, intoxicated with the success which * Zarate. ib. vi. c. 13— IC. Oomara, c. 180, 181. Femaudoz, lib. ii. c. 28. 64, *c. 1 TIarste, lib. vii. c. 2, ;f. (iomara, c. 181. Voga, p. II. lib. v. c. 18, &c. Fernandez, lib. Ii. c. 79. Hem'ta, dec. 8. lib^iv. c. 1, '^. J Zarate, lib. vi. r. 17. ^ Ibid. lib. vii. c. ft. Fornati^lcr, liD ii. c. T7..-2. 3oa HISTORY OF [Book VI. had hitherto accoinpanied his amis, and elated with having again near a thousand men under his command, refused to hsten to any terms, although Cepeda, tojj^ether with several of his officers, and even Carvajal him- self [l42j, gave it as their advice, to close with the president's offer of a general indemnity, and the revocation of the ohnoxious laws.* Gasca, having tried in vain every expedient to avoid imbruing his hands in the blood of his countrymen, began to move towards Cuzco [Dec. 29] at the head of sixteen hundred men. Pizarro, confident of victory, suffered the royalists to pass all the rivers which lie between Guamanga and Cuzco without opposition [1548], and to advance within four leagues of that capital, flattering himself tnat a defeat in such a situation as rendered escape impracticable would at once terminate the war. He then marched out to meet the enemy, and Carva- jal chose his ground, and made the disposition of the troops with the discerning eye and profound knowledge in the art of war conspicuous in all his operations. As the two armies moved forward slowly to the charge [April 9], the appearance of each was singular. In that of Pizarro, composed of men enriched with the spoils of the most opulent country in America, every officer, and almost all the private men, were clothed in stuffs of silk, or brocade, embroidered with gold and silver ; and their horses, their arms, their standards, were adorned with all the pride of military pomp.j That of Gasca, though not so splendid, exhibited what was no less striking. He himself, accompanied by the archbishop of Lima, the bishops of Quito and Cuzco, and a great number of ecclesiastics, marching along the lines, blessing the men, and encouraging them to a resolute discharge of their duty. When both armies were just ready to engage, Cepeda set spurs to his horse, galloped off, and surrendered himself to the president. Garcilasso de la Vega, and other officers of note, followed his example. The revolt of persons in such high rank struck all with amazement. The mutual con- fidence on which the union and strength of armies depend, ceased at once. Distrust and consternation spread from rank to rank. Some silently slipped away, others threw down their arms, the greatest number went over to the royalists. Pizarro, Carvajal, and some leaders, employed authority, threats, and entreaties, to stop them, but in vain. In less than half an hour, a body of men, which might have decided the fate of the Peruvian empire, was totally dispersed. Pizarro, seeing all irretrievably lost, cried out in amazement to a few officers who still faithfully adhered to him, " What remains for us to do ?" — " Let us rush," replied one of them, " upon the enemy's firmest battalion, and die like Romans." Dejected with such a reverse of fortune, he had not spirit to follow this soldierly counsel, and with a tameness disgraceful to his former fame he surrendered to one of Gasca's officers. Carvajal, endeavouring to escape, was over- taken and seized. Gasca, happy in this bloodless victory, did not stain it with cruelty. Pizarro, Carvajal, and a small number of the most distinguished or noto- rious offenders, were punished capitally. Pizarro was beheaded the day after he surrendered. He submitted to his fate with a composed dignity, and seemed desirous to atone by repentance for the crimes which he had committed. The end of Carvajal was suitable to his life. On his trial he offered no defence. When the sentence adjudging him to be hanged was pronounced, he carelessly replied, "One can die but once." During the interval between the sentence and execution, he discovered no sign either of remorse for the past, or of solicitude about the future ; scoffing at ail who visited him, in his usual sarcastic vein of mirth, with the same quickness of repartee and gross pleasantly as at any other period of his * '/aratc, lib. vil. c. fi. Vega, p. 11. lib. v c. 2" t Zarate, lib. vi. c. II. AMERICA. 309 life. Cepeda, more criminal than either, ou^ht to have shared the same fate ; but the merit of having deserted his associates at such a critical moment, and with such decisive effect, saved him from immediate punishment. He was sent, however, as a prisoner to Spain, and died in confinement.* In the minute details which the contemporary historians have given of the civil dissensions that raged in Peru, with little interruption, during ten years, many circumstances occur so striking, and which indicate such an uncommon state of manners as to merit particular attention. Though the Spaniards who first invaded Peru were of the lowest order in society, and the greater part of those who afterwards joined them were persons of desperate fortune, yet in all the bodies of troops brought into the field by the different leaders who contended for superiority, not one man acted as a hired soldier, that follows his standard for pay. Eveiy adventurer in Peru considered himself as a conqueror, entitled by his ser- vices, to an establishment in that country which had been acquired by his valour. In the contests between the rival chiefs, each chose his side as he was directed by his own judgment or affections. He joined his com- mander as a companion of his fortunes, and disdained to degrade himself by receiving the wages of a mercenary. It was to their sword, not to pre-eminence in office, or nobility of birth, that most of the leaders whom they followed were indebted for their elevation ; and each of their ad- herents hoped, by the same means, to open a way for himself to the pos session of power and wealth.! But though the troops in Peru served without any regular pay, they were raised at immense expense. Among men accustomed to divide the spoils of an opulent countiy, the desire of obtaining wealth acquired in- credible force. The ardour of pursuit augmented in proportion to the hope of success. Where all. were intent on the same object, and under the dominion of the same passion, there was but one mode of gaining men, or of securing their attachment. Officers of name and influence, besides the promise of future establishments, received in hand large gratuities from the chief with whom they engaged. Gonzalo Pizarro, in order to raise a thousand men, advanced five hundred thousand pesos. J Gasca expended in levyingthe troops which he led against Pizarro nine hundred thousand pesos. § The distribution of property, bestowed as the reward of services, was still more exorbitant. Cepeda, as the recompense of his perfidy and address, in persuading the court of royal audience to give the sanction of its authority to the usurped jurisdiction of Pizarro, received a grant of lands which yielded an annual income of a hundred and fifty thousand pesos.'l Hinojosa, who by his early defection from Pizarro, and surrender of the fleet to Gasca, decided the fate of Peru, obtained a district of coun- try affording two hundred thousand pesos of yearly value. H While such rewards were dealt out to the principal officers, with more than royal mu- nificence, proportional shares were conferred upon those of inferior rank. Such a rapid change of fortune produced its natural effects. It gave birth to new wants and new desires. Veterans, long accustomed to hard- ship and toil, acquired of a sudden a taste for profuse and inconsiderate dissipation, and indulged in all the excesses of military licentiousness. The riot of low debauchejr occupied some ; a relish for expensive luxuries spread among others.** The meanest soldier in Peru would have thought himself degraded by marching on foot ; and at a time when the prices of horses in that country were exorbitant, each insisted on being furnished with one before he would take the field. But though less patient under the fatigue and hardships of service, they were ready to face danger and ♦ Zarate, lib. vii. c. 6, 7, 8. Gomara, c. 185, 1F6. Vega, p. 11. lib. v. c. 30, &c. Fernandez, lib. ii. c. H6, &c. Herrera, dec. 8. lib. iv, c. 14, &c. t Veca, p. 11. lib. iv. c. .18. 41. J Fpr- nandez, lib. ii. c. 54 6 Zarate, lib. vii. c. 10. Herrera, dec. 8. lib. v. c. 7. || Gomara, c. 164. T Vega, p. 11. lib. vi. c. 3. ♦• Herrera. dec. 5. lib. ii. c. 3. dec. 8 lib. viii. c. 10, 310 HISTORY OF [Book VI. death with as much intrepidity as ever ; and animated by the hope of new rewards, they never failed, on the day of battle, to display ail their ancient valour. Together with their courage, they retained all the ferocity by which they were originally distinguished. Civil discord never raged with a more fell spirit than among the Spaniards in Peru. To all the passions which usually envenom contests airiong counhymen, avarice was added, and ren- dered their enmity more rancorous. Eagerness to seize the valuable for- feitures, expected upon the death of every opponent, shut the door against mercy. To be wealthy was of itself sufficient to expose a man to accu- sation, or to subject him to punishment. On the slightest suspicions, Pi- zarro condemned many of the most opulent inhabitants in Peru to death. Carvajal, without searching for any pretext to justify his cruelty, cut off many more. The number of those who suffered by the hands of the exe- cutioner was not much inferior to what fell in the field [l 43]; and the greater part was condemned without the formality of any legal trial. The violence with which the contending parties treated their opponents was not acaimpanied with its usual attendants, attachment and fidelity to those with whom they acted. The ties of honour, which ought to be held sacred among soldiers, and the principle of integrity, interwoven as thoroughly in the Spanish character as in that of any nation, seem to have lieen equally fbro;otten. Even regard for decency, and the sense of shame, were totally lost. During their dissensions, there was hardly a Spaniard in Peru who did not abandon the party which he had originally espoused, betray the associates with whom he had united, and violate the engagements under which he had come. The viceroy Nugnez Vela was mined by the treacheiy of Cepeda and the other judges of the royal au- dience, who were bound by the duties of their function to have supported his authority. The chief advisers and companions of Gonzalo Pizarro's revolt were the first to forsake him, and submit to his enemies. His fleet was given up to Gasca by the man whom he had singled out among his nificers to intrust with that important command. On the day that was to decide his fate, an army of veterans, in sight of the enemy, threw down their arms without striking a blow, and deserted a leader who had often conducted them to victory. Instances of such general and avowed con- tempt of the principles and obligations which attach man to man, and bind them together in social union, rarely occur in history. It is only where men are far removed from the seat of government, where the restraints of law and order are little felt, where the prospect of gain is unbounded, and where immense wealth may cover the crimes by which it is acquired, that we can find any parallel to the levity, the rapaciousness, the perfidy, and corruption prevalent among the Spaniards in Peru. On the death of Pizarro, the malecontents in every comer of Peru laid down their arms, and tranquillity seemed to be perfectly re-established. But two very interesting objects still remained to occupy the president's ;;ttention. The one was to find immediately such employment for a mul- titude of turbulent and daring adventurers with which the country was filled, as might prevent them from exciting new commotions. The other, to bestow proper gratifications upon those to whose loyalty and valour he had been indebted for his success. The former of these was in some measure accomplished, by appointing Pedro de Valdivia to prosecute the conquest of Chili ; and by empowering Diego Centeno to undertake the discovery of the vast regions bordering on the river De la Plata. The re- putation of those leaders, together with the hopes of acquiring wealth, and of rising to consequence in some unexplored countr}', alluring many of the most indigent and des])erate soldiers to follow their standards, drained ofF r)0 inconsiderable portion of that mutinous spirit which Gasca dreaded. The !:itter was rm affair of greater diflic-.ilty, and to be adjusted wjth a AMERICA. Ml more attentive and delicate hand. The repnrtimientos, or allotments of lands and Indians which fell to be distributed, in consequence of the death or forfeiture of the former possessors, exceeded two millions of pesos of yearly rent.* Gasca, when now absolute master of this immense property, retained the same disinterested sentiments which he had originally pro- fessed, and refused to reserve the smallest portion of it for himself. But the number of claimants was great ; and whilst the vanity or avarice of every individual tixed the value of his own services, and estimated the recompense which he thought due to him, the pretensions of each were so extravagant that it was impossible to satisfy all. Gasca listened to them one by one, with the most patient attention ; and that he mi^ht have leisure to weigh the comparative merit of their several claims with accu- racy, he retired, with the archbishop of Lima and a single secretary, to a village twelve leagues from Cuzco. There he spent several days in allot- ting to each a district of lands and number of Indians, in proportion to his idea of their past services and future importance. But that he might get beyond the reach of the fierce storm of clamour and rage, which he fore- paw would burst out on the publication of his decree, notwithstanding the impartial equity with which he had framed it, he set out for Lima, leaving the instrument of partition sealed up, with orders not to open it for some days after his departure. The indignation excited by publishing the decree of partition [Aug. 24] was not less than Gasca had expected. Vanity, avarice, emulation, envy, shame, rage, and all the other passions which most vehemently agitate the minds of men when both their honour and their interest are deeply aflfect- ed, conspired in adding to its violence. It broke out with all the fury of military insolence. Calumny, threats, and curses, were poured out openly upon the president. He was accused of ingratituae, of partiality, and of injustice. Among soldiers prompt to action, such seditious discourse would have been soon followed by deeds no less violent, and they already began to turn their eyes towards some discontented leaders, expecting them to^ stand forth in redress of their wrongs. By some vigorous interpositions oi government, a timely check was given to this mutinous spirit, and the dan- ger of another civil war was averted tor the present.! 1549.1 Gasca, however, perceiving that the tlame was suppressed, rather than extinguished, laboured with the utmost assiduity to soothe the maleconlents, by bestowing large gratuities on some, by promising repar- iimientos, when they fell vacant, to others, and by caressing and nattering all. But that the public security might rest on a foundation more stable than their good affection, he endeavoured to strengthen the hands of his successors in office, by re-establishing the regular administration of justice in every part of the empire. He introduced order and simplicity into the mode of collecting the royal revenue. He issued regulations concerning the treatment of the Indians, well calculated to protect them from oppres- sion, and to provide for their instruction in the principles of religion, with- out depriving the Spaniards of the benefit accruing from their labour. Having now accomplished every object of his mission, Gasca, longing to return again to a private station, committed the government of Peru to the court of audience, and set out for Spain [Feb. 1, 1550]. As, during the anarchy and turbulence of the four last years, there had been no remit- tance made of the royal revenue, he carried with him thirteen hundred thousand pesos of public money, which the economy and order of his ad- ministration enabled him to save, after paying all the expenses of the war. He was received in his native country with universal admiration of Iiis • Vega, p. U. lib. vi. c. 4. t Zarate, lib. vii. c. 9. Gumara, c. ]87. Vega, p. 11. lib. vit. e. V &r. Fernandez, p. 11. lib. i. r 1, &r. Herrera, dec. P. lib. iv. ( . 17, &e. 31^2 HISTORY OF [BookVI. abilities and of his virtue. Both were, indeed, highly conspicuous. With- out army, or fleet, or public funds ; with a train so simple, that only three thousand ducats were expended in equipping him,* he set out to oppose a formidable rebellion. By his address and talents he supplied all those defects, and seemed to create instruments for executing his designs. He acquired such a naval force as gave him the command of the sea. He raised a body of men able to cope with the veteran bands which gave law to Peru. He vanquished their leader, on whose ;irms victory had hitherto attended, and in place of anarchy and usurpation, he established the government of laws, and the authority of the righttul sovereign. But the praise bestowed on his abilities was exceeded by that which his virtue merited. After residing in a country where wealth presented allurements Avhich had seduced every person who had hitherto possessed power there, he returned from that trying station with integrity not only untainted but unsuspected. After distributing among his countrymen possessions of greater extent and value than had ever been in the disposal of a subject in any age or nation, he himself remained in his original state of poverty ; and at the very time when he brought such a large recruit to the royal treasury, he was obliged to apply by petition for a small sum to discharge some petty debts which he had contracted during the course of his service.! Charles was not insensible to such disinterested merit. Gasca was re- ceived by him with the most distinguishing marks of esteem ; and being promoted to the bishopric of Palencia, he passed the remainder of his days in the tranquillity of retirement, respected by his country, honoured by his sovereign, and beloved by all. Notwithstanding all Gasca's wise regulations, the tranquillity of Peru was not of long continuance. In a country where the authority of government had been almost forgotten during the long prevalence of anarchy and misrule, where there were disappointed leaders ripe for re- volt, and seditious soldiers ready to follow them, it was not difficult to raise combustion. Several successive insurrections desolated the country for some years. But as those, though tierce, were only transient storms, excited rather by the ambition and turbulence of particular men, than by general or public motives, the detail of them is not the object of this his- tory. These commotions in Peru, like every thing of extreme violence either in the natural or political body, were not of long duration ; and by carrying otF the corrupted humours which had given rise to the disorders, they contributed in the end to strengthen the society which at first they threatened to destroy. During their fierce contests, several of the first invaders of Peru, and many of those licentious adventurers whom the fame of their success had allured thither, fell by each other's hands. Each of the parties, as they alternately prevailed in the struggle, gradually cleared the country of a number of turbulent spirits, by executing, proscribing, or banishing their opponents. Men less enterprising, less desperate, and more accustomed to move in the path of sober and peaceable industry, settled in Peru ; and the royal authority was gradually established as firmly there as in other Spanish colonies. * Ffrnande/., lib. ii. c. 18. f MS. penes ipp. AMERICA. 313 BOOK VII. As the conquest of the two great empires of Mexico and Peru forms the most splendid and interesting period in the history of America, a view ot their political institutions, and a description of their national manners, will exhibit the human species to the contemplation of intelligent observers in a very singular stage of its progress. [144] When compared with other parts of the New World, Mexico and Peru may be considered as polished states. Instead of small, independent, hos- tile tribes, struggling for sul)8istence amidst woods and marshes, strangers to industry and arts, unacquainted with subordination, and almost without the appearance of regular government, we find countries of great extent subjected to the dominion of one sovereign, the inhabitants collected together in cities, the wisdom and foresight of rulers employed in providing for the maintenance and security of the people, the empire of laws in some measure established, the authority of religion recognised, many of the arts essential to life brought to some degree of maturity, and the dawn of such as are ornamental beginning to appear. But if the comparison be made with the people of the ancient continent, the inferiority of America in improvement will be conspicuous, and neither the Mexicans nor Peruvians will be entitled to rank with those nations which merit the name of civilized. The people of both the great empires in America, like the rude tribes around them, were totally unacquainted with the useful metals, and the progress which they had made in extend- ing their dominion over the animal creation was inconsiderable. The ]\!lexicans had gone no further than to tame and rear turkeys, ducks, a species of small dogs, and rabbits.* By this feeble essay of ingenuity, the means of subsistence were rendered somewhat more plentiful and secure than when men depend solely on hunting ; but they had no idea of at- tempting to subdue the more robust animals, or of deriving any aid from their ministry in carrying on works of labour. The Peruvians seem to have neglected the inferior animals, and had not rendered any of them domestic except the duck ; but they were more fortunate in faming the Llama, an animal peculiar to their country, of a form which f)ears some resemblance to a deer, and some to a camel, and is of a size somewhat larger than a sheep. TJnder the protection of man, this species multiplied greatly. Its wool furnished the Peruvians with clothing, its flesh with food. It was even employed as a beast of burden, and carried a moderate load with much patience and docility.! It was never used for draught ; and the breed being confined to the mountainous country, its service, ii we may judge by incidents which occur in the early Spanish writers, was not very extensive among the Peruvians in their original state. In tracing the line by which nations proceed towards civilization, the discovery of the useful metals, and the acquisition of dominion oyer the animal creation, have been marked as steps of capital importance in their progress. In our continent, long after men had attained both, society con- tinued in that state which is denominated barbarous. Even with all that command over nature which these confer, many ages elapse before indus- try becomes so regular as to render subsistence secure, before the arts which supply the wants and furnish the accommodations of life are brought to any considerable degree of perfection, and before any idea is conceived of various institutions requisite in a well ordered society. The Mexicans * Ilcrrnra, dec. 11. lib. vii. c 12. t Vesja. p. I. lib. viii. c. 16. Zarato. lib. 1. c. 14. Vol. I.— 40 .il4 HISTORY OF [BookVU. and Peruvians, without knowledge of the useful metals, or the aid of domestic animals, laboured under disadvantages which must have greatly retarded their progress, and in their highest state of improvement their power was so limited, and their operations so feeble, that they can hardly be con- sidered as having advanced beyond the infancy of civil life. After this general observation concerning the most singular and distin- guishing circumstance in the state of both tne great empires in America, I shall endeavour to give such a view of the constitution of the interior police of each as may enable us to ascertain their place in the political scale, to allot them their proper station between the rude tribes in the New World, and the polished states of the ancient, and to determine how far they had risen above the former, as well as how much they fell below the latter. Mexico was first subjected to the Spanish crown. But our acquaintance with its laws and manners is not, from that circumstance, more complete. What I have remarked concerning the defective and inaccurate informa- tion on which we must rely with respect to the condition and customs of the savage tribes in America, may be applied likewise to our knowledge of the Mexican empire. Cortes, and the rapacious adventurers who ac- companied him, had not leisure or capacity to enrich either civil or natu- ral histoiy with new observations. They undertook their expedition in quest of one object, and seemed hardly to have turned their eyes towards any other. Or, if during some short interval of tranquillity, when the oc- cupations of war ceased, and the ardour of plunder was suspended, the institutions and manners of the people whom they invaded, drew their attention, the inquiries of illiterate soldiers were conducted with so little sagacity and precision, that the accounts given by them of the policy and order esta!)lished in the Mexican monarchy are superficial, confusea, and inexplicable. It is rather from incidents which they relate occasionally, than from their own deductions and remarks, that we are enabled to form some idea of the genius and manners of that people. The obscurity in which the ignorance of its conquerors involved the annals of Mexico, was augmented by the superstition of those who succeeded them. As the memory of past events was preserved among the Mexicans by figures painted, on skins, on cotton cloth, on a kind of pasteboard, or on the bark of trees, the early missionaries, unable to comprehend their meaning, and struck with their uncouth Ibrms, conceived them to be monuments of idolatry, which ought to be destroyed in order to facilitate the conversion of the Indians. In obedience to an edict issued by Juan de Zummaraga, a Franciscan monk, the first bishop of Mexico, as many records of the ancient Mexican story as could be collected were committed to the flames. In consequence of this fanatical zeal of the monks who first visited New Spain (which their successors soon began to lament), whatever knowledge ot remote events such rude monuments contained was almost entirely lost, and no information remained concerning the ancient revolutions and policy of the empire, but what was derived from tradition, or from some fragments of their historical paintings that escaped the barbarous researches of Zum- maraga.* From the experience of all nations it is manifest, that the memory of past transactions can neither be long preserved, nor be trans- mitted with any fidelity, by tradition. The Mexican paintings which are supposed to have served as annals of their empire, are few in number, and of ambiguous meaning. Thus, amidst the uncertainty of the former, and the obscurity of the latter, we must glean what intelligence can be col- lected from the scanty materials scattered in the Spanish writers-t * Acosia, lib. vi. c. 7. Torquem. Proem, lib ii. lib. iii. c. C. lib. xiv. c 6. t In the firnt edition, I obsieived that in consequence of the dootruction of the antient Mexican piuiitinjis, occasioned hy the wal of '/nnnnaraga, whatever knowledge Ihey mifiht have conveyed was entirely lost. Every candid reader must have pfrceivcd tliat the expression was inaccurate ; I AMERICA. 315 According- to the account of the Mexicans themselves, their empire was not of long duration. Their country, as they relate, was originally pos- sessed, rather than peopled, by small independent tribes, whose mode of life and manners resembled those of the rudest savages which we have described. But about a period corresponding to the beginning of the tenth century in the Christian era, several tribes moved in successive mi- grations from unknown regions towards the north and north-west, and set- Ued in different provinces of Anahuac, the ancient name of New Spain. These, more civilized than the original inhabitants, began to form them to the arts of social life. At length, towards the commencement of the thir- teenth century, the Mexicans, a people more polished than any of the former, advanced from the border of the Californian gulf, and took pos- session of the plains adjacent to the great lake near the centre of the coun- try. After residing there about fitty years, they founded a town, since distinguished by the name of Mexico, which, from humble beginnings, soon grew to be the most considerable city in the New World. Tne Mexicans, long after they were established in their new possessions, con- tinued, like other martial tribes in America, unacquainted with regal dominion, and \vere governed in peace, and conducted in war, by such as Avere entitled to pre-eminence by their wisdom or their valour. But among them, as in other states whose power and territories become extensive, the supreme authority centred at last in a single person ; and when the Span- iards under Cortes invaded the countiy, Aiontezuma was the ninth monarch in order who had swayed the Mexican sceptre, not by hereditary right, but by election. Such is the traditional tale of the Mexicans concerning the progress of their own empire. According to this, its duration was very short. From the first migration of their parent tribe, they can reckon little more than three hundred years. From the establishment of monarchical government, not above a hundred and thirty years according to one account,* or a hun- dred and ninety-seven according to another computation,! had elapsed. If, on one hand, we suppose the Mexican state to have been of higher antiquity, and to have subsisted during such a length of time as the Span- ish accounts of its civilization would naturally lead us to conclude, it is difficult to conceive how, among a people who possessed the art of record- as in a few lines afterwards I mention some ancient paintings to be still extant. M. Clavigero, not salinfipd with layini; hold of this inaccuiacj-, which I corrected in the subwquent editions, labours to render it more glaring by the maimer in wliirh he quotes the remaining part of the sentence. He reprehends with great asperity the account which 1 gave of the scanty materials for writing tlie ancient history of Mexico. Vol. I. Account of Writers, p. xxvi. Vol. II. 380. My words, however, are almost the same with those of Torqucmada, who seems to have been better acquainted with the ancient monuments of the Mexicans than any Spanish aiiihor whose works I have seen. Lib. xiv. c. G. M. Clavigero himself jiives a description of the destnic'ioii of ancient paintings in almost the same terms I have used : and mentions as an additional reason of there being so small a number of ancient paintings known to the Spaniards, thai the natives have become so solicitous to preserve and conceal them, that it is " difficult, if not impossible, to make them part with one of them." Vol. 1. 407. II. 194. No point can be more aecortained than that few of the Mexican historical paintings have been preserved. Though several Spaniards have carried on inquiries into the antiquities of the Mexican empire, no engravings from Mexican paintings have been communicated to the public, except those by Purchas, Gemelli Carreri, and Lorenzana. It aflords me some satisfaction, that in the course of my researches I have discovered two collections of Mexican paintings which were unknown to former inquirers. The cut which I published is an exact copy of the original, and pves no high idea of the progress which the Mexicans had madi^ in the art of painting. I cannot conjec- ture what could induce M. Clavigero to express some dissatisfaction with me for having puhlished it without the same colours it has in the original painting, p. xxix. He might have recollected, that neither Purchas, nor Gemelli Carreri, nor Lorenzana, thought it necessary to colour the prints which they have published, and they have never been censured on that account. He may rcKt assured, that though the colours in the paintings in the Imperial Library are remarkably bright, they are laid on without art, and without "any of that regard to light and shade, or the rules of perspective," which M. Clavijjero reipiires. Vol. H. 378. If the public express any desire to have the seven paintings still in my possession engraved, I am ready to communicate them. The print published by Gemelli Carreri, of the rcte of the ancient Mexicans when they travelled towards the lake on which they built the capital of their empire, (Churchill, Vol. IV. p. 481.) is tlie most finished monu- ment of art brought from the New World, and yet a very slight inspection of it will satisfy every one, that the annals of a nation conveyed in this manner must be very meagre and imperfect. • Aeosf. Hist. lib. vii r. f. 4r. * rurchasPllgr, iii. p. 1068, fcc. 316 HISTORY OF [BookVII. ing events by pictures, and who considered it as an essential part of their national education, to teach their children to repeat the historical songs which celebrated the exploits of their ancestors,* the knowledge of past transactions should be so slender and limited. If, on the other hand, we adopt their own system with respect to the antiquities of their nation, it is no less difficult to account either for that improved state of society, or for the extensive dominion to which their empire had attained when hrst visit- ed by the Spaniards. The infancy of nations is so long, and, even when every circumstance is favourable to their progress, they advance so slowly towards any maturity of strength or policy, that the recent origin of the Mexicans seems to be a strong presumption of some exaggeration in the splendid descriptions which have been given of their government and manners. But it is not by theory or conjectures that history decides with regard to the state or character of nations. It produces facts as the foundation of every judgment which it ventures to pronounce. In collecting those which must regulate our opinion in the present inquiry, some occur that suggest an idea of considerable progress in civilization in the Mexican empire, and others which seem to indicate that it had advanced but little beyond the savage tribes around it. Both shall be exhibited to the view of the reader, that, from comparing them, he may determine on which side the evidence preponderates. In the Mexican empire, the right of private property was perfectly un- derstood, and established in its full extent. Among several savage tribes, we have seen, that the idea of a title to the separate and exclusive pos- session of any object was hardly known ; and that among all it was extremely limited and ill defined. But in Mexico, where agriculture and industry had made some progress, the distinction between property in land and property in goods had taken place. Both might be transfierred from one person to another by sale or barter ; both might descend by inherit- ance. Every person who could be denominated a freeman had property in land. This, however, they held by various tenures. Some possessed it in full right, and it descended to their heirs. The title of others to their lands was derived from the office or dignity which they enjoyed ; and when deprived of the latter, they lost possession of the former. Both these modes of occupying land were deemed noble, and peculiar to citi- zens of the highest class. The tenure by which the great body of the people held their property, was very different. In every district a certain quantity of land was measured out in proportion to the number of families. This was cultivated by the joint labour of the whole ; its produce was deposited in a common storehouse, and divided among them according to their respective exigencies. The members of the Calpullee, or associa- tions, could not alienate their share of the common estate ; it was an indi- visible permanent property, destined for the support of their families.! In consequence of^ this distribution of the territory of the state, every man had an mterest in its welfare, and the happiness of the individual was connected with the public security. Another striking circumstance, which distinguishes the Mexican empire from those nations in America we have already described, is the number and greatness of its cities. While society continues in a rude state, the wants of men are so few, and they stand so little in need of mutual as- sistance, that their inducements to crowd together are extremely feeble. Their industry at the same time is so imperfect, that it cannot secure sub- sistence for any considerable number of families settled in one spot. They live dispersed, at this period, from choice, as well as from neces- sity, or at the utmost assemble in small hamlets on the banks of the river * Henrera, dec. 3. lib. ii. c. 18. t Herrnra. Hpc. 3. lih. iv. c. 15. Torqurm. Mon. Ind. lib. xiv. e. 7. Porita MS. AMERICA. 317 which supplies them with food, or on the border of some plain left open by nature, or cleared by their own labour. The Spaniards, accustomed to this mode of habitation among all the savage tribes with which they were hitherto acquainted, were astonished, on entering New Spain, to find the natives residing in towns of such extent as resembled those of Europe. In the first fervour of their admiration, they compared Zempoalla, though a town only of the second or third size, to the cities of greatest note in their own country. When, afterwards, they visited in succession Tlascala, Cholula, Tacuba, Tezeuco, and Mexico itself, their amazement increased so much, that it led them to convey ideas of their magnitude and popu- lousness bordering on what is incredible. Even when there is leisure for observation, and no interest that leads to deceive, conjectural estimates of the number of people in cities are extremely loose, and usually much exaggerated. It is not surprising, then, that Cortes and his companions, little accustomed to such computations, and powerfully tempted to mag- nify, in order to exalt the merit of their own discoveries and conquests, should have been betrayed into this common eiror, and have raised their descriptions considerably above truth. For this reason, some considerable abatement ought to be made from their calculations of the number of in- habitants in the Mexican cities, and we may fix the standard of their popu- lation much lower than they have done ; but still they will appear to be cities of such consequence as are not to be found but among people who have made some considerable progress in the arts of social life [l45]. From their accounts, we can hardly suppose Mexico, the capital of the enipire, to have contained fewer than sixty thousand inhabitants. The separation of professions among the Mexicans is a symptom of im- provement no less remarkable. Arts, in the early ages of society, are so few and so simple, that each man is sufficiently master of them all, to gratify every demand of his own limited desires. The savage can form his bow, point his arrows, rear his hut, and hollow his canoe, without calling in the aid of any hand more skilful than his own. Time must have augmented the wants of men, and ripened their ingenuity, before the pro- ductions of art became so complicated in their structure, or so curious in their fabric, that a particular course of education was requisite towards forming the artificer to expertness in contrivance and workmanship. In proportion as refinement spreads, the distinction of protessions increases, and they branch out into more numerous and minute subdivisions. Among the Mexicans, this separation of the arts necessary in life had taken place to a considerable extent. The functions of the mason, the weaver, the goldsmith, the painter, and of several other crafts, were carried on by different persons. Each was regularly instructed in his calling. To it alone his industry was confined, and by assiduous application to one object^ together with the persevering patience peculiarto Americans, their artisans attained to a degree of neatness and perfection in work, far beyond what could have been expected from the rude tools which they employed. Their various productions were brought into commerce ; and by the ex- change of them in the stated markets held in the cities, not only were their mutual wants supplied,* in such orderly intercourse as characterizes an improved state of society, but their industry was daily rendered per- severing and inventive. The distinction of ranks established in the Mexican empire, is the next cir- cumstance that merits attention. In surveying the savage tribes of America, we observed, that consciousness of equality, and impatience of subordi- nation, are sentiments natural to man in the infancy of civil life. During peace, the authority of a superior is hardly felt among them, and even in * Cortes Relat. ap. Ramus, iii. 239, &;c. fioin. Cron. r. 79. Torquem. lib. xiii. r. 34. Herrei.i, dec. 2. lib. vii. c. 15. &p 318 HISTORY OF [BookVU. war it is but little acknowledged. Strangers to the idea of property, the difference in condition resulting from the inequality of it is unknown. Birth or titles confer no pre-eminence ; it is only by personal merit and accom- plishments that distinction can be acquired. The form of society was very dili'erent among the Mexicans. The great body of the people was in a most humiliating state. A considerable number, known by the name of Mayeques, nearly resembled in condition those peasants who, under various denominations, were considered, during the prevalence of the feudal system, as instruments of laliour attached to the soil. The Mayeques could not change their place of residence without permission of the supe- rior on whom they depended. They were conveyed, together with the lands on which they were settled, trom one proprietor to another ; and were bound to cultivate the ground, and to perform several kinds of servile work.* Others were reduced to the lowest form of subjection, that of domestic servitude, and felt the utmost rigour of that wretched state. Their condition was held to be so vile, and their lives deemed of so little value, that a pei-son who killed one of these slaves was not subjected to any punishment.! Even those considered as freemen were treated by their Laughty lords as beings of an inferior species. The nobles, possessed of ample territories, were divided into various classes, to each of which peculiar titles of honour belonged. Some of these titles, like their lands, descended from father to son in perpetual succession. Others were annexed to particular offices, or conferred during life as marks of personal distinc- tion.J The monarch, exalted above all, enjoyed extensive power and supreme dignity. Thus the distinction of ranks was completely established, in a line of regular subordination, reaching from the highest to the lowest member of the community. Each of these knew what he could claim, and what he owed. The people, who were not allowed to wear a dress of the same fashion, or to dwell in houses of a form similar to those of the nobles, accosted them with the most submissive reverence. In the pre- sence of their sovereign, they durst not lift their eyes from the ground, or look him in the face.§ The nobles themselves, when admitted to an audience of their sovereign, entered barefooted, in mean garments, and, as his slaves, paid him homage approaching to adoration. This respect, due from inferiors to those above them in rank, was prescribed with such ceremonious accuracy, that it incorporated with the language, and influenced its genius and idiom. The Mexican tongue abounded in expressions of reverence and courtesy. The style and appellations used in the intercourse between equals would have been so unbecoming in the mouth of one in a lower sphere, when he accosted a person in higher rank, as to be deemed an insult [146]. It is only in societies, which time and the institution of regular government have moulded into form, that we find such an orderly arrangement of men into difl'erent ranks, and such nice attention paid to their various rights. The spirit of the Mexicans, thus familiarized and bended to subordina- tion, was prepared for submitting to monarchical government. But the ilescription of their policy and laws, by the Spaniards who overturned tiiem, are so inaccurate and contradictory, that it is difficult to delineate the form of their constitution with any precision. Sometimes they repre- sent the monarchs of Mexico as absolute, deciding according to their plea- sure with respect to every operation of the state. On other occasions, we fliscover the traces of established customs and laws, framed in order to circumscribe the power of the crown, and we meet with rights and privi- leges of the nobles which seemed to be opposed as barriers against its encroachments. This appearance of inconsistency has arisen from inatten- * Herrera, dr-c. 3. lib. iv, r. 17. Corita MS. 1 Uerrera, dec. 3. lib. iv. c. 7. % Ibid, c, 1.1. Cnrita MS. fj llcrrcra. di c. 3. lib. ii. c. 1-1. AMERICA. :il9 tion to the innovations of Montezuma upon the Mexican policy. His aspiring ambition subverted the original system of government, and intro- duced a pure despotism. He disregarded the ancient laws, violated the privileges held most sacred, and reduced his subjects of every order to the level ol slaves.* The chiefs, or nobles of the first rank, submitted to the yoke with such reluctance that, from impatience to shake it off, and hope of recovering their rights, many of them courted the protection of Cortes, and joined a foreign power against their domestic oppressor.! It is not then under the dominion of Montezuma, but under the government of his predecessors, that we can discover what was the original form and genius of Mexican policy. From the foundation of the monarchy to the election of Montezuma, it seems to have subsisted with little variation. That body of citizens, which may be distinguished by the name of nobility, formed the chief and most respectable order in the state. They .were of various ranks, as has been already observed, and their honours were acquired and transmitted in different manners. Their number seems to have been great. According to an author accustomed to examine with attention what he relates, there were in the Mexican empire thirty of this order, each of whom had in his territories about a hundred thousand people ; and subor- dinate to these, there were about three thousand nobles of a lower class.| The territories belonging to the chiefs of Tezeuco and Tacuba were hardly inferior in extent to those of the Mexican monarch. § Each of these pos- sessed complete territorial jurisdiction, and levied taxes from their own vassals. But all followed the standard of Mexico in war, serving with a number of men in proportion to their domain, and most of them paid tribute to its monarch as their superior lord. In tracing those great lines of the Mexican constitution^ an image of feudal policy, in its most rigid form, rises to view, and we discern its three distinguishing characteristics, a nobility possessing almost independent authority, a people depressed into the lowest state of subjection, and a king intmsted with the executive' power of the state. Its spirit and prin- ciples seem to have operated in the New World in the same manner as in the ancient. The jurisdiction of the crown was extremely limited. All real and eflfective authority was retained by the Mexican nobles in their own hands, and the shadow of it only left to the king. Jealous to excess of their own rights, they guarded with the most vigilant anxiety against the encroachments of their sovereigns. By a fundamental law of the em- pire, it was provided that the king should not determine concerning any point of general importance without the approbation of a council com- posed of the prime nobility. || Unless he obtained their consent, he could not engage the nation m war, nor could he dispose of the most considera- ble branch of the public revenue at pleasure ; it was appropriated to cer- tain purposes from which it could not be diverted by the regal authority alone. IT In order to secure full effect to those constitutional restraints, the Mexican nobles did not permit their crown to descend by inheritance, but disposed of it by election. The right of election seems to have been originally vested in the whole body of nobility, but was afterwards com- mitted to six electors, of whom the chiefs of Tezeuco and Tacuba were always two. From respect for the family of their monarchs, the choict^ fell generally upon some person sprung from it. But as the activity and valour of their prince were of greater moment to a people perpetual Iv engaged in war, than a strict adherence to the order of birth, collaterafs of mature age or of distinguished merit were often preferred to those who were nearer the throne in direct descent.** To this maxira in their * Herrera, dec, 3. lili. ii. c. 14. Torqupm. lib. ii. c. 69. t Ilerrera, dec. 2. lib. v. c. 10, 1 J, Torqueni. lib. iv. c. 4'J, t Herrera, dec. 2. lib. viii. c. 12. $ Torqucm. lib. ii. c. .'it. • orita MS. || Herrera, dec. 3. lib. ii. c. 19. lib. iv. c. 16. Corita MS. IF Herrera, di c. ■3. lib. iv. c. 17. ** .^costa, lib. vi. c, 24. Herrera, dec. 3. lib. ii, c. 13, Corita MS. 320 HISTORY OF [Book Vll. policy, the Mexicans appear to be indebted for such a succession ot able and warlike princes, as raised their empire in a short period to that extra- ordinary height of power which it had attained when Cortes landed in New Spain. While the jurisdiction of the Mexican monarch continued to be limited, it is probable that it was exercised with little ostentation. But as their authority became more extensive, the splendour ot their government aug- mented. It was in this last state that the Spaniards beheld it ; and strudt with the appearance of Montezuma's court, they describe its pomp at great length, and with much admiration. The number of his attendants, the order, the silence, and the reverence with which they served him ; the extent of his royal mansion, the variety of its apartments allotted to dif- ferent officers, and the ostentation with which his grandeur was displayed, whenever he permitted his subjects to behold him, seem to resemble the magnificence of the ancient monarchies in Asia, rather than the simplicity of the infant states in the New World. But it was not in the mere parade of royalty that the Mexican potentates exhibited their power ; they manifested it more beneficially in the order and regularity with which tney conducted the internal administration and police of their dominions- Complete jurisdiction, civil as wel; as criminal, over its own immediate vassals, was vested in the crown. Judges were appointed for each department ; and if we may rely on the account which the Spanish writers give of the maxims and laws upon which they founded their decisions with respect to the distribution of property and the punish- ment of crimes, justice was administered in the Mexican empire with a degree of order and equity resembling what takes place in societies highly civilized. Their attention in providing for the support of government was not less sagacious. Taxes were laid upon land, upon the acquisitions of in- dustry, and upon commodities of every kind exposed to sale in the public markets. These duties were considerable, but not arbitrary or unequal. They were imposed according to established rules, and each knew what share of the common burden he had to bear. As the use of money was unknown, all the taxes were paid in kind ; and thus not only the natural productions of all the different provinces in the empire, but every species of manufacture, and every work of ingenuity and art, were collected in the public storehouses. From those the emperor supplied his numerous train of attendants in peace, and his armies during war, with food, with clothes, and ornaments. People of inferior condition, neither possessing land nor engaged in commerce, were bound to the performance of various services. By their stated labour the crown lands were cultivated, public works were carried on, and the various houses belonging to the emperor were built and kept in repair* [147]. The improved state of government among the Mexicans is conspicuous, not only in points essential to the being of a well-ordered society, but in several regulations of inferior consequence with respect to police. The institution which I have already mentioned, of public couriers, stationed at proper intervals, to convey intelligence from one part of the empire to the other, was a refinement in police not introduced into any kingdom of Europe at that period. The structure of the capital city in a lake, with artificial dykes, and causeways of great length, which served as avenues to it from different quarters, erected in the water, with no less mgenuity than labour, seems to be an idea that could not have occurred to any but a civilized people. The same observation may be applied to the structure of the aqueducts, or conduits, by which they conveyed a stream of fresh water from a considerable distance, into the city, along one of the * ITerrera. der. 2. lib. vii. c. i?,. dec 3. lib. iv. c l(i. IT AMERICA. 321 causeways [148]. The appointment of a number ot persons to clean the streets, to liyht tliem by tires kindled in different places, and to patrol as watchmen during the ni^ht,* iscovers a degree of attention which even polished nations are late m acquiring. The progress of the Mexicans in various arts is considered as the most decisive proof of their superior refinement. Cortes and the early Spanish authors describe this with rapture, and maintain, that the most celebrated European artists could not surpass or even equal them in ingenuity and neatness of workmanship. They represented men, animals, and other objects, by such a disposition of various coloured leathers, as is said to have produced all the effects of light and shade, and to have imitated nature with truth and delicacy. Their ornaments of gold and silver have been described to be of a fabric no less curious. But in forming any idea, from general descriptions, concerning the state of arts among nations im- perfectly polished, we are extremely ready to err. In examining the works of people whose advances in improvement are nearly the saii e with our own, we view them with a critical and often with a jealous eye. Whereas, when conscious of our own superiority, we survey the arts of nations comparatively rude, we are astonished at woiks executed by them under such manifest disadvantages, and, in the warmth of our admi- ration, are apt to represent them as productions more finished than they really are. To the influence of' this illusion, without supposing any inten- tion to deceive, we may impute the exaggeration of some Spanish authors, in their accounts of the Mexican arts. It is not from those descriptions, but from considering such specimens of their arts as are still preserved, that we must decide concerning their degree of merit. As the ship in which Cortes sent to Charles V. the most curious productions of the Mexican artisans, which were collected by the Spaniards when they first pillaged the empire, was taken by a French corsair,! the remains of their ingenuity are less numerous than those of the Peruvians. Whether any of their works with feathers, in imitation of painting, be still extant in Spain, I have not learned ; but many of their ornaments in gold and silver, as well as various utensils employed in common life, are depo- sited in the magnificent cabinet of natural and artificial productions lately opened by the king of Spain ; and 1 am informed by persons on whose judgment and taste I can rely, that these boasted efforts of their art are uncouth representations of common objects, or very coarse images ( f he human and some other forms, destitute of grace and propriety [l49]. The justness of these observations is confirmed by inspecting the woodtn prints and copper plates of their paintings, which have been published by various authors. In them every figure of men, of quadrupeds, or birds, as wel' as every representation of inanimated nature, is extremely rude and awkward.^ • Herrera, dec. 2. lib. viii. c. 4. Tonibio MS. t ftelat. de Cort. Ramus, iii. 294. F. t As a specimen of the spirit and style in which M. Clavigero makes his striclures upon my History of America, I shall publish his remarks upon this passage. " Thus far Robertson ; to whuni we answer, first. That there is no reason to believe that those rude works were really Mf'xiiun : secondly, That neither do we know whelher those personsin whose judgmcnl he confides, may bi- persons fit to merit our faith, because we have observed thai Robertson trusts frequently to the testimony of Gai;<^, Correal, Ibacnez, and other such authors, who are entirely undeserving of credit : thirdly. It is uiore probable that the arms of copper, liellevcd by those intellii!enl judges to be certainly Oriental, are really Mexican." Vol. U. 391.— When an author, not entircny destitute of inietrrit) or discernment, and who has some solicitude about his own character, asserts that he received his information concerning any particular point from persons " on whose judgment and taste he can rely ;" a very slender degree of candour, one should Uiink, might induce the reader to believe that he dors not endeavour to impose upon the public by an appeal to testimony allogelher unworthy of credi' My inforniaiion concerning the Mexican works of art, deposited in the kiti" of Spain's cabinet, was received from the late Lord Urautham, ambassador extraordinary from the court of London li that of Madrid, and from Mr. Archdeacon Waddilove, chaplain to the embassy; and it was upon th -ir amhoruy that I pronounced the c«ai of aimour, mentioned in the note, to be of Oriental fabric. As they were both at Madrid in their public i haracter, when the first edition of the History of Am rica was published, I thought it improper at that lime to mention their names Did their decisiiui r oncerning a matter of taste, or their testimony concerning a point of fact, stand in need of c.i)nfirma'iin, I might produce the evidence of an intelligent traveller, who, in describine Vol. I. — 41 322 HISTORY OF [Book VII. The hardest Egyptian style, stiff and imperfect as it was, is more elegant. The scrawls ofcljildren delineate olyects almost as accurately. But however low the Mexican paintings may be ranked, when viewed merely as works of art, a very different station belongs to them when con- sidered as the records of their country, as historical monuments of its policy and transactions ; and they become curious as well as interesting objects of attention. The noblest and most beneficial invention of which human ingenuity can boast, is that of writing. But the fiist essays of this art, which hath contributed more than all others to the improvement of the species, were very rude, and it advanced towards perfection slowly, and by a gradual progression. When the warrior, eager for fame, wished to transmit some knowledge of his exploits to succeeding ages ; when the gratitude of a people to their sovereign prompted them to hand down an account of his beneficent deeds to posterity ; the first method of accom- plishing this, which seems to have occurred to them, was to delineate, in the best manner they could, figures representing the action, of which they were solicitous to preserve the memoiy. Of this, which has very pro- perly been called picture •writing,* we find traces among some of the most savage tribes of America. When a leader returns from the field, he strips a tree of its bark, and with red paint scratches upon it some uncouth figures which represent the order of his march, the number of his followers, the enemy whom he attacked, the scalps and captives which he brought home. To those simple annals he trusts for renown, and soothes himself with hope that by their means he shall receive praise from the warriors of future times.] Compared with those awkward essays of their savage countrymen, the paintings of the Mexicans may be considered as works of composition and design. They were not acquainted, it is true, with any other method of recording transactions than that of delineating the objects which they wished to represent. But they could exhibit a more complex series of events in progressive order, and describe, by a proper disposition of figures, the oc- currences of a king's reign from his accession to his death ; the progress of an infant's education from its birth until it attain to the years of maturity ; the different recompenses and marks of distinction conferred upon war- riors, in proportion to the exploits which they had performed. Some sin- gular specimens of this picture writing have been preserved, which are justly considered as the most curious monuments of art brought from the New World. The most valuable of these was published by Purchas in sixty-six plates. It is divided into three parts. The first contains the history of the Mexican empire under its ten monarchs. The second is a tribute roll, representing what each conquered town paid into the royal treasuiy. The third is a code of their institutions, domestic, political, and military. Another specimen of Mexican painting has been published in thirty-two plates, by the present archbishop of Toledo. To both is an- nexed a full explanation of what the figures were intended to represent, which was obtained by the Spaniards from Indians well acquainted with their own arts. The style of painting in all these is the same. They she royal cabinet nf Madrid, takes notice tliat it contains " specimens of Mexican and Peruvian utensils, vases, &c. in earthenware, wretched both in taste and execution." Dillon's Travels through Spain, p. 77. As Gage composed his Survey of New Spain with all the zeal and acrimony of a new convert, I have paid little regard to his testimony with respect to points relating to religion. But as he resided In several provinces in New S[)ain, which travellers seldom visil, and as he seems to have observed their manners and laws vvilii an intelligent eye, I have availed myself of his information with respect to matters where religious opinion could have little influence. Correal i have seldom quoted, and never rested upon his evidence alone. The station in which [bagnez was employed in America, as well as the credit given to his veracity, by printing his Regno Jesuitico among the large collection of documents publiblied (as I believe by authority) .it Madrid, A. D. 1767, justifies me for appealing to liis avitliorily. • Divhie I>egai. of Moses, iii. 73. t Sir W. .Tohnson, Philos. Transact, vol, Ixiii. p. 143. Mfm. de la Hontan, ii. 191. Lafitau Mmurs de Sauv. ii. 13. AMERICA. ti23 ifepresent things, not words. They exhibit images to the eye, not ideas to the understanding. They may therefore be considered as the earliest and most imperfect essay of men in their progress towards discovering the art of writing. The defects in this mode of recording transactions must have been early felt. To paint every occurrence was from its nature a very tedious operation ; and as affairs became more complicated, and events multiplied in any society, its annals must have swelled to an enormous bulk. Besides this, no objects could be delineated but those of sense ; the conceptions of the mind had no corporeal form ; and as long as picture writing could not convey an idea of these, it must have been a very imper- fect art. The necessity of improving it must have roused and sharpened invention ; and the human mind, holding the same course in the New- World as in the Old, might have advanced by the same successive steps, first, from an actual picture to the plain hieroglyphic ; next to the allego- rical symbol ; then to the arbitrary character ; until, at length, an alphabet of letters was discovered, capable of expressing all the various combinations of sound employed in speech. In the paintings of the Mexicans we ac- cordingly perceive that this progress was begun among them. Upon an attentive inspection of the plates, which I have mentioned, we may observe some approach to the plain or simple hieroglyphic, where some principal part or circumstance in the subject is made to stand for the whole. In the annals of their kings, published by Purchas, the towns conquered by each are uniformly represented in the same manner by a rude delineation of a house ; but in order to point out the particular towns which submitted to their victorious arms, peculiar emblems, sometimes natural objects, and sometimes artificial figures, are employed. In the tribute-roll published by the Arch- bishop of Toledo, the house which was properly the picture of the town, is omitted, and the emblem alone is employed to represent it. The Mexicans seem even to have made some advances beyond this, towards the use of the more figurative and fanciful hieroglyphic. In order to describe a monarch who had enlarged his dominions by force of arms, they painted a target orna- mented with darts, and placed it between him and those towns which he subdued. But it is only in one instance, the notation of numbers, that we discern any attempt to exhibit ideas which had no corporeal form. The Mexican painters had invented artificial marks, or sigm of convention, for this purpose. By means of these, they computed the years of their kings' reigns, as well as the amount of tribute to be paid into the royal treasury. The figure of a circle represented unit ; and in small numbers, the com- putation was made by repeating it. Larger numbers were expressed by a peculiar mark ; and they had such as denoted all integral numbers, from twenty to eight thousand. The short duration of their empire prevented the Mexicans from advancing further in that long course which conducts men from the labour of delineating real objects, to the simplicity and ease of alphabetic writing. Their records, notwithstanding some dawn of such ideas as might have led to a more perfect style, can be considered as little more than a species of picture-writing, so tar improved as to mark their superiority over the savage tribes of America ; but still so defective as to prove that tliey had not proceeded far beyond the first stage in that progress which must be completed before any people can be ranked among polished nations [150]. Their mode of computing time may be considered as a more decisive evidence of their progress in improvement. They divided their year into eighteen months, consisting of twenty days ; amounting in all to three hun- dred and sixty. But as they observed that the course of the sun was not completed in that time, they added five days to the year. These, which were properly intercalary days, they termed supernumerary or xt'aste ; and as they did not belong to any month, no work was done, and no sacred rite n24 HISTORY OF [Book VII. performed on them ; they were devoted wholly to festivity and pastime.* This near approach to philosophical accuracy is a remarkable proof, that the Mexicans had bestowed some attention upon inquiries and speculations to which men in a very rude state never turn their thoughts.! Such are the most striking particulars in the manners and policy of the Mexicans, which exhibit them to view as a people considerably refined. But from other circumstances, one is apt to suspect that their character, and many of their institutions, did not differ greatly from those of the other inhabitants of America. Like the rude tribes around them, the Mexicans were incessantly en- gaged in war, and the motives which prompted them to hostility seem to have been the same. They fought in order to gratify their vengeance by shedding the blood of their enemies. In battle they were chiefly intent on taking prisoners ; and it was by the number of these that they estimated the glory of victory. No captive was ever ransomed or spared. All were sacrificed without mercy, and their flesh devoured with the same barbarous joy as among the fiercest savages. On some occasions it arose to even wilder excesses. Their principal warriors covered themselves with the skins of the unhappy victims, and danced about the streets, boasting of their own valour, and exulting over their enemies. | Even in their civil institutions we discover traces of that barbarous disposition which their system of war inspired. The four chief counsellors of the empire were distinguished by titles, which could have been assumed only by a people who delighted in blood [151]. This ferocity of character prevailed among all the nations of New Spain. The Tlascalans, the people of Mechoacan, and other states at enmity with the Mexicans, delighted equally in war, and treated their prisoners with the same cruelty. In proportion as man- kind combine in social union, and live under the influence of equal laws and regular policy, their manners soften, sentiments of humanity arise, and the rights of the species come to be understood. The fierceness of war abates, and even while engaged in hostility, men remember what they owe one to another. The savage fights to destroy, the citizen to conquer. The ibrmer neither pities nor spares, the latter has acquired sensibility which tempers his rage. To this sensibility the Mexicans seem to have been perfect strangers ; and among them war was carried on with so much of its original barbarity, that we cannot but suspect their degree of civiliza- tion to have been very imperfect. Their funeral rites were not less bloody than those of the most savage tribes. On the death of any distinguished personage, especially of the emperor, a certain number of his attendants were chosen to accompany him to the other world ; and those unfortunate victims were put to deatn without mercy, and buried in the same tomb.§ Though their agriculture was more extensive than that of the roving tribes who trusted chiefly to their bow for food, it seems not to have sup- plied them with such subsistence as men require when engaged in efforts of active indust y. The Spaniards appear not to have been struck with any superiority of the Mexicans over the other people of America in bodily vigour. Both, according to their observation, were of such a feeble frame as to be unable to endure fatigue, and the strength of one Spaniard ex- ceeded that of several Indians. This they imputed to their scanty diet, on poor fare, sufllicient to preserve life, but not to give firmness to their constitution. Such a remark could hardly have been made with respect to any people furnished plentifully with the necessaries of life. The dilfi- * Acosta, lib. vi. c. 2. t The Mexican mode of computing lime, and evory other particular relating to their chronology, have been considerably elucidated by M. (^lavigero, vol. i. '288; vol. ii. 225, &.C. The observation.-} and theories of the Me.xicans conceruiiii; those siihji'ri.« discover a greater progress in speculaliv." •ciencc than we find among aiiy people in tiio New World. J Herrera, dec. 3. lib. ii. c. IS. Com. Cron. c. 217. ^ Herrera, dec. 3. lib. ii. c. 18. Gom. Crou. c. 202. AMERICA. 325 culty which Cortes found in procuring subsistence for his small body of soldiers, who were often constrained to live on the spontaneous productions of the earth, seems to confirm the remark of the Spanish writers, and gives no high idea of the state of cultivation in the Mexican empire.* A practice that was universal in New Spain appears to favour this opi- nion. The Mexican women gave suck to their children for several years, and during that time they did not cohabit with their husbands.! This pre- caution against a burdensome increase of progeny, though necessary, as I have already observed, among savages, who from the hardships of their condition, and the precariousness of their subsistence, find it impossible to rear a numerous family, can hardly be supposed to have continued among a people who lived at ease and in abundance. The vast extent of the Mexican empire, which has been considered, and with justice, as the most decisive proof of a considerable progress in regu- lar government and police, is one of those facts in the history of the New World which seems to have been admitted without due examination or sufficient evidence. The Spanish historians, in order to magnify the valour of their countrymen, are accustomed to represent the dominion of Monte- zuma as stretching o^ er all the provinces of New Spain from the Northern to the Southern Ocean. But a great part of the mountainous country was possessed by the Olomies, a fierce uncivilized people, who seem to have been the residue of the original inhabitants. The provinces towards the north and west of Mexico, were occupied by the Chicheinecas, and other tribes of hunters. None of these recognised the Mexican monarch as their superior. Even in the interior and more level country, there were several cities and provinces which had never submitted to the Mexican yoke. Tlascala, though only twenty-one leagues from the capital of the empire, was an independent and hostile republic. Cholula, though still nearer, had been subjected only a short time before the arrival of the Spaniards. Tepeaca, at the distance of thirty leagues from Mexico, seems to have been a separate state, governed by its own laws.j Mechoacan, the fron- tier of which extended within forty leagues of Mexico, was a powerful kingdom, remarkable for its implacable enmity to the Mexican name.§ By these hostile powers the Mexican empire was circumscribed on every quarter, and the high ideas which we are apt to form of it from the de- scription of the Spanish historians, should be considerably moderated. ^-» In consequence of this independence of several states in New Spairr upon the Mexican empire, there was not any considerable intercourse be- tween its various provinces. Even in the interior country not far distant from the capital, there seems to have been no roads to facilitate the commu- nication of one district with another ; and when the Spaniards first attempt- ed to penetrate into its several provinces, they had to open their way through forests and marshes.|| Cortes, in his adventurous march from Mexico to Honduras, in 1525, met with obstructions, and endured hard- ships little inferior to those with which he must have struggled in the most uncivilized regions of America. In some places he could hardly force a )assage through impervious woods, and plains overflowed with water. n others he found so little cultivation, that his troops were frequently in danger of perishing by famine. Such facts correspond ill with the pom- pous descri))tion which the Spanish writers give of Mexican police and industry, and convey an idea of a country nearly similar to that possessed by the Indian tribes in North America. Here and there a trading or a war path, as they are called in North America, led from one settlement to another ;1f but generally there appeared no sign of any established com- munication, few marks of industry, and fewer monuments of art. » Relat. ap. lUmiis, iii. SOB. A. Herrcra, dec. 3. lib. iv. c. 17. dec. 2. lib. vi. c. 16. t G'>ni. Cron. c208. Ilerrera, dec. 3. lib. iv. c. 1«. jrUerrnra, dec. 3. lib. x. c. 15. 21. B. Diaz, c. 130. « Herrera. rifc. 3. lib. ii. c. ID. |l B. Diaz, e. 166 17B. IT Hurrera, dec. 3. lib. vii. c. if. I 326 HISTORY OF [Book VII. A proof of this imperfection in their commercial intercourse no less stri- kir^ is their want of money, or some universal standard by which to esti- mate the value of commodities. The discovery of this is among the steps of greatest consequence in the progress of nations. Until it has been made, all their transactions must be so awkward, so operose, and so limited, that we may boldly pronounce that they have advanced but a little way in their career. The invention of such a commercial standard is of such high antiquity in our hemisphere, and rises so far beyond the era of au- thentic history, as to appear almost coeval with the existence of society. The precious metals seem to have been early employed for this purpose ; and from their permanent value, their divisibility, and many other qualities, they are better adapted to serve as a common standard than any other sub- stance of which nature has given us the command. But in the New World, where these metals abound most, this use of them was not known. The exigencies of rude tribes, or of monarchies imperfectly civilized, did not call lor it. All their commercial intercourse was carried on by barter ; and their ignorance of any common standard by which to facilitate that exchange of commodities which contributes so much towards the comfort of life, may be justly mentioned as an evidence of the infant state of their policy. But even in the New World the inconvenience of wanting some general instrument of commerce began to be felt, and some efiforts were making towards supplying that defect. The Mexicans, among whom the number and greatness of their cities gave rise to a more extended com- merce than in any other part of America, had begun to employ a common standard of value, which rendered smaller transactions much more easy. As chocolate was the favourite drink of persons in every rank of life, the nuts or almonds of cacao, of which it is composed, were of such universal consumption, that, in their stated markets, these were willingly received in return for commodities of small price. Thus they came to be consider- ed as the instrument of commerce, and the value of what one wished to dispose of was estimated by the number of nuts of the cacao, which he might expect in exchange tor it. This seems to be the utmost length which the Americans had advanced towards the discoveiy of any expe- dient for supplying the use of money. And if the want of it is to be held, on one hand, as a proof of their barbarity, this expedient for supplying that want should be admitted, on the other, as an evidence no less satis- fying of some progress which the Mexicans had made in refinement and civilization beyond the savage tribes around them. In such a rude state were many of the Mexican provinces when first visited by their conquerors. Even their cities, extensive and populous as they were, seem more fit to be the habitation of men just emerging from barbarity, than the residence of a polished people. The description of Tlascala nearly resembles that of an Indian village. A number of low straggling huts, scattered about irregularly, according to the caprice of each proprietor, built with turf and stone, and thatched with reeds, with- out any light but what they received by a door, so low that it could not be entereH upright.* In Mexico, though, from the peculiarity of its situa- tion, the disposition of the houses was more orderly, the structure of the greater part was equally mean. Nor does the fabric of their temples, and other public edifices, appear to have been such as entitled them to the high praise bestowed upon them by many Spanish authors. As far as one can gather from their obscure and inaccurate descriptions, the great temple of Mexico, the most famous in New Spain, which has been represented as a magnificent buildino^, raised to such a height, that the ascent to it was by a flight of a hundred and fourteen steps, was a solid mass of earth of a square forniy faced partly with stone. Its base on each side extended * HerrerH. dfc. S. Iil». vi. c. 13. AMERICA. 327 ninety feet ; and decreasing gradually as it advanced in height, it termi- nated in a quadrangle of about thirty feet, where were placed a shrine of the deity, and two altars on which the victims were sacrificed.* All the other celebrated temples of New Spain exactly resembled that of Mex- ico [l52]. Such structures convey no high idea of progress in art and in- genuity ; and one can hardly conceive that a form more rude and simple could have occurred to a nation in its first efforts towards erecting any great work. Greater skill and ingenuity were displayed, if we may believe the Span- ish historians, in the houses of the emperor, and in those of the principal nobility. There, some elegance of design was visible, and a commodious arrangement of the apartments was attended to. But if buildings corres- ponding to such descriptions had ever existed in the Mexican cities, it is probable that some remains of them would still be visible. From the manner in which Cortes conducted the siege of Mexico, we can indeed easily account for the total destruction of whatever had any appearances of splendour in that capital. But as only two centuries and a half have elapsed since the conquest of New Spain, it seems altc^ether incredible that in a period so short, every vestige of this boasted elegance and gran- deur should have disappeared ; and that in the other cities, particularly in those which did not suffer by the destructive hand of the conquerors, there are any ruins which can be considered as monuments of their ancient mag- nificence. Even in a village of the rudest Indians, there are buildings of greater extent and elevation than common dwelling houses. Such as are destined for holding the council of the tribe, and in which all assemble on occasions of public festivity, may be called stately edifices, when compared with the rest. As among the Mexicans the distinction of ranks was established, and property was unequally divided, the number of distinguished struc- tures in their towns would of course be greater than in other parts of Ame- rica. But these seem not to have been either so solid or magnificent as to merit the pompous epithets which some Spanish authors employ in de- scribing them. It is probable that, though more ornamented, and built on a larger scale, they were erected with the same slight materials which the Indians employed in their common buildings [153], and Time, in a space much less than two hundred and fifty years, may have swept away all remains of them fl54l. From this enumeration of facts, it seems, upon the whole, to be evident, that the state of society in Mexico was considerably advanced beyond that of the savage tribes which we have delineated. But it is no less mani- fest that, with respect to many particulars, the Spanish accounts of their progress appear to be highly embellished. There is not a iiore frequent or a more fertile source of deception in describing the manners and arts of savage nations, or of such as are imperfectly civilized, than that of apply- ing to them the names and phrases appropriated to the institutions ana re- finements of polished life. When the leader of a small tribe, or the head of a rude community, is dignified with the name of King or Emperor, the place of his residence can receive no other name but that of his palace ; and whatever his attendants may be, they must be called his court. Under such appellations they acquire, in our estimation, an importance and dignity which does not belong to them. The illusion spreads ; and giving a false colour to every part of the narrative, the imagination is so much carried away with the resemblance, that it becomes difficult to dis- cern objects as they really are. The Spaniards, when they first touched on the Mexican coast, were so much strutk with the appearance of attain- ments in policy and in the arts of life, far superior to those of the rude * Vi'TTfm. dpc. ?. lib vii. c. 17. 32fi HISTORY OF [Book VII. tribes with which they were hitherto acquainted, that they fancied they had at length discovered a civilized people in the New WorJd. This comparison between the people of Mexico and their uncultivated neigh- bours, they appear to have kept constantly in view ; and observing with admiration many things which marked the pre-eminence of the former, they employ, in describing their imperfect policy and infant arts, such terms as are applicable to the institutions of men far beyond them in improve- ment. Both these circumstances concur in detracting from the credit due to the descriptions of Mexican manners by the early Spanish ^^•Iiters. By- drawing a parallel between them and those of people so much less civil- ized, they raised their own ideas too high. By their mode oi' describing them, they conveyed ideas to others no less exalted above truth. Later writers have adopted the style of the oiiginal historians, and improved upon it. The colours with which De Solis delineates the character and describes the actions of Montezuma, the splendour of his court, the laws and policy of his empire, are the same that he must have employed in exhibiting to view the monarch and institutions of a highly polished people. But though we may admit, that the warm imagination of the Spanish writers has added some embellishment to their descriptions, this will not justify the decisive and peremptory tone with which several authors pro- nounce all their accounts of the Mexican power, policy, and laws, to be the fictions of men who wished to deceive, or who delighted in the mar- vellous. There are few historical facts that can be ascertained by evidence more unexceptionable, than may be produced in support of the material articles in the description of the Mexican constitution and manners. Eye- witnesses relate what they beheld. Men who had resided among the Mexicans, both before and after the conquest, describe institutions and customs which were familiar to them. Persons of professions so difJ'erent that objects must have presented themselves to their view under every various aspect ; soldiers, priests, and lawyers, all concur in their testimony. Had Cortes ventured to impose upon his sovereign, by exhibiting to him a picture of imaginary manners, there wanted not enemies and rivals who were qualified to detect his deceit, and who would have rejoiced in exposing it. But according to the just remark of an author, whose inge- nuity has illustrated, and whose eloquence has adorned, the history of America,* this supposition is in itself as improbable as the attempt would have been audacious. Who, among the destroyers of this great empire, was so enlightened by science, or so attentive to the progress and operations of men in social lite, as to frame a fictitious system of policy so well com- bined and so consistent, as that which they dehneate in their accounts of the Mexican government ? Where could they have borrowed the idea of many institutions in legislation and police, to which, at that period, there was nothing parallel in the nations with which they were acquainted? There was not, at the beginning of the sixteenth century, a reg; ar esta- blishment of posts for conveying intelligence to the sovereign of any kingdom in Europe. The same observation will apply to what the Spaniards relate with respect to the structure of the city of Mexico, the regulations concerning its police, and various laws established for the administration of justice, or securing the happiness of the community. Whoever is accustomed to contemplate the progress of nations will ol'ten, at very early stages of it, discover a premature and unexpected dawn of those ideas which gave rise to institutions that are the pride and ornament of its most advanced period. Even in a state as imperfectly polished as the Mexican empire, the happy genius of some sagacious observer, excited or aided by circumstances unknown to us, may have introduced institutions which are seldom found but in societies highly refined. But it is almost * M. l'.\bbe Kayna! Hist, philos. ct polit. &c. iii, 127. AMERICA. 329 impossible that the illiterate conquerors of the New World should have formed in any one instance a conception of customs and laws beyond the standard of improvement in their own age and country. Or if Cortes had been capable of this, what inducement had those by whom he was super- seded to continue the deception ? Why should Corita, or Motolinea, or Acosta, have amused their sovereign or their fellow-citizens with a tale purely fabulous ? In one particular, however, the guides whom we must follow have repre- sented the Mexicans to be more barbarous, perhaps, than they really were. Their religious tenets and the rites of their worship are described by them as wild and cruel in an extreme degree. Religion, which occupies no considerable place in the thoughts of a savage, whose conceptions of any superior power are obscure, and his sacred rites (ew as well as simple, was formed, among the Mexicans, into a regular system, with its complete train of priests, temples, victims, and festivals. This, of itself, is a clear proof that the state of the Mexicans was very different from that of the ruder American tribes. But from the extravagance of their religious notions, or the barbarity of their rites, no conclusion can be drawn with certainty concerning the degree of their civilization. For nations, long after their ideas begin to enlarge, and their manners to refine, adhere to systems of superstition founded on the crude conceptions of early ages. From the genius of the Mexican religion we may, however, form a most just conclusion with respect to its influence upon the character of the feople. The aspect of superstition in Mexico was gloomy and atrocious, ts divinities were clothed with terror, and delighted in vengeance. They were exhibited to the people under detestable forms, which created horror. The figures of serpents, of tigers, and of other destructive animals, deco- rated their temples. Fear was the only principle that inspired their votaries. Fasts, mortifications, and penances, al! rigid, and many of them excruciating to an extreme degree, were the means employed to appease the wrath of their gods, and the Mexicans never approached their altars without sprinkling them with blood drawn from their own bodies. But, of all offerings, human sacrifices were deemed the most acceptable. This religious belief mingling with the implacable spirit of vengeance, and adding new force to it, every captive taken in war was brought to the temple, was devoted as a victim to the deity, and sacrificed with rites no Jess solemn than cruel* [155], The heart and head were the portion consecrated to the gods ; the warrior, by whose prowess the prisoner bad been seized, carried off the body to feast upon it with his liiends. Under the impression of ideas so dreary and terrible, and accustomed daily to scenes of bloodshed rendered awful by religion, the heart of man must harden and be steeled to every sentiment of humanity. The spirit of the Mexicans was accordingly unfeeling ; and the genius of their religion so far counterbalanced the influence oi policy and arts, thai notwithstanding their progress in both, their manners, instead of softening, became more fierce. To what circumstances it was owing that superstition assumed such a dreadful form among the Mexicans, we have not sufficient knowledge of their history to determine. But its influence is visible, iud produced an effect that is singular in the history of the human species. The manners of the people in the New World, who had made the greatest progress in the arts of policy, were, in several respects, the most ferocious, and the barbarity of some of their customs exceeded even those of the savage state. The empire of Peru boasts of a higher antiquity than that of Mexico. According to the traditionary accounts collected by the Spaniards, it had subsisted tour hundred years, under twelve successive monarchs. But the * Cort. Ri'lat. ap Ramus, iii. 240, &c. B. Diaz, c. 82. Acosta, lib. v. r. 13, &r. ncrrpr.i, deo. 3. lib. ii. c. I.'), &C. Uoiiiara C.hron. c. 80, ir, Vor.. I.— 42 330 HISTORY OF [Book Vll. knowledge of their ancient story, which the Peruvians could communicate to their conquerors, must have been both imperfect and uncertain [156], Like the other American nations, they were totally unacquainted with the art of writing, and destitute of the only means by which the memoir of past transactions can be preserved with any degree of accuracy. Even among people to whom the use of letters is known, the era where the authenticity of history commences is much posterior to the intro. lib, i. r. 13. 332 HlSTORi' OF [Book VII. Another consequence of establishing government in Peru on the founda- tion of religion was, that all crimes were punished capitally. They were not considered as transgressions of human laws, but as insults offered to the Deity. Each, without an} distinction between such as weie slight and such as were atrocious, called for vengeance, and could be expiated only by the blood of the offender. Consonan'iy to the same ideas, punishment followed the trespass with inevitable certainty, because an offence against Heaven was deemed such a high enormity as could not be pardoned.* Among a people ot corrupted morals, maxims of jurisprudence so severe and unrelenting, bv rendering men ferocious and desperate, would be more apt to multiply crimes than to restrain them. But the Peruvians, of simple manners and unsuspicious faith, were held in such awe by this rigid discipline, that the number of offenders was extremely small. Veneration for monarchs enlightened and dijected, as they believed, by the divinity whom they adored, prompted d^.em to their duty ; the dread of punish- ment, which they were taught to consider as unavoidable vengeance inflicted by offended Heaven, withheld them fiom evil. The system of superstition, on which the Incas ingrafted their preten- sions to such high authority, was of a genius very different Irom that established among the Mexicans. Manco Capac turned the veneration of his tbllowers entirely towards natural objects. The Sun, as the great source of light, of joy, and fertility in the creation, attracted their principal homage. The 3Ioon and Stars, as co-operating with him, were entitled to secondary honours. Wherever the propensity in the human mind to acknowledge and to adore some superior power lakes this direction, and is employed in contemplating the order and beneticence that really exists in nature, the spirit of superetition is mild. ^^ herever imaginary beings, created by the tancy and the tears ol men, are supposed to preside in nature, and become the objects of worship, superstition alwaj^s assumes a more severe and atrocious iorm. Of the latter we have an example among the Mexicans, of the former among the people of Peru. The Peruvians had not. indeed, made such progress in observation or inquiry, as to have attained just conceptions of the Deity ; nor was there in Qieir language any proper name or appellation of the Supreme Power, which intimated that they had formed any idea of him as the Creator and Governor of the world. t But by directing their veneration to that gloiious luminary, which, by its universal and vivifying energy, is the best emblem of Divine benefi- cence, the rites and observances which they deemed acceptable to him were innocent and humane. They offered to the Sun a part ot those pro- ductions which his genial warmth had called forth from the bosom of the earth, and reared to maturity-. They sacrificed, as an oblation of grati- tude, some of the animals which were indebted to his influence for nourish- ment. They presented to him choice specimens of those w orks of ingenu- ity which his light had guided the hand of man in tbrming. But the Incas never stained his altars with human blood, nor could they concei\e that their beneficent lather, the Sun, would be delighted widi such horrid vic- tims [l37]. Thus the Pemvians, unacquainted with those barbarous rites which extinguish sensibility, and suppress the teelings of nature at the sight of human sufferings, were tbrmed by the spirit of the superstition which they had adopted, to a national character more gentle than that of any people in America. The influence of this superstition operated in the same manner upon their civil insntutions, and tended to correct in them whatever was adverse to gentleness of character. The dominion of the Incas, though the most ab- solute of all despotisms, was mitigated by its alliance with religion. The * Vega, Tib. ii. c. 6. t Acosta, lib. v. r. 3. AMERICA. 333 mind was not humbled and depressed by the idea of a forced subjection to the will of a superior ; obedience, paid to one who was beiieved to be clothed %vith l3ivine authority, was williuffly yielded, and implied no deg^radation. The sovereign, conscious that the submissive reverence of his people flowed trom Their belief of his heavenly descent, was continually reminded of a distinction which prompted him" to imitate that beneticent power which he was supposed to represent. In consequence of those impressions, there hardly occurs in the traditional historj- of Peru, any instance of re- bellion against the reigning prince, and among twelve successive monarchs there wns not one tyrant. Even the wars in which the Incas engaged were carried on with a spirit very different from that of other American nations. They tbugbt not, like savages, to destroy and to exterminate ; or, like the Mexicans, to glut blood- thirsty divinities with human sacrifices. They conquered, in order to reclaim and civihze the vanquished, and to diffuse the knowledge of their own institutions and arts. Prisoners seem not to have been exposed to the insults and tortures which were their lot in every other part ol the New World. The Incas look the people whom they subdued under their protection, and adnutted them to a participation of all the advantages enjoyed by their original subjects. This practice, so repugnant to American I'erocity, and re-sembling' the humanity of the most polished nations, must be ascribed, like other peculiarities which we have observed in the Peruvian manners, to the genius of their religion. The Incas. considering the homage paid to any other object than to the heavenly powers which ^hey adored as impi- ous, were fond of gaining proselytes to their t'avourite system. The idols of every conquered province were carried in triumph to the great temple at Cuzco,* and placed there as trophies of the superior power of the divinity who was the protector of their empire. The people were treated Avith lenity, and instructed in the religious tenets of their new masters,! that the conqueror might have the glory of having added to the number of the votaries of his lather the Sun. The state of property in Peru was no less singular than that of religion, and contributed, hkewise, towards giving a mild turn of character to the people. All the lands capable of culfivation were divided into three shares. One was consecrated to the Sun. and the product of it was applied to the erection of temples, and furnishing what was requisite towards celebratir^ the public rites of religion. The second belonged to the Inca, and was set apart as the provision made by the community tor the support of government. The third and largest share was reserved tor the maintenance of the people, amone whom it was parcelled out. Neither individuals, however, nor communities had a right of exclusive property in the portion set apart for their use. They possessed it only tor a year, at the expiration of which a new division was made in proportion to the rank, the number, and exigencies of each family. All those lands were cultivated by the joint industry ot" the community. The people summoned by a proper officer, repaired in a body to the fields, and pertbrmed their common task, while soiKTS and musical instruments cheered them to their labour.| By this singular distribution of territory, as well as by the mode of cultivating it, the idea of a common interest, and of mutual subserviency, was continu- ally inculcated. Each individual telt his connexion with those around him, and knew that he depended on their friendly aid tor what increase he was to reap. A state thus constituted may be considered as one great family, in which the union of the members was so complete, and the exchange ot good offices so perceptible, as to create stroneer attachment, and to oind man to man in closer intercourse than subsisted under any form of society • HerTera,dec.5. lil>. ir. C.4. Vega, lib. t. e. 12. t Herrera, dec. 5. lib. ir. c P. lib. c.?. Vpfa, lib. V. f . .1 334 HISTORY OF [BookVII, established in America, From this resulted gentle manners and mild virtues unknown in the savage state, and with which the Mexicans were little acquainted. But, though the institutions of the Incas were so framed as to strengthen the bonds o? affection among their subjects, there was great inequality in their condition. The distinction of ranks was fully established in Peru. A great body of the inhabitants, under the denomination of Yanaconas, were held in a state of servitude. Their garb and houses were of a form different from those of freemen. Like the Tamenes of Mexico, they were employed in carrying burdens, and in performing every other work of drudgery.* Next to them, in rank, were such of the people as were free, but distinguished by no official or hereditary honours. Above them were raised those whom the Spaniards call Orejones, from the ornaments worn in their ears. They formed what may be denominated the order of nobles, and in peace as well as war held every office of power or trust.j And the head of all were the children of the Sun, who, by their high descent and peculiar privileges, were as much exalted above the Orejones, as these were elevated above the people. Such a form of society, from the union of its members, as well as from the distinction in their ranks, was favourable to progress in the arts. But the Spaniards, having been acquainted with the improved state of various arts in Mexico several years before they discovered Peru, were not so much struck with what they observed in the latter countiy, and describe the appearances of ingenuity there with less warmth of admiration. The Peruvians, nevertheless, had advanced far beyond the Mexicans, both in the necessary arts of life, and in such as have some title to the name of elegant. In Peru, agriculture, the art of primary necessity in social life, was more extensive, and carried on with greater skill than in any part of America. The Spaniards, in their progress through the country, were so fully sup- plied with provisions of every kind, that in the relation of their adventures we meet with few of those dismal scenes of distress occasioned by famine, in which the conquerors of Mexico were so often involved. The quantity of soil under cultivation was not left to the discretion of individuals, but regulated by public authority in proportion to the exigencies of the com- munity. Even the calamity of an unfruitful season was but little felt ; for the product of the lands consecrated to the Sun, as well as those set apart for the Incas, being deposited in the Tambos, or public storehouses, it remained there as a stated provision for times of scarcity.]: As the extent of cultivation was determined with such provident attention to the demands of the state, the invention and industry of the Peruvians were called forth to extraordinary exertions, by certain defects peculiar to their climate and soil. All the vast rivers that flow from the Andes take their course east- ward to the Atlantic Ocean. Peru is watered only by some streams which rush down from the mountains like torrents. A great part of the low country is sandy and barren, and never refreshed with rain. In order to render such an unpromising region fertile, the ingenuity of the Peruvians had recourse to various expedients. By means of artificial canals, conducted with much patience and considerable art from the torrents that poured across their country, they conveyed a regular supply of moisture to their fields^ [l 58]. They enriched the soil by manuring it with the dung of sea fowls, of which they found an inexhaustible store on all the islands scattered along the coasts.ll In describing the customs of any nation thoroughly civilized, such practices would hardly draw attention, or be mentioned as in any degree * Herrera, dec. 5. lib. iii. c. 4. lib. x. c. 8. t Ib.lil). iv. c. 1. t Zarate, lib. i. c. 14. Vega, lib. i. c. 8. $ Zarate, lib. i. c. 4. Vega, lib. v. c. 1 & 34 II Acosta, lib. iv. c. 37. Vega, lib. V. c. 3 AMERICA. 335 I remarkable ; but in the history of llie improvident race of men in the New World, they are entitled to notice as singular proofs of industry and of art. The use of the plough, indeed, was unknown to the Peruvians. They turned up the earth with a kind of mattock of hard wood * Nor was this labour deemed so degrading as to be devolved wholly u|)on the women. Both sexes joined in performing this necessary work. Even the children of the Sun set an example of industry, by cultivating a field near Cuzco with their own hands, and they dignified this function by denominating it their triumph over the earth. f The superior ingenuity of the Peruvians is obvious, likewise, in the con- struction of their houses and public buildings. In the extensive plains which stretch along the Pacific Ocean, where the sky is perpetually serene, and the climate mild, their houses were very properly of a fabric extremely slight. But in the higher regions, where rain falls, where the vicissitude of seasons is known, and their rigour felt, houses were constructed with greater solidity. They were generally of a square form, the walls about eight feet high, built with bricks hardened in the sun, without any windows, and the door low and straight. Simple as these structures were, and rude as the materials may seem to be of which they were formed, they were so durable that many of them still subsist in different parts of Peru, long after every monument that might have conveyed to us any idea of the domestic state of the other American nations has vanished from the face of the earth. But it was in the temples consecrated to the Sun, and in the buildings destined for the residence of their monarchs, that the Peruvians displayed the utmost extent of their art and contrivance. The descriptions of them by such of the Spanish writers as had an opportunity of contemplating them, while in some measure entire, might have appeared highly exaggerated, if the ruins which still remain did not vouch the truth of their relations. These ruins of sacred or royal buildings are found in every province of the empire, and by their fre- quency demonstrate that they are monuments of a powerful people, who must have subsisted, during a period of some extent, in a state of no incon- siderable improvement. They appear to have been edifices various in their dimensions : some of a moderate size, many of immense extent, all remark- able for solidity, and resembling each other in the style of architecture. The temple of Pachacamac, together with a palace of the Inca, and a fortress, were so connected together as to form one great structure above half a league in circuit. In this prodigious pile, the same singular taste in building is conspicuous as in other works of the Peruvians. As they were unac- quainted with the use of the pulley, and other mechanical powers, and could not elevate the large stones and bricks which they employed in build- ing to any considerable height, the walls of this edifice, in which they seem to have made their greatest effort towards magnificence, did not rise above twelve feet from the ground. Though they had not discovered the use of mortar or of any other cement in building, the bricks or stones were joined with so much nicety, that the seams can hardly be discerned [^169]. The apartments, as far as the distribution of them can be traced in the ruins, were ill disposed, and afforded little accommodation. There was not a single window in any part of the building; and as no light could enter but by the door, all the apartments of largest dimensions must either have been perfectly dark, or illuminated by some other means. But with all these, and many other imperfections that might be mentioned in their art of build- ing, the works of the Peruvians which still remain must be considered as stupendous efforts of a people unacquainted with the use of iron, and convey to us a high idea of the power possessed by their ancient monarchs. These, however, were not the noblest or most useful works of the Incas. The two great roads from Cuzco to Qjuito, extending in an uninterrupted * Zarsf, lib. i. c. 8. ' Vrga, lib. v. e. 0. 336 HISTORY OF fBooK VII. stretch above fifteen hundred miles, are entitled to still higher praise. The one was conducted throuLi;h the interior and mountainous country, the other through the plains on the sea coast. From the language of acfmiration in which some of the early writers express their astonishment when they first viewed those roads, and from the more pompous description of later writers, who labour to support some favourite theory concerning America, one might fje led to compare this work of the Incas to the tamous military ways which remain as monuments of the Roman power; but in a country where there was no tame animal except the llama, which was never used for draught, and but little as a beast of burden, where the high roads were seldom trod by any but a hujrian foot, no great degree of labour or art was requisite in forming them. The Peruvian roads were only fifteen feet in breadth,* and in many places so slightly formed, that time has efifaced every vestige of the course in which they ran. In the low country, little more seems to have been done than to plant trees or to fix posts at certain inter- vals, in order to mark the proper route to travellers. To open a path through the mountainous country was a more arduous task. Eminences were levelled, and hollows filled up, and for the preservation of the road it was fenced with a bank of turf. At proper distances, Tambos, or store- houses, were erected for the accommodation of the Inca and his attendants, in their progress through his dominions. From the manner in which the road was originally formed in this higher and more impervious region, it has proved more durable ; and though, from the inattention of the Spaniards to every object but that of working their mines, nothing has been done towards keeping it in repair, its course may still be traced.! Such was the celebrated road of the Incas ; and even from this description, divested of every circumstance of manifest exaggeration or of suspicious aspect, it must be considered as a striking proof of an extraordinary progress in im- provement and policy. To the savage tribes of Am.erica, the idea of facilitating communication with places at a distance had never occurred. To the Mexicans it was hardly known. Even in the most civilized coun- tries in Europe, men had advanced tar in refinement, before it became a regular object of national police to form such roads as render intercourse commodious. It was a capital object of Roman policy to open a commu- nication with all the provinces of their extensive empire by means of those roads which are justly considered as one of the noblest monuments both of their wisdom and their power. But during the long reign of barbarism, the Roman roads were neglected or destroyed ; and at the time when the Spaniards entered Peru, no kingdom in Europe could boast of any work ot public utility that could be compared with the great roads formed by the Incas. The formation of those roads introduced another improvement in Peru equally unknown over all the rest of America. In its course trom south to north, the road of the Incas was intersected by all the torrents which roll from the Andes towards the Western Ocean. From the rapidity of their course, as well as from the frequency and violence of their inunda- tion, these were not fordable. Some expedient, however, was to be found for passing them. The Peruvians from their unacquaintance with the use of arches, and their inability to work in wood, could not construct bridges either of stone or timber. But necessity, the parent of invention, suggested a device which supplied that defect. They formed cables ot great strength, by twisting together some of the pliable withs, or osiers, with which their country abounds ; six of these cables they stretched across the stream parallel to one another, and made them fast on each side. These they bound firmly together by interweaving smaller ropes so close as to * Cicca, c. 60. t Xercz, p. 189. 191. Zarate, lib. i. c. 13, 14. \>ga, lib. i.x. c. 13. Bourguer Voyage, p. 105. Ulloa Eutretenemientos, p. 365. AMERICA. 337 form a compact piece of net-work, which being covered with branches of trees and earth, they passed alonff it with tolerable security [l60]. Proper persons were appointed to attend at each bridge, to keep it in repair, and to assist passengers.* In the level country, where the rivers became deep and broad and still, they are passed in balzas, or floats ; in the construction, as well as navigation of which the ingenuity of the Peruvians appears to be far superior to that of any people in America. These had advanced no further in naval skill than the use of the paddle or oar ; the Peruvian? ventured to raise a mast, and spread a sail, by means of which their bal- /as not only went nimbly before the wind, but could veer and tack with great celerity. t Nor were the ingenuity and art of the Peruvians confined solely to ob- jects of essential utility. They had made some progress in arts, which may be called elegant. They possessed the precious metals in greater abundance than any people of America. They obtained gold in the same manner with the Mexicans, by searching in the channels of rivers, or wash- ing the earth in which particles of it were contained. But in order to procure silver, they exerted no inconsiderable degree of skill and inven- tion. They had not, indeed, attained the art of sinking a shaft into the bowels of the earth, and penetrating to the riches concealed there ; but they hollowed deep caverns on the banks of rivers and the sides of moun- tains, and emptied such veins as did not dip suddenly beyond their reach. In other places, where the vein lay near the surface, they dug pits to such a depth, that the person who worked below could throw out the ore, or hand it up in baskets.! They had discovered the art of smelting and refining this, either by the simple application of fire, or, where the ore was more stubborn or impregnated with foreign substances, by placing it in small ovens or furnaces, on high grounds, so artificially constructed that the draught of air performed the function of a bellows, an engine with which they were totally unacquainted. By this simple device, the purer ores were smelted with facility, and the quantity of silver in Peru was so con- siderable, that many of tne utensils employed in the functions of common life were made of it.§ Several of those vessels and trinkets are said to have merited no small degree of estimation, on account of the neatness of the workmanship, as well as the intrinsic value of the materials. But as the conquerors of America were well acquainted with the latter, but had scarcely any conception of the former, most of the silver vessels and trin- kets were melted down, and rated according to the weight and fineness of the metal in the division of the spoil. In other works of mere curiosity or ornament, their ingenuity has been highly celebrated. Many specimens of those have been dug out of the Guacas, or mounds of earth, with which the Peruvians covered the bodies of the dead. Among these are mirrors of various dimensions, of hard shining stones highly polished ; vessels of earthen ware of different forms ; hatchets, and other instruments, some destined for war, and others for labour. Some were of flint, some of copper, hardened to such a degree by an unknown process, as to supply the place of iron on several occasions. Had the use of those tools, formed of copper, been general, the progress of the Peruvians in the arts might have been such as to emulate that of more cultivated nations. But either the metal was so rare, or the opera- lion by which it was hardened so tedious, that their instruments of copper were few, and so extremely small, that they seem to have been employed only in slighter works. But even to such a circumscribed use of this im- perfect metal, the Peruvians were indebted for their superiority to the Sancho ap. Ram. iii. 370. B. Zarate, lib. i. c. 14. Vnga, lib. iii. c. 7, 8. Heriera, dec. 5. lib. IV. c. 3, 4. 1 WIloa Voy. i. 167, &r,. i Ranmsio, iii. 414. A. ^ Acosts, lib. iv. o. 4, 5 Veea, p. 1. lib. viii. c. 30. I'lloa Kntroten. S.*)**. Vol. J.— 4;? 338 HISTORY OF [Book Vil. other people of America in various arts.* The same observation, how- ever, may be applied to them, which I formerly made with respect to the arts of the Mexicans. From several specimens of Peruvian utensils and ornaments, which are depasited in the royal cabinet of Madrid, and from some preserved in different collections in otlmr parts of Europe, I have reason to believe that the workmaaship is more to be admired on account of the rude tools with which it was executed, than on account of its in- trinsic neatness and elegance ; and that the Peruvians, though the most improved of all the Americans, were not advanced beyond the infancy of arts. But notwithstanding so many particulars, which seemed to indicate a high degree of improvement in Peru, other circumstances occur that sug- gest the idea of a society still in the first stages of its transition from bar- barism to civilization. In all the dominions of the Incas, Cuzco was the only place that had the appearance, or was entitled to the name, of a city. Every where else the people lived mostly irj detached habitations, dispersed over the country, or, at the utmost, settled together in small vil- lages.! But until men are brought to assemble in numerous bodies, and incorporated in such close union as to enjoy, frequent intercourse, and to feel mutual dependence, tliey never imbibe perfectly the spirit, or assume the manners of social life. In a country of immense extent, with only one city, the progress of manners, and the improvement either of the neces- sary or more refined arts, must have been so slow, and carried on under such disadvantages, that it is more surprising the Peruvians should have advanced so far in refinement, than that they did not proceed further. In consequence of this state of imperfect union, the separation of pro- fessions in Peru was not so complete as among the Mexicans. The less closely men associate, the more simple are their manners, and the fewer their wants. The crafts of common and most necessary use in life do not, in such a state, become so complex or ditficult as to render it requisite that men should be trained to them by any particular course of education. All the arts, accordingly, which were of daily and indispensable utility, were exercised by every Peruvian indiscrimmately. None but the artists em- ployed in works of mere curiosity, or ornament, constituted a separate order of men, or were distinguished from other citizens.| From the want of cities in Peru, another consequence followed. There was little commercial intercourse among the inhabitants of that great em- pire. The activity of commerce is coeval with the foundation of cities ; and from the moment that the members of any community settle in con- siderable numbers in one place, its operations become vigorous. • The citi- zen must depend for subsistence on the labour of those who cultivate the ground. They, in return, must receive some equivalent. Thus mutual intercourse is established, and the productions of art are regularly ex- changed for the fruits of agriculture. In the towns of the Mexican empire, stated markets were held, and whatever could supply any want or^desire of man was an object of commerce. But in Peru, from the singular mode of dividing property, and the manner in which the people were settled, there was hardly any species of commerce carried on between different provinces,§and the community was less acquainted with that active inter- course, which is at once a bond of union and an incentive to improvement. But the unwarlike spirit of the Peruvians was the most remarkable as well as the most fatal defect in their character.il The greater part of the rude nations of America opposed their invaders with undaunted ferocity, though with little conduct or success. The Mexicans maintained the struggle in defence of their liberties, with such persevering fortitude, that *niloa, Vov. tom.i. :J81, &c. Id. Enlrelcn. p. 3G9, &c. f Zarate, lib. i. c. 9. Herrera, dec. 5. lib. vi. c. 4. ' i Acosia, lib. vi. c. 15. Vega, lib. v. c. 9. llerrcia, dec. 5. lib. iy. c. 4. ^ Vega, lib. vi. c. 8. II Xercz. WO. Sancho, ap. Katii. iji. ST-i. Herrera, der. 5. lib. i. c. 3. AMERICA 339 h was with difficulty the Spaniards triumphed over them. Peru Avas subdued at once, and ahnost without resistance ; and the most favourable opportunities of regaining their freedom, and of crushing their oppressors, were lost through the timidity of- tlie people, I'hough the traditional histoiy of the Peruvians represents all the Incas as warlike princes, fre- (juently at the head of arfiiies, which they led to victoij and conquest, few symptoms of such a martial spirit appear in any ot their operations subsequent to the invasion of the Spaniards. The influence, perhaps, of those institutions which rendered their manners gentle, gave their minds this unmanly softness ; perhaps the constant serenity and mildness of the climate may have enervated the vigour of their frame ; perhaps some principles in their government, unknown to us, was the occasion of this political debility. Whatever may have been the cause, the fact is certain ; and there is not an instance in history of any people so little advanced in refinement, so totally destitute of military enterprise. This character had descended to their posterity. The Indians of Peru are now more tame and depressed than any people of America. Their feeble spirits, relaxed in lifeless inaction, seem hardly capable of any bold or manl^ exertion. But, besides those capital defects in the political state of Peru, some tietached circumstances and facts occur in the Spanish writers, which dis- cover a considerable remainder of barbarity in their manners. A cruel custom, that prevailed in some of the most savage tribes, subsisted among the Peruvians. On the death of the Incas, and of other eminent persons, a considerable number of their attendants were put to death, and interred around their Guacas, that they might appear in the next world with their former dignity, and be served with the same respect. On the death of Huana-Capac, the most powerful of their monarchs, above a thousand vcitims were doomed to accompany him to the tomb.* In one particular their manners appear to have been more barbarous than those of most rude tribes. Though acquainted with the use of fire in preparing maize and other vegetables for food, they devoured both flesh and fish perfectly raw, and astonished the Spaniards with a practice repugnant to the ideas of all civilized people. f But though Mexico and Peru are the possessions of Spain in the New AVorld, which, on account both of their ancient and present state, have attracted the greatest attention ; her other dominions there are far from being inconsiderable either in extent or value. The greater part of them w^as reduced to subjection during the first part of the sixteenth centuiy, by private adventurers, who fitted out their small armaments either in Hispaniola or in Old Spain : and were we to follow each leader in his progress, we should discover the same daring courage, the same perse- vering ardour, the same rapacious desire for wealth, and the same capacity for enduring and surmounting every thing in order to attain it, which dis- tinguished the operations of the Spaniards in their greater American con- quests. But, instead of entering into a detail, which, from their similarity of the transactions, would appear alniost a repetition of what has been already related, I shall satisfy myself with such a view of those pro- vinces of the Spanish empire in America, which have not hitherto been mentioned, as may convey to my readers an adequate idea of its greatness, fertility, and opulence. I begin with the countries contiguous to the tvvo great monarchies of whose history and institutions I have given some account, and shall then briefly describe the other districts of Spanish America. The jurisdiction of the viceroy of New Spain extends over several provinces which were not subject to the dominion of the Mexicans. The countries of Cinaloa and Sonora that stretch along the east side of the Vermilion Sea, or Gulf * Arosu, lib. v. c. 7. * Xoriiz, p. 190 ?»iiclio. Hsni. iii, 3'3. C, Hejrera, dw. *. 34« H I S T O K Y Ob [Book Vil. of California, as well as the immense king^doms of iVew Navarre, and New Mexico, which bend towards the west and north, did not acknowledge the sovereignty of Montezuma, or his predecessors. These regions, not inferior in magnitude to all the Mexican empire, are reduced some to a greater, others to a less degree of subjection to the Spanish yoke. They extend through the most delightful part of the temperate zone ; their soil is, in general, remarkably fertile ; and all their productions, whether animal or vegetable, are most perfect in their kind. They have all a communication either with the Pacific Ocean, or with the Gulf of Mexico, and are watered by rivers which not only enrich them, but may become subservient to commerce. The number of Spaniards settled in those vast countries is indeed extremely small. They may be said to have subdued rather than to have occupied them. But if the population in their ancient establish- ments in America shall continue to increase, they may gradually spread over those provinces, of which, however inviting, they have not hitherto been able to take full possession. One circumstance may contribute to the speedy population of some districts. Very rich mines both of gold and silver have been discovered in many of the regions which I have mentioned. Wherever these are opened, and worked with success, a multitude of people resort. In order to supply them with the necessaries of life, cultivation must be increased, artisans of various kinds must assemble, and industry as well as wealth will be gradually diffused. Many examples of this have occurred in different parts of America, since they fell under the dominion of the Spaniards. Populous villages and large towns have suddenly arisen amidst uninhabitable wilds and mountains ; and the working of mines, though far from being the most proper object towards which the attention of an infant society should be turned, may become the means both of pro- moting useiul activity, and of augmenting the number of people. A recent and singular instance of this has happened, which, as it is but little known in Europe, and may be productive of great effects, merits attention. The Spaniards settled in the provinces of Cinaloa and Sonora had been long disturbed by the depredations of some fierce tribes of Indians. In the year 1765, the incursions of those savages became so frequent and so de- structive, that the Spanish inhabitants, in despair, applied to the Marquis de Croix, viceroy of Mexico, for such a body of troops as might enable them to drive those formidable invaders from their places of retreat in the mountains. But the treasury of Mexico was so much exhausted by t e large sums drawn from it, in order to support the late war against Great Britain, that the viceroy could afford them no aid. The respect die to his virtues accomplished what his official power could not effect. He prevailed with the merchants of New Spain to advance about two hundred thousand pesos for defraying the expenses of the expedition. The war was conducted by an officer of abilities ; and after being protracted for three years, chiefly by the difficulty of pursuing the fugitives over moun- tains, and through defiles which were almost impassable, it terminated, in the year 1771, in the final submission of the tribes which had been so long the object of terror to the two provinces. In the course of this service, the Spaniards marched through countries into which they seem not to have penetrated before that time, and discovered mines of such value as was astonishing even to men acquainted with the riches contained in the moun- tains of the New World. At Cineguilla, hi the province of Sonora, they entered a plain of fourteen leagues in extent, m which, at the depth of only sixteen inches, they fouml gold in grains of such a size, that s(»ine of them weighed nine marks, and in such quantities, that in a short time, with a few labourers, they collected a thousand marks of gold in grains, even without taking time to wash the earth that had been dug, which appeared to be so rich, that persons of skill computed that it might yield AMERICA, 341 what would be equal in value to a million of pesos. Before the end of the year 1771, above two thousand persons were settled in Cineguilla, under the government of proper magistrates, and the inspection of several ecclesiastics. As several other mines, not inferior in richness to that of Cineguilla, have been discovered, both in Sonora and Cinaloa [161], it is probable that these neglected and thinly inhabited provinces may soon become as populous and valuable as any part of the Spanish empire of America. The peninsula of California, on the other side of the Vermilion Sea, seems to have been less known to the ancient Mexicans than the provinces which I have mentioned. It was discovered by Cortes in the year* 1536. During a long period it continued to be so little frequented, that even its form was unknown, and in most charts it was represented as an island, not as a peninsula [l62j. Though the climate of this country, if we may judge from its situation, must be very desirable, the Spaniards have made small progress in peopling it. Towards the close of the last century, the Jesuits, vvho had great merit in exploring this neglected province, and in civilizing its rude inhabitants, imperceptibly acquired a dominion over it as complete as that which they possessed in their missions in Paraguay, and they laboured to introduce into it the same policy, and to govern the natives by the sarfie maxims. In order to prevent the court of Spain from conceiving any jealousy of their designs and operations, they seem studi- ously to have depreciated the country, by representing the climate as so disagreeable and unwholesome, and the soil as so barren, tliat nothing but a zealous desire of converting the natives could have induced them to settle there. t Several public spirited citizens endeavoured to undeceive their sovereigns, and to give them a better view of California ; but in vain. At length, on the expulsion of the Jesuits from the Spanish dominions, the court of Madrid, as prone at that juncture to suspect the purity of the Order's intentions, as formerly to confide in them with implicit trust, appointed Don Joseph Galvez, whose abilities have since raised him to the high rank of minister for the Indies, to visit that peninsula. His account of the country was favourable ; he found the pearl fishery on its coast to be valuable, and he discovered mines of gold of a very promising appearance.;]; From its vicinity to Cinaloa and Sonora, it is probable that, if the population of these provinces shall increase in the manner which I have supposed, California may, by degrees, receive from them such a recruit of inhabitaiiis, as to be no longer reckoned among the desolate and useless districts of the Spanish empire. On the east of Mexico, Yucatan and Honduras are comprehended in the government of New Spain, though anciently they can hardly be said to nave formed a part of the Mexican empire. These large provinces, stretching from the bay of Campeachy beyond Cape Gracias a Dios, do not, like the other territories of Spain in the New World, derive their value either from the fertility of their soil, or the richness of their mines ; but they produce in greater abundance than any part of America, the logwood tree, which, in dying some colours, is so far preferable to any other material, that the consumption of it in Europe is considerable, and it has become an article in commerce of great value. During a long period, no European nation intruded upon the Spaniards in those provinces, or attempted to obtain any share in this branch of trade. But after the con- quest of Jamaica by the English, it soon appeared that a formidable rival was now seated in the neighbourhood of the Spanish tciritories. One of the first objects which tempted the English settled in that island, was the great profit arising from the logwood trade, and the facility of wresting some portion of it from the Spaniards. Some adventurers from Jamaica * Book V. + Vo)T>gaF, Hist, of ralirornia. i. W. * I.nrr-nzano, SW, 350. 342 H 1 S T O R i" O F i^BooK VIi: made the first attempt at Cape Catoche, the south-east proinontory of ifiicatan, and by cutting logwood there carried on a gainful traffic. When most of the trees near the coast in that place were felled, they removed to the island of Trist. in the bay of Campeachy, and in later times their prin- cipal station has been in the bay of Honduras. The Spaniards, alarmed at this encroachment, endeavoured by negotiation, remonstrances, and open force, to prevent the English from obtaining any footing on that part of the American continent. But after struggling against it for more than a century, the disasters of the last war extorted from the court of Madrid a reluctant consent to tolerate this settlement of foreigners in the heart of its territories.* The pain which this huml)ling concession occasioned seems to have prompted the Spaniards to devise a method of rendering it of little consequence, more efiectual than all the efforts of negotiation or violence. The logwood produced on the west coast of Yucatan, where the soil is drier, is in quality tar superior to that which grows on the marshy grounds where the English are settled. By encouraging the cutting of this, and permit- ting the importation of it into Spain without paying any duty,t such vigour has been given to this branch of commerce, and the logwood which the English bring to market has sunk so much in value, that their trade to the bay of Honduras has gradually declined [163] since it obtained a legal sanction ; and, it is probable, will soon be finally abandoned. In that event, Yucatan and Honduras will become possessions of considerable importance to Spain. Still further east than Honduras lie the two provinces of Costa Rica and Veragua, which likewise belong to the viceroyalty of New Spain ; but both have been so much neglected by the Spaniards, and are apparently of such small value, that they merit no particular attention. The most important province depending on the viceroyalty of Peru is Chili. The Incas had established their dominion in some ot its northern districts ; but in the greater part of the country, its gallant and high spirited inhabitants maintained their independence. The Spaniards, allured by the fame of its opulence, early attempted the conquest of it under Diego AlmagTo ; and after his death Pedro de Valdivia resumed the design. Both met with fierce opposition. The former relinquished the enterprise in the manner which I have mentioned.! The latter, after having given inany displays both of courage and military skill, was cut off, together with a considerable body of troops under his command. P^rancisco de Villagra, Valdivia's lieutenant, by his spirited conduct checked the natives in their career, and saved the remainder of the Spaniards trom destruction. By degrees, all the champaign country along the coast was subjected to ihe Spanish dominion. The mountainous country is still possessed by the Puelches, Araucos, and other tribes of its original inhabitants, formidable neighbours to tlie Spaniards ; with whom, during the course ot' two centu- ries, they have been obliged to maintain an almost perpetual hostility, suspended only by a tew intervals of insecure peace. That part of Chili, then, which may properly be deemed a Spanish province, is a narrow district, extended along the coast from the desert of Atacamas to the island of Chiloe, above nine hundred miles. Its climate is the most delicious in the New World, and is hardly equalled by that of any region on the tace of the earth. Though bordering on the Torrid Zone, it never t'eels the extremity of heat, being screened on the east by the Andes, and refreshed from the west by cooling sea breezes. The temperature of the air is so mild and equable, that the Spaniards give it the preference to that of the southern provinces in their native country. The fertility ot the suil corresponds with the benignity of the climate, and is wonderfully accommodated to European productions. The most valuable ^ Tiffily nf Paiirt, Alt. xviii. t Ht'al Ccdiila, CRiiipninaiu's. iii. H5. i Book v1, AMERICA. 34S v*t' these, corn, wine, and oil, abound in Chili as il'they had been native to the country. All the fruits imported liom Europe attained to lull maturity there. The animals of our hemisphere not only multiply, but improve in this delightful reg-ion. The horned cattle are of larger size than those of Spain. Its breed of horses surpasses, both in beauty and spirit, the famous Andalusian race, from which they sprung. Nor has nature exhausted her bounty on the surface of the earth ; she has stored its bowels with riches. V^aluable mines of gold, of silver, of copper, and of lead, have been dis- covered in various parts of it. A country distinguished by so many blessings, we may be apt to con- clude, would early become a favourite station of the Spaniards, and must have been cultivated with peculiar predilection and care. Instead of this, a great part of it remains unoccupied. In all this extent of country, there are not above eighty thousand white inhabitants, and about three tirnes that number of Negroes and people of a mixed race. The most fer- tile soil in America lies uncultivated, and some of its most promising mines remain unwrought. Strange as this neglect of the Spaniards to avail themselves of advantages which seemed to court their acceptance may appear, the causes of it can be traced. The only intercourse of Spain with its colonies in the South Sea was carried on during two centuries by the annual fleet to Porto Bello. All the produce of these colonies was shipped in the ports of Callao or Arica in Peru, for Panama, and carried from thence across the isthmus. All the commodities which they received from the mother countries were conveyed from Panama to the same harbours. Thus both the exports and imports of Chili passed through the hands of merchants settled in Peru. These had of course a profit on each ; and in both transactions the Chilese felt their own subordination ; and having no direct intercourse with the parent state, they depended upon another pro- vince for the disposal of their productions, as well as for the supply of their wants. Under such discouragements, population could not increase, and industry was destitute of one chief incitement. But now that Spain, from motives which I shall mention hereafter, has adopted a new system, and carries on her commerce with the colonies in the South Sea by ships which go round Cape Horn, a direct intercourse is opened between Chili and the mother country. The gold, the silver, and the other commodities of the province, will be exchanged in its wn harbours for the manufac- tures of Europe. Chili may speedily rise into that importance among the Spanish settlements to which it is entitled by its natural advantages. It may become the granary of Peru, and the other provinces along the Pacific Ocean. It may supply them with wine, with cattle, with norses, with hemp, and many other articles for which they now depend upon Europe. Though the new system has been established only a few years, those effects of it begin already to be observed.* If it shall be adhered to with any steadiness for half a century, one may venture to foretell that population, industry, and opulence will advance in this province with rapid progress. To the east of the Andes, the provinces of Tucuman and Rio do la Plata border on Chili, and like it were dependent on the viceroyalty of Peru. The-e regions of immense extent stretch in length from north to south abov<^ thirteen hundred miles, and in breadth more than a thousand. This country, which is larger than most European kingdoms, naturally forms itself into two great divisions, one on the north and the other on the south of Rio de la Plata. The former comprehends Paraguay, the famous rnissi )ns of the Jesuits, and several other districts. But as disputes have long subsisted between the courts of Spain and Portugal, concerning its boundaries, which, it is probable, will be soon finally ascertained, either amicably or by the decision of the sword, I choose to reserve my account ♦ Campomanes, ii. 157. 044 illSTORV OF [Book VII. of this norlhcni division, until I enter upon the history of Portuguese America, with which it is intimately connected ; and in relatii^ it, 1 shall be able, from authentic materials supplied both by Spain and Portugal, to give a full and accurate description of the operations and views of the Jesuits, in rearing that singular fabric of policy in America, which has drawn so much attention, and has been so imperfectly understood. The latter division of the province contains the governments of Tucuman and Buenos Ayres, and to these I shall at present confine my observations. The Spaniards entered this part of America by the river De la Plata ; and though a succession of cruel disasters befell them in their early attempts to establish their dominion in it, they were encouraged to persist in the design, at first by the hopes of discovering mines in the interior country, and afterwards by the necessity of occupying it, in order to prevent any other nation from settling there, and penetrating by this route into their rich possessions in Peru. But except at Buenos Ayres, they have made no settlement of any consequence in all the vast space which I have mentioned. There are indeed, scattered over it, a few places on which they have bestowed the name of towns, and to which they have endeavoured to add some dignity, by erecting them into bishoprics ; but they are no better than paltry villages, each with two or three hundred inhabitants. One circumstance, however, which was not originally foreseen, has contributed to render this district, though thinly peopled, of considerable importance. The province of Tucuman, together with the country to the south of the Plata, instead of being covered with wood like other parts of America, forms one extensive open plain, almost without a tree. The soil is a deep fertile mould, watered by many streams descending from the Andes, and clothed in perpetual verdure. In this rich pasturage, the horses and cattle imported by the Spaniards from Europe have multiplied to a degree which almost exceeds belief. This has enabled the inhabitants not only to open a lucrative trade with Peru, by supplying it with cattle, horses, and mules, but to carry on a commerce no less beneficial, by the exportation of hides to Europe. From both, the colony has derived great advantages. But its commodious situation for carrying on contraband trade has been the chief source of its prosperity. While the court of Madrid adhered to its ancient system, with respect to its communication with America, the river De la Plata lay so much out of the course of Spanish navigation, that interlopers, almost without any risk of being either observed or obstructed, could pour in European manufactures in such quantities, that they not only supplied the wants of the colony, but were conveyed into all the eastern districts of Peru. When the Portuguese in Brazil extended their settlements to the banks of Rio de la Plata, a new channel was opened, by which prohibited commodities flowed into the Spanish territories with still more facility, and in greater abundance. This illegal traffic, however detrimental to the parent state, contributed to the increase of the settlement which had the immediate benefit of it, and Buenos Ayres became gradually a populous and opulent town. What may be the effect of the alteration lately made in the government of this colony, the nature of which shall be described in the subsequent Book, cannot hitherto be known. All the other territories of Spain in the New World, the isl;>nds excepted, of whose discovery and reduction I have formerly given an account, are comprehended under two great divisions ; the former denominated the kingdom of Tierra Firme, the provinces of which stretch along the At- lantic, from the eastern frontier of New Spain to the mouth of the Orinoco ; the latter, the New Kingdom of Granada, situated in the interior countr}'. With a short view of these I shall close this part of my work. To the east of Vcragua, the last province subject to the viceroy of Mexico, lies the isthmus of Darien. Though it was in this part of the con- tinent that the Spaniards first began to plant colonies, thev have made nc AMERICA. 'Mo considerable progress in peopling it. As the country is extremely moun- tainous, deluded with rain during a good part of the year, remarkably un- healthful, and contains no mines of great value, the Spaniards would proba- bly have abandoned it altogether, if they had not been allured to continue by the excellence of the harbour of Porto Bello on the one sea, and that of Panama on the other. These have been called the keys to the communi- cation between the north and south sea, between Spain and her most valu- able colonies. In consequence of this advantage, Panama has become a considerable and thriving town. The peculiar noxiousness of its climate has prevented Porto Bello from increasing in the same proportion. As the intercourse with the settlements in the Pacific Ocean is now carried on by another channel, it is probable that both Porto Bello and Panama will de- cline, when no longer nourished and enriched by that commerce to which they were indebted for their prosperity, and even their existence. The provinces of Carthagena and Santa Martha stretch to the eastward of the isthmus of Danen. The country still continues mountainous, but its valleys begin to expand, are well watered, and extremely fertile. Pedro de Heredia subjected this part of America to the crown of Spain about the year 1532. It is thinly peopled, and of course ill cultivated. It produces, however, a variety of valuable drugs, and some precious stones, particu- larly emeralds. But its chief importance is derived from the harbour of Carthagena, the safest and best fortified of any in the American dominions of Spain. In a situation so favourable, commerce soon began to flourish. As early as the year 1544, it seems to have been a town of some note. But when Carthagena was chosen as the port in which the galeons should first begin to trade on their arrival from Europe, and to which they were directed to return, in order to prepare for their voyage homeward, the com- merce of its' inhabitants were so much favoured by this arrangement, that it soon became one of the most populous, opulent, and beautiful cities in America. There is, however, reason to apprehend that it has reached its highest point of exaltation, and that it will be so far aflfected by the change in the Spanish system of trade with America, which has withdrawn from it the desirable visits of the galeons, as to feel at least a temporaiy decline. But the wealth now collected there will soon find or create employment for itself, and may be turned with advantage into some new channel. Its harbour is so safe, and so conveniently situated for receiving commodities from Europe, its merchants have been so long accustomed to convey these into all the adjacent provinces, that it is probable they will still retain this branch of trade, and Carthagena continuQ to be a city of great importance. The province contiguous to Santa Martha on the east, was first visited by Alonso de Ojeda, in the year 1499 ;* and the Spaniards, on their land- ing there, having observed some huts in an Indian village, built upon piles, in order to raise them above the stagnated water which covered the plain, were led to bestow upon it the name of Venezuela, or little Venice, by their usual propensity to find a resemblance between what they discovered in America, and the objects which were familiar to them in Europe. They made some attempts to settle there, but with little success. The final reduction of the province was accomplished by means very different from those to which Spain was indebted lor its other acquisitions in the New World. The ambition of Charles V. often engaged him in operations of such variety and extent, that his revenues were not sufficient to defray the expense of carrying them into execution. Among other expedients for supplying the deficiency of his funds, he had borrowed large sums from the Velsers of Augsburg, the most opulent merchants at that time in Europe. By way of retribution for these, or in hopes, perhaps, of obtaining a new loan, he bestowed upon them the province of Venezuela, to be held as an • Bnok ii.p. 4?. VoT,. T. U 346 HISTORY OF [Book VII. hereditary fief from the crown of Castile, on condition that within a limited time they should render themselves masters of the country, and establish a colony there. Under the direction of such persons, it might have been expected that a settlement would have been established on maxims very different from those of the Spaniards, and better calculated to encourage suchuselul industry, as mercantile proprietors might have known to be the most certain source of prosperity and opulence. But unfortunately they committed the execution of their plan to some of those soldiers of fortune Avith which Germany abounded in the sixteenth centurj^ These adven- turers, impatient to amass riches, that they might speedily abandon a station which they soon discovered to be very uncomfortable, instead of planting a colony in order to cultivate and improve the country, wandered from district to district in search of mines, plundering the natives with un- feeling rapacity, or oppressing them by the imposition of intolerable tasks. In the course of a few years, their avarice and exactions, in comparison with which those of the Spaniards were moderate, desolated the province so completely, that it could hardly afford them subsistence, and the Velsers relinquished a property from which the inconsiderate conduct of their agents left them no hope of ever deriving any advantage.* When the wretched remainder of the Germans deserted Venezuela, the Spaniards again took ]'ossession of it ; but notwithstanding many natural advantages, it is one of their most languishing and unproductive settlements. The provinces of Caraccas and Cumana are the last of the Spanish ter- ritories on this coast ; but in relating the origin and operations of the mer- cantile company in which an exclusive right of trade with them has been vested, I shall hereafter have occasion to consider their state and pro- ductions. The New Kingdom of Granada is entirely an inland countiy of great extent. This important addition was made to the dominions of Spain about the year 1536, by Sebastian de Benalcazar and Gonzalo Ximenes de Que- sada, two of the bravest and most accomplished officers employed in the conquest of America. The former, who commanded at that time in Quito, attacked it from the south ; the latter made his invasion from Santa Martha on the north. As the original inhabitants of this region were further ad- vanced in improvement than any people in America hut the Mexicans and Peruvians,! they defended themselves with great resolution and good con- duct. The abilities and perseverance of Benalcazar and Quesada sur- mounted all opposition, though not without encountering many dangers, and reduced the country into the form of a Spanish province. The New Kingdom of Granada is so far elevated above the level of the sea that, though it approaches almost to the equator, the climate is re- markably temperate. The fertility of its valleys is not inferior to that of the richest districts in America, and its higher grounds yield gold and precious stones of various kinds. It is not by digging into the jjowels of the earth that this gold is found; it is mingled with the soil near the sur- face, and separated from it by repeated washing with water. This ope- ration is carried on wholly by Negro slaves; tor though the chill subter- ranean air has been discovered, by experience, to be so fatal to them, that they cannot be employed with advantage in the deep silver mines, they are more capable of performing the other species of labour than Indians. As the natives in the New Kingdom of Granada are exempt from that service, which has wasted their race so rapidly in other parts of Aineiica, the country is still remarkably populous. Some districts yield gold with a profusion no less wonderlul than that in the vale of Cineguilla, which I have ibrm«;rly mentioned, and it is often found in large petitas, or giains, which manilest the abundance in which it is produced. On a rising ground near ♦ rivcdo y Bagnos riii--t. de Vcncziiola. p. 11. &c. 1 Book iv. p. HLkc. AxMERICA. 347 r'amplona, single labourers have collected in a day what was equal in value to a thousand pesos.* A late governor of Santa Fe brought with him to Spain a lump of pure gold, estimated to be worth seven hundred and forty pounds sterling. This, which is perhaps the largest and finest specimen ever found in the New World, is now deposited in the royal cabinet of Madrid. But without founding any calculation on what is rare and extraordinary, the value of the gold usually collected in this country, particularly in the provinces of Popayan and Choco, is of considerable amount. Its towns are populous and flourishing. The number of inhabitants in almost every part of the country daily increases. Cultivation and in- dustry of various kinds begin to be encouraged, and to prosper. A con- siderable trade is carried on with Carthagena, the produce of the mines, and other commodities, being conveyed down the great river of St. Magda- lene to that city. On another quarter, the New Kingdom of Granada has a communication with the Atlantic by the river Orinoco ; but the country which stretches along its banks towards the e«6t, is little known, and im- perfectly occupied by the Spaniards. BOOK VIII. After tracing the progress of the Spaniards in their discoveries and conquests during more than half a century, I have conducted them to that period when their authority was established over almost all the vast regions in the New World still subject to their dominion. The effect of their settlements upon the countries of which they took possession, the maxims which they adopted in forming their new colonies, the interior structure and policy of these, together with the influence of their progres- sive improvement upon the parent state, and upon the commercial inter- course of nations, are the o})jects to which we now turn our attention. The first visible consequence of the establishments made by the Span- iards in America, was the diminution of the ancient inhabitants, to a degree equally astonishing and deplorable. I have already, on different occasions, mentioned the disastrous influence under which the connection of the Ame- ricans with the people of our hemisphere commenced, both in the islands and in several parts of the continent, and have touched upon various causes of their rapid consumption. Wherever the inhabitants of America had resolution to take arms in defence of their liberty and rights, many perished in the unequal contest, and were cut off by their fierce invaders. But the greatest desolation followed after the sword was sheathed, and the con- querors were settled in tranquillity. It was in the islands, and in those provinces of the continent which stretch from the Gulf of Trinidad to the confines of Mexico, that the fatal effects of the Spanish dominion were first and most sensibly felt. All these were occupied either by wandering tribes of hunters, or by such as had made but small progress in cultivation and industry. When they were compelled by their new masters to take up a fixed residence, and to apply to regular labour ; when tasks were imposed upon them disproportioned to their strength, and were enacted with unre- lenting severity, they possessed not vigour either of mind or of body to sustain this unusual load of oppression. Dejection and despair drove many to end their lives by violence. J^atigue and famine destroyed more. Iti « Picdrahita HiM. del N. Rcyno, p. 481. M?. penes me. 348 HISTORY OF [Book VIII. all those extensive regions, the ori^^inal race of inhabitants wasted away ; in some it was totafly extinguished. In Mexico, where a powerful and martial people distinguished their opposition to the Spaniards by efforts of courage worthy of a better fate, great numbers fell in the field ; and there, as well as in Peru, still greater numbers perished under the hardships of attending the Spanish armies in their various expeditions and civil wars, worn out with the incessant toil of carrying their baggage, provisions, and military stores. But neither the rage nor cruelty of the Spaniards was so destructive to the people of Mexico and Peru, as the inconsiderate policy with which they established their new settlements. The former were temporary ca- lamities, fatal to individuals : the latter was a permanent evil, which, with gradual consumption, wasted the nation. When the provinces of Mexico and Peru were divided among the conquerors, each was eager to obtain a district from which he might expect an instantaneous recompense for all his services. Soldiers, accustomed to the carelessness and dissipation of a military life, had neither industry to carry on any plan of regular cultiva- tion, nor patience to wait for its slow but certain returns. Instead of set- tling in the valleys occupied by the natives, where the fertility of the soil would have amply rewarded the diligence of the planter, they chose to fix their stations in some of the mountainous regions, frequent both in New Spain and in Peru. To search for mines of gold and silver was the chief object of their activity. The prospects which this opens, and the alluring hopes which it continually presents, correspond wonderfully with the spirit of enter])rise and adventure that animated the first emigrants to America in every part of their conduct. In order to push forward those favourite projects, so many hands were wanted, that the service of the natives be- came indispensably requisite. They were accordingly compelled to abandon their ancient habitations in the plains, and driven in crowds to the mountains. This sudden transition from the sultr}' climate of the valleys to the chill penetrating air peculiar to high lands in the torrid zone ; exor- bitant labour, scanty or unwholesome nourishment, and the despondency occasioned by a species of oppression to which they were not accustomed, and of vvhich they saw no end, afifected them nearly as much as their less industrious countrymen in the islands. They sunk under the united pres- sure of those calamities, and melted away with almost equal rapidity.* In consequence of this, together with the introduction of the smallpox, a malady unknown in America, and extremely fatal to the natives,! the num- ber of people both in New Spain and Peru was oo much reduced, that in a few years the accounts of their ancient population appeared almost incre- dible.J Such are the most considerable events and causes which, by their com- bined operation, contributed to depopulate America. Without attending to these, many authors, astonished at the suddenness of the desolation, have ascribed this unexampled event to a system of policy no less profound than atrocious. The Spaniards, as they pretend, conscious of their own inability to occupy the vast regions which they had discovered, and foreseeing the impossibility of maintaining their authority over a people infinitely supe- rior to themselves in number, in order to preserve the possession of Ame- rica, resolved to exterminate the inhaf)itants, and, by converting a great part of the country into a desert, endeavoured to secure their own domi- nion over it [t65]. But nations seldom extend their views to objects so remote, or lay their plans so deep ; and for the honour of humanity we may observe, that no nation ever deliberately formed such an execrable scheme. The Spanish monarchs, far from acting upon any such system of * ToniHemada, i. on. ' B. Di;i-/. c, V.'t. Ifrrrrrn. fVr. 2. lib. v. r. f. T'llnn Kntrrt< ■! W; :To!-qMonr,r>I5. f.4-.'. rt.13 [ 1 f"' T . AMERICA. 349 destruction, were uniformly solicitous for the preservation of their new subjects. With Isabella, zeal for propagating the Christian faith, together with the desire of communicating the knowledge of truth, and the conso- lations of religion, to people destitute of spiritual light, were more than ostensible motives for encouraging Columbus to attempt his discoveries. Upon his success, she endeavoured to fulfil her pious purpose, and mani- fested the most tender concern to secure not only religious instruction, but mild treatment, to that inoffensive race of men subjected to her crown [166]. Her successors adopted the same ideas ; and, on many occasions, which I have mentioned, their authority was interposed, in the most vigorous ex- ertions, to protect the people of America from the oppression of their Span- ish subjects. Their regulations for this purpose were numerous, and often repeated. They were framed with wisdom, and dictated by humanity. After their possessions in the New World became so extensive as mi^nt have excited some apprehensions of difficulty in retaining their dominion over them, the spirit of their regulations was as mild as when their set- tlements were confined to the islands alone. Their solicitude to protect the Indians seems rather to have augmented as their acquisitions increased : and from ardour to accomplish this, they enacted, and endeavoured to enforce the execution of laws, which excited a formidable rebellion in one of their colonies, and spread alarm and disaffection through all the rest. But the avarice of individuals was too violent to be controlled by the authority of laws. Rapacious and daring adventurers, far removed from the seat of government, little accustomed to the restraints of military discipline while in service, and still less disposed to respect the feeble jurisdiction of civil Sower in an infant colon)^ despised or eluded every regulation that set ounds to their exactions and tyranny. The parent state, with persevering- attention, issued edicts to prevent the oppression of the Indians ; the colo- nists, regardless of these, or trusting to their distance for impunity, con- tinued to consider and treat them as slaves. The governors themselves,^ and other officers employed in the colonies, several of whom were as indi- gent and rapacious as the adventurers over whom they presided, were too apt to adopt their contemptuous ideas of the conquered people ; and, in- stead of checking, encouraged or connived at their excesses. The desola- tion of the New World should not then be charged on the court of Spain, or be considered as the effect of any system of policy adopted there. It ought to be imputed wholly to the indigent and often unprincipled adven- turers, whose fortune it was to be the conquerors and first planters of America, who, by measures no less inconsiderate than unjust, counter- act! d the edicts of their sovereign, and have brought disgrace upon their country. With still greater injustice have many authors represented the intolera- ting spirit of the Roman Catholic religion, as the cause of exterminating the Americans, and have accused the Spanish ecclesiastics of animating their countrymen to the slaughter of that innocent people, as idolaters and enemies of God. But the first missionaries who visited America, though weak and illiterate, were pious men. They early espoused the defence of the natives, and vindicated their character from the aspersions of their conquerors, who, describing them as incapable of being formed to the offices of civil life, or of comprehending the doctrines of religion, con- tended, that they were a subordinate race of men, on whom the hand of nature had set the mark of servitude. From the accounts which I have given of the humane and persevering zeal of the Spanish missionaries, in ftrotecting the helpless flock committed to their charge, they appear in a ight which reflects lustre upon their function. They were nnnisteis of peace, who endeavoured to wrest the rod from the hands of oppressors. To their powerful interposition the Americotos vvf re indebted fV>r «;vciy regulation tending to mitigate the rigour of (heir fate, "^rhe clergy in llif- 350 HISTORY OF IBookVIII. Spanish settlements, regular as well as secular, are still considered by the Indians as their natural guardians, to whom they have recourse under the hardships and exactions to which they are too often exposed [l^*']. But, notwithstanding the rapid depopulation of America, a veiy consi- derable number of the native race still remains both in Mexico and Peru, especially in those parts which were not exposed to the tirst fury of the Spanish arms, or desolated by the first efforts of their industry, still more ruinous. In Guatimala, Chiapa, Nicaragua, and the other delightful pro- vinces of the Mexican empire, which stretch along the South Sea, the race of Indians is still numerous. Their settlements in some places are so populous as to merit the name of cities [l68]. In the three audiences into which New Spain is divided, there are at least two millions of Indians; a pitiful remnant, indeed, of its ancient population, but such as still forms a body of people superior in number to that of all the other inhabitants of this extensive country [169]. In Peru several districts, particularly in the kingdom of Quito, are occupied almost entirely by Indians. In other pro- vinces they are mingled with the Spaniards, and in many of their settle- ments are almost the only persons who practise the mechanic arts, and fill most of the inferior stations in society. As the inhabitants both of Mexico and Peru were accustomed to a fixed residence, and to a certain degree of regular industry, less violence was requisite in bringing them to some con- formity with the European modes of civil life. But wherever the Span- iards settled among the savage tribes of America, their attempts to incor- porate with them have been always fniitless, and often fatal to the natives. Impatient of restraint, and disdaining labour as a mark of servility, they either abandoned their original seats, and sought for independence in mountains and forests inaccessible to their oppressors, or perished when reduced to a state repugnant to their ancient ideas and habits. In the districts adjacent to Carthagena, to Panama, and to Buenos Ayres, the desolation is more general than even in those parts of Mexico and Peru of which the Spaniards have taken most full possession. But the establishments of the Spaniards in the New World, though fatal to its ancient inhabitants, were made a ta period when that monarchy was capable of forming them to best advantage. By the union of all its petty kingdoms, Spain was become a powerful state, equal to so great an under- taking. Its monarchs, having extended their prerogatives far beyond the limits which once circumscribed the regal power in every kingdom of Europe, were hardly subject to control, either in concerting or in executing their measures. In every wide-extended empire, the form of government must be simple, and the sovereign authority such, that its resolutions rnay be taken with promptitude, and may pervade the whole with sufficient force. Such was the power of the Spanish monarchs when they were called to deliberate concerning the mode of establishing their dominions over the most remote provinces which had ever been subjected to any European state. In this deliberation, they felt themselves under no con- stitutional restraint, and that, as independent masters of their own resolves, they might issue the edicts requisite for modelling the government of the new colonies, by a mere act of prerogative. This early interposition of the Spanish crown, in order to regulate the policy and trade ol its colonies, is a peculiarity which distinguishes their progress from that of the colonies of any other European nation. ^^ hen the Portuguese, the English, and French took possession of the regions in America which they now occupy, the advantages which these promised to yield were so remote and uncertain, that their colonies were suffered to struggle through a hard infancy, almost without guidance or protection from the parent state. But gold and silver, the first productions ot the Spanish settlements in the New World, were more alluring, and in-.mediately at- tiactfd tlie attention of (hfir monarchs. Tliouirh they had contributed AMERICA. t>5i little to the discovery, and almost nothing to the conquest of the New World, they instantly assumed the function of its legislators ; and having acquired a species of dominion formerly unknown, they formed a plan for exercising it, to which nothing similar occurs in the history of human affairs. The fundamental maxim of the Spanish jurisprudence, with respect to America, is to consider what has been acquired there as vested in the crown, rather than in the state. By the bull of Alexander VI., on which, as its great charter, Spain founded its right, all the regions that had been or should be discovered were bestowed as a free gilt upon Ferdinand and Isabella. They and their successors were uniformly held to be the uni- versal proprietors of the vast territories which the arms of their subjects conquered in the New World. From them all grants of land there flowed, and to them they finally returned. The leaders who conducted the various expeditions, the governors who presided over the different colonies, the officers of justice, and the ministers of religion, were all appointed by their authority, and removable at their pleasure. The people who com- posed infant settlements were entitled to no privileges independent of the sovereign, or that served as a barrier against the power of the crown. It is true, that when towns were built, and formed into bodies corporate, the citizens were permitted to elect their own magistrates, who governed them by laws which the community enacted. Even in the most despotic states, this feeble spark of liberty is not extinguished. But in the cities of Spanish America, this jurisdiction is merely municijjal, and is confined to the regulation of their own interior commerce and police. In whatever relates to public government, and the general interest, the will of the sovereign is law. No political power originates from the people. All centres in the crown, and in the officers of its nomination. When the conquests of the Spaniards in America were completed, their monarchs, in forming the plan of internal policy for their new dominions, divided them into two immense governments, one subject to the viceroy of New Spain, the other to the viceroy of Peru. The jurisdiction of the former extended over all the provinces belonging to Spain in the northern division of the American continent. Under that of the latter, was com- prehended whatever she possessed in South America. This arrangement, which, from the beginning, was attended with many inconveniences, became intolerable when the remote provinces of each viccroyalty began to im- prove in industry and population. The people complained of their sub- jection to a superior, whose place of residence was so distant, or so inac- cessible, as almost excluded them from any intercourse with the seat of government. The authority of the viceroy over districts so far removed from his own eye and observation, was unavoidably both feeble and ill directed. As a remedy ibr those evils, a third viceroyalty has been esta- blished in the present century, at Santa Fe de Bogota, the capital of the new kingdom of Granada, the jurisdiction of which extends over the whole kingdom of Tierra Firme and the province of (^uito.* Those viceroys not only represent the person of their sovereign, but possess his regal prerogatives within the precincts of their own governments in their utmost extent. Like him, they exercise supreme authority in every de- partment of^ government, civil, militarj', and criminal. They have the sole right of nominating the persons who hold many otHces of the highest importance, and the occasional privilege of supplying those which, whciu they become vacant by death, are in the royal gift, until the successor appointed by the king shall arrive. The external pomp of their govern- ment is suited to its real dignity ami power. Their courts are formed upon the model of that at JMadrid, witli horse and foot guards, a householtl ♦ Vov. (leUltoa. i. 2^. O.').'!, 352 HIS T O K V O F [Book Vill. regularly established, numerous attendants, and ensigns of command, displaying such magniticence as hardly retains the appearance of delegated authority.* But as the viceroys cannot discharge in person the functions of a supreme magistrate in every part of their extensive jurisdiction, they are aided in their government by officers and tribunals similar to those in Spain. The conduct of civil affairs in the various provinces and districts, into which the Spanish dominions in America are divided, is committed to magistrates of various orders and denominations ; some appointed by the king, others by the viceroy, but all subject to the command of the latter, and amenable to his jurisdiction. The administration of justice is vested in tribunals, known by the name of Jludiences, and formed upon the model ot the court of Chanceiy in Spain. These are eleven in number, and dispense justice to as many districts into which the Spanish dominions in America are divided [170]. The number of judges in the Court of Audience is vari- ous, according to the extent and importance of their jurisdiction. The station is no less honourable than lucrative, and is commonly fi led by per- sons of such abilities and merit as render this tribunal extremely respect- able. Both civil and criminal causes come under their cognizance, and for each peculiar judges are set apart. Though it is only in the most despotic governments that the sovereign exercises in person the formidable prerogative of administering justice to his subjects, and, in absolving or condemning, consults no law but what is deposited in his own breast ; though, in all the monarchies of Europe, judicial authority is committed to magistrates, whose decisions are regulated by known laws and established forms ; the Spanish viceroys have often attempted to intrude themselves into the seat of justice, and, with an ambition which their distance from the control of a superior rendered bold, have aspired at a power which their master does not venture to assume. In order to check a usurpation which must have annihilated justice and security in the Spanish colonies, by subjecting the lives and property of all to the will of a single man, the viceroys have been prohibited in the most explicit terms, by repeated laws, from interfering in the judicial proceedings of the Courts of Audience, or from delivering an opinion, or giving a voice, with respect to any point litigated before them.f In some particular cases, in which any question of civil right is involved, even the political regulations of the viceroy may be brought under the review of the Court of Audience, which in those instances may be deemed an intermediate power placed between him and the people, as a constitutional barrier to circumscribe his jurisdiction. But as legal restraints on a person who represents the sovereign, and is clothed with his authority, are little suited to the genius of Spanish policy ; the hesitation and reserve with which it confers this power on the Courts of Audience are remarkable. They may advise, they may remonstrate ; but, in the event oi a direct collision between their opinion and the will of the viceroy, what he determines must be carried into execution, and nothing remains for them, but to lay the matter before the king and the Council of the Indies.J But to be entitled to remonstrate, and inform against a person before whom all others must be silent, and tamely submit to his decrees, is a privilege ^vhich adds dignity to the Courts of Audience. This is further augmented by another circumstance. Upon the death of a viceroy, with- out any provision of a successor by the king, the supreme power is vested in the Court of Audience resident in the capital of the viceroyalty ; and the senior judge, assisted by his brethren, exercises all the functions of the viceroy while the office continues vacant. § In matters which come under * tntoa, Vov. i. 43<2. Gage, 61. T Recop. lib. ii. tit. xv. I. 35. 38. 44. lib. fii. tit. iii. 1. 36, 37. t rfolorz. de Jiire Ind. lib. iv. c. 3. n. 40, 41. Recop. lib. ii. li(. iv. '. S6. lib. iii. tit. iii. I. .14. lib. v. tir. ix. I. 1. !. iii. I. 91. ^ Book vi 3iS HISTORY OF [Book \ IK. To this we may add, that the support of the enormous and expensive fabric of their ecclesiastical establishment has been a burden on the Span- ish colonies, which has greatly retarded the progress of population and industry. The payment of tithes is a heavy tax on industiy : and if the exaction of them be not regulated and circumscribed by the wisdom of the civil magistrate, it becomes intolerable and ruinous. But, instead of any restraint on the claims of ecclesiastics, the inconsiderate zeal of the Span- ish legislators admitted them into America in their full extent, and at once imposed on their infant colonies a burden which is in no slight degree oppressive to society, even in its most improved state. As early as the year 1501, the payment of tithes in the colonies was enjoined, and the mode of it regulated by law. Every article of primary necessity, towards which the attention of new settlers must naturally be turned, is subjected to that grievous exaction.* Nor were the demands of the clergy confined to articles of simple and easy culture. Its more artificial and operose pro- ductions, such as sugar, indigo, and cochineal, were soon declared to be titheable ;t and thus the industry of the planter was taxed in eveiy stage of its progress, from its rudest essay to its highest improvement. To the weight of this legal imposition, the bigotry of the American Spaniards has made many voluntary additions. From their fond delight in the external pomp and parade of religion, and from superstitious reverence for ecclesi- astics of every denomination, they have bestowed profuse donatives on churches and monasteries, and have unprofitably wasted a large proportion of that wealth, which might have nourished and given vigour to productive labour in growing colonies. But so fertile and inviting are the regions of America, which the Span- iards have occupied, that, notwithstanding all the circumstances which nave checked and retarded population, it has gradually increased, and filled the colonies of Spain with citizens of various orders. Among these, the Span- iards who arrive from Europe, distinguished by the name of Chnpetones, are the first in rank and power. From the jealous attention of the Span- ish court to secure the dependence of the colonies on the parent state, all departments of consequence are filled by persons sent from Europe ; and in order to prevent any of dubious fidelity from being employed, each must bring proof of a clear descent from a family of Old Christians, untainted with any mixture of Jewish or Mahometan blood, and never disgraced by any censure of the Inquisition.| In such pure hands power is deemed to be safely lodged, and almost every function, from the viceroyalty down- wards, is committed to them alone. Every person, who, by his birth or residence in America, may be suspected of any attachment or interest adverse to the mother country, is the obiect of distrust to such a degree, as amounts nearly to an exclusion from all offices of confidence or autnori- ty [174]. By this conspicuous predilection of the court, the Chapetones are raised to such pre-eminence in America, that they look down with dis- dain on every other order of men. The character and state of the Creoles, or descendants of Europeans set- tled in America, the second class of subjects in the Spanish colonies, have enabled the Chapetones to acquire other advantages, hardly less consider- able than those which they derived from the partial favour of government. Though some of the Creolian race are descended from the conquerors of the New World ; though others can trace up their pedigree to the noblest families in Spain ; though many are possessed of ample fortunes ; yet, by the enervating influence of a sultry climate, by the rigour of a jealous government, and by their despair of attaining that distinction to which mankind naturally aspire, the vigour of their minds is so entirely broken, ♦ Recop. lib. i. tit. xiv. 1. 2. t Rofon. lib. i til. xiv. 1. :?, 4. i Recop. lib, ix. tit. xstvi. I 15. 16. AMERICA. 357 that a great part of them waste life in luxurious indulgences, mingled with an illiberal superstition still more debasing. Languid and unenterprising, the operations of an active extended com- merce would be to them so cumbersome and oppressive, that in almost every part of America they decline engaging in it. The interior traffic of every colony, as well as any trade which is permitted with the neighbour- ing provinces, and with Spain itself, is carried on chiefly by the Chape- tones ;* who, as the recompense of their industry, amass immense wealth, while the Creoles, sunk in sloth, are satisfied with the revenues of their paternal estates. From this stated competition for power and wealth between those two orders of citizens, and the various passions excited by a rivalship so inter- esting, their hatred is violent and implacable. On every occasion, symp- toms of this aversion break out, and the common appellations which each bestows on the other are as contemptuous as those which flow from the most deep-rooted national antipathy.! The court of Spain, from a refine- ment of distrustful policy, cherishes those seeds of discord, and foments this mutual jealousy, which ix)t only prevents the two most powerful classes of its subjects in the New World from combining against the parent state, but prompts each, with the most vigilant zeal, to observe the motions and to counteract the schemes of the other. The third class of inhabitants in the Spanish colonies is a mixed race, the offspring ei(her of a European and a Negro, or of a European and Indian, the former called Mulattoes, the latter Mestizos. As the court of Spain, solicitous to incorporate its new vassals with its ancient subjects, early encouraged the Spaniards settled in America to marry the natives of that country, several alliances of this kind were formed in their infant colo- nies. J But it has been more owing to licentious indulgence, than to com- pliance with this injunction of their sovereigns, that this mixed breed has multiplied so greatly as to constitute a considerable part of the population in all the Spanish settlements. The several stages of descent in this race, and the gradual variations of shade until the African black or the copper colour of America brighten into a European complexion, are accurately marked by the Spaniards, and each distinguished by a peculiar name. Those of the first and second generations are considered and treated as mere Indians and Negroes ; but in the third descent, the characteristic hue of the former disappears ; and in the fifth, the deeper tint of the latter is so entirely effaced, that they can no longer be distinguished from Europe- ans, and become entitled to all their privileges.§ It is chiefly by this mixed race, whose frame is remarkably robust and hardy, that the me- chanic arts are carried on in the Spanish settlements, and other active func- tions in society are discharged, which the two higher classes of citizens, from pride, or from indolence, disdain to exercise.ll The Negroes hold the fourth rank among the inhabitants of the Spanish colonies. The introduction of that unhappy part of the human species into America, together with their services and sufferings there, shall be fully explained in another place ; here they are mentioned chiefly in order to point out a peculiarity in their situation under the Spanish dominion. In several of their settlements, particularly in New Spain, Negroes are mostly employed in domestic service. They form a principal part in the train of luxuiy, and are cherished and caressed by their superiors, to whose vanity and pleasures they are equally subservient. Their dress and appearance are hardly less splendid than that of their masters, whose manners they imitate, and whose passions they imbibe. IT Elevated by this distinction, • Voy. de Ulloa, i. 27. 951. Voy. de Frczier, 227. t flagft's Survey, p. 9. Frezier,22C. {Recopil. lib. vi. tit. i. I. 2. Herrcra, dec. 1. lib. v. c. 12. dec. 3. lib. vii. c. 2. $ Voy. de Ulloa, l.p.27. II Ibid. i. 29. Voyage de Boupuer, p. 104. Mclendez, Teswros Verdaderop, i. 3.54 *> fJace. p. 56. Voy. de Ulloa. i. 451. i35U H i S T O R V O I" [DooK VJll. they have assumed such a tone of superiority over the Indians, and treat them with such insolence and scorn, tliat the antipathy between the two races has become implacable. Even in Peru, where Negroes seem to be more numerous, and are employed in field work as well as domestic ser- vice, they maintain their ascendant over the Indians, and the mutual hatred of one to the other subsists with equal violence. The laws have indus- triously fomented this aversion, to which accident gave rise, and, by most rigorous injunctions, have endeavoured to prevent every intercourse that might form a bond of union between the two races. Thus, by an artful policy, the Spaniards derive stren£:th from that circumstance in population which is the weakness of other European colonies, and have secured, as associates and defenders, those very persons who elsewhere are objects of jealonsy and terror.* The Indians form the last and most depressed order of men in the coun- try which belonged to their ancestors. I have already traced the progress of the Spanish ideas with respect to the condition and treatment of that people ; and have mentioned the most important of their more early re^'u- lations, concerning a matter of so much consequence in the administration of their new dominions. But since the period to which I have brought down the history of America, the information and experience acquired during two centuries have enabled the court of Spain to make such im- provements in this part of its American system, that a short view of the present condition of the Indians may prove both curious and interesting. By the famous regulations of Charles V. in 1542, which have been so often mentioned, the high pretensions of the conquerors of the New World, who considered its inhabitants as slaves to whose service they had acquired a full right of property, were finally abrogated. From that period, the Indians have been reputed freemen, and entitled to the privileges of sub- jects. When admitted into this rank, it was deemed just that they should contribute towards the support and improvement of the society which had adopted them as members. But as no considerable benefit could be ex- pected from the voluntary efforts of men unacquainted with regular indus- try, and averse to labour, the court of Spain found it necessary to fix and secure, by proper regulations, what it thought reasonable to exact from them. With this view, an annual tax was imposed upon every male, from the age of eighteen to fifty ; and at the same time the nature as well as the extent of the services, which they might be required to perform, was ascertained with precision. This tribute varies in different provinces ; but if we take that paid in New Spain as a medium, its annual amount is nearly four shillings a head ; no exorbitant sum in countries where, as at the source of wealth, the value of money is extremely lowt [I'^Sj- The right of levying this tribute likewise varies. In America, every Indian is either an immediate vassal of the crown, or depends upon some subject to whom the district in which he resides has been granted for a limited time, under the denomination of an encomienda. In the former case, about three-fourths of the tax is paid into the royal treasury ; in the latter, the same proportion of it belongs to the holder of the grant. When Spain first took possession of America, the greater part of it was parcelled out among its conquerors, or those who first settled there, and but a small portion reserved for the crown. As those grants, which were made for two lives only,! reverted successively to the sovereign, he had it in his power either to diffuse his favours by grants to new proprietors, or to augment his own revenue by valuable annexations 1176]. Of these, the latter has been frpqiuently chosen ; the number of Indians now depending immediately on ♦ Recopil. lib. vii. tit. v. I. 7. Herrora, ilcc. 8. lib. vii. c. 12. Frczior, 344. t Recopil. lili. vi. tit. V. 1. 42. Uakluyt, vol. iii. p. .llil. t Rrmpil. lil>. vi. fit. viii. I, 4S. Solnr/.. (!<■ Ir.a. .Ii;r( ]}t,. ii. c. Ifi, AMERICA. 359 the crown is much greater than in the first stage alter the conquest, and this branch of the royal revenue continues to extend. The benefit arising from the services of the Indians accrues either to the crown, or to the holder of the encomienda, according to the same rule ob- served in the payment of tribute. Those services, however, which can now be legally exacted, are veiy different from the tasks originally im- posed upon the Indians. The nature of the work which they must perform is defined, and an equitable recompense is granted for their labour. The stated services demanded of the Indians may be divided into two branches. They are either employed in works of primary necessity, without which society cannot subsist comfortably, or are compelled to labour in the mines, from which the Spanish colonies derive their chief value and importance. In consequence ot the former, they are obliged to assist in the culture of maize, and other grain of necessary consumption ; in tending cattle ; in erecting edifices ot public utility ; in building bridges ; and in forming high roads ;* but they cannot be constrained to labour in raising vines, olives, and sugar-canes, or any species of cultivation which has for its object the gratification of luxury or conmiercial profit.! In consequence of the latter, the Indians are compelled to undertake the more unpleasant task of ex- tracting ore from the bowels of the earth, and of refining it by successive processes, no less unwholesome thanoperose [177]. The mode of exacting both these services is the same, and is under regulations framed with a view of rendering it as little oppressive as pos- sible to the Indians. They are called out successively in divisions, termed Mitas, and no person can be compelled to go but in his turn. In Peru, the number called out must not exceed the seventh part of the inhabitants in any district. | In New Spain, where the Indians are more numerous, it is fixed at four in the hundred. § During what time the labour of such Indians as are employed in agriculture continues, I have not been able to learn [178]. But in Peru, each mita, or division, destined for the mines, remains there six months ; and while engaged in this service, a labourer never receives less than two shillings a day, and often earns more than double that sum.lj No Indian, residing at a greater distance than thirty miles from a mine, is included in the mita, or division employed working it ;11 nor are the inha- bitants of the low country exposed now to certain destruction, as they •were .it first when under the dominion of the conquerors, by compelling them to remove from that warm climate to the cold elevated regions where minerals abound** [179]. The Indians who live in the principal towns are entirely subject to the Spanish laws and magistrates ; but in their own villages they are governed by caziques, some ot" whom are the descendants of their ancient lords, others are named by the Spanish viceroys. These regulate the petty affairs of the people under them, according to maxims of justice transmitted to them by tradition from their ancestors. To the Indians this jurisdiction, lodged in such friendly hands, affords some consolation ; and so little formi- dable is this dignity to their new masters, that they often allow it to descend by hereditary right.tt For the further relief of men so much exposed to oppression, the Spanish court has appointed an officer in every district vvith the title of Protector of the Indians. It is his function, as the name implies, to assert the rights of the Indians ; to appear as their defender in the courts of justice ; and, by the interposition of his authority, to set bounds to the encroachments and exactions of his countrymen.|| A certain portion of the reserved fourth of the annual tribute is destined for the salary of the * Recop. lib. vi. lit. xiii. 1. 19. Solorz. dc lud. .lure, ii lib. i. c. 6, 7. 9. t Rrcop. lib. vl. tit. xiii 1. 8. Solorz. lib. i. c. 7. No. 41, fee t Hecop. lib. vi. tit. xii. 1. 21. § Uiid. lib. vi. 1. 22. II tilloa Entrcten. 26.5, 266. H Recop. lib. vi. tit. .xii. 1. 3. ** Ibid. lib. vi. tit. xii. 1. 29, tit. i. 1. 13. tt Solorz. de Jure Ind. lib. i, c. 26. Recnpil. lib. vi. tit. vii. it Solorz, lib. i. C. 17. p. 201. Rocop. lib. vi. tit. vi. 360 HISTORY OF [Book VIII. caziques and protectors ; another is applied to the maintenance of the clergy employed in the instruction of the Indians.* Another part seems to be appropriated for the benefit of the Indians themselves, and is applied for the payment of their tribute in years of famine, or when a particular district is affected by any extraordinary local calamity. t Besides this, provision is made by various laws, that hospitals shall be founded in every new settlement for the reception of Indians.J Such hospitals have accordingly been erected, both for the indigent and infirm, in Lima, in Cuzco, and in Mexico, where the Indians are treated with tenderness and humanity .§ Such are the leading principles in the jurisprudence and policy by which the Indians are now governed in the provinces belonging to Spain. In those regulations of the Spanish monarchs, we discover no traces of that cruel system of extermination, which they have been charged with adopt- ing ; and if we admit that the necessity of securing subsistence for their colonies, or the advantages derived from working the mines, give them a right to avail themselves of the labour of the Indians, we must allow, that the attention with which they regulate and recompense that labour is pro- vident and sagacious. In no code of laws is greater solicitude displayed, or precautions multiplied with more prudent concern, tor the preservation, the security, and the happiness of the subject, than we discover in the col- lection of the Spanish laws for the Indies. But those latter regulations, like the more early edicts which have been already mentioned, have too often proved ineffectual remedies against the evils which they were intend- ed to prevent. In every a2:e, if the same causes continue to operate, the same effects must follow. From the immense distance between the power intrusted with the execution of laws, and that by whose authority they are enacted, the vigour even of the most absolute government must relax, and the dread of a superior, too remote to observe with accuracy or to punish with despatch, must insensibly abate. Notwithstanding the numerous injunctions of the Spanish monarch, the Indians still suffer, on many occa- sions, both from the avarice of individuals, and from the exactions of the magistrates who ought to have protected them ; unreasonable tasks are imposed ; the term of their labour is prolonged beyond the period fixed by law, and they groan under many of^ the insults and wrongs which are the lot of a dependent people [I80]. From some information on which I can depend, such oppression abounds more in Peru than in any other colony. But it is not general. According to the accounts even ot those authors who are most disposed to exaggerate the sufferings of the Indians, they, in several provinces, enjoy not only ease but affluence ; they possess large farms ; they are masters of numerous herds and flocks ; and, by the know- ledge which they have acquired of European arts and industry, are sup- plied not only with the necessaries but with m.any luxuries of life.|| After explaining the form of civil government in the Spanish colonies, and the state of the various orders of persons subject to it, the peculiarities in their ecclesiastical constitution merit consideration. Notwithstanding the superstitious veneration with which the Spaniards are devoted to the Holy See, the vigilant and jealous policy of Ferdinand early prompted him to take precautions against the introduction of the Papal dominion in America. With this view, he solicited Alexander VI. for a grant to the crown of the tithes in all the newly-discovered countries,^ which he obtained on condi- tion of his making provision for the religious instruction of the natives. Soon after Julius II. conferred on him and his successors, the right ot patronage, and the absolute disposal of all ecclesiastical benefices there.** * Rccop. lib. vi. til. V. I. 30. tit. xvi. 1. 13—15. t Ibid. lib. vi. tit. iv. I. IX } Ibid. lib. i. tii. iv. 1. 1, &.C. § Voy. do Ulloa, i. 4:W. 509. (^Imrchiil, Iv. 496. || Gape's Survey, p. P5. 90. KM. llO, &c. IF Bulla Alex. VI. A.l>. 1501, ap. Solorz. de Jure Iiid. ii. p. 498. ** Bulla .lulli 1], ii. 1508, ap. Solorz. dc Jure Im'. ii. ^<.l. AiMERICA. 361 But tliese Pontiffs, unacquainted with the value of what he demanded, bestowed these donations with an inconsiderate liberality, which their successors have often lamented, and wished to recall. In consequence of those grants, the Spanish monarchs have become in effect the heads of the American church. In them the administration of its revenues is vested. Their nomination of persons to supply vacant benefices is instantly con- firmed by the Pope. Thus, in all Spanish America, authority of every species centres in the crown. There no collision is known between spiritual and temporal jurisdiction. The King is the only superior, his name alone is heard of, and no dependence upon any foreign power has been introduced. Papal bulls cannot be admitted into America, nor are they of any force there until they have been previously examined and approved of by the royal council of the Indies ;* and if any bull should be surreptitiously introduced and circulated in America without obtaining that approbation, ecclesiastics are required not only to prevent it from taking effect, but to seize all the copies of it, and transmit them to the council of the Indies.! To this limitation of the Papal jurisdiction, equally singular, whether we consider the age and nation in which it was devised, or the jealous attention with which Ferdinand and his succes- .sors have studied to maintain it in full force,| Spain is indebted, in a great measure, for the uniform tranquillity which has reigned in her Ame- rican dominions. The hierarchy is established in America in the same form as in Spain, Avith its full train of archbishops, bishops, deans, and other dignitaries. The inferior clergy are divided into three classes, under the denomination of Curas, Doctrineros, and Missioneros. The first are parish priests in those parts of the country where the Spaniards have settled. The second have the charge of such districts as are inhabited by Indians subjected to the Spanish government, and living under its protection. The third are employed in instructing and converting those fiercer tribes which disdain submission to the Spanish yoke, and live in remote or inaccessible regions to which the Spanish arms have not penetrated. So numerous are the ecclesiastics of^ all those various orders, and such the profuse liberality with which many of them are endowed, that the revenues of the church in America are immense. The Romish superstition appears with its utmost pomp in the New World. Churches and convents there are magnificent, and richly adorned ; and on high festivals, the display of gold and silver, and precious stones, is such as exceeds the conception of a European.^ An ecclesiastical establishment so splendid and extensive is unfavourable, as has been formerly observed, to the progress of rising colonies ; but in countries where riches abound, and the people are so delighted with parade that religion must assume it in order to attract their veneration, this pro- pensity to ostentation has been indulged, and becomes less pernicious. The early institution of monasteries in the Spanish colonies, and the inconsiderate zeal in multiplying them, have been attended with conse- quences more fatal. In every new settlement, the first object should be to encourage population, and to incite every citizen to contribute towards augmenting the number and strength of the community. During the youth and vigour of society, while there is room to spread, and sustenance is procured with facility, mankind increase with amazing rapidity. But the Spaniards had hardly taken possession of America, when, with a most preposterous policy, tney began to erect convents, where persons of both sexes were shut up, under a vow to defeat the purpose of^ nature, and to counteract the first of her laws. Influenced by a misguided piety, which ascribes transcendent merit to a state of celibacy, or allured by the prospect * Recopil. lib. i. tit. ix. I. 2. and Aulas del Consejo do las Indiaa, clxi. t Rccop. lib. i. tit. vii. 1. 55. X Id. lit', i. tit. vii. I. 55. passim. $ Vov. de Ullna, i. 4:^0. Vol. I.— 4ft 362 HISTORY OF [BookVIII. of that listless ease which in sultry climates is deemed supreme felicity, numbers crowded into those mansions of sloth and superstition, and are lost to society. As none but persons of Spanish extract are admitted into the monasteries of the New World, the evil is more sensibly felt, and every monk or nun may be considered as an active person withdrawn from civil life. The impropriety of such foundations in any situation where the extent of territory requires additional hands to improve it, is so obvious, that some Catholic states have expressly prohibited any person in their colonies from taking the monastic vows.* Even the Spanish motiarchs, on some occasions, seem to have been alarmed with the spreading of a spirit so adverse to the increase and prosperity of their colonies, that they have endeavoured to check it.j But the Spaniards in America, more thoroughly under the influence of superstition than their countrymen in Europe, and directed by ecclesiastics more bigoted and illiterate, have conceived such a high opinion of monastic sanctity, that no regulations can restrain their zeal ; and, by the excess of their ill judged bounty, religious houses have multiplied to a degree no less amazing than pernicious to society [l8l]. In viewing the state of colonies, where not only the number but influ- ence of ecclesiastics is so great, the character of this powerful body is an object that merits particular attention. A considerable part of the secular clergy in Mexico and Peru are natives of Spain. As persons long accus- tomed, by their education, to the retirement and indolence of academic life are more incapable of active enterprise, and less disposed to strike into new paths than any order of men, the ecclesiastical adventurers by whom the American church is recruited, are commonly such as, from merit or rank in life, have little prospect of success in their own country. Accordingly, the secular priests in the New World are still less distinguished than their brethren in Spain for literary accomplishments of any species; and though, by the ample provision which has been made for the American church, many of its members enjoy the ease and independence which are favourable to the cultivation of science, the body of secular clergy has hardly, during two centuries and a half, produced one author whose works convey such useful information, or possess such a degree of merit, as to be ranked among those which attract the attention of enlightened nations. But the greatest part of the ecclesiastics in the Spanish settlements are regulars. On the discovery of America, a new field opened to the pious zeal of the monastic orders ; and, with a becoming alacrity, they immediately sent forth missionaries to labour in it. The first attempt to instruct and convert the Americans was made by monks ; and as soon as the conquest of any province was completed, and its ecclesiastical establishment began to assume some form, the Popes permitted the missionaries of the four mendi- cant orders, as a reward for their services, to accept of parochial charges in America, to perform all spiritual functions, and to receive the tithes and other emoluments of the benefice, without depending on the jurisdiction of the bishop of the diocess, or being subject to his censures. In conse- quence of this, a new career of usefulness, as well as new objects of am- bition, presented themselves. Whenever a call is made for a fresh supply of missionaries, men of the most ardent and aspiring minds, impatient imder the restraint of a cloister, weary of its insipid uniformity, and fatigued with the irksome repetition of its frivolous functions, ofifer their service with eagerness, and repair to the New World in quest of liberty and distinction. Nor do they pursue distinction without success. The highest ecclesiastical honours, as well as the most lucrative preferments in I^Iexico and Peru, are often in the hands of regulars ; and it is chiefly to * Voy. de Ulloa, ii. 124. t Herrera. dor. v. lili. ix. r. 1, 2. R:.-cop. lib, i. til. iii. I. 1, 2. tit. iv. c. ii. Solorz. lib. iii. r. 33. AMERICA. 363 the monastic orders that the Americans are indebted for any portion of science which is cultivated among them. They are almost the only Spanish ecclesiastics from whom we have received, any accounts either of the civil or natural history of the various provinces in America. Some of them, though deeply tinged with the indelible superstition of their profes- sion, have published books which give a favourable idea of their abilities. The natural and moral history of the New World, by the Jesuit Acosta, contains more accurate observations, perhaps, and more sound science, than are to be found in any description of remote countries published in the six- teenth century. But the same disgust with monastic life, to which America is indebted for some instructers of worth and abilities, filled it with others of a very different character. The giddy, the profligate, the avaricious, to whom the poverty and rigid discipline of a convent are intolerable, consider a mission to America as a release from mortification and bondage. There they soon obtain some parochial charge ; and far removed, by their situa- tion, from the inspection of their monastic superiors, and exempt, by their character, from the jurisdiction of their diocesan,* they are hardly sub- jected to any control. According to the testimony of the most zealous catholics, many of the regular clergy in the Spanish settlements are not only destitute of the virtues becoming their profession, but regardless of that external decorum and respect for the opinion of mankind, which pre- serve a semblance of worth where the reality is wanting. Secure of im- punity, some regulars, in contempt of their vow of poverty, engage openly in commerce, and are so rapaciously eager in amassing wealth, that they become the most grievous oppressors of the Indians whom it was their duty to have protected. Others, with no less flagrant violation of their vow of chastity, indulge with little disguise in the most dissolute licen- tiousness [182]. Various schemes have been proposed for redressing enormities so mani- fest and so offensive. Several persons, no less eminent for piety than discernment, have contended, that the regulars, in conformity to the canons of the church, ought to be confined within the walls of their cloisters, and should no longer be permitted to encroach on the functions of the secular clergy. Some public-spirited magistrates, from conviction of its being necessary to deprive the regulars of a privilege bestowed at first with good intention, but of which time and experience had discovered the per- nicious effects, openly countenanced the secular clergy in their attempts to assert their own rights. The prince D'Esquilache, viceroy of Peru under Philip III., took measures so decisive and effectual for circumscribing the regulars within their proper sphere as struck them with general con- sternation [l8.i]. They had recourse to their usual arts. They alarmed the superstitious, by representing the proceedings of the viceroy as inno- vations fatal to religion. They employed all the refinements of intrigue in order to gain persons in power ; and seconded by the powerful influence of the Jesuits, who claimed and enjoyed all the privileges which belonged to the Mendicant orders in America, they made a deep impression on a bigoted prince and a weak ministry. The ancient practice was tolerated. The abuses which it occasioned continued to increase, and the corruption of monks, exempt from the restraints of discipline, and the inspection of any superior, became a disgrace to religion. At last, as the veneration of the Spaniards for the monastic orders began to abate, and the power of the Jesuits was on the decline, Ferdinand VI. ventured to apply the only effectual remedy, by issuing an edict [June 23, 1757], prohibiting regulars of every denomination from taking the chaise of any parish with the cure of souls ; and declaring that on the demise of the present incumbents, * Avendano The. Inflir. ii. 25^. 364 HISTORY OF [Book VIII. none but secular priests, subject to the jurisdiction of their diocessfhs, shall be presented to vacant benefices.* If this regulation is carried into exe- cution with steadiness in any degree proportional to the wisdom with which it is framed, a very considerable reformation may take place in the eccle- siastical state of Spanish America, and the secular clergy may gradually become a respectable body of men. The deportment of many ecclesiastics, even at present, seems to be decent and exemplary ; otherwise we can hardly suppose that they would be held in such high estimation, and pos- sess such a wonderful ascendant over the minds of their countrymen throughout all the Spanish settlements. But whatever merit the Spanish ecclesiastics in America may possess, the success ot their endeavours in communicating the knowledge of true religion to the Indians, has been more imperfect than might have been expected, either from the degree of their zeal, or from the dominion which they had acquired over that people. For this, various reasons may be assigned. The first missionaries, in their ardour to make proselytes, admitted the people of America into the Christian church without previous instruction in the doctrines of religion, and even before they themselves had acquired such knowledge in the Indian language, as to be able to explain to the natives the mysteries of faith, or the precepts of duty. Resting upon a subtle distinction in scholastic theology, between that degree of assent which is founded on a complete knowledge and conviction of duty, and that which may be yielded when both these are imperfect, they adopted this strange practice, no less inconsistent with the spirit of a religion which addresses itself to the understanding of men, than repug- nant to the dictates of reason. As soon as any body of people overawed by dread of the Spanish power, moved by the example of their own chiefs, incited by levity, or yielding from mere ignorance, expressed the slightest desire of embracing the religion of their conquerors, they were instantly baptized. While this rage of conversion continued, a single clergyman baptized in one day above five thousand Mexicans, and did not desist until he was so exhausted by fatigue that he was unable to lift his hands.t In the course of a few years after the reduction of the Mexican empire, the sacrament of baptism was administered to more than four millions.! Proselytes adopted with such inconsiderate haste, and who were neither mstructed in the nature of the tenets to which it was supposed they had given assent, nor taught the absurdity of those which they were required to relinquish, retained their veneration tor their ancient superstitions in full force, or mingled an attachment to its doctrine and rites with that slender knowledge of Christianity which they had acquired. These sentiments the new converts transmitted to their posterity, into whose minds they have sunk so deep, that the Spanish ecclesiastics, with all their industry, have not been able to eradicate them. The religious institutions of their ancestors, are still remembered and held in honour by many of the Indians, both in Mexico and Peru ; and whenever they think themselves out of reach of inspection by the Spaniards, they assemble and celebrate their idolatrous rites. § But this is not the most unsurmountable obstacle to the progress of Chris- tianity among the Indians. The powers of their uncultivated understandings are so limited, their observations and reflections reach so little beyond the mere objects of sense, that they seem hardly to have the capacity of forming abstract ideas, and possess not language to express them. To such men the sublime and spiritual doctrines ofChristianity must be, in a great measure, incomprehensible. The numerous and splendid ceremonies of the Popish * Real Cedula MS. penes me. t P. Tonibio, MS. Torquem. Mond. Ind. lib. xvi. c. fi. t Torribio, M . Torquem. lib. xvi. c. 8. « Voy. de Ulloa. i. 341. Torquem. lib. iv. c. 23. lib. xvi. c. 28. Gaee, 17J. AMERICA. 365 worship catch the eve, please and interest them ; but when their instnicters attempt to explain the articles of faith with which those external observances are connected, though the Indians may listen with patience, they so little conceive the meaning of what they hear, that their acquiescence does not merit the name of belief. Their indifference is still greater than their incapacity. Attentive only to the present moment, and engrossed by the objects before them, the Indians so seldom reflect upon wnat is past, or take thought for what is to come, that neither the promises nor threats of religion make much impression upon them ; and while their foresight rarely extends so far as the next day, it is almost impossible to inspire them with solicitude about the concerns of a future world. Astonished equally at their slowness of com])rehension, and at their insensibility, some oi the early missionaries pronounced them a race of men so brutish as to be inca- Eable of understanding the lirst principles of religion. A council held at lima decreed, that, on account of this incapacity, they ought to be ex- cluded from the sacrament of the Eucharist.* Though Paul III., by his famous bull issued in the year 1537, declared them to be rational creatures entitled to all the privileges of Christians ;t yet, after the lapse of two centuries, during which they have been members of the church, so imper- fect are their attainments in knowledge that very few possess such a portion of spiritual discernment as to be deemed wortny of being admitted to the holy communion. j From this idea of their incapacity and imperfect knowledge of religion, when the zeal of Philip II. established the inquisi- tion in America in the year 1570, the Indians were exempted from the jurisdiction of that severe tribunal,§ and still continue under the inspection of their diocesans. Even after the most perfect instruction, their faith is held to be feeble and dubious ; and though some of them have been taught the learned languages, and have gone through the ordinary course of academic education with applause, their frailty is still so much suspected, that few Indians are either ordained priests, or received into any religious orderli [184]. From this brief survey some idea may be formed of the interior state of the Spanish colonies. The various productions with which they supply and enrich the mother country, and the systen) of commercial intercourse between them, come next in order to be explained. If the dominions of Spain in the New World had been of such moderate extent as bore a due proportion to the parent state, the progress of her colonising might have been attended with the same benefit as that of other nations. But when, in less than half a century, her inconsiderate rapacity had seized on coun- tries larger than all Europe, her inability to fill such vast regions with a number of inhabitants sufficient for the cultivation of them was so obvious, as to give a wrong direction to all the efforts of the colonists. They did not form compact settlements, where industry, circumscribed within proper limits, both in its views and operations, is conducted with that sober per- severing spirit which gradually converts whatever is in its possession to a proper use, and derives thence the greatest advantage. Instead of this, the Spaniards, seduced by the boundless prospect which opened to them, divided their possessions m America into governments of great extent. As their number was too small to attempt the regular culture of the immense provinces which they occupied rather than peopled, they bent their atten- tion to a few objects that allured them with hopes of sudden and exorbitant gain, and turned away with contempt from the humbler paths of industry, which lead more slowly, but with greater certainty, to wealth and increase of national strength. Of all the metnods by which riches may be acquired, that of searching ♦ Torqucm. lib. xvi. c. 20. t W- lib. xvi. c. 25. Garcia Origin 311. * Voy. dc Ulloa. i 343. (S Recnp. lib. vi. tit. i. I. 35. II Torouem. lib. xvii. r. 13. 366 HISTORY OF [BookVIII. for the precious metals is one of the most inviting to men who are either unaccustomed to the regular assiduity with which the culture of the earth and the operations of commerce must be carried on, or who are so enter- prising and rapacious as not to be satisfied with the gradual returns of profit which they yield. Accordingly, as soon as the several countries in America were subjected to the dominion of Spain, this was almost the only method of acquiring wealth which occurred to the adventurers by whom they were conquered. Such provinces of the continent as did not allure them to settle, by the prospect of their affording gold and silver, were totally neglected. Those in which they met with a disappointment of the san- gume expectations they had formed, were abandoned. Even the value of the islands, the first fruits of their discoveries, and the first object of their attention, sunk so much in their estimation, when the mines which had been opened in them were exhausted, that they were deserted by many of the planters, and left to be occupied by more industrious possessors. All crowded to Mexico and Peru, where the quantities of gold and silver found among the natives, who searched for them with little industry and less skill, promised an unexhausted store, as the recompense of more intelligent and persevering efforts. During several years, the ardour of their researches was kept up by hope rather than success. At length, the rich silver mines of Potosi in Peru were accidentally discovered in the j^ear 1545* by an Indian, as he was clambering up the mountains in pursuit of a llama which had strayed from his flock. Soon after, the mines of Sacotecas in New Spain, little inferior to the other in value, were opened. From that time successive discoveries have been made in both colonies, and silver mines are now so numerous, that the working of them, and of some few mines of gold in the provinces of Tierra Firme, and the new kingdom of Granada, has become the capital occupation of the Spaniards, and is reduced into a system no less complicated than interesting. To describe the nature of the various ores, the mode of extracting them from the bowels of the earth, and to explain the several processes by which the metals are separated from the substances with which they are mingled, either by the action of fire, or the attractive powers of mercury, is the province of the natural philosopher or chymist, rather than of the historian. The exuberant profusion with which the mountains of the New World poured forth their treasures astonished mankind, who had been accustomed hitherto to receive a penurious supply of the precious metals from the more scanty stores contained in the mines of the ancient hemisphere. According to principles of computation, which appear to be extremely moderate, the^ quantity of gold and silver that has been regularly entereu in the ports of Spain, is equal in value to four millions sterling annually, reckoning from the year 1492, in which America was discovered, to the present time. This, in two hundred and eighty-three years, amounts to eleven hundred and thirty-two millions. Immense as this sum is, the Spanish writers con- tend, that as much more ought to be added to it in consideration of treasure which has been extracted from the mines, and imported fraudulently into Spain without paying duty to the King. By this account, Spain has drawn from the New World a supply of wealth amounting at least to two thousand millions of pounds sterlingj [185]. The mines, which have yielded this amazing quantity of treasure, are not worked at the expense of the crown or of the public. In order to encourage private adventurers, the person who discovers and works a new vein is entitled to the property of it. Upon laying his claim to such a dis- covery before the governor of the province, a certain extent of land is * Fernandez, p. I. lih. xi, c. 1 1 • T'zlariz Theor. y I'ract, de Commerr ia, c. 3 Herrtra d.T. ''iii. lib. li. r. I.'i. AMERICA. 367 measured off, and a certain number of Indians allotted him, under the obligation of his opening the mine within a limited time, and of liis paying the customary duty to the King for what it shall produce. Invited by the facility with which such grants are obtained, and encouraged by some striking examples of success in this line of adventure, not onlj the sanguine and the bold, but the timid and diffident, enter upon it with astonishing ardour. With vast objects always in view, fed continually with hope, and expecting every moment that ibrtune will unveil her secret stores, and give up the wealth which they contain to their wishes, they deem every other occupation insipid and uninteresting. The charms of this puisuit, like the rage for deep play, are so bewitching, and take such full possession of the mind, as even to give a new bent to the natural temper. Under its in- fluence the cautious become enterprising, and the covetous profuse. Pow- erful as this charm naturally is, its force is augmented by the arts of an order of men known in Peru by the cant name of searchers. These are commonljf persons of desperate fortune, who, availing themselves of some skill in mmeralogy, accoitipanied with the insinuating manner and confident pretensions peculiar to projectors, address the wealthy and tlie credulous. By plausible descriptions of the appearances which they have discovered of rich veins hitherto unexplored ; by producing, when requisite, specimens of promising ore ; by affirming, with an imposing assurance, that success is certain, and that the expense must be trifling, they seldom fail to persuade. An association is formed ; a small sum is advanced by each copartner ; the mine is opened ; the searcher is intrusted with the sole direction of everj" operation : unforeseen difficulties occur ; new demands of money are made ; but, amidst a succession of disappointments and delays, hope is never ex- tinguished, and the ardour of expectation hardly abates. For it is observed, that if any person once enters this seducing path, it is almost impossible to return ; his ideas alter, he seems to be possessed with another spirit ; visions of imaginary wealth are continually before his eyes, and he thinks, and speaks, and dreams of nothing else.* Such is the spirit that must be formed, wherever the active exertions of any society are chiefly employed in working mines of gold and silver. No spirit is more adverse to such improvements in agriculture and commerce as render a nation really opulent. If the system of administration in the Spanish colonies had been founded upon principles of sound policy, the power and ingenuity of the legislator would have been exerted with as much ardour in restraining its subjects from such pernicious industry, as is now employed in alluring them towards it. " Projects of mining," says a good judge of the political conduct of nations, " instead of replacing the capital employed in them, together with the ordinaiy profit of stock, commonly absorb both capital and profit. They are the projects, there- fore, to which, of all others, a prudent lawgiver, who desired to increase the capital of his nation, would least choose to give any extraordinary encouragement, or to turn towards them a greater share of that capital than would go to them of its own accord. Such, in reality, is the absurd confidence which all men have in their own good Ibrtune, that wherever there is the least probability of success, too great a share of it is apt to go to them of its own accord, t But in the Spanish colonies, government is studious to cherish a .spirit which it .should have laboured to depress, and, by the sanction of its approbation, augments that inconsiderate credulity which has turned the active indu.stry of Mexico and Peru into .such an im- proper channel. To this may be imputed the slender progress which Spanish America has made, during two centuries and a half, either in useful Mianufactures, or in those lucrative branches of cultivation which furnish * T'lloa Eiitreton. p. 221^. ♦ Pr. Smith's Inquiry, &r. ii. LIS. 368 HISTORY OF [Book Vllf. the colonies of other nations with their staple commodities. In comparison with the precious metals every bounty ot nature is so much despised, that this extravagant idea of their value has mingled with the idiom ot language in America, and the Spaniards settled there, denominate a country rich, not from the fertility of its soil, the abundance of its crops, or the exuberance of its pastures, but on account of the minerals which its mountains con- tain. In quest of these, they abandon the delightful plains of Peiu and Mexico, and resort to barren and uncomfortable regions, where they have built some of the largest towns which they possess in the New World. As the activity and enterprise of the Spaniards originally took this direc- tion, it is now so difficult to bend them a different way, that although, from various causes, the gain of working mines is much decreased, the fascination continues, and almost every person, who takes any active part in the com- merce of New Spain or Peru, is still engaged in some adventure of this kind [186], But though mines are the chief object of the Spaniards, and the precious metals which these yield form the principal article in their conunerce with America ; the fertile countries which they possess there abound with other commodities of such value, or scarcity, as to attract a considerable degree of attention. Cochineal is a production almost peculiar to New Spain, of such demand in commerce that the sale is always certain, and yet 3'ields such profit as amply rewards the labour and care employed in rearing the curious insects of which this valuable drug is composed, and l)reparing it for the market. Quinquina, or Jesuits' Bark, the most salutary- simple, perhaps, and of most restorative virtue, that Providence, in com- passion to human infirmity, has made known unto man, is found only in Peru, to which it affords a lucrative branch of commerce. The Indigo of Guatimala is superior in quality to that of any province in America, and cultivated to a considerable extant. Cacao, though not peculiar to the Spanish colonies, attains to its highest state of perfection there, and, froK» the great consu?iiption of chocolate in Europe, as well as in America, is a valuable commodity. The Tobacco of Cuba, of more exquisite flavour than any brouglit from the New World ; the Sugar raised in that island, in Hispaniola, and in New Spain, together with drugs of various kinds, may be mentioned among the natural productionsof America which enrictj the Spanish commerce. To these must be added an article of no incon- siderable account, the exportation of hides ; for which, as well as for many of those which I have enumerated, the Spaniards are more indebted to the v/onderful fertility of the country, than to their own foresight and industry. The domestic animals of Europe, particularly horned cattle, have multiplied in the New World with a rapidity which almost exceeds belief. A few years after the Spaniards settled there, the herds of tame cattle became so numerous that their proprietors reckoned them by thousands.* Less atten- tion being paid to them as they continued to increase, tht-y vvere suffered to run wild ; and spreading over a country of boundless extent, under a mild climate and covered with rich pasture, their number became im- mense. They range over the vast plains which extend from Buenos Ayres towards the Andes, in herds of thirty or forty thousand ; and the unlucky traveller who once falls in among them, may proceed several days before he can discntang e himself from among the crowd that covers the face of the earth, and seems to have no end. They are hardly less numerous m New Spain, and in several other provinces : they are killed merely for the sake of their hides ; and the slaughter at certain seasons is so great, that the stench of the carcasses, which are left in the field, would infect the air, if large packs of wild dogs, and vast flocks of gaUinazos, or * Oviedo ap. Ramus, iii. lOJ, B. Unklnyt, iil. 46fi.511 M ERICA. 369 American vultures, the most voracious ot" all tlif; leathered kind, did not instantly devour them. The number of those hides exported in every lleet to Europe, is very great, and is a lucrative branch of commerce.* Almost all these may be considered as staple commodities peculiar to America, and different, if we except that last mentioned, from the produc- tions of the mother country. When the importation into Spain of those various articles from her colo- nies first became active and considerable, her interior industry and manu- factures were in a state so prosperous, that with the product of these she was able both to purchase the commodities of the New World, and to answer its growing demands. Under the reigns of Ferdinand and Isabella, and Charles V., Spain was one of the most industrious countries in Europe- Her manufactures in wool, and flax, and silk, were so extensive, as not only to furnish what was sufficient for her own consumption, but to aftbrd a sur- plus for exportation. When a market for them, formerly unknown, and to which she alone had access, opened in America, she had recourse to her domestic store, and found there an abundant supply [187]. This new em- ployment must naturally have added vivacity to the spirit of industry, Nourished and invigorated by it, the manufactures, the population, and wealth of Spain, might have gone on increasing in the same proportion with the growth of her colonies. Nor was the state of the Spanish marine at this period less flourishing than that of its manufactures. In the begin- ning of the sixteenth centuiy, Spain is said to have possessed above a thousand merchant ships,t a number probably far superior to that of any nation in Europe in that age. By the aid which foreign trade and domes- tic industry give reciprocally to each other in their progress, the augmen- tation of both must have been rapid and extensive, and Spain might have received the same accession of opulence and vigour from her acquisitions in the New World that other powers have derived from their colonies there. But various causes prevented this. The same thing happens to nations as to individuals. Wealth, which flows in gradually, and with moderate increase, feeds and nourishes that activity which is friendly to commerce, and calls it forth into vigorous and well conducted exertions ; but when opulence pours in suddenly, and with too full a stream, it overturns all sober plans of industry, and brings along with it a taste for what h wild and extravagant and daring m business or in action. Such was the great and sudden augmentation of power and revenue that the possession of America brought into Spain ; and some symptoms of its pernicious influ- ence upon the political operations of that monarchy soon began to appear. For a considerable time, however, the supply of treasure from the New World was scanty and precarious ; and the genius of Charles V. conducted public measures with such prudence, that the effects of this influence were little perceived. But when Philip II. ascended the Spanish throne, with talents far inferior to those of his father, and remittances from the colonies became a regular arui considerable branch of revenue, the fatal operation of this rapid change in the state of the kingdom, both on the monarch and his people, was at once conspicuous. Philip, possessing that spirit of un- ceasing assiduity which often characterizes the ambition of men of mode- rate talents, entertained such a high opinion of his own resources that he thought nothing too arduous for him to undertake. Shut up himself in the solitude of the Escurial, he troubled and annoyed all the nations around him. He waged open war with the Dutch and English ; he encouraged and aided a rebellious faction in France ; he conquered Portugal, and maintained armies and garrisons in Italy, Africa, and both the Indies. By * Acosta, lit), iii c. 33. Ovallg Uifl. of Chili. Cliurch. CoIIcrt iii 47. sept ILid. v. p. 6«0. C*J. Lettrts lidif. xiii. '"-5. FeuiHii, i.'-Jl£» ^ f:'i'iu<do V Hfrrora. p. 359. Campomancs. i. 43*5 376 HISTORY OF [Book VIII. perceived the necessity of devising some method ot" supplying their colo- nies, different from their ancient one of sending thither periodical fleets. That mode of communication had been found not only to be uncertain, as the departure of the Galeons and Flota was sometimes retarded by various accidents, and often prevented by the wars which raged in Europe ; but long experience had shown it to be ill adapted to aflord America a regu- lar and timely supply of what it wanted. The scarcity of European goods in tlie Spanish settlements irequently became excessive ; their price rose to an enormous height ; the vigilant eye of mercantile attention did not fail to observe this favourable opportunity ; an ample supply was poured in by interlopers from the English, the i rench, and Dutch islands ; and when the Galeons at length arrived, they found the markets so glutted by this illicit commerce, that there was no demand for the commodities with which they were loaded. In order to remedy this, Spain has permitted a considerable part of her commerce with America to be carried on by regis- ter ships. These are fitted out during the intervals between the stated seasons when the Galeons and Flota sail, by merchants in Seville or Cadiz, upon obtaining a license from the council of the Indies, for which they pay a very high premium, and are destined for those ports in America where any extraordinary demand is foreseen or expected. By this expedient, such a regular supply of the commodities for which there is the greatest demand is conveyed to the American market, that the interloper is no longer allured by the same prospect of excessive gain, or the people in the colonies urged by the same necessity to engage in the hazardous adventures of contraband trade. In proportion as experience manifested the advantages of carrying on trade in this mode, the number of register ships increased ; and at length, in the year 1748, the Galeons, after having been employed upwards of two centuries, were finally laid aside. From that period there has been no intercourse with Chili and Peru but by single ships, despatched from time to time as occasion requires, and when the merchants expect a profit- able market will open. These ships sail round Cape Horn, and convey directly to the ports in the South Sea the productions and manufactures of Europe, for which the people settled in those countries were formerly f)bliged to repair to Porto Bello or Panama. These towns, as has been formerly observed, must gradually decline, when deprived of that com- merce to which they owed their prosperity. This disadvantage, however, is more than compensated by the beneficial efifects of this new arrange- irient, as the whole continent of South America receives new supplies of European commodities with so much regularity, and in such abundance, as must not only contribute greatly to the happiness, but increase the popu- lation of all the colonies settled there. But as all the register ships destined for the South Seas must still take their departure from Cadiz, and are obliged to return thither,* this branch of the American commerce, even in its new and improved form, continues subject to the restraints of a species of monopoly, and feels those pernicious effects of it which I have already described. Nor has the attention of Spain been confined to regulating the trade with its more flourishing colonies ; it has extended likewise to the reviving commerce in those settlements where it was neglected, or had decayed. Among the new tastes which the people of Europe have acquired in con- sequence of importing the productions of those countries which they conquered in America, that for chocolate is one of the most universal. Tlie use of this liquor, made with a paste formed of the nut or almond of the cacao tree compounded with various ingredients, the Spaniards first learned from the Mexicans ; and it has appeared to them, and to the other * Canipomanos. i 43-I. 410, AMERICA. 377 European nations, so palatable, so nourishing, and so wholesome, that it has become a commercial article of considerable importance. The cacao tree grows spontaneously in several parts of the torrid zone ; but the nuts of the best quality, next to those of Guatimala on the South sea, are pro- duced in the rich plains of Caraccas, a province of Tierra Fimie. In consequence of this acknowledged superiority in the quality of cacao in that province, and its communication with the Atlantic, which facilitates the conveyance to Europe, the culture of the cacao there is more extensive than in any district of America. But the Dutch, by the vicinity of their settlements in the small islands of Curazoa and Buenos Ayres, to the coast of Caraccas, gradually engrossed the greatest part of the cacao trade. The traffic with the mother country for this valuable commodity ceased almost entirely ; and such was the supine negligence of the Spaniards, or the defects of their commercial arrangements, that they were obliged to receive from the hands of foreigners this production of their own colonies at an exorbitant price. In order to remedy an evil no less disgraceful than pernicious to his subjects, Philip V., in the year 1728, granted to a body of merchants an exclusive right to the commerce with Caraccas and Cumana, on condition of their employing, at their own expense, a sufficient number of armed vessels to clear the coast of interlopers. This society, distinguished sometimes by the name of the Company of Guipuscoa, from the province of Spain in which it is established, and sometimes by that of the Company of Caraccas, from the district of America to which it trades, has carried on its operations with such vigour and success, that Spain has recovered an important branch of commerce which she had sufiFered to be wrested from her, and is plentifully supplied with an article of extensive consumption at a moderate price. Not only the parent state, but the colony of Caraccas, has derived great advantages from this institution ; for although, at the fii-st aspect, it may appear to be one of those monopolies whose tendency is to check the spirit of industry instead of calling it forth to new exertions, it has been prevented from operating in this manner by several salutary regulations framed upon foresight of such bad effects, and on purpose to obviate them. The planters in the Caraccas are not left to depend entirely on the company, either for the importation of European commodities or the sale of their own productions. The inhabitants of the Canary islands have the privilege of sending thither annually a register ship of considerable burden ; and from Vera Cruz, in New Spain, a free trade is permitted in every port comprehended in the charter of the company. In consequence of this, there is such a competition, that both with respect to what the colonies purchase and what they sell, the price seems to be fixed at its natural and equitable rate. The company has not the power of raising the former, or of degrading the latter, at pleasure ; and accordingly, since it was established, the increase of culture, of popu- lation, and of live stock, in the province of Caraccas, has been very consi- derable [I9i;|. But as it is slowly that nations relinquish any system which time has rendered venerable, and as it is still more slowly that commerce can be diverted from the channel in which it has long been accustomed to flow, Philip v., in his new regulations concerning the American trade, paid such deference to the ancient maxim of Spain, concerning the limitation of importation from the New World to one harbour, as to oblige both the register ships which returned from Peru, and those of the Guipuscoan Company from Caraccas, to deliver their cargoes in the port of Cadiz. Since his jeign, sentiments more liberal and enlarged begin to spread in Spain. The spirit of philosophical inquiry, which it is the glory of the E resent age to have turned from frivolous or abstruse speculations to the usiness and affairs of men, has extended its influence beyond the Pyre- nees. In the researches of ingenious authors concerning the police or Vol. I. — 48 378 li i 6 T O II V O F [Book VIII. commerce of nations, the errors and defects of the Spanish system with respect to both met every eye, and have not only been exposed with seve- rity, but are held up as a warning to other states. The Spaniards, stung with the reproaches of these authors, or convinced by their arguments, and admonished by several enlightened writers of their own country, seem at length to have discovered the destructive tendency of those narrow maxims, which, by cramping commerce in all its operations, have so long retarded its progress. It is to the monarch now on the throne that Spain is indebted for the first public regulation formed in consequence of such enlarged ideas. While Spain adhered with rigour to her ancient maxim concerning her commerce with America, she was so much afraid of opening any channel by which an illicit trade might find admission into the colonies, that she almost shut herself out from any intercourse with them but that which was carried on by her annual fleets. There was no establishment, for a regular communication of either public or private intelligence, between the mother country and its American settlements. From the want of this necessary institution, the operations of the state, as well as the business of individuals, were retarded, or conducted unskiltully, and Spain often received Irom foreigners her first information with respect to very interesting events in her own colonies. But though this defect in police was sensibly felt, and the remedy for it was obvious, that jealous spirit with which the Spanish monarchs guarded the exclusive trade, restrained them from applying it. At length Charles III. surmounted those considerations which had deterred his predecessors, and in the year 1764 appointed packet boats to be despatched on the first day of each month from Corugna to the Havanna or Porto Rico. From thence letters are conveyed in smaller vessels to Vera Cruz and Porto Bello, and transmitted by post through the kingdoms of TierraFirme, Granada, Peru, and New Spain. With no less regularity packet boats sail once in two months to Rio de la Plata, for the accommo- dation of the provinces to the east of the Andes. Thus provision is made for a speedy and certain circulation of intelligence throughout the vast dominions of Spain, from which equal advantages must redound to the political and mercantile interest of the kingdom.* With this new ar- rangement a scheme of extending commerce has been more immediately connected. Each of the packet boats, which are vessels of some consi- derable burden, is allowed to take in half a loading of such commodities as are the product of Spain, and most in demand in the ports whither they are bound. In return for these, they may bring home to Corugna an equal quantity of American productions.! This may be considered as the first relaxation of those rigid laws, which confined the trade with the New World to a single port, and the first attempt to admit the rest of the kingdom to some share in it. It was soon followed by one more decisive. In the year 1765, Charles III. laid open the trade to the windward islands, Cuba, Hispaniola, Porto Rico, Margarita, and Trinidad, to his subjects in every province of Spain. He permitted them to sail from certain ports in each province, which are specified in the edict, at any seafj^in, and with whatever cargo they deemed most proper, without any other warrant than a simple clearance from the custom-house of the place whence they took their departure. He released them from the numerous and oppressive duties imposed on goods exported to America, and in place of the whole substituted a moderate tax of six in the hundred on the commodities sent from Spain. He allowed them to return either to the same port, or to any other where they might hope tor a more advantageous market, and there to enter the homeward cargo on payment of the usual duties. This ample privilege, which at once broke * Pont?. Viage do Ei-pajiia. vi. Trol. p. li*. + Appond. ii. a U Ediic. Fop. p. SI. AMERICA. z:ltcn employed as instruments in carrying it on ; and the boards instituted to restrain and punish it are the channels through which it flows. The King is supposed, by the most intelligent Spanish writers, to be defrauded, by various artifices, of more than one half of the revenue which he ought to receive from America ;* and as long as it is the interest of so many persons to screen those artifices from detection, the knowledge ot them will never reach the throne. " How many ordinances," says Corita, " how * i=nIoi-z. (Iclnd. .Tnrp, ii. lib. v: AMERICA. 3S3 luaiiy iiibLruclu)ns, how many letters iVoin our sovereign, are sent in order to correct abuses ! and how little are they observed, and what small ad- vantage is derived from them ! To me the old observation appears just, that where there are many physicians and many medicines, there is a want of health ; where there are many laws and many judges, there is want of justice. We have viceroys, presidents, governors, oydors, corrigidors, alcaldes ; and thousands of alguazils abound every where ; but notwith- standing all these, public abuses continue to multiply."* Time has in- creased the evils which he lamented as early as the reign of Philip II. A spirit of corruption has intected all the colonies of Spain in America. Men (vT removed from the seat of government ; impatient to acquire wealth, that they may return speedily from what they are apt to consider as a state of exile in a remote unhealthful country ; allured by opportunities too tempting to be resisted, and seduced by the example of'^lhose around them ; find their sentiments of honour and of duty gradually relax. In private life they give themselves up to a dissolute luxury, while in their public conduct they become unmindful of what they owe to their sovereign and to their country. Before I close this account of the Spanish trade in America there remains one detached but important branch of it to be mentioned. Soon after his accession to the throne, Philip II. lormed a scheme of planting a colony in the Philippine islands which had been neglected since the time of their discovery ; and he accomplished it by means of an armament titted out Irom New Spaint [1564]. Manila, in the island of Luconia, was the sta- tion chosen for the capital of this new establishment. From it an active commercial intercourse began with the Chinese, and a considerable num- ber of that industrious people, allured by the prospect of gain, settled in the Philippine islands under the Spanish protection. They supplied the colony so amply with all the valuable productions and manufactures of the East as enabled it to open a trade with America, by a course of navigation the longest from land to land on our globe. In the infancy of this trade, it was carried on with Callao, on the coast of Peru ; but experience having discovered the impropriety of fixing upon that as the port of communica- tion with Manila, the staple of the commerce between the East and West was removed from Callao to Acapulco, on the coast of New Spain. After various arrangements it has been brought into a regular form. One or two ships depart annually irom Acapulco, which are permitted to carry out silver to the amount of five hundred thousand pesos ;| but they have hardly any thing else of value on board ; in return for which they bring back spices, drugs, china, and japan wares, calicoes, chintz, muslins, silks, and every precious article with which the benignity of the climate, or the ingenuity of its people has enabled the East to supply the rest of the world. For some time the merchants of Peru were admitted to partici- pate in this traffic, and might send annually a ship to Acapulco, to wait the arrival of the vessels from Manila, and receive a proportional share of the commodities which they imported. At length the Peruvians were ex- cluded from this trade by most rigorous edicts, and all the commodities from the East reserved solely for the consumption of New Spain. In consequence of this indulgence, the inhabitants of that country enjoy advantages unknown in the other Spanish colonies. The manufactures of the East are not only more suited to a warm climate, and more showy than those of Europe, but can be sold at a lower price ; while, at the same time, the profits upon them are so considerable as to enrich all those who are employed either in bringing them from Manila or vending them in New Spain. As the interest both of the buyer and seller concurred in favouring this branch of commerce, it has continued to extend in spite of * MS. ponos me. t Tonincm. i. lit', v. c. 11. * Rocnp. lib. it. r. 4.'). I. fi. 384 HISTORY OF [Book VIII. regulations concerted with the most anxious jealousy to circumscribe it. Under cover of what the laws permit to be imported, great quantities ot" India goods are poured into the markets of New Spain [194] ; and when the Flota arrives at Vera Cruz from Europe, it often finds the wants of the peoole already supplied by cheaper and more acceptable commodities. There is not, in the commercial aiTangements of Spain, any circum- stance more inexplicable than the permission of this trade between New Spain and the Philippines, or more repugnant to its fundamental maxim of holding the colonies in perpetual dependence on the mother countiy, by prohibiting any commercial intercourse that might suggest to then, the idea of receiving a supply of their wants from any other quarter. This per- mission must appear still more extraordinary, from considering that Spain herself carries on no direct trade with her settlements in the Philippines, .ind grants a privilege to one of her American colonies which she denies to her subjects in Europe. It is probable that the colonists, who originally took possession of the Philippines, having been sent out from New Spain, began this intercourse with a country which they considered, in some measure, as their parent state, before the court of Madrid was aware of its consequences, or could establish regulations in order to prevent it. Many remonstrances have been presented against this trade, as detrimental to Spain, by diverting into another channel a large portion of that trea- sure which ought to flow into the kingdom, as tending to give rise to a S})irit of independence in the colonies, and to encourage innumerable frauds, against which it is impossible to guard, in transactions so far re- moved from the inspection of government. But as it requires no slight effort of political wisdom and vigour to abolish any practice which num- bers are interested in supporting, and to which time has added the sanc- tion of its authority, the commerce between New Spain and Manila seems to be as considerable as ever, and may be considered as one chief cause of the elegance and splendour conspicuous in this part of the Spanish dominions. But notwithstanding this general corruption in the colonies of Spain, and the diminution of the income belonging to the public, occasioned by the illicit importations made by foreigners, as well as by the various frauds of which the colonists themselves are guilty in their commerce with the parent state, the Spanish monarchs receive a very considerable revenue from their American dominions. This arises from taxes of various kinds, which may be divided into three capital branches. The first contains what is paid to the King, as sovereign, or superior lord of the New World : to this class belongs the duty on the gold and silver raised from the mines, and the tribute exacted from the Pndians ; the former is termed by the Spaniards the right of signiory, the latter is the duty of vassalage. The second branch comprehends (he numerous duties upon commerce which accom- pany and oppress it in every step of its progress, from the greatest transactions of the wholesale merchant to the petty traffic of the vender by retail. The third includes what accrues to the king, as head of the church, and adminis- trator of ecclesiastical funds in the New World. In consequence of this he receives the first fruits, annates, spoils, and other spiritual revenues, levied by the apostolic chamber in Europe ; and is entitled likewise to the profit arising from the sale of the bull of Cruzado. This bull, which is published every two years, contains an absolution from past offences by the Pope, and, among other immunities, a permission to eat several kinds of prohibited food during Lent, and on meagre days. The monks employed in dispersing those bulls extol their virtues with all the fervour of interested eloquence ; the people, ignorant and credulous, listen with implicit assent ; and every person in the Spanish colonies, of European, Creolian, or mixed race, purchases a bull, which is deemed essential to his salvation, at the rate set upon it by government [195 j. AMERICA. 385 Whal may be the amount of those various funds, it is almost impossible to determine with precision. The extent of the Spanish dominions in .America, the jealousy of government, which renders them inaccessible to foreigners, the mysterious silence which the Spaniards are accustomed to observe with respect to the interior state of their colonies, combine in covering this subject with a veil which it is not easy to remove. But an account, apparently no less accurate than it is curious, has lately been published oi the royal revenue in New Spain, from which we may form some idea with respect to what is collected in the other provinces. According to that account the crown does not receive from all the depart- ments of taxation in New Spain above a million of our money, from which one half must be deducted as the expense of the provincial establish- ment [196]. Peru, it is probable, yields a sum not inferior to this ; and if we suppose that all the other regions of America, including the islands, furnish a third share of equal value, we shall not perhaps be far wide from the truth if we conclude that the net public revenue of Spain, raised in America, does not exceed a million and a half sterling. This falls far short of the immense sums to which suppositions, founded upon conjecture, have raised the Spanish revenue in America [197]. It is remarkable, however, upon one account. Spain and Portugal are the only European powers who derive a direct revenue from their colonies. All the advan- tage that accrues to other nations from their American dominions arises from the exclusive enjoyment of their trade : but besides this, Spain has brought her colonies towards increasing the power of the state, and, in return for protection, to bear a proportional share of the common burden. Accordingly, the sum which I have computed to be the amount of the Spanish revenue from America arises wholly from the taxes collected there, and is far from being the whole of what accrues to the king from his dominions in the New World. The heavy duties imposed on the com- modities exported from Spain to America [l98], as well as what is paid by those which she sends home in return ; the tax upon the Negro slaves with which Africa supplies the New World, together with several smaller branches of finance, bring large sums into the treasury, the precise extent of which 1 cannot pretend to ascertain. But if the revenue which Spain draws from America be great, the expense ot administration in her colonies beai's proportion to it. In eveiy department, even of her dpmestic police and finances, Spain has adopted a system more complex, and more encumbered with a variety of tribunals and a multitude of officers, than that of any European nation in which the sovereign possesses such extensive power. From the jealous spirit with which Spain watches over her American settlements, and her endeavours (o guard against fraud in provinces so remote from inspection, boards and officers have been multiplied there with still more anxious attention. In a country where the expense of living is great, the salaries allotted to every person in public office must be high, and must load the revenue with an immense burden. The parade of government greatly augments the weight of it. The viceroys of Mexico, Peru, and the new kingdom of Granada, as representatives of the king's person, among people fond of ostentation, maintain all the state and dignity of royalty. Their courts are formed upon the model of that at Madrid, with horse and foot guards, a household regularly established, numerous attendants, and ensigns of power, displaying such pomp as hardly retains the appearance of a dele- gated authority. All the expense incurred by supporting the external and permanent order of government is defrayed by the crown. The viceroys have, besides, peculiar appointments suited to their exalted station. The salaries fixed by law are indeed extremely moderate ; that of the viceroy of Pern is only thirty thousand ducats ; and that of the viceroy Vol, I.— 49 386 HISTORY OF [BooKVIlf. of Mexico twenty thousand ducats.* Of late they have been raised to forfv thousand. -^ These salaries, however, constitute but a small part of the revenue enjoyed by the viceroys. The exercise of an absolute authority extendine: to eveiy department of eovernment, and the power of disposing of many lucrative offices, aflord them many opportunities of accumulating wealth Fo these, which may be considered as legal and allowed emoluments! large sums are often added by exactions, which, in countries so far removed Irom the seat of government, it is not easy to discover, and impossible to restrain. By monopolising some branches of commerce, by a lucrative concern in others, by conniving at the frauds of merchants, a viceroy may raise such an annual revenue as no subject of any European monarch enjoys [199]. From the single article of presents made to him on the anniversaiy of his Name-day (which is always observed as a high festival) I am informed that a vicerojr has been known to receive sixty thousand pesos. According to a Spanish saying, the legal revenues of a viceroy are unknown, his real profits depend upon his opportunities and his conscience, bensible ol this, the kings of Spain, as I have ibrmeily observed, grant a commission to their viceroys only for a few years. This circumstance, however, renders them often more rapacious, and adds to the ingenuity and ardour wherewith they labour to improve every moment of a power which they know is hastening fast to a period ; and short as its duration is, it usually affords sufficient time tor repairing a shattered fortune, or for creating a new one. But even in situations so tiying to human frailty, there are instances of virtue that remains unseduced. In the year 1772 the Marquis de Croix finished the term of his viceroyalty in New Spain with unsuspected integrity ; and, instead of bringing home exorbitant wealth returned with the admiration and applause of a grateful people, whom his government had rendered happy. Recop. lilj. iii, tit. iii. c. 73. HISTORY OF AMERICA. BOOKS IX. AND X. CONTAINING THE HISTORY OF VIRGINIA TO THE YEAR 1688 ; AND THE HISTORY OF NEW ENGLAND TO THE YEAR 1652. ADVERTISEMENT. The original plan of my father, the late Dr. Robertson, with respect to the history of America, comprehended not only an account of the discovery of that country, and of the conquests and colonies of the Spaniards, but embraced also the history of the British and Portuguese establishments in the New World, and of the settlements made by the several nations of Europe in the West India Islands. It was his intention not to have pub- lished any part of the Work until the whole was completed. In the Preface to his History of America, he has stated the reasons which induced him to depart from that resolution, and to publish the two volumes which contain an accountof the discoveiy of the New World, and ot the progress of the Spanish arms and colonies in that quarter of the globe. He says, " he had made some progress in the History ot British America ; and he announces his intention to return to that part of his Work as soon as the ferment which at that time prevailed in the British colonies in America should subside, and regular government be re-estabhshed. Various causes concurred in preventing him from fullilling his intention. During the course of a tedious illness, winch he early toresaw would have a latal termination. Dr. Robertson at different times destroyed many of his papers. But after his death, I found that part ot the History ot British America which he had wrote many years betore, and v^hich is now offered to the Public. It is written with his own hand, as all his Works were • it is as carefully corrected as any part of his manuscripts which I have ever seen; and he had thought it worthy of being preserved, as it escaped the flames to which so many other papers had been committed. I read it with the utmost attention ; but, before I came to any resolution about the publication, 1 put the MS. into the hands of some of those friends whom my father used to consult on such occasions, as it would have been rashness and presumption in me to have trusted to my own partial decision. It was perused by some other persons also, in whose taste and judgment I have the greatest confidence : by all of them I was encouraged to offer it to the Public, as a fragment curious and interesting in itseh,and not inlerior lo any of my father's works. . When 1 d.etermined to follow that advice, it was a circumstance ot great Aveight with me, that as I never could think myself at liberty to destroy those papers which my father had thought worthy of being preserved, and as I could not know into whose hands they might hereafter fall, I con- sidered it as certain that they would be published at some future period, when they might meet with an editor who, not being actuated by the same sacred regard for the reputation of the Author, which I feel, might make alterations and additions, and obtrude the whole on the public as a genuine and authentic work. The MS. is now published, such as it was left by tlie Author ; nor have I presumed to make any addition, alteration, or cov- rection whatever. Wm. ROBERTSON. Q.UEEN-ST., Edinburgh, April, 17%. THE HISTORY OF AMERICA. BOOK IX. The dominions of Great Britain in America are next in extent to those of Spain. Its acquisitions there are a recompense due to those enterprising talents which prompted the Entijlish to enter early on the career of discovery, and to pursue it with perseverina; ardour. England was the second nation that ventured to visit the New World. The account of Columbus's suc- cessful voyage filled all Europe with astonishment and admiration. But in England it did something more ; it excited a vehement desire of emula- ting the glory of Spain, and of aiming to obtain some share in those advan- tages which were expected in this new field opened to national activity. The attention of the English court had been turned towards the discovery of unknown countries by its negotiation with Bartholomew Columbus. Henry VII. having listened to his propositions with a more favourable ear than could have been expected from a cautious, distrustful prince, averse by habit as well as by temper to new and hazardous projects, he was more easily induced to approve of a voyage for discovery, proposed by some of his own subjects soon after the return of Christopher Columbus. But though the English had spirit to form the scheme, they had not at that period attained to such skill in navigation as qualified them for carry- ing it into execution. From the inconsiderate ambition of its monarchs, the nation had long wasted its genius and inactivity in pernicious and inef- fectual efforts to conquer France. When this ill-directed ardour began to abate, the fatal contest between the houses of York and Lancaster turned the arms of one half of the kingdom against the other, and exhausted the vigour of. both. During the course of two centuries, while industry and commerce were making gradual progress, both in the south and north of Europe, the English continued so blind to the advantages of Ihek own situation that thej hardly began to bend their thoughts towards those objects and pursuits to which they are indebted for their present opulence and power. While the trading vessels of Italy, Spain, and Portugal, as well as those of the Hans Towns, visited the most remote ports in Europe, and carried on an active intercourse with its various nations, the English did little more than creep along their own coasts, in small barks, which conveyed the productions of one country to another. Their commerce was almost wholly passive. Their wants were supplied by strangers ; and whatever necessary or luxury oC life their owp country did not yield was imported in foreign bottoms. The cross of St. Geor^^e was seldoiji displayed beyond the precincts of the narrow seas. Hardly any English fiyo HIST R V 1' [Book IX. ship traded with Spain or Porliigal before the beginning of the fifteenth century ; and half a century more ehtpscd before the English marines became so adventurous as to enter the Mediterranean. In this infancy of navigation, Heniy could not commit the conduct of itn armament destined to explore unknown regions to his own subjects. He invested Giovanni Gaboto, a Venetian adventurer, who had settled in Bristol, with the chief command ; and issued a commission to him and his three sons, empowering them to sail, under the banner of England, towards the east, nortn, or west, in order to discover countries unoccupied by any Christian state; to take possession of them in his name, and to carry on an exclusive trade with the inhabitants, under condition of paying a fifth part of the free profit on every voyage to the crown. This commission was granted on March 5th, 1495, in less than two years after the return of Columbus iVom America.* But Cabot (for that is the name he assumed in England, and by which he is best known) did not set out on his voyage for two years. He, together with his second son Sebastian, embarked at Bristol [May, 1497], on board a ship furnished by the king, and was accom- panied by four small barks fitted out by the merchants of that city. As in that age the most eminent navigators, formed by the instructions of Columbus, or animated by his example, were guided by ideas derived from his superior knowledge and experience, Cabot had adopted the system of that gi-eat man concerning the probability of opening a new and shorter passage to the East Indies bj"^ holding a western course. The opinions which Columbus had formed with respect to the islands which he had discovered, were universally received. They were supposed to lie con- tiguous to the great continent of India, and to constitute a part of the vast countries comprehended under that general name. Cabot accordingly deemed it probable, that, by steering to the north-west, he might reach India by a shorter course than that which Columbus had taken, and hoped to fall in with the coast of Cathay, or China, of Avhose fertility and opu- lence the descriptions of Marco Polo had excited high ideas. Atter sailing for some weeks due west, and nearly on the parallel of the port from which he took his departure,'he discovered a large island, which he caWed Prima Kista, and his sailors J\etc;/b«??f?/o?trf; and in a few days he descried a smaller isle, to which he gave the name of St. John. He landed on both these [June 24], made some observations on their soil and productions, and brought off three of the natives. Continuing his course westward, he soon reached the continent of North America, and sailed along it from the fifty-sixth to the thirty-eighth degree of latitude, from the coast of Labrador to that of Virginia. As his chief object was to discover some inlet that iriight open a passage to the west, it does not appear that he J.mded any where during this extensive run ; and he returned to England Avithout attempting either settlement or conquest in any part of that con- tinent.! If it had been Henry's purpose to prosecute the object of tlie commis- sion given by him to Cabot, and to take possession of the countries which he had discovered, the success of this voyage must have answered his most sanguine expectations. His subjects were undoubtedly the first Europeans who had visited that part of the American continent, and were entitled to whatever right of property prior discovery is supposed to confer. Coun- tries which stretched in an uninterrupted course through such a large ])orli(>n of the temperate zone, opened a prospect of settling to aiivantage under mild climates, and in a fertile soil. By the time that Cabot returned to England, he found both the state of affairs and the king's inclination unfavourable to any scheme the execution of which would have required tranquillity and leisure. Henry was involved in a war with Scotland, and * Uakhiyt^ iii. 1. ♦ Alonwn's Xiival 'I'rarts, in Cliiirdiiirs Collet, iji. 211 AMERICA. 391 his kingdom was not yet fully composod after the coiiiuiolioii excited by a formidable insurrection of his own subjects in the west. An ambassador from Ferdinand of Arragon was then in London ; and as Henry set a high value upon the friendship of that monarch, tor whose character he professed much admiration, perhaps from its similarity to his own, and was endea- vouring to strengthen their union by negotiating the marriage which aiter- wards took place between his eldest son and the Princess Catharine, he was cautious of giving any offence to a prince jealous to excess of all his rights. From the position of the islands and continent which Cabot had discovered, it was evident that they lay within the limits of the ample donative which the bounty of Alexander VI. had conferred upon Ferdinand and Isabelli. Vo person in that age questioned the validity of a j)apal grant ; and Ferdinand was not of a temper to relinquish any claim to which he had a shadow of title. Submission to the authority of the Pope, and deference for an ally whom he courted, seem to have concurred with Henry's own situation in determining him to abandon a scheme in which he had engaged with some degree of ardour and expectation. No attempt towards discovery was made in England during the remainder of his reign ; and Sebastian Cabot, finding no encouragement lor his active talents there, entered into the service of Spain.* This is the most probable account of the sudden cessation of Heniy's activity, after such success in his first essay as might have encouraged him to persevere. The advantages of commerce, as well as its nature, were so little understood in England about this period, that by an act of parliament in the year 1488, the taking of interest for the use of money- was prohibited under severe penalties.! And by another law, the profit arising from dealing in bills of exchange was condemned as savouring of usury .J It is not surprising, then, that no great effort should be made to extend trade by a nation whose commercial ideas were still so crude and illiberal. But it is more difMcult to discover what prevented this scheme of Henry VII. from being resumed during the reigns of his son and grand- son ; and to give any reason why no attempt was made, either toexj)lore the northern continent of America more fully, or tb settle in it. Henry V^III. was frequentl)'' at open enmity with Spam : the value of the Spanish acquisitions in America had become so well loiown, as might have excited his desire to obtain some footing in those opulent regions; and during a considerable part of his reign, the prohibitions in a papal bull would not have restrained liim from mating encroachment upon the Spanish dominions. But the reign of Henry was not favourable to the progress of discovery. During one period of it, the active part which he took in the affairs of the continent, and the vigour with which he engaged in the contest between the two mighty rivals, Charles V. and Francis I., gave full occupation to the enterprising spirit both of the king and his nobility. During another period of his administration, his famous controversy with the court of Rome kept the nation in perpetual agitation and suspense. Engrossed by those objects, neither the king nor the nobles had inclination or leisure to turn their attention to new pursuits; and without their patronage and aid, the commercial part of the nation was too inconsiderable to make any effort of consequence. Though England by its total separation from the church of Rome soon after the accession of Edward VI., disclaimed that authority which, by its presumptuous partition of the globe between two * Some schemes of discovery seem to have hcen forriinl in F.iipland towards tlie hesinning of •tlie sixtcenlh century. But as there is no other memorial of them than what remains in a patent (.'ranted by the King to the advenlurcrs, it is probable tliat they were feeble or abortive project*. If any attempt had l)een made in consequence of this patent, it would not have escapHd tho know- ledge of a compiler so industrious and in(|nisitive as llaKluyt. In iiis pati,-nt, Henry restricts tin- adventurers from enrroachiiii; (m the countries discovered by the kings of Portusril, or any other jifince in confederacy wilh Kueland. Rynier's Fiedera, vol. xiii. p, '.IT • :?ifcn. vrr <■. .';. : 3 Uen. vii r. r,. 392 111 S T O R Y F [Book 1 \. favourite nations, circumscribed the activity of every other state within very narrow limits ; yet a feeble minority, distracted with faction, was not a iuncture for forming schemes of doubtful success and remote utility. The bigotry of Maiy, and her marriage with Philip, disposed her to pay a sacred regard to that grant of the Holy See, which vested in a husband, on whom she doted, an exclusive right to every part of the New World. Thus, through a singular succession of various causes, sixty-one years elapsed from the time that the English discovered North America, during which their monarchs gave little attention to that country which was destined to be annexed to their crown, and to be a chief source of its opulence and power. But though the public contributed little towards the progress of disco- very, naval skill, knowledge of commerce, and a spirit of enterprise, began to spread among the English. During the reign of Henry Vlll. several new channels of trade were opened, and private adventurers visited remote countries, with which England had formerly no intercourse. Some mer- chants of Bristol, having fitted out two ships for the southern regions of America, committed the conduct of them to Sebastian Cabot, who had quitted the service of Spain, He visited the coasts of Brazil, and touched at the islands of Hispaniola and Puerto Rico ; and though this voyage seems not to have been beneficial to the adventurers, it extended the sphere of English navigation, and added to the national stock of nautical science.* Though disappointed in their expectations of profit in this first essay, the merchants were not discouraged. They sent, successively, several vessels irom different ports towards the same quarter, and seem to have carried on an interloping trade in the Portuguese settlements with success.! Nor was it only towards the West, that the activity of the English was directed. Other merchants began to extend their commercial views to the East ; and by establishing an intercourse with several islands in the Archipelago, and with some of the towns on the coast of Syria, they found a new market ibr woollen cloths (the only manufacture which the nation had begun to cultivate,) and supplied their countrymen with various productions of the East, formerly unknown, or received from the Venetians at an exorbitant price. J But the discovery of a shorter passage to the East Indies, by the north- west, was still the favourite project of the nation, which beheld with envy the vast wealth that flowed into Portugal from its commerce with those regions. The scheme was accordingly twice resumed under the long administration of Henry VIIT. [1527 and 1536] ; first, with some slender aid from the king, and then by private merchants. Both voyages were disastrous and unsuccessful. In the former, one of the ships was lost. In the latter, the stock of provisions was so ill proportioned to the number of the crew, that, although they were but six months at sea, many perished with hunger, and the survivors were constrained to support life oy feeding on the bodies of their dead companions. § The vigour of a commercial spirit did not relax in the reign of Edward VI. The great fishery on the banks of Newfoundland became an object of attention ; and from some regulations for the encouragement of that branch of trade, it seems to have been prosecuted witli activity and suc- cess.lt But the prospect of opening a communication with China and the Spice Islands, by some other route than round the Cape of Good Hope, still continued to allure the English more than any scheme of adventure. Cabot, whose opinion was deservedly of high authority in whatever related to naval enterprise, warmly urged the English to make another attempt to discover this passage. As it had been thrice searched lor in vain, liy steering towards "the north-west, he proposed that a trial * Ilakliiyt, iii 408. M'l. iii. 700 i Id. ii. Ofi. itc. (S Fd. i. 013. &c. iii. 120. 130. |l i,| til. lyi A :J eric .v. 393 should now be made by the north-east ; and supported this advice by such plausible reasons and conjectures as excited sanguine expectations of success. Several noblemen and persons of rank, together with some principal merchants, having associated for this purpose, were incomorated by a charter from the King, under the title of The Company of Merchant Adventurers for the Discovery of Regions, Dominions, Islands, and Places unknown. Cabot, who was appointed governor of this company, soon fitted out two ships and a bark, furnished with instructions in his own hand, which discover the great extent both of his naval skill and mercantile sagacity. Sir Hugh Willoughby, who was intrusted with the command, stood dir ctly northwards along the coast of Norway [May 10], and doubled the North Cape. But in that tempestuous ocean, his small squadron was sepa- rated in a violent storm. Willoughby's ship and bark took refuge in an obscure harbour in a desert part of Russian Lapland, where he and all his companions were frozen to death. Richard Chancelour, the captain of the other vessel, was more fortunate; he entered the White Sea, and win- tered in safety at Archangel. Though no vessel of any foreign nation liad ever visited that quarter of the globe before, the inhabitants received their new visiters with an hospitality which would have done honour to a more polished people. The English learned there, that this was a province of a vast empire, subject to the Great Duke or Czar of Muscovy, who resided in a great city twelve hundred miles from Archangel. Chancelour, with a spirit becoming an officer employed in an expedition for discovery, did not hesitate a moment about the part which he OJight to take, and set out for that distant capital. On his arrival in Moscow, he was admitted to audience, and delivered a letter which the captain of each ship had received from Edward VI. for the sovereign of whatever country they should dis- cover, to John Vasilowitz, who at that time filled the Russian throne. John, though he ruled over his subjects with the cruelty and caprice of a barbarous despot, was not destitute of political sagacity. He instantly perceived the happy consequences that might flow from opening an inter- course between his dominions and the western nations of Europe ; and, delighted with the fortunate event to which he was indebted for this unex- pected benefit, he treated Chancelour with great respect ; and, by a letter to the King of England [Feb. 1554], invited his subjects to trade in the Russian dominions, with ample promises of protection and favour.* Chancelour, on his return, found Mary seated on the English throne. The success of this voyage, the discovery of a new course of navigation, the establishment of commerce with a vast empire, the name of which was then hardly known in the West, and the hope of arriving, in this direc- tion, at those regions which had been so long the object of desire, excited a wonderful ardour to prosecute the design with greater vigour. Mary, implicitly guided by her husband in every act of administration, was not unwilling to turn the commercial activity of her suljects towards a quarter where it could not excite the jealousy of Spain by encroaching on its pos- sessions in the New World. She wrote to John Vasilowitz m the most respectful terms, courting his friendship. She confinned the charter of Edward VI., empowered Chancelour, and two agents appointed by the company, to negotiate with the Czar in her name ; and, according to the .spirit of that age, she granted an exclusive right of trade with Russia to the Corporation of Merchant Adventurers.! In virtue of this, they not only established an active and gainful commerce with Russia, but, in hopes of reaching China, they pushed their discoveries eastward to the coast of Nova Zembla, the Straits of Waigatz, and towards the mouth of the great river Oby. But in those frozen seas, which Nature seems not to nave * Ilakluyt i. 226, &c. t W. i. 058. &c. Vol. I.— 50 3S4 HISTORY OF [Book IX. destined for navigation, they were exposed to innumerable disasters, and met with successive disappointments. Nor were their attempts to open a communication with India made only in this channel. They appointed some of their factors to accompany the Russian caravans which travelled into Persia by the way of Astracan and the Caspian Sea, instructing them to penetrate as far as possible towards the east, and to endeavour not only to estal)lish a trade with those coun- tries, but to acquire every information that might afford any light towards the discovery of a passage to China by the north-east.* Notwithstanding a variety of dangers to which they were exposed in travelling through so many provinces inhabited by fierce and licentious nations, some of these factors reached Bokara in the province of Chorassan ; and though prevented from advancing further by the civil wars which desolated the country, they returned to Europe with some hopes of extending the commerce of the Company into Persia, and with much intelligence concerning the state of those remote regions of the East.j The successful progress of the Merchant Adventurers in discovery roused the emulation of their countrymen, and turned their activity into new channels. A commercial intercourse, hitherto unattempted by the English, having been opened with the coast of Barbaiy, the specimens which that afforded of the valuable productions of Africa invited some enterprising navigators to visit the more remote provinces of that quarter of the globe. They sailed along its western shore, traded in different ports on both sides of the Line, and, after acquiring considerable knowledge of those countries, returned with a cai^o of gold dust, ivory, and other rich commodities little known at that time in England. This commerce with Africa seems to have been pursued with vigour, and was at that time no less innocent than lucrative ; for, as the English had then no demand lor slaves, they carried it on for many years without violating the rights of humanity. Thus far did the English advance during a period which may be considered as the infant state of their navigation and commerce ; and feeble as its steps at that time may appear to us, we trace them with an interesting curiosity, and look bacK with satisfaction to the early essays of that spirit which we now behold in the full maturity of its strength. Even in those first efforts of the English, an intelligent observer will discern pre- sages of their future improvement. As soon as the activity of the nation was put in motion, it took various directions, and exerted itself in each, with that steady, persevering industry which is the soul and guide of com- merce. Neither discouraged by the hardships and dangers to which they were exposed in those northern seas which they first attempted to explore, nor afraid of venturing into the sultry climates of the torrid zone, the Eng- lish, during the reigns of Henry VIII., Edward VL, and Mary, opened some of the most considerable sources of their commercial opulence, and gave a beginning to their trade with Turkey, with Africa, with Russia, and ivith Newfoundland. By the progress which England had already made in navigation and commerce, it was now prepared for advancing further ; and on the acces- sion of Elizabeth to the throne, a period commenced extremely auspicious to this spirit which was rising in the nation.' The domestic tranquillity of the kingdom, maintained, almost without interruption, during the course of a long and prosperous reign ; the peace with foreign nations, that subsisted more than twenty years after Elizabeth was seated on the throne ; the Q,ueen's attentive economy, which exempted her subjects from the burden of taxes oppressive to trade ; the popularity of her administration ; were all favourable to commercial enterprise, and called it forth into vigorous exertion. The discerning eye of Elizabeth having early perceived that ••' Hakltivt i. 301 + Id, 1. 310. .?:r. AMERICA. 395 Uie security ot a kingdom env'ironod by the sea depended on its naval force, she began her government with adding to the number and strength of the royal navy ; which, during a factious minority, and a reign intent on no object but that of suppressing heresy, had been neglected, and suffered to decay. She filled her arsenals with naval stores ; she built several ships ot great force, according to the ideas of that age, and encouraged her subjects to imitate her example, that they might no longer depend on tbreigners, from whom the English had hitherto purchased all vessels of any considerable burden.* By those efforts the skill of the English artificers was improved, the number of sailors increased, and the attention of the public turned to the navy, as the most important national object. Instead of abandoning any of the new channels ol commerce which had been opened in the three preceding reigns, the English frequented them with greater assiduity, and the patronage of their sovereign added vigour to all their efforts. In order to secure to them the continuance of their exclusive trade with Russia, Elizabeth cultivated the connection with John Vasilo- witz, which had been formed by her predecessor, and, by successive em- bassies gained his confidence so thoroughly, that the English enjoyed that lucrative privilege during his long reign. She encouraged the Company ot Merchant Adventuiers, whose monopoly of the Russian trade was con- firmed by act of parliament,! to resume their design of penetrating into Persia by land. Their second attempt, conducted with greater prudence, or undertaken at a more favourable juncture than the first, Avas more sue- cesstul. Their agents arrived in the Persian court, and obtained such pro- tection and immunities from the Shah, that for a course of years they canied on a gainful commerce in his kingdom ;| and by frequenting the various provinces of Persia, became so well acquainted with the vast riches of the East, as strengthened their design of opening a more direct inter- course with those fertile regions by sea. But as every effort to accomplish this by the north-east had proved abortive, a scheme was formed, under the patronage of the Earl of War- wick, the hfead of the enterprising family of Dudley, to make a new attempt, by holding an opposite course by the north-west. The conduct of this enterprise was committed to Martin Frobisher, an officer of ex- perience and reputation. In three successive voyages [1576, 1577, and 1578,] he explored the inhospitable coast of Labrador, and that of Green land (to which F^Iizabeth gave the name of Meta lncos;mta), without dis covering any probable appearance of that passage to India for which he sought. This new disappointment was sensibly felt, and might iiave damped the spirit of naval enterprise among the English, if it had not resumed fresh vigour, amidst the general exultation of the nation, upon the successful expedition of Francis Drake. That bold navigator, emulous of the glory which Magellan had acquired by sailing round the globe, tbrmed a scheme of attempting a voyage, which all Europe had admired for sixty 3'ears, without venturing to toUow the Portuguese discoverer in his adven- turous course. Drake undertook this with a feeble squadron, in which the largest vessel did not exceed a hundred tons, and he accomi»lished it with no less credit to himself than honour to his country. Even in this voyage, conducted with other views, Drake seems not to have been inattentive to the favourite object of his countrymen, the discoveiy of a new route to India. Before he quitted the Pacific Ocean, in order to stretch towards the Philippine Islands, he ranged along the coast of California, as high as the latitude of forty-two degrees north, in hopes of discovering, on that side, the communication between the two seas, which had so otten been searched for in vain on the other. But this was the only unsuccessful attempt of Drake. The excessive cold of the climate, intolerable to men " f^amd Annalps. p. 70. odit. IfilS: fol. f Ilnkliiyt. i. rifin. ' fd i. 34J. &c. S96 HISTORY OF [Book IX. ■who had long been accustomed to tropical heat, obliged him to stop short in his proj^ress towards the north ; and whether or not there be any passage from the Pacific to the Atlantic Ocean in that quarter is a point still un- ascertained.* From this period, the English seem .to have confided in their own abilities and courage, as equal to any naval enterprise. They had now visited every region to which navigation extended in that age, and had rivalled the nation of highest repute for naval skill m its most splendid ex- ploit. But notwhhstan iuig the knowledge which they had acquired of the different quarters of the globe, they had not hitherto attempted any settlement out of their own country. Their merchants had not yet ac- quired such a degree either of wealth or of political influence, as was requisite towards carrying a scheme of colonization into execution. Per- sons of noble birth were destitute of the ideas and information which might have disposed them to patronise such a design. The growing power of Spain, however, and the ascendant over the other nations of Europe to which it had attained under Charles V. and his son, naturally turned the attention of mankind towards the importance of those settlements in the New World, to which they were so much indebted for that pre-eminence. The intercourse between Spain and England, during the reign of Philip and Mary ; the resort of the Spanish nobility to the English court, while Philip resided there ; the study of the Spanish language, which became fashionable ; and the translation of several histories of America into Eng- lish, diffused gradually through the nation a more distinct knovf ledge of the policy of Spain in planting its colonies, and of the advantages which it derived from them. \\ hen hosiilities commenced between Elizabeth and Philip, the prospect of annoying Spain by sea opened a new career to the enterprising spirit of the English nobility. Almost every eminent leader of the age aimed at distinguishing himself by naval exploits. That service, and the ideas connected with it, the discovery of unknown countries, the establishment of distant colonies, and the enriching of commerce by new commodities, became familiar to persons of rank. In consequence of all those concurring causes, the English began seriously to form plans of settling colonies in those parts of America which hitherto they had only visited. The projectors and patrons of these plans were mostly persons of rank and influence. Among them. Sir Humphry Gilbert, of Compton in Devonshire, ought to be mentioned with the distinction due to the conductor of the first English colony to America. He had early rendered himself conspicuous by his military services both in France and Ireland ; and having afterwards turned his attention to naval affairs, he published a discourse concerning the probability of a north-west passage, "which discovered no inconsiderable portion both of learning and ingenuity, mingled with the enthusiasm, the credulity, and the sanguine expectations which incite men to new and hazardous undertakings.! With those talents he was deemed a proper person to be employed in establishing a new colony, and easily obtained from the Queen letters patent [June 11, 1578,] vesting in him sufficient powers for this purpose. As this is the first charter to a colonj^ granted by the crown of England, the articles in it merit particular attention, as they unfold the ideas of that .nge with respect to the nature of such settlements. Elizabeth authorizes him to discover and take possession of all remote and barbarous lands, un- occupied by any Christian prince or people. She vests in him, his heirs and assigns for ever, the full right of property in the soil of those countries whereof he shall take possession. She permits such of her subjects as were willing to accompany Gilbert in his voyage, to ^o and settle in the countries which he shall plant. She empowers him, his heirs and assigns, « Hakluyt. iii.440. Camd. Annal. 301. &c t Hakluyt. iii. 11., AMERICA. 397 to dispose of whatever portion of those lands he sliall judge meet, to per- sons settled there, in fee simple, according to the laws oi England. She ordains, that all the lands granted to Gilbert shall hold of the crown of England by homage, on payment of the fifth part of the gold or silver ore found there. She confers upon him, his heirs and assigns, the complete jurisdictions and royalties, as well marine as other, within the said lands and seas thereunto adjoining ; and as their common safety and interest would render good government necessary in their new settlements, she gave Gilbert, his heirs and assigns, full power to convict, punish, pardon, govern, and rule, by their good discretion and policy, as well in causes capital or criminal as civil, both marine and other, all persons who shall, from time to time, settle within the said countries, according to such statutes, laws, and ordinances, as shall be by him, his heirs and assigns, devised and established for their better government. She declared, that all who settled there should have and enjoy all the privileges of free denizens and natives of England, any law, custom, or usage to the contrary not- withstanding. And finally, she prohibited all persons from attempting to settle within two Imndred leagues of iiny place which Sir Humphr_y Gil- bert, or his associates, shall have occupied during the space of six years.* With those extraordinary powers, suited to the high notions of authority and prerogative prevalent in England during the sixteenth century, but very repugnant to more recent ideas with respect to the rights of free men, who voluntarily unite to form a colony, Gilbert began to collect associates, and to prepare (or embarkation. His own character, and the zealous eflforts of his half brother Walter Ralegh, who even in his early youth dis- played those splendid talents, and that undaunted spirit, which create admiration and confidence, soon procured him a sufficient number of fol- lowers. But his success was not suited either to the sanguine hopes of his countrymen, or to the expense of his preparations. Two expeditions, both of which he conducted in person, ended disastrously [l58'j]. in the last he hinaself perished, without having effected his intended settlement on the continent ot America, or performing any thing more worthy of notice, than the empty formality of taking possession of the Island of Newfoundland in the name of his sovereign. The dissensions among his officers ; the licen- tious and ungovernable spirit of some of his crew ; his total ignorance of the countries which he purposed to occupy ; his misfortune in approaching the continent too far towards the north, where the inhospitable coast of Cape Breton did not invite them to settle ; the shipwreck of his largest vessel ; and, above all, the scanty provision which the funds of a private man could make of what was requisite for establishing a new colony, were the true causes to which the failure of the enterprise must be imputed, not to any deficiency of abilities or resolution in its leader.j But the miscarriage of a scheme, in which Gilbert had wasted his fortune, did not discourage Ralegh. He adopted all his brother's ideas ; and applying to the Queen, in whose favour he stood high at that time, he pro- cured a patent [>Iarch 26, 1584J, with jurisdiction and prerogatives as ample as had been granted unto Gilbert.^ ' Kalegh, no less eager to execute than lO undertake the scheme, instantly despatched two small vessels [April 27], under the command of Amadas and Barlow, two officers of trust, to visit the countries which he intended to settle, and to acquire some previous knowledge of their coasts, their soil, and productions. In order to avoid Gilbert's error, in holding too far north, they look their course by the Canaries and the West India islands, and approached the North American continent by the Gulf of Florida. Unfortunately, their chief researches were made in that part of the country now known by the name of North Carolina, that province in America most destitute of commodiou* * Hakliiyt. iii. IS."), * Ibid. iii. 2W. ^r. ;■ Jbii^. iii. On, ^3« HISTORY OF [BooKlA. harbours. They touched first at an island, which they call Wokocon (probably Ocakoke,) situated on the inl(>t into Pamplicoe sound, and then at Roanoke, near the mouth of Albemiarle sound. In both they had some intercourse with the natives, whom they found to be savages with all the characteristic qualities of uncivilized lite, bravery, aversion to labour, hos- pitality, a propensity to admire, and a willingness to exchange their rude productions for English commodities, especially for iron, or any of the usetul metals ot which they were destitute. Alter spending a few weeks in this traffic, and in visiting some parts of the adjacent continent, Amadas and Barlow returned to England [Sept. 15], with two of the natives, and gave such splendid descriptions of the beauty of the country, the fertility of the soil, and the mildness of the climate, that Elizabeth, delighted with the idea of occupying a territory superior, so far, to the barren regions towards the north hitherto visited by her subjects, bestowed on it the name of Virginia ; as a memorial that this happy discovery had been made under a virgin queen.* ■ Their report encouraged Ralegh to hasten his preparations for taking possession of such an inviting property. He fitted out a squadron of seven small ships, under the command ot Sir Richard Greenville, a man of honour- able birth, and of courage so undaunted as to be conspicuous even in that gallant age. But the spirit of that predatory war which the English carried on against Spain, mingled with this scheme of settlement ; and on this account, as well as from unacquaintance with a more direct and shorter course to North America, Greenville sailed by the West India islands. He spent some time in cruising among these, and in taking prizes ; so that it was towards the close of June before he arrived on the coast of North America. He touched at both the islands where Amadas and Barlow had landed, and made some excursions into dilTerent parts of the continent round Pamplicoe and Albermarle sounds. But as, untbrtunately, he did not advance far enough towards the north, to discover the noble bay of Chesa- peak, he established the colony [Aug. 25], which he left on the island of Roanoke, an incommodious station, without any safe harbour, and almost uninhabited.! This colony consisted only of one hundred and eighty persons, under the comniand of Captain Lane, assisted by some men of note, the most dis- tinguished of whom was Hariot, an eminent mathematician. Their chief employment, during a residence of nine months, was to obtain a more exten- sive knowledge of the country ; and their researches were carried on with greater spirit, and reached further than could have been expected from a colony so feeble, and in a station so disadvantageous. But tiom the same impatience of indigent adventurers to acquire sudden wealth which gave a wrong direction to the industry of the Spaniards in their settlements, the greater part of the English seem to have considered nothing as worthy of attention but mines of gold and silver. These they sought for wherever they came : these they inquired after with unwearied eagerness. The t-avages soon discovered the favourite olyects which allured them, and art- lully amused them with so many tales concerning pearl fisheries, and rich mines of various metals, that Lane and his companions wasted their timf; rind activity in the chimerical pursuit of these, instead of labouring to raise provisions lor their own subsistence. On discovering the deceit of the Indians, they were so much exasperated, that from expostulations and reproaches they proceeded to open hostility [1586]. The supplies of pro- vision which they had been accustomed to receive from the natives were of course withdrawn. Through their own negligence no other precaution had been taken for their support. Ralegh, having engaged in a scheme loo expensive for his narrow funds, had not been able to send them that * liakliivt, iii. '2U). t Id. Hi. ill AMERICA. o'j9 recruit of stores with which Greenville had promised to iarniah them early in the spring. The colony, reduced to the utmost distress, and on the point of perishing with famine, was preparing to disperse into different districts of the country in quest of food, when Sir Francis Drake appeared with his fleet [June 1], returning from a successful expedition against the Spaniards in the West Indies. A scheme which he formed, of furnishing Lane and his associates with such supplies as might enable them to remain with comfort in their station, was disappointed by a sudden storm, in which a small vessel that he destined for their service was dashed to pieces ; and as he could not supply them with another, at their joint request, as they were worn out with fatigue and famine, he carried them home to England* [June 19]. Such was the inauspicious beginning of the English settlements in the New World ; and, after exciting high expectations, this first attempt pro- duced no effect but that of affording a more complete knowledge of the country; as it'enaljied Hariot, a man of science and observation, to describe its soil, climate, productions, and the manners of its inhabitants, with a degree of accuracy which merits no inconsiderable praise, when compared with the childish and marvellous tales published by several of the early visitants of the New World. There is another consequence of this abortive colony important enough to entitle it to a place in his- tory. Lane and his associates, by their constant intercourse with the Indians, had acquired a relish for their favourite enjoyment of smoking tobacco ; to the use of which, the credulity of that people not only ascribed a thousand imaginary virtues, but their superstition considered the plant itself as a gracious gift of the gods, for the solace of human kind, and the niost acceptable offering which man can present to heaven. t They brought with them a specimen of this new commodity to England, and taught their countrymen the method of using it ; which Ralegh and some young men of fashion fondly adopted. From imitation of them, from love of novelty, and from the favourable opinion of its salutary qualities entertained by several physicians, the practice spread among the English. The Spaniards and Portuguese had, previous to this, introduced it into other parts of Europe. This habit of taking tobacco gradually extended from the extremities of the north to those of the south, and in one form or other seems to be equall}' grateful to the inhabitants of eveiy climate ; and by a singular caprice of the human species, no less inexplicable than unexampled (so bewitching is the acquired taste for a weed of no manifest utility, and at first not only unpleasant but nauseous), that it has become almost as universal as the demands of those appetites originally implanted in our nature. Smoking was the first mode of taking tobacco in England ; and we learn from the comic writers towards the close of the sixteenth century and the beginning of the seventeenth, that this was deemed one of the accomplishments of ;i man of fashion and spirit. A few days after Drake departed from Roanoke, a small bark, despatched by Ralegh with a supply of stores for the colony, landed at the place where the English had settled ; but on finding it deserted by their coun- trymen they returned to England. The bark was hardly, gone, when Sir Richard Greenville appeared with three ships. After searching in vain for the colony which he had planted, without being able to learn what had befallen it, he left fifteen of his crew to keep possession of the island. This handful of men was soon overpowered and cut in pieces by the savages. I Though all Ralegh's efTorts to establish a colony in Virginia had hitherto proved abortive, and had been defeated by a succession of disasters and * riakluyi, ii. '255. Camd. Anna!. 3P7. + H;iriot p.p. Haklir.l, iii, 271. De Brv. America, pars i. i Ilaklujt, iit, 2tJ5. 2S!3. 400 HISTORY OF [BooKlX. disappoinUnenU, neither his hopes nor resources were exhausted. Early in the following year [1587], he fitted out three ships, under the command ot" Captain John White, who carried thither a colony more numerous than that which had been settled under Lane. On their arrival in Virginia, after viewing the face of the country covered with one continued forest, which to them appeared an uninhabited wild, as it was occupied only by a few scattered tribes of savages, they discovered that they were destitute of many things which they deemed essentially necessary towards their subsistence in such an uncomfortable situation ; and with one voice, requested White, their commander, to return to England, as the person among them most likely to solicit, with efficacy, the supply on which depended the existence of the colony. White landed in his native country at a most unfavourable season tor the negotiation which he had undertaken. He found the nation in universal alarm at the formidable preparations of Philip II. to invade England, and collecting all its force to oppose the fleet to which he had arrogantly given the name of the Invincible Armada. Ralegh, Greenville, and all the most zealous patrons of the new settlement, were called to act a distinguished part in the operations of a year [1588], equally interesting and glorious to England. Amidst danger so imminent, and during a contest for the honour of their sovereign and the independence of their country, it was impossible to attend to a less important and remote object. The unfortunate colony in Roanoke received no supply, and perished miserably by famine, or by the unrelenting cruelty of those bar- barians by whom they were surrounded. During the remainder of Elizabeth's reign, the scheme of establishing a colony in Vii^inia was not resumed. Ralegh, with a most aspiring mind and extraordinary talents, enlightened by knowledge no less uncommon, had the spirit and tlie defects of a projector. Allured by new objects, and always giving the preference to such as were most splendid and arduous, he was apt to engage in undertakings so vast and so various as to be far beyond his power of accomplishing. He was now intent on peopling and improving a large district of country in Ireland, of which he had obtained a grant from the Queen. He was a deep adventurer in the scheme of fitting out a powerl'ul armament against Spain, in order to establish Don Antonio on the throne of Portugal. He had begun to form his favourite but visionary plan, of penetrating into the province of Guiana, where he fondly dreamed of takmg possession of inexhaustible wealth flowing from the richest mines in the New World. Amidst this multi- plicity of projects, of such promising appearance, and recommended by novelty, he naturally became cold towards his ancient and hitherto unpro- fitable scheme of settling a colony in Virginia, and was easily induced to assign his right of property in that country, which he had never visited, together with all the privileges contained in his patent, to Sir Thomas Smith and a company of merchants in London [March, 1596]. This company, satisfied with a paltry traffic carried on by a few small barks, made no attempt to take possession of the country. Thus, after a period of a hundred and six years from the time that Cabot discovered North America in the name of Heniy VII., and of twenty years from the time that Ralegh planted the first colony, there was not a single Englishman settled there at the demise of Qjueen Elizabeth, in the year one tliousand six hundred and three I have already explained the cause of this during the period previous to the accession of Elizabeth. Other causes produced the same effect under her administration. Though for one half of her reign England was engaged in no foreign war, and commerce enjoyed that perfect security which is friendly to its progress ; though the glory of her later years gave the highest tone of elevation and vigour to the national spirit ; the Queen her- self, from her extreme parsimony, and her aversion to demand extraordinaiy AMERICA. 401 supplies ol' her bubjects, m as more apt to restrain than to second the ardent i^cnius of her people. Several of the most splendid enterprises in her rei2:n were concerted and executed by private adventurei-s. All the pchemcs for colonization were carried on by the funds of individuals, \vithout any public aid. Even the felicity of her government was averse to the establishment of remote colonies. So powertui is the attraction of our native soil, and such our fortunate partiality to the laws and manners of our own country, that men seldom choose to abandon it, unless they be driven away by oppression, or allured h^ vast pros{)ects of sudden wealth. But the provinces of America, in which the English attempted to settle, did not, like those occupied by Spain, invite them thither by any appearance of silver or gold mineSi All their hopes of gain were distant ; and they ^^a\v that nothing ccjuld be earned but by persevering exertions of industry. The maxims of Elizabeth's administration were, in their general tenor, so popular, as did not force her subjects to emigrate in order to escape from the heavy or vexatioiis liand of power. It seems to have been with difliculty that these slender bands ot planters were collected, on which the wiTOfs of that age bestow the n;ane of the first and second Virginian colonies. '4%e fulness of time for English colonization was not yet arrived. But the succession of the Scottish line to the ciovvn of England [1603] hastened its approach. James was hardly seated on the throne before he discovered his pacific intentions, and he soon terminated the long war ".vhich had been carried on between Spain and Eng'land, by an amicable treaty. From that period, uninternipted tranquillity continued duiiiig his reign. Many persons of hij^h rank, and of ardent ambition, to whom the war with Spain had afforded constant employment, and presented alluring prospects not only of fame but of wealth, soon became so impatient of languishing at home Avithout occupation or object, that their invention was on the stretch to find some exercise for their activity and talents. To both these North America seemed to open a new field, and schemes of carrying colonies thither became more general and more popular, A voyage undertaken by Bartholomew (Josnold, in the last yeaf of (he Queen, facilitated as well as encouraged the execution of these schemes. He sailed from Falmouth in a small l)ark with thirty-two men. Instead of following former navigators in their unnecessaiy circuit by the West India isles and the Gulf of Flofida, Gosnold steered due west as nearly as the winds would permit, and was the first English commander who reached America by this shorter and more direct course. That part of the conti- nent which he first descried was a jiromontory in tlie province now called Massachusets Bay, to which he gave the name of Cape Cod. Holding along the coast as it stretched towards the south-west, he touched at two islands, one of which he called Martha's Vineyard, the other Elizabeth's Island ; and visited the adjoining continent, and traded with its inhabitants. He and his companions were so much delighted every where with the inviting aspect of the country, that notwithstanding the smallness of their number, a part of them consented to remain there. But when they had leisure to reflect upon the fate of former settlers in America, they retracted a resolution formed in the first warmth of their admiration ; and Gosnold leturned to England in less than four months from the time of his departure.* This voyage however inconsiderable it may appear, had important effects. The English now discovered the aspect of the American continent to be extremely inviting far to the north of llie place where they had formerly attempted to settle. The coast of a vast country, stretching through the most desirable climates, lay before them. The richness of its virgin * r.ircllRs, iv. p. ir.'t* Vol. 1.— -•)( -iu z li I S T O 11 Y O h' [Book LV. soil promised a certain recompense to their industry. In its interior pro- vinces unexpected sources of wealth might open, and unknown objects of commerce might be found. Its distance from England was diminished almost a third part by the new course which Gosnold had pointed out. Plans for establishing colonies began to be formed in different parts of the kingdom ; and before these were ripe for execution, one small vessel was sent out by the merchants of Bristol, another by the Earl of .Southampton and Lord Arundel of Wardour, in order to learn whether Gosnold's account of the country was to be considered as a just representation of its state, or as the exaggerated description of a fond discoverer. Both returned with a full confirmation of his veracity, and with the addition of so many new circumstances in favour of the country, acquired by a more extensive view of it, as greatly increased the desire of planting it. The most active and efficacious promoter of this was Richard Hakluyt, prebendary of yVestminster, to whom England is more indebted for its American possessions than to any man of that age. Formed under a kins- man of the samn name, eminent for naval and commercial knowledge, he imbibed a similar taste, and applied early to the study of geography and navigation. These favoui ite sciences engrossed his attentioi^and to diflfuse a relish for them was the great object of his life. In order to excite his countrymen to naval enterprise, by flattering their national vanity, he published, in the year 'one thousand five hundred and eighty-nine, his valuable collection of \'r)yages and discoveries made by Englishmen. In order to supply theni^^vilh what information might be derived from the experience of the mo>t successful foreign navigators, he translated some of the best accounts^of the progress of the Spaniards and Portuguese in their voyages both to the East and West Indies, into the English tongue. He was consulted with respect to many of the attempts towards discovery or colo- nization during the latter part of Elizabeth's reign. He corresponded with the officers who conducted them, directed their researches to proper objects, and published the history of their exploits. By the zealous endeavours of a person equally respected by men of rank and men of business, many of both orders formed an association to establish colonies in America, and petitioned the king for the sanction of his authority to warrant the execution of their plans., James, who prided himself on his profound skill in the science of govern- ment, and who had turned his attention to consider the advantages which might be derived from colonies, at a time when he patronized his scheme for planting them in some of the ruder provinces of^ his ancient kingdom, with a view of introducing industry and civilization there,* was now no less fond of directing the active genius of his English subjects tovvards occupations not repugnarit to his own pacific maxims, and listened with a favourable ear to their application. But as the extent as well as value of the American continent began now to be better known, a grant of the whole of such a vast region to any one body of men, however respectable, appeared to him an act of impolitic and profuse liberality. For this rea- son he divided that portion ot North America, which stretches from the thirty-fourth to the fifty-fifth degree of latitude, into two districts nearJy equal ; the one called the first or south colony of Virginia, the other, the second or north colony [April 10, 1616]. He authorized Sir Thomas Gates, Sir George Summers, Richard Hakluyt, and their associates, mostly resident in London, to settle any part of the former which they should choose, and vested in them a right of property to the land extending along the coast fifty miles on each side of the place of their first habitation, and reaching into the interior country a hundred miles. The latter district he allotted, as the place of settlement to sundry knights, gentlemen, and reer- * Hist, of Scotland, vol. ii. AMERICA. 4U3 fchaiils 01 Bristol, Plymouth, and other parts in the Avos't ol' England, with a similar grant of territory. Neitlier the monarch who issued this charter, nor his subjects who received it, had any conception that they were pro- ceedina^ to lay the foundation of mighty and opulent states. What James granted was nothing more than a simple charter of corporation to a trading company, empowering the members of it to have a common seal, and to act as a body politic. But as the object tor which they associated was new, the plan established tor the administration of their affairs was uncom- mon. Instead of the power usually granted to corporations, of electing oilicers and framing by-laws for the conduct of their own operations, the supreme government of the colonies to be settled was vested in a council resident in England^ to be named by the king, according to such laws and ordinances as should be given under his sign manual ; and tlie subordinate jurisdiction was committed to a council resident in America, which was likewise to be nominated by the king, and to act conformably to his instructions. To this important clause, which regulated the form of their constitution, was added the concession of several immunities to encourage persons to settle in the intended colonies. Some of tliose were the same which had been granted to Gilbert and Ralegh ; such as the securing to the emigrants and their descendants all the rights of denizens, in the same manner as if they had remained or had been born in England ; and grant- ing them the privilege of holding their lands in America by the freest and least burdensome tenure. Others were more favourable than those granted by Elizabeth. He permitted whatever was necessaiy for the sustenance or commerce of the new colonies to be exported from England, during the space of seven years, without paying any duty; and, as a further incite- ment to industry, he granted them liberty of trade with other nations, and appropriated the duty to be levied on foreign commodities, for twenty -one years, as a fund for the benefit of the colony.* In this singular charter, the contents of which have been little attended to by the historians of America, some articles are as untavourable to the rights of the colonists as others are to the interest of the parent state. By placing the legislative and executive powers in a council nominated by the crown, and guided by its instructions, every person settling in America seems to be bereaved of the noblest privilege of a free man; by the unlimited permission of trade with foreigners, the parent state is deprived of that exclusive commerce which has been deemed the chief advantage resulting from the establishment of colonies. But in the infaticy of colo- nization, and without the guidance of observation or experience, the ideas of men, with respect to the mode of forming new settlements, were not fully unfolded or properly arranged. At a period when they could not foresee the future grandeur and importance of the communities which they were about to call into existence, they were ill qualified to concert the best plan for governing them. Besides, the English of that age, accustomed to the high prerogative and arbitrary rule of their monarchs, were not ani- jnated with such liberal sentiments, either concerning their own personal or political rights, as have become familiar in the more mature and improved state of their constitution. Without hesitation or reluctance the proprietors of both colonies prepared to execute their respective plans ; and under the authority of a charter, which would now be rejected with disdain as a violent mvasion of the sacred and inalienable rights of liberty, the first permanent settlements of the English in America were established. Erom this period, the progress of the two i)rovinces of Virginia and New England forms a regular and connected stoiy. The former in the south, and the latter in the north, may I)e considered as the original and parent colonies ; in imitation of whicli. *SlitIuIIirit, of Vircinia,]). 35. Ain>end i>. 1. Piiir)i:is. \ . H!>^^ 404 HISTORY OF [Book IX. and under whose shelter, all the others have been successively planted and reared. The first attempts to occupy Vii^inia and New England were made by very feeble bodies of emigrants. As these settled under great disadvan- tages, among tribes of savages, and in an uncultivated desert ; as they attained gradually, after long struggles and many disasters, to that maturity of strength, and order of policy, which entitle them to be considered as respectable states, the history of their persevering efiforts merits particular attention. It will exhibit a spectacle no less striking than instructive, and presents an opportunity which rarely occurs, of contemplating a society in the first moment of its political existence, and of observing how its spirit forms in its infant state, how its principles begin to unfold as it advances, and how those characteristic qualities which distinguish its maturer age are successively acquired. The account of the establishment of the other English colonies, undertaken at periods when the importance of such pos- sessions was better understood, and effected by more direct and vigorous exertions of the parent state, is less interesting. I shall therefore relate the history of the two original colonies in detail. With respect to the sub- sequent settlements, some more general observations concerning the time, the motives, and circumstances of their establishment will be sufficient. I begin with the history of Virginia, the most ancient and most valuable of the British colonies in North America. Though many persons of distinction became proprietors in the company which undertook to plant a colony in Virginia, its funds seem not to have been considerable, and its first effort was certainly extremely feeble. A small vessel of a hundred tons, and two barks, under the command of Captain Newport, sailed [Dec. 19] with a hundred and five men destined to remain in the country. Some of these were of respectal)le families, particularly a brother of the Earl of Northumberland, and several officers who had served witli reputation in the reign of Elizabeth. Newport, I know not for what reason, followed the ancient course by the West Indies, and did not reach the coast of North America for four months [April 26, 1607]. But he approached it with better fortune than any former navi- gator ; for, having been driven, by the violence of a storm, to the north- ward of Roanoke, the place of his destination, the first land he discovered was a promontory which he called Cape Henry, the southern boundary of the Bay of Chesapeak. The English stood directly into that spacious inlet, which seemed to invite them to enter ; and as they advanced, contem- plated, with a mixture of delight and adnjiraiion, that grand reservoir, fnto which are poured the waters of all the vast rivers, which not only diffuse fertility through that district of America, but open the interior parts of the country to navigation, and render a commercial intercourse more extensive and commodious than in any other region of the globe. New- port, keeping along the southern shore, sailed up a river which the natives called Powhatan, and to which he gave the name of James River. After viewing its banks, during a run of above forty miles from its mouth, they all concluded that a country, where safe and convenient harbours seemed to be numerous, would be a more suitable station lor a trading colony than the shoaly and dangerous coast to the south, on which their countrymen had formerly settled. Here then they determined to abide ; and having chosen a proper spot for their residence, they gave this infant settlement the name of James Town, which it still retains ; and though it has never become either populous or opulent, it can boast of being the most ancient habitation of the English in the New World. But however well chosen the situation might be, the members of the colony were far from availing themselves of its advantages. Violent animosities had broke out among some of their leaders, during their voyage to Virginia. Tiiese did not sub- side on their arrival there. The first deed of the council, which assumed A M ERIC A. 405 the government in virtue of a commission brought from England under the seal of the company, and opened on the day after they landed, was an act of injustice. Captain Smith, who had been appointed a member of the council, was excluded from his seat at the board, by the mean jealousy of his colleagues, and not only reduced to the condition of a private man, but of one suspected and watched by his superiors. This diminution of his influence, and restraint on his activity, was an essential injury to the colony, which at that juncture stood in need of the aid of both. For soon after they began to settle, the English were involved in a war with the natives, partly by their own indiscretion, and partly by the suspicion and ferocity of those barbarians. And although the Indians, scattered over the countries adjacent to James River, were divided into independent tribes, so extremely teeble that hardly one of them could muster above two hun- dred warriors,* they teased and annoyed an intent colony by their inces- sant hostilities. To this was added a calamity still more dreadful ; the stock of provisions left lor their subsistence, on the departure of their ships fur England [June 15], was so scanty and of such bad quality, that a scarcity, approaching ahnost to absolute famine, soon followed. Such poor unwholesome fare brought on diseases, the violence of which was so much increased by the sultry heat of the climate, and the moisture of a country covered with wood, that before the beginning of September one half of their number died, and most of the survivors were sickly and dejected- In such trying extremities, the comparative powers of every individual are discovered and called forth, and each naturally takes that station, and assumes that ascendant, to which he is entitled by his talents and force of mind. Every eye was now turned towards Smith, and all willingly devolved on him that authority of which they had formerly deprived him. His undaunted temper, deeply tinctured with the wild romantic spirit cha- racteristic of military adventurers in that age, was peculiarly suited to such a situation. The vigour of his constitution continued fortunately still unim- paired by disease, and his mind was never appalled by danger. He instantly adopted the only plan that could save them from destruction. He began by surrounding James Town with such rude fortifications as were a suffi- cient defence against the assaults of savages. He then marched, at the head of a small detachment, in quest of their enemies. Some tribes he gained by caresses and presents, and procured from them a supply of provisions. Others he attacked with open force ; and defeating them on every occasion, whatever their superiority in numbers might be, compelled them to impart to him some portion of their winter stores. As the recom- pense of all his toils and dangers, he saw abundance and contentment re-established in the colony, and hoped that he should be able to maintain them in that happy state, until the arrival of ships from England in the spring ; but in one of his excursions he was surprised by a numerous body of Indians, and in making his escape from them, after a gallant defence, he sunk to the neck in a swamp, and was obliged to surrender. I'hough he knew well what a dreadful fate awaits the prisoners of savages, his pre- sence of mind did not forsake him. He showed those who had taken him captive a mariner's compass, and amused them with so many wonder- ful accounts of its virtues as filled them with astonishment and veneration, which began to operate very powerfully in his favour. They led him, however, in triumph through various parts of the country, and conducted him at last to Powhatan, the most considerable Sacliim in that part of Virginia. There the doom of death being pronounced, he was led to the place of execution, and his head already bowed down to receive the fatal l-low, when that fond attachment of the American women to their Euro- ' riirclias, vol. iv. Ifi02 Hiiilth's Travels, p. i;). 406 HISTORY OF [Book IX. pean invaders, (he beneficial effects of which the Spaniards often expo-- rienced, interposed in his behalf. The iavouiite dauejhter of Powhatan rushed in between him and the executioner, and by lier entreaties and tears prevailed on her father to spare his life. 'J he beneficence of his deliverer, whom the early English writers dignify with the title of the Princess Pocahuntas, did not terminate here ; she soon after procured his liberty, and sent from time to time seasonable presents of provisions.* Snnth, on his return to James Town, found the colony reduced to thirty- eight persons, who, in despair were preparing to abandon a countiy which did not seem destined to be the habitation of Englishmen. He employed caresses, threats, and even violence, in order to prevent them from executing this fatal resolution. With difficulty he prevailed on them to defer it so long, that the succour anxiously expected from England arrived. Plenty was instantly restored ; a hundred new planters were added to their number ; and an ample stock of whatever was requisite for clearing and sowing the ground was delivered to them. But an unlucky incident turned their attention from that species of industry which alone could render their situation comfortable. In a small stream of water that issued from a bank of sand near James Town, a sediment of some shining mineral substance, which had some resemblance of gold, was discovered. At a time when the precious metals were conceived to be the peculiar and only valuable productions of the New World, when every mountain was supposed to contain a treasure, and every rivulet was searched lor its golden sands, this appearance was tbndly considered as an infallible indication of a mine. Every hand was eager to dig ; large quantities of this glittering dust were amassed. From some assay of its nature, made by an artist as unskiltul as his companions were credulous, it was pronounced to be extremely rich. '• There was now," says Smith, " no talk, no hope, no work, but dig gold, wash gold, refine gold."t With this imaginary wealth the first vessel returning to England was loaded, while the culture of the land and every useful occupation were totally neglected. The effects of this fatal delusion were soon felt. Notwithstanding all the provident activity of Smith, in procuring corn from the natives by traffic or by force, the colony began to suffer as much as formerly from scarcity of food, and was wasted by the same distempers. In hopes of obtaining some relief, Smith proposed, as they had not hitherto extended their researches beyond the countries contiguous to James River, to open an intercourse with the more remote tribes, and to examine into the state of culture and population among them. The execution of this arduous design he undertook himself, in a small open boat, with a feeble crew, and a very scanty stock of provisions. He began his survey at Cape Charles, and in two different excursions, which continued above four months, he advanced as far as the river Susquehannah, which flows into the bottom of the bay. He visited all the countries both on the east and west shores ; he entered most of the considerable creeks ; he sailed up many of the great rivers as far as their falls. He traded with some tribes ; he fought with others ; he observed the nature of the territory which they occupied, their mode of subsistence, the peculiarities in their manners ; and left among all a won- derful admiration either of the beneficence or valour of the English. After sailing above three thousand miles in a paltry vessel, ill fitted for such an extensive navigation, during which the hardships to which he was exposed, as well as the patience with which he endured, and the fortitude with which he surmounted them, equal whatever is related of the celebrated S])anish discoverers in their most daring enterprises, he returned to James Town ; he brouglit with him an account of that lai-ge portion of the * Smitirg Trareh. p. 44. &r. Purchas. iv. 1704. Stilti. p. 4.1. &r. * Fmilh's Travels. ').. '53 AMERICA. 407 American continent now comprehended in the two provinces of Virginia and Maryland,* so full and exact, that after the progress of information and research for a century and a half, his map exhibits no inaccurate view of both countries, and is the original upon which all subsequent delineations and descriptions have been formed.t But whatever pleasing prospect of future benefit might open upon this complete discovery of a country formed by nature to be the seat of an exclusive commerce, if afforded but little relief for their present wants. The colon)^ still depended tor subsistence chiefly on supplies from the natives ; as, alter all the efforts of their own industry, hardly thirty acres of ground were yet cleared so as to be capable of culture. | By Smith's attention, however, the stores of the English were so regularly tilled that for some time they felt no considerable distress ; and at this juncture a change was made in the constitution of the company, which seemed to promise an increase of their seciuity and happiness. That supreme di- rection of all the company's operations, which the King by his charter had reserved to himself, discouraged persons of rank or property from becoming members of a society so dependent on the arbitrary will of the crown. Upon a representation of this to James, he granted them a new charter [May 23, 1609], with more ample privileges. He enlarged the boundaries of the colonjr ; he rendered the powers of the company, as a corporation, more explicit and complete ; he abolished the jurisdiction of the council resident in Virginia ; he vested the government entirely in a council re- siding in London ; he granted to the proprietors of the company the right of electing the persons who were to compose this council, by a majority of voices ; he authorized this "',ouncil to establish such laws, orders, and forms of government and magistracy, for the colony and plantation, as they in their discretion should think U- be fittest for the good of the adventurers and inhabitants there ; he empowered them to nominate a governor to have the administration of affairs in the colony ; and to carry their orders into execution. 6 In consequence of these concessions, the company having acquired the power of regulating all its own transactions, the number of proprietors increased, ^nd among them we find the most respectable names in the nation. The first deed of the new council was to appoint Lord Delaware go- vernor and captain-general of their colony in Virginia. To a person of his rank those high sounding titles could be no allurement ; and by his thorough acquaintance with the progress and state of the settlement, he knew enough of the labour and difficulty with which an infant colony is reared, to expect any thing but anxiety and care in discharging the duties of that delicate office. But, from zeal to promote an establishment which he expected to prove so highly beneficial to his countiy, he was willina; to relinquish all the comforts of an honourable station, to undertake a long voyage to settle in an uncultivated region, destitute of every accommoda- tion to which he had been accustomed, and where he foresaw that toil, and trouble, and danger awaited him. But as he could not immediately leave England, the council despatched Sir Thomas Gates and Sir Geoig^e Summers, the former of whom had been appointed lieutenant-general and the latter admiral, with nine ships and five hundred planters. They carried with them commissions by which they were empowered to super- sede the jurisdiction of the former council, to proclaim Lord Delaware governor, and until he should arrive, to take the administration of affairs into their own hands. A violent hurricane separated the vessel in which Gates and Summers had embarked from the rest of the fleet, and stranded it on the coast of Bermmlas [Aug. ll]. The other ships arrived safely at James Town. But the late of their commanders was unknown. Their * Pmilli's Travels, p. fir), kr. * Stith. p. PI i IHd. p >J7. ^ Ibid. Appr-nd. 8, 408 HISTORY OF [Book IX. commission for new modelling the government, and all other public papers, were supposed to be lost tdgether with them. The present form of government, however, was held to be abolished. No legal warrant could be produced for establishing any other. Smith was not in a condition at this juncture to assert his own rights, or to act with his wonted vigour. By an accidental explosion of gunpo.wder, he had been so miserably scorched and mangled that he was incapable of moving, and under the necessity of committing himself to the guidance of his friends, who carried him aboard one of the ships returning to England, in hopes that he might recover by more skilful treatment than he could meet with in Virginia.* After his departure, every thing tended fast to the wildest anarchy. Faction and discontent had often risen so high among the old settlers that they could hardly be kept within bounds. The spirit of the new comers was too ungovernable to bear any restraint. Several among them of better rank were such dissipated hopeless young men, as their friends were glad to send out in quest of whatever fortune might betide them in a foreign land. Of the lower order many were so profligate, or desperate, that their country was happy to throw them out as nuisances in society. Such per- sons were little capable of the regular subordination, the strict economy, and persevering industry, which their situation required. The Indians observing their misconduct, and that eveiy precaution for sustenance or safety was neglected, not only withheld the supplies of provisions which they were accustomed to furnish, but harassed them with continual hos- tilities. All their subsistence was derived from the stores which they had brought from England ; these were soon consumed ; then the domestic animals sent out to breed in the country were devoured ; and by this in- considerate waste, they were reduced to such extremity of famine, as not only to eat the most nauseous and unwholesome roots and berries, but to feed on the bodies of the Indians whom they slew, and even on those of their companions who sunk under the oppression of such complicated dis- tress. In less than six months, of five hundred persons whom Smith left in Virginia, only sixty remained ; and these so feeble and dejected that they could not have survived for ten days, if succour had not arrived from a quarter whence they did not expect it.j When Gates and Summers Avere thrown ashore on Bermudas, fortunately not a single person on board their ship perished. A considerable part of their provisions and stores too, was saved, and in that delightful spot, Nature, with spontaneous bounty, presented to them such a variety of her productions, that a hundred and tifty people subsisted in affluence for ten months on an uninhabited island. Impatient, however, to escape from a place where they were cut off trom all intercourse with mankind, they set about building two barks with such tools and materials as they had, and by amazing efforts of perseverance and ingenuity they finished them. In these they embarked, and steered directly towards Virginia, in hopes of finding an ample consolation for all their toils and dangers in the embraces of their companions, and amidst the comforts of a flourishing colony. After a more prosperous navigation than they could have expected in their ill constructed vessels, they landed at .Tames Town [May 23]. But instead of that joyful interview for which they fondly looked, a spectacle pre- sented itself which struck them with horror. They beheld the miserable remainder of their countrymen emaciated with famine and sickness, sunk in despair, and in their figure and looks rather resembling spectres than himian beings. As Gates and Summers, in full confidence oT finding plenty of provisions ip Virginia, had brought with them no larger stock than was * >'iirch.is, iv. irjl, &.C. Smith's Travels. ;i. 89. f»iith, p. 109, &c. ► r=ii;!i. p. 11(>. Furclin-j. iv. 17-1.**. AMERICA. 409 deemed necessary for their own support during the voyage, their inability to afford relief to their countrymen added to the anguish with which they viewed this unexpected scene of distress. Nothing now remained but in- stantly to abandon a country where it was impossible to subsist any longer ; and though all that could be found in the stores of the colony when added to what remained of the stock brought from Bermudas, did not amount to more than what was sufficient to support them for sixteen days, at the most scanty allowance, they set sail, in hopes of being able to reach Newfound- land, where they expected to be relieved by their countrymen employed at that season in the fishery there.* But it was not the will of Heaven that all the labour of the English, in planting this colony, as well as all their hopes of benefit from its future prosperity, should be for ever lost. Before Gates and the melancholy companions of his voyage had reached the mouth of James River, they were met by Lord Delaware with three ships, that brought a large recruit of provisions, a considerable number of new settlers, and every thing re- quisite for defence or cultivation. Bj' persuasion and authority he prevailed on them to return to James Town, where they found their fort, their ma- gazines, and houses entire, which Sir Thomas Gates, by some happy chance, had preserved from being set on tire at the time of their departure. A society so feeble and disordered in its frame required a tender and skilful hand to cherish it, and restore its vigour. This it found in Lord Delaware : he searched into the causes of tneir misfortunes, as far as he could discover them, amidst the violence of their mutual accusations ; but instead of exerting his power in punishing crimes that were past, he em- ployed his prudence in healing their dissensions, and in guarding against a repetition of the same fatal errors. By unwearied assiduities, by the respect due to an amiable and beneficent character, by knowing how to mingle severity with indulgence, and when to assume the dignity of his office, as well as when to display the gentleness natural to his own temper, he gradually reconciled men corrupted by anarchy to subordination and discipline, he turned the attention of the idle and profligate to industry, and taught the Indians again to reverence and dread the English name. Under such an administration, the colony began once more to assume a promising appearance ; when unhappily for it, a complication of diseases brought on by the climate obliged Lord Delaware to quit the countryt [March 28, 1611]; the government of which he comniitted to Mr. Percy. He was soon superseded by the arrival [May 10] of Sir Thomas Dale ; in whom the company had vested more absolute authority than in any of his predecessors, empowering him to rule by martial law ; a short code of which, founded on the practice of the armies in the Low Countries, the most rigid military school at that time in Europe, they sent out with him. This system of government is so violent and arbitrary, that even the Spa- niards themselves had not ventured to introduce it into their settlements ; for among them, as soon as a plantation began, and the arts of peace suc- ceeded to the operations of war, the jurisdiction of the civil magistrate was uniformly established. But however unconstitutional or oppressive this may appear, it was adopted by the advice of Sir Francis B^con, the most enlightened philosopher, and one of the most eminent lawyers of the age.J The company, well acquainted with the inefficacy of every method which they had hitherto employed for restraining the unruly mutinous spirits which they had to govern, eagerly adopted a plan that had the sanction of such nigh authority to recommend it. Happily for the colony. Sir Thomas Dale, who was intrusted with this dangerous power, exercised * A minute and curious account of the shipwreck of Gates and Summers, and of their adven- tures in Bcrmuriaf , was composed !>>' .Strachy, a gentleman who accompanied them, and was pub- lished hy PMiTl)aii, iv. 1734. t Slith, p. 117. Piirchaa, iv. lT(i4, i Bacon, Essay on PlaDiaiions. p. 3. Vor., I.— r,xr N 410 H I S T O R Y O F [Book IX. it with prudence and moderation. By the vigour which the summary mode of military punishment gave to his administration, he introduced into the colony more periect order than had ever been established there ; and at the sau)e time he tempered his vigour with so much discretion, that no alarm seems to have been given by this formidable innovation.* The regular form which the colony now began to assume induced the king lo issue a new charter for the encouragement of the adventurers [March 12, 1612], by which he not only confirmed all their former privileges, and prolonged the term of exemption from payment of duties on the commodi- ties exported by them, but granted them more extensive property, as well as more ample jurisdiction. All the islands lyi!:g within three hundred leagues of the coast were annexed to the province of Virginia. In con- sequence of this, the company took possession of Bermudas and the other small islands discovered by Gates and Summers, and at the same time prepared to send out a considerable reinforcement to the colony at James Town. The expense of those extraordinary efforts was defrayed by the profits of a lottery, which amounted nearly to thirty thousand pounds. This expedient they were authorized to employ Ity their new charter;! and it is remarkable, as the first instance in the Englisli history of any public countenance given to this pernicious seducing mode of levying money. But the House of Commons, which towards the close of this reign began to observe every measure of government with jealous attention, having remonstrated against the institution, as unconstitutional and impolitic, James recalled the license under the sanction of which it had been established.^ By the severe discipline of martial law, the activity of the colonists was forced into a proper direction, and exerted itself in useful industry. This, aided by a fertile soil and favourable climate, soon enabled them to raise such a large stock of provisions, that they were no longer obliged to trust for subsistence to the precarious supplies which they obtained or extorted from the Indians. In proportion as the English became more independent, the natives courted their (riendship upon more equal terms. The happy effects of this were quickly felt. Sir Thomas Dale concluded a treaty with one of their most powerful and warlike tribes, situated on the river Chickahominy, in which thej consented to acknowledge themselves sub- jects to the King of Great Britain, to assume henceforth the name of Eng- lishmen, to send a body of their warriors to the assistance of the English as often as they took the field against any enemy, and to deposite annually a stipulated quantity of Indian corn in the storehouses of the colony. § An event, which the early historians of Virginia relate with peculiar satis- faction, prepared the way for this union. Pocahuntas. the favourite daughter of the great Chief Powhatan, to whose intercession Captain Smith was indebted for his life, persevered in her partial attachment to the English ; and as she frequently visited their settlements, where she was always received with respectful hospitality, her admiration of their arts and manners continued to increase. During this intercourse, her beauty, which is represented as far superior to that of her countiywomen, made such impression on the heart of Mr. Rolfe, a young man of rank in the colony, that he warmly solicited her to accept of him as a husband. Where manners are simple, courtship is not tedious. Neither artifice pre- vents, nor ceremony forbids, the heart from declaring its sentiments. Pocahuntas readily gave her consent ; Dale encouraged the alliance, and Powhatan did not disapprove it. The marriage was celebrated with ex- traordinary pomp ; and from that period a friendly correspondence sub- sisted between the colony and all the tribes subject to Powhatan, or that stood in awe of his power. Rolfe and his princess (for by that name the *Stith, p. 112. tIbp-191. Appendix, 23, &c. J CJialmerB' AnnnK i. 32. * TlniniT SoIirt!\ Nnriatio. np. dR Bry. pars x. p. 33 f?lifh, p. 130. AMERICA. 411 writers of the last age always distinguish her,) set out for England, where she was received try James and his Qjueen with the respect suited to her birth. Being carefully instructed in the principles of the Christian faith, she was publicly baptized, but died a few years after, on her return to America, leaving one son, from whom are sprung some of the most re- spectable families in Virginia, who boast of their descent from the race of the ancient rulers of their country.* But notwithstanding the visible good eflfects of that alliance, none of Rolte's countrymen seem to have imitated the example which he set them, of intermarrying with the natives. Ol all the Europeans who have settled in America, the English have availed themselves the least of this obvious method of conciliating the affection ot its original inhabitants ; and, either from the shyness conspicuous in their national character, or from the want of that pliant facility of manners which accommodates itself to eveiy situation, they have been more averse than the French and Portuguese, or even the Spaniards, from incorporating with the native Americans. The Indians, courting such a union, offered their daughters in marriage to their new guests : and when they did not accept of the proffered alliance, they naturally imputed it to pride, and to their contempt of them as an inferior order of beings.t During the interval of tranquillity procured by the alliance with Pow- hatan, an important change was made in the state of the colony. Hitherto no right of private property in land had been established. Tne fields that were cleared had been cultivated by tlie joint labour of the colonists; their product was carried to the common storehouses, and distributed weekly to every family, according to its number and exigencies. A society, des- titute of the first advantages resulting from social union, was not formed to prosper. Industry, when not excited by the idea of property in what was acquired by its own efforts, made no vigorous exertion. The head had no inducement to contrive, nor the hand to labour. The idle and improvident trusted entirely to what was issued from the common store ; the assiduity even of the sober and attentive relaxed, when they perceived that others were to reap the fruit of their toil ; and it was computed, that the united industry of the colony did not accomplish as much work in a week as might nave been performed in a day, if each individual had laboured on his own account. In order to remedy this, Sir Thomas Dale divided a considerable portion of the land into small lots, and granted one of these to each individual in full property. From the moment that industry had the certain prospect of a recompense, it advanced with rapid progress. The articles of primary necessity were cultivated with so much attention as secured the means of subsistence; and such schemes of improvement were formed as prepared the way for the introduction of opulence into the colony.]; The industrious spirit which began to rise among the planters was soon directed towards a new object ; and they applied to it tor some tin.e with such inconsiderate ardour as was productive of fatal consequences. The culture of tobacco, which has since become the staple of Virginia, and the source of its prosperity, was introduced about this time [ifilh], into the colony. As the taste for that weed continued to increase in England, not- withstanding the zealous declamations of Jan)es against it, the tobacco imported from Virginia came to a ready market ; and though it was so much inferior in quality or in estimation to that raised by the Spaniards in the West Indian islands, that a pound of the latter sold lijr eighteen shillings, and of the former for no more than three sliillings, it yielded a considerable profit. Allured by the prospect of such a certain and quick return, every other species of industry was neglected. The land which ought to have been reserved for raising provisions, and even the streets of James Town, * Hamer Solida Narralio, ap. de Bry, pars x. p. 23. Siith. p. 129. 146. Srniiirs Travels, p. H3 }?l. t Bcv.'riev's HiRt. of Viri;. p. 25. J Snulli's 'I'ravels, p. 114. Stilh, p. 131. 412 HISTORY OF [Book IX. were planted wilh tobacco. Various regulations were framed to restrain this ill directed activity. But, from eagerness for present gain, the plant- ers disregarded every admonition. The means of subsistence became so scanty, as forced them to renew their demands upon the Indians, who seeing no end of those exactions, their antipathy to the English name revived with additional rancour, and they began to (brm schemes of ven- geance, with a secrecy and silence peculiar to Americans.* Meanwhile the colony, notwithstanding this error in its operations, and the cloud that was gathering over its head, continued to wear an aspect of prosperity. Its numbers increased by successive migrations ; the quantity of tobacco exported became every year more considerable, and several of the planters were not only in an easy situation, but advancing fast to opulence ;t and by two events, which happened nearly at the same time, both population and industry were greatly promoted. As few women had hitherto ventured to encounter the hardships which were unavoidable in an unknown and uncultivated country, most of the colonists, constrained to live single, considered themselves as no more than sojourners in a land to which they were not attached by the tender ties of a family and children. In order to induce them to settle there, the company took advantage of the apparent tranquillity in the country, to send out a considerable number of young women of humble birth indeed, but of unexceptionable character, and encouraged the planters, by premiums and iinmunities, to marry them.|. These new companions were received with such fondness, and many of them so comtbrtably established, as invited others to follow their example ; and by degrees thoughtless adventurers, assuming the sentiments of vir- tuous citizens and of provident fathers of families, became solicitous about the prosperity of a country which they now considered as their own. As the colonists began to form more extensive plans of industry, they were unexpectedly furnished with means of executing them with greater facility. A Dutch ship from the coast of Guinea, having sailed up James River, sold a part of her cargo of Negroes to the planters ;§ and as that hardy race was found more capable of enduring fatigue under a sultry climate than Europeans, their number has been increased by continual importation ; their aid seems now to be essential to the existence of the colony, and the greater part of field labour in Virginia is performed bj^ servile hands. But as the condition of the colony improved, the spirits of its members became more independent. To Englishmen the summary and severe decisions of martial law, however tempered by the mildness of their governors, appeared intolerably oppressive ; and they longed to recover the privileges to which they had been accustomed under the liberal (orm of governrnent in their native country. In compliance with this spirit. Sir George Yeardly, in the year 1619 [June], called the first general assembly that was ever held in Virginia ; and the numbers of the people were now so increased, and their settlements so dispersed, that eleven corporations appeared by their representatives in this convention, where they were permitted to assume legislative power, and to exercise the noblest functions of free men. The laws enacted in it seem neither to have been many nor of great importance ; but the meeting was highly acceptable to the people, as they now beheld among themselves an image of the English constitution, which they reverenced as the most perfect model of free government. In order to render this resemblance more complete, and the rights of the planters more certain, the company issued a charter of ordinance [July 24], which gave a legal and permanent form to the government of the cdony. The supreme legislative authority in Virginia, in imitation of that in Great Britain, was divided and lodged partly in the governor, who held the * SUth, p. 140. 117. 164. IGfl. Smith, p. 130. Turchas, iv. ITST. "^ Sinitli. p. ino. t Rtith. p. 166. 197. ^ Rpvprley, p. .37. AMERICA. 413 place of the sovereign ; partly in a council of state named by the company, which possessed some of the distinctions, and exercised some of the func- tions belonging to the peerage ; partly in a general council or assembly composed of the representatives of the people, in which were vested powers and privileges similar to those of the House of Commons. In both these councils all questions were to be determined by the majority of voices, and a negative was reserved to the governor ; but no law or ordi- nance, though approved of by all the three meuibers of the legislature, was to be of force until it was ratified in England by a general court of the company, and returned under its seal.* Thus the constitution of the colony was fixed, and the members of it are henceforth to be considered, not merely as servants of a commercial company dependent on the will and orders of their superior, but as free men and citizens. The natural eflfectof that happy change in their condition was an increase of their industry. The product of tobacco in Virginia was now equal, not only to the consumption of it in Great Britain,! but could furnish some ?[uantiiy lor a tbreign market. The company opened a trade for it with lolland, and established warehouses for it in Middelburg and Flushing. James and his privy council, alarmed at seeing the commerce of a com- modity, for which the demand was daily increasing, turned into a channel that tended to the diminution of the revenue, by depriving it of a consider- able duty imposed on the importation of tobacco, interposed with vigour to check this innovation. Some expedient was fjund, by which the matter was adjusted tor the present ; but it is remarkable as the first instance of a difference in sentiment between the parent state and the colony, concern- ing their respective rights. The former concluded, that the trade of the colony should be confined to England, and all its productions be landed there. The latter claimed, not only the general privilege of Englishmen to carry their commodities to the best market, but pleaded the particular concessions in their charter, by which an unlimited freedom of commerce seemed to be granted to them, j Tne time for a more full discussion of this important question was not yet arrived. But while the colony continued to increase so fast that settlements were scattered, not only along the banks of James and York rivers, but began to extend to the Rapahannock, and even to the Potowmack, the English^ relying on their own numbers, and deceived by tlii-; appearance of pros- perity, lived in full security. They neither attended to the movements of the Indians, nor suspected their machinations ; and though surrounded by a people whom they might have known from experience to be both artful and vindictive, they neglected eveiy precaution for their own safety that was requisite in such a situation. Like the peaceful inhabitants of a society completely established, they were no longer soldiers but citizens^ and were so intent on what was subservient to the comfort or embellishment of civil life that every martial exercise began to be laid aside as unne- cessary. The Indians, whom they commonly employed as hunters, were furnished with fire arms, and taught to use them with dexterity. They were permitted to frequent the hcUjitations of the English at all hours, and received as innocent visitants whom there was no reason to dread. This inconsiderate security enabled the Indians to prepare for the execution of '" Stith, Appendix, p. ^, &c. t It is a matter of some curiosity to trace the progress of the consumption of this unnecessary commodity. The use of tobacccj seems to liave been first introduced into England about the year 1586. Possibly a fewscafarin;.' persons may have acquired a relish for it by their inlercourse with the Spaniards previous to that period ; but tlie use of it cannot be denominated a national habit sooner than the time I have mentioned. U|)on an average of the seven years immediately prece- ding the year 1G22, the whole import of tobacco into England amounted to a hundred and forty-two thousand and eighty-five jmunds weight. Stith, p. 246. From this it appears, that the ta^te hod spread with a rapidity which is remarkable. But how inconsiderable is that quantity to what is now consumed in Ureat Britain '. t Stitli, p. 200, &c. 414 HISTORY OF [Book L\. that plan of vengeance, which they meditated with all the deliberate fore- tliouffht which is agreeable to their temper. Nor did they want a leader capable of conducting their schemes with address. On the death of Powhatan, in the year 1618, Opechancanough succeeded him, not only as wirowanee, or chief of his own tribe, but in that extensive influence over all the Indian nations of Virginia, which induced the Eno:lish writers to distinguish him by the name of Emperor. According to the Indian tradi- tion, he was not a native of Virginia, but came from a distant country to the south-west, possibly from some province of the Mexican empire.* But as he was conspicuous for all the qualities of highest estimation among savages, a fearless courage, great strength and agility of body, and crafty policy, he quickly rose to eminence and power. — Soon after his elevation to the supreme command, a general massacre of the English seems to have been resolved upon ; and during four years, the means of perpetrating it with the greatest facility and success were concerted with amazing secrecy. All the tribes contiguous to the English settlements were successively gahied, except those on the eastern shore, from whom, on account of their peculiar attachment to their new neighbours, eveiy circumstance that might discover ^vhat they intended was carefully concealed. To each tribe its station was allotted, and the part it was to act prescribed. On the morning of the day consecrated to vengeance [March 22], each was at the place of rendezvous appointed, while the English were so little aware of the impending destruction that they received with unsuspicious hospitality several persons sent by Opechancanough, under pretext of delivering presents of venison and fruits, but in reality to observe their motions. r inding them perfectly secure, at midday, the moment that was previously fixed for this deed of horror, the Indians rushed at once upon them in all their different settlements, and murdered men, women, and children, v/ith undistinguishing rage, and that rancorous cruelty with which savages treat their enemies. In one hour nearly a fourth part of the whole colony was cut off, almost without knowing by whose hands they fell. The slaughter would have been universal, if compassion, or a sense of duty, had not moved a converted Indian, to whom the secret was communicated the night before the massacre, to reveal it to his master in such time as to save James Town and some adjacent settlements ; and if the English in other districts had not run to their arms with resolution prompted by despair, and defended themselves so bravely as to repulse their assailants, who, in the execution of their plan, did not discover courage equal to the sagacity and art with which they had concerted it.j But though the blow was thus prevented from descending with its full effect, it proved very grievous to an infant colony. In some settlements not a single Englishman escaped. Many persons of prime note in the colony, and among these several members of the council, were slain. The survivors, overwhelmed with grief, astonishment, and terror, aban- doned all their remote settlements, and, crowding together for safety to James Town, did not occupy a territoiy of greater extent than had been planted soon after the arrival of their countrymen in Virginia. Confined within those narrow boundaries, they were less intent on schemes of industry than on thoughts of revenge. Everj^ man took arms. A bloody war against the Indians commenced ; and, bent on exterminating the whole race, neither old nor young were spared. The conduct of the Spaniards in the southern regions of America was openly proposed as the most proper model to imitate ;J and regardless, like them, of those principles of faith, honour, and humanity, which regulate hostility among civilized nations and set bounds to its rage, the English deemed every thing allowable that tended to accomplish their design. They hunted the Indians like wild "• Beverley, p. 51. f Siith. p. OOS. &c. Purchas. iv, 1788. Sec. i Siith. p. 23:! AMERICA. 415 beasts rather than enemies ; and as the pursuit of them to their places of retreat in the woods, which covered their couiitrj', was both difficult and danp:erous, they endeavoured to allure them from their inaccessible fastness by offer^) of peace and promises of oblivion, made with such an artful appearance of sincerity as deceived their crafty leader, and induced theni to return to their former settlements, and resume their usual peaceful oc- cupatioas [1623]. The behaviour of the two people seemed now to be perlectly reversed. The Indians, like men acquainted with the principles of integrity and good taith, on which the intercourse between nations is founded, confided in the reconciliation, and lived in absolute security with- out suspicion of danger ; while the English, with pertidinus craft, were preparing to imitate savages in their revenge and cruelty. On the approach of harvest, when they knew a hostile attack would be most formidable and fatal, they fell suddenly upon all the Indian plantations, murdered every person on whom they could lay hold, and drove the rest to the woods, where so many perished with hunger, that some of the tribes nearest to the English were totally extirpated. This atrocious deed, which the perpetrators laboured to represent as a necessaiy act of retalia- tion, was followed by some happy effects. It deliveredi the colony so entirely from any dread of the Indians, that its settlements began again to extend, and its industry to revive. But unfortunately at this juncture the state of the company in England, in which the property of Virginia and the government of the colony settled there were vested, prevented it from seconding the efforts of the planters, by such a reinforcement of men, and such a supply of necessa- ries, as were requisite to replace what they had lost. The company was originally composed of many adventurers, and increased so fast by the junction of new members, allured by the prospect of gain, or the desire of promoting a scheme of public utility, that its general courts formed a numerous assembly.* The operation of every political principle and passion, that spread through the kingdom, was felt in those popular meet- ings, and influenced their decisions. As towards the close of James's reign more just and enlarged sentiments with respect to constitutional liberty were diffused among the people, they came to understand their rights better and to assert them with greater boldness ; a distinction formerly little known, but now familiar in English policj^ began to be established between the court and country parties, and the leaders of each endea- voured to derive power and consequence from every quarter. Both exerted themselves with emulation, in order to obtain the direction of a body so numerous and respectable as the company of Virginian adven- turers. In consequence of this, business had been conducted in every general court for some years, not with the temperate spirit of merchanfs deliberating concerning their mutual interest, but with the animosity and violence natural to numerous assemblies, by which rival flictions contend for superiority.! As the king did not often assemble the great council of the nation in parliament, the general courts of the company became a theatre on which popular orators displayed their talents ; the proclamations of the crown, and acts of the privy council, with respect to the commerce and police of the colony, were canvassed there with freedom, and censured with seve- rity, ill suited to the lofty ideas which James entertained of his own wisdom, and the extent of his prerogative. In order to check this growing spirit of discussion, the ministers employed all their address and influence to gain as many members of the company as might give them the direc- tion of their deliberations. But so unsuccessful were they in this attempt, that every measure proposed by them was reprobated by a vast majority, • Stith, p. 272. 27«. t Ihid. p. SK), tc. Chalmers, p. 50 41ti HISTOKVUF [Book IX. and sometimes without any reason but because they were the proposers of it. James, little favourable to the power of any popular assembly, and weary of contending with otie over which he had laboured in vain to obtain an ascendant, began to entertain thoughts of dissolving the com- pany, and new modelling its constitution. Pretexts, neither unplausible nor destitute of some fonndation, seemed to justity this measure. The slow progress of the colony, the lai^e sums of money expended, and great number of men who had perished in attempting to plant it, the late massacre by the Indians, and every disaster that had befallen the English from their first migration to America, were imputed solely to the inability of a nume- rous company to conduct an enterprise so complex and arduous. The nation felt sensibly its disappointment in a scheme in which it had engaged with sanguine expectations of advantage, and wished impatiently for such an impartial scrutiny into former proceedings as might suggest more salutary measures in the future administration of the colony. The pre- sent state of its affairs, as well as the wishes of the people, seemed to call for the interposition of the crown ; and James, eager to display the supe- riority of his royal wisdom, in correcting those errors into which the company had been betrayed by inexperience in the arts of government, boldly undertook the work of reformation [May 9, 1623 J. Without regarding the rights conveyed to the company by their charter, and without the formality of any judicial proceeding for annulling it, he, by virtue of his prerogative, issued a commission, empowering some of the judges, and other persons of note, to examine into all the transactions of the company from its first establishment, and to lay the result of their inquiries, together with their opinion concerning the most effectual means of rendering the colony more prosperous,* before the privy council. At the same time, by a strain of authority still higher, he ordered all the records and papers of the company to be seized, and two of its principal officers to be arrested. V^iolent and arbitrary as these acts of authority may now appear, the com- missioners carried on their inquiry without any obstruction, but what arose from some feeble and ineffectual remonstrances of the company. The commissioners, though they conducted their scrutiny with much activity and vigour,! did not communicate any of their proceedings to the com- pany ; but their report, with respect to its operations, seems to have been very unfavourable, as the king, in consequence of it, signified to the com- pany [Oct. 8], his intention of^ vesting the supreme government of the company in a governor and twelve assistants, to be resident in England, ajni the executive power in a council of twelve, which should reside in Virginia, The governor and assistants were to be originally appointed by the king. Future vacancies were to be supplied by the governor and his assistants, but their nomination Avas not to take effect until it should be ratified by the privy council. The twelve counsellors in Virginia were to be chosen by the governor and assistants ; and this choice was likewise subjected to the review of the privy council. With an intention to quiet the minds of the colonists, it was declared that private property should be deemed sacred ; and for the more effectual security of it, all grants of lands from the foiiner company were to be confirmed by the new one. In order to facilitate the execution of this plan, the king required the com- pany instantly to surrender its charter into his hands.J But here James and his ministers encountered a spirit of which they seem not to have been aware. They found the members of the company unwilling tamely to relinquish rights of franchises, conveyed to them witii such legal formality, that upon f^iith in their validity they had expended considerable sums ;§ and still more averse to the abolition of a popular form of government, in which every proprietor had a voice, in order to ♦ Siith, p. 289. + Smith's Travels, p. 1^5, &C. 1 Stith, p 593, kc. ^ Chnlmer?, p. 61. AiMEKlCA. 417 subject a colony, in which they were deeply interested, to the dominion of a small junto absolutely dependent on the crown. Neither promises nor threats could induce them to depart iVom these sentiments ; and in a general court [Oct. 20], the king's proposal was almost unanimously rejected, and a resolution taken to defend to the utmost their chartered rights, if these should be called in question in any court of justice. James, highly ofifended at their presumption in daring to oppose his will, directed [Nov. 10] a writ of quo warranto to be issued against the company, that the validity of its charter might be tried in the Court of King s Bench ; and in order to aggravate the charge, by collecting additional proofs oi mal-administration, he appointed some persons in whom he could contide, lo repair to Virginia to inspect the state of the colony, and inquire into the conduct of the company, and of its officers there. The lawsuit in the King's Bench did not hang long^ in suspense. It terminated, as was usual in that reign, in a decision perfectly consonant to the wishes of the monarch. The charter was forfeited, the company was dissolved [June, 1624], and all the riglits and privileges conferred upon it returned to the King, from Avhom they dowed.* Some writers, particularly Stith, the most intelligent and best informed historian of Virginia, mention the dissolution of the company as a most disastrous event to the colony. Animated with liberal sentiments, imbibed in an age when the principles of liberty were more fully unfolded than under the reign of James, they viewed his violent and arbitrary proceed- ings on this occasion with such indignation that their abhorrence of the means which he employed to accomplish his designs, seems to have ren- dered them incapable of contemplating its effects with discernment and candour. There is not perhaps any mode of governing an infant colony less friendly to its liberty than the dominion of an exclusive corporation possessed of all the powers which James had conferred upon the company of adventurers in Virginia. During several years the colonists can hardly be considered in any other light than as servants to the company, nourished out of its stores, bound implicitly to obey its orders, and subjected to the most rigorous of all forms of government, that of martial law. Even after the native spirit of Englishmen began to rouse under oppression, and had extorted from their superiors the right of enacting laws for the government of that community of which they were members, as no act, though approved of by all the branches of the provincial legislature, was held to be of legal force until it was ratified by a general court in England, the company still retained the paramount authority in its own hands. Nor ■was the power of the company more favourable to the prosperity of the colony than to its freedom. A numerous body of merchants, as long as its operations are purely commercial, may carry them on Avith discernment and success. But the mercantile spirit seems ill adapted to conduct an enlarged and liberal plan of civil policy, and colonies have seldom grown up to maturity and vigour under its narrow nnd interested regulations. To the unavoidable effects in administration which this occasioned, were added errors arising from inexperience. The English merchants of that age had not those extensive views which a general commerce opens to such as have the direction of it. When they first began to venture out of the beaten track, they groped their way with timidity and hesitation. Unacquainted ■with the climate and soil of America, and ignorant of the productions best suited to them, they seem to have had no settled plan of improvement, and their schemes were continually vaiying. Their system of government was equally fluctuating. In the course of eighteen years ten different persons presided over the province as chief governors. No wonder thai, under such administration, all the efforts to give vigour and stability to the * Jivmer. vol- xvii. p. OIP. &!■. Chrilm'T^. o. r« VoT.,. I.— 'c.-^ 418 HISTORY OF [Book IX. colony should prove aljortive, or produce only slender effects. These eflforts, however, when estimattid according to the ideas of that age, either with respect to commerce or to policy, were very considerable, and con- ducted with astonishing perseverance. Above a hundred and fifty thousand pounds were expended in this first attempt to plant an English colony in America ;* and more than nine thousand persons were sent out from the mother country to people this new settlement. At the dissolution of the company, the nation, in return for this waste of treasure and of people, did not receive from Virginia an annual importation of commodities exceeding twenty thousand pounds in value ; and the colony was so far from having added strength to the state by an increase of population, that in the year one thousand six hundred and twenty-four, scarcely two thousand persons survived ;t a wretched remnant ot the numerous emigrants who had flocked thither with sanguine expectations of a very difl'erent fate. The company, like all unprosperous societies, fell unpitied. The violent hand with which prerogative had invaded its rights was forgotten, and new prospects of success opened, under a form of government exempt from all the defects to which past disasters were imputed. The King and the nation concurred with equal ardour in resolving to encourage the colony. Soon after the final judgment in the Court of King's Bench against the company, James appointed a council of twelve persons [Aug. 26], to take the temporary direction of affairs in Virginia that he might have leisure to frame with deliberate consideration proper regulations for the permanent government of the colony .| Pleased with such an opportunity of exercising his talents as a legislator, he began to turn his attention towards the subject ; but death prevented him from completing his plan. Charles 1., on his accession to the throne [March 27, 1625], adopted all his father's maxims with respect to the colony in Vii^inia. He declared it to be a part of the empire annexed to the crown, and immediately subordinate to its jurisdiction : he conferred the title of Governor on Sir George Yardely, and appointed him, in conjunction with a council of twelve, and a secretary', to exercise supreme authority there, and enjoined them to conform, in every point, to such instructions as from time to time they might receive from him.§ From the tenor of the king's connnission, as well as from the known spirit of his policy, it is apparent that he intended to invest every power of government, both legislative and executive, in the governor and council, without recourse to the representatives of the people, as possessing a right to enact laws for the community, or to impose taxes upon it. — Yardely and his council, who seem to have been fit instiu- ments for carrying this system of arbitraiy rule into execution, did not fail to put such a construction on the words of their commission as was most favourable to their own jurisdiction. During a great part of Charles's reign, Virginia knew no other law than the will of the Sovereign. Statutes were published and taxes imposed, without once calling the representatives of the people to authorize them by their sanction. At the same time that the colonists were bereaved of their political rights, which they deemed essential tofreemen and citizens, theirprivate property was violently invaded. A proclamation was issued, by which, under pretexts equally absurd and frivolous, they were prohibited from selling tobacco to any pei"son but certain commissioners appointed by the king to purchase it on his account ;H and they had the cruel mortification to behold the sovereign, who should have aflbrded them protection, engross all the profits of their industry, by seizing the only valuable coimnodity which they had to vend, and retain- ing the monopoly of it in liis o^vn hands. While the staple of the colony * Sinitli's Travels, p. 42. IfiT. t Clialiners" Antuils, p. 09. t Rymor, xvii r.l3, Sec. § Ibirl. xviii. ~-i. 311. I' Jliid. vviii. 1<.I. AMEBIC A. 419 in V irginia sunk in value under the oppression and restraints ot' a monopoly-, property in land was rendered insecure by various grants of it, which Charles inconsiderately bestowed upon his favourites. These were not only of such exorbitant extent as to be unfavourable to the progress of cultivation, but from inattention, or imperfect acquaintance with the geography of the country, their boundaries were so inaccurately defined, that larg-e tracts already occupied and planted were often included in them. The murmurs and complaints which such a system of administration excited, were augmented by the rigour with vvhich Sir John Harvey, who succeeded Yardcly in the government of the colony,* enforced everj'^ act of power [1627]. Rapacious, unfeeling, and haughty, he added insolence to oppression, and neither regarded the sentiments nor listened to the remonstrances of the people under his command. The colonists, far from the seat of government, and overawed by authority derived from a royal commission, submitted long to his tyranny and exactions. Their patience Avas at last exhausted ; and in a transport of popular rage and indignation, they seized their governor, and sent him a prisoner to England, accompa- nied by two of their number, whom they deputed to preler their accusa- tions against him to the king. But this attempt to redress their own wrongs, by a proceeding so summary and violent as is hardly consistent with any idea of regular government, and can be justified only in cases of such urgent necessity as rarely occur in civil society, was altogether repug- nant to eveiy notion which Charles entertained with respect to the obe- dience due by subjects to their sovereign. To him the conduct of the colonists appeared to be not only a usurpation of his right tojudge and to jiunish one of his own officers, by an open and audacious act of rebellion against his authority. Without deigning to admit their deputies into his presence, or to hear one article of their charge against Harvey, the king instantly sent him back to his former station, with an ample renewal of all the powers belonging to it. But though Charles deemed this vigorous step necessary in order to assert his own authority, and to testify his dis- pleasure with those who had presumed to offer such an insult to it, he seems to have been so sensible of the grievances under which the colonists groaned, and of the chief source from which they flowed, that soon after [1639] he not only removed a governor so justly odious to them, but named as a successor Sir William Berkeley, a person far superior to Harvey in rank and abilities, and still more distinguished, by possessing all the popu- lar virtues to which the other was a stranger.! Under his government the colony in Virginia remained, with some short intervals of interruption, almost forty years ; and to his mild and prudent administration its increase and prosperity are in a great measure to be ascribed. It was indebted, however, to the king himself for such a reform of its constitution and policy, as gave a different aspect to the colony, and animated all its operations with new spirit. Though the tenor of Sir Wil- liam Berkeley's commission was the same with that of his predecessor, he received instructions under the great seal, by which he was empowered to declare, that in all its concerns, civil as well as ecclesiastical, tlie colony was to be governed according to the laws of England : he was directed to issue writs for electing representatives of the people, who, in conjunction Avith the governor and council, were to form a general assembly, and to possess supreme legislative authority in the community : he was ordered to establish courts of justice, in which all questions, whether civil or crimi- nal, were to be decided agreeably to the forms of judicial procedure in the mother country. It is not easy to discover what were the motives which induced a monarch, tenacious in adhering to any opinion or system Avhidi * Fymer, xvUi. 98U< j Beverley's Hist, of Virg. p. 50. C'halnif-rs'd Annals, p. 118. ica. 420 HISTORY O F t^^ooK IX. he had once adopted, jealous to excess ol" his own rip^hts, and adverse on every occasion to any extension of the privileges claimed by his people, to relinquish his original plan of administration in the colony, and to grant such immunities to his subjects settled there. From the historians of Vir- ginia, no less superficial than ill informed, no light can be derived with respect to this point. It is most probable, the dread of the spirit then rising in Great Britain, extorted from Charles concessions so favourable to Virginia. After an intermission of almost twelve years, the state of his affairs compelled him to have recourse to the great council of the nation. There his subjects would find a jurisdiction independent of the crown, and able to control its authority. There they hoped for legal redress of all their grievances. As the colonists in Virginia had applied for relief to a former parliament, it might be expected with certainty that they would lay their case before the first meeting of an assembly in which they were secure of a favourable audience. Charles knew that, if the spirit of his administration in Virginia were to be tried by the maxims of the English constitution, it must be severely reprehended. He was aware that many measures of greater moment in his government would be brought under a strict review in parliament ; and, unwilling to give malecontents the advan- tage of adding a charge of oppression in the remote parts of his dominions to a catalogue of domestic grievances, he artfully endeavoured to take the merit of having granted voluntarily to his people in Virginia such privi- leges as he foresaw would be extorted from him. But though Charles established the internal government of Virginia on a model similar to that of the English constitution, and conferred on his subjects there all the rights of freemen and citizens, he was extremely solicitous to maintain its connexion with the parent state. With this view be instructed Sir William Berkeley strictly to prohibit any commerce of the colony with foreign nations ; and in order more certainly to secure exclusive possession of all the advantages arising from the sale of its pro- ductions, he was required to take a bond from the master of each vessel that sailed from Virginia, to land his cargo in some part of the King's dominions in Europe.* Even under this restraint, such is the kindly innu- ence of free government on society, the colony advanced so rapidly in industry and population that at the beginning of the civil war the English settled in it exceeded twenty thousand.! Gratitude towards a monarch from whose hands they had received immunities which they had long wished but hardly expected to enjoy, the influence and exampfe of a popular governor passionately devoteu to the interests of his master, concurred in preserving inviolatea loyalty among the colonists. Even after monarchy was abolished, after one King had been beheaded, and another driven into exile, the authority of the crown continued to be acknowledged and revered in Virginia [l650]. Irritated at this open defiance of its power, the parliament issued an ordinance, declaring, that as the settlement in Virginia had been made at the cost and by the people of England, it ought to be subordinate to and dependent upon the English commonwealth, and subject to such laws and regulations as are or shall be made in parliament ; that, instead of this dutiful submission, the colonists had disclaimed the authority of the state, and audaciously rebel- led against it ; that on this account they were denounced notorious traitors, and not only all vessels belonging to natives of England, but those of loreign nations, were prohibited to enter their ports, or carry on any com- merce with them. It was not the mode of that age to wage a war of words alone. The efforts of a high spirited government in asserting its own dignity were prompt and vigorous. A powerful squadron, with a considerable body ot ■" Chalmers's Annals. \i. 219. i.l-J. * Ibid. p. l"-'.";. AMERICA. 4n land forces, was despatched to reduce the Vii'ginians to obedience. After compelling the colonies in Barbadoes and the other islands to submit to the commonwealth, the squadron entered the Bay of Chesapeak [1651]. Berkeley, with more courage than prudence, took arms to oppose this formidable armament ; but he could not long maintain such an unequal contest. His gallant resistance, however, procured favourable terms to the people under his government. A general indemnity for all past offences was granted ; they acknowledged the authority of the commonwealth, and were admitted to a participation of all the rights enjoyed by citizens.* Berkeley, lirm to his principles of loyalty, disdained to make any stipula- tion for himself ; and, choosing to pass his days far removed from the seat of a government which he detested, continued to reside in Virginia as a private man, beloved and respected by all over whom he had formerly presided. Not satisfied with taking measures to subject the colonies, the common- wealth turned its attention toAvards the most effectual mode of retaining them in dependence on the parent state, and of securing to it the benefit of their increasing commerce. With this view the parliament framed two laws, one of which expressly prohibited all mercantile intercourse between the colonies and foreign states, and the other ordained that no production of Asia, Africa, or America, should be imported into the dominions of the commonwealth but in vessels belonging to English owners, or to the people of the colonies settled there, and navigated by an English commander,! and by crews of which the greater part must be Englishmen. But while the wisdom of the commonwealth prescribed the channel in which the trade of the colonies was to be carried on, it was solicitous to encourage the cultivation of the staple commodity of Virginia, by an act of parlia- ment [1652], which gave legal force to all the injunctions of James and Charles against planting tobacco in England.^ Under governors appointed by the commonwealth, or by Cromwell when he usurped the supreme power, Virginia remained almost nine years in perfect tranquillity. During that period, many adherents to the royal party, and among these some gentlemen of good families, in order to avoid danger and oppression, to which they were exposed in England, or in hopes of repairing their ruined fortunes, resorted thither. Warmly attached to the cause for which they had fought and suffered, and animated with all the passions natural to men recently engaged in a fierce and long pro- tracted civil war, they, by their intercourse with the colonists, confirmed them in principles of loyalty, and added to their impatience and indignation under the restraints imposed on their commerce by their new masters. On the death of Matthews, the last governor named by Cromwell, the sentiments and inclination of the people, no longer under the control of authority, burst out with violence. They forced Sir William Berkeley to quit his retirement ; they unanimously elected him governor of the colony : and as he refused to act under a usurped authority, they boldly erected the royal standard, and acknowledging Charles II. to be their lawful sove- reign, proclaimed him with all his titles ; and the Virginians long boasted, that as they were the last of the king's subjects who renounced their alle- giance, they were the first who returned to their duty.§ Happily for the people of Virginia, a revolution in England, no less sudden than unexpected, seated Charles on the throne of his ancestors, and saved them from the severe chastisement to which their premature de- claration in his favour must have exposed them. On receiving the first account of this event, the joy and exultation of the colony were universal and unbounded. These, however, were not of long continuance. Gracious * Thurlow'8 State Papers, i. 197. Chalmers' Annals, p. 122. Beverley's Hist. p. 53. f Sco- •"■I's Aoli«. p. 135. »67. ! Ih. p. 117. vS Bfverley. p. 55. Clialmere. p. 124. 422 ^ HISTORY OF [UookIX. but unproductive prol'essions of esteem and good will were the only return made Ly Charles to loyalty and services which in their own estimation were so distinguished that no recompense was beyond what they might claim. If the king's neglect and ingratitude disappointed all the sanguine hopes which their vanity had founded on the merit of their past conduct, the spirit which influenced parliament in its commercial deliberations opened a prospect, that alarmed them with respect to their future situation. In framing regulations for the encouragement of trade, which, during the convulsions of civil war, and amidst continual fluctuations in government, had met with such obstruction that it declined in every quarter ; the House of Commons, instead of granting the colonies that relief which they ex- pected from the restraints in their commerce imposed by the common- wealth and Croinwell, not only adopted all their ideas concerning this branch of legislation, but extended them further. This produced the act of navigation, the most important and memorable of any in the statute-book with respect to the history of English commerce. By it, besides several momentous articles foreign to the sulyect of this work, it was enacted, that no commodities should be imported into any settlement in Asia, Atrica, or America, or exported from them, but in vessels of English or plantation built, whereof the master and three-fourths of the mariners shall be English subjects, under pain of forfeiting ship and goods ; that none but natural born subjects, or such as have been naturalized, shall exercise the occupa- tion of merchant or factor in any English settlement, under pain of for- feiting their goods and chattels ; that no sugar, tobacco, cotton, wool, indigo, ginger, or woods used in dyeing, of the growth or manufacture of th colonies, shall be shipped from them to any other country but England ; and in order to secure the performance of this, a sufficient bond, with one surety, shall be given before sailing by the owners, for a specific sum pro- portional to the rate of the \essel employed by them.* The productions subjected to this restriction are distinguished, in the language of commerce ana finance, by the name of enumerated coiamodities ; and as industry in its progress furnished new articles of value, these have been successively added to the roll, and subjected to the same restraint. Soon after [1663], the act of navigation was extended, and additional restraints were imposed, by a new law, which prohibited the importation of any European com- modity into the colonies, but what was laden in England in vessels navi- gated and manned as the act of navigation required. More effectual pro- vision was made by this law for exacting the penalties to which the transgressors of the act of navigation were subjected ; and the principles of policy, on which the various regulations contained in both statutes are founded, were openly avowed in a declaration, that as the plantations beyond seas are inhabited and peopled by subjects of England, they may be kept in a firmer dependence upon it, and rendered yet more beneficial and advantageous unto it, in the further employment and increase of Eng- lish shipping and seamen, as well as in the vent of English woollen and other manufactures and commodities ; and in making England a staple, not pnly of the commodities of those plantations, but also of the commodities of other countries and places, for the supplying of them ; and it being the usage of other nations to keep the trade of their plantations to themselvcs.t In prosecution of those favourite maxims, the English legislature pro- ceeded a step further. As the act of navigation had left the people of the colonies at liberty to export the enumerated commodities from one planta- tion to another without paying any duty [1672], it subjected them to a tax equivalent to what was paid by the consumers of these commodities in England.! By these successive regulations, the plan of securing to England a mo» f Car. II. c. 1?. t 15 Car. IF. c. 7. J ?5 C.ir. II. c. 7 AMERICA. 423 nopoly of the commerce with its colonies, and of shutting up every other channel into which it mijjht be diverted, was perfected, and reduced into complete system. On one side of the Atlantic these regulations have been extolled as an extraordinary effort of political sagacity, and have been considered as the great charter of national commerce, to which the parent state is indebted for all its opulence and power. On the other, they have been execrated as a code of oppression, more suited to the illiberality of mercantile ideas than to extensive views of legislative wisdom. Which of these opinions is best founded, I shall examine at large in another part of this work. But in writing the history of the English settlements in America, it was necessary to trace the progress of those restraining laws with accuracy, as in every subsequent transaction we may observe a per- petual exertion, on the part of the mother country, to enforce and extend them ; and on the part of the colonies, endeavours no less unremitting to elude or to obstruct their operation. Hardly was the act of navigation known in Viiginia, and its effects begun to be felt, when the colony remonstrated against it as a grievance, and petitioned earnestly for relief. But the commercial ideas of Charles and his ministers coincided so perfectly with those of parliament, that, instead of listening with a favourable ear to their applications, they laboured assiduously to carry the act into strict execution. For this purpose, in- structions were issued to the governor, forts were built on the banks of the principal rivers, and small vessels appointed to cruise on the coast. The Virginians, seeing no prospect of obtaining exemption from the act, set themselves to evade it ; and found means, notwithstanding the vigilance with which they were watched, of carrying on a considerable clandestine trade with foreigners, particularly with the Dutch settled on Hudson's River. Emboldened by observing disaffection spread through the colony, some veteran soldiers who had served under Cromwell, and had been banished to Virginia, formed a design of rendering themselves masters of the country, and of asserting its independence on England. This rash project was discovered by one of their associates, and disconcerted by the vigorous exertions of Sir William Berkeley. But the spirit of dis- content, though repressed, was not extinguished. Every day something occurred to revive and to nourish it. As it is with extreme difficulty that commerce can be turned into a new channel, tobacco, the staple of the colony, sunk prodigiously in value when they were compelled to send it all to one market. It was some time before England could furnish them re- gularly full assortments of those necessary articles, without which the industry of the colony could not be carried on, or its prosperity secured. Encouraged by the symptoms of general languor and despondency which this declining state of the colony occasioned, the Indians seated towards the heads of the rivers ventured first to attack the remote settlements, and then to make incursions into the interior parts of the country. Unexpected as these hostilities were, from a people who during a long period had lived in friendship with the English, a measure taken by the king seems to have excit«jd still greater terror among the most opulent people of the colony. Charles had imprudently imitated the example of his father, by granting such large tracts of lands in Virginia to several of his courtiers, as tended to unsettle the distribution of property in the country, and to rerider the title of the most ancient planters to their estates precarious and questionable. From those various causes, which in a greater or less degree aflfected every individual in the colony, the indignation of the people became general, and was worked up to such a pitch, that nothing was wanting to precipitate them into the most desperate acts but some leader qualified to unite and to direct their operations.* • riialmers'p Annaln, r)i. 10. H. 14. pa?Bim, Bevcrloy's Hist, of Virg. p. 58, tc. 424 HISTORY O I' [Book IX. Such a leader they found in Nathaniel Bacon, a colonel of militia, who, though he had been settled in Virginia only three yeais, had acquired, by popular manners, an insinuating address, and the consideration derived iVom having been regularly trained in England to the profession of law, such general esteem that he had been admitted into the council, and was regarded as one of the most respectable persons in the colony. Bacon was ambitious, eloquent, daring, and, prompted either by h >nest zeal to redress the public wrongs, or allured by hopes of raising himself to dis- tinction and power, he mingled with the malecontents ; and by his bold harangues and confident promises of removing all their grievances, he inflamed them almost to madness. As the devastations committed by the Indians was the calamity most sensibly felt by the people, he accused the governor of having neglected the proper measures for repelling the inva- sions of the savages, and exhorted them to take arms in their own defence, and to exterminate that odious race. Great numbers assembled, and chose Bacon to be their general. He applied to the governor for a con uiission, confirming this election of the people, and offering to march instantly against the common enemy. Berkeley, accustomed by long possession of supreme command to high ideas of the respect due to his station, considered this tumultuary armament as an open insult to his authority, and suspected ll at, under specious appearances. Bacon concealed most dangerous designs. Unwilling, however, to give farther provocation to an incensed multitude by a direct refusal of what they demanded, he thought it prudent to nego- tiate in order to gain time ; and it was not until he found all endeavours to soothe them inefifectual, that he issued a proclamation, requiring them in the king's name, under the pain of being denounced rebels, vo disperse. But Bacon, sensible that he had now advanced so far as rendered it impossible to recede with honour or safety, instantly took the only resolu- tion that remained in his situation. At the head of a chosen body of his followers, he marched rapidly to James Town, and surrounding the house where the governor and council were assembled, demanded the commission for which he had formerly applied. Berkeley, with the proud indignant ??pirit of a cavalier, disdaining the requisitions of a rebel, peremptorily refused to comply, and calmly presented his naked breast to the weapons which were pointed against it. The council, however, foreseeing the fatal consequences of driving an enraged multitude, in whose power they were, to the last extremities of violence, prepared a commission constituting Bacon general of all the forces in Virginia, and by their entreaties prevailed on the governor to sign it. Bacon with his troops retired in triumph. Hardly was the council delivered by his departure from the dread of present danger, when, by a transition not unusual in feeble minds, pre- .'•umptuous boldness succeeded to excessive fear. The commission granted to Bacon was declared to be null, having been extorted by force ; he was proclaimed a rebel, his followers were required to abandon his standard, and the militia ordered to arm, and to join the governor. Enraged at conduct which he branded with the name of base and treache^ rous. Bacon, instead of continuing his march towards the Indian country, instantly wheeled about, and advanced with all his forces to James Town. The governor, unable to resist such a numerous body, made his escape, and fled across the bay to Acomack on the eastern shore. Some of the counsellors accompanied him thither, others retired to their own plantations. Upon the flight of^Sir William Berkeley, and dispersion of the council, the iranie of civil government in the colony seemed to be dissolved, and Bacon became possessed of supreme and uncontrolled power. But as he was sensible that his countiymen would not long submit with patience to authority acquired and held merely by force of arms, he endeavoured to found it on a more constitutional basis, by obtaining the sanction of the people's approbation. With this view he called t^ether the most con- AMERICA. 426 sideiable gentlemen in the colony, and having prevailed on them to bind themselves by oath to maintain his authority, and to resist every enemy that should oppose it, he from that time considered his jurisdiction as legally established. Berkeley, meanwhile, having collected some forces, made inroads into different parts of the colony where Bacon's authority was recognised. Several sharp conflicts happened with various success. James Town was reduced to ashes, and the best cultivated districts in the province were laid waste, sometimes by one party and sometimes by the other. But it was not by his own exertions that the governor hoped to terminate the contest. He had early transmitted an account of the transactions in Virginia to the king, and demanded such a body of soldiers as would enable him to quell the insurgents whom he represented as so exasperated by the restraint imposed on their trade, that they were impatient to sbakeoffall dependence on the parent state. Charles, alarmed at a commotion no less dangerous than unexpected, and solicitous to maintain his authority over a colony the value of which was daily increasing and more tully understood, speedily despatched a small squadron with such a number of regular troops as Berkeley had required. Bacon and his followers received information of this armament, but were not intimidated at its approach. They boldly determined to oppose it with open force, and declared it to be consistent with their duty and allegiance, to treat all who should aid Sir William Berkeley as enemies, until they should have an opportunity of laying their grievances before their sovereign.* But while both parties prepared, with equal animosity, to involve their country in the horrors of civil war [1677 j, an event happened, which quieted the commotion almost as suddenly as it had been excited. Bacon, when ready to take the field, sickened and died. None of his followers pos- sessed such talents, or were so much objects of the people's confidence, as entitled them to aspire to the supreme command. Destitute of a leader to conduct and animate them, their sanguine hopes of success subsided ; mutual distrust accompanied this universal despondency ; all began to wish for an accommodation ; and after a short negotiation with Sir William Berkeley, they laid down their arms, and submitted to his government, on obtaining a promise of general pardon. Thus terminated an insurrection, which, in the annals of Virginia, is dis- tinguished by the name of Bacon's rebellion. During seven months this daring leader was master of the colony, while the royal governor was shut up in a remote and ill-peopled corner of it. What were the real motives that prompted him to take arms, and to what length he intended to carry his plans of reformation, either in commerce or government, it is not easy to discover, in the scanty materials from which we derive our information Avith respect to this transaction. It is probahle, that his conduct, like that of other adventurers in faction, would have been regulated chiefly by events ; and accordingly as these proved favourable or adverse, his views and requisitions would have been extended or circumscribed. Sir William Berkeley, as soon as he was reinstated in his office, called together the representatives of the people, that by their advice and autho- rity public tranquillity and order might be perfectly established. Though this assembly met a few weeks after the death of Bacon, while the memory of reciprocal injuries was still recent, and when the passions excited by such a fierce contest had but little time to subside, its proceedings were conducted with a moderation seldom exercised by the successful party in a civil war. No man suffered capitally ; a small number were subjected to fines; others were declared incapable of holding any office of trust; and with those exceptions the promise of general idemnity was confirmed ♦ Br'vorl''v's Tlist. p. 7!), 7R. Vol. 1.-54 426 HISTORY OV [BookX. by law. Soon after Berkeley was recalled, and Colonel Jeffreys was appointed his successor. From thai period to the Revolution in 1688, there is scarcely any memo- rable occurrence in the history of Virginia. A peace was concluded with the Indians. Under several successive governors, administration was carried on in the colony with the same arbitrary spirit that distinguished the latter years of Charles II. and the precipitate councils of James II. The Virgin- ians, with a constitution which in form resembled that of England, enjoyed hardly any portion of the liberty which that admirable system of policy is framed to secure. They were deprived even of the last consolation of the oppressed, the power of complaining, by a law which, under severe penalties, prohibited them from speaking disrespectfully of the governor, or defaming, either by words or writing, the administration of the colony.* Still, however, the laws restraining their commerce were felt as an intole- rable grievance, and they nourished in secret a spirit of discontent, which, from tne necessity of concealing it, acquired a greater degree of acrimony. But notwithstanding those unfavourable circumstances, the colony continued to increase. The use of tobacco was now become general in Europe ; and though it had fallen considerably in price, the extent of demand com- pensated that diaiinution, and by giving constant employment to the industry of the planters diffused wealth among them. At the Revolution the number of inhabitants in the colony exceeded sixty thousand,! and in the course of twenty-eight years its population had been more than doubled.^ BOOK X. When James I., in the year one thousand six hundred and six, made that magnificent partition, which has been mentioned, of a vast region in North America, extending from the thirty-tburth to the forty-fifth degree of latitude, between two trading companies of his subjects, he established the residence of the one in London, and of the other in Plymouth. The former was authorized to settle in the southern, and the latter in the northern part of this territory, then distinguished by the general name of Virginia. This arrangement seems to have heen formed upon the idea of some speculative refiner, who aimed at diffusing the spirit of industry, by fixing the seat of one branch of the trade that was now to be opened, on the east coast of the island, and the other on the west. But London pos- sesses such advantages of situation, that the commercial wealth and activity of England have always centered in the capital. At the beginning of the last century, the superiority of the metropolis in both these respects was so great, that though the powers and privileges conferred by the king on the two trading companies were precisely the same, the adventurers settled in Plymouth tell far short of those in London in the vigour and success of their cTOrts towards accomplishing the purpose of their institution. Though the operations of the Plymouth company were animated by the public-spirited zeal of Sir John Popham, chief justice of England, Sir Ferdinando Gorges, and some other gentlemen of the west, all its exertions were feeble and unfortunate. The first vessel fitted out by the company was taken by the Spaniards [lf.06]. In the year one thousand six hundred and seven, a feeble settle- iripnt was made at Sagahadoc ; but, on account of the rigour of the climate, ♦ Bevcrtoy. p. 81. Phalnirrs. p. 3t1. i Chalmors's Annals, p. 35G. t Ibid. p. 1'25. AMERICA. 427 was soon relinquished, and for some time nothina^ further was attempted than a few tishing voyages to Cape Cod, or a pitiful traffic with the natives for skins md oil. One of the vessels equipped for this purpose [1614] was commanded by Captain Smith, whose name has been so often mentioned with distinction in the History of Virginia. The adventure was prosperous and lucrative. But his ardent enterprising mind could not confine its attention to objects so unequal to it as the petty details of a trading voyage. He employed a part of his time in exploring the coast, and in dehneating its bays and harbours. On his return, he laid a map of it before Prince Charles, atid, with the usual exaggeration of discoverers, painted the beauty and excellence of the country in such glowing colours, that the young prince, in the warmth of admiration, declared, that it should be called New England ;* a name which effaced that of Virginia, and by which it is still distinguished. The favourable accounts of the country hy Smith, as well as the success of his voyage, seem to have encouraged private adventurers to prosecute the trade on the coast of New England \vith greater briskness ; but did not inspire the languishing company of Plymouth with such vigour as to make any new attemj)t towards establishing a permanent colony there. Something more than the prospect of distant gain to themselves, or of future advantages to their country, was requisite in order to induce men to abandon the place of their nativity, to migrate to another quartef of the globe, and endure innumerable hardships under an untried climate, and in an uncultivated land, covered with woods, or occupied by fierce and hostile . tribes of savages. But what mere attention to private emolu- ment or to national utility could not effect, was accomplished by the operation of a higher principle. Religion had gradually excited among a great body of the people a spirit that fitted them remarkably for encoun- tering the dangers, and surmounting the obstacles, which had hitherto rendered abortive the schemes of colonization in that part of America allotted to the company of Plymouth. As the various settlements in New England are indebted for their origin to this spirit, as in the course of our narrative we shall discern its influence mingling in all their transactions, and giving a peculiar tincture to the character of the people, as well as to their institutions both civil and ecclesiastical, it becomes necessary to trace its rise and progress with attention and accuracy. When the superstitions and corruptions of the Romish church prompted different nations of Europe to throw off its yoke, and to withdraw from its communion, the mode as well as degree of their separation was various. Wherever reformation was sudden, and carried on by the people without authority from their rulers, or in opposition to it, the rupture was violent and total. Every part of the ancient fabric was overturned, and a different system, not only with respect to doctrine, but to church government, and the external rites of worship, was established. Calvin, who, by his abili- ties, learning, and austerity of manners, had acquired high reputation and authority in the Protestant churches, was a zealous advocate for this plan of thorough reformation. He exhibited a model of that pure form of eccle- siastical policy which he approved in the constitution of the church of Geneva. The simplicity of its institutions, and still more their repugnancy to those of the Popish church, were so much admired by all the stricter refonners, that it was copied, with some small variations, in Scotland, in the republic of the United Provinces, in the dominions of the House of Brandenburgh, in those of the Elector Palatine, and in the churches of the Hugonots in France. But in those countries where the steps of departure from the church of Rome were taken with greater deliberation, and regulated by the wisdom • Pmith's Trav. book vi. p. 203, *c. Piirchas, iv. p. 1837. , 428 HISTORY OF [Book X. or policy of the supreme magistrate, the separation was not so wide. Of all the reformed churches, that of England has deviated least from the ancient institutions. The violent but capricious spirit of Henry VIII., who, though he disclaimed the supremacy, revered the tenets of the Papal see, checked innovations in doctrine or worship during his reign. When his son ascended the throne, and the Protestant religion was established by law, the cautious prudence of Archbishop Cranmer moderated the zeal of those who had espoused the new opinions. Though the articles to be recognised as the system of national faith were framed conformably to the doctrines of Calvin, his notions with respect to church government and the mode of worship were not adopted. As the hierarchy in England was incorporated with the civil policy of the kingdom, and constituted a member of the legislature, archbishops, and bishops, with all the subor- dinate ranks of ecclesiastics subject to them, were continued according to ancient form, and with the same dignity and jurisdiction. The peculiar vestments in which the clergy performed their sacred functions, bowing at the name of Jesus, kneeling at receiving the Sacrament of the Lord's Supper, the sign of the Cross in baptism, the use of the Ring in marriage, with several other rights to which long usage had accustomed the people, and which time had rendered venerable, were still retained. But though Parliament enjoined the observance of these ceremonies under very severe penalties,* several of the more zealous clergy entertained scruples with respect to the lawfulness of complying with this injunction : and the vigi- lance and authority of Cranmer and Ridley, with difficulty saved their infant church from the disgrace of a schism on this account. On the accession of Mary, the lurious zeal with which she persecuted all who had adopted the tenets of the relbrmers forced many eminent protestants, laymen as well as ecclesiastics, to seek an asylum on the continent. Francfort, Geneva, Basil, and Strasburgh received them with affiectionate hospitality as sufferers in the cause of truth, and the magistrates permitted them to assemble by themselves for religious worship. The exiles who took up their residence in the two former cities, modelled their little congregations according to the ideas of Calvin, and with a spirit natural to men in their situation, eagerly adopted institutions which appeared to be further removed from the superstitions of Popery than those of their own church. They returned to England as soon as Elizabeth re-established the protestant religion, not only with more violent antipathy to the opinions and practice* ot' that church by which they had been oppressed, but with a strong attachment to that mode of worship to which they had been for some years accustomed. As they were received by their countrymen with the veneration due to confessors, they exerted all the influence derived from that opinion in order to obtain such a reformation in the English ritual as might bring it nearer to the standard of purity in foreign churches. Some of the Qjueen's most confidential ministers were warmly disposed to co-operate with them in this measure. But Elizabeth paid little regard to the inclinations of the one or the sentiments of the other. Fond ol pomp and ceremony, accustomed, according to the mode of that age, to study religious controversy, and possessing, like her father, such confidence in her own understanding, that she never doubted her capacity to judge and decide with respect to every point in dispute between contending sects,t ♦ 2 and 3 Edw. VI. c. 1. t Of the high idea which Elizabeth entertained with respect to her own superior skill in theology, as well as the haughty tone in which she dictated to her subiects what they ought to believe, we have a striking picture in her speech at tile close of the parliament, A. D. 1585. — " One thing I may not overskip — Religion, the ground on which all other matters ought to take root ; and, being cor- rupted, may mar all the tree. And that there be some fault-finders with the order of the clerg}-, which so may make a slander to myself, and to the church, whose overruler God hatlr made me, whose negligence cannot be excused, if any schisms or errors heretical were suffered. Thus nmcU I must say, that some faults and negligences must grow and be, as in all other great charg(;s it hap- p'-ncth ; and what vocation without f All which, if you, my lords of the clercj*. do not nniend, AMERICA. 429 she chose to act according to her own ideas, which led her ratiier to approach nearer to the church of Rome, in the parade of external worship, than to widen the breach by abolishing any rite already established.* An act of parliament, in the first year of her reign, not only required an exact con- formity to the mode of worship prescribed in the service book, under most rigorous penalties, but empowered the Queen to enjoin the observance of such additional ceremonies as might tend, in her opinion, to render the public exercises of devotion more decent and edifying. t The advocates for a further reformation, notwithstanding this cruel disappointment of the sanguine hopes with which they returned to their native country, did not relinquish their design. They disseminated their opinions with great industry among the people. They extolled the purity of foreign churches, and inveighed against the superstitious practices witn which religion was defiled in their o^vn church. In vain did the defenders of the established system represent that these forms and ceremonies were in themselves things perfectly indiflerent, which, from long usage, were viewed with reverence ; and by their impression upon the senses and imagination, tended not only to fix the attention, but to affect the heart, and to warm it with devout and worthy sentiments. The Puritans (for by that name such as scrupled to comply with what was enjoined by the Act of Uniformity were distinguished) maintained that the rites in question were inventions of men, superadded to the simple and reasonable services required in the word of God ; that from the excessive solicitude with which conformity to them was exacted, the multitude must conceive such a high opinion of their value and importance as might induce them to rest satisfied with the mere form and shadow of religion, and to imagine that external observances may compensate for the want of inward sanctity ; that ceremonies which had been long employed by a society manifestly corrupt, to veil its own defects, and to seduce and fascinate mankind, ought now to be rejected as relics of superstition unworthy of a place in a church which gloried in the name of Reformed. The people, to whom in every religious controversy the final appeal is made, listened to the arguments of the contending parties ; and it is obvious to which of them, men who had lately beheld the superstitious spirit of popery, and felt its persecuting ra^e, would lend the most favour- able ear. The desire of a further separation from the church of Rome spread wide through the nation. The preachers who contended for this, and who refused to wear the surplice, and other vestments peculiar to their order, or to observe the ceremonies enjoined by law, were followed and admired, while the ministry of the zealous advocates for conformity was deserted, and their persons often exposed to insult. For some time the nonconformists were connived at ; but as their number and boldness increased, the interposition both of spiritual and civil authority was deemed necessary in order to check their progress. To the disgrace of Christians, the sacred rights of conscience and private judgment, as well as the charity and mutual forbearance suitable to the mild spirit of the religion which they professed, were in that age little understood. Not only the idea of toleration, but even the word itself in the sense now affixed to it, was then unknown. Every church claimed a right to em])loy the hand of power for the protection of truth and the extirpation of error. The laws of her I mean to depose you. Look yc, therefore, well to your charpea. Thia may he amcndnl without needless or open exclamations. I am supposo4 to have many studios, but most philosophical. I must yield this to be true, that I suppose few (that bo not professors) have read more. And I need not tell you, that I .ira not so simple that 1 understand not, nor so forftetful that I remember not ; and yet amidst my many volumes, I hope God's book hath not been my seldomest lectures, in which we find that by wliicli reaaon ;ill ought to believe. I see many over-bold with God .\lmighiy, makini; tiK) many subtle scaniiinfis of his blessed will. The pres"uipiion is so (^ca* that I miv not suffer it," &,€. D'Ewes's Journal, p. 328. * Neal'B Hist, of the I'uril.liis, i. 138. 176 • 1 Eliz. r.2. 430 HISTORY OF tliooK X, kingdom armed Elizabeth with ample authority for this purpose, and she was abundantly disposed to exercise it with full vigour. Many of the most eminent among the puritan clergy were deprived of their benefices, others were imprisoned, several were fined, and some put to death. But persecution, as usually happens, instead of extinguishing, inflamed their zeal to such a height, that the jurisdiction of the ordinary courts of law was deemed insuiiicient to suppress it, and a new tribunal was established under the title of the HigJi Comndssion for Ecclesiastical Affairs, whose powers and mode of procedure were hardly less odious or less hostile to the principles of justice than those of the Spanish Inquisition. Several attempts were made in the House of Commons to check these arbitrary proceedings, and to moderate the rage of persecution ; but the Queen always imposed silence upon those who presumed to deliver any opinion with respect to a matter appertaining solely to her preiogative, in a tone as imperious and arrogant as was ever used by Henry V^lll. in addressing his parliaments ; and so tamely obsequious were the guardians of the people's rights that they not only obeyed those unconstitutional commands, but con- sented to an act, by which every person who should absent himself from church during a month was subjected to punishment by fine and imprison- ment ; and it after conviction he did not within three months renounce his erroneous opinions and conform to the laws, he was then obliged to abjure the realm ; but if he either refused to comply with this condition, or returned from banishment, he should be put to death as a felon without benefit of clergy.* By this iniquitous statute, equally repugnant to ideas of civil and of reli- gious liberty, the puritans were cut off from any hope of obtaining either reformation in the church or indulgence to themselves. Exasperated by this rigorous treatment, their antipathy to the established religion increased, and with the progress natural to violent passions, carried them far beyond what was their original aim. The first puritans did not entertain any scru- ples with respect to the lawfulness of episcopal government, and seem to nave been very unwilling to withdraw from communion with the church of which they were members. But when they were thrown out of her bosom, and constrained to hold separate assemblies for the worship of God, their followers no longer viewed a society by which tbey were oppressed, with reverence or aifection. Her government, her discipline, her ritual, were examined with minute attention. Eveiy error was pointed out, and every defect magnified. The more boldly any preacher inveighed against the corruptions of the church, he was listened to with greater ap- probation ; and the further he urged his disciples to depart from such an impure community, the more eagerly did they follow him. By degrees, ideas of ecclesiastical policy, altogether repugnant to those of the estab- lished churclv gained footing in the nation. The more sober and learned puritans inclined to that form which is known by the name of Presbyterian. Such as were more thoroughly possessed with the spirit of innovation, however much the}' might approve the equality of pastors which that sys- tem establishes, reprobated the authority which it vests in various judica- tories, descending from one to another in regular subordination, as incon- sistent with Christian liberty. These wild notions floated for some time in the minds of the people, and amused them with many ideal schemes of ecclesiastial policy. At length Robert Brown [1580], a popular declaimer in high estimation, reduced them to a system, on which he modelled his own congregation. He taught that the church of England was corrupt and antichristian, its ministers not lawfully ordained, its ordinances and sacraments invalid ; and therefore he prohibited liis people to hold communion with it in any religious func- * x>r.y\7.. c. !, AMtlRICA. 431 tion. He maintained, that a society of Christians, uniting together to wor- ship God, constituted a church possessed of complete jurisdiction in the conduct of its own affairs, independent of any other society, and unaccount- able to any superior ; that the priesthood was neither a distinct order in the church, nor conferred an indelible character ; but that every man quali- fied to teach might be set apart for that office by the election of the breth- ren, and by imposition of their hands ; in like manner, by their authority, he might be discharged from that function, and reduced to the rank of a private Christian ; that every person when admitted a member of a church, ought to make a public confession of his faith, and give evidence of his bemg in a state of favour with God ; and that all the aflfairs of a church were to be regulated by the decision of the majority of its members. This democratical form of government, which abolished all distinction of ranks in the church, and conferred an equal portion of power on every individual, accorded so perfectly with the levelling genius of fanaticism, that it was fondly adopted by many as a complete model of Christian policy. From their founder they were denominated Brownists ; and as their tenets were more hostile to the established religion than those of other separatists, the fiercest storm of persecution fell upon their heads. Many of them were lined or imprisoned, and some put to death ; and though Brown, with a levity of which there are few examples among enthusiasts whose vanity hns been soothed by being recognised as heads of a party, abandoned his disciples, conformed to the established religion, and accepted of a benefice in the church, the sect not only subsisted, but continued to spread, especially among persons in the middle and lower ranks of life. But as all their motions were carefully watched, both by the ecclesiastical and civil courts, which, as often as they were detected, punished them with the utmost rigour, a body of them, weary of living in a state of con- tinual danger and alarm, Qed to Holland, and settled in Leyden, under the care of Mr. John Robinson their pastor. There they resided for several years unmolested and obscure. But many of their aged members dying, and some of the younger marrying into Dutch families, while their church received no increase, either by recruits from England or by proselytes gained in the country, they began to be afraid that all their high attain- ments in spiritual knowledge would be lost, and that perfect fabric of policy which they had erected would be dissolved, and consigned to obli- vion, if they remained longer in a strange land. Deeply affected with the prospect of an event which to them appeared fatal to the interests of truth, they thought themsehes called, in order to prevent it, to remove to some other place, where they might profess and propagate their opinions with greater success. America, in which their countrymen were at that time intent on planting colonies, presented itself to their thoughts. They flattered themselves with hopes of being per- mitted, in that remote region, to follow their own ideas in religion without disturbance. The dangers and hardships to which all former emigrants to America had been exposed did not deter them. " They were well weaned (according to their own description,) from the delicate milk of their mother country, and inured to the ditliculties of a strange land. They were knit together in a strict and sacred band, by virtue of which they held them- selves obliged to take care of the good of each other, and of the whole. It was not with them, as with other men, whom small things could discou- rage, or small discontents cause to wish themselves at home again."* The first object of their solicitude was to secure the free exercise of their reli- gion. For this purpose they applied to the king ; and, though James refused to give them any explicit assurance of toleration, they seem to have obtained from him some promise of his connivance, as long as they con- * Iliitcbiiison's His*, of Mawnrh. p. 4. 432 11 IS TORY OF Look X. tinued to demean themselves quietly. So eager were they to accomplish their favourite scheme, that, relying on this precarious security, they began to negotiate with the V^ii^inian company for a tract of land Aviihin the limits of their patent. This they easily procured from a society desirous of encouraging migration to a vast country, of which they had hitherto occupied only a few spots. After the utmost efforts, their preparations fell far short of what was requisite for beginning the settlement of a new colony. A hundred and twenty persons sailed from England [Sept. 6, 1620], in a single ship on this arduous undertaking. The place of their destination was Hudson's River, where they intended to settle ; but their captain having been bribed, as is said, by the Dutch, who had then formed a scheme, which they afterwards accomplished, of planting a colony there, carried them so far towards the north, that the first land in America which they made [Nov. 11], was Cape Cod. They were now not only beyond the pre- cincts of the territory which had been granted to them, but beyond those of the company from which they derived their right. The season, how- ever, was so far advanced, and sickness raged so violently among men unaccustomed to the hardships of a long voyage, that it became necessary to take up their abode there. After exploring the coast, they chose for their situation a place now belonging to the province of Massachusetts Bay, to which thty gave the name of New Plymouth, probably out of respect to that company within whose jurisdiction they now found themselves situated.* No season could be more unfavourable to settlement than that in which the colony landed. The winter, which, from the predominance of cold in America, is rigorous to a degree unknown in parallel latitudes of our hemisphere, was already set in ; and they %vere slenderly provided with what was requisite for comfortable subsistence, under a climate consider- ably more severe than that for which they had made preparation. Above one half of them was cut off before the return of spring, by diseases, or by famine : the survivors, instead of havinoj leisure to attend to the supply of their own wants, were compelled to take arms against the savages in tneir neighbourhood. Happily for the English, a pestilence which raged in America the year betore they landed, had swept off so great a number of the natives that they were quickly repulsed and humbled. The privi- lege of professing their own opinions, and of bein^ governed by laws of their own framing, afforded consolation to the colonists amidst all their dangers and hardships. The constitution of their church was the same with that vvhich they had established in Holland. Their system of civil government was founded on those ideas of the natural equality among men, to which their ecclesiastical policy had accustomed them. Every free man, who was a member of the church, was admitted into the supreme legislative body. The laws of England were adopted as the basis of their jurisprudence, though with some diversity in the punishments inflicted upon crimes, borrowed from the Mosaic institutions. The executive power was vested in a governor and some assistants, who were elected annually by the members of the legislative assembly.! So far their institutions appear to be founded on the ordinary maxims of human prudence. But it was a favourite opinion with all the enthusiasts of that age, that the Scriptures contained a complete system not only of spiritual instruction, but of civil wisdom and polity ; and without attending to the peculiar circumstances or situation of the people whose history is there recorded, they often deduced general rules for their own conduct from what happened among men in a very different state. Under the influence of this wild * Hubarde Pros. State, p. 3. Cotton's Magrralia, p. T. HutchinsoiiFHist.p. 3 ke ■* Chalmers's Anoab. p. .'-'T. A3iEUif.\. 433 iioiion, liie cotouisls ol New Plymoudi. in iiiiitalion oi tlie primitive Chris- tians, threw all their property into a common stock, and, like members of one family, carried on every work ot indu*tr\- l)y their joint labour tor public behoot.* But, however this resolution might evidence the jincerity Ol" their faith, it retarded the progress of their colony. The same fatal effects flowed from this community of goods, and of labour, which had formerly been experienced in Virginia ; and it soon became necessarj' to relinquish what \vas too refined to be capable of being accommodated to the aSairs of men. But though they built a small town, and surrounded it with such a lence as afforded sutficient security against the assaults of Indians, the soil around it was so poor, their religious principles were so unsocial, and the supply sent them by their tViends so scanty, that at the end of ten yeai-s the number of people belonging to the settlement did not exceed three hundred.! During some years they appear not to ha\ c acquired right by any legal conveyance to the territory which they had occupied. At length [1630], they obtained a grant of property from the council of the New Plymouth Company, but were never incorporated as a body politic by royal charter.! Unlike all the other settlements in America, this colony must be considered merely as a voluntary association, held too;ether by the tacit consent of its members to recognise the autho- rity of Taws, and submit to the jurisdiction of magistrates, tVamed and chosen by themselves. In tliis state it remained an independent but feeble community, until it was united to its more powerlul neighbour, the colony of Massachusetts Bay, the origin and progress of which I now proceed to relate. The original company of Plymouth having done nothing effectual to- wards establishing any permanent settlement in America, James I., in the year one thousand sLx hundred and twenty, issued a new charter to the Duke of Lenox, the Marquis of Buckingham, and several other persons of distinction in his court, by which he conveyed to them a right to a ter- ritory in America, still more extensive than what had been granted to the former patentees, incorporating them as a body politic, in order to plant colonies there, with powei-s and jurisdictions similar to those contained in his charters to the companies of South and North Virginia. This society was distinguished by the name of the Grand Council of Plymouth for planting and governing New England. What considerations of public utility could induce the king to commit such an undertaking to persons apparently so ill qualified tor conducting it, or what prospect of private advantage prompted them to engaere in it, the inlbrmation we receive from contemporary writers does not enable us to detemiine. Certain it is, that the expectations of both were disappointed ; and after many schemes and arrangements, all the attempts of the new associates towards colonization proved unsuccessi'ul. New England must have remained unoccupied, if the same causes which occasioned the emigration of the Brownists had not continued to operate. Notwithstanding the violent persecution to which puritans of every denomination 'were still exposed, their number and zeal daily in- creased. As they now despaired of obtaining in their o\vn countr)* any relaxation of the penal statutes enacted against their sect, many began to turn their eyes towards some other place of retreat, where they might pro- fess their own opinions with impunity. From the tranquillity which their brethren had hitherto enjoyed in New Plymouth, they hoped to find this desired asylum in New England ; and by the acti\ity ot Mr. White, a nonconformist minister at Dorchester, an association was lonned by several gentlemen who had imbibed puritanical notions, in order to conduct a ♦ Chaliii'Ts's Aiuials, p. ^. IXiu«!ai>'j Siimuiaii-. i ". 3T'» ' Cliulfn'.-rs's Annals, p PT Ihid p. IC. 107. 4J4 lilSTOKV OF [BookX. colony thither. They purchased from the council of Plymouth [March 19, 1627], all the territory, extending in ler^th from three miles north of the river Merrimack, to three miles southof Charles River, and in breadth, from the Atlantic to the Southern Orean. Zealous as these proprietors were to accomplish their flivourite purpose, they quickly perceived their own inability to attempt the population of such an immense region, and deemed it necessary to call in the aid of more opulent copartners.* Of these they found without diflicuity, a sufficient number, chiefly in the capital, and among persons in the commercial and other industrious walks of life, who had openly joined the sect of the puritans, or secretly favoured their opinions. These new adventurers, with the caution natural to men conversant in business, entertained doubts concerning the propriety of founding a colony on the basis of a grant from a private company of pa- tentees, who might convey a right of property in the soil, but could not confer jurisdiction, or the privilege of governing that society which they had in contemplation to establish. As it was only from royal authority that such powers could be derived, they applied for these ; and Charles granted their request, with a facility which appears astonishing, when we consider the principles and views of the men who were suitors tor the favour. Time has been considered as the parent of political wisdom, but its instructions are communicated slowly. Although the experience of above twenty years might have taught the English the impropriety of committing the government of settlements in America to exclusive corporations resident in Europe, neither the king nor his subjects had profited so much by what passed before their eyes as to have extended their ideas beyond those adopted by James in his first attempts towards colonization. The charter of Charles I. to the adventurers associated for planting the province of Massachusetts Bay, was perfectly similar to those granted by his father to the two Virginian companies and to the council ot Plymouth. The new adventurers were incorporated as a body politic, and their right to the territory, which they had purchased from the council at Plymouth, being confirmed by the king, they were empowered to dispose of lands, and to govern the people who should settle upon them. The first governor of the company and his assistants were named by the crown ; the right of electing their successors was vested in the members of the corporation. The executive power was committed to the governor and assistants ; that of legislation to the body of proprietors, who might make statutes and orders for the good of the community, not inconsistent with the laws of England, and enforce the observance of them, according to the course of other corporations within the realm. Their lands were to be held by the same liberal tenure with those granted to the Virginian company. They obtained the same temporary exemption from internal taxes, and from duties on goods exported or imported ; and notwithstanding their migra- tion fo America, they and their descendants were declared to be entitled to all the lights of natural born subjects.! The manifest object of this charter was to confer on the adventurers who undertook to people the territory on Massachusetts Bay, all the corporate rights possessed by the council of Plymouth, from which they had pur- cliased it, and to form them into a public body, resembling other great trading companies, which the spirit of monarchy had at that time multiplied in the kingdom. The king seems not to have foreseen, or to have sus- ^^ected the secret intentions of those who projected the measure ; for so far was he from alluring emigrants, by any hopes of indulgence with re- spect to their religious scruples, or from promising any relaxation from tho rigour of the penal statutes against nonconformists, that he expressly pro- * NeaPs Hi-It. of i\ew EiisIiiiiJ, i. p. 1-2'/. t Hutrliinson's C'oliorf. of Original P^perii, p. (, *c. ' f AMERICA, 436 vides lor having the oath of supremacy adtuinislcred to every person \vho shall pass to the colony, or inhabit thnrc* But whatever were the intentions of the kiiifj, the adventurers kept their own object steadily in view. Soon after their powers to establish a colony were rendered complete by the royal charter [1629], they fitted out five ships for New England ; on board of which enaljarked upwards of three hundred passengers, with a view of settling there. These were most zealous puritans, whose chief inducement to relinquish their native land •was the hope of enjoying religious liberty in a country far removed from the seat of government and the oppression of ecclesiastical couits. Some eminent nonconformist ministers accompanied them as their spiritual iii- structers. On their arrival in New England, they found the wretched re- mainder of a small body of emigrants, who had left England [June 29], the preceding year, under the conduct of Endicott, a deep enthusiast, ■whom, prior to their incorporation by the royal charter, the associates had appointed deputy governor. They were settled at a place called by the Indians Naunekeag, and to which Endicott, with the fond affectation of fanatics of that age to employ the language and appellations of Scripture in the affairs of common life, had given the name of Salem. The emigrants under Endicott, and such as now joined them, coincided perfectly in religious principles. They were puritans of the strictest form ; and to men of this character the institution of a church was naturally of such interesting concern as to take place of every other object. In this first transaction, they displayed at once the extent of the reformation at which they aimed. Without regard to the sentiments of tnat monarch under the sanction of whose authority they settled in America, and from whom they derived right to act as a body politic, and in contempt of the laws of England, with which the charter required that none of their acts or ordinances should be inconsistent, they adopted in their infant church that form of policy which has since been distuiguished by the name of Independent. They united together in religious society [Aug. 6], by a solemn covenant with God and with one another, and in strict conformity, as they imagined, to the rules of Scripture. They elected a pastor, a teacher, and an elder, whom they set apart for their respective offices, by imposition of the hands of the brethren. All who were that day admitted members of the church signified their assent to a confession of faith drawn up by their teacher, and gave an account of the foundation of their own hopes as Christians ; and it was declared that no person should hereafter be received into communion until he gave satisfaction to the church with respect to his faith and sanctity. The form of public worship which the}"- instituted was without a liturgy, disencumbered of every superfluous cere- mony, and reduced to the lowest standard of Calvinistic simplicity.! It was with the utmost complacence that men passionately attached to their own notions, and who had long been restrained from avowing them, employed themselves in framing this model of a pure church. But in the first moment that they began to taste of Christian liberty themselves, they forgot that other men haci an equal title to enjoy it. Some of their num- ber, retaining a high veneration for the ritual of the English church, were so much offended at the total abolition of it, that they withdrew from com- * Hutchinson's Collect, of Orig. Papers, p. IB.— It is surprising lliat Mr. Neal, an inUiiatrious and ppncrally well informed writer, should aftirm, tliat " fine liherly of conscience waa cranted by this charter to all who should settle in those parts, to worship God in their own way." Hist, of New Engl. i. lat. This he repeals in his History of the Puritans, ii.210; and suhsequent historians have copied him implicitly. No permission of this kind, however, is contained in the charter ; and such an indulgence would have been mconsistent with all the ina:fim9 of Charlp.a and his ministers during the course of his reijzn. At the time when Charles issund the charter, the influence of Laud over his counsels was at il.s hciglil, the puritans were prosecuted with tlie greatest severity, and the kin!»dom was ruled entirely by prerogative. This is not an era in which one can expect to meet with coiieessions in favour of nonronformists, from a prince of Chartefi's character and principlee. : Math. Manual, p. 18. Aeal's Hist, of .\. I'ngl. i. 120. < ■lialiners. p. UZ. 436 HISTORY OF [iiooKX. munion with the newiy instituted church, and assemhlcd separately for the worship of God. With an inconsistency of which there are such flagrant instances among Christians of every denomination that it cannot be im- puted as a reproach peculiar to any sect, the very men who had themselves fled from persecution became persecutors ; and had recourse, in order to enforce their own opinions, to the same unhallowed weapons, against the employnient of which they had lately remonstrated with so much violence. Endicott called the two chief malecontents before him ; and though they were men of note, and among the number of original patentees, he expelled them from the society, and sent them home in the ships which were re- turning to England.* The colonists were now united in sentiments ; but, on the approach of winter, they suffered so much from diseases, which carried oflr almost one half of their number, that they made little progress in occupying the country. Meanwhile the directors of the company in England exerted their utmost endeavours in order to reinforce the colony with a numerous body of new settlers ; and as the intolerant spirit of Laud exacted conformity to all the injunctions of the church with greater rigour than ever, the condition of such as had any scruples with respect to this became so intolerable that many accepted of their invitation to a secure retreat in New England. Several of these were persons of greater opulence and of better condition than any who had hitherto migrated to that countiy. But as they intended tb employ their fortunes, as well as to hazard their persons in establishing a permanent colony there, and foresaw many inconveniences from their subjection to laws made without their own consent, and framed hy a societj which inust always be imperfectly acquainted with their situation, they msisted that the corporate powers of the company should be trans- ferred from England to America, and the government of the colony be vested entirely m those who, by settling in the latter country, became members of it.j The company had already expended considerable sums in prosecuting the design of their institution, without having received almost any return, and had no prospect of gain, or even of reimbursement, but what was too remote and uncertain to be suitable to the ideas of mer- chants, the most numerous class of its members. They hesitated, however, with respect to the legality of granting the demand of the intended emi- grants. But such was their eagerness to be disengaged from an unpro- mising adventure, that, " by general consent it was determined, that the charter should be transferred, and the government be settled in New England."! ^^ ^^^^ members of the corporation who chose to remain at home was reserved a share in the trading stock and profits of the company during seven years. In this singular transaction, to which there is nothing similar in the history of English colonization, two circumstances merit particular attention : one is the power of the company to make this transference ; the other is the silent acquiescence with which the king permitted it to take place. If the validity of this determination of the company be tried by the charter which constituted it a body politic, and conveyed to it all the corporate powers with which it was invested, it is evident that it could neither ex- ercise those powers in any mode different from whaf the charter prescribed, nor alienate them in such a manner as to convert the jurisdiction of a trading corporation in England into a provincial government in America. But from the first institution of the company of ftlassachusetts Bay, its members seem to have been animated with a spirit of innovation in civil policy, as well as in religion; and by the habit of rejecting established usages in the one, they were prepared for deviating from them in the other. • Mather, p. 19. Neal, p. 129. f Hutcliiruon's Coll. of Papers, p. 25. % Mnther, p. 20. Hutchinson's Hidt. p. Vi. Clialmerg, p. 150. A M E K I C A. 437 They had applied for a royal charter, in order to gjive legal effect to their operations in England, as acts of a body politic ; but the persons whom they sent out to America, as soon as they landed (here, considered them- selves as individuals united together by voluntary association, possessing the natural right of men who foriri a society, to adopt what mode of govern- ment, and to enact what laws they deemed most conducive to general felicity. Upon this principle of being entitled to judge and to decide for themselves, they established their church in Salem, without regard to the institutions of the church of England, of which the charter supposed them to be members, and bound of consequence to conformity with its ritual. Suitable to the same ideas, we shall observe them framing all their futurn plans of civil and ecclesiastical policy. The king, though abundantly vigilant in observ ing and checking slighter encroachments on his prerogative, was either so much occupied at that time with other cares, occasioned by his fatal breach with his parliament, that he could not attend to the pro- ceedings of the company ; or he was so much pleased with the prospect of removing a body of turbulent subjects to a distant country, where they might be useful, and could not prove dangerous, that he was disposed to connive at the irregularity of a measure vvhich facilitated their departure. Without interruption from the crown, the adventurers proceeded to carry their scheme into execution. In a general court, John Winthrop was appointed governor, and Thomas Dudley deputy governor, and eighteen assistants were chosen ; in whom, together with the body of freemen who should settle in New England, were vested all the corporate rights of the company. With such zeal and activity did they prepare for emigration, that in the course of the ensuing year seventeen ships sailed for Nev/ England, and aboard these above fifteen hundred persons, among whom were several of respectable families, and in easy circumstances. On their arrival in New England, many were so ill satisfied with the situation of Salem, that they explored the country in quest of some better station ; and settling in different places around the Bay, according to their various fancies, laid the foundations of Boston, Charles Town, Dorchester, Rox- borough, and other towns, which have since become considerable in the province. In each of these a church was established on the same model with that of Salem. This, together with the care of making provision for their subsistence during winter, occupied them entirely during some months. But in the first general court [Oct. 19], their disposition to consider them- selves as members of an independent society, unconfined by the regulations of their charter, began to appear. The election of the governor and deputy governor, the appointment of all other officers, and even the power of making l.iws, all which were granted by the charter to the freemen, were taken from them, and vested in the council of assistants. But the aristocratical spirit of this resolution did not accord with the ideas of equality prevalent among the people, who had been surprised into an approbation of it. Next year [1631] the freemen, whose numbers had been greatly augmented by the admission of new members, resumed their former rights. But, at the same time, they ventured to deviate from the charter in a matter of greater moment, which deeply affected all the future operations of the colony, and contributed greatly to form that peculiar character by which the people of New England have been distinguished. A law was passed, declaring that none shall hereafter be admitted freemen, or be entitled to any share in the government, or be capable of being chosen magistrates, or even of serving as jurymen, but such as have been received into the church as members.* By this resolution, every person who did not hold the favourite opinions concc^rning the doctrines of religion, the discipline of the church, or the rites of worship, was at once cast out of the * Ifiitchinstn. p. 96. rhakncrs, p. ]j! 430 HISTORY OF [BookX. society, and stripped of ail tho pri\ ilesres of a citizen. An uncontrolled power of approvitit^ or rejectina: the claims of those who applied for admission ir)to comnnmion with the church being vested in the ministers and leading men of each congregation, the most valuable of all civil rights v/as made to depend on their decision with respect to qualifications purely ecclesiastical. As in examining into these they proceeded not by any known or established rules, but exercised a discretionary judgment, the clergy rose gradually to a degree of intiupnce and authority, iiom which the levelling spirit of the independent church policy was calculated to exclude them. As by their determination the political condition of every citizen was fixed, all paid court to men possessed of such an important power, by assuming those austere and sanctimonious manners which were known to be the most certain recommendations to their favour. In con- sequence of this ascendant, which was acquired chiefly by the wildest enthusiasts among the clergy, their notions became a standard to which all studied to conform, and the singularities characteristic of the puritans in that age increased, of which many remakable instances will occur in the course of our narrative. Though a considerable number of planters was cut off" by the diseases prevalent in a country so imperfectly cultivated by its original inhabitants as to be still almost one continued forest, and several, discouraged by the hardships to which they were exposed, returned to England, recruits suffi- cient to replace them arrived. At the same time the small-pox, a dis- temper fatal to the people of the New World, swept away such multi- tudes of the natives, that some whole tribes disappeared ; and Heaven, by thus evacuating a country in which the English might settle without molestation, was supposed to declare its intention that they should occupy it. As several of the vacant Indian stations were well chosen, such was the eagerness of the English to take possession of them, that their settlements became more numerous and more widely dispersed than suited the con- dition of an infant colony. This led to an innovation which totally altered the nature and constitution of the government. When a general court was to he held in the year one thousand six hundred and thirty-four, the free- men instead of attending it in person, as the charter prescribed, elected representatives in their different districts, authorizing them to appear in their name, with full power to deliberate and decide concerning every point that fell under the cognizance of the general court. Whether this measure was suggested by some designing leaders, or whether they found it prudent to soothe the people by complying with their inclination, is uncertain. The representatives were admitted, and considered themselves, in conjunction with the governor and assistants, as the supreme legislative asseml)ly of the colony. In assertion of their own rights, they enacted that no law should l)e passed, no tax should be imposed, and no public officer should be appointed, but in the general assembly. The pretexts for making this new arrangement were plausible. The number of freemen was greatly increased ; many resided at a distance from the places where the supreme courts were held ; personal attendance became inconvenient ; the form of government in their own country had rendered familiar the idea of delegating their rights, and committing the guardianship of their liberties to representatives of their own choice, and the experience of ages had taught them that this important trust might with safety be lodged in their hands. Thus did the company of Massachusetts Bay, in less than six years from its incorporation by tho king, mature and perfect a scheme which, I have already observed, some of its more artlul and aspiring leaders seem to have had in view, when the association fiir peopling New England was first formed. The colony must henceforward be considered, not as a coipoiation whose powers were defined, and its. mode of AMERICA. 439 procedure regulated by its charter, but as a society, which, having acquired or assumed poHtical liberty, had, by its own voluntary deed, adopted a constitution or government tramed on the model ol' that in England. But however liberal their system of civil policy might be, as their reli- gious opinions were no longer under any restraint of authority, the spirit of fanaticism continued to spread, and became everyday wilder and more extravagant. Williams, a nnnister of Salem, in high estimation, having conceived an antipathy to the cross of St. George in the standard of Eng- land, declaimed against it with so much vehemence, as a relic of super- stition and idolatry which ought not to be retained among a people so pure and sanctified, that Endicott, one of the members of the court of assistants, in a transport of zeal, publicly cut out the cross from the ensign displaj'ed before the governor's gate. This frivolous matter interested and divided the colony. Some of the militia scrupled to follow colours in which there was a cross, lest they should do honour to an idol ; others refused to serve under a mutilated banner, lest they should be suspected of having renounced their allegiance to the crown of England. Alter a lon^ contro- A'ersy, carried on by both parties with that heat and zeal which m trivial disputes supply the want of argument, the contest was temiinated by a compromise. The cross was retained in the ensigns of forts and ships, but erased from the colours of the militia. Williams, on account of this, as well as of some other doctrines deemed unsound, was banished out of the colony.* The prosperous state of New England was now so highly extolled, and the simple Irame of its ecclesiastic policy so much admired by all whose affections were estratiged from the church of England, that crowds of new- settlers flocked thither [1635]. Among these were two persons, whose liames have been rendered memorable by the appearance which they afterwards made on a more conspicuous theatre ; one was Hugh Peters, the enthusiastic and intriguing chaplaiti of Oliver Cromwell : the other Mr. Henry Vane, son of Sir Henry Vane, a privy counsellor, high in office, and of great credit with the king ; a young man of a noble family, animated with such zeal for pure religion and such love of liberty as induced hiin to relinquish all his hopes in England, and to settle in a colony hitherto no further advanced in improvement than barely to afford subsistence to its members, was received with the fondest admiration. His mortified appearance, his demure look and rigid manners, carried even beyond the standard of preciseness in that society which he joined, seemed to indicate a man of high spiritual attainments, while his abilities and address in busi- ness pointed him out as worthy of the highest station in the community. With universal consent, and high expectations of advantage from his administration, he was elected governor in the year subsequent to his arrival [1636], But as the affairs of an infant colony afforded not objects adequate to the talents of Vane, his busy pragmatical spirit occupied itself Avith theological subtilties and speculations unworthy of his attention. These were excited by a woman, whose reveries produced such effects bolh within the colony and beyond its precincts, that frivolous as they may now appear, they must be mentioned as an occurrence of importance in its history. It was the custom at that time in New England, among the chief men in every congregation, to meet once a week in order to rej)eat the sermons which they had heard, and to hold religious conference with respect to the doctrine contained in them. Mrs. Hutchinson, whose husband was among the most respectable members of the colony, regretting that persons of her .sex were excluded from the benefit of those meetings, assembled statedly in her house a number of women, whoem[)loyed themselves in pious exercises * Xcil'sHist. of N. Enp. p. HO. Sco. iriifcliir.son. p. HT. rhalmpis. p 15, &r. Hutcliinson p. 124. fhalmei-.s'? Annals, p. 177. f Nral'/J Hist, of N. Etig. i. 121. Hutchinson's Hist. 14ri, &c Collpct. 188, &c. Chalm. Ami. 179. Mather. Magnal.b. iii. ch. t: p. 30. t Hutchinson's Hist. 177, 178. Chalmers's Annals, p. ISI. AMERICA. 447 raentd, who seem to have looked up to him as a zealous patron.* He in return considered them as his most devoted adherents, attached to him no less by affection than by principle. He soon gave a striking proof ot this. On the conquest of Jamaica, he formed a scheme for the security and improvement of the acquisition made by his victorious arms, suited to the ardour of an impetuous spirit that delighted in accomplishing its ends by extraordinary means. He proposed to transport the people of New England to that island, and employed every argument calculated to make impression upon them, in order to obtain their consent. He endeavoured to rouse their religious zeal by representing what a fatal blow it would be to the man of sin, if a colony of the faithful were settled in the midst of his territories in the New World. He allured them with prospects of immense wealth in a fertile region, which would reward the industry of those who cultivated it with all the precious productions of the torrid zone, and expressed his fervent wish that they might take possession of it, in order to fulfil God's promise of making his people the head and not the tail. He assured them of being supported by the whole force of his authority, and of vesting all the powers of government entirely in their hands. But by this time the colonists were attached to a country in which they had resided for many years, and where, though they did not attain opulence, they enjoyed the comforts of life in great abundance ; and they dreaded so much the noxious climate of the West Indies, which had proved fatal to a great number of the English who first settled in Jamaica, that they declined, though in the most respectful terms, closing with the Pro- ttctor's proposition.! * Hutchinson, App. 520, Slc. Collect, p. 233. t Hutchinson, p. 190, &c. Chalmers, p. 188 i 44b NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Note [1]. Pace 19. Tyre was situated at such a distance from the Arabian Gulf, or Red Sea, as jnade it impracticable to convey commodities from thence to that city by land carriage. This induced the Phoenicians to render themselves masters of JRhino-' crura or Rhinocolura, the nearest port in the Mediterranean to the Red Sea. They landed the cargoes whicii they purchased in Arabia, Ethiopia, and India, at Elath, the safest harbour in the Red Sea towards the North. Thence they were carried by land to Rhinocolura, the distance not being very considerable'; and, being re-shipped in that port were transported to Tyre, and distributed over the world. Strabon. Geogr. edit. Casaub. lib. xvi. p. 1128. Diodor. Sicul, Biblioth. Histor. edit. Wesselingii, lib. i. p. 70. Note [2]. Page 21. The Periplus Hannonis is the only authentic monument of the Carthaginian skill in naval affairs, and one of the most curious fragments transmitted to us by antiquity. The learned and industrious Mr. Dodwcll, in a dissertation prefixed to the Periplus of Hanno, in the edition of the Minor Geographers published at Oxford, endeavours to prove- that this is a spurious work, the composition of some Greek, who assumed Hanno's name. But M. de Montes- quieu, in his TEsprit des Loix, lib. xxi. c. 8. and M. de Bougainville, in a dis- sertation published torn. xxvi. of the Meinoires de TAcad^mie des Inscriptions, &.C. have established its authenticity by arguments which to me appear un- answerable. Ramusio has accompanied his translation of this curious voyage with a dissertation tending to illustrate it. Racolte de Viaggi, vol. i. p. 112. M. de Bougainville has, with great learning and ability, treated the same subject. It appears that Hanno, according to the mode of ancient navigation, undertook this voyage in small vessels so constructed that he could keep close in with the coast. He sailed from Gedes to the island of Cerne in twelve days. This is probably what is known to the moderns by the name of the Isle of Arguim, It became the chief station of the Carthaginians on that coast ; and M. de Bougainville contends, that the cisterns found there are monuments of the Car- thaginian power and ingenuity. Proceeding from Cerne, and still following the winding of the coast, he arrived in seventeen days, at a promontory which he called The West Horn, probably Cape Palmas. From this he advanced to another promontory, which he named The South Horn, and which is manifestly Cape de Tres Puntas, about five degrees north of the line. All the circumstances Contained in the short abstract of his journal, which is handed down to us, con- cerning the appearance and state of the countries on the coast of Africa, arc confirmed and illustrated by a comparison with the accounts of modern naviga- tors. Even those circumstances which, from their seeming improbability, have been produced to invalidate the credibility of his relation, tend to confirm it. He observes, that in the country to the south of Cerne, a profound silence reigned through the day ; but during the night mnumerable fires were kindled along the banks if the rivers, and the air resounded with Iho noiso cf pipe^ NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 449 uhd drums and cries of joy. The same thing, as Ramusio observes, still takes place. The excessive heat obliges the Negroes to take shelter in the woods, or in their houses, during the day. As soon as the sun sets, they sally out, and by torchlight enjoy the pleasure of music and dancing, in which they spend the night. Ramus, i. 113. F. In anotlier place, he mentions the sea as burning with torrents of fire. What occurred to M. Adanson, on the same coast, may explain this : " As soon," says he, " as the sun dipped beneath the horizon, and night overspread the earth with darkness, the sea lent us its friendly light. While the prow of our vessel ploughed the foaming surges, it seemed to set them all on fire. Thus we sailed in a luminous inclosure, which surrounded us like a large circle of rays, from whence darted in the wake of the ship a long stream of a light." Voy. to Senegal, p. 176. This appearance of the sea, observed by Hunter, has been mentioned as an argument against the authenticity of the Periplus. It is, however, a phenomenon very common in warm climates. Cap- tain Cook's second voyage, vol. i. p. 15. The Periplus of Hanno has been translated, and every point with respect to it has been illustrated with much learning and ingenuity, in a work published by Don Pedr. Rodrig. Campomanes, entitled, Antiguedad maritima de Cartago, con el Periplo desu General Harmon traducido e illustrado. Mad. 1756. 4to. Note [3]. Page 21 Long after the navigation of the Phoenicians and of Eudoxus round Africa, Polybius, the most intelligent and best informed historian of antiquity, and par- ticularly distinguished by his attention to geographical researches, affirms, that it was not known, in his time, whether Africa was a continued continent stretching to the south, or whether it was encompassed by the sea. Polybii Hist. lib. iii. Pliny the naturalist asserts, that there can be no communication between the southern and northern temperate zones. Plinii Hist. Natur. edit, in usum, Delph. 4to. lib. ii. c. 68. If they had given full credit to the accounts of those voyages, the former could not have entertained such a doubt, the latter could not have delivered such an opinion. Strabo mentions the voyage of Eudoxus, but treats it as a fabulous tale, lib. ii. p. 155 ; and, according to his account of it, no other judgment can be formed with respect to it. Strabo seems not to have known any thing with certainty concerning the form and state of the southern parts of Africa. Geogr. lib. xvii. p. 1180. Ptolemy, the most inquisi- tive and learned of all the ancient geographers, was equally unacquainted with any parts of Africa situated a few degrees beyond the equinoctial line ; for he supposes that this great continent was not surrounded by the sea, but that it stretched, without interruption, towards the south pole ; and he so far mistakes its true figure that he describes the continent as becoming broader and broader as it advanced towards the south. Ptolemsei Geogr. lib. iv.c. 9. Brietii Parallela Geogr. veteris et novae, p. 86. Note [4]. Page 24. A FACT recorded by Strabo affords a very strong and singular proof of the ignorance of the ancients with respect to the situation of the various parts of the earth. When Alexander marched along the banks of the Hydaspes and Acesine, two of the rivers which fall into the Indus, he observed that there were many crocodiles in those rivers, and that the country produced beans of the same species with those which were common in Egypt. From these circum- stances he concluded that he had discovered the source of the Nile, and prepared a fleet to sail down the Hydaspes to Egypt. Strab. Geogr. lib. xv. p. 1020. This amazing error did not arise from any ignorance of geography peculiar to that monarch ; for we are informed by Strabo, that Alexander applied with particular attention in order to acquire the knowledge of this science, and had accurate maps or descriptions of the countries through which ho marched. Lib. ii. p. 120. But in his age the knowledge of the Greeks did not extend beyond the limits of the Mediterranean- Vot,. I.— fi7 450 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Note [5]. Page 24. As the flux and reflux of the sea is remarkably great at the mouth of the river Indus, this would render the phenomenon more formidable to the Greeks. Varen Geogr. vol. i. p. 231. Note [6]. Page 25. It is probable that the ancients were seldom induced to advance so far as the mouth of the Ganges, either by motives of curiosity or views of commercial advantage. In consequence of this, their idea concerning the position of that great river was very erroneous. Ptolemy places that branch of the Ganges, which he distinguishes by the name of the Great Mouth, in the hundred and forty-sixth degree of longitude from his first meridian in the Fortunate Islands. But its true longitude, computed from that meridian, is now determined, by astronomical observations, to be only a hundred and five degrees. A geographer so eminent must have been betrayed into an error of this magnitude by the imperfection of the information which he had received concerning those distant regions; and this affords a striking proof of the intercourse with them being extremely rare. With respect tjo the countries of India beyond the Ganges, his intelligence was still more defective, and his errors more enormous. I shall have occasion to observe, in another place, that he has placed the country of the Seres, or China, no less than sixty degrees further east than its true position. M. d'Anville, one of the most learned and intelligent of the modern geographers, has set this matter in a clear light, in two dissertations published in Mem. de- TAcad^m. des Inscript. Sic. torn, xxxii. p. 573. 604. Note [7]. Page 25. It is remarkable, that the discoveries of the ancients were made cliiefly by land; those of the moderns arc carried on chiefly by sea. The progress of conquest led to the former, that of commerce to the latter. It is a judicious observation of Strabo, that the conquests of Alexander the Great made known the East, those of the Romans opened the West, and those of Mithridates King of Pontus the North. Lib. i. p. 26. When discovery is carried on by land alone, its progress must be slow and its operations confined. When it is carried on only by sea, its sphere may be more extensive, and its advances more rapid; but it labours under peculiar defects. Though it may make known the position of different countries, and ascertain their boundaries as far as these are deter- mined by the ocean, it leaves us in ignorance with respect to their interior state. Above two centuries and a half have elapsed since the Europeans sailed round the southern promontory of Africa, and have traded in most of its ports; but, in a considerable part of that great continent, they have done little more than survey its coasts, and mark its capes and harbours. Its interior regions are in a great measure unknown. The ancients, who had a very imperfect knowledge of its coasts, except where they are washed by the Mediterranean or Red Sea, were accustomed to penetrate into its inland provinces, and, if we may rely on the testimony of Herodotus and Diodorus Siculus, had explored many parts of it now altogether unknown. Unless both modes of discovery be united, the geographical knowledge of the earth must remain incomplete and inaccurate. Note [8]. Page 27. The notion of the ancients concerning such an excessive degree of heat in the torrid zone as rendered it uninhabitable, and their persisting in this error long after they began to liave some commercial intercourse with several parts of India lying within the tropics, must appear so singular and absurd, that it may not be unacceptable to some of my readers to produce evidence of their holding this opinion, and to account for the apparent inconsistence of their theory with their experience. Cicero, who had bestowed attention upon every part of philosophy known to the ancients, seems to have believed that the torrid zone was uninhabitable, and, of consequence, that there could be no interconrs? NOTES AlsD ILLUSTKATlOiNS. 451 between the nortlicrn and southern temperate zones. He introducos Africanus thus addressing tlie younger Scipio: "You see tJiis earth encompassed, and ag it were bound in by certain zones, of which two, at the greatest distance from each otlier, and sustaining the opposite poles of lieaven, are frozen with perpetual cold ; the middle one, and the largest of all, is burnt with the heat of the sun; two are habitable; the people in the southern one are antipodes to us, with whom we have no connection." Homnium IScipionis^ c. 6. Geminus, a Greek philosopher, contemporary with Cicero, delivers the same doctrine, not in a popular work, but in his E/o-a^ a^ » ac 'imvcfAiva., a treatise purely scientific. "When we speak," says he, "of the southern temperate zone and its inhabitants, and concerning those who are called antipodes, it must be always understood, that \vc have no certain knowledge or information concerning the southern temperate zone, whether it be inhabited or not. But from the spherical figure of the earth, and the course which the sun holds between the tropics, we conclude that there is another zone situated to the south, which enjoys the same degree of tempera- ture with the northern one which we inhabit." Cap. xiii. p. 31. ap. Pctavii Opus de Doctr. Temper, in quo Uranologium sive Systemata var. Auctorum. Amst. 1705. vol. 3. The opinion of Pliny the naturalist, with respect to both these points, was the same: "There are five divisions of the earth, which arc called zones. All that portion which lies near to the two opposite poles is oppressed with vehement cold and eternal frost. There, unblessed with the aspect of milder stars, perpetual darkness reigns, or at the utmost, a feeble light reflected from surrounding snows. The middle of the earth, in which is the orbit of the sun, is scorched and burnt up with flames and fiery vapour. Between these torrid and frozen districts lie two other portions of the earth, which are temperate ; but, on account of the burning region inter- posed, there can be no communication between them. Thus Heaven has de- prived us of three parts of the earth." Lib. ii. c. 63. Strabo delivers his opinion to the same effect, in terms no less explicit: "The portion of the earth which lies near the equator, in the torrid zone, is rendered uninhabitable by heat." Lib. ii. p. 154. To these I might add the authority of many other respectable philosophers and historians of antiquity. In order to explain the sense in which this doctrine was generally received, we may observe, that Parmenides, as we are informed by Strabo, was the first who divided the earth into five zones, and extended the limits of the zone which he supposed to be uninhabitable on account of heat beyond the tropics. Aristotle, as we learn likewise from Strabo, fixed the boundaries of the diflTerent zones in the same manner as they are defined by modern geographers. But the progress of discovery having gradually demonstrated that several regions of the earth which lay within the tropics were not only habitable, but populous and fertile, this induced later geographers to circumscribe the limits of the torrid zone. It is not easy to ascertain with precision the boundaries which they allotted it. From a passage in Strabo, who, as far as I know, is the only author of antiquity from whom we receive any hint concerning this subject, 1 should conjecture, that those w^ho calculated according to the measurement of the earth by Era- tosthenes, supposed the torrid zone to comprehend near sixteen degrees, about eight on each side of the equator; whereas such as followed the computation of Poaidonius allotted about twenty-four degrees, or somewhat more than twelve degrees on each side of the equator to the torrid zone. Strabo, lib. ii. p. 151. According to the former opinion, about two-thirds of that portion of the earth which lies between the tropics was considered as habitable ; according to tlie latter, about one-half of it. With this restriction, the doctrine of the ancients concerning the torrid zone appears less absurd ; and we can conceive the reason of their asserting this zone to be uninhabitable, even after they had opened a commimication with several places within the tropics. When men of science spoke of the torrid zone, they considered it as it was limited by the definition of geographers to sixteen, or at the utmost to twenty-four degrees; and as they knew almost nothing of the countries nearer to the equator, they might still suppose tlurn to be uninhabitable. In loose and popular discourse, the name of the torrid zone continued to be given to all that portion of the earth which lies witliin the tropics. Cicero seems to have been unacquainted ^vith those ideas of the later geographers; and, adhering to the division of 452 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Parracnides, describes tlie torrid zone as the largest of the five. Some of the ancients rejected the notion concerning the intolerable heat of the torrid zone as a popular error. This we are told by Plutarch was the sentiment of Pythago- ras- and we learn from Strabo, that Eratosthenes and Polybius had adopted the same opinion, lib. ii. p. 154. Ptolemy seems to have paid no regard to tho ancient doctrine and opinions concerning the torrid zone. Note [9]. Page 35. The court of Inquisition, which effectually checks a spirit of liberal inquirj', and of literary improvement, wherever it is established, was unknown in Por- tugal in the fifteentli century, when the people of that kingdom began their voyages of discovery. More than a century elapsed before it was mtroduced by John III., whose reign commenced A. D. 1521. Note [10]. Page 38. An instance of this is related by Hakluyt, upon the authority 6f the Portu- guese historian Garcia de Resende. Some English merchants having resolved to open a trade with the coast of Gumea, John II. of Portugal despatched ambassadors to Edward IV., in order to lay before him the right which he had acquired by the Pope's bull to the dominion of that country, and to request of him to prohibit his subjects to prosecute their intended voyage. Edward was so much satisfied with the exclusive title of the Portuguese, that he issued his orders in the terms which they desired. Hakluyt, Navigations, Voyages, and Traffics of the English, vol. ii. part ii. p. 2. Note [11]. Page 42. The time of Columbus's death may be nearly ascertained by the following circumstances. It appears from the fragment of a letter addressed by him to Ferdinand and Isabella, A. D. 1501, that he had at that time been engaged forty years in a seafaring life. In another letter he informs them that he went to sea at the age of fourteen : from those facts it follows, that he was born A. D. 1447. Life of Christa. Columbus, by his son Don Ferdinand. Churchill's Collection of Voyages, vol. ii. p. 484, 485. Note [12]. Page 44. The spherical figure of the earth was known to the ancient geographers. They invented the method, still in use, of computing the longitude and latitude of different places. According to their doctrine, the equator, or imaginary line which encompasses the earth, contained three hundred and sixty degrees ; these they divided into twenty-four piirts, or hours, each equal to fifteen degrees. The country of the Seres or Since, being the furthest part of India known t» tiie ancients, was supposed by Marinus Tyrius, the most eminent of the ancient geographers before Ptolemy, to bo fifteen hours, or two hundred and twenty- five degrees to tiie east of the first meridian, passing through the Fortunate Islands. Ptolemsei Geogr. lib. i. c. 11. If this supposition was well founded, the country of the Seres, or Clrina, was only nine hours, or one hundred and Ihirty-five degrees west from the Fortunate or Canary Islands ; and the navi- gation in that direction was much shorter than by the course which the Portu- guese were pursuing. Marco Polo, in his travels, had described countries, particularly tlie island of Cipango or Zipangri, supposed to be Japan, con- siderably to the east of any part of Asia known to the ancients. Marcus Paulus de Region. Oriental, lib. ii. c. 70. lib. iii. c. 2. Of course, this country, as it extended further to the east, was still nearer to the Canary Islands. The con- clusions of Columbus, though drawn from inaccurate observations, were just. If the suppositions of Marinus had been well founded, and if the countries which Marco Polo visited, had been situated to the east of tiiose whose longitude Marinus had ascertained, the proper and nearest course to the East Indies must have been to steer directly west. Ilerrera, dec. 1. lib. i. c. 2. A more extensive NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 453 knowledge of the globe has now discovered llie great error of Marinus, in supposing China to be fifteen hours, or two hundred and twenty-five degrees east from the Canary Islands; and that even Ptolemy was mistaken, when he reduced llie longitude of China to twelve hours, or one hundred and eighty degrees. The longitude ol the western frontier of that vast empire is seven hours, or one hundred and fifteen degrees from the meridian of the Canary Islands. But Columbus followed tJie light which his age afforded, and relied upon the authority of writers, who were at that time regarded as the instructers and guides of mankind in the science of geography. Note [13]. Page 53. As the Portuguese, in making their discoveries, did not depart far from the coast of Africa, they concluded that birds, whose flight they observed with great attention, did not venture to any considerable distance from land. In the infancy of navigation it was not known that birds often stretched their flight to an immense distance from any shore. In sailing towards the West Indian Islands, birds are often seen at the distance of two hundred leagues from the nearest coast. ISloane's Nat. Hist, of Jamaica, vol. i. p. 30. Catesby saw an owl at sea when the ship was six hundred leagues distant from land. Nat. Hist, of Carolina, pref. p. 7. Hist. Naturelle de M. Buflbn, torn. xvi. p. 32. From which it appears, that this indication of land, on which Columbus seems to have relied with some confidence, was extremely uncertain. This observa- tion is confirmed by Capt. Cook, the most extensive and experienced navigator of any age or nation. "No one yet knows (says he) to what distance any of the oceanic birds go to sea; for iny own part, 1 do not believe that there is one in the whole tribe that can be relied on in pointing out the vicinity of land." Voyage towards the South Pole, vol. i. p. 275. Note [14]. Page 58. In a letter of the Admiral's to Ferdinand and Isabella, he describes one of the harbours in Cuba with all the enthusiastic admiration of a discoverer. — "I discovered a river which a galley might easily enter : the beauty of it induced me to sound, and 1 found from five to eight fathoms of water. Having pro- ceeded a considerable way up the river, every thing invited me to settle there. The beauty of the river, the clearness of the water through which I could see the sandy bottom, the multitude of palm trees of different kinds, the tallest and fiue.si 1 had seen, and an infinite number of other large and flourishing trees, the bird.s, and the verdure of the plains are so wonderfully beautiful, that this country excels all others as far as the day surpasses the night in brightness and splendour, so that I often said, that it would be in vain for me to attempt to give your Highnesses a full account of it, for neither my tongue nor my pen could coiiie up to the truth ; and indeed I am so much amazed at the sight of such beauty, that I know not how to describe it." Life of Columb. c. 30. Note [15]. Page 59. The account which Columbus gives of the humanity and orderly behaviour of the natives on this occasion is very striking. " The king (says he in a letter to Ferdinand and Isabella) having been informed of our misfortune, expressed great grief for our loss, and immediately sent aboard all the people in the place in many large canoes ; we soon unloaded the ship of every tiling that was upon deck, as the king gave us great assistance : he himself, with his brothers and relations, took all possible care that every thing should be properly done, both aboard and on shore. And, from time to time, he sent some of his relations weeping, to beg of me not to be dejected, for he would give me all that he had. I can assure your Highnesses, that so much care could not have been taken in securing our eff'ects in any part of Spain, as all our property was put together in one place near his palace, until the houses which he wanted to prepare for the custody of it were emptied. He immediately placed a guard of armed men, who watched during the whole night, and tliose on shore lamented as if they 454 NOTES AxND ILJ.USTRATIONS. iiad been much interested in our loss. The people are so affectionate, so tractablu, and so peaceable, that I swear to your HiglincsseR, that tiierc is not a better race of men, nor a better country in tlie world. Tliey love their neighbour as them- selves; their conversation is the sweetest and mildest in the world, cheerful and always accompanied with a smile. And although it is true that they go naked, yet your Highnesses may be assured that they iiave many very commendable customs ; the king is served with great state, and his behaviour is so decent that it is pleasant to see him, as it is likewise to observe the wonderful memory which these people have, and their desire of knowing every thing, which leads them to inquire into its causes and effects." Life of Columbus, c. 32. It is pirobable that the Spaniards were indebted for this officious attention to the opinion which the Indians entertained Qf them as a superior order of beings. Note [16]. Page 62. Every monument of such a man as Columbus is valuable. A letter wliich lie wrote to Ferdinand and Isabella, describing what passed on this occasion, exhibits a most striking picture of his intrepidity, his humanity, his prudence, his public spirit, and courtly address. " I would have been less concerned for this misfortune had I alone been in danger, both because my life is a debt that I owe to the Supreme Creator, and because I have at other times been exposed to the most imminent hazard. But what gave me infinite grief and vexation was, that after it had pleased our Lord to give me faith to undertake this enter- prise, in which I had now been so successful, thai my opponents would have been convinced, and the glory of your Highnesses, and the extent of your ter- ritory, increased by me ; it should please the Divine Majesty to stop all by my death. All this would have been more tolerable had it not been attended with the loss of those men whom 1 had carried with me, upon promise of the greatest jtrosperity, who, seeing themselves in such distress, cursed not only their coming along with me, but that fear and awe of me which prevented tliem from returning, as they often had resolved to have done. But besides all this, my sorrow was greatly increased by recollecting that I iiad left my two sons at school at Cordova, destitute of friends, in a foreign country, when it could not in all probability bo known that I had done such services as might induce Your Highnesses to remember them. And though I comforted myself with the faith that our Lord would not permit that which tended so much to the glory of his Church, and wliich I had brought about with so much trouble, to remain im- perfect, yet I considered, tiiat, on account of my sins, it was his will to deprive me of that glory which I might have attained in this world. While in this coufuscd state, 1 thought on the good t>)rtune which accompanies Your High- nesses, and imagined that although I should perish, and the vessel be lost, it was possible tliat you might somehow come to the knowledge of my voyage, and the success with which it was attended. For that reason I wrote upon parchment with tlie brevity which the situation required, that I had discovered the lands wliich I promised, in how many days I had done it, and what course 1 had followed. I mentioned the goodness of the country, the character of the inhabitants, and that Your Highnesses' subjects were left in possession of all that 1 had discovered. Having scaled tiiis writing, I addressed it to Your Highnesses, and promised a thousand ducats to any person who should deliver it sealed, so that if any foreigner found it, the promised reward might prevail on them not to give the inibrmation to another. I then caused a great cask to be brought to me, and wrapping up the parchment in an oiled cloth, and after- wards in a cake of wax, 1 put it into the cask, and having stopped it well, I cast it into the sea. All the men believed that it was some act of devotion. Imagining that this might never chance to be taken up, as the ships approached nearer to Spain, I made another packet like the first, and placed it at the top of the poop, so that, if the shi}) sunk, the cask remaining above water might be committed to the guidance of iortune." Note [17]. Page 64, Some Spanish authors, with the meanness of national jealousy, have endea- voured to detract from the glory of Columbus, by insinuating that he was led NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. .^455 to the discovery of the New World, not by his own inventive or enterprising genius, but by information which he had received. According to their ac- count a vessel having been driven from its course by easterly winds, was carried before them far to the west, and landed on the coast of an unknown country, from which it returned with difficulty ; the pilot and three sailors being the only persons who survived the distresses which the crew sutfercd from want of provisions and fatigue in this long voyage. In a few days after their arrival, all the four died ; but the pilot having been received into the house of Columbus, his intimate friend disclosed to him before his death, the secret of the discovery which he had accidentally made, and left him his papers con- taining a journal of tlie voyage, which served as a guide to Columbus in his undertaking. Gomara, as-far as I know, is the first author who published this story. Hist. c. 13. Every circumstance is destitute of evidence to support it. Neither the name of the vessel nor its destination is known. Some pretend that it belonged to one of the seaport towns in Andalusia, and was sailing either to tl>e Canaries or to Madeira ; others, that it was a Biscayner in its way to England ; others, a Portuguese ship trading on the coast of Guinea. The name of the pilot is alike unknown, as well as that of the port in which he landed on his return. According to some, it was in Portugal; according to others, in Madeira, or the Azores. The year in which this voyage was made is no less uncertain. Monson's Nav. Tracts. Churchill, iii. 371. No mention is made of this pilot, or his discoveries, by And. Bernaldes, or Pet. Martyr, the contemporaries of Columbus. Herrera, with his usual judgment, passes over it in silence. Oviedo takes notice of tliis report, but considers it as a tale fit only to amuse the vulgar. Hist. lib. ii. c. 2. As Columbus held his course directly west from the Canaries, and never varied it, some later authors have supposed that this uniformity is a proof of his being guided by some previous information. But they do not recollect the principles on which he founded all his hopes of success, that by holding a westerly course he mast certainly arrive at those regions of the east described by the ancients. His fiiTn belief of his o\vn system led him to take that course, and to pursue it without deviation. The Spaniards are not the only people who have called in question Columbus's claim to the honour of having discovered America. Some German authors ascribed this honour to Martin Behaim their countryman. He was of the noble family of the Behaims of Schwartzbach, citizens of the first rank in the Imi)erial town of Nuremberg. Having studied under the celebrated .lohn Muller, better known by the name of Regiomontanus, he acquired such knowledge of cos- mography as excited a desire of exploring those regions, the situation and qualities of which he had been accustomed, under that able master, to investi- gate and describe. Under the patronage of the Dutchess of Burgundy he re- paired to Lisbon, whither the fame of the Portuguese discoveries invited all the adventurous spirits of the age. There, as we learn from Herman Schedel, of whose Chronicon Mtindi, a German translation was printed at Nuremberg, A. D. 1493, his merit as a coamographer raised him, in conjunction with Diego Cano, to the command of a squadron fitted out for discovery in the year 1483. In that voyage he is said to have discovered the kingdom of Congo. He settled in the island of Fayal, one of the Azores, and was a particular friend of Columbus. Herrera, dec. 1. lib. i. c. 2. Magellan had a terrestrial globe made by Behaim, on which he demonstrated the course that he proposed to hold in search of the communication with the South Sea, which he afterwards discovered. Gomara Hist. c. 19. Herrera, dec. 11. lib. ii. c. 19. In the year 1492, Behaim visited his relations in Nuremberg, and left with them a map drawn with his own hand, which is still preserved among the archives of the family. Thus far the story of Martin Beliaim seems to be well authenticated ; but the account of his having discovered any part of the Now World appears to be merely conjectural. In the first edition, as I had at that time hardly any knowledge of Behaim but what I derived from a frivolous dissertation ' De vero Novi Orbis Inven- tore,' published at Frankfort, A. D. 1714, by Jo. Frid. Stuvenius, I was induced, by the authority of Herrera, to suppose that Behaim was not a native of Ger- many ; but from more full and accurate information, communicated to me by the learned Dr. John Rcinhold Forster. I am now satisfied that I was mistaken. 466 ^"OTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Dr. Forster has been likewise so good as to favour me with a copy of Bchaim's map, as published by Doppelmayer in his account of the Mathematicians and Artists of Nuremberg. From this map the imperfection of cosmographical knowledge at that period is manifest. Hardly one place is laid down ui its true situation. Nor can I discover from it any reason to suppose that Behaim had the least knowledge of any region in America. He delineates, indeed, an island to wliich he gives the name of St. Brandon. This, it is imagined, may be some part of Guiana, supposed at first to be an island. He places it in the same latitude with the Cape Verd isles, and I suspect it to be an imaginary island which has been admitted into some ancient maps on no better authority than the legend oi' the Insh St. Brandon or Brendan, v\hose story is so childishly fabulous as to be unworthy of any notice. Girald. Cambrcnsis ap. Missingham Florilegium Sanctorum, p. 427. The pretensions of the Welsh to the discovery of America seem not to rest on a foundation much more solid. In the twelfth century, according to Powell, a dispute having arisen among the sons of Owen Guyneth, King of North Wales, concerning the succession to his crown, Madoc, one of their number, weary of this contention, betook himself to sea in quest of a more quiet settle- ment. He steered due west, leaving Ireland to the north, and arrived in an unknown country, which appeared to him so desirable, that he returned to Wales and carried thither several of his adherents and companions. This is said to have happened about the year 1170, and after that, he and his colony were heard of no more. But it is to be observed, that Powell, on whose tes- timony the authenticity of this story rests, published his history above four centuries from the date of the event which he relates. Among a people as rude and as illiterate as the Welsh at that period, the memory of a transaction so remote must have been very imperfectly preserved, and would require to be confirmed by some author of greater credit, and nearer to the era of Madoc's voyage than Powell. Later antiquaries have indeed appealed to the testimony of Meredith ap Rees, a Welsh bard, who died A. D. 1477. But he too lived at such a distance of time from the event, that he cannot be considered as a wit- ness of much more credit than Powell. Besides, his verses, published by Hakluyt, vol. iii. p. 1,, convey no information, but that Madoc, dissatisfied with liis domestic situation, employed himself in searching the ocean for new possessions. But even if we admit the authenticity of Powell's story, it does not follow tliat the unknown country which Madoc discovered by steering west, in such a course as to leave Ireland to the north, was any part of America. The naval skill of the Welsh in the twelfth century was hardly equal to such a voyage. If he made any discovery at all, it is more probable that it was Madeira, or some other of the western isles. The affinity of the Welsh language with some dialects spoken in America, has beenmentioned as a circumstance which confirms the truth of Madoc's voyage. But that affinity has been observed in so few in- stances, and in some of these is so obscure, or so fanciful, that no conclusion can be drawn from the casual resemblance of a small number of words. There is a bird, which, as far as is yet known, is found only on the coasts of South America, from Port Desire to the Straits of Magellan. It is distinguished by the name of Penguin. This word in the Welsh language signifies TVJiilc- he.ad. Almost all the authors who favour the pretensions of the Welsh to the discovery of America, mention this as an irrefragable proof of the affinity of the Welsh language with that spoken in this region of America. But Mr. Pennant, who has given a scientific description of the Penguin, observes that all the birds of this genus have black heads, " so that we must resign every hope (adds he) founded on this hypothesis of retrieving the C'ambrian race in the New World." Philos. Transact, vol. Iviii. p. 91, &c. Besides tliis, if the Welsh, towards the close of the twelfth century, had settled in any part of America, some remains of the Christian doctrine and rites must have been found among their descendants, when they were discovered about three hundred years posterior to their migration ; a period so short that, in the course of it, we cannot well suppose that all European ideas and arts would be totally for- gotten. Lord Lyttleton, in his notes to the fifth book of his History of Henry II., p. 371, has examined what Powell relates concerning the discoveries made by Madoc,and invalidates the truth of his story by other arguments of great weight NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 457 The pretensions of" tlie Norwegians to tlie discovery of America seem to be Better founded than those of the Germans or Welsh. The inhabitants of Scandinavia were remarkable in the middle ages for the boldness and extent of their maritime excursions. In 874, the Norwegians discovered and planted a colony in Iceland. In 982, they discovered Greenland, and estabhshed settle- ments there. From that, some of their navigators proceeded towards the west, and discovered a country more inviting than those horrid regions with which they v\ ere acquainted. According to their representation, this country was sandy on the coasts, but in the interior parts level and covered with wood, on which account they gave it the name of Hellt-laivd, and Mark-land, and having afterwards found some plants of the vine which bore grapes, they called it fVin-land. The credit of this story rests, as far as I know, on the authority of the saga, or chronicle of King Olaus, composed by Snorro Sturlonides, or Sturhiso7is, published by Perinskiold, at Stockholm, A. D. 1697. As Snorro was born in the year 1179, his chronicle might be compiled about two centuries after the event which he relates. His account of the navigation and discoveries of Biorn, and iiis companion Lief, is a very rude confused tale, p. 104. 110. 326. It is impossible to discover from him what part of America it was in which the Norwegians landed. According to his ai count of the length of the days and nights, it must have been as far north as the fifty-eighth degree of latitude, on some part of the coast of Labradore, approaching near to the entry of Hudson's Straits. Grapes certainly are not the production of that country. Torfeus supposes that there is an error in the text, by rectifying of which the place where the Norwegians landed may be supposed to be situated in latitude 49°. But neither is that the region of the vine in America. From perusing Snorro 's tale, I should think that the situation of Newfoundland corresponds best with that of the country discovered by the Norwegians. Grapes, however, are not the production of that barren island. Other conjectures are mentioned by M. Mallet, Introd. k I'Hist. de Dannem. 175, &c. I am not sufficiently ac- quainted with the literature of the north to examine them. It seems manifest, that if the Norwegians did discover any part of America at that period, their attempt to plant colonies proved unsuccessful, and all knowledge of it was soon lost. Note [18]. Page 64. Peter Martyr, ab Angleria, a Milanese gentleman, residing at that time in the court of Spain, whose letters contain an account of the transactions of that period, in the order wherein they occurred, describes the sentiments with which he himself and his learned correspondents were affected in very striking terms. " Prse leetitia prosiluisse tc, vixque a lachrymis pra; gaudio temperasse, quando literas adspexisti meas quibus, de antipodum orbe latenti hactenus, tc certiorem feci, mi suavissime Pomponi, insinuasti. Ex tuis ipse Uteris coUigo, quid senseris. Sensisti autem, tantique rem fecisti, quanti virum summa doc- trina Lnsignitum decuit. Quis namque cibus sublimibus prastari potest ingeniis, isto suavior ? quod condimentum gratius ? A me facio coiijecturam. Beati sentio spiritus meos, quando accitos alloquor prudentcs aliquos ex his qui ab ea redcunt provincia. Implicent animos pecuniarum cumulis augendis miseri avari, libidinibus obscoeni ; nostras nos mentes, postquam Deo pleni aliquando fuerimus, contemplando, hujuscemodi rerum notitia demulciamus." Epist, 152, Pomponio Lseto. Note [19]. Page 69. So firmly were men of science, in that age, persuaded tliat the countries which Columbus had discovered were connected with tlie East Indies, that Be- nald<'s, the Cura de los Palacios, who seems to have been no inconsiderablo froficient in the knowledge of cosmography, contends that Cuba was not an sland, but a part of the continent, and united to the dominions of the Great Khan. This he delivered as his opinion to Columbus himself, who was liis guest for some time on his return from his second voyage ; and he supports it by several arguments, mostly founded on the authority of Sir John Mandevillc. Vol. I.— 58 458 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. MS. penes me. Antonio Gallo, who was secretary to the magistracy of Genoa towards the close of the fifteenth century, published a short account of the navigations and discoveries of his countryman Columbus, annexed to his Opuscula Historica de Rebus Populi Genuensis : in which he informs us, from letters of Columbus which he himself had seen, tliat it was his opinion, founded upon nautical observations, that one of the islands he had discovered was dis- tant only two hours or thirty degrees from Cattigara, which, in the charts of the geographers of that age, was laid down, upon the authority of Ptolemy, lib. vii. c. 3, as the most easterly place in Asia. From this he concluded, that if some unknown continent did not obstruct the navigation, there must be a short and easy access, by holding a westerly course, to this extreme region of the East. Muratori Scriptores Rer. Italicarum, vol. xxiii. p. 304. Note [20]. Page 71. Bernaldes, the Cura or Rector de los Palacios, a contemporary writer, says, that five hundred of these captives were sent to Spain, and sold publicly in Seville as slaves ; but that, by the change of climate and their inability to bear the fatigue of labour, they all died in a short time. MS. jjjcnes »ne. Note [21]. Page 76. Columbus seems to have formed some very singular opinions concerning the countries which he had now discovered. The violent swell and agitation of the waters on the coast of Trinidad led him to "conclude this to be the highest part of the terraqueous globe, and he imagined that various circumstances concurred in proving that the sea was here visibly elevated. Having adopted this erroneous principle, the apparent beauty of the country induced him to fall in with a notion of Sir John Mandeviile, c. 102, that the terrestrial paradise was the highest land in the earth ; and he believed that he had been so fortunate as to discover this happy abode. Nor ought we to think it strange that a person of so much sagacity should be influenced by the opinion or reports of such a fabulous author as Mandeviile. Columbus and the other discoverers were obliged to follow such guides as they could find ; and it appears from several passages in the manuscript of Andr. Bernaldes, the friend of Columbus, that no inconsiderable degree of credit was given to the testimony of Mandeviile in that age. Bernaldes frequently quotes him, and always with respect. Note [22]. Page 81. It is renjarkable that neither Gomara nor Oviedo, the most ancient Spanish historians of America, nor Herrera, consider Ojeda, or his companion Vespucci, as the first discoverers of tlie continent of America. They uniformly ascribe this honour to Columbus. Some have supposed that national resentment against Vespucci, for deserting the service of Spain, and entering into that of Portugal, may have prompted these writers to conceal the actions which he performed. But Martyr and Benzoni, both Italians, could not be warped by the same prejudice. Martyr was a contemporary author; he resided in the court of Spain, and had the best opportunity to be exactly informed with respect to all public transactions ; and yet neither in his Decads, the first general history pubhshed of the New World, nor in his Epistles, which contain an account of all the remarkable events of his time, does he ascribe to Vespucci the honour of having first discovered the continent. Benzoni went as an adventurer to America in the year 1541, and resided there a considerable time. He appears to have been animated with a warm zeal for the honour of Italy, his native country, and yet does not mention the exploits and discoveries of Vespucci. Herrera, who compiled his general history of America from the most authentic records, not only follows those early writers, but accuses Vespucci of falsifying the dates of both the voyages which he made to the New World, and of con- founding the one with the other, in order that he might arrogate to himself the glory of having discovered the continent. Her. dec. 1. lib. iv. c. 2. He asserts, that in a judicial inquirv into this matter by the royal fiscal, it was proved by NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 459 lUo testimony of Ojeda himself, that he touched at Hispaniola when returning to Spain from his first voyage; whereas Vespucci gave out that they returned directly to Cadiz from the coast of Paria, and touched at Hispaniola only in their second voyage ; and that he had finished the voyage in five months ; whereas, according to Vespucci's account, he had employed seventeen months in performing it. Viaggio primo de Am. Vespucci, p. 36. Viag. secundo, p. 45. Hcrrera gives a more full account of this inquest in another part of his Decads, and to the same effect. Her. dec. 1. lib. vii. c. 5. Columbus was in Hispaniola when Ojeda arrived there, and had by that time come to an agreement "with Roldan, who opposed Ojeda's attempt to excite a new insurrection, and, of consequence, his voyage must have been posterior to that of the admiral. Life of Columbus, c. 84. According to Vespucci's account, he set out on his first voyage May 10th, 1497. Viag. primo, p. 6. At that time Columbus was in the court of Spain preparing for his voyage, and seems to have en- joyed a considerable degree of favour. The aftiairs of the New World were at this juncture under the direction of Antonio Torres, a friend of Columbus. It is not probable that, at that period, a commission would be granted to another person to anticipate the admiral by undertaking a voyage which he himself intended to perform. Fonseca, who patronized Ojeda, and granted the license for his voyage, was not recalled to court, and reinstated in the direction of Indian affairs, until the death of Prince John, which happened September, 1497, (P. Martyr, Ep. 182,) several months posterior to the time at which Vespucci pretends to have set out upon his voyage. A life of Vespucci was published at Florence by the Abate Bandini, A. D. 1745, 4to. It is a work of no merit, written with little judgment, and less candour. He contends for his country- man's title to the discovery of the continent with all the blind zeal of national partiality, but produces no new evidence to support it. We learn from him that Vespucci's account of his voyage was published as early as the year 1510, and probably sooner. Vita di Am. Vesp. p. 52. At what time the name of America came to be first given to the New World is not certain. Note [23]. Page 99. The form employed on this occasion served as a model to the Spaniards in all their subsequent conquests in America. It is so extraordinary in its nature, and gives us such an idea of the proceedings of the Spaniards, and the principles upon which they founded their right to the extensive dominions which they acquired in the New World, that it well merits the attention of the reader. " I Alonso de Ojeda, servant of the most high and powerful kings of Castile and Leon, the conquerors of barbarous nations, their messenger and captain, notify to you, and declare in as ample form as I am capable, that God our Lord, who is one and eternal, created the heaven and the earth, and one man and one woman, of whom you and we, and all the men who have been or shall be in the world, are descended. But as it has come to pass through the number of generations during more than five thousand years, that they have been dispersed into different parts of the world, and are divided into various kingdoms and pro- vinces, because one country was not able to contain them, nor could they have found in one the means of subsistence and preservation : therefore God our Lord gave the charge of all those people to one man named St. Peter, whom he constituted the lord and head of all the human race, that all men, in what- ever place they are born, or in whatever faith or place they are educated, might yield obedience unto him. He hath subjected the whole world to his jurisdic- tion, and commanded him to establish his residence in Rome, as the most prpper place for the government of the world. He likewise promised and gave liim power to establish his authority in every other part of the world, and to judge and govern all Christians, Moors, .Tews, Gentiles, and all other people of whatever sect or faith they may be. To him is given the name of Pope, which signifies admirable, great father and guardian, because he is the father and governor of all men. Those who lived in the time of this holy father obeyed and acknowledged him as their Lord and King, and the superior of the universe. The same has been observed with respect to thorn who, since his 460 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. lime, have been chosen to the pontificate. Thus it now continues, and will continue to the end of the world. " One of these Pontiffs, as lord of the world, hath made a grant of these islands, and of the Tierra Firine of the ocean sea, to the Catholic Kings of Castile, Don Ferdinand and Donna Isabella, of glorious memory, and their successors, our sovereigns, with all they contain, as is more fully expressed in certain deeds passed upon that occasion, which you may see if you desire it. Thus His Majesty is King and lord of these islands, and of the continent, in virtue of this donation ; and, as King and lord aforesaid, most of the islands to which his title hath been notified, have recognised His Majesty, and now yield obedience and subjection to him as their lord, voluntarily and without resistance ; and instantly, as soon as they received information, they obeyed the religious men sent by the King to preach to them, and to instruct them in our holy faith ; and all these, of their own free will, without any recompense or gratuity, became Christians, and continue to be so ; and His Majesty having received them graciously under his protection, has commanded that they should be treated in the same manner as his other subjects and vassals. You are bound and obliged to act in the same manner. Therefore I now entreat and require you to consider attentively what I have declared to you ; and that you may more perfectly comprehend it, that you take such time as is reasonable in order that you may ackno ledge the Church as the superior and guide of the universe, and likewise the holy father called the Pope, in his own right, and his Majesty, by his appointment, as King and sovereign lord of these Islands, and of the Tierra Firme ; and that you consent that the aforesaid holy fathers shall declare and preach to you the doctrines above mentioned. If you do this, you act well, and perform that to which you are bound and obliged ; and His Majesty, and I in his name, will receive you with love and kindness, and will leave you, your wives and children, free and exempt from servitude, and in the enjoyment of all you possess, in the same manner as the inhabitants of the islands. Besides this. His Majesty will bestow upon you many privileges, exemptions, and rewards. But if you will not comply, or maliciously delay to obey my injunction, then, with the help of God, I will enter your country by force, I will carry on war against you with the utmost violence, I will subject von to the yoke of obedience to the Church and King, I \\ ill take your wiveS and children, and will make them slaves, and sell or dispose of them according to His Majesty's pleasure; I will seize your goods, and do you all the mischief in my power, as rebellious subjects, who will not acknowledge or submit to their lawful sovereign. And I protest, that all the bloodshed and calamities which shall follow are to be imputed to you, and not to His Majesty, or to me, or the gentlemen who serve under me ; and as I have now made this declara- tion and requisition unto you, I require the notary here present to grant me a certificate of this, subscribed in proper form." Herrera, dec. 1. lib. vii. c. 14. Note [24]. Page 105. Balboa, in his letter to the king, observes that of the hundred and ninety men whom he took with him, there were never above eighty fit for service at one time. So much did they suffer from hunger, fatigue, and sickness. Her- rera, dec. 1. lib. X. c. 16. P. Mart, decad. 226. Note [25]. Page 110. FoNSECA, Bishop of Palencia, the principal director of American Affairs, had eight hundred Indians in property ; the commendator Lope de Conchillos, his chief associate in that department, eleven hundred ; and other favourites had considerable numbers. They sent overseers to the islands, and hired out those slaves to the planters. Herrera, dec. 1. lib. ix. c. 14. p. 325. Note [26]. Page 119. Though America is more plentifully supplied with water than the other regions of the globe, there is no river or stream of water in Yucatan. Thin NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 461 peninsula projects from the continent a hundred leagues, but, where broadest, does not extend above twenty-five leagues. It is an extensive plain, not only without mountains, but almost without any inequality of ground. T e in- habitants are supplied with water from pits, and, wherever they dig them, find it in abundance. It is probable, from all those circumstances, that this country was formerly covered by the sea. Herrerae Descriptio Indiee Occidentalis, p. 14. Histoire Naturelle, par M. de Buffon, torn. i. p. 593. Note [27]. Page 120. M. Clavigero censures me for having represented the Spaniards who sailed with Cordova and Grijalva, as fancying in the warmth of their imagination, that they saw cities on the coast of Yucatan adorned with towers and cupolas. I know not what translation of my history he has consulted (for his quotation from it is not taken from the original), but I never imagined that any building erected by Americans could suggest the idea of a cupola or dome, a structure which their utmost skill in architecture was incapable of rearing. My words are, that they fancied the villages which they saw from their ships " to be cities adorned with towers and pinnacles." By pinnacles I meant some eleva- tion above the rest of the building ; and the passage is translated almost literally from Herrera, dec. 2. lib. iii. c. 1. In almost all the accounts of new countries given by the Spanish discoverers in that age, this warmth of admira- tion is conspicuous ; and led them to describe these new objects in the most splendid terms. When Cordova and his companions first beheld an Indian village of greater magnitude than any they had beheld in the islands, they dig- nified it by the name of Grand Cairo. 6. Diaz, c. 2. From the same cause Grijalva and his associates thought the country, along the coast of which they held their course, entitled to the name of New Spain. Note [28]. Page 123. The height of the most elevated point in the Pyrenees is, according to M. Cassini, six thousand six hundred and forty-six feet. The height of the moun- tain Gemmi, in the canton of Berne, is ten thousand one hundred and ten feet. The height of the Peak of Teneriffe, according to the measurement of P. Feuill^, is thirteen thousand one hundred and soventy-eight feet. The height of Chimborazo, the most elevated point of the Andes, is twenty thousand two hundred and eighty feet ; no less than seven thousand one hundred and two feet above the highest mountain in the ancient continent. Voyage de D. Juan Ulloa, Observations Astron. et Physiq. torn. ii. p. 114. The line of con- gelation on Chimborazo, or that part of the mountain which is covered per- petually with snow, is no less than two thousand four hundred feet from its summit. Prevot Hist. G^n6r. des Voyages, vol. xiii. p. 636. Note [29]. Page 123. As a particular description makes a stronger impression than general asser- lions, I shall give one of Rio de la Plata by an eye-witness, P. Cattanco, a Modenese Jesuit, who landed at Buenos Ay res in 1749, and thus represents what he felt when such new objects were first presented to his view. " While 1 resided in Europe, and read in books of history or geography, that the mouth of the river de la Plata was a hundred and fifty miles in breadth, I considered it as an exaggeration, because in this hemisphere we have no example of such vast rivers. When I approached its mouth, I had the most vehement desire to ascertain the truth with my own eyes ; and I found the matter to be exactly as it was represented. This I deduce particularly from one circumstance : When we took our departure from Monte Video, a fort situated more than a hundred miles from the mouth of the river, and where its breadth is considerably di- minished, we sailed a complete day before we discovered the land on the op- posite bank of the river ; and when we were in the middle of the channel, we could not discern land on cither side, and saw nothing but the sky and water as if we had been in some great ocean. Indeed we should have taken it to be «pa, 462 xNOTKS AND ILLUSTRATIONS. if the frcsli water of the river, which was turbid hke the Po, had not satisfied UB that it was a river. Moreover, at Buenos Ayres, another hundred miles up the river, and where it is still much narrower, it is not only impossible to discern the opposite coast, which is indeed very low, but perceive the houses or the tops of the steeples in the Portuguese settlement at Colonia on the other side of the river." Lettera prima, published by Muratori, 11 Christianesimo Felice, &c. i. p. 257. Note [30]. Page 124. Newfoundland, part of Nova Scotia, and Canada, are the countries which lie in the same parallel of latitude with the Kingdom of France ; and in every part of these the water of the rivers is frozen during winter to the thick- ness of several feet ; the earth is covered with snow as deep ; almost all the birds fly during that season from a climate where they could not live. The country of the Eskimaux, part of Labrador, and the countries on the south of Hudson's Bay, are in the same parallel with Great Britain ; and yet in all these the cold is so intense that even the industry of Europeans has not at- tempted cultivation. Note [31]. Page 125. AcosTA is the first philosopher, as far as I know, who endeavoured to ac- count for the different degrees of heat in the old and new continents, by the agency of the winds which blow in each. Histoire Moral. &c. lib. ii. and iii. M. de Buffon adopts this theory, and has not only improved it by new observa- tions, but has employed his amazing powers of descriptive eloquence in em- bellishing and placing it in the most striking light. Some remarks may be added, which tend to illustrate more fully a doctrine of much importance in every inquiry concerning the temperature of various climates. When a cold wind blows over land, it must in its passage rob the surface of some of its heat. By means of this the coldness of the wind is abated. But if it continue to blow in the same direction, it will come, by degrees, to pass over a surface already cooled, and will suffer no longer any abatement of its own keenness. Thus, as it advances over a large tract of land, it brings on all the severity of intense frost. Let the same wind blow over an extensive and deep sea ; the superficial water must be immediately cooled to a certain degree, and the wind propor- tionally warmed. But the superficial and colder water, becoming specifically heavier than the warmer water below it, descends ; what is warmer supplies its place, which, as it comes to be cooled in its turn, continues to warm the air v/hich passes over it, or to diminish its cold. This change of the superficial water and successive ascent of that which is warmer, and the consequent suc- cessive abatement of coldness in the air, is aided by the agitation caused in the sea by the mechanical action of the wind, and also by the motion of the tides. This will go on, and the rigour of the wind will continue to diminish until the whole water is so far cooled, that the water on the surface is no longer removed from the action of the wind fast enough to hinder it from being arrested by frost. Whenever the surface freezes, the wind is no longer warmed by the water from below, and it goes on with undiminished cold. From those principles may be explained the severity of winter frosts in ex- tensive continents; their mildness in small islands; and the superior rigour of winter in those parts of North America with which we are best acquainted. In the north-west parts of Europe, the severity of winter is mitigated by the west winds, which usually blow in the months of November, December, and part of January. On the other hand, when a warm wind blows over land, it heats the surface, which must therefore cease to abate the fervour of the wind. But the same wind blowing over water, agitates it, brings up the colder water from below, and thus is continually losing somewhat of its own heat. But the great power of the sea to mitigate the heat of the wind or air passing over it, proceeds from the following cii'cumstance : — that on account of the NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 463 transparency of the sea, its surface cannot be heated to a great degree by the sun's rays; whereas the ground, subjected to their influence, very soon acquires great heat. When, therefore, the wind blows over a torrid continent, it is soon raised to a heat ahnost intolerable ; but during its passage over an exten- aive ocean, it is gradually cooled ; so that on its arrival at the furthest shore it is again fit for respiration. Those principles will account for the sultry heats of large continents in the torrid zone : for the mild climate of islands in the same latitude ; and for the superior warmth in summer which large continents, situated in the temperate or colder zones of the earth, enjoy when compared with that of islands. The heat of a climate depends not only upon the immediate effect of the sun's rays, but on their continued operation, on the effect which they have formerly produced, and which remains for some time in the ground. This is the reason why the day is warmest about two in the afternoon, the summer warmest about the middle of July, and the winter coldest about the middle of January. The forests which cover America, and hinder the sunbaems from heating the ground, are a great cause of the temperate climate in the equatorial parts. The ground, not being heated, cannot heat the air ; and the leaves, which receive the rays intercepted from the ground, have not a mass of matter sufficient to absorb heat enough for this purpose. Besides, it is a known fact, that the vege- tative power of a plant occasions a perspiration from the leaves m proportion to the heat to which they are exposed : and, from the nature of evaporation, this perspiration produces a cold in the leaf proportional to the perspiration. Thus the effect of the leaf in heating the air in contact with it is prodigiously diminished. For those observations, which throw much additional light on tliis curious subject, I am indebted to my ingenious friend, Mr. Robison, pro- fessor of natural philosophy in the university of Edinburgh. Note [32]. Page 125. The climate of Brazil has been described by two eminent naturalists, Piso and Margrave, who observed it with a philosophical accuracy for which we search in vain in the accounts of many other provinces in America. Both represent it as temperate and mild when compared with the climate of Africa. They ascribe this chiefly to the refreshing wind which blows continually from the sea. The air is not only cool, but chilly through the night, insomuch that the natives kindle fires every evening in their huts. Piso deMedicina Brasiliensi, lib. i. p. 1, &c. Margravius Histor. Rerum Natural. Brasilise, lib. viii. c. 3. p. 264. Nieuhoff. who resided long in Brazil, confirms their description. Churchill's Collection, vol. ii. p. 26. Gumilla, who was a missionary many years among the Indians upon the river Oronoco, gives a similar description of the tempera- ture of the climate there. Hist, de TOronoque, torn. i. p. 26. P. Acugna felt a very considerable degree of cold in the countries on the banks of the river AmazoHS. Relat. vol. ii. p. 56. M. Biet, who lived a considerable time in Cayenne, gives a similar account of the temperature of that climate, and asoribes it to the same cause. Voyage de la France, Equinox, p. 330. Nothing can be more different from these descriptions than that of the burning heat of the African coast given by M. Adanson. Voyage to Senegal, passim. Note [33]. Page 126. Two French frigates were sent upon a voyage of discovery in the year 1739. In latitude 44° south, they began to feel a considerable degree of cold. In latitude 48°, they met with Islands of floating ice. Hiatoire des Navigations aux Terres Australes, tom. ii. p. 256, &c. Dr. Halley fell in with ice in latitude 59°. Id. tom. i. p. 47. Commodore Byron, \vh?n on the coast of Patagonia, latitude 50° 33' south, on the fifteenth of December, which is midsummer in that part of the globe, the twenty-first of December being the longest day there, compares the climate to that of England in the middle of winter. Voyages by Hawkesworth, i. 25. Mr. Banks having landed on Terra del Fuego, in the Bay of Good Success, latitude 55°, on the sixteenth of January, "which, corresponds to the month of July in our hemisphere, two of his attend- 464 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. ants died in one night of extreme cold, and all the party were in the most imminent danger of perishing. Id. li. 31,52. By the fourteenth of March, correspondmg to September in our hemisphere, winter was set in with rigouTi and the mountains were covered with snow. Ibid. 72. Captain Cook, in hia voyage towards the South Pole, furnishes new and striking instances of the extraordinary predominance of cold in this region of the globe. " Who would have thought (says he) that an island of no greater extent than seventy leagues in circuit, situated between the latitude of 54° and 55°, should in the very height of summer be, in a manner, wholly covered, many fathoms deep, with frozen snow ; but more especially the S. VV. coast? The very summits of the lofty mountains were cased with snow and ice ; but the quantity that lay in the valleys is incredible ; and at the bottom of the bays, the coast was ter- minated by a wall of ice of considerable height." Vol. ii. p. 217. In some places of the ancient continent, an extraordinary degree of cold prevails in very low latitudes. Mr. Bogle, in his embassy to the court of the Delai Lama, passed the winter of the year 1774, at Chamnanning, in latitude 31° 39' N. He often found the thermometer in his room twenty-nine degrees under the freezing point by Fahrenheit's scale : and in the middle of April the standing waters were all frozen, and heavy showers of snow frequently fell. The extraordinary elevation of the country seems to be the cause of this ex- cessive cold. In travelling from Indostan to Thibet, the ascent to the sum- mit of the Boutan Mountains is very great, but the descent on the other side is not in equal proportion. The kingdom of Thibet is an elevated region, ex- tremely bare and desolate. Account of Thibet, by Mr. Stewart, read in the Ro}'al Society, p. 7. The extraordinary cold in low latitudes in America cannot be accounted for by the same cause. Those regions are not remarkable for elevation. Some of them are countries depressed and level. The most obvious and probable cause of the superior degree of cold towards the southern extremity of America, seems to be the form of the continent there. Its breadth gradually decreases as it stretches from St. Antonio southwards, and I'rom the bay of St. Julian to the Straits of Magellan its dimensions are much contracted. On the east and west sides it is washed by the Atlantic and Pacific Oceans. From its southern point it is probable that a great extent of sea, without any considerable tract of land, reaches to the Antarctic pole. In whichever of these directions the wind blows, it is cooled before it approaches the Magellanic regions, by passing over a vast body of water ; nor is the land there of such extent, that it can recover any considerable degree of heat in its progress over it. These circumstances concur in rendering the temperature of the air in this district of America more similar to that of an insular, than to that of a continental climate, and hinder it from acquiring the same degree of summer heat with places in Europe and Asia in a correspondent northern lati- tude. The north wind is the only one that reaches this part of America, after blowing over a great continent. But from an attentive survey of its position, this will be found to have a tendency rather to diminish than augn;ent the degree of heat. The southern extremity of America is properly the termina- tion of the immense ridge of the Andes, which stretches nearly in a direct line from north to south, through the whole extent of the continent. The most sultry regions in South America, Guiana, Brazil, Paraguay, and Tucuman, lie many degrees to the east of the Magellanic regions. The level country of Peru, which enjoys the tropical heats, is situated considerably to the west of them. The north wind then, though it blows over land, does not bring to the southern extremity of America an increase of heat collected in its passage over torrid regions ; but before it arrives there, it must have swept along the summits of the Andes, and becomes impregnated with the cold of that frozen recion. Though it be now demonstrated that there is no southern continent in that region of the globe which it was supposed to occupy, it appears to bo certain from Captain Cook's discoveries, that there is a large tract of land near the south pole, which is the source of most of the ice spread over the vast southern ocean. Vol. ii. p. 230. 239, &c. Whether the influence of this remote frozen continent may reach the southern extremity of America, and affect its climate, re an inquiry not unworthy of attention. NOTES AND ILLUSTKATlOiNS. 165 Note ^M]. Page 127. M. CoNDAMiNE is 0116 of the latest and most accurate observers of the in- terior state of South America. " After descending from the Andes (says he.) one beholds a vast and uniform prospect of water and verdure, and nothing more. One treads upon the earth, but does'not see it ; as it is so eutiroly covered with luxuriant plants, weeds, and shrubs, that it would require a cou-- siderable degree of labour to clear it for the space of a foot." Relation ahre- gee d'un Voyage, &c. p. 48. One of the singularities in the forests is a sort of osiers, or withes, called bejucos by the Spaniards, lianes by the French, and rubbcs by the Indians, which are usually employed as ropes in America. This is one of the parasitical plants, which twists about the trees it meets with, and rising above their highest branches, its tendrils descend perpendicularly, strike into the ground, take root, rise up around another tree, and thus mount and descend alternately. Other tendrils are carried obliquely by the wind, or some accident, and form a confusion of interwoven cordage, which resembles the rigging of a. ship. Bancroft, Nat. Hist, of Guiana, 99. These withes are often as thick as the arm of a man. Id. p. 75. M. Boguer's account of the forests in Peru perfectly resembles this description. Voyages au Peru, p. 16. Oviedo gives a eimilar description of the forests in other parts of America. Hist. lib. ix. p, 144. D.. The country of the Moxos is so much overflowed, that they arc obliged to reside on the summit of some rising ground during some part of tho year, and have no communication with their countrymen at any distance. Lettres Edifiantes, tom. x. p. 187. Garcia gives a full and just description of tho rivers, lakes, woods, and marshes in those countries of America which lie between the tropics. Origcn de los Indios, lib. ii. c. 5. § 4, 5. The incredible hardships to which Gonzalez Pizarro was exposed in attempting to march into the countiy to the east of the Andes, convey a very striking idea of that part of America in its original uncultivated state. Garcil. de la Vega, Roval Com- ment, of Peru, part ii. book iii. c. 2 — 5. Note [35]. Page 128. The animals of America seem not to have been always of a size inferior tci fhosc in other quarters of the globe. From antlers of the moose-deer which have been found in America, it appears to have been an animal of great size. Near the banks of the Oliio, a considerable number of bones of an immense magnitude have been found. The place where this discovery has been made lies about one hundred and ninety miles below the junction of the river Scioto with the Ohio. It is about four miles distant from tlie banks of the latter, on the side of the marsh called the Salt lick. The bones lie in vast quantities about five or six feet under ground, and the stratum is visible in the bank on tlie edge of the Lick. Journal of Colonel George Croglan, MS. jiencs me. This spot seems to be accurately laid down by Evans in his map. These bones must have belonged to animals of enormous bulk ; but naturalists being ac- quainted with no living creature of such size, were at first inclined to think that they were mineral substances. Upon receiving a greater number of speci- mens, and after inspecting them more narrowly, they are now allowed to be the bones of an animal. As the elephant is the largest known quadruped, and the tusks wnich were found, nearly resembled, both in form and quality, the tusks of an elephant, it was concluded that the carcasses deposited on the Ohio were of that species. But Dr. Hunter, one of the persons of our ago best qualified to decide with respect to this point, having accurately examined several parcels of tusks, and grinders, and jaw-bones, sent from the Ohio to London, gives it as his opinion that they did not belong to an elephant, but to some huge carnivorous animal of an unknown species. Phil. Transact, vol. Iviii. p. 34. Bones of the same kind, and as remarkable for their size, havo been found near the mouths of the great rivers Oby, Jeniseia, and Lena in Siberia. Strnhlenberg, Descript. of J^orth and East Paris of Europe and Jisia. p. 402, &c. The olpphant seems to be confined in his range to tlie tprrid zone. Vol. I,— 59 4SS NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. and never multiplicB beyond it. In such cold region? as those bordering on the frozen sea, lie could not live. The existence of such large animals in America, might open a wide field for conjecture. The more we contemplate the face of nature, and consider the variety of her productions, the more we must be satisfied that astonishing changes have been made in the terraqueous globe by convul- sions and revolutions, of which no account is preserved in liistory. Note [36]. Page 128. This degeneracy of the domestic European animals in America may be im- puted to some of these causes. In the Spanish settlements, which are situated either within the torrid zone, or in countries bordering upon it, the increase of heat and diversity of food prevent sheep and horned cattle from attaining the same size as in Europe. They seldom become so fat, and their flesh is not so juicy, or of such delicate flavour. In North America, where the climate is more favourable, and similar to that of Europe, the quahty of the grasses which spring up naturally in their pasture grounds is not good. Mitchell, p. 151. Agriculture is still so much in its infancy, that artificial food for cattle is not raised in any quantity. During a winter, long in many provinces, and rigo- rous in all, no proper care is taken of their cattle. The general treatment of their horses and horned cattle is injudicious and harsh in all the English colonies. These circumstances contribute more, perhaps, than any thing peculiar in tho quality of the climate, to the degeneracy of breed in the horses, cows, and sheep of many of the North American provinces. TE [37]. Page 128. In the year 1518, the island of Hispaniola was afflicted with a dreadful visita- tion of those destructive insects, the particulars of which Herrera' describes, and mentions a singular instance of the superstition of the Spanish planters. After trying various methods of exterminating the ants, they resolved to im- plore protection of the saints ; but as the calamity was new, they were at a loss to find out the saint who could give them the most effectual aid. They cast lots in order to discover the patron whom they should invoke. The lots de- cided in favour of St. Saturninus. They celebrated his festival with great solemnity, and immediately, adds the historian, the calamity began to abats. Herrera, dec. 2. lib. iii. c. 15. p. 107. Note [38]. Page 1-29. The author of Recherches Philosophiques sur les Americains supposes this difference in heat to be equal to twelve degrees, and that a place thirty degrees from the equator in the old continent is as warm as one situated eighteen degrees from it in America, torn. i. p. 11. Dr. Mitchell, after observations carried on during thirty years, contends that the difference is equal to fourteen or fifleen degrees of latitude. Present State, &c. p. 257. Note [39]. Page 129. January 3d, 1765, Mr. Bertram, near the head of St. John's river, in East Florida, observed a frost so intense that in one night the ground was frozen an inch thick upon the banks of the river. The limes, citrons, and banana trees, at St. Augustin, were destroyed. Bertram's Journal, p. 20. Other instances of the extraordinary operations of cold in the southern provinces of North America are collected by Dr. Mitchell. Present State, p. 206, &c. February 7th, 1747, the frost at Charleston was so intense, that a person having carried two quart bottles of hot water to bed, in the morning they were split to pieces, and the water converted into solid lumps of ice. In a kitchen where there waa a fire, the water in a jar in which there was a live large eel, was frozen to the bottom. Almost all the orange and olive trees were destroyed. Description of Suuth Carolina, 8vo. Lond. 1761. NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 467 Note [40]. Page 129. A REMARKABLE instance of this occurs in Dutch Guiana, a country every Vrhere level, and so low, that during the rainy seasons it is usually covered with water near two feet in height. This renders the soil so rich, that on the surface, for twelve inches in depth, it is a stratum of perfect itianure, and as such has been transported to Barbadoes. On the banks of the Essequibo, thirty crops of ratan canes have been raised successively; whereas in the West Indian islands not more than two is ever expected from the richest land. The expedients by which the planters endeavour to diminish this excessive fertility of soil are va- rious, Bancroft, Nat. Hist, of Guiana, p. 10, Sic. Note [41]. Page 134. MuLLER seems to have believed, without sufficient evidence, that the Capo had been doubled, tom. i. p. 11, &c. ; and the imperial academy of St. Peters- burgh give some countenance to it by the manner in which l^schukotskoi-noss is laid down in their charts. But 1 am assured, from undoubted authority, that no Russian vessel has ever sailed round that cape ; and as the country of Tshutki is not subject to the Russian empire, it is very imperfectly known. Note [42]. Page 135. Were this the place for entering into a long and intricate geographical dis- quisition, many curious observations might arise from comparing the accounts of the two Russian voyages and the charts of their respective navigations. One remark is applicable to both. We cannot rely with absolute certainty on the position which they assign to several of the places which they visited. The Weather was so extremely foggy, that they seldom saw the sun or stars ; and the position of the islands and supposed continents was commonly determined by reckoning, not by observation. Behring and Tschirikow proceeded much further towards the east than Krenitzin. The land discovered by Behring, which he imagined to be part of the American continent, is in the 236th degree of longitude from the first meridian in the isle of Ferro, and in 58° 28' of latitude. Tschirikow came upon the same coast in longitude 241°, latitude 56°. Muller, i. 248, 249. The former must have advanced 60 degrees from the port of Petropawlowski, from which he took his departure, and the latter 65 degrees. But from the chart of Krenitzen's voyage, it appears that he did not sail further towards the east than to the 208th degree, and only 32 degrees from Petropaw- lowski. In 1741, Behring and Tschirikow, both in going and returning, held a course which was mostly to the south of that chain of islands, which they dis- covered ; and observing the mountainous and rugged aspect of the headlands which they descried towards the north, they supposed them to be promontories belonging to some part of the American continent, which, as they fancied, stretched as far south as the latitude 56. In this manner they are laid down in the chart published by Muller, and likewise in a manuscript chart drawn by a mate of Behring's ship, communicated to me by Mr. Professor Robison. But in 1769, Krenitzin, after wintering in the island Alaxa, stood so far towards the north in his return, that his course lay through the middle of what Behring and Tschirikow had supposed to be a continent, which he found to be an open sea, and that they had mistaken rocky isles for the headlands of a continent. It ie probable, that the countries discovered in 1741, towards the east, do not belong to the American continent, but are only a continuation of the chain of islands. The number of volcanos in this region of the globe is remarkable. There arc several in Karntchatka, and not one of the islands, great or small, as far as the Russian navigation extends, is without them. Many are actually purning, and the mountains in all bear marks of having been once in a state of eruption. Were I disposed to admit such conjectures as have found place in other inquiries concerning the peopling of America, I might suppose that this part of the earth, having manifestly suffered violent convulsions from earthquakes and 468 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Tolcanos, an isthmus, which may liavc formerly united Asia to America, has been broken, and formed into a cluBtcr of islands by the shock. It is sinfjular, tliat at the very time the Russian navigators were attempting to make diBcoveries in the north-west of America, the Spaniards were prose* cuting the same design from another quarter. In 1769, two small vessels sailed from Loretto in California to explore the coasts of the country to the nortli of tliat peninsula. They advanced no further than the port of Monte- Rcy, in latitude 3'6. But, in several successive expeditions fitted out from the port of St. Bias in New Galicia, the Spaniards have advanced as far as the latitude 5«. Gazeta de Madrid, March 19, and May 14, 1776. But as the journals of those voyages have not yet been published, I cannot compare their progress with that of the Russians, or show how near the navigators of the two nations have approached to each other. It is to be hoped that the enlight- ened minister who has now the direction of American affairs in Spain, will not witlihold this information from the public. Note [43]. Page 13G. Our knowledge of the vicinity of the two continents of Asia and AmericBj ^vhich was very imperfect when I published the History of America in the year 1777, is now complete. Mr. Coxe's account of the Russian Discoveries between Asia and America, printed in the year 1780, contains many curious and im- portant facts with respect to the various attempts of the Russians to open a com- munication with the New World. The history of the great voyage of Discovery, begun by Captain Cook in 1776, and completed by Captains Clerk and Gore, published in the year 1780, communicates all the information that the curiosity of mankind could desire with regard to this subject. At my request, my friend, Mr. Plaj'fair, Professor of Mathematics in the University of Edinburgh, has compared the narrative and charts of those illus- trious navigators with the more imperfect relations and maps of the Russians. The result of this comparison I communicate in his own words, with much greater confidence in his scientific accuracy, than I could have ventured to place in any observations which I myself might have made upon the subject. " The discoveries of Captain Cook in his last voyage have confirmed the conclusions which Dr. Robertson had drawn, and have connected together the facts from which they were deduced. They have now rendered it certain that Behring and Tschirikow touched on the coast of America in 1741. The former discovered land in latitude 58°, 28', and about 236° east from Ferro. He has given such a description of the Bay in which he anchored, and tlie high moun- tain to the westward of it 'vhich he call.s St. Elias, that though the account of his voyage is much abridged in the English translation. Captain Cook recognised the place as he sailed along the western coast of America in the year 1778. The isle of St. Hermogenes, near the mouth of Cook's river, Schumagins isles on the coast of Alashka, and Foggy Isle, retain in Captain Cook's chart the names which they had received from the Russian navigator. Cook's Voy. vol. ii. p. 347. " Tschirikow came upon the same coast about 2° 30' farther south than Beh- ring, near the Mount Edgecumbe of Captain Cook. " With regard to Krenitzin, we learn from Coxe's Account of the Russian Discoveries, that he sailed from the mouth of the Kamtchatka river with two ships in the year 1768. With his own ship he reached the island of Oonolashka, in which there had been a Russian settlement since the year 1762, where ho wintered probably in the same harbour or bay where Captain Cook afterwards anchored. The other ship wintered at Alashka, which was supposed to bo an island, though it be in fact a part of the American continent. Krenitzin accordingly returned without knowing that either of his ships had been on the coast of America ; and this is the more surprising, because Captain Cook has informed us that Alashka is understood to be a great continent, both by the Russians and the natives at Oonolashka. " According to Krenitzin, the ship which had wintered at Alashka had hardly sailed 30° to the eastward of the Jiarbour of St. Peter and St. Paul in Kamt- NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 469 c.liatka ; out. according lo the more accurate charts of Captain Cook, it had Bailed no less than 37° 17' to the eastward of that harbour. There is nearly the same mistake of 5^ iu tlie longitude which Krcnitzin assigns to Oonolashka. It is remarkable enough, that in the chart of those seas, put into the hand of Captain Cook by the Russians on that island, there was an error of the same kind, and very nearly of the same extent. " But what is of most consequence to be remarked on the subject is, that the discoveries of Captain Cook have fully verified Dr. Robertson's conjecture • that it is probable that future navigators in those seas, by steering farther to the north than Behring and Tschirikow or Krenitzin had done, may find that the continent of America approaches still nearer to that of Asia.' See p. 134. It has accordingly been found that these two continents, which, in the parallel of 53°, or that of the southern extremity of Alashka, are about four hundred leagues asunder, approach continually to one another as they streti;]i together toward the north, until, within less than a degree from the polar circle, they are terminated by two capes only thirteen leagues distant. The east capo of Asia is in latitude 66° 6' and in longitude 190° 22' east from Greenwich ; this western extremity of America, or Prince of Wales' Cape, is in latitude 65° 4G', and in longitude 191° 45'. Nearly in the middle of the narrow strait (Behring's Strait) which separates these capes, are the two islands of St. Diomede, from ■wliich both continents may be seen. Captain King informs us, that as he was sailing through this strait, July 5, 1779, the fog having cleared away, he enjoyed the pleasure of seeing from the ship the continents of Asia and Anjerica at the same moment, together with the islands of St. Dioracda lying between them. Cook's Voy. vol. iii. p. 244. " Beyond this point the strait opens towards the Arctic Sea, and the coasts of Asia and America diverge so fast from one another, that in the parallel of 69° they are more than one hundred leagues asunder. lb. p. 277. To the couth of the strait there are a number of islands, Clerk's, King's, Anderson's, izc, which, as well as those of St. Diomede, may have facilitated the migra- tions of the natives from the one continent to the other. Captain Cook, however, on the authority of the Russians at Oonolashka, and for other good reasons, has diminished the number of islands which had been inserted in former charts of the northern Archipelago. lie has also placed Alashka, or the promontory which stretches from the continent of America S. W. towards Kamtchatka, at the distance of five degrees of longitude farther from the coast of Asia than it was reckoned by the Russian navigators. " The geography of the Old and New World is therefore equally indebted to the discoveries made in this memorable voyage ; and as many errors have been corrected, and many deficiencies supplied, by means of these discoveries, so the accuracy of some former observations has been established. The basis of the map of the Russian empire, as far as regarded Kamtchatka, and the country of the Tschutzki, was the position of four places, Yakutsh, Ochotz, Bolcheresk, and Petropawlowski, which had been determined by the astronomer Krassilnicovv in the year 1744. Nov. Comment. Petrop. vol. iii. p. 465, &c. But the accuracy of his observations was contested byM. Engcl, and M. Robert de Vaugondy ; Coxe, Append, i. No. 2. p. 267. 272. and the former of these geographers ventured to take away no less than 28 degrees from the longitude, which, on the faith of Kras- silnicow's observations, was assigned to the eastern boundary of the Russian empire. With how little reason this w as done, will appear from considering that our British navigators, having determined the position of Petropawlowski by a great number of very accurate observations, found the longitude of that port 158° 43' E. from Greenwich, and its latitude 53° 1' ; agreeing, the first to less than seven minutes, and the second to less than half a minute, with the calculations of the Russian astronomer : a coincidence which, in tlie situation of so remote a place, does not leave an uncertainty of more than four Englisli miles, and which, for the credit of science, deserves to be particularly remarked. The chief error in the Russian maps lias been in not extending the boundaries of tliat empire sulFicicntly towards the cast. P'or as there was nothing to con- nect the land of the Tsclmtzki and tlie north-east point of Asia with those places whereof the position had been carefully asrjertaincd, except the imperfect awounts of Behring's and Synd'^s voyages, considerable errors roiild not fail to 470 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. he introduced, and that point was laid down as not more than 23° 2' east of the meridian of Petropawlowski. Coxe, App. i. No. 2. By the observationo of Captain King, the difference of longitude between Petropawlowski and the East Cape is 31° 9' ; that is 8° 7' greater than it was supposed to be by the Russian geographers." — It appears from Cook's and King's Voy. iii. p. 272, that the continents of Asia and America are usually joined together by ice during winter. Mr. Samwell confirms this account ot his superior ollicer. *' At this place, viz. near the latitude of 66° N. the two coasts are only thirteen leagues asunder, and about midway between them lie two islands, the distance from each to either shore is short of t\\enty miles. At this place th^ natives of Asia could find no difficulty in passing over to the opposite coast, which is in sight of their own. That in a course of years such an event would happen, either through design or accident, cannot admit of a doubt. The canoes which we saw among the Tschutzki were capable of performing a much longer voyage ; and, however rude they may have been at some distant period, we can scarcely suppose them unequal to a passage of six or seven leagues. People might liave been carried over by accident on floating pieces of ice. They might also have travelled across on sledges or on foot ; for we have reason to believe that the strait is entirely frozen over in the winter ; so that, during that season, the continents, with respect to the communication between them, may be con- sidered as one land." Letter from Mr. Samwell, Scot's Magazine for 1788, p. 604. It is probable that this interesting portion of geographical knowledge will, in the course of a few years, receive farther improvement. Soon after the publication of Captain Cook's last voyage, the great and enlightened Sovereign of Russia, attentive to every thing that may contribute to extend the bounds of science, or to render it more accurate, formed the plan of a new voyage of discovery, in order to explore those parts of the ocean lying between Asia and America, which Captain Cook did not visit, to examine more accu- rately the islands which stretch from one continent almost to the other, to sur- vey the north-east coast of the Russian empire, from the mouth of the Kovyma, or Kolyma, to the North Cape, and to settle, by astronomical observations, the position of each place worth notice. The conduct of this important enterprise is committed to Captain Billings, an English officer in the Russian service, of whose abilities for that station it will be deemed the best evidence, that he accompanied Captain Cook in his last voyage. To render the expedition more extensively useful, an eminent naturalist is appointed to attend Captain Billings. Six years will be requisite for accomplishing the purposes of the voyage. Coxe's Supplement to Russian Discoveries, p. 27, &c. Note [44]. Page 141. Few travellers have had such opportunity of observing the natives of Ame- i'ica, in its various districts, as Don Antonio Ulloa. In a work lately published by him, he thus describes the characteristical features of the race: "A very small forehead, covered with hair towards its extremities, as far as the middle of the eye-brows ; little eyes ; a thin nose, small and bending towards the upper lip ; the countenance broad ; the ears large ; the hair very black, lank, and coarse ; the limbs well turned, the feet small, the body of just proportion ; and altogether smooth and free from hair, until old age, when they acquire some beard, but never on the cheeks." Noticias Americanas, &c. p. 307. M. le Chevalier de Pinto, who resided several years in a part of America which Ulloa never visited, gives a sketch of the general aspect of the Indians there. " They are all of copper colour with some diversity of shade, not in proportion to their distance from the equator, but according to the degree of elevation of the territory which they inhabit. Those w ho live in a high country are fairer than those in the marshy low lands, on the coast. Their face is round, further removed, perhaps, than that of any people from an oval shape. Their forehead is small, the extremity of their ears far from the face, their lips thick, their nose flat, their eyes black, or of a chcsnut colour, small, but capable of discerning objects at a great distannc. Their hair is always thick and sleek, and without any tendency to curl. They have no hair on any part of their body but the head. At the first aspect a southern American appears to be mild and innocent. NOTES AND ILLLSTRATIONS. 471 hut on a more attentive view, one discovers in his countenance something wild, distrustful, and sullen." MS. pejies me. The two portraits drawn by hands Tcry different from those of common travellers, have a near resemblance. Note [45]. Page 141. Amazing accounts are given of the persevering speed of the Americans. Adair relates the adventures of a Chikkasah warrior, who ran through woods and Qver mountains, three hundred computed miles, in a day and a half and two nights. Hist, of Amer. Ind. 396. Note [46]. Page 143 M. GoDiN LE Jeune, who resided fifteen y»a « among the Indians of Peru and Quito, and twenty years in the French colony of Cayenne, in which thcro is a constant intercourse with the Galibis and other tribes on the Oronoco, ob- serves, that the vigour of constitution among the Americans is exactly. in pro- portion to their habits of labour. The Indians in warm climates, such as those on the coasts of the South Sea, on the river of Amazons, and the river Orinoco, are not to be compared for strength with those in cold countries ; and yet, says he, boats daily set out from Para, a Portuguese settlement on the river of Ama- zons, to ascend that river against the rapidity of tiie stream, and with the same crew they proceed to San Pablo, which is eight hundred leagues distant. No crew of white people, or even of Negroes, would be found equal to a task of euch persevering fatigue, as the Portuguese have experienced ; and yet tho Indians being accustomed to this labour from their infancy, perform it. MS. jaenes me. Note [47]. Page 145. Don Antonia Ulloa, who visited a great part of Peru and Chili, the king- dom of New Granada, and several of the provinces bordering on the Mexican Gulf, while employed in the same service with the French Mathematicians during the space of ten years, and who afterwards had an opportunity of viewing the North Americans, asserts " that if we have seen one American, we may be said to ha%'e seen them all, their colour and make are so nearly tho same." Notic. Americanas, p. 328. A more early observer, Pedro de Cieca de Leon, one of the conquerors of Peru, who had likewise traversed many provinces of America, affirms that the people, men and women, although there is such a multitude of tribes or nations as to be almost innumerable, and such diversity of climates, appear nevertheless like the children of one father and mother. ' Chronica del' Peru, parte i. c. 19. There is, no doubt, a certain com- bination of features, and peculiarity of aspect, which forms what may be called a European or Asiatic countenance. There must likewise be one that may he denominated American, common to the whole race. This may be supposed to strike the traveller at first sight, while not only the various shades, which dis- tinguish people of different regions, but the peculiar features which discriminate individuals, escape the notice of a transient observer. But when persons who had resided so long among the Americans concur in bearing testimony to the similarity of their appearance in every climate, we may conclude that it is more remarkable than that of any other race. See likewise Garcia Origen de los Indies, p. 54. 242. Torquemada Monarch. Indiana, ii. 571. Note [48]. Page 146. M. LE Chevalier de Pinto observes, that in the interior parts of Brazil, he had been informed that some persons resembling the white people of Darien had been found ; but that the breed did not continue, and their children became like other Americans. This race, however, is very imperfectly known. MS, penes me. •J72 NOTES AND IjuLUSTRATIONy. Note [49]. Page 147. -The testimonies of different travellers, concerning the Patagonians, hare been collected and stated with a considerable degree of accuracy by the author of Recherches Philosophiques, &c. torn. i. 281, &c. iii. 181, &c. Since the publication of his work, several navigators have visited the Magellanic regions, and like their predecessors, differ very widely in their accounts of its inhabitants. By Commodore Byron and his crew, who sailed through the Straits in ^764, the common size of the Patagonians was estimated to be eight feet, and many of them much taller. Phil. Transact, vol. Ivii. p. 78. By Captains Wallis and Carteret, wlio actually measured them in 1760, they were found to be from six feet to si.v feet five and seven inches in height. Phil. Trans, vol. Ix. p. 22. These, however, seem to have been the very people whose size had been rated so high in the year 1764 ; for several of them had beads and red baize of the same kind with what had been put on board Captain Wallis's ship, and he naturally concluded that they had got these from Mr. Byron. Hawkesw. i. In 1767 they were again measured by M. Bougamville, whose account differs little from that of Captain Wallis. Voy. 129. To these I shall add a testi- mony of great weight. In the year 1762, Don Bernardo Ibegnez de Echavarri accompanied the Marquis de Valdelirios to Buenos Ayres, and resided there fjeveral years. He is a very intelligent author, and his reputation for veracity unimpeached among his countrymen. In speaking of the country towards the southern extremity of America, " By what Indians," says he, " is it possessed? Not certainly by the fabulous Patagonians who are supposed to occupy this district. I have from many eye-witnesses, who have lived among those Indians, and traded much with them, a true and accurate description of their persons. They are of the same stature with the Spaniards. I never saw one who rose in height two varas and two or three inches," i. e. about 80 or 81'332 inches English, if Echavarri makes his computation according to the vara of Madrid. This agrees nearly with the measurement of Captain Wallis. Reyno Jesuitico, 238. Mr. Falkner, who resided as a missionary forty years in the southern parts of America, says that " the Patagonians, or Puelches, are a large bodied people ; but I never heard of that gigantic race which others have mentioned, though I liave seen persons of all the different tribes of southern Indians." Introd. p. 26. M. Dobrizhoffer, a Jesuit, who resided eighteen years in Para- guay, and who had seen great numbers of the various tribes which inhabit the countries situated upon the Straits of Magellan, confirms, in every point, the testimony of his brother missionary Falkner. Dobrizhoffer enters into some detail with respect to the opinions of several authors concerning the stature of the Patagonians. Having mentioned the reports of some early travellers with regard to the extraordinary size of some bones found on that coast which were supposed to be human ; and having endeavoured to show that these bones belonged to some large marine or land animal, he concludes, " de hisce ossibus crede quicquid libuerit, dummodo, nie suasore, Patagones pro gigantibus desinas habere." Hist, de Abissonibus, vol. ii. p. 19, &.c. Note [50]. Page 149 Antonio Sanciiks Ribeiro, a learned and ingenious physician, published a dissertation in the year 1765, in which he endeavours to prove that this disease was not introduced from America, but took its rise in Plurope, and was brought on by an epidemical and malignant disorder. Did I choose to enter into a dis- quisition on this subject, which I should not have mentioned if it had not i)een intimately connected with this part of my inquiries, it would not be difficult to point out some mistakes with respect to the facts upon which he founds, a^ well as some errors in the consequences which he draws from them. The rapid communication of this disease from Spain over Europe, seems however to vescmble the progress of an epidemic, rather than that of a disease transmitted by infection. Tiie first mention of it is in the year 1493, and before the year 1497, it had made its appearance in most countries of Europe,with such alarmiuif NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 473 svmptoms as rendered it necessary for the civil magistrate to interpose, in order to check its career. — Since the publication of this work, a second edition of Dr. Sanchez's Dissertation has been communicated to me. It contains several additional facts in confirmation of his opinion, which is supported with such plausible arguments, as render it a subject of inquiry well deserving the atten- tion of learned physicians. Note [51]. Page 150. . The people of Otaheite have no denomination for any number above two hundred, which is sufficient for their transactions. Voyages by Hawkesworth, ii. 228. Note [52]. Page 152. As the view which I have given of rude nations is extremely different from that exhibited by very respectable authors, it may be proper to produce some of the many authorities on which I found my description. The manners of the savage tribes in America have never been viewed by persons more capable of obBcrving them with discernment, than the philosophers employed by France and Spain, in the year 1735, to determine the figure of the earth. M: Bouguer, D. Antonio d'Ulloa, and D. Jorge Juan, resided long among the natives of the least civilized provinces in Peru. M. de la Condamine had not only the same advantages with them for observation, but, in his voyage down the Maragnon, he had an opportunity of inspecting the state of the various nations seated on its banks, in its vast course across t'he continent of South America. There is a wonderful resemblance in their representation of the character of the Ameri- cans. " They are all extremely indolent," says M Bouguer, " they are stupid ; they pass whole days sitting in the same place, without moving, or speaking a single word. It is not easy to describe the degree of their indifference for wealth, and all its advantages. One does not well know what motive to pro- pose to them, when one would persuade them to perform any service. It is vain to offer them money; they answer, that they are not hungry." Voyage au Perou, p. 102. " If one considers them as men, the narrowness of their understanding seems to be incompatible with the excellence of the soul. Their imbecility is so visible that one can hardly form an idea of them different from what one has of the brutes. Nothing di.sturbs the tranquillity of their souls, equally insensible to disasters and to prosperity. Though half naked, they are as contented as a monarch in his most splendid array. Riches do not attract them in the smallest degree, and the authority of dignities to which they may aspire are so little the objects of their ambition, that an Indian will receive with the same indifference the office of a judge (Alcade) or that of a hangman, if deprived of the former and appointed to the latter. Nothing can move or change them. Interest has no power over them, and they often refuse to perform a small service, though certain of a great recompense. Fear makes no impression upon them, and respect as little. Their disposition is so singular that there is no method of influencing them, no means of rousing them from that indifference which is proof against all the endeavours of the wisest persons; no expedient which can induce them to abandon that gross ignorance, or lay aside that careless negligence which disconcert the prudence and disappoint the care of such as are attentive to their welfare." Voyage d'Ulloa, torn. i. 335. 356. Of those singular qualities he produces many extraordinary instances, p. 336 — 347. " Insensibility," says M. de la Condamine, " is the basis of the American character. I leave others to determine, whether this should be dig^ nifiod with the name of apathy, or disgraced with that of stupidity. It arises, without doubt, from the small number of their ideas, which do not extend beyond their wants. Gluttons even to voracity, when they have wherewithal to satisfy their appetite.' Temperate, when necessity obliges them, to such a degree, that they can endure want without seeming to desire any thing. Pusil- lanimous and cowardly to excess, unless when they are rendered desperate by drunkenness Averse to labour, indifferent to every motive of glory, honour, or gratitude ; occupied entirely bv the object that is present, and always He- Vol.. I.— 60 474 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. termined by it alonej without any solicitude about futurity; incapable of fore- sight or of reflection ; abandoning themselves when under no restraint, to a, puerile joy, which they express by frisking about and immoderate fits of laugh- ter ; without object or design, they pass their lite without thinking, and grow old without advancing beyond childhood, of winch they retain all the defects. If this description were applicable only to the Indians in some provinces of Peru, who are slaves in every respect but the name, one might believe, that ihia degree ot' degeneracy svas occasioned by the servile dependence to which they are reduced ; the example of the modern Greeks being proof how far servitude may degrade the human species. But the Indians in the missions of the Jesuits, and the savages who still enjoy unimpaired liberty, being as limited in their faculties, not to say as stupid, as the other, one cannot observe without humilia- tion, that man, when abandoned to simple nature, and deprived of the ad- vantages resulting from education and society, differs but little from the brute creation." Voyage de la Kiv. de Amaz. 52, 33. M. de Chanvalon, an intelli- genj. and philosophical observer, who visited Martinico in 1751, and resided there six years, gives the following description of the Caraibs: "It is not the red colour of their complexion, it is not the singularity of their features, which constitutes the chief difference between them and us. It is their excessive sim- plicity : it is the limited degree of their faculties. Their reason is not mora enlightened or more provident than the instinct of brutes. The reason of the most gross peasants, that of the negroes brought up in the parts of Africa most remote from intercourse with Europeans, is such, that we discover ap- pearances of intelligence, which, though imperfect, is capable of increase. But of this the understanding of the Caraibs seems to be hardly susceptible. If sound philosophy and religion did not afford us their light, if we were to decide according to the first impression which the view of that people makes upon the mind, we should be disposed to believe that they do not belong to the samis species with us. Their stupid eyes are the true mirror of their souls ; it appears to be without functions. Their indolence is extreme ; they have never the least solicitude about the moment which is to succeed that which is present." Voyage k la Martinique, p. 44, 43. 31. M. de la Borde, Tertre, and Rochefort, confirm this description. " The characteristics of the Californians," says P. Venegas, " as well as of all other Indians, are stupidity and insensibility ; want of knowledge and reflection ; inconstancy, impetuosity, and blindness of appe- tite ; an excessive sloth, and abhorrence of all labour and fatigue ; an excessive love of pleasure and amusement of every kind, however trifling or brutal ; pusillanimity ; and, in fine, a most wretched want of every thing which con- stitutes the real man, and renders him rational, inventive, tractable, and useful to himself and society. It is not easy for Europeans, who never were out of tlieir own country, to conceive an adequate idea of those people ; for, even in the least frequented corners of the globe, there is not a nation so stupid, of such contracted ideas, and so weak both in body and mind, as the unhappy Californians. Their understanding comprehends little more than what they see ; abstract ideas, and much less a chain of reasoning, being far beyond their power ; so that they scarce ever improve tlieir first ideas, and these are in general false, or at least inadequate. It is in vain to represent to them any future advantages which will result to them from doing or abstaining from this or that particular immediately present ; the relation of means and ends being beyond the stretch of their faculties. Nor have they the least notion of pursuing such intentions as will procure themselves some future good, or guard them against future evils. Their aIII is proportional to their faculties, and all their passions move in a very narrow sphere. Ambition they have none, and are more desirous of being accounted strong than valiant. The objects of ambition with us, honour, fame, reputation, titles, posts, and distinctions of superiority, are unknown among them ; so that this powerful spring of action, the cause of so much seeming good and real evil in the world, has no power here. This disposition of mind, as it gives them up to" an amazing languor and lassitude, their lives fleeting away in a perpetual inactivity and detestation of labour, so it likewise induces them to be attracted by the first object which their own fancy, or the persuasion of another, places before them ; and at the same time renders them 3s prone to alter their resolutions with the same facility. NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 475 They look with indifFerence upon any kindness done them; nor is even the bare remembrance of it to be expected from them. In a word, the unhappy mortals may be compared to children, in whom the developemeut of reason is not completed. They may indeed be called a nation who never arrive at man- hood." Hist, of California, English Transl. i. 64. 67. Mr. Ellis gives a similar account of the want of foresight and inconsiderate disposition of the people adjacent to Hudson's Bay. Voyage, p. 194, 195. The incapacity of the Americans is so remarkable, that negroes from all the different provinces of Africa are observed to be more capable of improving by instruction. They acquire the knowledge of several particulars which the Americans cannot comprehend. Hence the negroes, though slaves, value them- selves as a superior order of beings, and look down upon the Americans with contempt, as void of capacity and of rational discernment. Ulloa Notic. Americ. 322, 323. Note [53]. Page 155. DoBRizHOFFER, the last traveller I know who has resided among any tribe of the ruder Americans, has explained so fully the various reasons which have induced their women to suckle their children long, and never to undertake rearing such as were feeble or distorted, and even to destroy a considerable number of their offspring, as to throw great light on the observations I have made, p. 144. 154. Hist, de Abissonibus, vol. ii. p. 107. 221. So deeply were these ideas imprinted in the minds of the Americans, that the Peruvians, a civilized people when compared with the barbarous tribes W'hose manners I am describing, retained them ; and even their intercourse with the Spaniards has not been able to root them out. When twins are born in any family, it is still considered as an ominous event, and the parents have recourse to rigorous acts of mortification, in order to avert the calamities with which they are threatened. When a child is born with any deformity, they will not, if they can possibly avoid it, bring it to be baptised, and it is with difficulty they can be brought to rear it. Arriaga Extirpac. de la Idolat. del Peru, p. 32, 33. Note [54]. Page 156. The number of the fish in the rivers of South America is so extraordinary as to merit particular notice. "In the Maragnon (says P. Acugna,) fish are so plentiful, that, without any art, they may take them with the hands." p. 138. " In the Orinoco (says P. Gumilla,) besides an infinite variety of other fish, tortoise or turtle abound in such numbers, that I cannot find words to express it. I doubt not but that such as read my account will accuse me of exaggera- tion : but I can affirm that it is as difficult to count them as to count the sands on the banks of that river. One may judge of their number by the amazing consumption of them ; for all the nations contiguous to the river, and even many who are at a distance, flock thither at the season of breeding, and not only find sustenance during that time, but carry off great numbers both of the turtles and of their eggs," &c. Hist, de TOrenoque, ii. c. 22. p. 59. M. de la Condamine confirms their accounts, p. 159. Note [55]. Page 156. Piso describes two of these plants, the Cururnape and the Guajana-Timho. It is remarkable, that though they have this fatal effect upon fishes, they are 80 far from being noxious to the human species, that they are used in medicine with success. Piso, lib. iv. c. 88. Bancroft mentions another, the Hiarree, a small quantity of which is sufficient to inebriate all the fish to a considerable distance, so that in a few minutes they float motionless on the surface of the water, and are taken with ease. Nat. Hist, of Guiana, p. 106. Note [56]. Page 157. Remarkable instances occur of the calamities which rude nations suffer by famine. Alvar Nugnez Cabcca de Vaca, one of tlie most gallant and virtuous 476 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. of the Spanish adventurers, resided almost nine years among the savages of Florida. They were unacquainted with every species of agriculture. Their subsistence was poor and precarious. " They live chiefly (says he) upon roots of different plante, which they procure with great difficulty, wandering from place to place in search of them. Sometimes they kill game, sometimes they catch hsh, but in such small quantities, that their hunger is so extreme as com- pels them 10 eat spiders, the eggs of ants, worms, Uzards, serpents, a kind of unctuous earth, and, 1 am persuaded, that if in this country there were stones, they would swallow these. They preserve the bones of fishes and serpents, which they grind into powder and eat. The only season when they do not suffer much from famine, is when a certain fruit, which he calls Tunas, is ripe. This is the same with the Opuntia, or prickly pear, of a reddish and yellow colour, with a sweet insipid taste. They are sometimes obliged to travel far from their usual place of residence in order to find them. Naufragios, c. xviii. p. 20, 21, 22. In another place he observes, that they are frequently reduced to pass two or three days without food, c. xxiv. p. 27. Note [57]. Page 158. M. Fermin has given an accurate description of the two species of manioc, with an account of its culture, to which he has added some experiments, in order to ascertain the poisonous qualities of the juice extracted from that species which he calls the bitter cassava. Among the Spaniards it is known by the name of Yuca brava. Descr. de Surin. torn. i. p. 66. Note [58]. Page 158. The plantain is found m Asia and Africa, as well as in America. Oviedo contends, that it is not an indigenous plant of the New World, but was intro- duced into the Island of Hispaniola, in the year 1516, by Father Thomas de Berlanga, and that he transplanted it from the Canary Islands, whither the original slips had been brought from the East Indies. Oviedo, lib. viii. c. 1. But the opinion of Acosta and other naturalists, who reckon it an American plant, seems to be better founded. Acosta Hist. Nat. lib. iv. 21^ It was culti- vated by rude tribes in America, who had little intercourse with the Spaniards, and who were destitute of that ingenuity which disposes men to borrow what is useful from foreign nations. Gumil. iii. 186. Wafer's Voyage, p. 87. Note [59]. Page 159. It is remarkable that Acosta, one of the most accurate and best informed writers concerning the West Indies, affirms that maize, though cultivated in the continent, was not known in the islands, the inhabitants of wliich had none but cassada bread. Hist. Nat. lib. iv. c. 16. But P. Martyr, in the first book of his first Decad, which was written in the year 1493, upon the return of Columbus from his first voyage, expressly mentions maize as a plant which the islanders cultivated, and of which they made bread, p. 7. Gomara likewise asserts that they were acquainted with the culture of maize. Histor. Gener. cap. 28. Oviedo describes maize without any intimation of its being a plant that was not natural to Hispaniola. Lib. vii. c. 1. Note [60]. Page 161. New Holland, a country which formerly was only known, has lately been visited by intelligent observers. It lies in a region of the globe where it must enjoy a very favourable climate, as it stretches from the 10th to the 38th degree of southern latitude. It Is of great extent, and from its square form must be much more than equal to all Europe. The people who inhabit the various parts of it appear to be of one race. They are evidently ruder than most of tlio Americans, and have made still less progress in in]])rovement and the arts of life. There is not the least appearance of cultivation in any part of this vast region. The inhabitants arc extremely few. so that tbo country appears iNOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 477 almost desolate. Their tribes are still more inconsiderable than those of America. They depend for subsistence almost entirely on fishing. They do not settle in one place, but roam about in quest of food. Both sexes go stark naked. Their habitations, utensils, &c. are more simple and rude than those of the Americans. Voyages, by Hawkes worth, iii. 6'22, &Lc. This, perhaps, is the country where man has been discovered in the earliest stage of his pro- gress, and exhibits a miserable specimen of his condition and powers in that uncultivated state. If this country shall be more fully explored by future navigators, the comparison of the manners of its inhabitants with those of the Americans will prove an instructive article in the history of the luiman species. Note [61]. Page 161. P. Gabriel Marest, who travelled from his station among the Illinois to Michilimackinac, thus describes the face of the country: — "We have marched twelve days without meeting a single human creature. Sometimes we found ourselves in vast meadow s, of which we could not see the boundaries, through which there flowed many brooks and rivers but without any path to conduct us. Sometimes we were obliged to open a passage across thick forests, through bushes, and underwood filled with briars and thorns. Sometimes we had to pass through deep marshes, in which we sunk up to the middle. After being fatigued through the day, we had the earth for our bed, or a few leaves, ex- posed to the wind, the rain, and all the injuries of the air." Lettr. Edifiantes, ji. 360. Dr. Bicknell, in an excursion from North Carolina towards the moun- tains, A. D. 1730, travelled fifteen days without meeting with a human creature, Nat. Hist, of North Carolina, 389. Diego de Ordas, in attempting to make a settlement in South America, A. D. 1532, marched fifty days through a country without one inhabitant. Herrera, dec. 5. lib. i. c. 11. Note [62]. Page 162. I STRONGLY suspcct that a community of goods, and an undivided store, are knowTi only among the rudest tribes of hunters ; and that as soon as any spe- cies of agriculture or regular industry is known, the idea of an exclusive right of property to the fruits of them is introduced. I am confirmed in this opi- nion by accounts which I have received concerning the state of property among the Indians in very different regions of America. " The idea of the natives of Brazil concerning property is, that if any person cultivate a field, he alone ought to enjoy the produce of it, and no other has a title to pretend to it. If an individual or family go a hunting or fishing, what is caught belongs to the individual or to the family, and they communicate no part of it to any but to their cazique, or to such of their kindred as happen to be indisposed. If any person in the village come to their hut, he may sit down freely, and eat without asking liberty. But this is the consequence of their general principle of hos- pitality; for I never observed any partition of the increase of their fields, or the produce of the chase, which I could consider as the fesult of any idea con- cerning a community of goods. On the contrary, they are so much attached to what they deem to be their property, that it would be extremely dangerous to encroach upon it. As far as I can see or can learn, there is not one tribe of Indians in South America among whom the community of goods which has been so highly extolled is known. The circumstance in the government of the Jesuits, most irksome to the Indians of Paraguay, was the community of goods which those fathers introduced. This was repugnant tloy for the same purpose a composition which they call Yvpa. It is forme lo 20,000 inhabitants, and fourteen depending villages. The district of Atuasi, between 5 and 60(X) iiilutljitants, and four depending villages. Tlic city of Cnenza, between 25 and 1{0,001) inhabitants, and nine populous depending villages. The town of Laxa, from !J to 10,000 inhabitants, and fourteen de- pending villages. This degree of population, Ihough slender if we consider llie vast extent of the country, is far beyond what is conunonly supposed. I' have omitted to mention, in its proper place, that Quito is the only province in {Spanish America that can be denominated a manufacturing country ; hats, cotton stuffs, and coarse woollen cloths are made there in such quantities as to be sufficient not only for the consumption of tlie province, but to furnish a con- siderable article for exportation into other parts of Spanish America. 1 know not whether the uncommon industry of this province should be considered as the cause or the effect of its populousness. But among the ostentatious in- )iabitants of the New World, the passion for every thing that comes from Europe is so violent, that I am informed the manufactures of Quito are so much undervalued as to be on the decline. Note [170]. Page 352, These are established at the following places : — St. Domingo in the island of Hispaniola, Mexico in New Spain, Lima in Peru, Panama in Tierra Firme, Santiago in Gnatimala, Guadalaxara in New Galicia, Santa Fe in the New Kingdom of Granada, La Plata in the country of Los Charcas, St. Francisco de Quito, St. Jago de Chili, Buenos Ayres. To each of these are subjected several large provinces, and some so far removed from the cities where the courts are fixed, that they can derive little benefit from their jurisdiction. The Spanish writers commonly reckon up twelve Courts of Audience, but they in- clude that of ' Manilla, in the Philippiae islands. Note [171]. Page 354. On account of the.distance of Peru and Chili from Spain, and the di/Kculfy of carrying commodities of such bulk as wine and oil across the isthmus of Panama, the Spaniards in those provinces have been permitted to plant vines and olives : but they are strictly prohibited from exporting wine or oil to any of the provinces on the Pacific Ocean, which are in such a situation as to re- ceive them from Spain. Recop. lib. i. tit. xvii, 1. 15 — 18. Note [172]. Page 355, This computation was made by Benzoni, A. D. 1550, fifty-eight }'ears after the discovery of America. Hist. Novi Orbis, lib. iii. c. 21. But as Benzoni wrote with the spirit of a malecontent, disposed to detract from the Spaniards in every particular, it is probable that his calculation is considerably too low. Note [173]. Page 355. My information with respect to the division and transmission of property iu the Spanish colonies is imperfect. The Spanish authors do not explain this fully, and have not perhaps attended sufficiently to the effects of their own in- stitutions and laws. Solorzano de Jure Ind. (vol. ii. lib. ii. 1. 16.) explains in Pome measure the introduction of the teimre of Mayorasgo, and mentions some of its effects. Villa Segnor takes notice of a singular consequence of it. Jle observes, that in some of the best situations in the city of Mexico, a good deal of ground is unoccupied, or covered only with the ruins of the houses once erected upon it ; and adds, that as this ground is held by right of Mayo- rafgo, and cannot be alienated, that desolation and those ruins become perpetual. Teatr. Amer. vol. i. p. 134. Note [174]. Page 35C. There is no law that excludes Creoles from offices either civil or ecclesiastic. On the contrarj', there arc nianv Cedukif, whicli recommend the confi^rring Vol. I.— ^3 614 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. places of trust indiscriminately on the natives of Spain and America. Betaii- court y Figueroa Derecho, &c. p. 5, 6. But, notwithstanding such repeated recommendations, preferment in almost every line is conferred on native Spaniards. A remarkable proof of this is produced by the author last quoted. From the discovery of America to the year 1637, three hundred and sixty-nine bishops, or archbishops, have been appointed to the different diocesses in that country, and of all that number only twelve were Creoles, p. 40. This predi- lection for Europeans seems still to continue. By a royal mandate, issued in 1776, the chapter of the cathedral of Mexico is directed to nominate European ecclesiastics of known merit and abilities, that the King may appoint them ta supply vacant benefices. MS. penes me. Note [175]. Page 358. Moderate as this tribute may appear, such is the extreme poverty of the Indians in many provinces of America, that the exacting of it is intolerably oppressive. Pegna Itiner. par Paroches de Indios, p. 192. Note [176]. Page 358. In New Spain, on account of the extraordinary merit and services of the first conquerors, as well as the small revenue arising from the country previous to ihe discovery of the mines of Sacatecas, the encomiendas were granted for three, and sometimes for four lives. Recopil. lib. vi. tit. ii. c. 14, &c. Note [177]. Page 359. D. Ant. Ulloa contends, that working in mines is not noxious, and as a. proof of this informs us, that many Mestizos and Indians, who do not belong to any Repartimiento, voluntarily hire themselves as miners ; and several of the Indians, when the legal term of their service expires, continue to work in the mines of choice. Entreten. p. 265. But his opinion concerning the whole- someness of this occupation is contrary to the experience of all ages ; and wherever men are allured by high wages, they will engage in any species of labour, however fatiguing or pernicious it may^e. D. Hern. Carillo Altamirano relates a curious fact incompatible with this opinion. Wherever mines are ViTought, says he, the number of Indians decreases ; but in the province of Campeachy, where there are no mines, the number of Indians has increased more than a tiiird since the conquest of America, though neither the soil nor climate be so favourable as in Peru or Mexico. Colbert Collect. In another memorial presented to Philip III. in tlie year 1609, Captain Juan Gonzales de Azevedo asserts, that in every district of Peru where the Indians are compelled to labour in the mines, their numbers were reduced to the half, and in some places to the third, of what it was under the viceroyalty of Don Fran. Toledo in 1581. Colb, Collect. Note [178]. Page 359. As labour of this kind cannot be prescribed with legal accuracy, the tasks s.eem to be in a great measure arbitrary, and, like the services exacted by feudal superiors in vinea prato, aut messe, from their vassals, are extremely burden- some, and often wantonly oppressive. Pegna Itiner. par Paroches de Indios. Note [179]. Page 359. The turn of service known in Peru by the name of Mita is called Tattda in New Spain. There it continues no longer than a week at a time. No person is called to serve at a greater distance from his habitation than 24 miles. This arrangement is less oppressive to the Indians than that established in Peru. Memorial of Hern. Carillo Altamirano. Colbert Collect. NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 615 Note [inO]. Page 360. The strongest proof of this may be deduced from the laws themselves. By the multitude and variety of regulations to prevent abuses, we may forrti aa idea of the number of abuses that prevail. Though the laws have wisely pro- vided that no Indian shall be obliged to serve in any mine at a greater distance from his place of residence than thirty miles ; we arc informed, in a memorial of D. Hernan Carillo Altamirano presented to the king, that the Indians of Peru are often compelled to serve in mines at the distance of a hundred, a hundred and fifty, and even two hundred leagues from their habitation. Col- bert Collect. Many mines are situated in parts of the country so barren and so distant from the ordinary habitations of the Indians, that the necessity of procuring labourers to work there has obliged the Spanish monarchs to dis- pense with their own regulations in several instances, and to permit the vice- roys to compel the people of more remote provinces to resort to those mines. Escalona Gazophyl. Perub. lib. i. c. 16. But, in justice to them, it should bo observed that they have been studious to alleviate this oppression as much as possible, by enjoining the viceroys to employ every method in order to induce the Indians to settle in some part of the country adjacent to the mines. Id. ibid. Note [181]. Page 362. ToRauEMADA, after a long enumeration which has the appearance of accu- racy, concludes the number of monasteries in New Spain to be four hundred. Mon. Ind. lib. xix. c. 32. The number of Monasteries in the city of Mexicu alone was, in the year 1745, fifty-five. Villa Segnor Theat. Amer. i. 34. Ulloa reckons up forty convents in Lima ; and mentioning those for nuns, he s&ys that a small town might be peopled out of them, the number of persons shut up there is so great. Voy. i. 429. Philip III., in a letter to the Viceroy of Peru, A. D. 1620, observes, that the number of convents in Lima was so great, that they covered more ground than all the rest of the city. Solorz. lib. iii. c. 23. n. 57. Lib. iii. c. 16. Torquem. lib. xv. c. 3. The first monastery in New Spain was founded A. D. 1525, four years only after the conquest. Torq. lib. XV. c. 16. According to Gil Gonzalez Davila, the complete establishment of th« American ciiurch in all the Spanish settlements was, in the year 1649, 1 patri- arch, 6 archbishops, 32 bishops, 346 prebends, 2 abbots, 5 royal chaplains, 840 convents. Teatro Ecclesiastico de las Ind. Occident. Vol. i. Pref. When the order of Jesuits was expelled from all the Spanish dominions, the colleges, professed houses, and residences which it possessed in the province of New Spain were thirty, in Quito sixteen, in the New Kingdom of Granada thirteen, in Peru seventeen, in Chih eighteen, in Paraguay eighteen ; in all, a hundred and twelve. Collection General de Providencias hasta aqui tomadas sobre estranamento, &c. de la Compagnia, part i. p. 19. The number of Jesuits, priests, and novices in all these amounted to 2245. MS. penes me. In the year 1644 the city of Mexico presented a petition to the king, praying that no new monastery might be founded, and that the revenues of those already established might be circumscribed, otherwise the religious houses would soon acquire the property of the whole country. The petitioners request likewise, that the bishops might be laid under restrictions in conferring holy orders, as there were at that time in New Spain above six thousand clergymen without any living. Ibid. p. 16. These abuses must have been enormous in- deed, when the superstition of American Spaniards was shocked, and induced to remonstrate against them. Note [182]. Page 363. Tuis description of the manners of the Spanish clergy I should not; have ventured to give upon the testimony of Protestant authors alone, as they may be suspected of prejudice or exaggeration. Gage, in particular, who had a better opportunity tlian any Protcsta.Mt to view the interior state of Spani^ti 516 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. America, dcscribrs the corruption of the church which he hail forsaken with so much of the acrimony of a new convert, that I shouhl have distrusted his evidence, thoujrh it communicates some very curious and striking facts. But lienzoni mentions the profligacy of ecclesiastics in America at a very CJirly period after their settlement there. Hist. lib. ii. c. 19, 20. M. Frezier, an in- telUgent observer, and zealous for his own religion, paints the dissolute manners of tiio Spanish ecclesiastics in Peru, particularly the regulars, in stronger folours than I have employed. Voy. p. 61. 215, k-c. M. Gentil confirms this account. Voy. i. 34. Correal concurs with both, and adds many remarkable t ircumstances. Voy. i. 61. 155. 161. I have good reason to believe that the manners of the regular clergy, particularly in Peru, are still extremely indecent. Acosta himself acknowledges that great corruption of manners had been the consequence of permitting monks to forsake the retirement and discipline of the cloister, and to mingle again with the world, by undertaking the charge of the Indian parishes. De Procur. Ind. Salute, lib. iv. c. 13, &c. He mentions particularly those vices of which I have taken notice, and considers the tempt- ations to them as so formidable, that he leans to the opinion of those who hold that the regular clergy should not be employed as parish priests. Lib. v. c. 20. Even the advocates of the regulars admit, that many and great enor- mities abounded among the monks of different orders, when set free from the restraint of monastic discipline ; and from the tone of their defence, one may conclude that the charge brought against them was not destitute of truth. In the French colonies the state of the regular clergy is nearly the same as in the Spanish settlements, an'd the same consequences have followed. M. Biet, superior of the secular priests in Cayenne, inquires, with no less appearance of piety than of candour, into the causes of this corruption, and imputes it c;hiefly to the exemption of regulars from the jurisdiction and censures of their diocessans ; to the temptations to which they are exposed ; and to their en- gaging in commerce. Voy. p. 320. It is remarkable, that all the authors who censure the licentiousness of the Spanish regulars with the greatest severity. concur in vindicating the conduct of the Jesuits. Formed under a discipline more perfect than that of the other monastic orders, or animated by that con- cern for the honour of the society which takes such full possession of every member of the order, the Jesuits, both in Mexico and Peru, it is allowed, main- lain a most irreproachable decency of manners. Frezier, 223. Gentil. i. 34. The same praise is likewise due to the bishops and most of the dignified clergy. Frez. Ibid. A volume of the Gazette do Mexico for the years 1728, 1729, 1730, having been communicated to me, I find tliere a striking confirmation of what I have advanced concerning the spirit of low illiberal superstition prevalent in Spanish America. From the newspapers of any nation one may learn what are the objects which chiefly engross its attention, and which appear to it most inte- resting. The Gazette of Mexico is filled almost entirely with accounts of re- ligious functions, with descriptions of processions, consecrations of churches, beatifications of saints, festivals, autos de fe, &c. Civil or commercial affairs, and even the transactions of Europe, occupy but a small corner in this maga- zine of monthly intelligence. From the titles of new books, which are regularly inserted in this Gazette, it appears that two-thirds of them are treatises of scholastic theology, or of monkish devotion. Note [183]. Page 363. SoLORZANO, after mentioning the corrupt morals of some of the regul.ar clergy, with that cautious reserve which became a Spanish layman in touching on a subject so delicate, gives his opinion very explicitly, and with much firm- ness, against committing parochial charges to monks. He produces the testi- mony of several respectable authors of his country, both divines and lawyers, in confirmation of his opinion. De Jure Ind. ii. lib. iii. c. 16. A striking proof of the alarm excited by the attempt of the Prince d'Esquilache to exclude the regulars from parochial cures, is contained in the Colbert collection of papers. Several memorials were presented to the king by the procurators for the mo- nastic orders, and replies were made to these in name of the secular clergy. NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. M7 An eager and even rancorous spirit is manifest on both sides in the conduct of tjtus dispute. Note [184], Page 365. Not only the native Indians, but tlic Mestisos, or children of a Spaniard and Indian, were originally excluded from the priesthood, and refused admis- sion into any religious order. But by a law issued Sept. 28th, 1588, Philip 11. required the prelates of America to ordain such mestizos born in lawful wed- lock, as they should find to be properly qualified, and to permit them to take the vows in any monastery where they had gone through a regular noviciate. Recopil. lib. i. tit. vii. 1. 7. Some regard seems to have been paid to this law in Now Spain ; but none in Peru. Upon a representation of this to Charlea II. in the year 1697, he issued a new edict, enforcing the observation of it, and professing his desire to have all his subjects, Indians and mestizos as well sa Spaniards, admitted to the enjoyment of the same privileges. Such, how- ever, was the aversion of the Spaniards in America to the Indians and their race, that this seems to have produced little effect; for in the year 1723 Philip V. was obliged to renew the injunction in a more peremptory tone. But so unsurmountable are hatred and contempt of the Indians among the Peruvian Spaniards, that the present king has been constrained to enforce the formor edicts anew, by a law published September 11, 1774. Real Cedula, MS. 2>enes me. M. Clavigero has contradicted what I have related concerning the ecclesias- tical state of the Indians, particularly their exclusion from the sacrament of the eucharist, and from holy orders, either as seculars or regulars, in such a manner as cannot fail to make a deep impression. He, from his own know- ledge, asserts, " that in New Spain not only are Indians permitted to partake of the sacrament of the altar, but that Indian priests are so numerous that they may be counted by hundreds ; and among these have been many liundreds of rectors, canons, and doctors, and, as report goes, even a very learned bishop. At present there are many priests, and not a few rectors, among whom tliere have been three or four our own pupils." Vol. II. 348, &c. I owe it, therefore, as a duty to the public as well as to myself, to consider each of tliese points with care, and to explain the reasons which induced me to adopt the opinion which I have published. I knew that in the Christian church there is no distinction of persons, but that men of every nation, who embrace the religion of Jesus, are equally en- titled to every Christian privilege which they are qualified to receive. I knew likewise that an opinion prevailed, not only among most of the Spanish laity settled in America, but among " many ecclesiastics (I use the words of Herrera, dec. ii. lib. ii. c. 15), that the Indians were not jierfect or rational men, and were not possessed of such capacity as qualified them to partake of the sacra- ment of the altar, or of any other benefit of our religion." It was against this opinion that Las Casas contended with ihe laudable zeal which I have described in Books III. and VI. But as the Bishop of Darien, doctor Scpul- vida, and other respectable ecclesiastics, vigorously supported the common opinion concerning the incapacity of tiie Indians, it became necessary, in order to determine llic point, tiiat the authority of the Holy See should be interposed ; and accordingly Paul III. issued a bull, A. D. 1537, in which, after condemning- the opinion of those who held that the Indians, as being on a level with bruto beasts, should be reduced to servitude, he declares that they were really men, and as such were capable of embracing the Christian religion, and participating of all its blessings. My account of this bull, notwithstanding the cavils of M. Clavigero, must appear just to every person who takes the trouble of perusing it; and my account is tlie same with that adopted by Torquemada, lib. xvi. c. 25, and by Garcia, Orig. p. 311. But even after this decision, so low did the Spaniards residing in America rate the capacity of the natives, liiat the first council of Lima (I call it by that name on the authority ol" the best Spanish authors) discountenanced the admission of Indians to the holy communion, Torquem. lib. xvi. c. 20, In New Si)ain the exclusion of Indians frotn the Barrament was still more explicit. Ibid, After two centuries have elanscd. nnd 518 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. notwithstanding all the improvement that the Indians may be supposed to have derived from their intercourse with tlie Spaniards during that period, we are informed by D. Ant. Ulloa, that in Peru, where, as will appear in the sequel of this note, they are supposed to be better instructed than in New Spain, their ignorance is so prodigious that very few are permitted to communicate, as being altogether destitute of the requisite capacity. Voy. i, 341. &c. Solorz. Poht. Ind. i. 203. With respect to the exclusion of Indians from the priesthood, either as secu- lars or regulars, we may observe that while it continued to be the conaion opinion that the natives of America, on account of their incapacity, should not be permitted to partake of the holy sacrament, we cannot suppose that they would be clothed with that sacred character which entitled them to con- secrate and to dispense it. When Torquemada composed his Monarquia In- diaiM it was almost a century after the conquest of New Spain ; and yet in his time it was still the general practice to exclude Indians from holy orders. Of this we have the most satisfying evidence. Torquemada having celebrated the virtues and graces of the Indians at great length, and with all the com- placency of a missionary, he starts as an objection to what he had asserted, " If the Indians really possess all the excellent qualities which you have de- scribed, why are they not permitted to assume the religious habit ^ Why are they not ordained priests and bishops, as the Jewish and Gentile converts were in the primitive church, especially as they might be employed with such su- perior advantage to other persons in the instruction of their countrymen ?" Lib. xvii. c. 13. In answer to this objection, which establishes, in the most unequivocal man- ner, what was the general practice at that period, Torquemada observes, that although by their natual dispositions, the Indians are well fitted for a subordi- nate situation, they are destitute of all the qualities requisite in any station of dignity and authority ; and that they are in general so addicted to drunken- ness, that upon the slightest temptation one cannot promise on their behaving with the decency suitable to the clerical character. The propriety of excluding them from it, on these accounts, was, he observed, so well justified by experi- ence, that when a foreigner of great erudition, who came from Spain, con- demned the practice of the Mexican church, he was convinced of his mis- take in a public disputation with the learned and most religious Father D. Juan de Gaona, and his retraction is still extant. Torquemada indeed acknowledges, as M. Clavigero observes with a degree of exultation, that in his name some Indians had been admitted into monasteries ; but, with the art of a disputant, he forgets to mention that Torquemada specifies only two examples of this, and takes notice that in both instances those Indians had been admitted by mistake. Relying upon the authority of Torquemada with regard to New Spain, and of Ulloa with regard to Peru, and considering the humiliating de- pression of the Indians in all the Spanish settlements, I concluded that they were not admitted into the ecclesiastical order, which is held in the highest veneration all over the New World. But when M. Clavigero, upon his own knowledge asserted facts so repugnant to the conclusion I had formed, I began to distrust it, and to wish for further information.- In order to obtain this, I applied to a Spanish nobleman, high in office, and eminent for his abilities, who, on different occasions, has permitted me to have the honour and benefit of corresponding with him. I have been favoured with the following answer: "What you have written concerning the admission of Indians into holy orders, or into monasteries, in Book VIII., especially as it is explained and limited in Note LXXXVIII. of the quarto edi- tion, is in general accurate, and conformable to the authorities which you quote. And although the congregation of the council resolved and declared, Feb. 13, A. D. 1682, that the circumstance of being an Indian, or mulatto, or mestizo, did not disqualify any person from being admitted into holy orders, if he was possessed of what is required by the canons to entitle him to that privilege; this only proves such ordinations to be legal and valid (of which Solorzano and the Spanish lawyers and historians quoted by him, Pol. Lid. lib. ii. c. 29, were persuaded), but it neither proves the propriety of admitting Indians into holy orders, nor what was then the common practice with respect to this : but, on NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. sid the contrary, it shows that there was some doubt concerning the ordaining of Indians, and sorte repugnance to it. " Since that time there have been some examples of admitting Indians into holy orders. We have now at Madrid an aged priest, a native of Tlascala. His name is D. Juan Cerilo de Castilla Aquihual Catehuttle, descended of a cazique converted to Christianity soon after the conquest. He studied the ecclesiastical sciences in a seminary of Puebla de los Angeles. He was a can- didate, nevertheless, for ten years, and it required much interest before Bishop Abren would consent to ordain him. This ecclesiastic was a man of unexcep- tionable character, modest, self-denied, and with a competent knowledge of what relates to his clerical functions. He came to Madrid above thirty-four years ago with the sole view of soliciting admission for the Indians into the colleges and seminaries in New Spain, that if, after being well instructed and tried, they should find an inclination to enter into the ecclesiastical state, they might embrace it, and perform its functions with the greatest benefit to their countrymen, whom they could address in their native tongue. He has ob- tained various regulations favourable to his scheme, particularly that the first college which became vacant in consequence of the exclusion of the Jesuits should be set apart for this purpose. But neither these regulations, nor any similar ones inserted in the laws of the Indies, have produced any effect, on account of objections and representations from the greater part of persons of chief consideration employed in New Spain. Whether their opposition be well founded or not is a problem difficult to resolve, and towards the solution of which several distinctions and modifications are requisite. " According to the accounts of this ecclesiastic, and the information of other persons who liave resided in the Spanish dominions in America, you may rest assured, that in the kingdom of Tierra Firme no such thing is known as either an Indian secular priest or monk ; and that in New Spain there are very few ecclesiastics of Indian race. In Peru, perhaps, the number may be greater, as in that country there are more Indians who possess the means of acquiring Buch a learned education as is necessary for persons who aspire to the clerical character." Note [185]. Page 366. UzTARiz, an accurate and cautious calculator, seems to admit, that the quantity of silver which does not pay duty, may be stated thus high. According to Herrera there was not above a third of what was extracted from Potosi that paid the king's fifth. Dec. 8. lib. ii. c. 13. Solorzano asserts likewise, that the quantity of silver which is fraudulently circulated, is far greater than that which is regularly stamped, after paying the fifth. De Ind. Jure, vol. ii. lib, V. p. 846. Note [186]. Page 368. When the mines of Potosi were discovered in the year 1545, the veins were so near the surface, that the ore was easily extracted, and so rich tliat it was refined with little trouble and at a small expense, merely by the action of fire. The simple mode of refining by fusion alone continued until the year 1574, when tlie use of mercury in refining silver, as well as gold, was discovered. Those mines having been wrought without interruption for two centuries, the veins are now sunk so deep, that the expense of extracting the ore is greatly increased. Besides this, the richness of the ore, contrary to what happens in most other mines, has become less as the vein continued to dip. The vein has likewise diminished to such a degree, that one is amazed that the Spaniards should persist in working it. Other rich mines have been successively disco- vered ; but in general the value of the ores lias decreased so much, while the ex- pense of extracting them has augmented, that the court of Spain in tlie year 1736 reduced the duty payable to the king from -ijifth to a tenth. All tlie quick- silver used in Peru is extracted from the famous mine of Guancabelica, dis- covered in the j'ear 15G3. The crown has reserved the property of tliis mine to itself; and tlie persons who purchase the quicksilver pay not only the price 520 KOTES AND ILLUSTI of it, but likewise a.Jiflh, as a duty to the king. But in the year 1761 tliis duly on quicksilver was abolished, on account of the increase of expense in workin;^ mines. Ulloa, Entretenimientos, xii — xv. Voyage, i. p. 505. 52o. In conse- quence of this abolition of the Jiflh, and some subsequent abatements of price, which became necessary on account of the increasing expense of working mines, quicksilver, which was lormerly sold at eighty pesos the quintal, is now de- livered by the king at the rate of sixty pesos. Campomanes, Educ. Popul. ii. 132, note. The duty on gold is reduced to a twentieth, or five per cent. Any of my readers who are desirous of being acquainted with the mode in which the Spaniards conduct the working of their mines, and the refinement of the ore, will find an accurate description of the ancient method by Acosta, lib. iv." c. 1 — 13, and of their more recent improvements in the metaUurgic art, by Gamboa Comment, a las ordenanz. de Minas, c. 22. Note [187]. Page 369. Many remarkable proofs occur of the advanced state of industry in Spain at the beginning of the sixteenth century. The number of cities in Spain was considerable, and they were peopled far beyond the proportion that was com- mon in other parts of Europe. The causes of this I liave explained. Hist, of Clia. V. p. 68. Wherever cities are populous, that species of industry which is peculiar to them increases : artificers and manufacturers abound. Tlie effect of the American trade in giving activity to these is manifest from a singular fact. In the year 1545, while Spain continued to depend on its own industry for the supply of its colonies, so much work was bespoke from the manufacturers, that it was supposed tliey could hardly finish it in less than six 3'ears. Campom. i. 406. Such a demand must have put much industry in motion, and have excited extraordinary efforts. Accordingly, we are informed, that in the beginning of Pliilip II. 's reign, the city of Seville alone, where the trade with America centred, gave employment to no fewer than 16,000 looms jn silk or woollen work, and that above 130,000 persons had occupation in car- rj'ing on these manufactures. Campom. ii. 472. But so rapid and pernicious was the operation of the causes which I shall enumerate, that before Phihp III. ended his reign the looms in Seville were reduced to 400. Uztariz, c. 7. Since the publication of the first edition, I have the satisfaction to find my ideas concerning the early commercial intercourse between Spain and her colo- nies confirmed and illustrated by D. Bernardo Ward, of the Junto de Com- ercio at Madrid, in his Proyiclo Economico, part ii. c. i. " Under the reigns of Charles V. and Philip. II." says he, " the manufactures of Spain and of the Low-Countries subject to her dominion were in a most flourishing state. Those of France and England were in their infancy. The republic of the United Provinces did not then exist. No European power but Spain had colo- nies of any value in the New World. Spain could supply her settlements there with the productions of her own soil, the fabrics wrought by the hands of her own artisans, and all she received in return for these belonged to herself alone. Then the exclusion of foreign manufactures was proper, because it }night be rendered effectual. Then Spain might lay heavy duties upon goods exported to America, or imported from it, and might impose what restraints she deemed proper upon a commerce entirely in her own hands. But vi'hen time and successive revolutions had occasioned an alteration in all those cir- cumstances, when the manufactures of Spain began to decline, and the de- mands of America were supplied by foreign fabrics, the original maxims and regulations of Spain should have been accommodated to the change in her situation. The policy that was wise at one period became absurd in the other." Note [188]. Page 372, No bale of goods is ever opened, no chest of treasure is examined. Botli are received on the credit of the persons to whom they belong ; and only one instan(;e of fraud is recorded, during the long period in which trade was carried un with this liberal confidence. AH tlie coined .•'ilvcr that was brought from NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. 521 i'eru to Porlo-bello in tlic year 1654 was found to be adulterated, and to be mingled with a fifth part of base motal. The Spanish merchants, with senti- ments suitable to their usual integrity, sustained tlie whole loss, and indemni- fied the foreigners by whom tliey were employed. The fraud was detected, and the treasurer of the revenue in Peru, the author of it, was publicly burnt, B. Ulioa. Retablis. de Manuf., &c. liv. ii. p, 102. Note [189]. Page 374. Many striking proofs occur of the scarcity of money in Spain. Of all the immense sums which have been imported from America, the amount of which I shall afterwards have occasion to mention, Moncada asserts, that there did not remain in Spain, in 1619, above two hundred millions of pesos, one half in coined money, the other in plate and jewels. Restaur, de Espagna, disc. iii. c. 1. Uztariz, who published his valuable work in 1724, contends, that in money, plate, and jewels, there did not remain a hundred million. Theor., &c. c. 3. Campomanes, on the authority of a remonstance from the community of mer- chants in Toledo to Philip 111., relates, as a certain proof how scarce cash had become, that persons who lent money received a third of the sum which they advanced as interest and premium. Educ. Popul. i. 417. Note [190]. Page 375. The account of the mode in which the factors of the South Sea company conducted the trade in the fair of Porto-bello, which was opened to them by the Assiento, I have taken from Don Dion. Alcedo y Herrera, president of the Court of Audience in Quito, and governor of that province. Don Dionysio was a person of such respectable character for probity and discernment, that his testimony in any point would be of much weight ; but greater credit is due to it in this case, as he was an eye-witness of the transactions which he relates, and was often employed in detecting and authenticating the frauds which he describes. It is probable, however, that his representation, being composed at the commencement of the war which broke out between Great Britain and Spain, in the year 1739, may, in some instances, discover a portion of the acrimonious spirit natural at that juncture. His detail of facts is curious ; and even English authors confirm it in some degree, by admitting both that various frauds were practised in the transactions of the annual ship, and that the contraband trade from Jamaica, and other British colonies, was become enormously great. But for the credit of the English nation it may be observed, that those fraudulent operations are not to be considered as deeds of the company, but as the dishonourable arts of their factors and agents. The company itself sustained a considerable loss by the Assiento trade. Many of its servants acquired immense fortunes. Anderson Chronol. deduct, ii. 38VJ. Note [191]. Page 377. Several facts with respect to the institution, the progress, and the effects of this company, are curious, and but little known to English readers. Though the province of Venezuela, or Caraccas, extends four-hundred miles along tho coast, and is one of the most fertile in America, it was so much neglected by the Spaniards, that during the twenty years prior to the establishment of tho company, only five ships sailed from Spain to tiiat province ; and, during six- teen years, from 1706 to 1722, not a single ship arrived from the Caraccas in Spain. Noticias de Real Campania de Caraccas, p. 28. During this period Spain must have been supplied almost entirely witli a large quantity of cacao, which it consumes, by foreigners. Before the erection of the company, neither tobacco nor hides were imported from Caraccas into Spain. Ibid. p. 117. Since tlie commercial operations of the company, begun in the year 1731, tlie importation of cacao into Spain has increased amazingly. During thirty years subsequent to 1701, the number oi' fanei^as of cacao (each a hundred and ten pounds) imported from Caraccas was 643,215. During eighteen years sub- sequent to 1731, the number of faneeas imported was 869.247 ; and if we sup- Vot. I.— 66 " ' 522 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. pose the importation to be continued in the same proportion during the re- mainder of thirty years, it will amount to 1,448,746 /aneg0. The true state of this country long unknowTi, 341. Why depreciated by the Jesuits, ib. Favourable account of, given by Don Joseph Galvez, ib. Califomians, the character of, by P. Venegas, 474. Campeachy, discovered by Cordova, who is re- pulsed by the natives, 119 Campomancs, Don Pedro Rodriguez, character of his political and commercial WTitings, 522. His account of the produce of the Spanish American mines, 525. Canary islands, erected into a kitigdom by Pope Clement VI., 33. Are conquered by John de Bethencourt, ib. Crake, Sir Francis, sails round the world, 395. Drunkenness, strong propensity of the Americans to indulge in, 187. Earth, the globe of, how divided into zones by the ancients, 26. Egyptians, ancient, state of coramerco and na- , vigatlon among them. 19. El Dorado, wonderful loporls of a country so called, made by Francis Orellana, 290. Ek'pkanl, that animal peculiar to the torrid zone, 465. Elizabeth, the reign of, auspicious to discovery, 394. Siie encourages commerce, and secures the trade to Russia, 395. Circumstances in her reign unfavourable to colonization, 401. Her high 'ilea of lier superior skill in theology, ■ 428, note. Escnrial, curious calendar discovered in the library there by Mr. Waddilove, 504. Descrip- tion of that valuable monument of Mexican art, ib. Esquimaux Indians, resemblance between them and tlieir neighbours the Greenlanders, 136. Some account of, 482. Eugene IV., Pope, grants to the Portuguese an exclusive right to all the countries tliey should discover, from Cape Non to tlie continent of India, 38. Europe,.hovi affected by the dismemberment of the Roman empire by the barbarous nations, 27. Revival of commerce and navigation, 28. Political advantages derived from the cru- sades, 29. Ferdinand, king of Castile — see Coiumbus and Isabella — turns his attention at length to the regulation of American affairs, 95. Don Diego de Columbus sues out his father's claims against him, 97. Erects two governments on the continent of America, 98. Sends a fleet to Darien, and supersedes Balboa, 105. Ap- points Balboa lieutenant-governor of the coun tries on the South Sea, 106. Sends Dias dc Solis to discover a western passage to the Mo lucca.s, 108, Thwarts the measures of Diego Colunilius, ib. His decree concerning the treatment of the Indians, 109. Fernandez , Don Diego, character of his Historia del Peru, 495. , P., his description of the political state of the Chiquitos, 478. Figun-oa, Roderigo de, is appointed chief judge of Hispaniola, with a commission to examine into the treatment of the Indian natives, 113. Makes an experiment to determine the capacity of the Indians, 117. Florida, discovered by Juan Ponce de Leon, 101. The chiefs there hereditary, 164. Account of, from Alvara Nugnez Cabeca de Veca, 475. Flola, Spanish, some account of, 372. Fonseca, bishop of Badajos, minister for Indian affairs, obstructs the plans of colonization and discovery formed by Columbus, 72 75. Pa- tronizes the expedition of Alonzo de Ojeda, 80. Frobisher, Martin, makes three unsuccessful attempts to discover a north-east passage to India, 395. Galeons, Spanish, the nature and purpose of these vessels, 372. Arrangement of their vot- age, ib. Galvez, Don Joseph, sent to discover the true state of California, 341 Gama, Vasco de, his voyage for discovery, 70. Doubles the Cape of Good Hope, ib. Anchors before the city of Melinda, ib. Arrives at Cale- cut, in Malabar, ib. Gamintr, strange propensity of the Americans to, 187. Ganges, erroneous ideas of the ancients as to the position of that river, 4.50. Gasca, Pedro de la, sent to Pern as president of the Court of Audience in Lima, 304. His character and moderation, ib. The powers he was vc«ited with, ib. Arrives at Panama, 305 Acquires possession of Panama with the fleet and forces there, 306. Advances towards CuSicO. 307 Pizarro's troops desert to l)im, 308. His moderate use of the victory ib INDEX. 333 Devises employment for hia soldiers, 310. His division of the country among his followers, 311. The discontents it occasions, ib. Re- stores order and government, ib. His reception at his return to Spain, 311, 312. Gcminus, instance of his ignorance in geogra- phy, 451. Geography, the knowledge of, extremely confined among the ancients, 26. Became a favourite study among the Arabians, 28. Oiants, the accounts of, in our early travellers, unconfirmed by recent discoveries, 32. 472. Gilbert, Sir Humphrey, conducts the tirst colony to North America, 396. A charier is granted to him and his heirs, ib. Conducts anoUier ex- pedition, which ends disastrously, and in which he perishes, 397. Oioia, Flavio, the inventor of the mariner's com- pass, 32. Globe, its division into zones by the ancients, 26. Gold, why the first metal with which man was acquainted, IHO. K.vlraordinary large grain of, found in the mines at C'inaloa, 509. Gomara, character of his Cronica de la Nueva Espagna, 485. Good Hope, Cape of, discovered by Bartholomew Diaz, 40. Gosnold, Bartholomew, is the first who attempts to steer a direct course from England to Norlli America, 401. Descries Massachusetts Bay, and returns to England, ib. The consequences of his voyage, i'o. Oovernvient, no visible form of, among the native Americans, 163. Exceptions, 164. Gran Chaco, account of tlie method of making war among the natives of, from Lozano, 479. Granada, new kingdom of, iti America, by whom reduced to the Spauish dominion, 346. Its cli- mate and produce, ib. A viceroy lately esta- blished there, 351. Greeks, ancient, progress of navigation and dis- covery among them, 21. Their commercial intercourse with other nations very limited, 34. Greenland, its vicinity to North America, 136. Greenville, Sir Richard, establishes a colony in Virginia, which, being in danger of perishing by famine, is obliged to return to England, 398. Appears ofl^ the coast soon after the departure of the colony, and lands fifteen of his crew to keep possession of the island, who are destroyed by the savages, 399. Grijalva, Juan de, sets out from Cuba on a voy- age of discovery, 120. Discovers and gives name to New Spain, ib. His reasons for not planting a colony in his newly discovered lands, 121. Ouarda Costas, employed by Spain to check illi- cit trade in the American colonies, 375. Guatiinala, the indigo there superior to any in America, .368. Guatimozin, nephew and son-in-law of Monte- zuma, succeeds Quetlavaca in the kingdom of Mexico, 223. Repulses the attarks of the Spa- niards in storming the city of Mexico, iJ19. Is taken prisoner by Cortes, 251. Is tortured to discover his treasure, 252. Is hanged, 257. Guiana, Dutch, cause of the excessive fertility of tile soil there, 467. ffaliluyt, improves the naval and commercial skill of the age in which he lived, 402. Is em- powered to settle any part of the south colony of Virginia, ib, Hanno, his Periplus defended, with an account of his voyage, 448. Hatuey, a cazique of Cuba, his cruel treatment, and memorable repartee to a Franciscan friar, 101. Hawkfsxcorlh'.i voyages, account of New Hol- land, and the inhabitants from, 476 Heat, the dilfcrent degrees of in the old and new continents aecounted for, 462. Estimated, 466. Henry, prince of Portugal, his character and studies, 35. Expeditions formed by his order, 36. Applies for a papal grant of his new dis- coveries, 37. His death, 38. Hcrrada, Juan de, assassinates Francis Pizarro, 292. Dies, 293. Herrera, the best historian of the conquest of New Spain, 486. His account of Orellana's voyage, 499. Hispaniola, the island of, discovered by Christo- pher Columbus, 58. His transactions with the natives, ib. A colony lelt there by Columbus, 61. The colony destroyed, 66. Columbus builds a city called Isabella, 67. The natives ill used, and begin to be alarmed, 70. Are de- feated by the Spaniards, 71. Tribute exacted from them, ib. They scheme to starve the Spaniards, 72. St. Domingo founded by Bar- tholomew Columbus, 77. Columbus sent home in irons by Bovadilla, 84. Nicholas de Ovando appointed governor, 85. Summary view of the conduct ol tlie Spaniards towards the na- tives of, 92. Unhappy fate of Anacoana, 94. Great produce from the mines there, ib. The inhabitants diminish, 90.. The Spaniards re- cruit them by trepanning the natives of the Lucayos, ib. x'\rrival of Don Diego de Colum- bus, 97, 98. The natives of, almost extirpated by slavery, 100, 108. Controversy concerning the treatment of them, 109. Columbus's ac- count of the humane treatment he received from the natives of, 453. Curious instance of superstition in the Spanish planters there, 466, Holguin, Pedro Alvarez, erects the royal standard in Peru, in opposition to the younger Almagro, 293. Vaca de Castro arrives, and assumes the command, 294. Homer, his account of the navigation of the an- cient Greeks, 21, 22. Honduras, the value of that country, owing to its production of the logwood tree, 341. Horned cattle, amazing increase of them in Spa- nish America, 368. Horses, astonishment and mistakes of the Mexi- cans at the first sight of them, 489. Expedient of the Peruvians to render them incapable of action, 499. Huana Capac, inca of Peru, his character and family, 269. Huascar Capac, inca of Peru, disputes his bro- ther Atahualpa's succession to Quito, 269. Is defeated and taken prisoner by Atahualpa, ib. Solicits the assistance of Pizarro against his brother, 270. Is put to death by order of Ata- hualpa, 274. Hutchinson, Mrs., heads a sect of religious wo- men in New-England, who are denominated Antinomi.ins, 439. Her doctrines are con- demned by a general synod there, 440. Incas of Peru, received origin of their empire, 268. Their empire fomided both in religion and policy, 331 . See Prru. India, the motives of Alexander the Great in his expedition .to, 23. The commerce with, how carried on in ancient times, 35 ; and when arts began lo revive in Europe, 28. The first voy- age made round the Cape of Good Hope, 79. Attempts to discover a north-west pxssage to, unsuccessful, 392. 395. .\n attempt made by the north-east to, 394. A company of mer- chants in England is incorporated to prosecute discoveries in, 393. A coinmnnlcation with, attempted bv land, :194 The design is encou- . ragi'd by Uueen Elizabeth, 395. Indians \v Spanish .\inerira See Americans. fndirs, West, why Columbus's discoveries were so named, ()4. Innncrnt IV., Pope, his extraordinary mission to the Prince of the Tartars, 30. Inquisition, court of, when and by whom first introduced into Portugal, 452. 534 INDEX. Itiseets and reptiles, why so numerous and nox- ious in America, )2c). Iron, tlie reason wliy savage nations were unac- quainted with this metal, ISO. Isabella, queen of Castile, is applied to by Juan I'erez in belialf of Clirislopher Columbus, 48. Is again applied to by Uuintamlla and Santan- gcl, ib. Is prevailed on to equip him, 50. Dies, 93. Her real motives for encouraging discove- ries in America, 349. • , the city of, in Hispamola, built by Christopher Coliunbus, 67. Italy, tlie fixst country in Europe where civiliza- tion and arts revived after the overthrow of the Roman empire, iJ9. The commercial spirit of, active and enterprising, ib. Jamaica, discovered by ChristopherColumbus, 69. Jerome, St., three monks ot that order sent by Cardinal Ximenes to Hispamola, to regulate the treatment of the Indians, III. Their con- duct under this commission, ib. , are recalled, 113. Jesuits, acquire an absolute dominion over Cali- fornia, 341. Their motives tor depreciatmg the country, ib. Jews, ancient state of commerce and navigation among them, iO. John I., king of Portugal, the first who sent ships to explore the western coast of Africa, 34. His son, Prince Henry, engages in these attempts, 30. — - II., king of Portugal, patronises all attempts towards discoveries, 39. Sends an embassy to Abyssinia, 41. His ungenerous treatment of Columbus, 46. Ladrone islands, discovered by Ferainand Ma- gellan, 354. Lakes, amazing size of those in North America, 123. Las Casas, Barltioloraew, returns from Hispa- mola to solicit the cause of the enslaved Indians at the court of Spain, 110. Is seni back with powers by Cardinal Ximenes, 111. Returns dissatisfied, 113. Procures a new commission to be sent over on this subject, 113 Recom- mends the scheme of supplying the colonies with Negroes, ib. Undertakes a new colony, 114. His conference with the bishop of Darien before the emperor Charles V., U5, 116. Goes to America to carry his schemes into execution, 116. Circumstances unfavourable to him, 117. Uis final miscarriage, 1)8. Revives his repre- sentations in favour of the Indians at the de- sire of tlie emperor, 295. Composes a treatise on the destruction of America, 296. Leon, Pedro Cieza de, character of his Cronica del Peru, 495. Lery, his description of the courage and ferocity of the Toupinambns, 479. Lima, the city of, in Peru, founded by Pizarro, 231. Listen, Mr., the British minister at Madrid, his answer to several inloresting inquiries relating to the admission of Indians into holy orders, 518. Logwood, the rommodity that gjves importance to the provinces of Honduras and Yuratan, 341. Policy of thp Spaniards to defeat the English trade in 342. Louis, St., king of France, his embassy to the Chan of the Tartars, 31. I.oiano, his account of the method of making war among the natives of Gran Charo, 479. Luque, Hernando de, a priest, associates with Pizarro in his Peruvian expedition, 262. Madeira, the island of first discovered, 36. JUadoc, prince of North Wales, story of his voy- age and djscovcrv of North America examined, 4.')fi. Magellan, Ferdinand, his accoujit of the gigantic size of the Patagonians, J47. The existence of this gigantic race yet to be decided, ib. His introduction to the court of Castile, 253. la equipped with a squadron lor a voyage of dis- covery, ib. Sails through the tamous strait that bears his name, 254. Discovers the La- drone and Philippine islands, ib. Is killed, ib. Magnet, its property of attracting iron known to the ancients, bui not its polai inclination, 18. Extraorduiary advantages resulting from this discovery, 32. Mala, St., account of its commerce with Spanish America, 374. Manco i 'apac, founder of the Peruvian empire, account of, 268. Mandeville, Sir John, his eastern travels, with a character of his writings, 31. Manila, the colony of, established by Philip U. of Spain, 383. Trade between, and Soutb America, ib. Mankind, their disposition and inamiers formed by their situation, 131. Hence resemblances to be traced in very distant places without com- munication, ib. Have uniformly attained the greatest perfection of their nature in temperate regions, 195. Marco Polo, the Venetian, his extraordinary tra- vels in the East, 31. Marcst, Gabriel, his account of the country be- tween the Illinois and Michilimackinac, 477. Marina, Donna, a Mexican slave, her liistorv, 301. Marinus, Tyrius, his erroneous position of China, 452. Martyr, Peter, his sentiments on the first disco- very '.f America, 457. Maryland. Sec Virginia. Massachusetts Bay. See America, Jfew-Eng- land, &c. Merchants, English, the right of property in the North American colonies vested in a company of, resident in London, 400. Charters are granted to two companies of, to make settle- ments in America, 402. Tenor and defects of tliese charters, 403. A new charter is granted to tlicm, with more ample privileges, 407. They are divided by factions, 415. An inquiry is instituted into their conduct, 416, They are required to surrender their charter, which they refuse, ib. A writ of gzio warranto is issued out against them, 417. They are tried in the court of King's Bench, and the company is dissolved, ib. Their charter is transferred to the colonies, 4 J 8. Mestizos, in the Spani-sh American colonies, dis- tinction between them and mulattoes, 357. Metals, useful, the original natives of America totally unacquainted with, 160. Mexicans, their account of their own origin, compared with later discoveries, J37. Their paintings few in number, and of ambiguous meaning, 314. Two c-'i!lections of them dis- covered, ib , note. Their language furnished with respectful terminations for all its words, 501. How they contributed to the support of government, 502 Descriptions of their histo- ■ rical pictures, ib. Various exaggerated accounts of the number of human victims sacrificed by them, .506. Mexico, arrival of Fernando Cortes on the coast of, 201. His interview with two Mexican offi- cers, 202. Information sent to Montezuma, will] some Spanish presents, 303. Montezuma sends presents to Cortes, with orders not to ap- ■ proacli his capital, ib. State of the empire at that time, 204. The Zempoallans court the friendship of Cortes, 208. Several caziques enter into alliance with Cortes. 209. Character of the natives of TIascala, 219. The Tlasca- lans reduced to sue for peace, 215. Arrival of Cortes at the canital city, 218, The citv INDEX. /JS deactibed, 220. Montezuma acknowledges himself a vassal to the Spanish crown, -£15. Amount of the treasure collected by Cortes, ib. Reasons of gold being Ibund in such small quantities, 227. Ttie .Mexicans enraged at the imprudent zeal of Cortes, ib. ; attack .\1 varado during the absence of Cortes, 233. Their reso- lute attack on Cortes when he retiu-nud, 235. Deatli of .Montezuma, 236. The city aban- doned by Cortes, ib. Battle of (Dtuaiba, 240. The Tepeacaus redaced, 242. Preparations of the Mexicans against the return of Cortes, 243. Cortes besieges the city with a lleet on the lake, 247. The Spaniards repulsed in storming the city, 249. Guatiniozin taken prisoner, 251. Cortes appointed governor, 256. His schemes and arrangements, 257. Inhuman treatment of the natives, ib. Recejition of the new regulations there, 258. List and character of those auUiors who wrote accounts of the con- quest of, 485. A retrospect into the form of ^overtmient, policy, and arts in, 313. Our in- formation concerning, very imperfect, 314. Origin of the monarchy, 315. Number and greatness of the cities, 316. Mechanical pro- fessions there distinguished front each other, 317. Distinction of ranks, ib. Political insti- tutions, 319. Power and solendour of their monarchs, 320. Order of government, ib. Provision for the support of it, ib. Police of, ib. Their arts, 321. Their paintings, il). Their method of computing time, 323. Their wars continual and ferocious, 324. Their fu- neral rites, ib. Imperfection of their agricul- ture, ib. Doubts concerning the extent of the empire, 325. Little intercourse among its several provinces, ib. Ignorance of money, 326. State of tlieir cities, ib. Temples and other public buildings, ib. RpHgion of, 329. Causes of the depopulation of this country, 347. The small-pox very fatal there, 348. Kumber of Indian natives remaining there, 350. Description of the aqueduct for the sup- ply of the capital city, 502. See Colonies. Michael, St., the gulf of, in the South Sea, dis- covered and named by Balboa, 104. The colony of, established by Pizarro, 268. Migrations of mankind, why first made by land, 17. Mind, hiunan, tJie efforts of it proportioned to the wants of the body, 151. Mines of South America, the great inducement to population, 340. Some account of, 306. Their produce, ib. The spirit with which they are worked, 367. Fatal etfects of this ardour, ib. Evidence of the pernicious effects of la- bouring in them, 514. Of Mexico, total pro- duce of, to the Spanish revenue, 523, 52^1. Molucca islands, the Spanish claims on, sold by the emperor (Charles V . to the Portuguese, 25o. Monastic institutions, (he pernicious effects of, in the Spanish American colonics, 361. Num- ber of convents there, 515. Monsoons, the periodical course of, wlien disco- vered by mtvigators, 25. Montesino, a Dominican preacher at St. Domingo, publicly remonstrates against tlie cruel treat- ment of the Indians, 109. Montezuma, the first intelligence received by the Spaniards of this prince, 121. Receives intel- ligence of the arrival of Fernando Cortes in his dominions. 203. His presents to Cortes, ib. Forbids him to approach his capital, ib. State of his empire at this time, 204. Hi5< character, ib. His iwrplexity at the arrival of the Spa- * liiards, ib. His timid negotiations with Cortes, 206. His scheme for dc.^troyinc Cortes at Cho- lula discovered, 217. His irresolute conduct, 218. His first interview with Cortes, 219. Is seized by Cortes, and confined to the Spanish quarters, 223. Is fettered, 224. Acknowledges hinuelf a vassal to the Spanish crown, 225 Remains inflexible with regard to religion, 227. Circumstances of his death, 236. Account of a gold cup of his in England, .502. Mulattocs, in the Spanish American colonies, explanation of this distinction, 357. JVarvaez, Pamphilo, is sent by Velasquez witlj an armament to Mexico, to supersede ' ortes. 22i(. Takes possession of Zempoalla. 231. la •defeated and taken prisoner by Cortes, 233. How he carried on his correspondence with Montezuma, 491. J\l'atchi:z, an American nation, their political in- stitutions, 164. Causes of their tame submis- sion to the Spaniards, 166. Their religious doctrines, ib. JVavigation, the arts of, very slowly improved by mankind, 17. The knowledge of, prior to commercial intercourse, ib. Imperfections of, among the ancients, IH. More improved by the invention of the mariner's compass than by all the efforts of preceding ages, 32. The first naval discoveries undertaken by Portugal, 33. JVegrnes, their peculiar sittiation under the Spa- nish dominion in .America, 357. Arc first in- troduced into Virginia, 4!2 J\rtw Kngland, first attempts to settle in, unsuc cessful, 426. Religious disputes give rise to the colony there, 427. A settlement is formed at New Plymouth in Massachusetts Bay, 432. Plan of its government, ib. All property ia thrown into a conunon stock, 433. A grand council is appointed, ib. A new colony is pro- jected at Massachusetts Bay, and a charter granted for its establishment, 434. Its settle- ment there, 435. A new church is instituted there, ib. Its intolerance, 436, Cliarter of the English company of merchants in London ia transferred to the colonies, ib. The colony at Massachusetts Bay extends, 437. None but members of the church are admitted as free men there, ib. Bad consequences of tins regu- lation, 438. The settlement increases, and the assembly is restricted to the representatives of freemen, ib. Extent of political liberty as- sumed by tb"; assembly, ib. Spirit of fanati- cism spreads in the colony, 439. New settlers arrive, and the doctrines of the Antinomians are condemned by a general synod, 440. Secta- ries settle in Providence and Rhode Island, ib. Theological conte.sts give rise to the colony of Connecticut, 441. Emigrants from Massachu- setts Bay settle in Connecticut, ib. The Dutch, who had establislied a few trading towns on the river there, peaceably withdraw, ib. Set- tlements are formed in the provinces of Nevr Hampshire and Maine, 442. Further encroach- ments of the English are resisted by the natives, ib. War with the Pequod tribes is commenced, 443. Purification of the army, ib. The In- dians are defeated, ib. Cruelties exercised agaL'ist them, 444. Emigrations from England to the colonies are prohibited by proclamation, ib. Colony of Massachusetts Bay is sued at law, and found to have forfeited its rights, ib. Confederacy of the States in, 445. See Colo- nies. J^'ewfoundland, its situation described, 462. Dis- covery of, by Cabot, 390. J\ri'.ir Holland, some account of the country and inhnbilants, 476. JVcio Pltjmouik, settlement at, 432. See Colo- nirs, JVi^w England. JVew Spain, discovered and named by Juan de Grijalva, 120. See Mexico. J^igno, Alouso, his voyage to America, 81. J^orwrpians, might in ancient times have mi- grated to and colonized America, 136. Jfagnei Vela, Blasco, appointed viceroy of Peru, to enforce the new regulations, 297. His cha- racter, 299. Commits Vaca dc Castro to prison, 636 INDEX. jl). Dissensions between Iiim and tlie Court of Audience, 300. Is conhued, ib. Recovers liis liberty, 301. Resumes ins command, ib. Is pursued by Gonzalo Pizarro, ib. Is del'eaied and killed by I'izarro, 302. Ocampo, Diego, sent with a squadron from His- paniola to desolate the country of Cumana, 117. ', Sebastian de, first sails round Cuba^ and discovers it to be an island, 97 Ocean, though adapted to facilitate the inter- course between distant countries, continued long a formidable barrier, 17. See Compass and Mavigatton. Ojeda, Alonzo de, his private expedition to the West Indies, 80. His second voyage, 85. Ob- tains a government on the continent, 98, 99. Olmedo, Father Bartholomew de, checks the rash zeal of Cortes at Tlascala in Mexico, 216. Is sent by Cortes to negotiate with Narvaez, 230. * rellana, Francis, is appointed to the command of a bark built by Gonzalo Pizarro, and deserts him, 290. Sails down the Maragnon, ib. Re- turns to Spain with a report of wonderful dis- coveries, ib. Herrera's account of his voyage, 499 Orgognez, commands Alraagro's party against the Pizarros, and is defeated and killed by them, 286. Orinoco, the great river of, discovered by Chris- topher Columbus, 76. Strange melliod of choosing a captain among the Indian tribes on the banks of, 173. The amazing plenty offish in, 475. Otahcite, the inhabitants of, ignorant of the art of boiling water, 482. Otumba, battle of, between Cortes and the Mexi- cans, 239, 240. Ovanilo, Nicholas de, is sent governor to Hispa- niola, 85. His prudent regulations, ib. Re- fuses admission to Columbus, on his fourth voyage, 87. His iingenerous behaviour to Co- luiiibns on his shipwreck, 89, 90. Receives htm at length, and sends him home, 91. En- gages in a war with the Indians, 93. His cruel treatment of them, ib. Encourages cultivation and manufactures, 95. His method of trepan- ning the natives of the Lucayos, 96. Is re- called, 97. Pacific Ocean, why and by whom so named, 254. Packet boats, first establishment of, between Spain and her American colonies, 378. Panama, is settled by Pedrarias Davila, 107. Parmenides, the first who divided the earth by zones, 451. Patagonians, some account of, 147. The reality of their gigantic size yet to be decided, 472. Pedrarias Davila, is sent with a fleet to super- sede Balboa in his government of Santa Maria on the isthnuis of Darien, 105. Treats Balboa ill, 108. Rapacious conduct of his men, ib. Is reconciled to Balboa, and gives him his daughter, 107. Puts Balboa to death, ib Re- moves his settlement from Santa Maria to Pa- nama, ib. Penguin, the name of that bird not derived from the Welsh language, 456. Perez, Juan, patronizes Columbus at the court of Castile, 48. His soleuni invocation for the success of Columbus's voyage, 52. Periplns of Hanno, the authenticity of that work justified, 448. Peru, the first intelligence concerning Ihi.'s cotmtry received by Vasco Nugnez de Balboa, 104. 'J'he coast of, first discovered by Pizarro, 264. Pizarto's second arrival, 267. His hostile pro- ceedings against the natives, ib. The colony of St. Michael established, 268. State of the empire at the time of this invasion, ib. The kingdom divided between ilua^car and Am- hualpa, 269. Atahualpa usurps the govern ■ ment, ib. Huascar solicits assistance from Pizarro, 270. Atahualpa vi.siis Pizarro, 272. Is seized by Pizarro, 273. Agreement for his ransom, ib. Is refused his hberty, 375. Is cruelly put to death, 277. Confusion of the empire on this event, ib. Uuito reduced by Benalcazar, 278, 279. Tlie city of Lima founded by Pizarro, 281. Chili invaded by Ainiagro, ib. Insurrection of the Peruvians, 282. Almagro put to death by Pizarro, 287. Pizarro divides the country among his follow- ers, 288. Progress of tlie Spanish arms there, 289. Francis Pizarro assassinated, 392. Re- ception of th(! new regulations there, 297, 298. The viceroy confined by the court of audience, 300. The viceroy defeated and killed by Gon- zalo Pizarro, 302. Arrival of Pedro de la Gasca, 306. Reduttion and death of Gonzalo Pizarro, 308. The civil wars there not carried on with mercenary soldiers, 309. But never- theless gratified with immense' rewards, ib. Their profusion and lu.xury, ib. Ferocity of their contests, 310. Their want of faith, ib. Instances, ib. Division of, by Gasca, among his followers, 311. Writers who gave accounts of the conquest of, 493. A retrospect into the original government, arts, and manners of the natives, 313. The high antiquity they pretend to, 329. Their records, 330. Origin of tlieir civil policy, ib. Tliis founded in religion, 331. The authority of the incas absolute and tin- limited, ib. All crimes were punished capi- tally, 332. Mild genius of their religion, ib. Its influence on their civil policy, ib, ; and on their military system, 333. Peculiar state of property there, ib. Distinction of ranks, 334. State of arts, ib. Improved state of agricul- ture, ib. Their buildings, 335. Tlieir public roads, ib. Their bridges, 336. Their mode of refining silver ore, 337. Works of elegance, ib. Tlieir civilization, nevertheless, but im- petfect, 338. Cuzco the only place that had the appearance of a city, ib No perfect sepa- ration of professions, ib. Little commercial intercourse, ib. Their unwarlike spirit, lb. Eat their flesh and fish raw , 339. Brief ac- count of other provinces under the viceroy of New Spain, ib. Causes of the depopulation of this country, 347. The smallpox very fatal there, 348, Their method of building, 508. State of the revenue derived from, by the crown of Spain, 520. See Colonies. Peter I , czar of Russia, his extensive views in prosecuting Asiatic discoveries, 133. Philip It. of Spain, his turbulent disposition aided by his American treasures, 369, Establishes the colony of Manila, 383, Philip III., exhausts his country by inconsiderate bigotry, 370. Philippine Islands, discovered by Ferdinand Ma- gellan, 254. A colony established there by Philip 11. of Spain, 383. Trade between, and America, ib. Pkmnicians, ancient state of commerce and na- vigation among them, 19. Their trade, how conducted, 448. Phi/fir, the art of, in America, why connected with divination, 184. Pinto, Chevalier, his description of the charac- teristic features of the native Americans, 470, Pinzon, Vincent Yanez, commands a vessel under Columbus in his first voyage of disco- very, 51. Sails to America on a private ad- venture with four ships, 81, Discovers Yuca- tan, 97. Pizarro, Ferdinand, is besieged in Cuzco by the Peruvians, 282. Is surprised there by Alniag/o, 283. Escapes with Alvarado 285. Defejids ^- u_.-.i..- „. .1„ . «f annin » I. his brother at the court of Spain. 288. committed to prison, ib. IxNDEX. 537 riiarro, Francisco, attends Balboa in his sfttlc- moiit on tlie istlunus of Darien, 100. Mardics uiidor liim acroBS tlie Istliiinis, wIktc lli<:y eon, 97. Porlo Santo, the first discovery of, 36. Portugal, when and by whom the court of In- quisition was first introduced into. 4.'>2. Vol. I.— RR Porlvgucsf, a view of the circumslances that induced thorn to undertake the disrovery of unknown countries, 33. First African disco- veries of, 34. Madeira discovered, 36. They double C;a|>c Bojador, ib. Obtain a papal grant of all the countries they should discover, 38. Ca(ie Verd islands and the Azores discovered, it). Voyage to the Kast Indies by Vasco do (Jama, 79. Pntosi, the rich silver mines there, how disco- vered, 366. Tlie mines of, greatly exhausted, and scarcely worth working, 519. Prisoners of war, how treated by the native Americans, 170. Property, the idea of, unknown to the native Americans, 161. Notions of the Brasilians concerning, 477. Protector of the Indians in Spanish America, his function, 359. Ptolemy, the philosopher, his geographical de- scriptions more ample and exact tlian those of his predecessors, 27. His Geography translated by the Arabians, 28. His erroneous position of the Ganges, 449. Quctlaitaca, brother of Montezuma, succeedsi him as king of Mexico, 243. Conducts in per- son the fierce attacks which oblige Cortes to abandon his capital, ib. Dies of the small- pox, ib. t^uevedo, bishop of Darien, his conference with Las Casas on the treatment of the Indians, in the presence of the einperor Charles V., 115. Qicksilver, the property of the famous mines of, at Guanacabelica, reserved by the crown ot' Spain, 519. The price of, why reduced, 520. Quinquina, or Jesuits' Bark, a production pecu- liar to Peru, 368. Quipos, or historic cords of the Peruvians, some, account of, 330. Quito, the kingdom of, conquered by Huanl Capac, inca of Peru, 269. Is left to his son Atahualpa, ib. Atahualpa's general revolts after his death, 278. Is reduced by the Spa niards mider Benalcazar, 278, 279. Benalcazar deposed, and Gonzalo Pizarro made governor, 289. Raleiffk, resumes the jrian of settling colonies in North America, 397. Despatches Amadas and Barlow to examine the intended settlements, who discover Virginia, and return to England, 397, 398. Kstablishes a colony in Virginia, which, on account of famine, is obliged to re- turn to England, 398, 399. Makes "a second attempt to settle a colony there, which perishes by famine, 400. Abandons the design, ib. Ramusio, his defence of Hanno's account of the, coast of Africa, 448. Register ships, for what purpose introduced in the trade between Spain and her colonies, 376, Supersede the use of the galeons, ib. Religion of the native Americans, an inquiry into, 179. Ribaf, his account of the political state of the people of Cinaloa, 481. Of their want of reli- gion, 483. Rio de la Plata and Tucuman, account of those provinces, 343. Rivers, the amazing size of those in America, 123. Robinson, Professor, his remarks on the tempera- ture of various climates, 4fi2. Roldan, Francis, is left chief justice inllispanioU hy Christopher Columbus, 73. Becomes the ringleader of a mutiny, 77. Submits, 78. Romans, their progress in navigation and discf^ very, 24. Thi'ir military spirit averse to nie chanical arts and comrnerce, ib. Navigation and trade favoured in the provinces under their government, 24,25. Their extensive disc^ve ries by land, 27. Their empire and the scipncr*- defltioyed together, ih. 53U INDEX. Rubruquis, Father, liis embassy from France to the Chan of the Tartars, 31. Itansia, a trade to, opened by the English, 393. Restricted to a company of British merchants, ib. The connection with the Russian empire encouraged by Queen KUzabeth, 395. Mussians, Asiatic discoveries made by them, 134. Uncertainty of, 467. Saeolecas, the rich silver mines there, when dis- covered, 3G6. San Salvador, discovered and named by Ciiris- topher Columbus, 56. Hancho, Don Pedro, account of his history of the conquest of Peru, 495. Sandoval, the shocking barbarities executed by, in Mexico, 257. •, Francisco Tello de, is sent by the emperor Charles V. to Mexico, as visitador of America, 397. His moderation and prudence, ib. Savage life, a general estimate of, 189. Scalps, motive of the native Americans for taking them from their enemies, 479. f